This is a modern-English version of Moby Dick; Or, The Whale, originally written by Melville, Herman. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

Moby-Dick

by Herman Melville


CHAPTER 1

Loomings

Loomings

Call me Ishmael. Some years ago—never mind how long precisely— having little or no money in my purse, and nothing particular to interest me on shore, I thought I would sail about a little and see the watery part of the world. It is a way I have of driving off the spleen and regulating the circulation. Whenever I find myself growing grim about the mouth; whenever it is a damp, drizzly November in my soul; whenever I find myself involuntarily pausing before coffin warehouses, and bringing up the rear of every funeral I meet; and especially whenever my hypos get such an upper hand of me, that it requires a strong moral principle to prevent me from deliberately stepping into the street, and methodically knocking people's hats off—then, I account it high time to get to sea as soon as I can. This is my substitute for pistol and ball. With a philosophical flourish Cato throws himself upon his sword; I quietly take to the ship. There is nothing surprising in this. If they but knew it, almost all men in their degree, some time or other, cherish very nearly the same feelings towards the ocean with me.

Call me Ishmael. A few years

There now is your insular city of the Manhattoes, belted round by wharves as Indian isles by coral reefs—commerce surrounds it with her surf. Right and left, the streets take you waterward. Its extreme downtown is the battery, where that noble mole is washed by waves, and cooled by breezes, which a few hours previous were out of sight of land. Look at the crowds of water-gazers there.

There is your isolated city of the Manhattoes, surrounded by docks like Indian islands by coral reefs—commerce circles it with her waves. On both sides, the streets lead you toward the water. The very southern tip is Battery Park, where that impressive pier is lapped by waves and refreshed by breezes that just hours earlier were miles from shore. Take a look at the crowds of people staring at the water there.

Circumambulate the city of a dreamy Sabbath afternoon. Go from Corlears Hook to Coenties Slip, and from thence, by Whitehall, northward. What do you see?—Posted like silent sentinels all around the town, stand thousands upon thousands of mortal men fixed in ocean reveries. Some leaning against the spiles; some seated upon the pier-heads; some looking over the bulwarks glasses! of ships from China; some high aloft in the rigging, as if striving to get a still better seaward peep. But these are all landsmen; of week days pent up in lath and plaster— tied to counters, nailed to benches, clinched to desks. How then is this? Are the green fields gone? What do they here?

Walk around the city on a dreamy Sabbath afternoon. Start from Corlears Hook to Coenties Slip, and then head north by Whitehall. What do you see?—Standing like silent guardians all around the town, there are thousands upon thousands of men lost in thoughts about the ocean. Some are leaning against the pilings; some are sitting on the pier heads; some are gazing over the ship barriers with their binoculars, checking out the ships from China; some are high up in the rigging, as if trying to get an even better view of the sea. But these are all land-dwellers; during the week they’re stuck in cubicles—tied to cash registers, nailed to workbenches, glued to desks. So how can this be? Are the green fields gone? What are they doing here?

But look! here come more crowds, pacing straight for the water, and seemingly bound for a dive. Strange! Nothing will content them but the extremest limit of the land; loitering under the shady lee of yonder warehouses will not suffice. No. They must get just as nigh the water as they possibly can without falling in. And there they stand—miles of them—leagues. Inlanders all, they come from lanes and alleys, streets and avenues,— north, east, south, and west. Yet here they all unite. Tell me, does the magnetic virtue of the needles of the compasses of all those ships attract them thither?

But look! Here come more crowds, making their way straight for the water, and it looks like they're ready to dive. Strange! Nothing will satisfy them but to reach the very edge of the land; hanging around under the shade of those warehouses isn't enough. No. They have to get as close to the water as they can without actually falling in. And there they stand—miles of them—leagues. All city dwellers, they come from streets, alleys, and avenues—north, east, south, and west. Yet here they all gather. Tell me, is the magnetic pull of the compasses on all those ships drawing them here?

Once more. Say you are in the country; in some high land of lakes. Take almost any path you please, and ten to one it carries you down in a dale, and leaves you there by a pool in the stream. There is magic in it. Let the most absent-minded of men be plunged in his deepest reveries—stand that man on his legs, set his feet a-going, and he will infallibly lead you to water, if water there be in all that region. Should you ever be athirst in the great American desert, try this experiment, if your caravan happen to be supplied with a metaphysical professor. Yes, as every one knows, meditation and water are wedded for ever.

Once again. Imagine you’re in the countryside, in a high land full of lakes. Choose almost any path, and chances are it will take you down into a valley, leaving you by a pool in the stream. There’s something magical about it. No matter how lost in thought a person may be—if you put them on their feet and get them moving, they will inevitably lead you to water, if there’s any in the area. If you ever find yourself thirsty in the vast American desert, try this experiment, assuming your group has a philosophy professor with them. Yes, as everyone knows, deep thought and water are forever linked.

But here is an artist. He desires to paint you the dreamiest, shadiest, quietest, most enchanting bit of romantic landscape in all the valley of the Saco. What is the chief element he employs? There stand his trees, each with a hollow trunk, as if a hermit and a crucifix were within; and here sleeps his meadow, and there sleep his cattle; and up from yonder cottage goes a sleepy smoke. Deep into distant woodlands winds a mazy way, reaching to overlapping spurs of mountains bathed in their hill-side blue. But though the picture lies thus tranced, and though this pine-tree shakes down its sighs like leaves upon this shepherd's head, yet all were vain, unless the shepherd's eye were fixed upon the magic stream before him. Go visit the Prairies in June, when for scores on scores of miles you wade knee-deep among Tiger-lilies—what is the one charm wanting?— Water there is not a drop of water there! Were Niagara but a cataract of sand, would you travel your thousand miles to see it? Why did the poor poet of Tennessee, upon suddenly receiving two handfuls of silver, deliberate whether to buy him a coat, which he sadly needed, or invest his money in a pedestrian trip to Rockaway Beach? Why is almost every robust healthy boy with a robust healthy soul in him, at some time or other crazy to go to sea? Why upon your first voyage as a passenger, did you yourself feel such a mystical vibration, when first told that you and your ship were now out of sight of land? Why did the old Persians hold the sea holy? Why did the Greeks give it a separate deity, and own brother of Jove? Surely all this is not without meaning. And still deeper the meaning of that story of Narcissus, who because he could not grasp the tormenting, mild image he saw in the fountain, plunged into it and was drowned. But that same image, we ourselves see in all rivers and oceans. It is the image of the ungraspable phantom of life; and this is the key to it all.

But here’s an artist. He wants to paint you the most dreamy, shady, quiet, and enchanting piece of romantic landscape in the entire Saco valley. What’s the main element he uses? There stand his trees, each with a hollow trunk, as if a hermit and a crucifix were inside; and here lies his meadow, and there rest his cattle; and from that cottage over there rises a gentle plume of smoke. A winding path leads deep into the distant woodlands, reaching the overlapping spurs of mountains draped in their hillside blue. But even though the picture appears spellbound, and despite this pine tree shedding its sighs like leaves onto the shepherd's head, it would all be useless unless the shepherd’s gaze is fixed on the magical stream before him. Go visit the Prairies in June, where for miles and miles you wade knee-deep among Tiger lilies—what’s the one charm missing?—There isn’t a single drop of water there! If Niagara were just a waterfall of sand, would you really travel a thousand miles to see it? Why did the poor poet from Tennessee, upon suddenly getting two handfuls of silver, think about whether to buy a coat he desperately needed or spend his money on a pedestrian trip to Rockaway Beach? Why is it that almost every strong, healthy boy with a strong, healthy soul at some point feels the urge to go to sea? Why did you feel such a mystical thrill on your first voyage as a passenger when you were told that you and your ship were now out of sight of land? Why did the ancient Persians consider the sea sacred? Why did the Greeks give the sea a separate deity, a brother of Jove? Surely, all this has significance. And even deeper is the meaning of the story of Narcissus, who, unable to hold onto the tormenting, gentle image he saw in the fountain, plunged into it and drowned. But that same image is reflected in all rivers and oceans. It symbolizes the ungraspable phantom of life; and this is the key to it all.

Now, when I say that I am in the habit of going to sea whenever I begin to grow hazy about the eyes, and begin to be over conscious of my lungs, I do not mean to have it inferred that I ever go to sea as a passenger. For to go as a passenger you must needs have a purse, and a purse is but a rag unless you have something in it. Besides, passengers get sea-sick— grow quarrelsome—don't sleep of nights—do not enjoy themselves much, as a general thing;—no, I never go as a passenger; nor, though I am something of a salt, do I ever go to sea as a Commodore, or a Captain, or a Cook. I abandon the glory and distinction of such offices to those who like them. For my part, I abominate all honorable respectable toils, trials, and tribulations of every kind whatsoever. It is quite as much as I can do to take care of myself, without taking care of ships, barques, brigs, schooners, and what not. And as for going as cook,—though I confess there is considerable glory in that, a cook being a sort of officer on ship-board—yet, somehow, I never fancied broiling fowls;—though once broiled, judiciously buttered, and judgmatically salted and peppered, there is no one who will speak more respectfully, not to say reverentially, of a broiled fowl than I will. It is out of the idolatrous dotings of the old Egyptians upon broiled ibis and roasted river horse, that you see the mummies of those creatures in their huge bakehouses the pyramids.

Now, when I say that I usually go to sea whenever I start to feel foggy in my head or overly aware of my lungs, I don't mean to suggest that I ever go to sea as a passenger. To be a passenger, you need to have money, and money is just a piece of cloth unless there's something in it. Plus, passengers get seasick, become argumentative, can't sleep at night, and generally don’t have much fun; no, I never go as a passenger; and even though I know a thing or two about sailing, I don’t go to sea as a Commodore, or a Captain, or a Cook. I leave the glory and prestige of those roles to those who enjoy them. For me, it’s hard enough to take care of myself without having to manage ships, boats, and whatnot. And as for being a cook—though I admit there is a certain prestige in that, since a cook is a type of officer on a ship—I just never felt like grilling chickens; although once they're grilled, properly buttered, and seasoned just right, I can honestly say that no one respects a grilled chicken more than I do. It's from the ancient Egyptians' obsession with grilled ibis and roasted hippos that you see the mummies of those creatures in their giant bakehouses, the pyramids.

No, when I go to sea, I go as a simple sailor, right before the mast, plumb down into the fore-castle, aloft there to the royal mast-head. True, they rather order me about some, and make me jump from spar to spar, like a grasshopper in a May meadow. And at first, this sort of thing is unpleasant enough. It touches one's sense of honor, particularly if you come of an old established family in the land, the Van Rensselaers, or Randolphs, or Hardicanutes. And more than all, if just previous to putting your hand into the tar-pot, you have been lording it as a country schoolmaster, making the tallest boys stand in awe of you. The transition is a keen one, I assure you, from a schoolmaster to a sailor, and requires a strong decoction of Seneca and the Stoics to enable you to grin and bear it. But even this wears off in time.

No, when I go to sea, I go as a simple sailor, right at the front, down in the forecastle, and up to the top of the mast. Sure, they boss me around a lot and make me hop from one spar to another, like a grasshopper in a May meadow. At first, it's pretty annoying. It challenges your sense of honor, especially if you come from an old, established family like the Van Rensselaers, Randolphs, or Hardicanutes. And even more so if, just before you dip your hand in the tar pot, you’ve been acting like a big deal as a country schoolmaster, making the tallest boys respect you. The shift is a tough one, let me tell you, from being a schoolmaster to a sailor, and you need a strong dose of Seneca and the Stoics to help you grin and bear it. But even this wears off over time.

What of it, if some old hunks of a sea-captain orders me to get a broom and sweep down the decks? What does that indignity amount to, weighed, I mean, in the scales of the New Testament? Do you think the archangel Gabriel thinks anything the less of me, because I promptly and respectfully obey that old hunks in that particular instance? Who ain't a slave? Tell me that. Well, then, however the old sea-captains may order me about—however they may thump and punch me about, I have the satisfaction of knowing that it is all right; that everybody else is one way or other served in much the same way— either in a physical or metaphysical point of view, that is; and so the universal thump is passed round, and all hands should rub each other's shoulder-blades, and be content.

What does it matter if some old sea captain tells me to grab a broom and clean the decks? How much does that really mean, when you think about it in the context of the New Testament? Do you think the archangel Gabriel thinks any less of me just because I promptly and respectfully do what that old captain says? Who isn't a slave? Seriously, tell me that. So, no matter how much the old sea captains boss me around—no matter how much they push and shove me—I find comfort in knowing it's all good; everyone else gets treated in pretty much the same way—whether physically or metaphysically. In the end, we all share the struggle, and we should all help each other out and be satisfied.

Again, I always go to sea as a sailor, because they make a point of paying me for my trouble, whereas they never pay passengers a single penny that I ever heard of. On the contrary, passengers themselves must pay. And there is all the difference in the world between paying and being paid. The act of paying is perhaps the most uncomfortable infliction that the two orchard thieves entailed upon us. But being paid,— what will compare with it? The urbane activity with which a man receives money is really marvellous, considering that we so earnestly believe money to be the root of all earthly ills, and that on no account can a monied man enter heaven. Ah! how cheerfully we consign ourselves to perdition!

Again, I always go to sea as a sailor because they actually pay me for my trouble, while I’ve never heard of passengers getting a single penny. In fact, passengers have to pay. And there’s a huge difference between paying and being paid. The act of paying is probably the most uncomfortable burden that those two thieves in the orchard placed on us. But being paid—what can compare to that? The smooth way a person accepts money is truly amazing, especially since we so strongly believe that money is the root of all evil, and that no rich person can enter heaven. Ah! How gladly we throw ourselves into damnation!

Finally, I always go to sea as a sailor, because of the wholesome exercise and pure air of the fore-castle deck. For as in this world, head winds are far more prevalent than winds from astern (that is, if you never violate the Pythagorean maxim), so for the most part the Commodore on the quarter-deck gets his atmosphere at second hand from the sailors on the forecastle. He thinks he breathes it first; but not so. In much the same way do the commonalty lead their leaders in many other things, at the same time that the leaders little suspect it. But wherefore it was that after having repeatedly smelt the sea as a merchant sailor, I should now take it into my head to go on a whaling voyage; this the invisible police officer of the Fates, who has the constant surveillance of me, and secretly dogs me, and influences me in some unaccountable way— he can better answer than any one else. And, doubtless, my going on this whaling voyage, formed part of the grand programme of Providence that was drawn up a long time ago. It came in as a sort of brief interlude and solo between more extensive performances. I take it that this part of the bill must have run something like this:

Finally, I always go to sea as a sailor because of the healthy exercise and fresh air on the forecastle deck. Just as in this world, headwinds are much more common than following winds (that is, if you never break the Pythagorean rule), the Commodore on the quarterdeck mostly gets his air second-hand from the sailors on the forecastle. He thinks he’s getting it first; but that's not true. In many ways, the common people lead their leaders in various matters, while the leaders remain largely unaware. But why it is that after repeatedly experiencing the sea as a merchant sailor, I decided to join a whaling trip is something the invisible officer of Fate, who constantly watches over me and secretly follows me, can explain better than anyone else. And surely, my embarking on this whaling voyage was part of a grand plan laid out by Providence long ago. It fits in as a brief interlude and solo amid more extensive acts. I believe this part of the program read something like this:

  "Grand Contested Election for the Presidency of the United States.
                 "WHALING VOYAGE BY ONE ISHMAEL."
                 "BLOODY BATTLE IN AFFGHANISTAN."

"Grand Contested Election for the Presidency of the United States.
                 "WHALING VOYAGE BY ONE ISHMAEL."
                 "BLOODY BATTLE IN AFGHANISTAN."

Though I cannot tell why it was exactly that those stage managers, the Fates, put me down for this shabby part of a whaling voyage, when others were set down for magnificent parts in high tragedies, and short and easy parts in genteel comedies, and jolly parts in farces— though I cannot tell why this was exactly; yet, now that I recall all the circumstances, I think I can see a little into the springs and motives which being cunningly presented to me under various disguises, induced me to set about performing the part I did, besides cajoling me into the delusion that it was a choice resulting from my own unbiased freewill and discriminating judgment.

Though I can’t exactly explain why those stage managers, the Fates, assigned me this sad role in a whaling voyage while others got amazing roles in serious dramas, and short and easy parts in classy comedies, and fun roles in farces—though I can’t pinpoint why that happened; now that I think back on everything, I believe I can catch a glimpse of the reasons and motives that were cleverly presented to me in different forms, leading me to take on the part I did, while also tricking me into believing it was a decision made from my own impartial free will and careful judgment.

Chief among these motives was the overwhelming idea of the great whale himself. Such a portentous and mysterious monster roused all my curiosity. Then the wild and distant seas where he rolled his island bulk; the undeliverable, nameless perils of the whale; these, with all the attending marvels of a thousand Patagonian sights and sounds, helped to sway me to my wish. With other men, perhaps, such things would not have been inducements; but as for me, I am tormented with an everlasting itch for things remote. I love to sail forbidden seas, and land on barbarous coasts. Not ignoring what is good, I am quick to perceive a horror, and could still be social with it—would they let me—since it is but well to be on friendly terms with all the inmates of the place one lodges in.

Chief among these reasons was the powerful idea of the great whale itself. Such a significant and mysterious creature stirred all my curiosity. Then there were the wild and far-off seas where he rolled his massive body; the terrifying, unnamed dangers of the whale; these, along with all the incredible sights and sounds of Patagonia, drew me toward my desire. For other men, perhaps, these wouldn’t have been enough to persuade them; but for me, I have an unending itch for distant things. I love to sail into uncharted waters and step onto wild shores. While I appreciate what is good, I am also quick to recognize horror, and I could still coexist with it—if they’d allow me—since it's wise to be on friendly terms with all the inhabitants of the place where one stays.

By reason of these things, then, the whaling voyage was welcome; the great flood-gates of the wonder-world swung open, and in the wild conceits that swayed me to my purpose, two and two there floated into my inmost soul, endless processions of the whale, and, mid most of them all, one grand hooded phantom, like a snow hill in the air.

By all these reasons, the whaling voyage was exciting; the huge doors of the wonder world opened wide, and in the wild ideas that motivated me, countless images of whales floated into my deepest soul, and among them all, there was one grand, hooded figure, like a snowy mountain in the sky.

CHAPTER 2

The Carpet-Bag

The Carpet Bag

I stuffed a shirt or two into my old carpet-bag, tucked it under my arm, and started for Cape Horn and the Pacific. Quitting the good city of old Manhatto, I duly arrived in New Bedford. It was on a Saturday night in December. Much was I disappointed upon learning that the little packet for Nantucket had already sailed, and that no way of reaching that place would offer, till the following Monday.

I packed a shirt or two into my old carpet bag, tucked it under my arm, and headed for Cape Horn and the Pacific. Leaving the familiar city of old Manhattan, I reached New Bedford. It was a Saturday night in December. I was really disappointed to find out that the small boat to Nantucket had already left, and there was no way to get there until the following Monday.

As most young candidates for the pains and penalties of whaling stop at this same New Bedford, thence to embark on their voyage, it may as well be related that I, for one, had no idea of so doing. For my mind was made up to sail in no other than a Nantucket craft, because there was a fine, boisterous something about everything connected with that famous old island, which amazingly pleased me. Besides though New Bedford has of late been gradually monopolizing the business of whaling, and though in this matter poor old Nantucket is now much behind her, yet Nantucket was her great original— the Tyre of this Carthage;—the place where the first dead American whale was stranded. Where else but from Nantucket did those aboriginal whalemen, the Red-Men, first sally out in canoes to give chase to the Leviathan? And where but from Nantucket, too, did that first adventurous little sloop put forth, partly laden with imported cobblestones—so goes the story— to throw at the whales, in order to discover when they were nigh enough to risk a harpoon from the bowsprit?

As most young candidates for the hardships and dangers of whaling stop in New Bedford before starting their journey, I should mention that I didn’t plan to do the same. I was determined to sail on a Nantucket ship because there was something exciting and lively about everything related to that famous old island that truly appealed to me. Although New Bedford has been gradually taking over the whaling business lately, and poor old Nantucket is now quite a bit behind, Nantucket was the original— the Tyre of this Carthage; the location where the first dead American whale washed up. Where else but Nantucket did those early whalers, the Native Americans, first head out in canoes to hunt the Leviathan? And where else but from Nantucket did that first brave little sloop set sail, partly loaded with imported cobblestones—so the story goes— to throw at the whales, to see when they were close enough to risk throwing a harpoon from the bowsprit?

Now having a night, a day, and still another night following before me in New Bedford, ere I could embark for my destined port, it became a matter of concernment where I was to eat and sleep meanwhile. It was a very dubious-looking, nay, a very dark and dismal night, bitingly cold and cheerless. I knew no one in the place. With anxious grapnels I had sounded my pocket, and only brought up a few pieces of silver,—So, wherever you go, Ishmael, said I to myself, as I stood in the middle of a dreary street shouldering my bag, and comparing the gloom towards the north with the darkness towards the south—wherever in your wisdom you may conclude to lodge for the night, my dear Ishmael, be sure to inquire the price, and don't be too particular.

Now, with a night, a day, and another night ahead of me in New Bedford before I could set sail for my destination, I needed to figure out where to eat and sleep in the meantime. It was a pretty questionable, even dark and gloomy night, biting cold and uninviting. I didn’t know anyone in town. I anxiously checked my pocket and only found a few coins. So, wherever you go, Ishmael, I thought to myself as I stood in the middle of a dreary street with my bag, comparing the gloom to the north with the darkness to the south—wherever you decide to stay for the night, my dear Ishmael, just make sure to ask the price, and try not to be too picky.

With halting steps I paced the streets, and passed the sign of "The Crossed Harpoons"—but it looked too expensive and jolly there. Further on, from the bright red windows of the "Sword-Fish Inn," there came such fervent rays, that it seemed to have melted the packed snow and ice from before the house, for everywhere else the congealed frost lay ten inches thick in a hard, asphaltic pavement,—rather weary for me, when I struck my foot against the flinty projections, because from hard, remorseless service the soles of my boots were in a most miserable plight. Too expensive and jolly, again thought I, pausing one moment to watch the broad glare in the street, and hear the sounds of the tinkling glasses within. But go on, Ishmael, said I at last; don't you hear? get away from before the door; your patched boots are stopping the way. So on I went. I now by instinct followed the streets that took me waterward, for there, doubtless, were the cheapest, if not the cheeriest inns.

With hesitant steps, I walked the streets and passed the sign for "The Crossed Harpoons"—but it seemed too pricey and cheerful. Further on, the bright red windows of the "Sword-Fish Inn" radiated such warmth that it looked like it had melted the packed snow and ice in front of the place, while everywhere else the frozen ground was ten inches thick with a hard, asphalt-like pavement. It was pretty rough for me when I stubbed my foot against the rocky bits, because my boots were in terrible shape from their relentless use. Too pricey and cheerful, I thought again, pausing for a moment to take in the bright lights in the street and hear the clinking glasses inside. But move on, Ishmael, I finally told myself; don’t you hear? Step aside from the door; your patched boots are blocking the way. So, I kept going. I instinctively followed the streets that led me toward the water, knowing that there, without a doubt, were the cheapest, if not the most welcoming, inns.

Such dreary streets! Blocks of blackness, not houses, on either hand, and here and there a candle, like a candle moving about in a tomb. At this hour of the night, of the last day of the week, that quarter of the town proved all but deserted. But presently I came to a smoky light proceeding from a low, wide building, the door of which stood invitingly open. It had a careless look, as if it were meant for the uses of the public; so, entering, the first thing I did was to stumble over an ash-box in the porch. Ha! thought I, ha, as the flying particles almost choked me, are these ashes from that destroyed city, Gomorrah? But "The Crossed Harpoons," and the "The Sword-Fish?"—this, then must needs be the sign of "The Trap." However, I picked myself up and hearing a loud voice within, pushed on and opened a second, interior door.

Such gloomy streets! Blocks of darkness, not houses, on either side, and occasionally a candle, like a flickering light in a grave. At this hour of the night, on the last day of the week, that part of town was almost deserted. But soon I came across a smoky light coming from a low, wide building with an invitingly open door. It had a laid-back vibe, as if it was meant for the public; so, as I entered, the first thing I did was trip over an ash-box in the entrance. Ha! I thought, ha, as the flying particles nearly choked me, are these ashes from that lost city, Gomorrah? But "The Crossed Harpoons" and "The Sword-Fish?"—this must be the sign for "The Trap." Anyway, I picked myself up and, hearing a loud voice inside, pushed ahead and opened a second, inner door.

It seemed the great Black Parliament sitting in Tophet. A hundred black faces turned round in their rows to peer; and beyond, a black Angel of Doom was beating a book in a pulpit. It was a negro church; and the preacher's text was about the blackness of darkness, and the weeping and wailing and teeth-gnashing there. Ha, Ishmael, muttered I, backing out, Wretched entertainment at the sign of 'The Trap!'

It felt like the big Black Parliament gathered in Tophet. A hundred black faces turned in their seats to look; and beyond them, a black Angel of Doom was thumping a book in a pulpit. It was a Black church, and the preacher's message was about the darkness, along with the weeping, wailing, and gnashing of teeth. "Ha, Ishmael," I muttered to myself as I backed away, "Terrible entertainment at 'The Trap!'"

Moving on, I at last came to a dim sort of light not far from the docks, and heard a forlorn creaking in the air; and looking up, saw a swinging sign over the door with a white painting upon it, faintly representing a tall straight jet of misty spray, and these words underneath—"The Spouter Inn:—Peter Coffin."

Moving on, I finally reached a dim light not far from the docks and heard a lonely creaking in the air. Looking up, I saw a swinging sign above the door with a faded painting on it, faintly depicting a tall, straight jet of misty spray, with the words underneath—"The Spouter Inn:—Peter Coffin."

Coffin?—Spouter?—Rather ominous in that particular connexion, thought I. But it is a common name in Nantucket, they say, and I suppose this Peter here is an emigrant from there. As the light looked so dim, and the place, for the time, looked quiet enough, and the dilapidated little wooden house itself looked as if it might have been carted here from the ruins of some burnt district, and as the swinging sign had a poverty-stricken sort of creak to it, I thought that here was the very spot for cheap lodgings, and the best of pea coffee.

Coffin?—Spouter?—Seems a bit creepy in that context, I thought. But they say it's a common name in Nantucket, so I guess this Peter is an immigrant from there. The light was pretty low, and the place felt quiet enough for the time, and the rundown little wooden house looked like it had been brought in from the remnants of some fire-damaged area. Plus, the swinging sign had a worn-out creak to it, making me think this was the perfect place for inexpensive accommodations and the best of bland coffee.

It was a queer sort of place—a gable-ended old house, one side palsied as it were, and leaning over sadly. It stood on a sharp bleak corner, where that tempestuous wind Euroclydon kept up a worse howling than ever it did about poor Paul's tossed craft. Euroclydon, nevertheless, is a mighty pleasant zephyr to any one in-doors, with his feet on the hob quietly toasting for bed. In judging of that tempestuous wind called Euroclydon," says an old writer—of whose works I possess the only copy extant—"it maketh a marvellous difference, whether thou lookest out at it from a glass window where the frost is all on the outside, or whether thou observest it from that sashless window, where the frost is on both sides, and of which the wight Death is the only glazier." True enough, thought I, as this passage occurred to my mind—old black-letter, thou reasonest well. Yes, these eyes are windows, and this body of mine is the house. What a pity they didn't stop up the chinks and the crannies though, and thrust in a little lint here and there. But it's too late to make any improvements now. The universe is finished; the copestone is on, and the chips were carted off a million years ago. Poor Lazarus there, chattering his teeth against the curbstone for his pillow, and shaking off his tatters with his shiverings, he might plug up both ears with rags, and put a corn-cob into his mouth, and yet that would not keep out the tempestuous Euroclydon. Euroclydon! says old Dives, in his red silken wrapper—(he had a redder one afterwards) pooh, pooh! What a fine frosty night; how Orion glitters; what northern lights! Let them talk of their oriental summer climes of everlasting conservatories; give me the privilege of making my own summer with my own coals.

It was a strange kind of place—a gable-ended old house, one side kind of bent and leaning over sadly. It sat on a sharp, bleak corner, where that stormy wind Euroclydon howled worse than it ever did around poor Paul's tossed ship. However, Euroclydon is a pretty nice breeze to anyone indoors, with their feet up on the hearth, warming up for bed. When judging that turbulent wind called Euroclydon," says an old writer—whose only existing book I have—"it makes a huge difference whether you look out at it from a glass window with the frost only outside, or whether you observe it from a window without glass, where the frost is on both sides, and the only glazier is Death himself." Quite true, I thought, as this quote popped into my mind—old black-letter, you make a good point. Yes, these eyes are windows, and this body of mine is the house. What a shame they didn't seal up the gaps and cracks and shove in a little padding here and there. But it’s too late for any improvements now. The universe is complete; the final stone is in place, and the rubble was cleared away a million years ago. Poor Lazarus over there, chattering his teeth against the curb for a pillow, shaking off his rags from his shivers, he could stuff both ears with rags and put a corn cob in his mouth, and it still wouldn’t keep out the stormy Euroclydon. Euroclydon! says old Dives in his red silk robe—(he had an even redder one later) pshh, what a lovely frosty night; look how Orion sparkles; what northern lights! Let them rave about their eastern summer lands with everlasting greenhouses; I’d rather have the chance to create my own summer with my own coals.

But what thinks Lazarus? Can he warm his blue hands by holding them up to the grand northern lights? Would not Lazarus rather be in Sumatra than here? Would he not far rather lay him down lengthwise along the line of the equator; yea, ye gods! go down to the fiery pit itself, in order to keep out this frost?

But what’s on Lazarus's mind? Can he warm his cold hands by holding them up to the bright northern lights? Wouldn't Lazarus prefer to be in Sumatra instead of here? Wouldn't he rather stretch out along the equator; yeah, you gods! even go down to the fiery pit itself, just to escape this cold?

Now, that Lazarus should lie stranded there on the curbstone before the door of Dives, this is more wonderful than that an iceberg should be moored to one of the Moluccas. Yet Dives himself, he too lives like a Czar in an ice palace made of frozen sighs, and being a president of a temperance society, he only drinks the tepid tears of orphans.

Now, it’s more amazing that Lazarus is left there on the curb in front of Dives's door than that an iceberg is anchored to one of the Moluccas. Yet Dives himself lives like a Czar in an ice palace built from frozen sighs, and as the president of a temperance society, he only partakes in the lukewarm tears of orphans.

But no more of this blubbering now, we are going a-whaling, and there is plenty of that yet to come. Let us scrape the ice from our frosted feet, and see what sort of a place this "Spouter" may be.

But enough of this crying for now, we're going whaling, and there's plenty of that ahead. Let's shake off the ice from our frozen feet and check out what this "Spouter" place is like.

CHAPTER 3

The Spouter-Inn

The Spouter Inn

Entering that gable-ended Spouter-Inn, you found yourself in a wide, low, straggling entry with old-fashioned wainscots, reminding one of the bulwarks of some condemned old craft. On one side hung a very large oil painting so thoroughly besmoked, and every way defaced, that in the unequal crosslights by which you viewed it, it was only by diligent study and a series of systematic visits to it, and careful inquiry of the neighbors, that you could any way arrive at an understanding of its purpose. Such unaccountable masses of shades and shadows, that at first you almost thought some ambitious young artist, in the time of the New England hags, had endeavored to delineate chaos bewitched. But by dint of much and earnest contemplation, and oft repeated ponderings, and especially by throwing open the little window towards the back of the entry, you at last come to the conclusion that such an idea, however wild, might not be altogether unwarranted.

Entering that gable-ended Spouter-Inn, you found yourself in a wide, low, scattered entry with old-fashioned wood paneling, reminiscent of the walls of some decrepit old ship. On one side hung a very large oil painting that was so covered in grime and worn down that, depending on the uneven lighting in the room, you could only grasp its meaning after studying it closely, visiting it multiple times, and carefully asking the locals about it. There were such inexplicable masses of shades and shadows that at first you might think some ambitious young artist, during the time of the New England witches, had tried to capture chaos in a bewitched state. But after much deep thought, repeated contemplation, and especially by opening the small window at the back of the entry, you eventually concluded that such a wild idea might not be entirely out of place.

But what most puzzled and confounded you was a long, limber, portentous, black mass of something hovering in the centre of the picture over three blue, dim, perpendicular lines floating in a nameless yeast. A boggy, soggy, squitchy picture truly, enough to drive a nervous man distracted. Yet was there a sort of indefinite, half-attained, unimaginable sublimity about it that fairly froze you to it, till you involuntarily took an oath with yourself to find out what that marvellous painting meant. Ever and anon a bright, but, alas, deceptive idea would dart you through.— It's the Black Sea in a midnight gale.—It's the unnatural combat of the four primal elements.—It's a blasted heath.— It's a Hyperborean winter scene.—It's the breaking-up of the icebound stream of Time. But at last all these fancies yielded to that one portentous something in the picture's midst. That once found out, and all the rest were plain. But stop; does it not bear a faint resemblance to a gigantic fish? even the great leviathan himself?

But what puzzled you the most was a long, flexible, ominous black shape hovering in the center of the image over three faint blue vertical lines floating in an unnamed substance. It truly was a murky, soggy, squishy picture, enough to drive a nervous person crazy. Yet, there was a kind of vague, half-realized, unimaginable beauty about it that completely captivated you, making you silently vow to discover what that amazing painting meant. Every now and then, a bright but misleading thought would flash in your mind—It's the Black Sea during a midnight storm—It's the unnatural battle of the four fundamental elements—It's a desolate wasteland—It's a winter scene from the far north—It's the thawing of the icebound river of Time. But eventually, all these ideas faded before that one ominous thing in the center of the picture. Once you figured that out, everything else became clear. But wait; doesn’t it look a little like a giant fish? Perhaps even the great leviathan itself?

In fact, the artist's design seemed this: a final theory of my own, partly based upon the aggregated opinions of many aged persons with whom I conversed upon the subject. The picture represents a Cape-Horner in a great hurricane; the half-foundered ship weltering there with its three dismantled masts alone visible; and an exasperated whale, purposing to spring clean over the craft, is in the enormous act of impaling himself upon the three mast-heads.

In fact, the artist's design looked like this: a final theory of my own, partly based on the combined opinions of many older people I talked to about the subject. The picture shows a Cape-Horner in a huge hurricane; the almost sunken ship is struggling there with its three broken masts visible, and an angry whale, planning to jump completely over the ship, is in the massive act of impaling itself on the three mastheads.

The opposite wall of this entry was hung all over with a heathenish array of monstrous clubs and spears. Some were thickly set with glittering teeth resembling ivory saws; others were tufted with knots of human hair; and one was sickle-shaped, with a vast handle sweeping round like the segment made in the new-mown grass by a long-armed mower. You shuddered as you gazed, and wondered what monstrous cannibal and savage could ever have gone a death-harvesting with such a hacking, horrifying implement. Mixed with these were rusty old whaling lances and harpoons all broken and deformed. Some were storied weapons. With this once long lance, now wildly elbowed, fifty years ago did Nathan Swain kill fifteen whales between a sunrise and a sunset. And that harpoon—so like a corkscrew now—was flung in Javan seas, and run away with by a whale, years afterwards slain off the Cape of Blanco. The original iron entered nigh the tail, and, like a restless needle sojourning in the body of a man, travelled full forty feet, and at last was found imbedded in the hump.

The opposite wall of this entry was covered with a collection of monstrous clubs and spears. Some had thick, glittering teeth that looked like ivory saws; others were adorned with knots of human hair; and one was sickle-shaped, with a huge handle curving like a swath cut in freshly mown grass by a long-armed mower. You felt a shiver as you looked at it, wondering what kind of monstrous cannibal or savage could have used such a terrifying, brutal tool for death-harvesting. Mixed in were rusty old whaling lances and harpoons that were all bent and deformed. Some were legendary weapons. With this once-straight lance, now wildly bent, fifty years ago Nathan Swain killed fifteen whales in a single day. And that harpoon—now shaped like a corkscrew—was thrown into Javan seas and later carried off by a whale, which was eventually killed off the Cape of Blanco. The original iron entered near the tail, and like a restless needle stuck in a person's body, it traveled a full forty feet and was finally found lodged in the whale's hump.

Crossing this dusky entry, and on through yon low-arched way— cut through what in old times must have been a great central chimney with fireplaces all round—you enter the public room. A still duskier place is this, with such low ponderous beams above, and such old wrinkled planks beneath, that you would almost fancy you trod some old craft's cockpits, especially of such a howling night, when this corner-anchored old ark rocked so furiously. On one side stood a long, low, shelf-like table covered with cracked glass cases, filled with dusty rarities gathered from this wide world's remotest nooks. Projecting from the further angle of the room stands a dark-looking den—the bar—a rude attempt at a right whale's head. Be that how it may, there stands the vast arched bone of the whale's jaw, so wide, a coach might almost drive beneath it. Within are shabby shelves, ranged round with old decanters, bottles, flasks; and in those jaws of swift destruction, like another cursed Jonah (by which name indeed they called him), bustles a little withered old man, who, for their money, dearly sells the sailors deliriums and death.

Crossing this dim entrance and moving through that low archway—cut through what must have once been a large central chimney with fireplaces all around—you step into the public room. This place is even darker, with such low, heavy beams overhead and old, wrinkled floorboards below, that you might think you’re walking on an old ship's deck, especially on a stormy night when this old boat rocks so violently. On one side, there's a long, low table covered with cracked glass cases filled with dusty curiosities collected from the farthest corners of the world. In the far corner of the room is a dark-looking bar—a rough representation of a right whale's head. Regardless, there stands the enormous arched bone of the whale’s jaw, so wide that a coach could almost fit underneath it. Inside, there are shabby shelves lined with old decanters, bottles, and flasks; and in that mouth of swift destruction, like another cursed Jonah (which is indeed what they called him), scurries a little, withered old man, who sells sailors their drinks and deaths for their money.

Abominable are the tumblers into which he pours his poison. Though true cylinders without—within, the villanous green goggling glasses deceitfully tapered downwards to a cheating bottom. Parallel meridians rudely pecked into the glass, surround these footpads' goblets. Fill to this mark, and your charge is but a penny; to this a penny more; and so on to the full glass— the Cape Horn measure, which you may gulp down for a shilling.

Abominable are the glasses into which he pours his poison. Although they are true cylinders outside and inside, these wicked green glasses deceitfully narrow down to a misleading bottom. Rough lines scratched into the glass frame these thieves' goblets. Fill to this line, and your drink is just a penny; to this line, a penny more; and so on to the full glass—the Cape Horn measure, which you can down for a shilling.

Upon entering the place I found a number of young seamen gathered about a table, examining by a dim light divers specimens of skrimshander. I sought the landlord, and telling him I desired to be accommodated with a room, received for answer that his house was full— not a bed unoccupied. "But avast," he added, tapping his forehead, "you haint no objections to sharing a harpooneer's blanket, have ye? I s'pose you are goin' a-whalin', so you'd better get used to that sort of thing."

Upon entering the place, I saw a group of young sailors gathered around a table, looking at various pieces of scrimshaw in the dim light. I looked for the landlord, and when I told him I needed a room, he replied that his house was full— not a bed available. "But hold on," he said, tapping his head, "you don't mind sharing a harpooner's blanket, do you? I guess you're going whaling, so you might as well get used to that kind of thing."

I told him that I never liked to sleep two in a bed; that if I should ever do so, it would depend upon who the harpooneer might be, and that if he (the landlord) really had no other place for me, and the harpooneer was not decidedly objectionable, why rather than wander further about a strange town on so bitter a night, I would put up with the half of any decent man's blanket.

I told him that I never liked sharing a bed; that if I ever did, it would depend on who the harpooner was, and that if he (the landlord) really didn't have another place for me, and the harpooner wasn't seriously objectionable, then rather than roam around a strange town on such a bitter night, I'd be okay with sharing any decent guy's blanket.

"I thought so. All right; take a seat. Supper?—you want supper?
Supper'll be ready directly."

"I figured as much. Okay, have a seat. Dinner?—are you looking for dinner?
Dinner will be ready shortly."

I sat down on an old wooden settle, carved all over like a bench on the Battery. At one end a ruminating tar was still further adorning it with his jack-knife, stooping over and diligently working away at the space between his legs. He was trying his hand at a ship under full sail, but he didn't make much headway, I thought.

I sat down on an old wooden bench, carved all over like one you'd find on the Battery. At one end, a thoughtful sailor was still adding to it with his jackknife, leaning over and working hard on the space between his legs. He was attempting to carve a ship under full sail, but it didn't seem like he was getting very far.

At last some four or five of us were summoned to our meal in an adjoining room. It was cold as Iceland— no fire at all—the landlord said he couldn't afford it. Nothing but two dismal tallow candles, each in a winding sheet. We were fain to button up our monkey jackets, and hold to our lips cups of scalding tea with our half frozen fingers. But the fare was of the most substantial kind—not only meat and potatoes, but dumplings; good heavens! dumplings for supper! One young fellow in a green box coat, addressed himself to these dumplings in a most direful manner.

At last, about four or five of us were called to eat in a nearby room. It was freezing—no fire at all—the landlord said he couldn't afford one. Just two gloomy tallow candles, each wrapped in a bit of cloth. We had to button up our jackets and hold steaming cups of tea with our half-frozen fingers. But the food was very hearty—not just meat and potatoes, but dumplings; good grief! Dumplings for dinner! A young guy in a green coat tackled those dumplings in a pretty serious way.

"My boy," said the landlord, "you'll have the nightmare to a dead sartainty."

"My boy," said the landlord, "you're definitely going to have a nightmare."

"Landlord," I whispered, "that aint the harpooneer is it?"

"Landlord," I whispered, "that isn't the harpooner, is it?"

"Oh, no," said he, looking a sort of diabolically funny, "the harpooneer is a dark complexioned chap. He never eats dumplings, he don't— he eats nothing but steaks, and he likes 'em rare."

"Oh, no," he said, looking kind of devilishly funny, "the harpooneer is a dark-skinned guy. He never eats dumplings, he doesn't—he eats nothing but steaks, and he likes them rare."

"The devil he does," says I. "Where is that harpooneer?
Is he here?"

"The devil he does," I say. "Where's that harpooneer?
Is he here?"

"He'll be here afore long," was the answer.

"He'll be here soon," was the answer.

I could not help it, but I began to feel suspicious of this "dark complexioned" harpooneer. At any rate, I made up my mind that if it so turned out that we should sleep together, he must undress and get into bed before I did.

I couldn't help it, but I started to feel suspicious of this "dark-complexioned" harpooner. Anyway, I decided that if it ended up that we had to share a bed, he would have to undress and get into bed before I did.

Supper over, the company went back to the bar-room, when, knowing not what else to do with myself, I resolved to spend the rest of the evening as a looker on.

Supper done, everyone returned to the bar room, and not knowing what else to do with myself, I decided to spend the rest of the evening as an observer.

Presently a rioting noise was heard without. Starting up, the landlord cried, "That's the Grampus's crew. I seed her reported in the offing this morning; a three years' voyage, and a full ship. Hurrah, boys; now we'll have the latest news from the Feegees."

Currently, a loud commotion was heard outside. Jumping up, the landlord shouted, "That's the crew of the Grampus. I saw her reported offshore this morning; a three-year voyage, and a full ship. Hurrah, guys; now we'll get the latest news from the Feegees."

A tramping of sea boots was heard in the entry; the door was flung open, and in rolled a wild set of mariners enough. Enveloped in their shaggy watch coats, and with their heads muffled in woollen comforters, all bedarned and ragged, and their beards stiff with icicles, they seemed an eruption of bears from Labrador. They had just landed from their boat, and this was the first house they entered. No wonder, then, that they made a straight wake for the whale's mouth— the bar—when the wrinkled little old Jonah, there officiating, soon poured them out brimmers all round. One complained of a bad cold in his head, upon which Jonah mixed him a pitch-like potion of gin and molasses, which he swore was a sovereign cure for all colds and catarrhs whatsoever, never mind of how long standing, or whether caught off the coast of Labrador, or on the weather side of an ice-island.

A group of sailors stomped in with their sea boots; the door swung open, and a wild bunch of mariners rolled in. Wrapped in their fuzzy coats and with their heads covered in worn wool scarves, all patched up and ragged, and their beards frozen with icicles, they looked like a bunch of bears from Labrador. They had just landed from their boat, and this was the first house they entered. So, it’s no surprise that they headed straight for the whale’s mouth—the bar—where the wrinkled old Jonah was officiating, quickly pouring them drinks all around. One guy complained of having a bad cold, so Jonah whipped up a thick potion of gin and molasses, claiming it was a miracle cure for any cold or congestion, no matter how long you’ve had it, or if you picked it up off the coast of Labrador, or on the windy side of an ice island.

The liquor soon mounted into their heads, as it generally does even with the arrantest topers newly landed from sea, and they began capering about most obstreperously.

The alcohol quickly went to their heads, as it usually does even with the heaviest drinkers just off the boat, and they started dancing around quite rowdily.

I observed, however, that one of them held somewhat aloof, and though he seemed desirous not to spoil the hilarity of his shipmates by his own sober face, yet upon the whole he refrained from making as much noise as the rest. This man interested me at once; and since the sea-gods had ordained that he should soon become my shipmate (though but a sleeping partner one, so far as this narrative is concerned), I will here venture upon a little description of him. He stood full six feet in height, with noble shoulders, and a chest like a coffer-dam. I have seldom seen such brawn in a man. His face was deeply brown and burnt, making his white teeth dazzling by the contrast; while in the deep shadows of his eyes floated some reminiscences that did not seem to give him much joy. His voice at once announced that he was a Southerner, and from his fine stature, I thought he must be one of those tall mountaineers from the Alleghanian Ridge in Virginia. When the revelry of his companions had mounted to its height, this man slipped away unobserved, and I saw no more of him till he became my comrade on the sea. In a few minutes, however, he was missed by his shipmates, and being, it seems, for some reason a huge favorite with them, they raised a cry of "Bulkington! Bulkington! where's Bulkington?" and darted out of the house in pursuit of him.

I noticed, however, that one of them kept a bit apart, and even though he seemed eager not to ruin the fun for his shipmates with his serious face, he still didn’t make as much noise as the others. This guy caught my attention right away, and since the sea-gods had decided he would soon be my shipmate (even if just a sleeping partner for the purposes of this story), I’d like to give a brief description of him. He was a full six feet tall, with broad shoulders and a chest like a strongbox. I've rarely seen such muscle on a man. His skin was a deep brown from the sun, which made his white teeth stand out even more; and in the dark depths of his eyes lingered some memories that didn’t seem to bring him much happiness. His voice immediately revealed that he was from the South, and from his impressive build, I figured he was one of those tall mountain men from the Alleghenian Ridge in Virginia. When the party atmosphere among his friends reached its peak, this man quietly slipped away without anyone noticing, and I didn’t see him again until he became my companion on the sea. A few minutes later, however, his shipmates realized he was gone, and since he seemed to be a huge favorite among them, they shouted "Bulkington! Bulkington! where's Bulkington?" and rushed out of the house to find him.

It was now about nine o'clock, and the room seeming almost supernaturally quiet after these orgies, I began to congratulate myself upon a little plan that had occurred to me just previous to the entrance of the seamen.

It was now around nine o'clock, and the room felt almost eerily quiet after these parties; I started to feel proud of a little plan that had popped into my head right before the seamen arrived.

No man prefers to sleep two in a bed. In fact, you would a good deal rather not sleep with your own brother. I don't know how it is, but people like to be private when they are sleeping. And when it comes to sleeping with an unknown stranger, in a strange inn, in a strange town, and that stranger a harpooneer, then your objections indefinitely multiply. Nor was there any earthly reason why I as a sailor should sleep two in a bed, more than anybody else; for sailors no more sleep two in a bed at sea, than bachelor Kings do ashore. To be sure they all sleep together in one apartment, but you have your own hammock, and cover yourself with your own blanket, and sleep in your own skin.

No guy wants to share a bed with someone else. Honestly, you'd probably prefer not to sleep next to your own brother. I don’t know why it is, but people really value their privacy when they sleep. And if you think about sharing a bed with a complete stranger in a strange inn, in a strange town, and that stranger is a harpooner, then your concerns multiply a lot. Plus, there’s no reason for me as a sailor to sleep two in a bed more than anyone else; sailors don’t sleep two in a bed at sea any more than single kings do on land. Sure, they all sleep in the same room, but you have your own hammock, cover yourself with your own blanket, and sleep in your own skin.

The more I pondered over this harpooneer, the more I abominated the thought of sleeping with him. It was fair to presume that being a harpooneer, his linen or woollen, as the case might be, would not be of the tidiest, certainly none of the finest. I began to twitch all over. Besides, it was getting late, and my decent harpooneer ought to be home and going bedwards. Suppose now, he should tumble in upon me at midnight— how could I tell from what vile hole he had been coming?

The more I thought about this harpooner, the more I dreaded the idea of sleeping near him. It was safe to assume that since he was a harpooner, his clothes, whether linen or wool, wouldn’t be very clean, definitely not the best quality. I started to feel uneasy all over. Plus, it was getting late, and my respectable harpooner should be heading home to bed. What if he showed up at midnight— how would I know where he had come from?

"Landlord! I've changed my mind about that harpooneer.—
I shan't sleep with him. I'll try the bench here."

"Landlord! I've had a change of heart about that harpooneer.—
I won't be sleeping with him. I'll just take the bench here."

"Just as you please; I'm sorry I cant spare ye a tablecloth for a mattress, and it's a plaguy rough board here"—feeling of the knots and notches. "But wait a bit, Skrimshander; I've got a carpenter's plane there in the bar—wait, I say, and I'll make ye snug enough." So saying he procured the plane; and with his old silk handkerchief first dusting the bench, vigorously set to planing away at my bed, the while grinning like an ape. The shavings flew right and left; till at last the plane-iron came bump against an indestructible knot. The landlord was near spraining his wrist, and I told him for heaven's sake to quit—the bed was soft enough to suit me, and I did not know how all the planing in the world could make eider down of a pine plank. So gathering up the shavings with another grin, and throwing them into the great stove in the middle of the room, he went about his business, and left me in a brown study.

"Sure, no problem; I'm sorry I can't give you a tablecloth for a mattress, and this board is pretty rough here,"—feeling the knots and bumps. "But hang on, Skrimshander; I've got a carpenter's plane in the bar—just wait, and I'll make you comfortable." Saying this, he grabbed the plane and, using his old silk handkerchief to dust off the bench, got to work planing my bed while grinning like a monkey. The shavings flew in all directions until he finally hit an unbreakable knot with the plane. The landlord nearly sprained his wrist, and I told him to stop for heaven's sake—the bed was soft enough for me, and I didn't see how all the planing in the world could turn a pine plank into down feathers. So, with another grin, he gathered the shavings and tossed them into the big stove in the middle of the room, then went on with his tasks, leaving me deep in thought.

I now took the measure of the bench, and found that it was a foot too short; but that could be mended with a chair. But it was a foot too narrow, and the other bench in the room was about four inches higher than the planed one— so there was no yoking them. I then placed the first bench lengthwise along the only clear space against the wall, leaving a little interval between, for my back to settle down in. But I soon found that there came such a draught of cold air over me from under the sill of the window, that this plan would never do at all, especially as another current from the rickety door met the one from the window, and both together formed a series of small whirlwinds in the immediate vicinity of the spot where I had thought to spend the night.

I measured the bench and found it was a foot too short; but that could be fixed with a chair. However, it was also a foot too narrow, and the other bench in the room was about four inches taller than the one I had—so they wouldn't work together. Next, I put the first bench lengthwise along the only clear space against the wall, leaving a little gap for my back to rest. But I soon realized that a cold draft was blowing over me from under the window sill, so this setup wouldn't work at all, especially since another draft from the rickety door mixed with the one from the window, creating small whirlwinds right where I planned to spend the night.

The devil fetch that harpooneer, thought I, but stop, couldn't I steal a march on him—bolt his door inside, and jump into his bed, not to be wakened by the most violent knockings? It seemed no bad idea but upon second thoughts I dismissed it. For who could tell but what the next morning, so soon as I popped out of the room, the harpooneer might be standing in the entry, all ready to knock me down!

The devil take that harpooneer, I thought, but wait, couldn’t I sneak a win on him—lock his door from the inside and hop into his bed, so I wouldn’t be stirred awake by the loudest banging? It didn’t seem like a bad idea at first, but then I changed my mind. Who could say that by the next morning, as soon as I came out of the room, the harpooneer wouldn’t be waiting in the hallway, ready to knock me out!

Still looking around me again, and seeing no possible chance of spending a sufferable night unless in some other person's bed, I began to think that after all I might be cherishing unwarrantable prejudices against this unknown harpooneer. Thinks I, I'll wait awhile; he must be dropping in before long. I'll have a good look at him then, and perhaps we may become jolly good bedfellows after all—there's no telling.

Still looking around me again and seeing no chance of having a decent night unless I got into someone else's bed, I started to think that maybe I was holding onto unreasonable biases against this unknown harpooneer. I thought to myself, I'll wait a bit; he must be coming in soon. I'll get a good look at him then, and maybe we'll end up being great roommates after all—who knows?

But though the other boarders kept coming in by ones, twos, and threes, and going to bed, yet no sign of my harpooneer.

But even though the other guests kept coming in one by one, two by two, and three by three, and going to bed, there was still no sign of my harpooneer.

"Landlord! said I, "what sort of a chap is he—does he always keep such late hours?" It was now hard upon twelve o'clock.

"Landlord!" I said, "what kind of guy is he—does he always stay up this late?" It was just about midnight.

The landlord chuckled again with his lean chuckle, and seemed to be mightily tickled at something beyond my comprehension. "No," he answered, "generally he's an early bird—airley to bed and airley to rise—yea, he's the bird what catches the worm. But to-night he went out a peddling, you see, and I don't see what on airth keeps him so late, unless, may be, he can't sell his head."

The landlord chuckled again with his thin laugh and seemed to find something really amusing that I just didn’t get. "No," he replied, "usually he’s an early riser—early to bed and early to rise—yeah, he’s the one who gets the worm. But tonight he went out selling, you see, and I can’t figure out what’s keeping him out so late, unless maybe he can't sell anything."

"Can't sell his head?—What sort of a bamboozingly story is this you are telling me?" getting into a towering rage. "Do you pretend to say, landlord, that this harpooneer is actually engaged this blessed Saturday night, or rather Sunday morning, in peddling his head around this town?"

"Can't sell his head?—What kind of ridiculous story are you telling me?" he said, getting extremely angry. "Are you seriously saying, landlord, that this whaling crew member is actually out here on this Saturday night, or rather Sunday morning, trying to sell his head around this town?"

"That's precisely it," said the landlord, "and I told him he couldn't sell it here, the market's overstocked."

"That's exactly it," said the landlord, "and I told him he couldn't sell it here; the market is flooded."

"With what?" shouted I.

"With what?" I shouted.

"With heads to be sure; ain't there too many heads in the world?"

"With so many people around, are there really too many heads in the world?"

"I tell you what it is, landlord," said I quite calmly, "you'd better stop spinning that yarn to me—I'm not green."

"I'll tell you what it is, landlord," I said calmly, "you'd better stop spinning that story to me—I'm not naive."

"May be not," taking out a stick and whittling a toothpick, "but I rayther guess you'll be done brown if that ere harpooneer hears you a slanderin' his head."

"Maybe not," he said, pulling out a stick and carving a toothpick, "but I have a feeling you’ll be in big trouble if that harpooner hears you talking bad about him."

"I'll break it for him," said I, now flying into a passion again at this unaccountable farrago of the landlord's.

"I'll break it for him," I said, getting angry again at this confusing mess from the landlord.

"It's broke a'ready," said he.

"It's broken already," he said.

"Broke," said I—"broke, do you mean?"

"Broke," I said—"broke, is that what you mean?"

"Sartain, and that's the very reason he can't sell it, I guess."

"Sartain, and that's exactly why he can't sell it, I suppose."

"Landlord," said I, going up to him as cool as Mt. Hecla in a snowstorm—"landlord, stop whittling. You and I must understand one another, and that too without delay. I come to your house and want a bed; you tell me you can only give me half a one; that the other half belongs to a certain harpooneer. And about this harpooneer, whom I have not yet seen, you persist in telling me the most mystifying and exasperating stories tending to beget in me an uncomfortable feeling towards the man whom you design for my bedfellow—a sort of connexion, landlord, which is an intimate and confidential one in the highest degree. I now demand of you to speak out and tell me who and what this harpooneer is, and whether I shall be in all respects safe to spend the night with him. And in the first place, you will be so good as to unsay that story about selling his head, which if true I take to be good evidence that this harpooneer is stark mad, and I've no idea of sleeping with a madman; and you, sir, you I mean, landlord, you, sir, by trying to induce me to do so knowingly would thereby render yourself liable to a criminal prosecution."

"Landlord," I said, walking up to him as calm as a mountain in a snowstorm—"landlord, stop carving. We need to have a conversation, and we need to have it now. I come to your place looking for a bed; you tell me you can only offer me half of one; the other half belongs to some harpooneer. And about this harpooneer, whom I haven't seen yet, you keep telling me the most confusing and frustrating stories that make me feel uneasy about the man you intend to share my bed with—a kind of arrangement, landlord, that's very personal and confidential. I demand that you tell me who this harpooneer is, and if I will be completely safe spending the night with him. And first of all, you should take back that story about selling his head, which if true makes me think this harpooneer is completely insane, and I have no intention of sleeping next to a madman; and you, sir, I mean you, landlord, by trying to persuade me to do so knowingly could put yourself at risk of a criminal charge."

"Wall," said the landlord, fetching a long breath, "that's a purty long sarmon for a chap that rips a little now and then. But be easy, be easy, this here harpooneer I have been tellin' you of has just arrived from the south seas, where he bought up a lot of 'balmed New Zealand heads (great curios, you know), and he's sold all on 'em but one, and that one he's trying to sell to-night, cause to-morrow's Sunday, and it would not do to be sellin' human heads about the streets when folks is goin' to churches. He wanted to last Sunday, but I stopped him just as he was goin' out of the door with four heads strung on a string, for all the airth like a string of inions."

"Wall," said the landlord, taking a deep breath, "that's a pretty long sermon for a guy who lets loose a bit every now and then. But relax, relax, this harpooner I've been telling you about just got here from the South Seas, where he picked up a bunch of 'balmed New Zealand heads (great curios, you know), and he's sold all of them except one, and that one he's trying to sell tonight, because tomorrow's Sunday, and it wouldn't be appropriate to be selling human heads around the streets when people are going to church. He wanted to sell last Sunday, but I stopped him just as he was heading out the door with four heads strung on a string, looking like a string of onions."

This account cleared up the otherwise unaccountable mystery, and showed that the landlord, after all, had had no idea of fooling me— but at the same time what could I think of a harpooneer who stayed out of a Saturday night clean into the holy Sabbath, engaged in such a cannibal business as selling the heads of dead idolators?

This explanation resolved the previously inexplicable mystery and revealed that the landlord honestly had no intention of deceiving me— but at the same time, what could I make of a whaler who spent a Saturday night all the way into Sunday, involved in such a gruesome business as selling the heads of dead idolaters?

"Depend upon it, landlord, that harpooneer is a dangerous man."

"Trust me, landlord, that harpooner is a dangerous guy."

"He pays reg'lar," was the rejoinder. "But come, it's getting dreadful late, you had better be turning flukes—it's a nice bed: Sal and me slept in that ere bed the night we were spliced. There's plenty of room for two to kick about in that bed; it's an almighty big bed that. Why, afore we give it up, Sal used to put our Sam and little Johnny in the foot of it. But I got a dreaming and sprawling about one night, and somehow, Sam got pitched on the floor, and came near breaking his arm. After that, Sal said it wouldn't do. Come along here, I'll give ye a glim in a jiffy;" and so saying he lighted a candle and held it towards me, offering to lead the way. But I stood irresolute; when looking at a clock in the corner, he exclaimed "I vum it's Sunday—you won't see that harpooneer to-night; he's come to anchor somewhere—come along then; do come; won't ye come?"

"He pays regularly," was the response. "But come on, it's getting really late, you should get some sleep—it's a nice bed: Sal and I slept in that bed the night we got married. There's plenty of room for two to move around in that bed; it's a really big bed. Before we let it go, Sal used to put our Sam and little Johnny at the foot of it. But I started dreaming and sprawling one night, and somehow, Sam ended up on the floor and almost broke his arm. After that, Sal said it wouldn't work. Come on here, I'll get you a light in a second;" and with that, he lit a candle and held it out to me, offering to lead the way. But I stood undecided; when looking at a clock in the corner, he exclaimed, "Wow, it's Sunday—you won't see that harpooneer tonight; he's docked somewhere—come on then; please come; won’t you come?"

I considered the matter a moment, and then up stairs we went, and I was ushered into a small room, cold as a clam, and furnished, sure enough, with a prodigious bed, almost big enough indeed for any four harpooneers to sleep abreast.

I thought about it for a moment, and then we went upstairs, and I was led into a small room, freezing cold, and it definitely had a huge bed, almost big enough for four whalers to sleep side by side.

"There," said the landlord, placing the candle on a crazy old sea chest that did double duty as a wash-stand and centre table; "there, make yourself comfortable now; and good night to ye." I turned round from eyeing the bed, but he had disappeared.

"There," said the landlord, setting the candle down on a quirky old sea chest that also served as a washstand and center table; "there, get yourself comfy now; and goodnight to you." I turned away from looking at the bed, but he was gone.

Folding back the counterpane, I stooped over the bed. Though none of the most elegant, it yet stood the scrutiny tolerably well. I then glanced round the room; and besides the bedstead and centre table, could see no other furniture belonging to the place, but a rude shelf, the four walls, and a papered fireboard representing a man striking a whale. Of things not properly belonging to the room, there was a hammock lashed up, and thrown upon the floor in one corner; also a large seaman's bag, containing the harpooneer's wardrobe, no doubt in lieu of a land trunk. Likewise, there was a parcel of outlandish bone fish hooks on the shelf over the fire-place, and a tall harpoon standing at the head of the bed.

Folding back the bedspread, I leaned over the bed. While it wasn't the most stylish, it still held up decently well. I then looked around the room; aside from the bed frame and center table, I noticed no other furniture besides a rough shelf, the four walls, and a papered fireboard depicting a man striking a whale. In terms of items not meant for the room, there was a hammock tied up and tossed on the floor in one corner, as well as a large sailor's bag that likely contained the harpooner's clothes instead of a regular suitcase. Additionally, there was a collection of unusual bone fish hooks on the shelf above the fireplace, and a tall harpoon standing at the head of the bed.

But what is this on the chest? I took it up, and held it close to the light, and felt it, and smelt it, and tried every way possible to arrive at some satisfactory conclusion concerning it. I can compare it to nothing but a large door mat, ornamented at the edges with little tinkling tags something like the stained porcupine quills round an Indian moccasin. There was a hole or slit in the middle of this mat, as you see the same in South American ponchos. But could it be possible that any sober harpooneer would get into a door mat, and parade the streets of any Christian town in that sort of guise? I put it on, to try it, and it weighed me down like a hamper, being uncommonly shaggy and thick, and I thought a little damp, as though this mysterious harpooneer had been wearing it of a rainy day. I went up in it to a bit of glass stuck against the wall, and I never saw such a sight in my life. I tore myself out of it in such a hurry that I gave myself a kink in the neck.

But what’s this on the chest? I picked it up and held it close to the light, feeling and smelling it, trying every way I could to figure it out. The only thing I can compare it to is a big doormat, decorated at the edges with little jingling tags, kind of like the stained porcupine quills on an Indian moccasin. There was a hole or slit in the middle of this mat, similar to what you see in South American ponchos. But could it really be possible that any sensible harpooner would wear a doormat and walk around any town like that? I tried it on to see, and it weighed me down like a heavy bag, being really shaggy and thick, and it felt a bit damp, as if this mysterious harpooner had worn it on a rainy day. I went over to a piece of glass stuck to the wall, and I had never seen such a sight in my life. I yanked it off so quickly that I gave myself a crick in the neck.

I sat down on the side of the bed, and commenced thinking about this head-peddling harpooneer, and his door mat. After thinking some time on the bed-side, I got up and took off my monkey jacket, and then stood in the middle of the room thinking. I then took off my coat, and thought a little more in my shirt sleeves. But beginning to feel very cold now, half undressed as I was, and remembering what the landlord said about the harpooneer's not coming home at all that night, it being so very late, I made no more ado, but jumped out of my pantaloons and boots, and then blowing out the light tumbled into bed, and commended myself to the care of heaven.

I sat down on the edge of the bed and started thinking about that crazy harpooner and his doormat. After pondering for a while by the bedside, I got up, took off my jacket, and then stood in the middle of the room thinking. I took off my coat and spent a little more time in my shirtsleeves. But feeling really cold now, half-dressed as I was, and recalling what the landlord said about the harpooner not coming back at all that night since it was so late, I didn't waste any more time. I jumped out of my pants and boots, blew out the light, and tumbled into bed, trusting myself to the care of heaven.

Whether that mattress was stuffed with corncobs or broken crockery, there is no telling, but I rolled about a good deal, and could not sleep for a long time. At last I slid off into a light doze, and had pretty nearly made a good offing towards the land of Nod, when I heard a heavy footfall in the passage, and saw a glimmer of light come into the room from under the door.

Whether that mattress was filled with corncobs or shattered pottery, I can’t say, but I tossed and turned a lot and couldn’t sleep for a long time. Eventually, I drifted into a light doze and was almost on my way to Dreamland when I heard a heavy footstep in the hallway and saw a beam of light coming into the room from under the door.

Lord save me, thinks I, that must be the harpooneer, the infernal head-peddler. But I lay perfectly still, and resolved not to say a word till spoken to. Holding a light in one hand, and that identical New Zealand head in the other, the stranger entered the room, and without looking towards the bed, placed his candle a good way off from me on the floor in one corner, and then began working away at the knotted cords of the large bag I before spoke of as being in the room. I was all eagerness to see his face, but he kept it averted for some time while employed in unlacing the bag's mouth. This accomplished, however, he turned round—when, good heavens; what a sight! Such a face! It was of a dark, purplish, yellow color, here and there stuck over with large blackish looking squares. Yes, it's just as I thought, he's a terrible bedfellow; he's been in a fight, got dreadfully cut, and here he is, just from the surgeon. But at that moment he chanced to turn his face so towards the light, that I plainly saw they could not be sticking-plasters at all, those black squares on his cheeks. They were stains of some sort or other. At first I knew not what to make of this; but soon an inkling of the truth occurred to me. I remembered a story of a white man—a whaleman too— who, falling among the cannibals, had been tattooed by them. I concluded that this harpooneer, in the course of his distant voyages, must have met with a similar adventure. And what is it, thought I, after all! It's only his outside; a man can be honest in any sort of skin. But then, what to make of his unearthly complexion, that part of it, I mean, lying round about, and completely independent of the squares of tattooing. To be sure, it might be nothing but a good coat of tropical tanning; but I never heard of a hot sun's tanning a white man into a purplish yellow one. However, I had never been in the South Seas; and perhaps the sun there produced these extraordinary effects upon the skin. Now, while all these ideas were passing through me like lightning, this harpooneer never noticed me at all. But, after some difficulty having opened his bag, he commenced fumbling in it, and presently pulled out a sort of tomahawk, and a seal-skin wallet with the hair on. Placing these on the old chest in the middle of the room, he then took the New Zealand head—a ghastly thing enough— and crammed it down into the bag. He now took off his hat— a new beaver hat—when I came nigh singing out with fresh surprise. There was no hair on his head—none to speak of at least— nothing but a small scalp-knot twisted up on his forehead. His bald purplish head now looked for all the world like a mildewed skull. Had not the stranger stood between me and the door, I would have bolted out of it quicker than ever I bolted a dinner.

Lord save me, I think, that must be the harpooneer, the infernal head-peddler. But I lay perfectly still, resolved not to say a word until spoken to. Holding a light in one hand and that same New Zealand head in the other, the stranger entered the room. Without looking at the bed, he set his candle far from me on the floor in one corner and then started working at the knotted cords of the large bag I mentioned earlier. I was eager to see his face, but he kept it turned away while he was untying the bag. Once he finally got it open, he turned around—and, good heavens, what a sight! Such a face! It was a dark purplish-yellow color, with large blackish squares scattered across it. Yes, just as I thought, he's a terrible bedfellow; he’s been in a fight and got badly cut, and now he’s just come from the surgeon. But at that moment, he happened to angle his face toward the light, and I realized those black squares on his cheeks weren't sticking-plasters at all. They were some kind of stains. At first, I didn’t know what to think, but then an idea came to me. I recalled a story about a white man—a whaleman too—who was captured by cannibals and tattooed by them. I figured this harpooneer must have had a similar experience during his voyages. And what is it, I thought, after all? It’s just his exterior; a man can be honest no matter what he looks like. But then, what about his strange complexion, the part not covered by tattoos? Sure, it could just be a good dose of tropical tanning; but I’ve never heard of a hot sun tanning a white man into a purplish-yellow. However, I had never been to the South Seas, and maybe the sun there did have these bizarre effects on the skin. While all these thoughts raced through my mind, the harpooneer didn’t notice me at all. After some effort, he got the bag open and started rummaging through it. He soon pulled out a kind of tomahawk and a seal-skin wallet with the hair still on it. He placed these on the old chest in the middle of the room, then took the New Zealand head—a pretty ghastly thing—and shoved it down into the bag. He now took off his hat—a new beaver hat—at which point I almost shouted in surprise. There was no hair on his head—none to speak of, anyway—just a small scalp-knot twisted at his forehead. His bald purplish head now looked just like a moldy skull. If the stranger hadn’t been standing between me and the door, I would have bolted out of there faster than I’ve ever bolted from dinner.

Even as it was, I thought something of slipping out of the window, but it was the second floor back. I am no coward, but what to make of this headpeddling purple rascal altogether passed my comprehension. Ignorance is the parent of fear, and being completely nonplussed and confounded about the stranger, I confess I was now as much afraid of him as if it was the devil himself who had thus broken into my room at the dead of night. In fact, I was so afraid of him that I was not game enough just then to address him, and demand a satisfactory answer concerning what seemed inexplicable in him.

Even so, I thought about slipping out of the window, but it was the second floor at the back. I’m not a coward, but I just couldn’t wrap my head around this strange little guy in purple. Ignorance breeds fear, and feeling completely confused and bewildered by this stranger, I admit I was just as scared of him as if the devil himself had broken into my room in the middle of the night. In fact, I was so frightened that I didn’t have the courage to ask him what was going on and demand a decent explanation for what seemed so bizarre.

Meanwhile, he continued the business of undressing, and at last showed his chest and arms. As I live, these covered parts of him were checkered with the same squares as his face, his back, too, was all over the same dark squares; he seemed to have been in a Thirty Years' War, and just escaped from it with a sticking-plaster shirt. Still more, his very legs were marked, as if a parcel of dark green frogs were running up the trunks of young palms. It was now quite plain that he must be some abominable savage or other shipped aboard of a whaleman in the South Seas, and so landed in this Christian country. I quaked to think of it. A peddler of heads too—perhaps the heads of his own brothers. He might take a fancy to mine—heavens! look at that tomahawk!

Meanwhile, he continued taking off his clothes until he finally revealed his chest and arms. As I live, the parts of him that were covered had the same checkered pattern as his face, and his back was also covered in the same dark squares; he looked like he had just come out of a Thirty Years' War, wearing a shirt that was basically a sticking plaster. Even his legs were marked, as if a bunch of dark green frogs were climbing up the trunks of young palm trees. It was now clear that he must be some kind of awful savage who had been shipped aboard a whaler in the South Seas and ended up in this Christian country. I shuddered at the thought. A peddler of heads too—maybe even the heads of his own brothers. He might take a liking to mine—heavens! look at that tomahawk!

But there was no time for shuddering, for now the savage went about something that completely fascinated my attention, and convinced me that he must indeed be a heathen. Going to his heavy grego, or wrapall, or dreadnaught, which he had previously hung on a chair, he fumbled in the pockets, and produced at length a curious little deformed image with a hunch on its back, and exactly the color of a three days' old Congo baby. Remembering the embalmed head, at first I almost thought that this black manikin was a real baby preserved in some similar manner. But seeing that it was not at all limber, and that it glistened a good deal like polished ebony, I concluded that it must be nothing but a wooden idol, which indeed it proved to be. For now the savage goes up to the empty fire-place, and removing the papered fire-board, sets up this little hunch-backed image, like a tenpin, between the andirons. The chimney jambs and all the bricks inside were very sooty, so that I thought this fire-place made a very appropriate little shrine or chapel for his Congo idol.

But there was no time to be shocked, because now the savage was doing something that completely caught my attention and convinced me that he must really be a heathen. He went over to his heavy grego, or wrap, or dreadnaught, which he had hung on a chair earlier, fumbled through the pockets, and finally pulled out a strange little deformed figure with a hunch on its back, and exactly the color of a three-day-old Congo baby. Remembering the embalmed head, I almost thought this black figure was a real baby preserved in some way. But seeing that it wasn’t flexible at all and that it shone like polished ebony, I figured it must just be a wooden idol, which it turned out to be. Now the savage walked over to the empty fireplace, took off the papered fire-board, and set up this little hunch-backed figure like a bowling pin between the andirons. The chimney jambs and all the bricks inside were very sooty, so I thought this fireplace made a very fitting little shrine or chapel for his Congo idol.

I now screwed my eyes hard towards the half hidden image, feeling but ill at ease meantime—to see what was next to follow. First he takes about a double handful of shavings out of his grego pocket, and places them carefully before the idol; then laying a bit of ship biscuit on top and applying the flame from the lamp, he kindled the shavings into a sacrificial blaze. Presently, after many hasty snatches into the fire, and still hastier withdrawals of his fingers (whereby he seemed to be scorching them badly), he at last succeeded in drawing out the biscuit; then blowing off the heat and ashes a little, he made a polite offer of it to the little negro. But the little devil did not seem to fancy such dry sort of fare at all; he never moved his lips. All these strange antics were accompanied by still stranger guttural noises from the devotee, who seemed to be praying in a sing-song or else singing some pagan psalmody or other, during which his face twitched about in the most unnatural manner. At last extinguishing the fire, he took the idol up very unceremoniously, and bagged it again in his grego pocket as carelessly as if he were a sportsman bagging a dead woodcock.

I now squinted hard at the half-hidden image, feeling pretty uneasy in the meantime—waiting to see what would happen next. First, he pulled out about a double handful of shavings from his grego pocket and placed them carefully in front of the idol; then laying a piece of ship biscuit on top, he lit the shavings with the flame from the lamp, creating a sacrificial fire. After several quick grabs into the fire and even quicker pulls back (which seemed to really scorch his fingers), he finally managed to pull out the biscuit; then, blowing off the heat and ashes a bit, he offered it politely to the little negro. But the little guy didn’t seem to like such dry food at all; he didn’t even move his lips. All these strange actions were accompanied by even stranger guttural noises from the devotee, who seemed to be praying in a sing-song voice or singing some kind of pagan chant or something, while his face twitched in the most unnatural way. Finally, extinguishing the fire, he picked up the idol very casually and shoved it back into his grego pocket as if he were a hunter putting away a dead woodcock.

All these queer proceedings increased my uncomfortableness, and seeing him now exhibiting strong symptoms of concluding his business operations, and jumping into bed with me, I thought it was high time, now or never, before the light was put out, to break the spell in which I had so long been bound.

All these strange events made me feel increasingly uneasy, and seeing him now showing clear signs of wrapping up his work and jumping into bed with me, I thought it was finally time, now or never, before the light went out, to break the spell I had been under for so long.

But the interval I spent in deliberating what to say, was a fatal one. Taking up his tomahawk from the table, he examined the head of it for an instant, and then holding it to the light, with his mouth at the handle, he puffed out great clouds of tobacco smoke. The next moment the light was extinguished, and this wild cannibal, tomahawk between his teeth, sprang into bed with me. I sang out, I could not help it now; and giving a sudden grunt of astonishment he began feeling me.

But the time I spent thinking about what to say was a critical one. He grabbed his tomahawk from the table, looked at the head for a moment, and then held it up to the light, puffing out big clouds of tobacco smoke with his mouth at the handle. The next moment, the light went out, and this wild cannibal, tomahawk between his teeth, jumped into bed with me. I shouted out; I couldn't help it now; and with a sudden grunt of surprise, he started feeling me.

Stammering out something, I knew not what, I rolled away from him against the wall, and then conjured him, whoever or whatever he might be, to keep quiet, and let me get up and light the lamp again. But his guttural responses satisfied me at once that he but ill comprehended my meaning.

Stammering something I didn’t even understand, I rolled away from him against the wall and pleaded with him, whoever he was, to be quiet and let me get up and turn the lamp on again. But his rough responses made it clear to me that he barely understood what I meant.

"Who-e debel you?"—he at last said—"you no speak-e, dam-me, I kill-e."
And so saying the lighted tomahawk began flourishing about me in the dark.

"Who the hell are you?" he finally said. "You’re not speaking, damn it, I’ll kill you."
And with that, the lit tomahawk started swinging around me in the dark.

"Landlord, for God's sake, Peter Coffin!" shouted
I. "Landlord! Watch! Coffin! Angels! save me!"

"Landlord, for crying out loud, Peter Coffin!" shouted
I. "Landlord! Look! Coffin! Angels! help me!"

"Speak-e! tell-ee me who-ee be, or dam-me, I kill-e!" again growled the cannibal, while his horrid flourishings of the tomahawk scattered the hot tobacco ashes about me till I thought my linen would get on fire. But thank heaven, at that moment the landlord came into the room light in hand, and leaping from the bed I ran up to him.

"Speak! Tell me who you are, or I'll kill you!" Growled the cannibal again, as his wild swings of the tomahawk sent hot tobacco ashes flying around me, making me worry my clothes would catch fire. But thankfully, at that moment, the landlord came into the room with a light in hand, and jumping off the bed, I ran up to him.

"Don't be afraid now," said he, grinning again, "Queequeg here wouldn't harm a hair of your head."

"Don't worry now," he said, grinning again, "Queequeg here wouldn't hurt a hair on your head."

"Stop your grinning," shouted I, "and why didn't you tell me that that infernal harpooneer was a cannibal?"

"Quit smiling," I shouted, "and why didn't you tell me that crazy harpooner was a cannibal?"

"I thought ye know'd it;—didn't I tell ye, he was a peddlin' heads around town?—but turn flukes again and go to sleep. Queequeg, look here—you sabbee me, I sabbee—you this man sleepe you—you sabbee?"

"I thought you knew that; didn’t I tell you he was selling heads around town?—but just flip over and go to sleep. Queequeg, look here—you understand me, I understand you—you this man sleep you—you understand?"

"Me sabbee plenty"—grunted Queequeg, puffing away at his pipe and sitting up in bed.

"Me know a lot"—grunted Queequeg, puffing on his pipe and sitting up in bed.

"You gettee in," he added, motioning to me with his tomahawk, and throwing the clothes to one side. He really did this in not only a civil but a really kind and charitable way. I stood looking at him a moment. For all his tattooings he was on the whole a clean, comely looking cannibal. What's all this fuss I have been making about, thought I to myself—the man's a human being just as I am: he has just as much reason to fear me, as I have to be afraid of him. Better sleep with a sober cannibal than a drunken Christian.

"You get in," he said, gesturing to me with his tomahawk and tossing the clothes aside. He really did this in a way that was not only polite but genuinely kind and generous. I stood there for a moment, looking at him. Despite all his tattoos, he was overall a clean, decent-looking cannibal. What’s all this fuss I’ve been making, I thought to myself—the guy’s a human being just like me: he has just as much reason to fear me as I have to be scared of him. It’s better to sleep next to a sober cannibal than a drunk Christian.

"Landlord," said I, "tell him to stash his tomahawk there, or pipe, or whatever you call it; tell him to stop smoking, in short, and I will turn in with him. But I don't fancy having a man smoking in bed with me. It's dangerous. Besides, I ain't insured."

"Landlord," I said, "tell him to put away his tomahawk, or pipe, or whatever you call it; tell him to stop smoking, and I’ll share a room with him. But I really don’t like the idea of someone smoking in bed with me. It’s risky. Plus, I’m not insured."

This being told to Queequeg, he at once complied, and again politely motioned me to get into bed—rolling over to one side as much as to say— I won't touch a leg of ye."

This being said to Queequeg, he immediately agreed and again politely motioned for me to get into bed—rolling over to one side as if to say— "I won't touch a leg of yours."

"Good night, landlord," said I, "you may go."

"Good night, landlord," I said, "you can go now."

I turned in, and never slept better in my life.

I went to bed and slept better than ever before.

CHAPTER 4

The Counterpane

The Comforter

Upon waking next morning about daylight, I found Queequeg's arm thrown over me in the most loving and affectionate manner. You had almost thought I had been his wife. The counterpane was of patchwork, full of odd little parti-colored squares and triangles; and this arm of his tattooed all over with an interminable Cretan labyrinth of a figure, no two parts of which were of one precise shade— owing I suppose to his keeping his arm at sea unmethodically in sun and shade, his shirt sleeves irregularly rolled up at various times— this same arm of his, I say, looked for all the world like a strip of that same patchwork quilt. Indeed, partly lying on it as the arm did when I first awoke, I could hardly tell it from the quilt, they so blended their hues together; and it was only by the sense of weight and pressure that I could tell that Queequeg was hugging me.

When I woke up the next morning at dawn, I found Queequeg's arm draped over me in the most loving and affectionate way. You might have thought I was his wife. The blanket was made of patchwork, filled with odd little colorful squares and triangles; and his arm, covered in a never-ending Cretan labyrinth of a design, had no two parts that were the same exact shade— probably because he had kept his arm out in the sun and shade at sea, with his shirt sleeves rolled up unevenly at different times. This arm of his, I say, looked just like a piece of that same patchwork quilt. In fact, as I lay partly on it when I first woke up, I could barely distinguish it from the quilt since their colors blended so well together; and it was only by the weight and pressure that I could tell Queequeg was embracing me.

My sensations were strange. Let me try to explain them. When I was a child, I well remember a somewhat similar circumstance that befell me; whether it was a reality or a dream, I never could entirely settle. The circumstance was this. I had been cutting up some caper or other— I think it was trying to crawl up the chimney, as I had seen a little sweep do a few days previous; and my stepmother who, somehow or other, was all the time whipping me, or sending me to bed supperless,— my mother dragged me by the legs out of the chimney and packed me off to bed, though it was only two o'clock in the afternoon of the 21st June, the longest day in the year in our hemisphere. I felt dreadfully. But there was no help for it, so up stairs I went to my little room in the third floor, undressed myself as slowly as possible so as to kill time, and with a bitter sigh got between the sheets.

My feelings were odd. Let me try to explain them. When I was a kid, I remember a somewhat similar situation that happened to me; whether it was real or a dream, I could never quite figure out. The situation was this: I had been getting into some trouble— I think I was trying to climb up the chimney, like I had seen a little chimney sweep do a few days earlier; and my stepmother, who seemed to always be disciplining me or sending me to bed without dinner, dragged me by the legs out of the chimney and sent me to bed, even though it was only 2 PM on June 21st, the longest day of the year where we lived. I felt terrible. But there was nothing I could do, so I went upstairs to my little room on the third floor, undressed as slowly as possible to stretch out the time, and with a bitter sigh, got between the sheets.

I lay there dismally calculating that sixteen entire hours must elapse before I could hope for a resurrection. Sixteen hours in bed! the small of my back ached to think of it. And it was so light too; the sun shining in at the window, and a great rattling of coaches in the streets, and the sound of gay voices all over the house. I felt worse and worse— at last I got up, dressed, and softly going down in my stockinged feet, sought out my stepmother, and suddenly threw myself at her feet, beseeching her as a particular favor to give me a good slippering for my misbehaviour: anything indeed but condemning me to lie abed such an unendurable length of time. But she was the best and most conscientious of stepmothers, and back I had to go to my room. For several hours I lay there broad awake, feeling a great deal worse than I have ever done since, even from the greatest subsequent misfortunes. At last I must have fallen into a troubled nightmare of a doze; and slowly waking from it—half steeped in dreams—I opened my eyes, and the before sunlit room was now wrapped in outer darkness. Instantly I felt a shock running through all my frame; nothing was to be seen, and nothing was to be heard; but a supernatural hand seemed placed in mine. My arm hung over the counterpane, and the nameless, unimaginable, silent form or phantom, to which the hand belonged, seemed closely seated by my bed-side. For what seemed ages piled on ages, I lay there, frozen with the most awful fears, not daring to drag away my hand; yet ever thinking that if I could but stir it one single inch, the horrid spell would be broken. I knew not how this consciousness at last glided away from me; but waking in the morning, I shudderingly remembered it all, and for days and weeks and months afterwards I lost myself in confounding attempts to explain the mystery. Nay, to this very hour, I often puzzle myself with it.

I lay there feeling miserable, thinking that I had to wait a whole sixteen hours before I could hope for a chance to get up. Sixteen hours in bed! Just the thought of it made my lower back ache. The sun was shining through the window, I could hear the clattering of coaches outside, and cheerful voices filled the house. I felt worse and worse—finally, I got up, got dressed, and quietly tiptoed down in my socks to find my stepmother. I suddenly threw myself at her feet, begging her to give me a good spanking for my misbehavior—anything but making me lie in bed for such an unbearable amount of time. But she was the kindest and most caring stepmother, so I had to go back to my room. For hours, I lay there wide awake, feeling worse than I ever had since, even through later problems. Finally, I must have drifted into a restless nightmare; when I slowly woke up—half lost in dreams—I opened my eyes, and the once sunlit room was now engulfed in darkness. A shock went through me; I could see nothing and hear nothing, but it felt like a supernatural hand was holding mine. My arm dangled over the blanket, and the unknown, silent figure to which the hand belonged seemed to be right by my bedside. For what felt like ages, I lay there, frozen with fear, not daring to pull my hand away; yet I kept thinking that if I could just move it even a little, the terrifying spell would be broken. I don’t know how this awareness eventually slipped away from me; but when I woke up in the morning, I remembered it all with a shudder, and for days, weeks, and months afterward, I got lost in trying to make sense of the mystery. Even to this day, I often find myself puzzling over it.

Now, take away the awful fear, and my sensations at feeling the supernatural hand in mine were very similar, in their strangeness, to those which I experienced on waking up and seeing Queequeg's pagan arm thrown round me. But at length all the past night's events soberly recurred, one by one, in fixed reality, and then I lay only alive to the comical predicament. For though I tried to move his arm— unlock his bridegroom clasp—yet, sleeping as he was, he still hugged me tightly, as though naught but death should part us twain. I now strove to rouse him—"Queequeg!"—but his only answer was a snore. I then rolled over, my neck feeling as if it were in a horse-collar; and suddenly felt a slight scratch. Throwing aside the counterpane, there lay the tomahawk sleeping by the savage's side, as if it were a hatchet-faced baby. A pretty pickle, truly, thought I; abed here in a strange house in the broad day, with a cannibal and a tomahawk! "Queequeg!—in the name of goodness, Queequeg, wake!" At length, by dint of much wriggling, and loud and incessant expostulations upon the unbecomingness of his hugging a fellow male in that matrimonial sort of style, I succeeded in extracting a grunt; and presently, he drew back his arm, shook himself all over like a Newfoundland dog just from the water, and sat up in bed, stiff as a pike-staff, looking at me, and rubbing his eyes as if he did not altogether remember how I came to be there, though a dim consciousness of knowing something about me seemed slowly dawning over him. Meanwhile, I lay quietly eyeing him, having no serious misgivings now, and bent upon narrowly observing so curious a creature. When, at last, his mind seemed made up touching the character of his bedfellow, and he became, as it were, reconciled to the fact; he jumped out upon the floor, and by certain signs and sounds gave me to understand that, if it pleased me, he would dress first and then leave me to dress afterwards, leaving the whole apartment to myself. Thinks I, Queequeg, under the circumstances, this is a very civilized overture; but, the truth is, these savages have an innate sense of delicacy, say what you will; it is marvellous how essentially polite they are. I pay this particular compliment to Queequeg, because he treated me with so much civility and consideration, while I was guilty of great rudeness; staring at him from the bed, and watching all his toilette motions; for the time my curiosity getting the better of my breeding. Nevertheless, a man like Queequeg you don't see every day, he and his ways were well worth unusual regarding.

Now, take away the awful fear, and my feelings of the supernatural hand in mine were very similar, in their strangeness, to those I experienced when waking up and seeing Queequeg's pagan arm thrown around me. But eventually, all the events of the past night returned to me clearly, one by one, and I lay there only aware of the funny situation. For although I tried to move his arm—unlock his groom's embrace—he still held me tightly, as if only death could separate us. I then tried to wake him—"Queequeg!"—but all I got in response was a snore. I rolled over, my neck feeling like it was in a horse-collar, and suddenly felt a slight scratch. Throwing aside the blankets, I saw the tomahawk lying next to the savage, as if it were a hatchet-faced baby. What a strange situation, I thought; here I am in a strange house in broad daylight, with a cannibal and a tomahawk! "Queequeg!—for goodness' sake, Queequeg, wake up!" Finally, after much wriggling and loud protests about the awkwardness of him hugging another guy in that way, I got a grunt out of him; then he pulled back his arm, shook himself all over like a wet Newfoundland dog, and sat up in bed, stiff as a board, looking at me and rubbing his eyes as if he didn't quite remember how I got there, though a vague memory of me seemed to slowly come back to him. Meanwhile, I lay quietly watching him, having no serious worries now, and focused on observing such a curious character. When his mind seemed to make up about who his bedfellow was, he appeared to accept the situation; he jumped out of bed and, through gestures and sounds, let me know that if I didn’t mind, he would get dressed first and then leave me to get dressed afterward, giving me the whole room to myself. I thought, under the circumstances, Queequeg, this is a very civilized gesture; but the truth is, these savages have an innate sense of decency, regardless of what you say; it's amazing how polite they are. I offer this compliment to Queequeg because he treated me with so much courtesy and thoughtfulness, even as I was quite rude, staring at him from the bed and watching all his getting ready motions; my curiosity overtaking my manners. Still, a man like Queequeg isn’t something you see every day, and he and his ways were definitely worth watching closely.

He commenced dressing at top by donning his beaver hat, a very tall one, by the by, and then—still minus his trowsers— he hunted up his boots. What under the heavens he did it for, I cannot tell, but his next movement was to crush himself— boots in hand, and hat on—under the bed; when, from sundry violent gaspings and strainings, I inferred he was hard at work booting himself; though by no law of propriety that I ever heard of, is any man required to be private when putting on his boots. But Queequeg, do you see, was a creature in the transition state— neither caterpillar nor butterfly. He was just enough civilized to show off his outlandishness in the strangest possible manner. His education was not yet completed. He was an undergraduate. If he had not been a small degree civilized, he very probably would not have troubled himself with boots at all; but then, if he had not been still a savage, he never would have dreamt of getting under the bed to put them on. At last, he emerged with his hat very much dented and crushed down over his eyes, and began creaking and limping about the room, as if, not being much accustomed to boots, his pair of damp, wrinkled cowhide ones— probably not made to order either—rather pinched and tormented him at the first go off of a bitter cold morning.

He started getting dressed by putting on his tall beaver hat, and then—still without his trousers—he looked for his boots. I can't say what made him do it, but his next move was to squeeze himself—boots in hand and hat on—under the bed; from the sounds of him gasping and straining, I figured he was struggling to put on his boots. However, I’ve never heard it’s proper for anyone to be private while putting on their boots. But Queequeg, you see, was in a state of transition—neither fully civilized nor fully savage. He was just civilized enough to highlight his uniqueness in a very strange way. His education wasn’t finished yet. He was still a student. If he weren’t somewhat civilized, he probably wouldn’t have bothered with boots at all; but if he weren’t still a savage, he wouldn’t have thought to crawl under the bed to put them on. Eventually, he came out with his hat all bent and pushed down over his eyes and started creaking and limping around the room, as if he wasn’t very used to boots, and his damp, wrinkled cowhide pair—probably not custom-made—were pinching and bothering him on this bitter cold morning.

Seeing, now, that there were no curtains to the window, and that the street being very narrow, the house opposite commanded a plain view into the room, and observing more and more the indecorous figure that Queequeg made, staving about with little else but his hat and boots on; I begged him as well as I could, to accelerate his toilet somewhat, and particularly to get into his pantaloons as soon as possible. He complied, and then proceeded to wash himself. At that time in the morning any Christian would have washed his face; but Queequeg, to my amazement, contented himself with restricting his ablutions to his chest, arms, and hands. He then donned his waistcoat, and taking up a piece of hard soap on the wash-stand centre table, dipped it into water and commenced lathering his face. I was watching to see where he kept his razor, when lo and behold, he takes the harpoon from the bed corner, slips out the long wooden stock, unsheathes the head, whets it a little on his boot, and striding up to the bit of mirror against the wall, begins a vigorous scraping, or rather harpooning of his cheeks. Thinks I, Queequeg, this is using Rogers's best cutlery with a vengeance. Afterwards I wondered the less at this operation when I came to know of what fine steel the head of a harpoon is made, and how exceedingly sharp the long straight edges are always kept.

Seeing that there were no curtains on the window and that the street was very narrow, the house across from us had a clear view into the room. Noticing more and more how inappropriate Queequeg looked, wandering around with only his hat and boots on, I asked him as politely as I could to hurry up with getting ready, especially to put on his pants as soon as he could. He agreed and started to wash up. At that hour in the morning, any decent person would have washed their face, but to my surprise, Queequeg was satisfied to wash only his chest, arms, and hands. He then put on his vest and, picking up a bar of hard soap from the washstand table, dipped it in water and started lathering his face. I was watching to see where he kept his razor when, to my astonishment, he took the harpoon from the corner of the bed, pulled out the long wooden handle, unsheathed the head, sharpened it a bit on his boot, and walked over to the small mirror on the wall, proceeding to vigorously scrape—or rather harpoon—his cheeks. I thought to myself, “Queequeg, you're really using Rogers's best cutlery in a serious way.” Later, I thought less of this unusual method once I learned about the high-quality steel used for harpoon heads and how incredibly sharp the long straight edges are always kept.

The rest of his toilet was soon achieved, and he proudly marched out of the room, wrapped up in his great pilot monkey jacket, and sporting his harpoon like a marshal's baton.

The rest of his grooming was done quickly, and he confidently walked out of the room, wrapped in his big pilot monkey jacket, carrying his harpoon like a marshal's baton.

CHAPTER 5

Breakfast

Breakfast

I quickly followed suit, and descending into the bar-room accosted the grinning landlord very pleasantly. I cherished no malice towards him, though he had been skylarking with me not a little in the matter of my bedfellow.

I quickly joined in, and as I went down into the bar, I greeted the smiling landlord in a friendly way. I held no grudge against him, even though he had been joking around with me a lot about my sleeping arrangement.

However, a good laugh is a mighty good thing, and rather too scarce a good thing; the more's the pity. So, if any one man, in his own proper person, afford stuff for a good joke to anybody, let him not be backward, but let him cheerfully allow himself to spend and to be spent in that way. And the man that has anything bountifully laughable about him, be sure there is more in that man than you perhaps think for.

However, a good laugh is a really great thing, and sadly, it's also quite rare. If anyone has the ability to make a good joke, they shouldn't hesitate but should happily share that talent. And if a person has plenty of laughable qualities, you can be sure there's more to them than you might realize.

The bar-room was now full of the boarders who had been dropping in the night previous, and whom I had not as yet had a good look at. They were nearly all whalemen; chief mates, and second mates, and third mates, and sea carpenters, and sea coopers, and sea blacksmiths, and harpooneers, and ship keepers; a brown and brawny company, with bosky beards; an unshorn, shaggy set, all wearing monkey jackets for morning gowns.

The bar room was now packed with the boarders who had come in the night before, and I hadn’t had a good look at them yet. Almost all of them were whalemen; chief mates, second mates, third mates, sea carpenters, sea coopers, sea blacksmiths, harpooneers, and ship keepers; a tough, muscular group, with bushy beards; a scruffy bunch, all wearing monkey jackets as their morning coats.

You could pretty plainly tell how long each one had been ashore. This young fellow's healthy cheek is like a sun-toasted pear in hue, and would seem to smell almost as musky; he cannot have been three days landed from his Indian voyage. That man next him looks a few shades lighter; you might say a touch of satin wood is in him. In the complexion of a third still lingers a tropic tawn, but slightly bleached withal; he doubtless has tarried whole weeks ashore. But who could show a cheek like Queequeg? which, barred with various tints, seemed like the Andes' western slope, to show forth in one array, contrasting climates, zone by zone.

You could easily see how long each of them had been on land. This young guy's healthy cheek is the color of a sun-roasted pear and probably smells almost as musky; he can't have been off the boat for more than three days since his trip from India. The man next to him looks a few shades lighter; you could say he has a hint of satin wood in his skin. A third man's complexion still has a hint of tropical tan, but it's slightly faded; he's definitely spent several weeks on land. But who could have a cheek like Queequeg? His skin, marked with different shades, looked like the western slope of the Andes, showcasing contrasting climates, zone by zone.

"Grub, ho!" now cried the landlord, flinging open a door, and in we went to breakfast.

"Food's ready!" the landlord shouted, throwing open a door, and we went in to have breakfast.

They say that men who have seen the world, thereby become quite at ease in manner, quite self-possessed in company. Not always, though: Ledyard, the great New England traveller, and Mungo Park, the Scotch one; of all men, they possessed the least assurance in the parlor. But perhaps the mere crossing of Siberia in a sledge drawn by dogs as Ledyard did, or the taking a long solitary walk on an empty stomach, in the negro heart of Africa, which was the sum of poor Mungo's performances— this kind of travel, I say, may not be the very best mode of attaining a high social polish. Still, for the most part, that sort of thing is to be had anywhere.

They say that men who have traveled the world become pretty comfortable in their manner and confident in social settings. Not always, though: Ledyard, the great New England traveler, and Mungo Park, the Scottish one; among all men, they had the least confidence in the parlor. But maybe just crossing Siberia in a sled pulled by dogs like Ledyard did, or taking a long solo walk on an empty stomach in the heart of Africa, which sums up poor Mungo's adventures—this kind of travel, I mean, might not be the best way to gain social grace. Still, most of that kind of thing can be found anywhere.

These reflections just here are occasioned by the circumstance that after we were all seated at the table, and I was preparing to hear some good stories about whaling; to my no small surprise nearly every man maintained a profound silence. And not only that, but they looked embarrassed. Yes, here were a set of sea-dogs, many of whom without the slightest bashfulness had boarded great whales on the high seas—entire strangers to them— and duelled them dead without winking; and yet, here they sat at a social breakfast table—all of the same calling, all of kindred tastes—looking round as sheepishly at each other as though they had never been out of sight of some sheepfold among the Green Mountains. A curious sight; these bashful bears, these timid warrior whalemen!

These thoughts came to me because, after we all sat down at the table, I was expecting to hear some great whaling stories; to my surprise, nearly every man fell completely silent. Not only that, but they seemed embarrassed. Here were a group of seasoned sailors, many of whom had boldly boarded massive whales in the open sea—total strangers to them—and fought them to the death without flinching; and yet, here they were at a friendly breakfast table—all of the same profession, all with shared interests—looking at each other sheepishly as if they had never left some sheepfold in the Green Mountains. It was quite a sight; these bashful tough guys, these timid warrior whalers!

But as for Queequeg—why, Queequeg sat there among them— at the head of the table, too, it so chanced; as cool as an icicle. To be sure I cannot say much for his breeding. His greatest admirer could not have cordially justified his bringing his harpoon into breakfast with him, and using it there without ceremony; reaching over the table with it, to the imminent jeopardy of many heads, and grappling the beefsteaks towards him. But that was certainly very coolly done by him, and every one knows that in most people's estimation, to do anything coolly is to do it genteelly.

But as for Queequeg—well, Queequeg was sitting there among them—at the head of the table, no less; as calm as an icicle. I can’t say much for his manners. Even his biggest fan couldn’t genuinely justify him bringing his harpoon to breakfast and using it there without any fuss; reaching over the table with it, putting many heads in danger, and snagging the beefsteaks toward him. But that was definitely very cool of him, and everyone knows that most people think doing anything with coolness makes it classy.

We will not speak of all Queequeg's peculiarities here; how he eschewed coffee and hot rolls, and applied his undivided attention to beefsteaks, done rare. Enough, that when breakfast was over he withdrew like the rest into the public room, lighted his tomahawk-pipe, and was sitting there quietly digesting and smoking with his inseparable hat on, when I sallied out for a stroll.

We won't mention all of Queequeg's quirks here; how he avoided coffee and hot rolls, focusing instead on rare beefsteaks. It's enough to say that when breakfast was over, he moved like the others into the public room, lit his tomahawk pipe, and sat there calmly digesting and smoking with his trusty hat on, while I went out for a walk.

CHAPTER 6

The Street

The Avenue

If I had been astonished at first catching a glimpse of so outlandish an individual as Queequeg circulating among the polite society of a civilized town, that astonishment soon departed upon taking my first daylight stroll through the streets of New Bedford.

If I was shocked at first by seeing such an unusual person as Queequeg moving around among the polite society of a civilized town, that shock quickly faded when I took my first walk in the daylight through the streets of New Bedford.

In thoroughfares nigh the docks, any considerable seaport will frequently offer to view the queerest looking nondescripts from foreign parts. Even in Broadway and Chestnut streets, Mediterranean mariners will sometimes jostle the affrighted ladies. Regent Street is not unknown to Lascars and Malays; and at Bombay, in the Apollo Green, live Yankees have often scared the natives. But New Bedford beats all Water Street and Wapping. In these last-mentioned haunts you see only sailors; but in New Bedford, actual cannibals stand chatting at street corners; savages outright; many of whom yet carry on their bones unholy flesh. It makes a stranger stare.

In the busy streets near the docks, any major seaport will often showcase the strangest looking people from foreign lands. Even on Broadway and Chestnut streets, Mediterranean sailors will occasionally bump into terrified women. Regent Street isn't unfamiliar with Lascars and Malays, and in Bombay, at Apollo Green, local Americans have often startled the locals. But New Bedford surpasses all of Water Street and Wapping. In those places, you only see sailors; but in New Bedford, actual cannibals are seen chatting at street corners; true savages; many of whom still carry remnants of unholy flesh on their bones. It makes a newcomer stare.

But, besides the Feegeeans, Tongatobooarrs, Erromanggoans, Pannangians, and Brighggians, and, besides the wild specimens of the whaling-craft which unheeded reel about the streets, you will see other sights still more curious, certainly more comical. There weekly arrive in this town scores of green Vermonters and New Hampshire men, all athirst for gain and glory in the fishery. They are mostly young, of stalwart frames; fellows who have felled forests, and now seek to drop the axe and snatch the whale-lance. Many are as green as the Green Mountains whence they came. In some things you would think them but a few hours old. Look there! that chap strutting round the corner. He wears a beaver hat and swallow-tailed coat, girdled with a sailor-belt and a sheath-knife. Here comes another with a sou'-wester and a bombazine cloak.

But besides the Feegeeans, Tongatobooarrs, Erromanggoans, Pannangians, and Brighggians, as well as the wild specimens of whaling ships that stagger around the streets unnoticed, you'll see even more curious and definitely more amusing sights. Every week, loads of eager Vermonters and New Hampshire guys arrive in this town, all thirsty for profit and fame in the fishing industry. Most of them are young and strong, guys who have chopped down forests and are now looking to put down the axe and pick up a whale lance. Many are as inexperienced as the Green Mountains they came from. In some ways, you'd think they had just arrived. Look over there! That guy strutting around the corner. He’s wearing a beaver hat and a swallow-tailed coat, secured with a sailor's belt and a sheath knife. Here comes another one sporting a sou'-wester and a bombazine cloak.

No town-bred dandy will compare with a country-bred one—I mean a downright bumpkin dandy—a fellow that, in the dog-days, will mow his two acres in buckskin gloves for fear of tanning his hands. Now when a country dandy like this takes it into his head to make a distinguished reputation, and joins the great whale-fishery, you should see the comical things he does upon reaching the seaport. In bespeaking his sea-outfit, he orders bell-buttons to his waistcoats; straps to his canvas trowsers. Ah, poor Hay-Seed! how bitterly will burst those straps in the first howling gale, when thou art driven, straps, buttons, and all, down the throat of the tempest.

No city dandy can compare to a country dandy—I’m talking about a real bumpkin dandy—someone who, in the heat of summer, will mow his two acres while wearing buckskin gloves to avoid tanning his hands. When a country dandy like this decides to make a name for himself and joins the whaling industry, you should see the hilarious things he does when he gets to the seaport. When picking out his sea gear, he orders bell-buttons for his waistcoats and straps for his canvas trousers. Oh, poor Hay-Seed! How painfully those straps will snap in the first wild storm, sending you, straps, buttons, and all, straight into the heart of the tempest.

But think not that this famous town has only harpooneers, cannibals, and bumpkins to show her visitors. Not at all. Still New Bedford is a queer place. Had it not been for us whalemen, that tract of land would this day perhaps have been in as howling condition as the coast of Labrador. As it is, parts of her back country are enough to frighten one, they look so bony. The town itself is perhaps the dearest place to live in, in all New England. It is a land of oil, true enough: but not like Canaan; a land, also, of corn and wine. The streets do not run with milk; nor in the spring-time do they pave them with fresh eggs. Yet, in spite of this, nowhere in all America will you find more patrician-like houses; parks and gardens more opulent, than in New Bedford. Whence came they? how planted upon this once scraggy scoria of a country?

But don’t think this famous town only has whalers, cannibals, and simpletons to show its visitors. Not at all. Still, New Bedford is a strange place. If it weren’t for us whalemen, that piece of land might today be as barren as the coast of Labrador. As it is, parts of the countryside are downright eerie; they look so desolate. The town itself is probably the most desirable place to live in all of New England. It is a land of oil, that's true: but not like Canaan; it’s also a land of corn and wine. The streets don’t run with milk; nor do they pave them with fresh eggs in the springtime. Yet, despite this, nowhere in all of America will you find more grand houses; parks and gardens more luxurious than in New Bedford. Where did they come from? How did they get planted on this once scraggly stretch of land?

Go and gaze upon the iron emblematical harpoons round yonder lofty mansion, and your question will be answered. Yes; all these brave houses and flowery gardens came from the Atlantic, Pacific, and Indian oceans. One and all, they were harpooned and dragged up hither from the bottom of the sea. Can Herr Alexander perform a feat like that?

Go and look at the iron harpoons around that tall mansion over there, and your question will be answered. Yes; all these impressive houses and beautiful gardens came from the Atlantic, Pacific, and Indian Oceans. They were all harpooned and pulled up from the bottom of the sea. Can Herr Alexander do something like that?

In New Bedford, fathers, they say, give whales for dowers to their daughters, and portion off their nieces with a few porpoises a-piece. You must go to New Bedford to see a brilliant wedding; for, they say, they have reservoirs of oil in every house, and every night recklessly burn their lengths in spermaceti candles.

In New Bedford, fathers say they give whales as dowries to their daughters and send their nieces off with a few porpoises each. You have to go to New Bedford to witness a spectacular wedding; they say every house has tanks of oil, and every night they carelessly burn long spermaceti candles.

In summer time, the town is sweet to see; full of fine maples— long avenues of green and gold. And in August, high in air, the beautiful and bountiful horse-chestnuts, candelabra-wise, proffer the passer-by their tapering upright cones of congregated blossoms. So omnipotent is art; which in many a district of New Bedford has superinduced bright terraces of flowers upon the barren refuse rocks thrown aside at creation's final day.

In the summer, the town is lovely to look at; filled with beautiful maple trees—long streets of green and gold. In August, high in the sky, the stunning and plentiful horse-chestnut trees, like candelabras, offer passersby their tall, upright clusters of blossoms. Art is so powerful; it has turned many areas of New Bedford into vibrant flower-filled terraces on the once-barren rocks left behind at the end of creation.

And the women of New Bedford, they bloom like their own red roses. But roses only bloom in summer; whereas the fine carnation of their cheeks is perennial as sunlight in the seventh heavens. Elsewhere match that bloom of theirs, ye cannot, save in Salem, where they tell me the young girls breathe such musk, their sailor sweethearts smell them miles off shore, as though they were drawing nigh the odorous Moluccas instead of the Puritanic sands.

And the women of New Bedford bloom like their own red roses. But roses only bloom in summer; while the lovely color of their cheeks lasts year-round like sunlight in the seventh heavens. You can't match their bloom anywhere else, except in Salem, where I hear the young girls smell so good that their sailor sweethearts can catch their scent from miles away, as if they were approaching the fragrant Moluccas instead of the Puritan sands.

CHAPTER 7

The Chapel

The Chapel

In this same New Bedford there stands a Whaleman's Chapel, and few are the moody fishermen, shortly bound for the Indian Ocean or Pacific, who fail to make a Sunday visit to the spot. I am sure that I did not.

In this same New Bedford, there's a Whaleman's Chapel, and not many of the brooding fishermen, soon heading to the Indian Ocean or Pacific, skip a Sunday visit to this place. I'm certain that I didn't.

Returning from my first morning stroll, I again sallied out upon this special errand. The sky had changed from clear, sunny cold, to driving sleet and mist. Wrapping myself in my shaggy jacket of the cloth called bearskin, I fought my way against the stubborn storm. Entering, I found a small scattered congregation of sailors, and sailors' wives and widows. A muffled silence reigned, only broken at times by the shrieks of the storm. Each silent worshipper seemed purposely sitting apart from the other, as if each silent grief were insular and incommunicable. The chaplain had not yet arrived; and there these silent islands of men and women sat steadfastly eyeing several marble tablets, with black borders, masoned into the wall on either side the pulpit. Three of them ran something like the following, but I do not pretend to quote:

Returning from my first morning walk, I set out again on this particular mission. The sky had shifted from clear and sunny to driving sleet and mist. Wrapping myself in my thick bearskin jacket, I battled against the relentless storm. Inside, I found a small, scattered group of sailors, along with their wives and widows. A muted silence filled the room, only interrupted occasionally by the howling wind outside. Each quiet worshipper sat deliberately apart from the others, as if their sorrow was personal and unshared. The chaplain hadn’t arrived yet; and there these silent individuals sat, steadfastly staring at several marble tablets with black borders, set into the wall on either side of the pulpit. Three of them read something like the following, but I don’t claim to quote it exactly:

                            SACRED
                        TO THE MEMORY
                              OF
                          JOHN TALBOT,
        Who, at the age of eighteen, was lost overboard
          Near the Isle of Desolation, off Patagonia,
                       November 1st, 1836.
                          THIS TABLET
                   Is erected to his Memory
                         BY HIS SISTER.

SACRED
                        TO THE MEMORY
                              OF
                          JOHN TALBOT,
        Who, at the age of eighteen, was lost overboard
          Near the Isle of Desolation, off Patagonia,
                       November 1st, 1836.
                          THIS TABLET
                   Is erected to his Memory
                         BY HIS SISTER.

                            SACRED
                        TO THE MEMORY
                              OF
                  ROBERT LONG, WILLIS ELLERY,
            NATHAN COLEMAN, WALTER CANNY, SETH MACY,
                       AND SAMUEL GLEIG,
                 Forming one of the boats' crews
                              OF
                       THE SHIP ELIZA
             Who were towed out of sight by a Whale,
                  On the Off-shore Ground in the
                           PACIFIC,
                      December 31st, 1839.
                          THIS MARBLE
               Is here placed by their surviving
                           SHIPMATES.

SACRED
                        TO THE MEMORY
                              OF
                  ROBERT LONG, WILLIS ELLERY,
            NATHAN COLEMAN, WALTER CANNY, SETH MACY,
                       AND SAMUEL GLEIG,
                 Forming one of the boat crews
                              OF
                       THE SHIP ELIZA
             Who were towed out of sight by a whale,
                  On the offshore grounds in the
                           PACIFIC,
                      December 31st, 1839.
                          THIS MARBLE
               Is here placed by their surviving
                           SHIPMATES.

                            SACRED
                        TO THE MEMORY
                              OF
                           The late
                    CAPTAIN EZEKIEL HARDY,
          Who in the bows of his boat was killed by a
               Sperm Whale on the coast of Japan,
                       August 3d, 1833.
                          THIS TABLET
                   Is erected to his Memory
                              BY
                          HIS WIDOW.

SACRED
                        TO THE MEMORY
                              OF
                           The late
                    CAPTAIN EZEKIEL HARDY,
          Who was killed by a Sperm Whale in the bow of his boat off the coast of Japan,
                       August 3rd, 1833.
                          THIS TABLET
                   Is dedicated to his Memory
                              BY
                          HIS WIDOW.

Shaking off the sleet from my ice-glazed hat and jacket, I seated myself near the door, and turning sideways was surprised to see Queequeg near me. Affected by the solemnity of the scene, there was a wondering gaze of incredulous curiosity in his countenance. This savage was the only person present who seemed to notice my entrance; because he was the only one who could not read, and, therefore, was not reading those frigid inscriptions on the wall. Whether any of the relatives of the seamen whose names appeared there were now among the congregation, I knew not; but so many are the unrecorded accidents in the fishery, and so plainly did several women present wear the countenance if not the trappings of some unceasing grief, that I feel sure that here before me were assembled those, in whose unhealing hearts the sight of those bleak tablets sympathetically caused the old wounds to bleed afresh.

Shaking off the sleet from my ice-covered hat and jacket, I sat down near the door, and when I turned sideways, I was surprised to see Queequeg next to me. Affected by the seriousness of the scene, he had a look of amazed curiosity on his face. This man was the only one in the room who seemed to notice my arrival; he was the only one who couldn’t read, and therefore wasn’t focused on those cold inscriptions on the wall. I didn’t know if any relatives of the sailors whose names were listed there were among the congregation, but given the many unrecorded accidents in fishing, and the way several women present clearly showed signs of deep grief, I felt sure that those gathered here had hearts that could still be hurt by the sight of those stark tablets, causing old wounds to reopen.

Oh! ye whose dead lie buried beneath the green grass; who standing among flowers can say—here, here lies my beloved; ye know not the desolation that broods in bosoms like these. What bitter blanks in those black-bordered marbles which cover no ashes! What despair in those immovable inscriptions! What deadly voids and unbidden infidelities in the lines that seem to gnaw upon all Faith, and refuse resurrections to the beings who have placelessly perished without a grave. As well might those tablets stand in the cave of Elephanta as here.

Oh! you whose loved ones are buried beneath the green grass; who, standing among flowers, can say—here, here lies my beloved; you do not know the emptiness that weighs heavy in hearts like these. What painful gaps in those black-bordered gravestones that hold no ashes! What despair in those unchanging inscriptions! What deadly voids and unwanted betrayals in the words that seem to eat away at all Faith, denying a resting place to the souls who have vanished without a grave. Those tablets might as well stand in the cave of Elephanta as here.

In what census of living creatures, the dead of mankind are included; why it is that a universal proverb says of them, that they tell no tales, though containing more secrets than the Goodwin Sands! how it is that to his name who yesterday departed for the other world, we prefix so significant and infidel a word, and yet do not thus entitle him, if he but embarks for the remotest Indies of this living earth; why the Life Insurance Companies pay death-forfeitures upon immortals; in what eternal, unstirring paralysis, and deadly, hopeless trance, yet lies antique Adam who died sixty round centuries ago; how it is that we still refuse to be comforted for those who we nevertheless maintain are dwelling in unspeakable bliss; why all the living so strive to hush all the dead; wherefore but the rumor of a knocking in a tomb will terrify a whole city. All these things are not without their meanings.

In what census of living beings are the dead included; why is it that a universal saying claims they tell no tales, even though they hold more secrets than the Goodwin Sands! How is it that for someone who passed away yesterday, we use such a significant and unfaithful term, yet we don’t call him that if he merely sets off for the farthest Indies of this living earth; why do Life Insurance Companies pay out death benefits for immortals; in what eternal, unchanging paralysis, and deadly, hopeless trance, lies ancient Adam who died sixty centuries ago; how is it that we still can’t find comfort for those whom we insist are living in indescribable bliss; why does everyone living so desperately try to silence all the dead; why does just the rumor of a knock in a tomb terrify an entire city. All these things have their meanings.

But Faith, like a jackal, feeds among the tombs, and even from these dead doubts she gathers her most vital hope.

But Faith, like a jackal, feeds among the graves, and even from these dead doubts she collects her most essential hope.

It needs scarcely to be told, with what feelings, on the eve of a Nantucket voyage, I regarded those marble tablets, and by the murky light of that darkened, doleful day read the fate of the whalemen who had gone before me. Yes, Ishmael, the same fate may be thine. But somehow I grew merry again. Delightful inducements to embark, fine chance for promotion, it seems—aye, a stove boat will make me an immortal by brevet. Yes, there is death in this business of whaling—a speechlessly quick chaotic bundling of a man into Eternity. But what then? Methinks we have hugely mistaken this matter of Life and Death. Methinks that what they call my shadow here on earth is my true substance. Methinks that in looking at things spiritual, we are too much like oysters observing the sun through the water, and thinking that thick water the thinnest of air. Methinks my body is but the lees of my better being. In fact take my body who will, take it I say, it is not me. And therefore three cheers for Nantucket; and come a stove boat and stove body when they will, for stave my soul, Jove himself cannot.

I hardly need to say how I felt on the eve of a trip to Nantucket as I looked at those marble tablets and, under the dim light of that gloomy day, read about the fates of the whalemen who came before me. Yes, Ishmael, you might face the same fate. But somehow, I felt cheerful again. The idea of setting out was enticing, and it seemed like a great opportunity for advancement—yes, a whaling boat could make me legendary. Sure, there’s danger in whaling—a sudden and chaotic leap into Eternity. But so what? I think we’ve seriously misunderstood the meanings of Life and Death. I believe that what we call my shadow here on earth is actually my true essence. I think that when we look at spiritual things, we’re a bit like oysters trying to see the sun through the water and thinking that dense water is the lightest air. I suspect my body is just the leftover material of my better self. In fact, take my body if you want; I say, take it, it's not really me. So here’s to Nantucket; whether a whaling boat comes or a crushed body, my soul can’t be harmed, not even by Jove himself.

CHAPTER 8

The Pulpit

The Podium

I had not been seated very long ere a man of a certain venerable robustness entered; immediately as the storm-pelted door flew back upon admitting him, a quick regardful eyeing of him by all the congregation, sufficiently attested that this fine old man was the chaplain. Yes, it was the famous Father Mapple, so called by the whalemen, among whom he was a very great favorite. He had been a sailor and a harpooneer in his youth, but for many years past had dedicated his life to the ministry. At the time I now write of, Father Mapple was in the hardy winter of a healthy old age; that sort of old age which seems merging into a second flowering youth, for among all the fissures of his wrinkles, there shone certain mild gleams of a newly developing bloom— the spring verdure peeping forth even beneath February's snow. No one having previously heard his history, could for the first time behold Father Mapple without the utmost interest, because there were certain engrafted clerical peculiarities about him, imputable to that adventurous maritime life he had led. When he entered I observed that he carried no umbrella, and certainly had not come in his carriage, for his tarpaulin hat ran down with melting sleet, and his great pilot cloth jacket seemed almost to drag him to the floor with the weight of the water it had absorbed. However, hat and coat and overshoes were one by one removed, and hung up in a little space in an adjacent corner; when, arrayed in a decent suit, he quietly approached the pulpit.

I hadn’t been seated for long when a robust older man walked in. As the storm-battered door swung open for him, everyone in the congregation glanced at him, clearly recognizing that this distinguished older man was the chaplain. Yes, it was the well-known Father Mapple, who was quite popular among the whalemen. He had been a sailor and a harpooner in his youth but had dedicated his life to the ministry for many years now. At the time I’m writing about, Father Mapple was in the sturdy winter of a healthy old age; it was that kind of old age that seemed to blend into a second blooming youth, as hints of a new vitality shone through the lines of his wrinkles—like spring greenery peeking out beneath February’s snow. Anyone who hadn't heard his backstory couldn't help but be intrigued the first time they laid eyes on Father Mapple because he had certain distinct clerical traits that reflected his adventurous life at sea. When he walked in, I noticed he wasn’t carrying an umbrella and definitely hadn’t arrived in a carriage, as his tarpaulin hat dripped with melting sleet, and his heavy pilot coat appeared to weigh him down with the water it had soaked up. However, one by one, he took off his hat, coat, and overshoes and hung them up in a small space in a nearby corner; then, dressed in a decent suit, he quietly approached the pulpit.

Like most old fashioned pulpits, it was a very lofty one, and since a regular stairs to such a height would, by its long angle with the floor, seriously contract the already small area of the chapel, the architect, it seemed, had acted upon the hint of Father Mapple, and finished the pulpit without a stairs, substituting a perpendicular side ladder, like those used in mounting a ship from a boat at sea. The wife of a whaling captain had provided the chapel with a handsome pair of red worsted man-ropes for this ladder, which, being itself nicely headed, and stained with a mahogany color, the whole contrivance, considering what manner of chapel it was, seemed by no means in bad taste. Halting for an instant at the foot of the ladder, and with both hands grasping the ornamental knobs of the man-ropes, Father Mapple cast a look upwards, and then with a truly sailor-like but still reverential dexterity, hand over hand, mounted the steps as if ascending the main-top of his vessel.

Like most old-fashioned pulpits, it was very tall, and since a regular staircase to such a height would, due to its long angle with the floor, significantly reduce the already small space in the chapel, the architect seemed to have taken Father Mapple's suggestion and designed the pulpit without stairs, replacing it with a straight side ladder, like those used to climb from a boat onto a ship. The wife of a whaling captain had equipped the chapel with a lovely pair of red worsted ropes for this ladder, which, being well-finished and stained a mahogany color, made the whole setup, considering what kind of chapel it was, look quite tasteful. Pausing for a moment at the bottom of the ladder, with both hands gripping the decorative knobs of the ropes, Father Mapple looked up and then with a genuinely sailor-like yet respectful agility, climbed hand over hand as if going up to the main top of his ship.

The perpendicular parts of this side ladder, as is usually the case with swinging ones, were of cloth-covered rope, only the rounds were of wood, so that at every step there was a joint. At my first glimpse of the pulpit, it had not escaped me that however convenient for a ship, these joints in the present instance seemed unnecessary. For I was not prepared to see Father Mapple after gaining the height, slowly turn round, and stooping over the pulpit, deliberately drag up the ladder step by step, till the whole was deposited within, leaving him impregnable in his little Quebec.

The vertical parts of this side ladder, like most swinging ladders, were made of cloth-covered rope, while the rungs were wooden, creating a joint at every step. At my first sight of the pulpit, I noticed that, while these joints are practical for a ship, they seemed unnecessary in this case. I didn’t expect to see Father Mapple, after reaching the top, slowly turn around and, leaning over the pulpit, deliberately pull up the ladder step by step, until it was all inside, leaving him secure in his little Quebec.

I pondered some time without fully comprehending the reason for this. Father Mapple enjoyed such a wide reputation for sincerity and sanctity, that I could not suspect him of courting notoriety by any mere tricks of the stage. No, thought I, there must be some sober reason for this thing; furthermore, it must symbolize something unseen. Can it be, then, that by that act of physical isolation, he signifies his spiritual withdrawal for the time, from all outward worldly ties and connexions? Yes, for replenished with the meat and wine of the word, to the faithful man of God, this pulpit, I see, is a self-containing stronghold—a lofty Ehrenbreitstein, with a perennial well of water within the walls.

I thought for a while without fully understanding the reason for this. Father Mapple was so well-known for his sincerity and holiness that I couldn’t imagine he was seeking fame through any stage tricks. No, I figured, there must be a serious reason for this; moreover, it must symbolize something deeper. Could it be that by this act of physical separation, he indicates his spiritual retreat from all external worldly ties and connections? Yes, because fed with the truth, this pulpit, I see, is a self-sufficient fortress—a high Ehrenbreitstein, with a constant well of water within its walls.

But the side ladder was not the only strange feature of the place, borrowed from the chaplain's former sea-farings. Between the marble cenotaphs on either hand of the pulpit, the wall which formed its back was adorned with a large painting representing a gallant ship beating against a terrible storm off a lee coast of black rocks and snowy breakers. But high above the flying scud and dark-rolling clouds, there floated a little isle of sunlight, from which beamed forth an angel's face; and this bright face shed a distant spot of radiance upon the ship's tossed deck, something like that silver plate now inserted into the Victory's plank where Nelson fell. "Ah, noble ship," the angel seemed to say, "beat on, beat on, thou noble ship, and bear a hardy helm; for lo! the sun is breaking through; the clouds are rolling off— serenest azure is at hand."

But the side ladder wasn’t the only unusual feature of the place, taken from the chaplain's previous sea adventures. Between the marble cenotaphs on either side of the pulpit, the wall behind it was decorated with a large painting of a brave ship battling a fierce storm off a lee coast of dark rocks and crashing waves. But high above the swirling mist and dark clouds, there floated a small patch of sunlight, from which an angel’s face shone down; and this bright face cast a distant glow on the ship’s tumultuous deck, similar to that silver plate now embedded in the Victory's deck where Nelson fell. "Ah, noble ship," the angel seemed to say, "keep going, keep going, you noble ship, and hold your head high; for look! The sun is breaking through; the clouds are parting— the clearest blue sky is coming."

Nor was the pulpit itself without a trace of the same sea-taste that had achieved the ladder and the picture. Its panelled front was in the likeness of a ship's bluff bows, and the Holy Bible rested on a projecting piece of scroll work, fashioned after a ship's fiddle-headed beak.

Nor was the pulpit itself missing a hint of the same nautical vibe that inspired the ladder and the picture. Its paneled front resembled a ship's strong bow, and the Holy Bible rested on a protruding piece of scrollwork, designed to look like a ship's fiddle-headed beak.

What could be more full of meaning?—for the pulpit is ever this earth's foremost part; all the rest comes in its rear; the pulpit leads the world. From thence it is the storm of God's quick wrath is first descried, and the bow must bear the earliest brunt. From thence it is the God of breezes fair or foul is first invoked for favorable winds. Yes, the world's a ship on its passage out, and not a voyage complete; and the pulpit is its prow.

What could be more significant?—because the pulpit is always the most important part of this world; everything else follows behind it; the pulpit guides the world. From there, it's where the storm of God's swift anger is first seen, and the bow must take the first hit. From there, it's the God of both fair and foul winds who is first called upon for good weather. Yes, the world is a ship setting out on a journey, not a completed voyage; and the pulpit is its front.

CHAPTER 9

The Sermon

The Sermon

Father Mapple rose, and in a mild voice of unassuming authority ordered the scattered people to condense. "Star board gangway, there! side away to larboard—larboard gangway to starboard! Midships! midships!"

Father Mapple stood up and, in a calm voice that carried a quiet confidence, instructed the scattered crowd to gather closer. "Starboard side, there! Move over to port—port side to starboard! Midships! Midships!"

There was a low rumbling of heavy sea-boots among the benches, and a still slighter shuffling of women's shoes, and all was quiet again, and every eye on the preacher.

There was a low rumble of heavy boots among the benches, followed by a faint shuffle of women's shoes, and then everything fell silent again, with every eye on the preacher.

He paused a little; then kneeling in the pulpit's bows, folded his large brown hands across his chest, uplifted his closed eyes, and offered a prayer so deeply devout that he seemed kneeling and praying at the bottom of the sea.

He paused for a moment; then kneeling in the pulpit's bow, he folded his large brown hands across his chest, raised his closed eyes, and offered a prayer so profoundly devout that it felt like he was kneeling and praying at the bottom of the ocean.

This ended, in prolonged solemn tones, like the continual tolling of a bell in a ship that is foundering at sea in a fog— in such tones he commenced reading the following hymn; but changing his manner towards the concluding stanzas, burst forth with a pealing exultation and joy—

This ended in long, serious tones, like the ongoing ringing of a bell on a sinking ship lost in the fog— in those tones, he started reading the following hymn; but as he got to the last verses, he switched his tone and broke out with ringing joy and excitement—

          The ribs and terrors in the whale,
            Arched over me a dismal gloom,
          While all God's sun-lit waves rolled by,
            And lift me deepening down to doom.

The ribs and dangers in the whale,
            Created a gloomy shadow over me,
          While all of God's sunlit waves flowed past,
            And pulled me deeper into despair.

          I saw the opening maw of hell,
            With endless pains and sorrows there;
          Which none but they that feel can tell—
            Oh, I was plunging to despair.

I saw the gaping mouth of hell,
            With endless pain and suffering there;
          Which only those who experience it can explain—
            Oh, I was plunging into despair.

          In black distress, I called my God,
            When I could scarce believe him mine,
          He bowed his ear to my complaints—
            No more the whale did me confine.

In deep distress, I called out to my God,
            When I could hardly believe he was mine,
          He listened to my complaints—
            No longer was I trapped by the whale.

          With speed he flew to my relief,
            As on a radiant dolphin borne;
          Awful, yet bright, as lightning shone
            The face of my Deliverer God.

With speed, he rushed to my rescue,
            Like a glowing dolphin soaring;
          Powerful, yet brilliant, like lightning glowed
            The face of my Deliverer God.

          My song for ever shall record
            That terrible, that joyful hour;
          I give the glory to my God,
            His all the mercy and the power.

My song will always remember
            That terrible, that joyful hour;
          I give the glory to my God,
            His is all the mercy and the power.

Nearly all joined in singing this hymn, which swelled high above the howling of the storm. A brief pause ensued; the preacher slowly turned over the leaves of the Bible, and at last, folding his hand down upon the proper page, said: "Beloved shipmates, clinch the last verse of the first chapter of Jonah—'And God had prepared a great fish to swallow up Jonah.'"

Almost everyone joined in singing this hymn, which rose above the howling storm. There was a brief pause; the preacher slowly flipped through the pages of the Bible, and finally, placing his hand on the right page, said: "Dear shipmates, let's remember the last verse of the first chapter of Jonah—'And God had prepared a great fish to swallow up Jonah.'"

"Shipmates, this book, containing only four chapters— four yarns—is one of the smallest strands in the mighty cable of the Scriptures. Yet what depths of the soul does Jonah's deep sealine sound! what a pregnant lesson to us is this prophet! What a noble thing is that canticle in the fish's belly! How billow-like and boisterously grand! We feel the floods surging over us, we sound with him to the kelpy bottom of the waters; sea-weed and all the slime of the sea is about us! But what is this lesson that the book of Jonah teaches? Shipmates, it is a two-stranded lesson; a lesson to us all as sinful men, and a lesson to me as a pilot of the living God. As sinful men, it is a lesson to us all, because it is a story of the sin, hard-heartedness, suddenly awakened fears, the swift punishment, repentance, prayers, and finally the deliverance and joy of Jonah. As with all sinners among men, the sin of this son of Amittai was in his wilful disobedience of the command of God— never mind now what that command was, or how conveyed— which he found a hard command. But all the things that God would have us do are hard for us to do—remember that— and hence, he oftener commands us than endeavors to persuade. And if we obey God, we must disobey ourselves; and it is in this disobeying ourselves, wherein the hardness of obeying God consists.

"Shipmates, this book, containing just four chapters—four stories—is one of the smallest components in the vast tapestry of the Scriptures. Yet, how profound are the depths of the soul that Jonah's deep sealine explores! What a powerful lesson this prophet teaches us! How beautiful is that song from the fish's belly! It’s as grand and tumultuous as the waves! We feel the tidal forces all around us, plunging with him to the weedy depths of the sea; seaweed and all the muck of the ocean surrounds us! But what is the lesson that the book of Jonah conveys? Shipmates, it has two parts; a lesson for all of us as flawed individuals, and a lesson for me as a messenger of the living God. As flawed individuals, it teaches us all about sin, hard-heartedness, sudden fears, swift punishment, repentance, prayers, and ultimately the deliverance and joy of Jonah. Like all sinners, the sin of this son of Amittai was in his willful disobedience to God’s command—regardless of what that command was or how it was given—which he found difficult to follow. But everything God asks us to do can be challenging—remember that. That’s why He often commands us rather than tries to persuade us. And if we follow God, we must go against our own desires; the difficulty in obeying God lies in this very act of defying ourselves."

"With this sin of disobedience in him, Jonah still further flouts at God, by seeking to flee from Him. He thinks that a ship made by men, will carry him into countries where God does not reign but only the Captains of this earth. He skulks about the wharves of Joppa, and seeks a ship that's bound for Tarshish. There lurks, perhaps, a hitherto unheeded meaning here. By all accounts Tarshish could have been no other city than the modern Cadiz. That's the opinion of learned men. And where is Cadiz, shipmates? Cadiz is in Spain; as far by water, from Joppa, as Jonah could possibly have sailed in those ancient days, when the Atlantic was an almost unknown sea. Because Joppa, the modern Jaffa, shipmates, is on the most easterly coast of the Mediterranean, the Syrian; and Tarshish or Cadiz more than two thousand miles to the westward from that, just outside the Straits of Gibraltar. See ye not then, shipmates, that Jonah sought to flee worldwide from God? Miserable man! Oh! most contemptible and worthy of all scorn; with slouched hat and guilty eye, skulking from his God; prowling among the shipping like a vile burglar hastening to cross the seas. So disordered, self-condemning is his look, that had there been policemen in those days, Jonah, on the mere suspicion of something wrong, had been arrested ere he touched a deck. How plainly he's a fugitive! no baggage, not a hat-box, valise, or carpet-bag,—no friends accompany him to the wharf with their adieux. At last, after much dodging search, he finds the Tarshish ship receiving the last items of her cargo; and as he steps on board to see its Captain in the cabin, all the sailors for the moment desist from hoisting in the goods, to mark the stranger's evil eye. Jonah sees this; but in vain he tries to look all ease and confidence; in vain essays his wretched smile. Strong intuitions of the man assure the mariners he can be no innocent. In their gamesome but still serious way, one whispers to the other—"Jack, he's robbed a widow;" or, "Joe, do you mark him; he's a bigamist;" or, "Harry lad, I guess he's the adulterer that broke jail in old Gomorrah, or belike, one of the missing murderers from Sodom." Another runs to read the bill that's stuck against the spile upon the wharf to which the ship is moored, offering five hundred gold coins for the apprehension of a parricide, and containing a description of his person. He reads, and looks from Jonah to the bill; while all his sympathetic shipmates now crowd round Jonah, prepared to lay their hands upon him. Frighted Jonah trembles. and summoning all his boldness to his face, only looks so much the more a coward. He will not confess himself suspected; but that itself is strong suspicion. So he makes the best of it; and when the sailors find him not to be the man that is advertised, they let him pass, and he descends into the cabin.

"With this sin of disobedience within him, Jonah continues to defy God by trying to escape from Him. He believes that a ship made by humans will take him to places where God doesn’t rule, only the captains of this world. He sneaks around the docks of Joppa, looking for a ship bound for Tarshish. There might be an overlooked meaning here. Most experts agree that Tarshish refers to modern Cadiz. And where is Cadiz, my fellow sailors? Cadiz is in Spain; as far by sea from Joppa as Jonah could have possibly traveled in those ancient times when the Atlantic was largely uncharted. Joppa, now known as Jaffa, is located on the eastern coast of the Mediterranean, specifically the Syrian coast. Tarshish or Cadiz is over two thousand miles west of that, just outside the Strait of Gibraltar. So do you see, fellow sailors, that Jonah tried to flee God by going to the farthest corners of the world? Poor man! Oh, he is utterly contemptible and deserving of all scorn; with a slouched hat and a guilty look, hiding from his God; sneaking around the docks like a petty thief desperate to escape across the seas. His appearance is so disordered and self-condemning that if there had been police back then, Jonah would have been arrested on the slightest suspicion before even stepping on deck. It's clear he is a fugitive! He has no luggage, no hatbox, suitcase, or carpetbag—no friends to send him off with goodbyes. Finally, after much dodging and searching, he finds the ship to Tarshish loading its last bits of cargo; and as he boards to meet the Captain in the cabin, all the sailors briefly stop unloading to notice the stranger’s suspicious look. Jonah sees this; but he tries in vain to appear relaxed and confident, forcing a miserable smile. The sailors' instincts tell them he can’t be innocent. In their playful but serious manner, one whispers to another—‘Jack, he’s robbed a widow;’ or, ‘Joe, do you see him? He’s a bigamist;’ or, ‘Harry, I bet he’s the adulterer who escaped from Gomorrah, or maybe one of the missing murderers from Sodom.’ Another goes to read the notice posted by the dock offering five hundred gold coins for the capture of a parricide and includes a description of him. He reads it and looks from Jonah to the notice; while all his curious shipmates now gather around Jonah, ready to grab him. Frightened, Jonah trembles, and summoning all his courage only makes him look more like a coward. He won’t admit that he’s suspected; but that alone is a strong indication of guilt. So he tries to make the best of it; and when the sailors realize he isn’t the man they’re looking for, they let him go, and he goes down into the cabin."

"'Who's there?' cries the Captain at his busy desk, hurriedly making out his papers for the Customs—'Who's there?' Oh! how that harmless question mangles Jonah! For the instant he almost turns to flee again. But he rallies. 'I seek a passage in this ship to Tarshish; how soon sail ye, sir?' Thus far the busy Captain had not looked up to Jonah, though the man now stands before him; but no sooner does he hear that hollow voice, than he darts a scrutinizing glance. 'We sail with the next coming tide,' at last he slowly answered, still intently eyeing him. 'No sooner, sir?'—'Soon enough for any honest man that goes a passenger.' Ha! Jonah, that's another stab. But he swiftly calls away the Captain from that scent. 'I'll sail with ye,'—he says,—'the passage money how much is that?— I'll pay now.' For it is particularly written, shipmates, as if it were a thing not to be overlooked in this history, 'that he paid the fare thereof' ere the craft did sail. And taken with the context, this is full of meaning.

"'Who's there?' shouts the Captain from his busy desk, quickly working on his paperwork for Customs—'Who's there?' Oh, how that innocent question unsettles Jonah! For a moment, he almost turns to run again. But he regains his composure. 'I'm looking for a passage on this ship to Tarshish; when do you set sail, sir?' Up until now, the busy Captain hasn’t even glanced at Jonah, even though he’s right in front of him; but as soon as he hears that hollow voice, he shoots a sharp look at him. 'We sail with the next tide,' he finally replies slowly, continuing to scrutinize him. 'Not any sooner, sir?'—'Soon enough for any honest man who’s a passenger.' Ouch! Jonah, that's another blow. But he quickly redirects the Captain from that line of thought. 'I'll sail with you,' he says, 'how much is the fare?—I'll pay now.' It is specifically noted, shipmates, as if it were something not to be missed in this story, 'that he paid the fare before the ship set sail.' And in light of the context, this carries a lot of significance."

"Now Jonah's Captain, shipmates, was one whose discernment detects crime in any, but whose cupidity exposes it only in the penniless. In this world, shipmates, sin that pays its way can travel freely and without a passport; whereas Virtue, if a pauper, is stopped at all frontiers. So Jonah's Captain prepares to test the length of Jonah's purse, ere he judge him openly. He charges him thrice the usual sum; and it's assented to. Then the Captain knows that Jonah is a fugitive; but at the same time resolves to help a flight that paves its rear with gold. Yet when Jonah fairly takes out his purse, prudent suspicions still molest the Captain. He rings every coin to find a counterfeit. Not a forger, any way, he mutters; and Jonah is put down for his passage. 'Point out my state-room, Sir,' says Jonah now, 'I'm travel-weary; I need sleep." "Thou look'st like it,' says the Captain, 'there's thy room.' Jonah enters, and would lock the door, but the lock contains no key. Hearing him foolishly fumbling there, the Captain laughs lowly to himself, and mutters something about the doors of convicts' cells being never allowed to be locked within. All dressed and dusty as he is, Jonah throws himself into his berth, and finds the little state-room ceiling almost resting on his forehead. The air is close, and Jonah gasps. Then, in that contracted hole, sunk, too, beneath the ship's water-line, Jonah feels the heralding presentiment of that stifling hour, when the whale shall hold him in the smallest of his bowels' wards.

"Now Jonah's captain, shipmates, was someone who could spot crime in anyone, but only exposed it in those who were broke. In this world, shipmates, sin that can pay its way travels freely and without a passport; whereas virtue, if poor, is stopped at every border. So Jonah's captain decides to test how much money Jonah has before judging him openly. He charges him three times the usual fare, and Jonah agrees. Then the captain figures out that Jonah is on the run, but he also decides to help a flight that is coated in gold. Yet when Jonah finally pulls out his wallet, cautious doubts still bother the captain. He checks every coin to make sure none are fake. 'Not a counterfeiter, for sure,' he mutters, and Jonah is cleared for his passage. 'Show me my stateroom, sir,' says Jonah now, 'I’m exhausted; I need to sleep.' 'You look like you need it,' says the captain, 'there’s your room.' Jonah enters and tries to lock the door, but the lock has no key. Hearing him clumsily fumbling with it, the captain chuckles quietly to himself and murmurs something about how convicts’ cell doors are never allowed to be locked from the inside. All dressed and dusty as he is, Jonah throws himself onto his bed and finds the small room's ceiling almost brushing against his forehead. The air is stuffy, and Jonah struggles to breathe. Then, in that cramped space, sunk beneath the ship’s waterline, Jonah feels the foreboding sense of that suffocating moment when the whale will hold him in the smallest of its insides."

"Screwed at its axis against the side, a swinging lamp slightly oscillates in Jonah's room; and the ship, heeling over towards the wharf with the weight of the last bales received, the lamp, flame and all, though in slight motion, still maintains a permanent obliquity with reference to the room; though, in truth, infallibly straight itself, it but made obvious the false, lying levels among which it hung. The lamp alarms and frightens Jonah; as lying in his berth his tormented eyes roll round the place, and this thus far successful fugitive finds no refuge for his restless glance. But that contradiction in the lamp more and more appals him. The floor, the ceiling, and the side, are all awry. 'Oh! so my conscience hangs in me!' he groans, "straight upward, so it burns; but the chambers of my soul are all in crookedness!'

"Screwed at its axis against the side, a swinging lamp slightly sways in Jonah's room; and the ship, tilting towards the wharf with the weight of the last bales received, causes the lamp, flame and all, to be in slight motion while still maintaining a permanent slant in relation to the room; even though, in reality, it’s perfectly straight, it highlights the false, uneven levels among which it hangs. The lamp unnerves and frightens Jonah; lying in his bed, his troubled eyes dart around the place, and this once-successful fugitive finds no rest for his restless gaze. But that contradiction in the lamp increasingly terrifies him. The floor, the ceiling, and the sides are all askew. 'Oh! so my conscience hangs in me!' he groans, 'straight upward, so it burns; but the chambers of my soul are all crooked!'"

"Like one who after a night of drunken revelry hies to his bed, still reeling, but with conscience yet pricking him, as the plungings of the Roman race-horse but so much the more strike his steel tags into him; as one who in that miserable plight still turns and turns in giddy anguish, praying God for annihilation until the fit be passed; and at last amid the whirl of woe he feels, a deep stupor steals over him, as over the man who bleeds to death, for conscience is the wound, and there's naught to staunch it; so, after sore wrestling in his berth, Jonah's prodigy of ponderous misery drags him drowning down to sleep.

"Like someone who, after a night of heavy drinking, stumbles to bed still swaying, but with guilt gnawing at him, feeling as if the weight of a thoroughbred racehorse is pressing down on him; like a person in that awful state who endlessly tosses and turns in dizzy despair, begging God for release until the discomfort fades; and finally, amidst the chaos of pain, he starts to feel a deep drowsiness come over him, like the man who is bleeding to death, because guilt is the wound, and there's nothing to stop it; so, after struggling hard in his bed, Jonah's overwhelming misery pulls him down into deep sleep.

"And now the time of tide has come; the ship casts off her cables; and from the deserted wharf the uncheered ship for Tarshish, all careening, glides to sea. That ship, my friends, was the first of recorded smugglers! the contraband was Jonah. But the sea rebels; he will not bear the wicked burden. A dreadful storm comes on, the ship is like to break. But now when the boatswain calls all hands to lighten her; when boxes, bales, and jars are clattering overboard; when the wind is shrieking, and the men are yelling, and every plank thunders with trampling feet right over Jonah's head; in all this raging tumult, Jonah sleeps his hideous sleep. He sees no black sky and raging sea, feels not the reeling timbers, and little hears he or heeds he the far rush of the mighty whale, which even now with open mouth is cleaving the seas after him. Aye, shipmates, Jonah was gone down into the sides of the ship— a berth in the cabin as I have taken it, and was fast asleep. But the frightened master comes to him, and shrieks in his dead ear, 'What meanest thou, O, sleeper! arise!' Startled from his lethargy by that direful cry, Jonah staggers to his feet, and stumbling to the deck, grasps a shroud, to look out upon the sea. But at that moment he is sprung upon by a panther billow leaping over the bulwarks. Wave after wave thus leaps into the ship, and finding no speedy vent runs roaring fore and aft, till the mariners come nigh to drowning while yet afloat. And ever, as the white moon shows her affrighted face from the steep gullies in the blackness overhead, aghast Jonah sees the rearing bowsprit pointing high upward, but soon beat downward again towards the tormented deep.

"And now the tide has come; the ship casts off its cables; and from the deserted dock, the uncheered ship for Tarshish, tilted to one side, glides out to sea. That ship, my friends, was the first recorded smuggler! The contraband was Jonah. But the sea rebels; it will not carry the wicked burden. A terrible storm arises, and the ship is about to break apart. But now, when the boatswain calls everyone to lighten the load; when boxes, bales, and jars are clattering overboard; when the wind is howling, and the men are shouting, and every plank is thundering with stomping feet right above Jonah's head; in all this chaos, Jonah sleeps his dreadful sleep. He sees no dark sky and raging sea, feels not the swaying timbers, and barely hears or pays attention to the distant rush of the mighty whale, which is even now chasing after him with its mouth wide open. Yes, crew members, Jonah had gone down into the ship's hold—a berth in the cabin as I've experienced it—and was fast asleep. But the terrified captain comes to him and screams in his ear, 'What do you mean, O sleeper! Get up!' Startled from his stupor by that terrifying cry, Jonah stumbles to his feet and staggers to the deck, grabbing a rope to look out at the sea. But at that moment, a massive wave crashes over the side of the ship. Wave after wave spills into the ship, and with no quick escape, it roars back and forth until the sailors come close to drowning while still afloat. And always, as the white moon reveals its frightened face from the steep channels in the darkness above, shocked Jonah sees the raised bowsprit pointing high up but soon being slammed back down toward the tortured deep."

"Terrors upon terrors run shouting through his soul. In all his cringing attitudes, the God-fugitive is now too plainly known. The sailors mark him; more and more certain grow their suspicions of him, and at last, fully to test the truth, by referring the whole matter to high Heaven, they all-outward to casting lots, to see for whose cause this great tempest was upon them. The lot is Jonah's; that discovered, then how furiously they mob him with their questions. 'What is thine occupation? Whence comest thou? Thy country? What people? But mark now, my shipmates, the behavior of poor Jonah. The eager mariners but ask him who he is, and where from; whereas, they not only receive an answer to those questions, but likewise another answer to a question not put by them, but the unsolicited answer is forced from Jonah by the hard hand of God that is upon him.

"Terrors upon terrors shout through his soul. In all his cringing positions, the fugitive from God is now painfully obvious. The sailors notice him; their suspicions grow more certain, and finally, to confirm the truth by appealing to high Heaven, they resort to casting lots to see whose fault this great storm is. The lot falls on Jonah; once that’s revealed, they bombard him with questions. 'What is your job? Where are you from? What is your country? What people are you?' But take note of poor Jonah's reaction. The eager sailors ask him who he is and where he's from; however, they not only get answers to those questions, but they also receive an additional answer to a question they never asked, forced from Jonah by the heavy hand of God pressing down on him."

"'I am a Hebrew,' he cries—and then—'I fear the Lord the God of Heaven who hath made the sea and the dry land!' Fear him, O Jonah? Aye, well mightest thou fear the Lord God then! Straightway, he now goes on to make a full confession; whereupon the mariners became more and more appalled, but still are pitiful. For when Jonah, not yet supplicating God for mercy, since he but too well knew the darkness of his deserts,— when wretched Jonah cries out to them to take him and cast him forth into the sea, for he knew that for his sake this great tempest was upon them; they mercifully turn from him, and seek by other means to save the ship. But all in vain; the indignant gale howls louder; then, with one hand raised invokingly to God, with the other they not unreluctantly lay hold of Jonah.

"'I am a Hebrew,' he cries—and then—'I fear the Lord, the God of Heaven who made the sea and the dry land!' Fear Him, Jonah? Yes, you should definitely fear the Lord God! Immediately, he goes on to make a full confession; this makes the sailors even more terrified, but they still feel compassion. Because when Jonah, not yet pleading with God for mercy, since he knows all too well the weight of his wrongdoings—when poor Jonah asks them to throw him into the sea, knowing that this great storm is because of him—they compassionately turn away from him and try to find another way to save the ship. But it’s all in vain; the furious wind screams louder; then, with one hand raised in prayer to God and the other reluctantly grabbing Jonah, they finally act.

"And now behold Jonah taken up as an anchor and dropped into the sea; when instantly an oily calmness floats out from the east, and the sea is still, as Jonah carries down the gale with him, leaving smooth water behind. He goes down in the whirling heart of such a masterless commotion that he scarce heeds the moment when he drops seething into the yawning jaws awaiting him; and the whale shoots-to all his ivory teeth, like so many white bolts, upon his prison. Then Jonah prayed unto the Lord out of the fish's belly. But observe his prayer, and so many white bolts, upon his prison. Then Jonah prayed unto learn a weighty lesson. For sinful as he is, Jonah does not weep and wail for direct deliverance. He feels that his dreadful punishment is just. He leaves all his deliverance to God, contenting himself with this, that spite of all his pains and pangs, he will still look towards His holy temple. And here, shipmates, is true and faithful repentance; not clamorous for pardon, but grateful for punishment. And how pleasing to God was this conduct in Jonah, is shown in the eventual deliverance of him from the sea and the whale. Shipmates, I do not place Jonah before you to be copied for his sin but I do place him before you as a model for repentance. Sin not; but if you do, take heed to repent of it like Jonah."

"And now look, Jonah is taken up like an anchor and dropped into the sea; immediately a calm breeze comes from the east, and the ocean is still, as Jonah pulls the storm down with him, leaving smooth waters behind. He descends into the chaotic turmoil, barely noticing when he plunges into the yawning jaws that await him; and the whale snaps all its ivory teeth shut, like white bolts on his prison. Then Jonah prayed to the Lord from the belly of the fish. Pay attention to his prayer, and remember that in this moment, Jonah learns an important lesson. Though he is sinful, Jonah does not cry out for immediate rescue. He understands that his severe punishment is deserved. He leaves his rescue in God's hands, content to still look towards His holy temple despite all his suffering. And here, my shipmates, is true and genuine repentance; not begging for forgiveness, but being thankful for punishment. And how pleasing to God was Jonah's behavior is shown by his eventual rescue from the sea and the whale. Shipmates, I don’t hold Jonah up for you to imitate his sin, but I present him as an example of repentance. Don’t sin; but if you do, be sure to repent like Jonah."

While he was speaking these words, the howling of the shrieking, slanting storm without seemed to add new power to the preacher, who, when describing Jonah's sea-storm, seemed tossed by a storm himself. His deep chest heaved as with a ground-swell; his tossed arms seemed the warring elements at work; and the thunders that rolled away from off his swarthy brow, and the light leaping from his eye, made all his simple hearers look on him with a quick fear that was strange to them.

While he was speaking these words, the howling of the shrieking, slanting storm outside seemed to empower the preacher even more. As he described Jonah's sea-storm, he appeared to be caught in a storm himself. His deep chest heaved like a rising tide; his flailing arms resembled the battling elements; and the thunder rolling away from his dark brow, along with the light flashing in his eyes, made all his simple listeners look at him with a sudden fear that was unfamiliar to them.

There now came a lull in his look, as he silently turned over the leaves of the Book once more; and, at last, standing motionless, with closed eyes, for the moment, seemed communing with God and himself.

There was a pause in his expression as he silently flipped through the pages of the Book again; and finally, standing still with his eyes closed, he seemed to be in conversation with God and himself for a moment.

But again he leaned over towards the people, and bowing his head lowly, with an aspect of the deepest yet manliest humility, he spake these words:

But once more he leaned toward the people, and bowing his head modestly, with a look of profound yet strong humility, he spoke these words:

"Shipmates, God has laid but one hand upon you; both his hands press upon me. I have read ye by what murky light may be mine the lesson that Jonah teaches to all sinners; and therefore to ye, and still more to me, for I am a greater sinner than ye. And now how gladly would I come down from this mast-head and sit on the hatches there where you sit, and listen as you listen, while some one of you reads me that other and more awful lesson which Jonah teaches to me, as a pilot of the living God. How being an anointed pilot-prophet, or speaker of true things and bidden by the Lord to sound those unwelcome truths in the ears of a wicked Nineveh, Jonah, appalled at the hostility he should raise, fled from his mission, and sought to escape his duty and his God by taking ship at Joppa. But God is everywhere; Tarshish he never reached. As we have seen, God came upon him in the whale, and swallowed him down to living gulfs of doom, and with swift slantings tore him along 'into the midst of the seas,' where the eddying depths sucked him ten thousand fathoms down, and 'the weeds were wrapped about his head,' and all the watery world of woe bowled over him. Yet even then beyond the reach of any plummet—'out of the belly of hell'—when the whale grounded upon the ocean's utmost bones, even then, God heard the engulphed, repenting prophet when he cried. Then God spake unto the fish; and from the shuddering cold and blackness of the sea, the whale came breeching up towards the warm and pleasant sun, and all the delights of air and earth; and 'vomited out Jonah upon the dry land;' when the word of the Lord came a second time; and Jonah, bruised and beaten—his ears, like two sea-shells, still multitudinously murmuring of the ocean— Jonah did the Almighty's bidding. And what was that, shipmates? To preach the Truth to the face of Falsehood! That was it!

"Shipmates, God has placed only one hand on you; both his hands weigh on me. I’ve understood, in whatever dim light I have, the lesson that Jonah teaches all sinners; and therefore to you, and even more to me, because I am a bigger sinner than you. And now how gladly would I climb down from this mast and sit with you on the hatches, listening as you do, while one of you reads me that other, more terrible lesson that Jonah teaches me, as a servant of the living God. How being an appointed pilot-prophet, or speaker of truths called by the Lord to share those unwelcome messages in the ears of wicked Nineveh, Jonah, terrified of the backlash, ran away from his mission and tried to dodge his duty and his God by boarding a ship in Joppa. But God is everywhere; he never made it to Tarshish. As we've seen, God confronted him in the whale, swallowing him down to living depths of despair, and with swift pulls dragged him along 'into the midst of the seas,' where the swirling depths pulled him ten thousand fathoms down, and 'the weeds were wrapped about his head,' as the entire watery world of misery rolled over him. Yet even then, beyond the reach of any measuring line—'out of the belly of hell'—when the whale grounded on the ocean's deepest parts, even then, God heard the engulfed, repentant prophet when he cried out. Then God spoke to the fish; and from the chilling darkness of the sea, the whale surged up towards the warm and inviting sun, and all the joys of air and earth; and 'vomited out Jonah onto dry land;' when the word of the Lord came a second time; and Jonah, bruised and battered—his ears, like two sea shells, still echoing with the sounds of the ocean— Jonah did the Almighty's bidding. And what was that, shipmates? To preach the Truth to the face of Falsehood! That was it!"

"This, shipmates, this is that other lesson; and woe to that pilot of the living God who slights it. Woe to him whom this world charms from Gospel duty! Woe to him who seeks to pour oil upon the waters when God has brewed them into a gale! Woe to him who seeks to please rather than to appal! Woe to him whose good name is more to him than goodness! Woe to him who, in this world, courts not dishonor! Woe to him who would not be true, even though to be false were salvation! Yea, woe to him who as the great Pilot Paul has it, while preaching to others is himself a castaway!

"This, shipmates, is that other lesson; and shame on the pilot of the living God who ignores it. Shame on anyone whom this world distracts from their Gospel duty! Shame on those who try to calm the storm when God has stirred it up into a tempest! Shame on those who want to please rather than to confront! Shame on anyone whose reputation means more to them than being good! Shame on anyone who, in this world, does not invite dishonor! Shame on anyone who wouldn’t be true, even if being false meant safety! Yes, shame on anyone who, as the great Pilot Paul says, while preaching to others is themselves a castaway!

He drooped and fell away from himself for a moment; then lifting his face to them again, showed a deep joy in his eyes, as he cried out with a heavenly enthusiasm,—"But oh! shipmates! on the starboard hand of every woe, there is a sure delight; and higher the top of that delight, than the bottom of the woe is deep. Is not the main-truck higher than the kelson is low? Delight is to him—a far, far upward, and inward delight— who against the proud gods and commodores of this earth, ever stands forth his own inexorable self. Delight is to him whose strong arms yet support him, when the ship of this base treacherous world has gone down beneath him. Delight is to him, who gives no quarter in the truth, and kills, burns, and destroys all sin though he pluck it out from under the robes of Senators and Judges. Delight,—top-gallant delight is to him, who acknowledges no law or lord, but the Lord his God, and is only a patriot to heaven. Delight is to him, whom all the waves of the billows of the seas of the boisterous mob can never shake from this sure Keel of the Ages. And eternal delight and deliciousness will be his, who coming to lay him down, can say with his final breath—O Father!— chiefly known to me by Thy rod—mortal or immortal, here I die. I have striven to be Thine, more than to be this world's, or mine own. Yet this is nothing: I leave eternity to Thee; for what is man that he should live out the lifetime of his God?"

He slumped for a moment, then lifted his face to them again, showing a deep joy in his eyes as he exclaimed with heavenly enthusiasm, “But oh! shipmates! on the starboard side of every sorrow, there is a sure joy; and that joy is higher than the depth of the sorrow. Isn't the main-truck higher than the kelson is low? Joy is for him—a far, far upward, and inward joy—who stands firm as his own unyielding self against the proud gods and commodores of this earth. Joy is for him whose strong arms still hold him up when the ship of this deceitful world has sunk beneath him. Joy belongs to him who makes no compromises with the truth, and confronts, challenges, and eradicates all sin, even if he has to rip it out from under the robes of Senators and Judges. Joy—top-gallant joy—is for him who recognizes no law or lord but the Lord his God, and is only loyal to heaven. Joy is for him who cannot be shaken from the solid foundation of the Ages by all the waves and tempests of the uproarious mob. And eternal joy and pleasure will be his, who, as he prepares to take his final rest, can say with his last breath—O Father!—known to me mainly through Your rod—mortal or immortal, here I die. I have tried to be Yours, more than to belong to this world or to myself. Yet this is nothing: I leave eternity to You; for what is man that he should live out the life of his God?”

He said no more, but slowly waving a benediction, covered his face with his hands, and so remained kneeling, till all the people had departed, and he was left alone in the place.

He said nothing more, but slowly waved a blessing, covered his face with his hands, and stayed kneeling until everyone had left, leaving him alone in the place.

CHAPTER 10

A Bosom Friend

A Close Friend

Returning to the Spouter-Inn from the Chapel, I found Queequeg there quite alone; he having left the Chapel before the benediction some time. He was sitting on a bench before the fire, with his feet on the stove hearth, and in one hand was holding close up to his face that little negro idol of his; peering hard into its face, and with a jack-knife gently whittling away at its nose, meanwhile humming to himself in his heathenish way.

Returning to the Spouter-Inn from the Chapel, I found Queequeg there all by himself; he had left the Chapel a while before the blessing. He was sitting on a bench in front of the fire, with his feet on the stove hearth, and in one hand, he was holding that little black idol of his up to his face; intently looking into its face, and with a jackknife gently carving away at its nose, while humming to himself in his usual way.

But being now interrupted, he put up the image; and pretty soon, going to the table, took up a large book there, and placing it on his lap began counting the pages with deliberate regularity; at every fiftieth page— as I fancied—stopping for a moment, looking vacantly around him, and giving utterance to a long-drawn gurgling whistle of astonishment. He would then begin again at the next fifty; seeming to commence at number one each time, as though he could not count more than fifty, and it was only by such a large number of fifties being found together, that his astonishment at the multitude of pages was excited.

But now interrupted, he put the image away and soon went to the table, picked up a large book, and placed it on his lap. He began counting the pages steadily; every fifty pages— or so I thought— he would pause for a moment, look blankly around him, and let out a long, surprised whistle. He would then start again with the next fifty, seeming to begin at one each time, as if he couldn't count beyond fifty, and it was only by finding so many fifties together that his astonishment at the sheer number of pages was sparked.

With much interest I sat watching him. Savage though he was, and hideously marred about the face—at least to my taste— his countenance yet had a something in it which was by no means disagreeable. You cannot hide the soul. Through all his unearthly tattooings, I thought I saw the traces of a simple honest heart; and in his large, deep eyes, fiery black and bold, there seemed tokens of a spirit that would dare a thousand devils. And besides all this, there was a certain lofty bearing about the Pagan, which even his uncouthness could not altogether maim. He looked like a man who had never cringed and never had had a creditor. Whether it was, too, that his head being shaved, his forehead was drawn out in freer and brighter relief, and looked more expansive than it otherwise would, this I will not venture to decide; but certain it was his head was phrenologically an excellent one. It may seem ridiculous, but it reminded me of General Washington's head, as seen in the popular busts of him. It had the same long regularly graded retreating slope from above the brows, which were likewise very projecting, like two long promontories thickly wooded on top. Queequeg was George Washington cannibalistically developed.

With great interest, I sat watching him. Savage as he was, and horribly scarred on the face—at least in my opinion—his expression still had something about it that wasn’t entirely unpleasant. You can’t hide the soul. Through all his strange tattoos, I thought I could see signs of a simple, honest heart; and in his large, deep eyes, fiery black and bold, there seemed to be hints of a spirit that would challenge a thousand devils. On top of all this, there was a certain dignified presence about the Pagan that even his awkwardness couldn’t completely diminish. He looked like a man who had never grovelled and never had a debtor. Whether it was that with his head shaved, his forehead stood out in clearer and brighter relief, making it seem more expansive than it would otherwise, I won’t claim to know; but it was clear that his head was, from a phrenological standpoint, an excellent one. It might seem silly, but it reminded me of General Washington's head as portrayed in popular busts. It had the same long, gradually retreating slope from above the brows, which were also very prominent, like two long cliffs thickly forested on top. Queequeg was George Washington’s cannibalistic counterpart.

Whilst I was thus closely scanning him, half-pretending meanwhile to be looking out at the storm from the casement, he never heeded my presence, never troubled himself with so much as a single glance; but appeared wholly occupied with counting the pages of the marvellous book. Considering how sociably we had been sleeping together the night previous, and especially considering the affectionate arm I had found thrown over me upon waking in the morning, I thought this indifference of his very strange. But savages are strange beings; at times you do not know exactly how to take them. At first they are overawing; their calm self-collectedness of simplicity seems as Socratic wisdom. I had noticed also that Queequeg never consorted at all, or but very little, with the other seamen in the inn. He made no advances whatever; appeared to have no desire to enlarge the circle of his acquaintances. All this struck me as mighty singular; yet, upon second thoughts, there was something almost sublime in it. Here was a man some twenty thousand miles from home, by the way of Cape Horn, that is— which was the only way he could get there—thrown among people as strange to him as though he were in the planet Jupiter; and yet he seemed entirely at his ease; preserving the utmost serenity; content with his own companionship; always equal to himself. Surely this was a touch of fine philosophy; though no doubt he had never heard there was such a thing as that. But, perhaps, to be true philosophers, we mortals should not be conscious of so living or so striving. So soon as I hear that such or such a man gives himself out for a philosopher, I conclude that, like the dyspeptic old woman, he must have "broken his digester."

While I was closely watching him, pretending to look out at the storm from the window, he completely ignored my presence and didn’t spare me a single glance. He seemed entirely focused on counting the pages of the amazing book. Considering how friendly we had been sleeping together the night before, and especially the affectionate arm I found over me when I woke up that morning, I found his indifference quite strange. But then again, people can be strange; sometimes you don’t quite know how to take them. At first, they can be intimidating; their calm simplicity seems like deep wisdom. I also noticed that Queequeg hardly interacted with the other sailors at the inn. He made no effort to socialize and didn’t seem interested in expanding his circle of friends. All of this struck me as really unusual, but on second thought, there was something almost profound about it. Here was a man who was about twenty thousand miles from home, via Cape Horn—the only way he could reach it—surrounded by people who seemed as foreign to him as if he were on Jupiter; yet he appeared completely at ease, maintaining perfect calm, happy in his own company, always composed. Surely, this was a hint of true philosophy, even though he probably had no idea it existed. But maybe, to be true philosophers, we humans shouldn’t be aware of living or striving in that way. As soon as I hear someone claim to be a philosopher, I assume that, like the cranky old lady, they must have "broken their digester."

As I sat there in that now lonely room; the fire burning low, in that mild stage when, after its first intensity has warmed the air, it then only glows to be looked at; the evening shades and phantoms gathering round the casements, and peering in upon us silent, solitary twain; the storm booming without in solemn swells; I began to be sensible of strange feelings. I felt a melting in me. No more my splintered heart and maddened hand were turned against the wolfish world. This soothing savage had redeemed it. There he sat, his very indifference speaking a nature in which there lurked no civilized hypocrisies and bland deceits. Wild he was; a very sight of sights to see; yet I began to feel myself mysteriously drawn towards him. And those same things that would have repelled most others, they were the very magnets that thus drew me. I'll try a pagan friend, thought I, since Christian kindness has proved but hollow courtesy. I drew my bench near him, and made some friendly signs and hints, doing my best to talk with him meanwhile. At first he little noticed these advances; but presently, upon my referring to his last night's hospitalities, he made out to ask me whether we were again to be bedfellows. I told him yes; whereat I thought he looked pleased, perhaps a little complimented.

As I sat there in that now lonely room, the fire burning low, in that gentle stage when, after its initial warmth has filled the air, it only glows for us to watch; the evening shadows and shapes gathering around the windows, peeking in on us, silent and solitary; the storm booming outside in deep waves; I started to feel strange emotions. I felt something melting inside me. No longer did my splintered heart and frenzied hand rage against the harsh world. This wild being had redeemed it. There he sat, his indifference revealing a nature free of civilized hypocrisy and smooth deceits. He was wild—a truly spectacular sight; yet I found myself mysteriously drawn to him. The very things that would have pushed others away were precisely what attracted me. I'll try a pagan friend, I thought, since Christian kindness has only shown itself to be empty politeness. I pulled my bench closer to him and made some friendly gestures and hints, trying my best to engage him in conversation. At first, he hardly acknowledged my attempts; but soon, when I mentioned his hospitality from the night before, he managed to ask me if we were going to share a bed again. I told him yes; at this, I thought he looked pleased, maybe even slightly flattered.

We then turned over the book together, and I endeavored to explain to him the purpose of the printing, and the meaning of the few pictures that were in it. Thus I soon engaged his interest; and from that we went to jabbering the best we could about the various outer sights to be seen in this famous town. Soon I proposed a social smoke; and, producing his pouch and tomahawk, he quietly offered me a puff. And then we sat exchanging puffs from that wild pipe of his, and keeping it regularly passing between us.

We then flipped through the book together, and I tried to explain the purpose of the printing and the meaning of the few pictures in it. Before long, I had his interest, and we started chatting as best we could about the different sights to see in this famous town. Soon, I suggested we share a smoke; and when he pulled out his pouch and pipe, he casually offered me a puff. Then we sat there, taking puffs from his unique pipe and passing it back and forth regularly.

If there yet lurked any ice of indifference towards me in the Pagan's breast, this pleasant, genial smoke we had, soon thawed it out, and left us cronies. He seemed to take to me quite as naturally and unbiddenly as I to him; and when our smoke was over, he pressed his forehead against mine, clasped me round the waist, and said that henceforth we were married; meaning, in his country's phrase, that we were bosom friends; he would gladly die for me, if need should be. In a countryman, this sudden flame of friendship would have seemed far too premature, a thing to be much distrusted; but in this simple savage those old rules would not apply.

If there was any lingering indifference towards me in the Pagan's heart, this pleasant, friendly smoke we shared quickly melted it away, and we became buddies. He took to me just as naturally and spontaneously as I did to him; and when our smoke session ended, he pressed his forehead against mine, wrapped his arms around my waist, and declared that from then on we were married; meaning, in his culture's terms, that we were close friends; he would gladly die for me if necessary. In a countryman, this sudden burst of friendship would have seemed way too soon and something to be suspicious of; but in this simple savage, those old rules didn't apply.

After supper, and another social chat and smoke, we went to our room together. He made me a present of his embalmed head; took out his enormous tobacco wallet, and groping under the tobacco, drew out some thirty dollars in silver; then spreading them on the table, and mechanically dividing them into two equal portions, pushed one of them towards me, and said it was mine. I was going to remonstrate; but he silenced me by pouring them into my trowsers' pockets. I let them stay. He then went about his evening prayers, took out his idol, and removed the paper firebrand. By certain signs and symptoms, I thought he seemed anxious for me to join him; but well knowing what was to follow, I deliberated a moment whether, in case he invited me, I would comply or otherwise.

After dinner, and after we chatted and smoked for a bit, we went to our room together. He gave me his preserved head as a gift; took out his huge tobacco pouch, and, digging through the tobacco, pulled out about thirty dollars in silver. Then he spread the money on the table, divided it into two equal piles, pushed one towards me, and said it was mine. I was about to argue, but he silenced me by stuffing the coins into my pants pockets. I let them stay there. He then went about his evening prayers, took out his figurine, and removed the paper firestarter. From his gestures, I thought he seemed eager for me to join him; but knowing what would happen next, I hesitated for a moment, considering whether I would agree if he invited me.

I was a good Christian; born and bred in the bosom of the infallible Presbyterian Church. How then could I unite with this wild idolator in worshipping his piece of wood? But what is worship? thought I. Do you suppose now, Ishmael, that the magnanimous God of heaven and earth—pagans and all included—can possibly be jealous of an insignificant bit of black wood? Impossible! But what is worship?— to do the will of God? that is worship. And what is the will of God?— to do to my fellow man what I would have my fellow man to do to me— that is the will of God. Now, Queequeg is my fellow man. And what do I wish that this Queequeg would do to me? Why, unite with me in my particular Presbyterian form of worship. Consequently, I must then unite with him in his; ergo, I must turn idolator. So I kindled the shavings; helped prop up the innocent little idol; offered him burnt biscuit with Queequeg; salamed before him twice or thrice; kissed his nose; and that done, we undressed and went to bed, at peace with our own consciences and all the world. But we did not go to sleep without some little chat.

I was a good Christian, raised in the heart of the infallible Presbyterian Church. So how could I join this wild idolater in worshipping his piece of wood? But what is worship? I thought. Do you really think, Ishmael, that the great God of heaven and earth—pagans included—could actually be jealous of a tiny piece of black wood? No way! But what is worship? To do the will of God? That’s worship. And what is the will of God? To treat my neighbor the way I’d want to be treated— that is the will of God. Now, Queequeg is my neighbor. And what do I want this Queequeg to do for me? Well, to join me in my particular Presbyterian way of worship. So, I have to join him in his; therefore, I have to become an idolater. So I lit the shavings, helped prop up the innocent little idol, offered him burnt biscuit with Queequeg, bowed before him a couple of times, kissed his nose, and when that was done, we undressed and went to bed, at peace with our own consciences and the whole world. But we didn’t fall asleep without having a little chat.

How it is I know not; but there is no place like a bed for confidential disclosures between friends. Man and wife, they say, there open the very bottom of their souls to each other; and some old couples often lie and chat over old times till nearly morning. Thus, then, in our hearts' honeymoon, lay I and Queequeg— a cosy, loving pair.

How it happened, I don’t know; but there’s no place like a bed for sharing secrets between friends. They say that husbands and wives reveal the deepest parts of their souls to each other; and some older couples often lie together and reminisce about the past until almost morning. So, in our hearts' honeymoon phase, there I was with Queequeg— a cozy, loving pair.

CHAPTER 11

Nightgown

Sleep dress

We had lain thus in bed, chatting and napping at short intervals, and Queequeg now and then affectionately throwing his brown tattooed legs over mine, and then drawing them back; so entirely sociable and free and easy were we; when, at last, by reason of our confabulations, what little nappishness remained in us altogether departed, and we felt like getting up again, though day-break was yet some way down the future.

We had been lying in bed, talking and napping briefly, with Queequeg occasionally playfully draping his brown tattooed legs over mine and then pulling them back. We were completely relaxed and comfortable with each other when, eventually, after our chatting, any sleepiness we had left completely faded away, and we felt like getting up again, even though dawn was still a bit away.

Yes, we became very wakeful; so much so that our recumbent position began to grow wearisome, and by little and little we found ourselves sitting up; the clothes well tucked around us, leaning against the headboard with our four knees drawn up close together, and our two noses bending over them, as if our knee-pans were warming-pans. We felt very nice and snug, the more so since it was so chilly out of doors; indeed out of bed-clothes too, seeing that there was no fire in the room. The more so, I say, because truly to enjoy bodily warmth, some small part of you must be cold, for there is no quality in this world that is not what it is merely by contrast. Nothing exists in itself. If you flatter yourself that you are all over comfortable, and have been so a long time, then you cannot be said to be comfortable any more. But if, like Queequeg and me in the bed, the tip of your nose or the crown of your head be slightly chilled, why then, indeed, in the general consciousness you feel most delightfully and unmistakably warm. For this reason a sleeping apartment should never be furnished with a fire, which is one of the luxurious discomforts of the rich. For the height of this sort of deliciousness is to have nothing but the blankets between you and your snugness and the cold of the outer air. Then there you lie like the one warm spark in the heart of an arctic crystal.

Yes, we became very alert; so much so that lying down started to feel uncomfortable, and little by little we found ourselves sitting up; our clothes tucked around us, leaning against the headboard with our knees pulled close together and our noses bent over them, as if our knees were warming pans. We felt really nice and cozy, especially since it was so chilly outside; in fact, it was cold even under the blankets, since there was no fire in the room. The more so, I say, because to truly enjoy being warm, a part of you has to be cold, because nothing in this world has meaning without contrast. Nothing exists on its own. If you convince yourself that you’re completely comfortable and have been for a long time, then you can’t really be comfortable anymore. But if, like Queequeg and me in the bed, the tip of your nose or the top of your head is a little chilly, then you truly feel wonderfully and unmistakably warm. For this reason, a bedroom should never have a fire, which is one of the luxurious discomforts of the wealthy. The peak of this kind of pleasure is to have nothing but blankets between you and the cold air outside. Then you lie there like the one warm spark in the heart of an arctic crystal.

We had been sitting in this crouching manner for some time, when all at once I thought I would open my eyes; for when between sheets, whether by day or by night, and whether asleep or awake, I have a way of always keeping my eyes shut, in order the more to concentrate the snugness of being in bed. Because no man can ever feel his own identity aright except his eyes be closed; as if, darkness were indeed the proper element of our essences, though light be more congenial to our clayey part. Upon opening my eyes then, and coming out of my own pleasant and self-created darkness into the imposed and coarse outer gloom of the unilluminated twelve-o'clock-at-night, I experienced a disagreeable revulsion. Nor did I at all object to the hint from Queequeg that perhaps it were best to strike a light, seeing that we were so wide awake; and besides he felt a strong desire to have a few quiet puffs from his Tomahawk. Be it said, that though I had felt such a strong repugnance to his smoking in the bed the night before, yet see how elastic our stiff prejudices grow when love once comes to bend them. For now I liked nothing better than to have Queequeg smoking by me, even in bed, because he seemed to be full of such serene household joy then. I no more felt unduly concerned for the landlord's policy of insurance. I was only alive to the condensed confidential comfortableness of sharing a pipe and a blanket with a real friend. With our shaggy jackets drawn about our shoulders, we now passed the Tomahawk from one to the other, till slowly there grew over us a blue hanging tester of smoke, illuminated by the flame of the new-lit lamp.

We had been sitting like this for a while when suddenly I decided to open my eyes; because when I'm under the covers, whether it's day or night, and whether I'm asleep or awake, I have this habit of keeping my eyes shut to really soak in the coziness of being in bed. No one can truly understand their own identity unless their eyes are closed; it's like darkness is the true element of our being, even though light suits our physical form better. So when I opened my eyes and came out of my own pleasant, self-created darkness into the harsh, uninviting gloom of midnight, I felt a strong discomfort. I didn't mind Queequeg suggesting that maybe we should light up since we were wide awake; plus, he had a strong urge to have a few calm puffs from his pipe. It's worth mentioning that even though I had been really put off by his smoking in bed the night before, look how flexible our rigid prejudices become when love comes into play. Because now, nothing made me happier than having Queequeg smoke beside me, even in bed, since he seemed so filled with peaceful, domestic happiness at that moment. I no longer worried about the landlord's insurance policy. I was only focused on the intimate, cozy comfort of sharing a pipe and a blanket with a true friend. With our thick jackets wrapped around our shoulders, we passed the pipe back and forth until a blue cloud of smoke formed above us, lit by the flame of the freshly lit lamp.

Whether it was that this undulating tester rolled the savage away to far distant scenes, I know not, but he now spoke of his native island; and, eager to hear his history, I begged him to go on and tell it. He gladly complied. Though at the time I but ill comprehended not a few of his words, yet subsequent disclosures, when I had become more familiar with his broken phraseology, now enable me to present the whole story such as it may prove in the mere skeleton I give.

Whether this wavering tester took the savage away to far-off places, I can't say, but he began to talk about his home island; eager to hear his story, I asked him to continue. He happily agreed. Although I didn't understand many of his words at the time, later revelations, after I became more familiar with his broken speech, now allow me to share the whole story as it exists in the brief outline I'm giving.

CHAPTER 12

Biographical

Biography

Queequeg was a native of Rokovoko, an island far away to the West and South. It is not down on any map; true places never are.

Queequeg was from Rokovoko, an island far off to the West and South. It isn’t on any map; real places never are.

When a new-hatched savage running wild about his native woodlands in a grass clout, followed by the nibbling goats, as if he were a green sapling; even then, in Queequeg's ambitious soul, lurked a strong desire to see something more of Christendom than a specimen whaler or two. His father was a High Chief, a King; his uncle a High Priest; and on the maternal side he boasted aunts who were the wives of unconquerable warriors. There was excellent blood in his veins—royal stuff; though sadly vitiated, I fear, by the cannibal propensity he nourished in his untutored youth.

When a newly hatched wild child was running around in his native woods wearing a grass skirt, followed by nibbling goats, like he was a young sapling; even then, deep inside Queequeg's ambitious spirit, there was a strong desire to experience more of the Christian world than just a whaling ship or two. His father was a High Chief, a King; his uncle was a High Priest; and on his mother’s side, he had aunts who were married to unbeatable warriors. He had great lineage—royal blood; though unfortunately, I fear, it was somewhat tainted by the cannibal tendencies he developed in his unrefined youth.

A Sag Harbor ship visited his father's bay, and Queequeg sought a passage to Christian lands. But the ship, having her full complement of seamen, spurned his suit; and not all the King his father's influence could prevail. But Queequeg vowed a vow. Alone in his canoe, he paddled off to a distant strait, which he knew the ship must pass through when she quitted the island. On one side was a coral reef; on the other a low tongue of land, covered with mangrove thickets that grew out into the water. Hiding his canoe, still afloat, among these thickets, with its prow seaward, he sat down in the stern, paddle low in hand; and when the ship was gliding by, like a flash he darted out; gained her side; with one backward dash of his foot capsized and sank his canoe; climbed up the chains; and throwing himself at full length upon the deck, grappled a ring-bolt there, and swore not to let it go, though hacked in pieces.

A Sag Harbor ship visited his father's bay, and Queequeg wanted to find a way to Christian lands. But the ship, already having a full crew, rejected his request; and even his father's royal influence couldn’t change that. But Queequeg made a vow. Alone in his canoe, he paddled off to a remote strait that he knew the ship had to pass through when it left the island. On one side was a coral reef; on the other, a low stretch of land, covered with mangrove thickets that extended into the water. Hiding his canoe, still floating, among these thickets with its front facing the sea, he sat in the back with his paddle lowered. When the ship glided by, he shot out like a flash; reached its side; with one swift kick of his foot capsized and sank his canoe; climbed the chains; and threw himself down on the deck, gripping a ring-bolt there, and swore not to let go, even if he was cut to pieces.

In vain the captain threatened to throw him overboard; suspended a cutlass over his naked wrists; Queequeg was the son of a King, and Queequeg budged not. Struck by his desperate dauntlessness, and his wild desire to visit Christendom, the captain at last relented, and told him he might make himself at home. But this fine young savage— this sea Prince of Wales, never saw the Captain's cabin. They put him down among the sailors, and made a whaleman of him. But like Czar Peter content to toil in the shipyards of foreign cities, Queequeg disdained no seeming ignominy, if thereby he might happily gain the power of enlightening his untutored countrymen. For at bottom—so he told me—he was actuated by a profound desire to learn among the Christians, the arts whereby to make his people still happier than they were; and more than that, still better than they were. But, alas! the practices of whalemen soon convinced him that even Christians could be both miserable and wicked; infinitely more so, than all his father's heathens. Arrived at last in old Sag Harbor; and seeing what the sailors did there; and then going on to Nantucket, and seeing how they spent their wages in that place also, poor Queequeg gave it up for lost. Thought he, it's a wicked world in all meridians; I'll die a pagan.

In vain the captain threatened to throw him overboard and waved a cutlass over his bare wrists; Queequeg was the son of a King, and he didn’t budge. Struck by his fearless determination and his wild desire to see the Christian world, the captain finally relented and told him he could make himself at home. But this fine young savage—this sea Prince of Wales—never saw the Captain's cabin. They put him among the sailors, and turned him into a whaleman. But just like Czar Peter was willing to work in the shipyards of foreign cities, Queequeg accepted any perceived humiliation if it meant he could eventually help his uneducated countrymen. Deep down—he told me—he was driven by a strong desire to learn from Christians the skills that would make his people even happier than they were, and better than they were. But, unfortunately, the ways of whalemen soon showed him that even Christians could be miserable and wicked; far more so than all his father’s heathens. When he finally arrived in old Sag Harbor and saw what the sailors did there, then went to Nantucket and witnessed how they spent their wages, poor Queequeg gave up hope. He thought, it's a wicked world everywhere; I'll die a pagan.

And thus an old idolator at heart, he yet lived among these Christians, wore their clothes, and tried to talk their gibberish. Hence the queer ways about him, though now some time from home.

And so, despite being an old idol worshipper at heart, he lived among these Christians, wore their clothes, and tried to speak their strange language. That's why he had such odd habits, even after being away from home for a while.

By hints I asked him whether he did not propose going back, and having a coronation; since he might now consider his father dead and gone, he being very old and feeble at the last accounts. He answered no, not yet; and added that he was fearful Christianity, or rather Christians, had unfitted him for ascending the pure and undefiled throne of thirty pagan Kings before him. But by and by, he said, he would return,—as soon as he felt himself baptized again. For the nonce, however, he proposed to sail about, and sow his wild oats in all four oceans. They had made a harpooneer of him, and that barbed iron was in lieu of a sceptre now.

By hinting, I asked him if he was thinking about going back and having a coronation since he could now consider his father dead and gone, being very old and weak at the last update. He said no, not yet; and added that he was worried Christianity, or rather Christians, had made him unfit to ascend the pure and undefiled throne of thirty pagan kings before him. But he said eventually he would return—as soon as he felt baptized again. For the time being, however, he planned to sail around and sow his wild oats across all four oceans. They had made him a harpooneer, and that harpoon was like a scepter now.

I asked him what might be his immediate purpose, touching his future movements. He answered, to go to sea again, in his old vocation. Upon this, I told him that whaling was my own design, and informed him of my intention to sail out of Nantucket, as being the most promising port for an adventurous whaleman to embark from. He at once resolved to accompany me to that island, ship aboard the same vessel, get into the same watch, the same boat, the same mess with me, in short to share my every hap; with both my hands in his, boldly dip into the Potluck of both worlds. To all this I joyously assented; for besides the affection I now felt for Queequeg, he was an experienced harpooneer, and as such, could not fail to be of great usefulness to one, who, like me, was wholly ignorant of the mysteries of whaling, though well acquainted with the sea, as known to merchant seamen.

I asked him what his immediate plans were regarding his future. He replied that he wanted to go to sea again, doing the same work as before. I then told him that whaling was my own goal and explained that I intended to set sail from Nantucket, since it was the best port for an adventurous whaleman to depart from. He immediately decided to join me on that island, get on the same ship, work the same watch, share the same boat, and eat the same meals with me; in short, he wanted to share all of my experiences. I happily agreed to all of this because, in addition to the affection I felt for Queequeg, he was a skilled harpooner and would be extremely helpful to someone like me, who was completely unfamiliar with the ins and outs of whaling, even though I knew the sea well from my time as a merchant sailor.

His story being ended with his pipe's last dying puff, Queequeg embraced me, pressed his forehead against mine, and blowing out the light, we rolled over from each other, this way and that, and very soon were sleeping.

His story finished with the last puff from his pipe, Queequeg hugged me, pressed his forehead to mine, and then, blowing out the light, we turned away from each other and soon fell asleep.

CHAPTER 13

Wheelbarrow

Wheelbarrow

Next morning, Monday, after disposing of the embalmed head to a barber, for a block, I settled my own and comrade's bill; using, however, my comrade's money. The grinning landlord, as well as the boarders, seemed amazingly tickled at the sudden friendship which had sprung up between me and Queequeg— especially as Peter Coffin's cock and bull stories about him had previously so much alarmed me concerning the very person whom I now companied with.

The next morning, Monday, after getting rid of the embalmed head to a barber for a display, I settled the bill for myself and my friend, using my friend's money. The grinning landlord and the other guests seemed really amused by the sudden friendship between me and Queequeg— especially since Peter Coffin's exaggerated stories about him had previously scared me about the very person I was now hanging out with.

We borrowed a wheelbarrow, and embarking our things, including my own poor carpet-bag, and Queequeg's canvas sack and hammock, away we went down to "the Moss," the little Nantucket packet schooner moored at the wharf. As we were going along the people stared; not at Queequeg so much— for they were used to seeing cannibals like him in their streets,— but at seeing him and me upon such confidential terms. But we heeded them not, going along wheeling the barrow by turns, and Queequeg now and then stopping to adjust the sheath on his harpoon barbs. I asked him why he carried such a troublesome thing with him ashore, and whether all whaling ships did not find their own harpoons. To this, in substance, he replied, that though what I hinted was true enough, yet he had a particular affection for his own harpoon, because it was of assured stuff, well tried in many a mortal combat, and deeply intimate with the hearts of whales. In short, like many inland reapers and mowers, who go into the farmer's meadows armed with their own scythes—though in no wise obliged to furnish them— even so, Queequeg, for his own private reasons, preferred his own harpoon.

We borrowed a wheelbarrow, and loaded our stuff, including my old carpet bag and Queequeg's canvas sack and hammock, and off we went to "the Moss," the little Nantucket packet schooner docked at the wharf. As we walked, people stared; not so much at Queequeg— because they were used to seeing people like him in town— but at the sight of him and me being so friendly. But we didn't pay them any mind, taking turns wheeling the barrow, while Queequeg occasionally stopped to adjust the sheath on his harpoon barbs. I asked him why he brought such a cumbersome thing with him on land, and whether whaling ships didn't supply their own harpoons. He basically replied that while what I said was true, he had a special attachment to his harpoon because it was reliable, well-tested in many dangerous encounters, and closely connected to the hearts of whales. In short, like many farmers who bring their own scythes into the fields— even though they aren’t required to— Queequeg, for his own reasons, preferred his own harpoon.

Shifting the barrow from my hand to his, he told me a funny story about the first wheelbarrow he had ever seen. It was in Sag Harbor. The owners of his ship, it seems, had lent him one, in which to carry his heavy chest to his boarding house. Not to seem ignorant about the thing—though in truth he was entirely so, concerning the precise way in which to manage the barrow—Queequeg puts his chest upon it; lashes it fast; and then shoulders the barrow and marches up the wharf. "Why," said I, "Queequeg, you might have known better than that, one would think. Didn't the people laugh?"

Shifting the wheelbarrow from my hands to his, he told me a funny story about the first wheelbarrow he had ever seen. It was in Sag Harbor. The owners of his ship had lent him one to carry his heavy chest to his boarding house. Not wanting to seem clueless about it—though he really had no idea how to work the barrow—Queequeg put his chest on it, tied it down, and then hoisted the barrow onto his shoulder and marched up the wharf. "Why," I said, "Queequeg, you would think you should’ve known better than that. Didn’t the people laugh?"

Upon this, he told me another story. The people of his island of Rokovoko, it seems, at their wedding feasts express the fragrant water of young cocoanuts into a large stained calabash like a punchbowl; and this punchbowl always forms the great central ornament on the braided mat where the feast is held. Now a certain grand merchant ship once touched at Rokovoko, and its commander—from all accounts, a very stately punctilious gentleman, at least for a sea captain— this commander was invited to the wedding feast of Queequeg's sister, a pretty young princess just turned of ten. Well; when all the wedding guests were assembled at the bride's bamboo cottage, this Captain marches in, and being assigned the post of honor, placed himself over against the punchbowl, and between the High Priest and his majesty the King, Queequeg's father. Grace being said,—for those people have their grace as well as we— though Queequeg told me that unlike us, who at such times look downwards to our platters, they, on the contrary, copying the ducks, glance upwards to the great Giver of all feasts—Grace, I say, being said, the High Priest opens the banquet by the immemorial ceremony of the island; that is, dipping his consecrated and consecrating fingers into the bowl before the blessed beverage circulates. Seeing himself placed next the Priest, and noting the ceremony, and thinking himself—being Captain of a ship—as having plain precedence over a mere island King, especially in the King's own house— the Captain coolly proceeds to wash his hands in the punch bowl;— taking it I suppose for a huge finger-glass. "Now," said Queequeg, "what you tink now?—Didn't our people laugh?"

Upon this, he told me another story. The people of his island, Rokovoko, apparently pour the fragrant water from young coconuts into a large, stained calabash, similar to a punch bowl; and this punch bowl always serves as the main centerpiece on the braided mat where the feast takes place. Once, a grand merchant ship stopped at Rokovoko, and its captain—a very dignified and particular gentleman, at least for a sea captain—was invited to the wedding feast of Queequeg's sister, a pretty young princess who had just turned ten. When all the wedding guests gathered at the bride's bamboo cottage, this captain walked in and took the place of honor, sitting directly across from the punch bowl and between the High Priest and his majesty, the King, who is Queequeg's father. After Grace was said—for those people have their own Grace just like we do—Queequeg told me that unlike us, who look down at our plates during such times, they actually look up to the great Giver of all feasts, mimicking the ducks. After Grace, the High Priest began the feast with the traditional ceremony of the island, dipping his consecrated fingers into the bowl before the blessed drink is shared. Seeing himself sitting next to the Priest, noticing the ceremony, and thinking that as Captain of a ship, he naturally outranked a mere island King, especially in the King’s own house—the Captain casually dipped his hands into the punch bowl, treating it as if it were a giant finger bowl. "Now," said Queequeg, "what do you think now? Didn't our people laugh?"

At last, passage paid, and luggage safe, we stood on board the schooner. Hoisting sail, it glided down the Acushnet river. On one side, New Bedford rose in terraces of streets, their ice-covered trees all glittering in the clear, cold air. Huge hills and mountains of casks on casks were piled upon her wharves, and side by side the world-wandering whale ships lay silent and safely moored at last; while from others came a sound of carpenters and coopers, with blended noises of fires and forges to melt the pitch, all betokening that new cruises were on the start; that one most perilous and long voyage ended, only begins a second; and a second ended, only begins a third, and so on, for ever and for aye. Such is the endlessness, yea, the intolerableness of all earthly effort.

At last, with our tickets bought and luggage secure, we were on board the schooner. As we raised the sails, it gracefully moved down the Acushnet River. On one side, New Bedford rose in levels of streets, its ice-covered trees sparkling in the clear, cold air. Massive hills and mountains of barrels were stacked on her docks, and next to each other, the whale ships from around the world lay quietly and safely moored at last. From other ships came the sounds of carpenters and coopers, mixed with the crackling of fires and forges melting pitch, signaling that new voyages were about to begin; that one dangerous and lengthy journey had just wrapped up, only to start another; and after the second one ended, a third would begin, and so on, endlessly. Such is the never-ending, even unbearable nature of all human effort.

Gaining the more open water, the bracing breeze waxed fresh; the little Moss tossed the quick foam from her bows, as a young colt his snortings. How I snuffed that Tartar air!—how I spurned that turnpike earth!— that common highway all over dented with the marks of slavish heels and hoofs; and turned me to admire the magnanimity of the sea which will permit no records.

Gaining the more open water, the refreshing breeze grew stronger; the little Moss tossed the quick foam from her bow like a young colt snorting. How I breathed in that wild air!—how I kicked away that beaten earth!—that shared highway all marked up by the tracks of enslaved feet and hooves; and turned to admire the generosity of the sea, which allows no lasting memories.

At the same foam-fountain, Queequeg seemed to drink and reel with me. His dusky nostrils swelled apart; he showed his filed and pointed teeth. On, on we flew, and our offing gained, the Moss did homage to the blast; ducked and dived her bows as a slave before the Sultan. Sideways leaning, we sideways darted; every ropeyarn tingling like a wire; the two tall masts buckling like Indian canes in land tornadoes. So full of this reeling scene were we, as we stood by the plunging bowsprit, that for some time we did not notice the jeering glances of the passengers, a lubber-like assembly, who marvelled that two fellow beings should be so companionable; as though a white man were anything more dignified than a whitewashed negro. But there were some boobies and bumpkins there, who, by their intense greenness, must have come from the heart and centre of all verdure. Queequeg caught one of these young saplings mimicking him behind his back. I thought the bumpkin's hour of doom was come. Dropping his harpoon, the brawny savage caught him in his arms, and by an almost miraculous dexterity and strength, sent him high up bodily into the air; then slightly tapping his stern in mid-somerset, the fellow landed with bursting lungs upon his feet, while Queequeg, turning his back upon him, lighted his tomahawk pipe and passed it to me for a puff.

At the same foam-fountain, Queequeg seemed to drink and sway with me. His dark nostrils flared; he showed his filed and pointed teeth. On, on we flew, and our distance gained, the Moss bowed to the wind; ducked and dived her bows like a slave before the Sultan. Leaning sideways, we darted sideways; every rope tingling like a wire; the two tall masts bending like Indian canes in a land tornado. We were so immersed in this wild scene at the plunging bowsprit that for a while we didn’t notice the mocking glances of the passengers, a clumsy group, who wondered how two people could be so friendly; as if a white man were anything more dignified than a whitewashed Black man. But there were some naive and simple folks there, who, by their sheer cluelessness, must have come from the very heart of all greenery. Queequeg spotted one of these young fools mimicking him behind his back. I thought it was the bumpkin's moment of reckoning. Dropping his harpoon, the muscular savage scooped him up in his arms and, with surprising skill and strength, flung him high into the air; then, with a gentle tap to his rear in mid-flip, the guy landed hard on his feet, gasping for breath, while Queequeg, turning away from him, lit his tomahawk pipe and offered it to me for a puff.

"Capting! Capting! yelled the bumpkin, running toward that officer;
"Capting, Capting, here's the devil."

"Captain! Captain!" yelled the country boy, running towards the officer;
"Captain, Captain, there's trouble."

"Hallo, you sir," cried the Captain, a gaunt rib of the sea, stalking up to Queequeg, "what in thunder do you mean by that? Don't you know you might have killed that chap?"

"Hey, you there," shouted the Captain, a skinny figure from the sea, walking up to Queequeg, "what the hell do you think you're doing? Don't you realize you could have killed that guy?"

"What him say?" said Queequeg, as he mildly turned to me.

"What did he say?" Queequeg asked, turning to me casually.

"He say," said I, "that you came near kill-e that man there," pointing to the still shivering greenhorn.

"He said," I said, "that you almost killed that guy over there," pointing to the still shaking beginner.

"Kill-e," cried Queequeg, twisting his tattooed face into an unearthly expression of disdain, "ah! him bevy small-e fish-e; Queequeg no kill-e so small-e fish-e; Queequeg kill-e big whale!"

"Kill that," shouted Queequeg, twisting his tattooed face into a strange expression of contempt, "ah! those are just tiny fish; I won’t kill such small fish; I’ll kill a big whale!"

"Look you," roared the Captain, "I'll kill-e you, you cannibal, if you try any more of your tricks aboard here; so mind your eye."

"Listen up," yelled the Captain, "I’ll kill you, you cannibal, if you pull any more of your tricks on this ship; so watch yourself."

But it so happened just then, that it was high time for the Captain to mind his own eye. The prodigious strain upon the main-sail had parted the weather-sheet, and the tremendous boom was now flying from side to side, completely sweeping the entire after part of the deck. The poor fellow whom Queequeg had handled so roughly, was swept overboard; all hands were in a panic; and to attempt snatching at the boom to stay it, seemed madness. It flew from right to left, and back again, almost in one ticking of a watch, and every instant seemed on the point of snapping into splinters. Nothing was done, and nothing seemed capable of being done; those on deck rushed toward the bows, and stood eyeing the boom as if it were the lower jaw of an exasperated whale. In the midst of this consternation, Queequeg dropped deftly to his knees, and crawling under the path of the boom, whipped hold of a rope, secured one end to the bulwarks, and then flinging the other like a lasso, caught it round the boom as it swept over his head, and at the next jerk, the spar was that way trapped, and all was safe. The schooner was run into the wind, and while the hands were clearing away the stern boat, Queequeg, stripped to the waist, darted from the side with a long living arc of a leap. For three minutes or more he was seen swimming like a dog, throwing his long arms straight out before him, and by turns revealing his brawny shoulders through the freezing foam. I looked at the grand and glorious fellow, but saw no one to be saved. The greenhorn had gone down. Shooting himself perpendicularly from the water, Queequeg, now took an instant's glance around him, and seeming to see just how matters were, dived down and disappeared. A few minutes more, and he rose again, one arm still striking out, and with the other dragging a lifeless form. The boat soon picked them up. The poor bumpkin was restored. All hands voted Queequeg a noble trump; the captain begged his pardon. From that hour I clove to Queequeg like a barnacle; yea, till poor Queequeg took his last long dive.

But at that moment, it was high time for the Captain to pay attention to his own issues. The intense strain on the mainsail had torn the weather-sheet, and the massive boom was now swinging back and forth, completely sweeping across the entire back part of the deck. The poor guy whom Queequeg had roughly handled was knocked overboard; everyone was in a panic, and trying to grab the boom to stop it seemed insane. It swung from right to left and back again in the blink of an eye, with every moment feeling like it would shatter into pieces. Nothing was getting done, and nothing seemed possible; those on deck rushed towards the front and stared at the boom as if it were the lower jaw of an angry whale. In the middle of this chaos, Queequeg dropped smoothly to his knees, crawled under the path of the boom, grabbed a rope, tied one end to the bulwarks, and then, like a cowboy with a lasso, caught it around the boom as it swept over him. With the next jolt, the spar was trapped, and everything was safe. The schooner was turned into the wind, and while the crew was clearing away the stern boat, Queequeg, shirtless, leaped from the side in a graceful arc. For more than three minutes, he was seen swimming like a dog, stretching his long arms straight out in front of him and occasionally revealing his muscular shoulders through the icy foam. I looked at the brave and impressive guy, but didn’t see anyone to save. The inexperienced guy had gone under. Shooting straight up from the water, Queequeg took a quick look around, seeming to assess the situation, then dove down and disappeared. A few minutes later, he surfaced, one arm still stroking through the water, and with the other pulling a lifeless body. The boat soon rescued them. The poor clumsy guy was revived. Everyone agreed that Queequeg was a hero; the captain apologized to him. From that moment on, I stuck to Queequeg like a barnacle; yes, until poor Queequeg took his last long dive.

Was there ever such unconsciousness? He did not seem to think that he at all deserved a medal from the Humane and Magnanimous Societies. He only asked for water—fresh water—something to wipe the brine off; that done, he put on dry clothes, lighted his pipe, and leaning against the bulwarks, and mildly eyeing those around him, seemed to be saying to himself—"It's a mutual, joint-stock world, in all meridians. We cannibals must help these Christians."

Was there ever such obliviousness? He didn’t appear to believe that he deserved a medal from the Humane and Magnanimous Societies at all. He just wanted water—fresh water—something to clean off the salt. Once that was done, he changed into dry clothes, lit his pipe, and leaning against the railing, he looked around at everyone with a gentle expression, as if he was thinking to himself, "It's a shared, joint-stock world, no matter where you are. We cannibals should support these Christians."

CHAPTER 14

Nantucket

Nantucket

Nothing more happened on the passage worthy the mentioning; so, after a fine run, we safely arrived in Nantucket.

Nothing else significant happened on the trip, so after a smooth journey, we safely arrived in Nantucket.

Nantucket! Take out your map and look at it. See what a real corner of the world it occupies; how it stands there, away off shore, more lonely than the Eddystone lighthouse. Look at it— a mere hillock, and elbow of sand; all beach, without a background. There is more sand there than you would use in twenty years as a substitute for blotting paper. Some gamesome wights will tell you that they have to plant weeds there, they don't grow naturally; that they import Canada thistles; that they have to send beyond seas for a spile to stop a leak in an oil cask; that pieces of wood in Nantucket are carried about like bits of the true cross in Rome; that people there plant toadstools before their houses, to get under the shade in summer time; that one blade of grass makes an oasis, three blades in a day's walk a prairie; that they wear quicksand shoes, something like Laplander snow-shoes; that they are so shut up, belted about, every way inclosed, surrounded, and made an utter island of by the ocean, that to their very chairs and tables small clams will sometimes be found adhering as to the backs of sea turtles. But these extravaganzas only show that Nantucket is no Illinois.

Nantucket! Pull out your map and take a look at it. See what a unique spot in the world it holds; how it sits there, far off shore, lonelier than the Eddystone lighthouse. Check it out—it’s just a little hill and a stretch of sand; all beach, with no backdrop. There's more sand there than you’d use in twenty years as blotting paper. Some playful characters will tell you that they have to plant weeds there since they don’t grow on their own; that they import Canada thistles; that they need to get a spile from overseas to fix a leak in an oil barrel; that pieces of wood in Nantucket are treated like relics of the true cross in Rome; that people there plant toadstools in front of their houses to enjoy the shade in the summer; that one blade of grass makes an oasis, and three blades in a day’s walk create a prairie; that they wear quicksand shoes, similar to Laplander snowshoes; that they are so enclosed, surrounded, and made completely into an island by the ocean, that even their chairs and tables sometimes have small clams clinging to them like they do to the backs of sea turtles. But these exaggerations only show that Nantucket is no Illinois.

Look now at the wondrous traditional story of how this island was settled by the red-men. Thus goes the legend. In olden times an eagle swooped down upon the New England coast and carried off an infant Indian in his talons. With loud lament the parents saw their child borne out of sight over the wide waters. They resolved to follow in the same direction. Setting out in their canoes, after a perilous passage they discovered the island, and there they found an empty ivory casket,— the poor little Indian's skeleton.

Look now at the amazing traditional story of how this island was settled by the Native Americans. Here’s how the legend goes. In ancient times, an eagle swooped down on the New England coast and seized an infant Native American in its claws. With loud cries of sorrow, the parents watched as their child was taken out of sight over the vast waters. They decided to follow in the same direction. Setting out in their canoes, after a dangerous journey they found the island, and there they discovered an empty ivory casket— the poor little Native American's skeleton.

What wonder, then, that these Nantucketers, born on a beach, should take to the sea for a livelihood! They first caught crabs and quahogs in the sand; grown bolder, they waded out with nets for mackerel; more experienced, they pushed off in boats and captured cod; and at last, launching a navy of great ships on the sea, explored this watery world; put an incessant belt of circumnavigations round it; peeped in at Behring's Straits; and in all seasons and all oceans declared everlasting war with the mightiest animated mass that has survived the flood; most monstrous and most mountainous! That Himmalehan, salt-sea, Mastodon, clothed with such portentousness of unconscious power, that his very panics are more to be dreaded than his most fearless and malicious assaults!

What a surprise, then, that these Nantucketers, born on a beach, would turn to the sea for their livelihood! They started by catching crabs and quahogs in the sand; growing bolder, they waded out with nets for mackerel; becoming more experienced, they ventured out in boats and caught cod; and finally, launching a fleet of large ships, they explored this watery world; circumnavigated it endlessly; peeked into Behring's Straits; and in all seasons and all oceans, declared a constant battle against the most powerful living force that has survived the flood; the most monstrous and mountainous! That Himalayan, salt-sea, Mastodon, wrapped in such overwhelming unconscious power that his very panics are more to be feared than his most fearless and vicious attacks!

And thus have these naked Nantucketers, these sea hermits, issuing from their ant-hill in the sea, overrun and conquered the watery world like so many Alexanders; parcelling out among them the Atlantic, Pacific, and Indian oceans, as the three pirate powers did Poland. Let America add Mexico to Texas, and pile Cuba upon Canada; let the English overswarm all India, and hang out their blazing banner from the sun; two thirds of this terraqueous globe are the Nantucketer's. For the sea is his; he owns it, as Emperors own empires; other seamen having but a right of way through it. Merchant ships are but extension bridges; armed ones but floating forts; even pirates and privateers, though following the sea as highwaymen the road. they but plunder other ships, other fragments of the land like themselves, without seeking to draw their living from the bottomless deep itself. The Nantucketer, he alone resides and riots on the sea; he alone, in Bible language, goes down to it in ships; to and fro ploughing it as his own special plantation. There is his home; there lies his business which a Noah's flood would not interrupt, though it overwhelmed all the millions in China. He lives on the sea, as prairie cocks in the prairie; he hides among the waves, he climbs them as chamois hunters climb the Alps. For years he knows not the land; so that when he comes to it at last, it smells like another world, more strangely than the moon would to an Earthsman. With the landless gull, that at sunset folds her wings and is rocked to sleep between billows; so at nightfall, the Nantucketer, out of sight of land, furls his sails, and lays him to his rest, while under his very pillow rush herds of walruses and whales.

And so, these bare Nantucketers, these sea hermits, emerging from their ant-like colony in the ocean, have overrun and taken control of the watery world like many Alexanders; dividing the Atlantic, Pacific, and Indian Oceans among themselves, just as the three pirate nations did with Poland. Let America add Mexico to Texas and stack Cuba on top of Canada; let the British flood all of India and fly their blazing flag from the sun; two-thirds of this watery globe belong to the Nantucketers. The sea belongs to him; he owns it, just as Emperors own their empires; other sailors only have a right of passage through it. Merchant ships are merely bridges; armed vessels are floating forts; even pirates and privateers, who roam the sea like highway robbers on the road, only raid other ships, which are fragments of land like themselves, without trying to make their living from the endless deep itself. The Nantucketer alone lives and revels on the sea; he alone, in biblical terms, goes down to it in ships; to and fro plowing it like his personal farm. There is his home; there lies his business which even a flood like Noah's wouldn't disrupt, even if it submerged millions in China. He lives on the sea like prairie chickens on the prairie; he hides in the waves and climbs them like chamois hunters ascend the Alps. For years, he doesn’t know the land, so when he finally reaches it, it smells like a different world, more odd than the moon would to a person from Earth. Like the landless gull, who at sunset folds her wings and is rocked to sleep between the waves; so at nightfall, the Nantucketer, out of sight of land, takes in his sails and rests, while beneath his very pillow, herds of walruses and whales rush by.

CHAPTER 15

Chowder

New England clam chowder

It was quite late in the evening when the little Moss came snugly to anchor, and Queequeg and I went ashore; so we could attend to no business that day, at least none but a supper and a bed. The landlord of the Spouter-Inn had recommended us to his cousin Hosea Hussey of the Try Pots, whom he asserted to be the proprietor of one of the best kept hotels in all Nantucket, and moreover he had assured us that Cousin Hosea, as he called him, was famous for his chowders. In short, he plainly hinted that we could not possibly do better than try pot-luck at the Try Pots. But the directions he had given us about keeping a yellow warehouse on our starboard hand till we opened a white church to the larboard, and then keeping that on the larboard hand till we made a corner three points to the starboard, and that done, then ask the first man we met where the place was; these crooked directions of his very much puzzled us at first, especially as, at the outset, Queequeg insisted that the yellow warehouse— our first point of departure—must be left on the larboard hand, whereas I had understood Peter Coffin to say it was on the starboard. However, by dint of beating about a little in the dark, and now and then knocking up a peaceable inhabitant to inquire the way, we at last came to something which there was no mistaking.

It was pretty late in the evening when the little Moss settled in, and Queequeg and I went ashore; so we couldn’t take care of any business that day, at least none except for dinner and a place to sleep. The landlord of the Spouter-Inn had recommended us to his cousin Hosea Hussey of the Try Pots, claiming he owned one of the best hotels in all of Nantucket, and he also assured us that Cousin Hosea, as he called him, was famous for his chowders. In short, he clearly hinted that we couldn't do better than have a meal at the Try Pots. But the directions he gave us—about keeping a yellow warehouse on our right until we saw a white church on the left, and then keeping that on the left until we turned three points to the right, and then asking the first person we met where the place was—really confused us at first, especially since Queequeg insisted that the yellow warehouse—our starting point—had to be on the left, while I thought Peter Coffin said it was on the right. However, after fumbling around a bit in the dark and occasionally stopping a local to ask for directions, we finally arrived at a place that was unmistakable.

Two enormous wooden pots painted black, and suspended by asses' ears, swung from the cross-trees of an old top-mast, planted in front of an old doorway. The horns of the cross-trees were sawed off on the other side, so that this old top-mast looked not a little like a gallows. Perhaps I was over sensitive to such impressions at the time, but I could not help staring at this gallows with a vague misgiving. A sort of crick was in my neck as I gazed up to the two remaining horns; yes, two of them, one for Queequeg, and one for me. It's ominous, thinks I. A Coffin my Innkeeper upon landing in my first whaling port; tombstones staring at me in the whalemen's chapel, and here a gallows! and a pair of prodigious black pots too! Are these last throwing out oblique hints touching Tophet?

Two huge black-painted wooden pots hung from the ears of donkeys, swinging from the cross-trees of an old top-mast that stood in front of an old doorway. The points of the cross-trees were cut off on the other side, making this old top-mast look a lot like a gallows. Maybe I was just overly sensitive to such things at the time, but I couldn't stop staring at this gallows with a strange sense of unease. I felt a sort of crick in my neck as I looked up at the two remaining points; yes, two of them, one for Queequeg and one for me. This feels ominous, I thought. A coffin from my innkeeper when I first arrived at this whaling port; tombstones staring at me in the whalemen's chapel; and now a gallows! And these giant black pots too! Are they suggesting something dark about hell?

I was called from these reflections by the sight of a freckled woman with yellow hair and a yellow gown, standing in the porch of the inn, under a dull red lamp swinging there, that looked much like an injured eye, and carrying on a brisk scolding with a man in a purple woollen shirt.

I was snapped out of my thoughts by the sight of a freckled woman with yellow hair and a yellow dress, standing on the inn’s porch under a dull red lamp that swung there, resembling an injured eye, and having a lively argument with a man in a purple wool shirt.

"Get along with ye," said she to the man, "or I'll be combing ye!"

"Get along with you," she said to the man, "or I’ll be combing you!"

"Come on, Queequeg," said I, "all right. There's Mrs. Hussey."

"Come on, Queequeg," I said, "okay. There's Mrs. Hussey."

And so it turned out; Mr. Hosea Hussey being from home, but leaving Mrs. Hussey entirely competent to attend to all his affairs. Upon making known our desires for a supper and a bed, Mrs. Hussey, postponing further scolding for the present, ushered us into a little room, and seating us at a table spread with the relics of a recently concluded repast, turned round to us and said—"Clam or Cod?"

And that's how it went; Mr. Hosea Hussey was away, but he left Mrs. Hussey fully capable of handling everything. When we expressed our need for dinner and a place to sleep, Mrs. Hussey set aside her scolding for now, led us into a small room, and sat us at a table covered with the leftovers from a meal that had just finished. She then turned to us and asked, "Clam or Cod?"

"What's that about Cods, ma'am?" said I, with much politeness.

"What's that about Cods, ma'am?" I asked politely.

"Clam or Cod?" she repeated.

"Clam or Cod?" she said again.

"A clam for supper? a cold clam; is that what you mean, Mrs. Hussey?" says I, "but that's a rather cold and clammy reception in the winter time, ain't it, Mrs. Hussey?"

"A clam for dinner? A cold clam; is that what you mean, Mrs. Hussey?" I said, "but that's a pretty chilly and damp greeting in the winter, isn't it, Mrs. Hussey?"

But being in a great hurry to resume scolding the man in the purple shirt who was waiting for it in the entry, and seeming to hear nothing but the word "clam," Mrs. Hussey hurried towards an open door leading to the kitchen, and bawling out "clam for two," disappeared.

But in a rush to get back to scolding the man in the purple shirt who was waiting in the entry, and only hearing the word "clam," Mrs. Hussey quickly moved toward an open door to the kitchen, yelling "clam for two," before disappearing.

"Queequeg," said I, "do you think that we can make out a supper for us both on one clam?"

"Queequeg," I said, "do you think we can make a meal for both of us with just one clam?"

However, a warm savory steam from the kitchen served to belie the apparently cheerless prospect before us. But when that smoking chowder came in, the mystery was delightfully explained. Oh! sweet friends, hearken to me. It was made of small juicy clams, scarcely bigger than hazel nuts, mixed with pounded ship biscuits, and salted pork cut up into little flakes! the whole enriched with butter, and plentifully seasoned with pepper and salt. Our appetites being sharpened by the frosty voyage, and in particular, Queequeg seeing his favourite fishing food before him, and the chowder being surpassingly excellent, we despatched it with great expedition: when leaning back a moment and bethinking me of Mrs. Hussey's clam and cod announcement, I thought I would try a little experiment. Stepping to the kitchen door, I uttered the word "cod" with great emphasis, and resumed my seat. In a few moments the savoury steam came forth again, but with a different flavor, and in good time a fine cod-chowder was placed before us.

However, a warm, savory steam from the kitchen contradicted the seemingly bleak situation we faced. But when that steaming chowder arrived, the mystery was joyfully revealed. Oh, dear friends, listen to me. It was made of small, juicy clams, barely larger than hazelnuts, combined with crushed ship biscuits and bits of salted pork! The whole dish was enriched with butter and generously seasoned with pepper and salt. Our appetites, sharpened by the chilly journey, especially Queequeg, who spotted his favorite seafood dish in front of him, found the chowder to be exceptionally good, so we devoured it quickly. After leaning back for a moment and recalling Mrs. Hussey's mention of clam and cod, I thought I would conduct a little experiment. I stepped to the kitchen door, pronounced the word "cod" with emphasis, and returned to my seat. Moments later, the savory steam wafted out again, but with a different aroma, and soon enough, a delicious cod chowder was served to us.

We resumed business; and while plying our spoons in the bowl, thinks I
to myself, I wonder now if this here has any effect on the head?
What's that stultifying saying about chowder-headed people?
"But look, Queequeg, ain't that a live eel in your bowl?
Where's your harpoon?"

We got back to our meal; and while stirring my soup, I thought to myself, I wonder if this has any impact on my mind? What's that dumb saying about clueless people? "But hey, Queequeg, is that a live eel in your bowl? Where's your harpoon?"

Fishiest of all fishy places was the Try Pots, which well deserved its name; for the pots there were always boiling chowders. Chowder for breakfast, and chowder for dinner, and chowder for supper, till you began to look for fish-bones coming through your clothes. The area before the house was paved with clam-shells. Mrs. Hussey wore a polished necklace of codfish vertebra; and Hosea Hussey had his account books bound in superior old shark-skin. There was a fishy flavor to the milk, too, which I could not at all account for, till one morning happening to take a stroll along the beach among some fishermen's boats, I saw Hosea's brindled cow feeding on fish remnants, and marching along the sand with each foot in a cod's decapitated head, looking very slipshod, I assure ye.

The fishiest place of all was the Try Pots, which totally lived up to its name; the pots there were always cooking chowder. Chowder for breakfast, chowder for dinner, and chowder for supper, until you started to expect fish bones poking through your clothes. The area in front of the house was paved with clam shells. Mrs. Hussey wore a shiny necklace made of codfish vertebrae; and Hosea Hussey had his account books covered in quality old shark skin. There was even a fishy taste to the milk, which I couldn't explain until one morning when I took a walk along the beach among some fishermen's boats and saw Hosea's brindled cow eating fish scraps and walking along the sand with each foot stuck in a cod's head, looking quite messy, I assure you.

Supper concluded, we received a lamp, and directions from Mrs. Hussey concerning the nearest way to bed; but, as Queequeg was about to precede me up the stairs, the lady reached forth her arm, and demanded his harpoon; she allowed no harpoon in her chambers. "Why not? said I; "every true whaleman sleeps with his harpoon— but why not?" "Because it's dangerous," says she. "Ever since young Stiggs coming from that unfort'nt v'y'ge of his, when he was gone four years and a half, with only three barrels of ile, was found dead in my first floor back, with his harpoon in his side; ever since then I allow no boarders to take sich dangerous weepons in their rooms at night. So, Mr. Queequeg" (for she had learned his name), "I will just take this here iron, and keep it for you till morning. But the chowder; clam or cod to-morrow for breakfast, men?"

After dinner, we were given a lamp and directions from Mrs. Hussey about the quickest way to get to our room. Just as Queequeg was about to head up the stairs first, she reached out her arm and asked for his harpoon, saying no harpoons were allowed in her guest rooms. "Why not?" I asked. "Every real whaleman sleeps with his harpoon. But why not?" "Because it's dangerous," she replied. "Ever since young Stiggs came back from that unfortunate voyage of his, when he was gone for four and a half years with only three barrels of oil, and was found dead on my first floor with his harpoon in his side; ever since then, I don't allow boarders to bring such dangerous weapons into their rooms at night. So, Mr. Queequeg" (because she had learned his name), "I'll just take this iron and keep it for you until morning. Now, how about the chowder? Clam or cod for breakfast tomorrow, gentlemen?"

"Both," says I; "and let's have a couple of smoked herring by way of variety."

"Both," I say; "and let's get a couple of smoked herring for something different."

CHAPTER 16

The Ship

The Boat

In bed we concocted our plans for the morrow. But to my surprise and no small concern, Queequeg now gave me to understand, that he had been diligently consulting Yojo—the name of his black little god— and Yojo had told him two or three times over, and strongly insisted upon it everyway, that instead of our going together among the whaling-fleet in harbor, and in concert selecting our craft; instead of this, I say, Yojo earnestly enjoined that the selection of the ship should rest wholly with me, inasmuch as Yojo purposed befriending us; and, in order to do so, had already pitched upon a vessel, which, if left to myself, I, Ishmael, should infallibly light upon, for all the world as though it had turned out by chance; and in that vessel I must immediately ship myself, for the present irrespective of Queequeg.

In bed, we made plans for the next day. But to my surprise and a bit of concern, Queequeg let me know that he had been consulting Yojo—the name of his small black god—and Yojo had insisted multiple times that instead of us going together to choose a ship from the whaling fleet in harbor, the decision should be entirely mine. Yojo wanted to help us and had already picked out a vessel that I would naturally find, as if by chance. I needed to get on that ship right away, without considering Queequeg for the moment.

I have forgotten to mention that, in many things, Queequeg placed great confidence in the excellence of Yojo's judgment and surprising forecast of things; and cherished Yojo with considerable esteem, as a rather good sort of god, who perhaps meant well enough upon the whole, but in all cases did not succeed in his benevolent designs.

I forgot to mention that, in many ways, Queequeg had a lot of faith in Yojo's judgment and surprising predictions; and held Yojo in high regard, thinking of him as a fairly good kind of god, who probably meant well overall, but often didn’t succeed in his good intentions.

Now, this plan of Queequeg's or rather Yojo's, touching the selection of our craft; I did not like that plan at all. I had not a little relied on Queequeg's sagacity to point out the whaler best fitted to carry us and our fortunes securely. But as all my remonstrances produced no effect upon Queequeg, I was obliged to acquiesce; and accordingly prepared to set about this business with a determined rushing sort of energy and vigor, that should quickly settle that trifling little affair. Next morning early, leaving Queequeg shut up with Yojo in our little bedroom—for it seemed that it was some sort of Lent or Ramadan, or day of fasting, humiliation, and prayer with Queequeg and Yojo that day; how it was I never could find out, for, though I applied myself to it several times, I never could master his liturgies and XXXIX Articles— leaving Queequeg, then, fasting on his tomahawk pipe, and Yojo warming himself at his sacrificial fire of shavings, I sallied out among the shipping. After much prolonged sauntering, and many random inquiries, I learnt that there were three ships up for three-years' voyages—The Devil-Dam the Tit-bit, and the Pequod. Devil-dam, I do not know the origin of; Tit-bit is obvious; Pequod you will no doubt remember, was the name of a celebrated tribe of Massachusetts Indians; now extinct as the ancient Medes. I peered and pryed about the Devil-Dam; from her, hopped over to the Tit-bit; and finally, going on board the Pequod, looked around her for a moment, and then decided that this was the very ship for us.

Now, about Queequeg's plan, or really Yojo's plan, for choosing our ship; I wasn't a fan of that idea at all. I had really hoped Queequeg would use his smart judgment to find the whaler best suited to safely carry us and our fortunes. But since all my protests had no effect on Queequeg, I had to go along with it; so I got ready to tackle this task with a determined energy and enthusiasm that would quickly resolve that minor issue. The next morning, early on, I left Queequeg with Yojo in our small bedroom—because it seemed like it was some kind of Lent or Ramadan, or a day of fasting, humility, and prayer for Queequeg and Yojo that day; how it all worked I never could figure out, because even though I tried several times, I could never grasp his rituals and XXXIX Articles—so, leaving Queequeg fasting on his tomahawk pipe, and Yojo warming himself by his sacrificial fire of shavings, I set out among the ships. After a lengthy stroll and many random questions, I learned that there were three ships going on three-year voyages—The Devil-Dam, the Tit-bit, and the Pequod. I don't know where the name Devil-Dam comes from; Tit-bit is obvious; Pequod, as you might remember, was the name of a famous tribe of Massachusetts Indians; now extinct like the ancient Medes. I peeked around the Devil-Dam; then hopped over to the Tit-bit; and finally, after going aboard the Pequod, I looked around for a moment and decided that this was the perfect ship for us.

You may have seen many a quaint craft in your day, for aught I know;— square-toed luggers; mountainous Japanese junks; butter-box galliots, and what not; but take my word for it, you never saw such a rare old craft as this same rare old Pequod. She was a ship of the old school, rather small if anything; with an old-fashioned claw-footed look about her. Long seasoned and weather-stained in the typhoons and calms of all four oceans, her old hull's complexion was darkened like a French grenadier's, who has alike fought in Egypt and Siberia. Her venerable bows looked bearded. Her masts—cut somewhere on the coast of Japan, where her original ones were lost overboard in a gale—her masts stood stiffly up like the spines of the three old kings of Cologne. Her ancient decks were worn and wrinkled, like the pilgrim-worshipped flag-stone in Canterbury Cathedral where Beckett bled. But to all these her old antiquities, were added new and marvellous features, pertaining to the wild business that for more than half a century she had followed. Old Captain Peleg, many years her chief-mate, before he commanded another vessel of his own, and now a retired seaman, and one of the principal owners of the Pequod,—this old Peleg, during the term of his chief-mateship, had built upon her original grotesqueness, and inlaid it, all over, with a quaintness both of material and device, unmatched by anything except it be Thorkill-Hake's carved buckler or bedstead. She was apparelled like any barbaric Ethiopian emperor, his neck heavy with pendants of polished ivory. She was a thing of trophies. A cannibal of a craft, tricking herself forth in the chased bones of her enemies. All round, her unpanelled, open bulwarks were garnished like one continuous jaw, with the long sharp teeth of the sperm whale, inserted there for pins, to fasten her old hempen thews and tendons to. Those thews ran not through base blocks of land wood, but deftly travelled over sheaves of sea-ivory. Scorning a turnstile wheel at her reverend helm, she sported there a tiller; and that tiller was in one mass, curiously carved from the long narrow lower jaw of her hereditary foe. The helmsman who steered by that tiller in a tempest, felt like the Tartar, when he holds back his fiery steed by clutching its jaw. A noble craft, but somehow a most melancholy! All noble things are touched with that.

You may have seen many unique ships in your time, for all I know;—square-toed luggers, enormous Japanese junks, butter-box galliots, and so on; but trust me when I say, you’ve never seen a ship as rare and old as this same old Pequod. She was a classic vessel, rather small for her kind; with an old-fashioned claw-footed appearance. Long weathered and stained by the storms and calm of all four oceans, her hull had darkened like a French soldier who had fought in both Egypt and Siberia. Her aged bow looked like it had a beard. Her masts—cut somewhere on the coast of Japan after her original ones were lost overboard in a storm—stood upright like the spines of the three old kings of Cologne. Her ancient decks were worn and wrinkled, similar to the revered flagstone in Canterbury Cathedral where Thomas Becket bled. But alongside all her old features, there were new and amazing additions from the wild business she had engaged in for over fifty years. Old Captain Peleg, who had been her chief mate before commanding another ship of his own, is now a retired sailor and one of the main owners of the Pequod. During his time as chief mate, this old Peleg had built upon her original oddity, adorning her entirely with a uniqueness in both material and design, unmatched except perhaps by Thorkill-Hake's carved shield or bed. She was dressed like some barbaric Ethiopian emperor, her neck heavy with polished ivory pendants. She was a vessel of trophies. A kind of cannibal ship, dressing herself with the chased bones of her enemies. All around, her open bulwarks were trimmed like one continuous jaw, featuring the long, sharp teeth of the sperm whale, used as pins to hold her old hempen ropes and tendons. Those ropes didn’t go through basic wooden blocks but skillfully moved over sheets of sea-ivory. Instead of a turnstile wheel at her revered helm, she had a tiller; and that tiller was carved from the long, narrow lower jaw of her hereditary enemy. The helmsman steering that tiller in a storm felt like a Tartar managing a fiery steed by gripping its jaw. A magnificent vessel, but somehow quite melancholic! All noble things carry that sadness.

Now when I looked about the quarter-deck, for some one having authority, in order to propose myself as a candidate for the voyage, at first I saw nobody; but I could not well overlook a strange sort of tent, or rather wigwam, pitched a little behind the main-mast. It seemed only a temporary erection used in port. It was of a conical shape, some ten feet high; consisting of the long, huge slabs of limber black bone taken from the middle and highest part of the jaws of the right-whale. Planted with their broad ends on the deck, a circle of these slabs laced together, mutually sloped towards each other, and at the apex united in a tufted point, where the loose hairy fibres waved to and fro like a top-knot on some old Pottowotamie Sachem's head. A triangular opening faced towards the bows of the ship, so that the insider commanded a complete view forward.

Now, as I looked around the quarter-deck for someone in charge to propose myself as a candidate for the voyage, I initially saw no one. However, I couldn't help but notice a strange kind of tent, or rather a wigwam, set up a little behind the main-mast. It appeared to be just a temporary structure used in port. It was conical in shape and about ten feet high, made from large, flexible slabs of black bone taken from the jaws of a right whale. These slabs were planted with their wide ends on the deck, forming a circle that leaned toward each other at the top, which came together in a tufted point, with loose, hairy fibers waving like a top-knot on some old Pottowatomie leader's head. A triangular opening faced the front of the ship, allowing anyone inside to have a complete view forward.

And half concealed in this queer tenement, I at length found one who by his aspect seemed to have authority; and who, it being noon, and the ship's work suspended, was now enjoying respite from the burden of command. He was seated on an old-fashioned oaken chair, wriggling all over with curious carving; and the bottom of which was formed of a stout interlacing of the same elastic stuff of which the wigwam was constructed.

And half hidden in this strange building, I finally found someone who looked like he was in charge; and since it was noon and the ship's activities were on hold, he was taking a break from the demands of leadership. He was sitting in an old-fashioned oak chair, covered in intricate carvings, with a seat made of the same durable material as the wigwam.

There was nothing so very particular, perhaps, about the appearance of the elderly man I saw; he was brown and brawny, like most old seamen, and heavily rolled up in blue pilot-cloth, cut in the Quaker style; only there was a fine and almost microscopic net-work of the minutest wrinkles interlacing round his eyes, which must have arisen from his continual sailings in many hard gales, and always looking to windward;— for this causes the muscles about the eyes to become pursed together. Such eye-wrinkles are very effectual in a scowl.

There wasn't anything particularly special about the older man's appearance that I noticed; he was tanned and muscular, like most old sailors, and bundled up in a blue pilot coat cut in a Quaker style. However, there was a delicate and almost microscopic network of tiny wrinkles around his eyes, likely caused by his constant exposure to harsh winds at sea and always looking into the wind—this makes the muscles around the eyes tighten. Those eye-wrinkles are quite effective for a scowl.

"Is this the Captain of the Pequod?" said I, advancing to the door of the tent.

"Is this the captain of the Pequod?" I asked, stepping toward the entrance of the tent.

"Supposing it be the Captain of the Pequod, what dost thou want of him?" he demanded.

"Assuming you mean the Captain of the Pequod, what do you want from him?" he asked.

"I was thinking of shipping."

"I was thinking of shipping."

"Thou wast, wast thou? I see thou art no Nantucketer— ever been in a stove boat?"

"Was that you? I see you're not from Nantucket—have you ever been in

"No, Sir, I never have."

"No, sir, I never have."

"Dost know nothing at all about whaling, I dare say—eh?

"Dost you know nothing at all about whaling, I dare say—eh?

"Nothing, Sir; but I have no doubt I shall soon learn.
I've been several voyages in the merchant service, and I think that-"

"Nothing, Sir; but I'm sure I'll find out soon enough.
I've been on several trips in the merchant service, and I think that-"

"Merchant service be damned. Talk not that lingo to me. Dost see that leg?—I'll take that leg away from thy stern, if ever thou talkest of the merchant service to me again. Marchant service indeed! I suppose now ye feel considerable proud of having served in those marchant ships. But flukes! man, what makes thee want to go a whaling, eh?—it looks a little suspicious, don't it, eh?—Hast not been a pirate, hast thou?— Didst not rob thy last Captain, didst thou?—Dost not think of murdering the officers when thou gettest to sea?"

"Forget the merchant service. Don’t talk to me in that language. Do you see that leg?—I’ll take that leg away from you if you ever mention the merchant service to me again. Merchant service, really! I guess you’re pretty proud of having worked on those merchant ships. But seriously, man, what makes you want to go whaling, huh?—isn't that a bit suspicious, don’t you think?—You haven’t been a pirate, have you?—Didn’t you rob your last captain?—You’re not planning to murder the officers when you get to sea, are you?"

I protested my innocence of these things. I saw that under the mask of these half humorous innuendoes, this old seaman, as an insulated Quakerish Nantucketer, was full of his insular prejudices, and rather distrustful of all aliens, unless they hailed from Cape Cod or the Vineyard.

I claimed I was innocent of all that. I realized that beneath the humor in these half-serious comments, this old sailor, as a sheltered, Quaker-like Nantucketer, was full of his narrow-minded views and quite suspicious of anyone who wasn't from Cape Cod or the Vineyard.

"But what takes thee a-whaling? I want to know that before I think of shipping ye."

"But what’s got you interested in whaling? I need to know that before I consider hiring you."

"Well, sir, I want to see what whaling is. I want to see the world."

"Well, sir, I want to check out whaling. I want to see the world."

"Want to see what whaling is, eh? Have ye clapped eye on Captain Ahab?"

"Want to see what whaling is, huh? Have you seen Captain Ahab?"

"Who is Captain Ahab, sir?"

"Who is Captain Ahab?"

"Aye, aye, I thought so. Captain Ahab is the Captain of this ship."

"Yeah, I figured that. Captain Ahab is the captain of this ship."

"I am mistaken then. I thought I was speaking to the Captain himself."

"I guess I was wrong. I thought I was talking to the Captain himself."

"Thou art speaking to Captain Peleg—that's who ye are speaking to, young man. It belongs to me and Captain Bildad to see the Pequod fitted out for the voyage, and supplied with all her needs, including crew. We are part owners and agents. But as I was going to say, if thou wantest to know what whaling is, as thou tellest ye do, I can put ye in a way of finding it out before ye bind yourself to it, past backing out. Clap eye on Captain Ahab, young man, and thou wilt find that he has only one leg."

"You’re talking to Captain Peleg—that’s who you’re talking to, young man. It’s up to me and Captain Bildad to get the Pequod ready for the voyage and to make sure it’s stocked with everything it needs, including the crew. We’re part owners and agents. But as I was saying, if you really want to know what whaling is, as you said you do, I can help you figure it out before you commit to it and can’t back out. Keep an eye on Captain Ahab, young man, and you’ll see that he has only one leg."

"What do you mean, sir? Was the other one lost by a whale?"

"What do you mean, sir? Did a whale swallow the other one?"

"Lost by a whale! Young man, come nearer to me: it was devoured, chewed up, crunched by the monstrousest parmacetty that ever chipped a boat!—ah, ah!"

"Swallowed by a whale! Young man, come closer to me: it was eaten, chewed up, crushed by the biggest sperm whale that ever destroyed a boat!—ah, ah!"

I was a little alarmed by his energy, perhaps also a little touched at the hearty grief in his concluding exclamation, but said as calmly as I could, "What you say is no doubt true enough, sir; but how could I know there was any peculiar ferocity in that particular whale, though indeed I might have inferred as much from the simple fact of the accident."

I was a bit shocked by his energy, and maybe also a little moved by the deep sadness in his last exclamation, but I replied as calmly as I could, "What you’re saying is probably true, sir; but how could I have known there was anything especially fierce about that particular whale? Though I might have guessed as much from the simple fact of the accident."

"Look ye now, young man, thy lungs are a sort of soft, d'ye see; thou dost not talk shark a bit. Sure, ye've been to sea before now; sure of that?"

"Look now, young man, your lungs are pretty weak, you see; you don't talk tough at all. Have you been at sea before? I'm sure of that?"

"Sir," said I, "I thought I told you that I had been four voyages in the merchant-"

"Sir," I said, "I thought I told you that I had been on four trips in the merchant-"

"Hard down out of that! Mind what I said about the marchant service— don't aggravate me—I won't have it. But let us understand each other. I have given thee a hint about what whaling is! do ye yet feel inclined for it?"

"Get out of that! Remember what I said about the merchant service—don't annoy me—I won't tolerate it. But let's be clear. I've given you a hint about what whaling is! Are you still interested in it?"

"I do, sir."

"I do, sir."

"Very good. Now, art thou the man to pitch a harpoon down a live whale's throat, and then jump after it? Answer, quick!"

"Very good. Now, are you the guy who can throw a harpoon down a live whale's throat and then jump in after it? Answer quickly!"

"I am, sir, if it should be positively indispensable to do so; not to be got rid of, that is; which I don't take to be the fact."

"I am, sir, if it really has to be done; not to be removed, that is; which I don’t believe to be the case."

"Good again. Now then, thou not only wantest to go a-whaling, to find out by experience what whaling is, but ye also want to go in order to see the world? Was not that what ye said? I thought so. Well then, just step forward there, and take a peep over the weather bow, and then back to me and tell me what ye see there."

"Good again. Now then, you not only want to go whaling to find out for yourself what it’s like, but you also want to go to see the world, right? Isn’t that what you said? I thought so. Well then, just step forward there and take a look over the weather bow, and then come back to me and tell me what you see."

For a moment I stood a little puzzled by this curious request, not knowing exactly how to take it, whether humorously or in earnest. But concentrating all his crow's feet into one scowl, Captain Peleg started me on the errand.

For a moment, I was a bit confused by this strange request, unsure how to interpret it—whether to take it as a joke or seriously. But with all his wrinkles scrunched into a frown, Captain Peleg set me on the task.

Going forward and glancing over the weather bow, I perceived that the ship swinging to her anchor with the flood-tide, was now obliquely pointing towards the open ocean. The prospect was unlimited, but exceedingly monotonous and forbidding; not the slightest variety that I could see.

Going forward and looking over the weather bow, I noticed that the ship, swinging at anchor with the rising tide, was now angled towards the open ocean. The view was endless but incredibly dull and bleak; there was not the slightest bit of variety that I could see.

"Well, what's the report?" said Peleg when I came back; "what did ye see?"

"Well, what's the report?" Peleg asked when I returned; "what did you see?"

"Not much," I replied—"nothing but water; considerable horizon though, and there's a squall coming up, I think."

"Not much," I replied—"just water; there's a wide horizon, though, and I think a storm is coming."

"Well, what dost thou think then of seeing the world?
Do ye wish to go round Cape Horn to see any more of it, eh?
Can't ye see the world where you stand?"

"Well, what do you think about seeing the world?
Do you want to go around Cape Horn to see more of it, huh?
Can't you see the world where you are?"

I was a little staggered, but go a-whaling I must, and I would; and the Pequod was as good a ship as any—I thought the best— and all this I now repeated to Peleg. Seeing me so determined, he expressed his willingness to ship me.

I was a bit taken aback, but I had to go whaling, and I wanted to; and the Pequod was as good a ship as any—I thought it was the best—and I told Peleg this. Seeing my determination, he agreed to take me on board.

"And thou mayest as well sign the papers right off," he added—"come along with ye." And so saying, he led the way below deck into the cabin.

"And you might as well sign the papers right now," he added—"come on with me." And with that, he led the way below deck into the cabin.

Seated on the transom was what seemed to me a most uncommon and surprising figure. It turned out to be Captain Bildad who along with Captain Peleg was one of the largest owners of the vessel; the other shares, as is sometimes the case in these ports, being held by a crowd of old annuitants; widows, fatherless children, and chancery wards; each owning about the value of a timber head, or a foot of plank, or a nail or two in the ship. People in Nantucket invest their money in whaling vessels, the same way that you do yours in approved state stocks bringing in good interest.

Sitting on the back of the ship was what I thought was a really unusual and surprising figure. It turned out to be Captain Bildad, who, along with Captain Peleg, was one of the biggest owners of the vessel. The other shares, as is often the case in these ports, were owned by a bunch of old retirees; widows, fatherless kids, and wards of the court, each owning about the value of a piece of timber, a foot of plank, or a couple of nails in the ship. People in Nantucket invest their money in whaling ships, just like you invest yours in safe state stocks that generate good interest.

Now, Bildad, like Peleg, and indeed many other Nantucketers, was a Quaker, the island having been originally settled by that sect; and to this day its inhabitants in general retain in an uncommon measure the peculiarities of the Quaker, only variously and anomalously modified by things altogether alien and heterogeneous. For some of these same Quakers are the most sanguinary of all sailors and whale-hunters. They are fighting Quakers; they are Quakers with a vengeance.

Now, Bildad, like Peleg and many other people from Nantucket, was a Quaker. The island was originally settled by that group, and even today, its residents generally display some unique traits of the Quakers, though these have been mixed in unusual ways with completely foreign and different influences. In fact, some of these same Quakers are the fiercest sailors and whale hunters around. They are aggressive Quakers; they are Quakers who fight back.

So that there are instances among them of men, who, named with Scripture names—a singularly common fashion on the island— and in childhood naturally imbibing the stately dramatic thee and thou of the Quaker idiom; still, from the audacious, daring, and boundless adventure of their subsequent lives, strangely blend with these unoutgrown peculiarities, a thousand bold dashes of character, not unworthy a Scandinavian sea-king, or a poetical Pagan Roman. And when these things unite in a man of greatly superior natural force, with a globular brain and a ponderous heart; who has also by the stillness and seclusion of many long night-watches in the remotest waters, and beneath constellations never seen here at the north, been led to think untraditionally and independently; receiving all nature's sweet or savage impressions fresh from her own virgin voluntary and confiding breast, and thereby chiefly, but with some help from accidental advantages, to learn a bold and nervous lofty language—that man makes one in a whole nation's census— a mighty pageant creature, formed for noble tragedies. Nor will it at all detract from him, dramatically regarded, if either by birth or other circumstances, he have what seems a half wilful overruling morbidness at the bottom of his nature. For all men tragically great are made so through a certain morbidness. Be sure of this, O young ambition, all mortal greatness is but disease. But, as yet we have not to do with such an one, but with quite another; and still a man, who, if indeed peculiar, it only results again from another phase of the Quaker, modified by individual circumstances.

There are some men among them who are named with biblical names—a surprisingly common trend on the island—and who, as children, naturally picked up the formal "thee" and "thou" of Quaker speech. Yet, from the bold, fearless, and limitless adventures of their later lives, they strangely mix these old quirks with a thousand bold traits, not unlike a Scandinavian sea king or a poetic Pagan Roman. When these traits come together in a man with exceptional natural strength, a round brain, and a heavy heart; who has also spent many long nights alone in the farthest waters, under constellations never seen in the north, and has been led to think in unconventional and independent ways; receiving all of nature's sweet or savage feelings fresh from her unspoiled and open heart, and largely learning a bold and powerful language—this man stands out in a nation's census—a magnificent figure, made for noble tragedies. It won’t detract from him, viewed dramatically, if either by birth or other circumstances, he has what seems to be a kind of willful, underlying morbidity in his nature. Because all tragically great men are shaped by a certain morbidity. Remember this, O young ambition; all human greatness is just a form of illness. But for now, we are not dealing with such a person; we are dealing with someone else entirely, still a man, who, if he seems unusual, it only arises from another aspect of the Quaker, shaped by individual circumstances.

Like Captain Peleg, Captain Bildad was a well-to-do, retired whaleman. But unlike Captain Peleg—who cared not a rush for what are called serious things, and indeed deemed those self-same serious things the veriest of all trifles—Captain Bildad had not only been originally educated according to the strictest sect of Nantucket Quakerism, but all his subsequent ocean life, and the sight of many unclad, lovely island creatures, round the Horn—all that had not moved this native born Quaker one single jot, had not so much as altered one angle of his vest. Still, for all this immutableness, was there some lack of common consistency about worthy Captain Bildad. Though refusing, from conscientious scruples, to bear arms against land invaders, yet himself had illimitably invaded the Atlantic and Pacific; and though a sworn foe to human bloodshed, yet had he in his straight-bodied coat, spilled tuns upon tuns of leviathan gore. How now in the contemplative evening of his days, the pious Bildad reconciled these things in the reminiscence, I do not know; but it did not seem to concern him much, and very probably he had long since come to the sage and sensible conclusion that a man's religion is one thing, and this practical world quite another. This world pays dividends. Rising from a little cabin boy in short clothes of the drabbest drab, to a harpooneer in a broad shad-bellied waistcoat; from that becoming boat-header, chief mate, and captain, and finally a shipowner; Bildad, as I hinted before, had concluded his adventurous career by wholly retiring from active life at the goodly age of sixty, and dedicating his remaining days to the quiet receiving of his well-earned income.

Like Captain Peleg, Captain Bildad was a well-off, retired whaler. But unlike Captain Peleg—who didn’t care at all about what we call serious matters, and even thought those very serious things were the biggest trifles—Captain Bildad had been raised in the strictest traditions of Nantucket Quakerism, and through his entire sailing life, and seeing many naked, beautiful island creatures around the Horn, none of that changed this native-born Quaker in the slightest; not even a wrinkle in his vest. Still, despite this unchanging nature, there was something inconsistent about the honorable Captain Bildad. Even though he refused, based on his principles, to fight against land invaders, he had no problem invading the Atlantic and Pacific; and even though he was a sworn enemy of shedding human blood, he had, within his perfectly fitted coat, spilled tons and tons of whale blood. I don’t know how in the reflective evening of his life, the devout Bildad reconciled these contradictions in his memories, but it didn’t seem to bother him much. He probably had long since come to the wise and sensible realization that a person's beliefs are one thing, and the real world is quite another. This world produces results. Rising from a small cabin boy in the dullest clothes to a harpooneer in a fancy vest; from a promising boat leader to chief mate, captain, and eventually a shipowner; Bildad, as I mentioned earlier, wrapped up his adventurous career by completely retiring from active life at the respectable age of sixty and dedicating his remaining days to quietly enjoying his well-deserved income.

Now, Bildad, I am sorry to say, had the reputation of being an incorrigible old hunks, and in his sea-going days, a bitter, hard task-master. They told me in Nantucket, though it certainly seems a curious story, that when he sailed the old Categut whaleman, his crew, upon arriving home, were mostly all carried ashore to the hospital, sore exhausted and worn out. For a pious man, especially for a Quaker, he was certainly rather hard-hearted, to say the least. He never used to swear, though, at his men, they said; but somehow he got an inordinate quantity of cruel, unmitigated hard work out of them. When Bildad was a chief-mate, to have his drab-colored eye intently looking at you, made you feel completely nervous, till you could clutch something—a hammer or a marling-spike, and go to work like mad, at something or other, never mind what. Indolence and idleness perished from before him. His own person was the exact embodiment of his utilitarian character. On his long, gaunt body, he carried no spare flesh, no superfluous beard, his chin having a soft, economical nap to it, like the worn nap of his broad-brimmed hat.

Now, Bildad, I regret to say, was known to be a stubborn old miser, and back in his whaling days, a harsh taskmaster. They told me in Nantucket, though it does sound like a strange story, that when he sailed the old Categut whaleman, his crew often came home and were mostly taken to the hospital, completely exhausted and worn out. For a religious man, especially a Quaker, he was certainly quite hard-hearted, to say the least. He never swore at his men, they said; but somehow he managed to extract an excessive amount of brutal, relentless labor from them. When Bildad was a chief-mate, having his dull-colored eyes fixed on you made you feel extremely anxious until you could grab something—a hammer or a marling-spike—and throw yourself into work, no matter what it was. Laziness and idleness didn't stand a chance around him. His own appearance perfectly reflected his practical personality. On his long, thin body, there was no extra flesh, no unnecessary beard; his chin had a soft, practical stubble, like the worn nap of his broad-brimmed hat.

Such, then, was the person that I saw seated on the transom when I followed Captain Peleg down into the cabin. The space between the decks was small; and there, bolt upright, sat old Bildad, who always sat so, and never leaned, and this to save his coat-tails. His broad-brim was placed beside him; his legs were stiffly crossed; his drab vesture was buttoned up to his chin; and spectacles on nose, he seemed absorbed in reading from a ponderous volume.

Such was the person I saw sitting on the transom when I followed Captain Peleg down into the cabin. The space between the decks was small, and there, sitting straight up, was old Bildad, who always sat like that and never leaned back, to protect his coat-tails. His wide-brimmed hat was beside him; his legs were stiffly crossed; his dull-colored vest was buttoned up to his chin; and with glasses perched on his nose, he seemed focused on reading from a heavy book.

"Bildad," cried Captain Peleg, "at it again, Bildad, eh? Ye have been studying those Scriptures, now, for the last thirty years, to my certain knowledge. How far ye got, Bildad?"

"Bildad," shouted Captain Peleg, "back at it again, Bildad, huh? You've been digging into those Scriptures for the last thirty years, as far as I know. How far have you gotten, Bildad?"

As if long habituated to such profane talk from his old shipmate, Bildad, without noticing his present irreverence, quietly looked up, and seeing me, glanced again inquiringly towards Peleg.

As if he was used to this kind of disrespectful conversation from his old shipmate, Bildad quietly looked up without acknowledging the irreverence, and seeing me, glanced back questioningly at Peleg.

"He says he's our man, Bildad," said Peleg, "he wants to ship."

"He says he's our guy, Bildad," Peleg said, "he wants to ship out."

"Dost thee?" said Bildad, in a hollow tone, and turning round to me.

"Dost thou?" Bildad said in a hollow tone, turning to face me.

"I dost," said I unconsciously, he was so intense a Quaker.

"I do," I said unconsciously; he was such an intense Quaker.

"What do ye think of him, Bildad?" said Peleg.

"What do you think of him, Bildad?" said Peleg.

"He'll do," said Bildad, eyeing me, and then went on spelling away at his book in a mumbling tone quite audible.

"He'll do," said Bildad, looking at me, and then continued reading from his book in a mumbling voice that was quite easy to hear.

I thought him the queerest old Quaker I ever saw, especially as Peleg, his friend and old shipmate, seemed such a blusterer. But I said nothing, only looking round me sharply. Peleg now threw open a chest, and drawing forth the ship's articles, placed pen and ink before him, and seated himself at a little table. I began to think it was high time to settle with myself at what terms I would be willing to engage for the voyage. I was already aware that in the whaling business they paid no wages; but all hands, including the captain, received certain shares of the profits called lays, and that these lays were proportioned to the degree of importance pertaining to the respective duties of the ship's company. I was also aware that being a green hand at whaling, my own lay would not be very large; but considering that I was used to the sea, could steer a ship, splice a rope, and all that, I made no doubt that from all I had heard I should be offered at least the 275th lay—that is, the 275th part of the clear net proceeds of the voyage, whatever that might eventually amount to. And though the 275th lay was what they call a rather long lay, yet it was better than nothing; and if we had a lucky voyage, might pretty nearly pay for the clothing I would wear out on it, not to speak of my three years' beef and board, for which I would not have to pay one stiver.

I thought he was the strangest old Quaker I’d ever seen, especially since Peleg, his friend and former shipmate, seemed so loud and boastful. But I didn’t say anything, just looked around sharply. Peleg then opened a chest, took out the ship's documents, set pen and ink in front of him, and sat down at a small table. I started to think it was about time to figure out what terms I’d be willing to agree to for the voyage. I already knew that in the whaling business, they didn’t pay wages; instead, everyone, including the captain, got a share of the profits called lays, and these shares were based on the importance of each person’s role on the ship. I knew that since I was new to whaling, my share wouldn’t be very big; but considering that I was familiar with the sea, could steer a ship, splice a rope, and all that, I was confident that from what I’d heard, I should be offered at least the 275th lay—that is, the 275th part of the clear net profits of the voyage, no matter what that ended up being. And even though the 275th lay was considered a rather small share, it was better than nothing; and if we had a successful voyage, it might almost cover the clothing I’d wear out on it, not to mention my three years' meals and board, for which I wouldn’t have to pay a cent.

It might be thought that this was a poor way to accumulate a princely fortune—and so it was, a very poor way indeed. But I am one of those that never take on about princely fortunes, and am quite content if the world is ready to board and lodge me, while I am putting up at this grim sign of the Thunder Cloud. Upon the whole, I thought that the 275th lay would be about the fair thing, but would not have been surprised had I been offered the 200th, considering I was of a broad-shouldered make.

It might seem like a bad way to build a fortune—and it definitely was, a very bad way. But I’m one of those people who doesn’t really care about big fortunes and am perfectly happy if the world is willing to give me a place to stay while I’m stuck at this gloomy spot called the Thunder Cloud. Overall, I figured that the 275th lay would be fair, but I wouldn't have been shocked if someone offered me the 200th, since I'm quite broad-shouldered.

But one thing, nevertheless, that made me a little distrustful about receiving a generous share of the profits was this: Ashore, I had heard something of both Captain Peleg and his unaccountable old crony Bildad; how that they being the principal proprietors of the Pequod, therefore the other and more inconsiderable and scattered owners, left nearly the whole management of the ship's affairs to these two. And I did not know but what the stingy old Bildad might have a mighty deal to say about shipping hands, especially as I now found him on board the Pequod, quite at home there in the cabin, and reading his Bible as if at his own fireside. Now while Peleg was vainly trying to mend a pen with his jack-knife, old Bildad, to my no small surprise, considering that he was such an interested party in these proceedings; Bildad never heeded us, but went on mumbling to himself out of his book, "Lay not up for yourselves treasures upon earth, where moth-"

But one thing that made me a bit suspicious about getting a generous share of the profits was this: Onshore, I had heard about both Captain Peleg and his mysterious old buddy Bildad; since they were the main owners of the Pequod, the other smaller and more scattered owners pretty much left all the management of the ship's affairs to these two. And I wasn't sure if the stingy old Bildad would have a significant say in hiring crew, especially since I now found him on board the Pequod, completely at ease in the cabin, reading his Bible as if he were at home. While Peleg was unsuccessfully trying to fix a pen with his jackknife, old Bildad, to my surprise—considering he was so involved in these proceedings—never paid us any attention but continued mumbling to himself from his book, "Lay not up for yourselves treasures upon earth, where moth-"

"Well, Captain Bildad," interrupted Peleg, "what d'ye say, what lay shall we give this young man?"

"Well, Captain Bildad," Peleg interrupted, "what do you think, what position should we offer this young man?"

"Thou knowest best," was the sepulchral reply, "the seven hundred and seventy-seventh wouldn't be too much, would it?—'where moth and rust do corrupt, but lay-'"

"You're the best judge," was the grave reply, "seven hundred and seventy-seven wouldn't be too much, right?—'where moth and rust do corrupt, but lay-'"

Lay, indeed, thought I, and such a lay! the seven hundred and seventy-seventh! Well, old Bildad, you are determined that I, for one, shall not lay up many lays here below, where moth and rust do corrupt. It was an exceedingly long lay that, indeed; and though from the magnitude of the figure it might at first deceive a landsman, yet the slightest consideration will show that though seven hundred and seventy-seven is a pretty large number, yet, when you come to make a teenth of it, you will then see, I say, that the seven hundred and seventy-seventh part of a farthing is a good deal less than seven hundred and seventy-seven gold doubloons; and so I thought at the time.

Lay, I thought, and what a lay it is! the seven hundred seventy-seventh! Well, old Bildad, you’re clearly set on making sure that I, at least, won’t accumulate many lays down here, where moth and rust destroy. That was an incredibly long lay, indeed; and while the sheer size of the number might initially fool someone unfamiliar with it, a little thought reveals that although seven hundred seventy-seven is quite a large number, when you break it down into a fraction, you’ll see that the seven hundred seventy-seventh part of a farthing is way less than seven hundred seventy-seven gold doubloons; and that’s what I thought at the time.

"Why, blast your eyes, Bildad," cried Peleg, Thou dost not want to swindle this young man! he must have more than that."

"Why, blast your eyes, Bildad," shouted Peleg, "You don’t want to cheat this young man! He deserves more than that."

"Seven hundred and seventy-seventh," again said Bildad, without lifting his eyes; and then went on mumbling—"for where your treasure is, there will your heart be also."

"Seven hundred and seventy-seventh," Bildad said again, keeping his eyes down. He then continued to mumble—"for where your treasure is, there will your heart be also."

"I am going to put him down for the three hundredth," said Peleg, "do ye hear that, Bildad! The three hundredth lay, I say."

"I’m putting him down for the three hundredth," Peleg said. "Do you hear that, Bildad? The three hundredth lay, I said."

Bildad laid down his book, and turning solemnly towards him said, "Captain Peleg, thou hast a generous heart; but thou must consider the duty thou owest to the other owners of this ship—widows and orphans, many of them— and that if we too abundantly reward the labors of this young man, we may be taking the bread from those widows and those orphans. The seven hundred and seventy-seventh lay, Captain Peleg."

Bildad put down his book and turned seriously to him, saying, "Captain Peleg, you have a generous heart; but you need to think about your responsibility to the other owners of this ship—widows and orphans, many of them—and that if we reward this young man too much for his work, we might be taking away the bread from those widows and orphans. The seven hundred and seventy-seventh lay, Captain Peleg."

"Thou Bildad!" roared Peleg, starting up and clattering about the cabin.
"Blast ye, Captain Bildad, if I had followed thy advice in these matters,
I would afore now had a conscience to lug about that would be heavy
enough to founder the largest ship that ever sailed round Cape Horn."

"Hey Bildad!" yelled Peleg, jumping up and making a racket in the cabin.
"Damn you, Captain Bildad, if I had listened to your advice in these matters,
I would have by now had a conscience to carry around that would be heavy
enough to sink the largest ship that ever sailed around Cape Horn."

"Captain Peleg," said Bildad steadily, "thy conscience may be drawing ten inches of water, or ten fathoms, I can't tell; but as thou art still an impenitent man, Captain Peleg, I greatly fear lest thy conscience be but a leaky one; and will in the end sink thee foundering down to the fiery pit, Captain Peleg."

"Captain Peleg," Bildad said firmly, "your conscience might be measuring ten inches of water or ten fathoms, I can't say; but since you're still an unrepentant man, Captain Peleg, I really worry that your conscience is just leaking; and in the end, it will drag you down to the fiery pit, Captain Peleg."

"Fiery pit! fiery pit! ye insult me, man; past all natural bearing, ye insult me. It's an all-fired outrage to tell any human creature that he's bound to hell. Flukes and flames! Bildad, say that again to me, and start my soulbolts, but I'll—I'll—yes, I'll swallow a live goat with all his hair and horns on. Out of the cabin, ye canting, drab-colored son of a wooden gun—a straight wake with ye!"

"Fiery pit! Fiery pit! You insult me, man; beyond all natural patience, you insult me. It’s a complete outrage to tell any human being that he’s destined for hell. Flukes and flames! Bildad, say that again to me, and kick my soul into gear, but I'll—I'll—yes, I'll swallow a live goat, fur and horns included. Get out of the cabin, you preaching, dull-colored son of a wooden gun—a straight wake with you!"

As he thundered out this he made a rush at Bildad, but with a marvellous oblique, sliding celerity, Bildad for that time eluded him.

As he shouted this, he charged at Bildad, but with an incredible quickness, Bildad managed to dodge him this time.

Alarmed at this terrible outburst between the two principal and responsible owners of the ship, and feeling half a mind to give up all idea of sailing in a vessel so questionably owned and temporarily commanded, I stepped aside from the door to give egress to Bildad, who, I made no doubt, was all eagerness to vanish from before the awakened wrath of Peleg. But to my astonishment, he sat down again on the transom very quietly, and seemed to have not the slightest intention of withdrawing. He seemed quite used to impenitent Peleg and his ways. As for Peleg, after letting off his rage as he had, there seemed no more left in him, and he, too, sat down like a lamb, though he twitched a little as if still nervously agitated. "Whew!" he whistled at last—"the squall's gone off to leeward, I think. Bildad, thou used to be good at sharpening a lance, mend that pen, will ye. My jack-knife here needs the grindstone. That's he; thank ye, Bildad. Now then, my young man, Ishmael's thy name, didn't ye say? Well then, down ye go here, Ishmael, for the three hundredth lay."

Startled by the intense argument between the two main owners of the ship, and seriously considering backing out of sailing on a vessel with such questionable ownership and temporary leadership, I stepped aside from the door to let Bildad leave. I was sure he wanted to escape from Peleg's renewed anger. But to my surprise, he quietly sat back down on the transom, showing no intention of leaving. He appeared completely accustomed to Peleg's furious moods. As for Peleg, after venting his anger, he seemed to have run out of steam and sat down like a lamb, although he still fidgeted a bit, as if still nervously shaken. "Whew!" he finally whistled—"I think the squall has passed. Bildad, you used to be good at sharpening a lance, could you fix that pen? My jackknife needs a touch-up on the grindstone. That's it; thanks, Bildad. Now then, young man, Ishmael was it? Well then, come on down here, Ishmael, for the three hundredth lay."

"Captain Peleg," said I, "I have a friend with me who wants to ship too— shall I bring him down to-morrow?"

"Captain Peleg," I said, "I have a friend with me who wants to join the crew too—should I bring him down tomorrow?"

"To be sure," said Peleg. "Fetch him along, and we'll look at him."

"Sure," said Peleg. "Bring him over, and we'll check him out."

"What lay does he want?" groaned Bildad, glancing up from the Book in which he had again been burying himself.

"What lie does he want?" groaned Bildad, glancing up from the book he had once again been absorbed in.

"Oh! never thee mind about that, Bildad," said Peleg. "Has he ever whaled it any?" turning to me.

"Oh! never mind about that, Bildad," Peleg said. "Has he ever been whaling?" he asked me.

"Killed more whales than I can count, Captain Peleg."

"Killed more whales than I can count, Captain Peleg."

"Well, bring him along then."

"Okay, bring him along then."

And, after signing the papers, off I went; nothing doubting but that I had done a good morning's work, and that the Pequod was the identical ship that Yojo had provided to carry Queequeg and me round the Cape.

And after signing the papers, I left; fully convinced that I had accomplished a good morning's work and that the Pequod was the exact ship that Yojo had arranged to take Queequeg and me around the Cape.

But I had not proceeded far, when I began to bethink me that the Captain with whom I was to sail yet remained unseen by me; though, indeed, in many cases, a whale-ship will be completely fitted out, and receive all her crew on board, ere the captain makes himself visible by arriving to take command; for sometimes these voyages are so prolonged, and the shore intervals at home so exceedingly brief, that if the captain have a family, or any absorbing concernment of that sort, he does not trouble himself much about his ship in port, but leaves her to the owners till all is ready for sea. However, it is always as well to have a look at him before irrevocably committing yourself into his hands. Turning back I accosted Captain Peleg, inquiring where Captain Ahab was to be found.

But I hadn’t gone far when I started to realize that I still hadn’t seen the Captain I was supposed to sail with; although, in many cases, a whale ship will be fully prepared and have all its crew on board before the captain shows up to take command. Sometimes these voyages are so long, and the time at home so incredibly short, that if the captain has a family or something important to handle, he doesn’t worry too much about his ship being in port and leaves it to the owners until everything is ready to go. Still, it's always a good idea to have a look at him before you commit yourself to his leadership. Turning back, I approached Captain Peleg and asked where Captain Ahab could be found.

"And what dost thou want of Captain Ahab? It's all right enough; thou art shipped."

"And what do you want from Captain Ahab? It's all good; you’re on board."

"Yes, but I should like to see him."

"Yes, but I would like to see him."

"But I don't think thou wilt be able to at present. I don't know exactly what's the matter with him; but he keeps close inside the house; a sort of sick, and yet he don't look so. In fact, he ain't sick; but no, he isn't well either. Any how, young man, he won't always see me, so I don't suppose he will thee. He's a queer man, Captain Ahab— so some think—but a good one. Oh, thou'lt like him well enough; no fear, no fear. He's a grand, ungodly, god-like man, Captain Ahab; doesn't speak much; but, when he does speak, then you may well listen. Mark ye, be forewarned; Ahab's above the common; Ahab's been in colleges, as well as 'mong the cannibals; been used to deeper wonders than the waves; fixed his fiery lance in mightier, stranger foes than whales. His lance! aye, the keenest and the surest that out of all our isle! Oh! he ain't Captain Bildad; no, and he ain't Captain Peleg; he's Ahab, boy; and Ahab of old, thou knowest, was a crowned king!"

"But I don't think you'll be able to right now. I don't know exactly what's wrong with him; but he stays cooped up inside the house. He seems sort of sick, but he doesn't really look like it. Actually, he isn't sick, but he isn't well either. Anyway, young man, he won't always see me, so I don't think he will see you. He's an odd guy, Captain Ahab—some people think so—but he's a good one. Oh, you'll like him just fine; no worries, no worries. He's a grand, unconventional, god-like man, Captain Ahab; he doesn't talk much, but when he does, you better listen. Just a heads up; Ahab's not ordinary; Ahab's been to colleges as well as among the cannibals; he's experienced deeper wonders than the waves; he's faced mightier, stranger foes than whales with his fiery spear. His spear! Yeah, the sharpest and the most reliable on all our isle! Oh! he isn't Captain Bildad; no, and he isn't Captain Peleg; he's Ahab, boy; and Ahab of old, you know, was a crowned king!"

"And a very vile one. When that wicked king was slain, the dogs, did they not lick his blood?"

"And a very vile one. When that evil king was killed, didn’t the dogs lick his blood?"

"Come hither to me—hither, hither," said Peleg, with a significance in his eye that almost startled me. "Look ye, lad; never say that on board the Pequod. Never say it anywhere. Captain Ahab did not name himself .'Twas a foolish, ignorant whim of his crazy, widowed mother, who died when he was only a twelvemonth old. And yet the old squaw Tistig, at Gayhead, said that the name would somehow prove prophetic. And, perhaps, other fools like her may tell thee the same. I wish to warn thee. It's a lie. I know Captain Ahab well; I've sailed with him as mate years ago; I know what he is— a good man—not a pious, good man, like Bildad, but a swearing good man—something like me—only there's a good deal more of him. Aye, aye, I know that he was never very jolly; and I know that on the passage home he was a little out of his mind for a spell; but it was the sharp shooting pains in his bleeding stump that brought that about, as any one might see. I know, too, that ever since he lost his leg last voyage by that accursed whale, he's been a kind of moody— desperate moody, and savage sometimes; but that will all pass off. And once for all, let me tell thee and assure thee, young man, it's better to sail with a moody good captain than a laughing bad one. So good-bye to thee—and wrong not Captain Ahab, because he happens to have a wicked name. Besides, my boy, he has a wife—not three voyages wedded—a sweet, resigned girl. Think of that; by that sweet girl that old man had a child: hold ye then there can be any utter, hopeless harm in Ahab? No, no, my lad; stricken, blasted, if he be, Ahab has his humanities!"

"Come here to me—come, come," said Peleg, with an intensity in his eyes that almost surprised me. "Listen, kid; never say that on board the Pequod. Never say it anywhere. Captain Ahab didn't choose that name. It was a silly, thoughtless idea from his crazy, widowed mother, who died when he was just a year old. And yet the old woman Tistig, at Gayhead, said the name would somehow prove prophetic. And maybe other fools like her will tell you the same. I want to warn you. It's a lie. I know Captain Ahab well; I sailed with him as a mate years ago; I know what he is—a good man—not a pious, good man like Bildad, but a swearing good man—something like me—only there's a lot more of him. Yeah, I know he was never really cheerful; and I know that on the way home he lost his mind for a bit; but that was just from the sharp pains in his bleeding stump, as anyone could see. I also know that since he lost his leg last voyage to that cursed whale, he's been kind of moody—really moody, and sometimes savage; but that will all pass. And let me tell you, young man, it's better to sail with a moody good captain than a laughing bad one. So goodbye, and don't judge Captain Ahab just because he has an unfortunate name. Plus, my boy, he has a wife—not married three voyages—a sweet, patient girl. Think about that; from that sweet girl, that old man had a child: so can there really be any total, hopeless harm in Ahab? No, no, my lad; even if he’s hurt and shattered, Ahab has his humanity!"

As I walked away, I was full of thoughtfulness; what had been incidentally revealed to me of Captain Ahab, filled me with a certain wild vagueness of painfulness concerning him. And somehow, at the time, I felt a sympathy and a sorrow for him, but for I don't know what, unless it was the cruel loss of his leg. And yet I also felt a strange awe of him; but that sort of awe, which I cannot at all describe, was not exactly awe; I do not know what it was. But I felt it; and it did not disincline me towards him; though I felt impatience at what seemed like mystery in him, so imperfectly as he was known to me then. However, my thoughts were at length carried in other directions, so that for the present dark Ahab slipped my mind.

As I walked away, I was deep in thought; what had accidentally been revealed to me about Captain Ahab filled me with a certain vague pain regarding him. Somehow, at that moment, I felt a mix of sympathy and sorrow for him, though I couldn’t exactly understand why, maybe it was the terrible loss of his leg. Yet, I also felt a strange kind of awe about him; but that kind of awe, which I can't quite explain, wasn't really awe at all; I have no idea what it was. But I felt it, and it didn’t make me dislike him, even though I was frustrated by the mystery that seemed to surround him, given how little I knew about him at that time. Eventually, my thoughts shifted elsewhere, and for now, dark Ahab faded from my mind.

CHAPTER 17

The Ramadan

Ramadan

As Queequeg's Ramadan, or Fasting and Humiliation, was to continue all day, I did not choose to disturb him till towards night-fall; for I cherish the greatest respect towards everybody's religious obligations, never mind how comical, and could not find it in my heart to undervalue even a congregation of ants worshipping a toad-stool; or those other creatures in certain parts of our earth, who with a degree of footmanism quite unprecedented in other planets, bow down before the torso of a deceased landed proprietor merely on account of the inordinate possessions yet owned and rented in his name.

As Queequeg's Ramadan, or Fasting and Humiliation, was set to last all day, I decided not to interrupt him until later in the evening. I have a deep respect for everyone’s religious practices, no matter how strange they may seem, and I couldn’t bring myself to belittle even a group of ants worshipping a mushroom; or those other beings in certain parts of our world who, with a level of servitude quite unlike anything on other planets, bow down before the remains of a deceased landowner just because of the vast properties still held and rented in his name.

I say, we good Presbyterian Christians should be charitable in these things, and not fancy ourselves so vastly superior to other mortals, pagans and what not, because of their half-crazy conceits on these subjects. There was Queequeg, now, certainly entertaining the most absurd notions about Yojo and his Ramadan;— but what of that? Queequeg thought he knew what he was about, I suppose; he seemed to be content; and there let him rest. All our arguing with him would not avail; let him be, I say: and Heaven have mercy on us all—Presbyterians and Pagans alike— for we are all somehow dreadfully cracked about the head, and sadly need mending.

I think we good Presbyterian Christians should be understanding about these things and not see ourselves as so much better than other people, pagans and whatnot, just because of their somewhat crazy ideas on these topics. Take Queequeg, for example, who had some pretty ridiculous beliefs about Yojo and his Ramadan; but so what? Queequeg thought he understood what he was doing, and he seemed happy enough, so let him be. All our arguing wouldn’t change his mind; just leave him alone, I say. And may Heaven have mercy on us all—Presbyterians and pagans alike—because we’re all a bit messed up in the head and really need some fixing.

Towards evening, when I felt assured that all his performances and rituals must be over, I went up to his room and knocked at the door; but no answer. I tried to open it, but it was fastened inside. "Queequeg," said I softly through the key-hole:—all silent. "I say, Queequeg! why don't you speak? It's I—Ishmael." But all remained still as before. I began to grow alarmed. I had allowed him such abundant time; I thought he might have had an apoplectic fit. I looked through the key-hole; but the door opening into an odd corner of the room, the key-hole prospect was but a crooked and sinister one. I could only see part of the foot-board of the bed and a line of the wall, but nothing more. I was surprised to behold resting against the wall the wooden shaft of Queequeg's harpoon, which the landlady the evening previous had taken from him, before our mounting to the chamber. That's strange, thought I; but at any rate, since the harpoon stands yonder, and he seldom or never goes abroad without it, therefore he must be inside here, and no possible mistake.

Towards evening, when I felt sure that all his performances and rituals must be over, I went up to his room and knocked on the door; but there was no answer. I tried to open it, but it was locked from the inside. "Queequeg," I said softly through the keyhole—silence. "I say, Queequeg! Why don't you speak? It's me—Ishmael." But all remained as quiet as before. I began to feel worried. I had given him plenty of time; I thought he might have had a stroke. I looked through the keyhole, but the door opened into an odd corner of the room, making the view through the keyhole strangely limited. I could only see part of the foot of the bed and a bit of the wall, but nothing more. I was surprised to see that Queequeg's harpoon was resting against the wall, which the landlady had taken from him the night before, before we went up to the room. That's odd, I thought; but since the harpoon is over there, and he almost never goes out without it, he must be inside, no doubt about it.

"Queequeg!—Queequeg!"—all still. Something must have happened. Apoplexy! I tried to burst open the door; but it stubbornly resisted. Running down stairs, I quickly stated my suspicions to the first person I met—the chamber-maid. "La! la!" she cried, "I thought something must be the matter. I went to make the bed after breakfast, and the door was locked; and not a mouse to be heard; and it's been just so silent ever since. But I thought, may be, you had both gone off and locked your baggage in for safe keeping. La! La, ma'am!—Mistress! murder! Mrs. Hussey! apoplexy!"—and with these cries she ran towards the kitchen, I following.

"Queequeg!—Queequeg!"—everything was quiet. Something must have gone wrong. A heart attack! I tried to force the door open, but it wouldn't budge. I rushed downstairs and quickly told the first person I saw—the chambermaid. "Oh dear!" she exclaimed, "I thought something might be off. I went to make the bed after breakfast, and the door was locked; not a sound was coming from inside; and it's been so quiet ever since. But I figured maybe you both had left and locked your things away for safekeeping. Oh dear, ma'am!—Mistress! Murder! Mrs. Hussey! Heart attack!"—and with those cries, she ran toward the kitchen, and I followed.

Mrs. Hussey soon appeared, with a mustard-pot in one hand and a vinegar-cruet in the other, having just broken away from the occupation of attending to the castors, and scolding her little black boy meantime.

Mrs. Hussey soon showed up, holding a mustard container in one hand and a vinegar bottle in the other, having just finished dealing with the condiments and scolding her little black boy in the process.

"Wood-house!" cried I, "which way to it? Run for God's sake, and fetch something to pry open the door—the axe!—the axe! he's had a stroke; depend upon it!"—and so saying I was unmethodically rushing up stairs again empty-handed, when Mrs. Hussey interposed the mustard-pot and vinegar-cruet, and the entire castor of her countenance.

"Wood-house!" I yelled, "which way to it? Please, hurry and grab something to pry open the door—the axe!—the axe! He's had a stroke; I’m sure of it!"—and saying that, I was chaotically running upstairs again empty-handed, when Mrs. Hussey interrupted me with the mustard pot, vinegar bottle, and a totally baffled look on her face.

"What's the matter with you, young man?"

"What's going on with you, young man?"

"Get the axe! For God's sake, run for the doctor, some one, while I pry it open!"

"Get the axe! For God's sake, go get a doctor, someone, while I try to pry it open!"

"Look here," said the landlady, quickly putting down the vinegar-cruet, so as to have one hand free; "look here; are you talking about prying open any of my doors?"— and with that she seized my arm. "What's the matter with you? What's the matter with you, shipmate?"

"Hey!" said the landlady, quickly putting down the vinegar bottle to free up one hand. "Hey, are you talking about breaking into any of my doors?"— and with that, she grabbed my arm. "What’s going on with you? What’s going on with you, buddy?"

In as calm, but rapid a manner as possible, I gave her to understand the whole case. Unconsciously clapping the vinegar-cruet to one side of her nose, she ruminated for an instant; then exclaimed—"No! I haven't seen it since I put it there." Running to a little closet under the landing of the stairs, she glanced in, and returning, told me that Queequeg's harpoon was missing. "He's killed himself," she cried. "It's unfort'nate Stiggs done over again there goes another counterpane—God pity his poor mother!— it will be the ruin of my house. Has the poor lad a sister? Where's that girl?—there, Betty, go to Snarles the Painter, and tell him to paint me a sign, with—"no suicides permitted here, and no smoking in the parlor;"—might as well kill both birds at once. Kill? The Lord be merciful to his ghost! What's that noise there? You, young man, avast there!"

In as calm and quick a way as I could, I explained the whole situation to her. Unconsciously pressing the vinegar bottle against one side of her nose, she thought for a moment and then said, “No! I haven’t seen it since I put it there.” She ran to a small closet under the stairs, took a quick look, and came back to tell me that Queequeg’s harpoon was missing. “He’s killed himself,” she shouted. “It’s unfortunate—Stiggs is at it again; there goes another bedspread—God help his poor mother!—this will ruin my house. Does the poor guy have a sister? Where’s that girl?—there, Betty, go tell Snarles the Painter to make me a sign that says—‘no suicides allowed here, and no smoking in the parlor;’—might as well handle both issues at once. Kill? Lord, have mercy on his ghost! What’s that noise over there? You, young man, stop right there!”

And running up after me, she caught me as I was again trying to force open the door.

And as she ran after me, she caught me just as I was trying to push the door open again.

"I won't allow it; I won't have my premises spoiled. Go for the locksmith, there's one about a mile from here. But avast!" putting her hand in her side pocket, "here's a key that'll fit, I guess; let's see." And with that, she turned it in the lock; but alas! Queequeg's supplemental bolt remained unwithdrawn within.

"I won't let that happen; I won't have my place messed up. Go get the locksmith, there's one about a mile away. But wait!" she said, reaching into her side pocket, "here's a key that should work, I think; let's check." With that, she turned it in the lock; but unfortunately, Queequeg's extra bolt was still engaged inside.

"Have to burst it open," said I, and was running down the entry a little, for a good start, when the landlady caught at me, again vowing I should not break down her premises; but I tore from her, and with a sudden bodily rush dashed myself full against the mark.

"Have to break it open," I said, and I started running down the hallway a bit for a good launch, when the landlady grabbed me, insisting that I wouldn't damage her property; but I pulled away from her and, with a sudden burst of energy, crashed right into the mark.

With a prodigious noise the door flew open, and the knob slamming against the wall, sent the plaster to the ceiling; and there, good heavens! there sat Queequeg, altogether cool and self-collected; right in the middle of the room; squatting on his hams, and holding Yojo on top of his head. He looked neither one way nor the other way but sat like a carved image with scarce a sign of active life.

With a loud bang, the door flew open, and the knob hit the wall, sending plaster flying to the ceiling. And there, unbelievable! sat Queequeg, completely calm and composed, right in the middle of the room; squatting on his heels, holding Yojo on top of his head. He didn’t look either way but sat like a statue with hardly any sign of life.

"Queequeg," said I, going up to him, "Queequeg, what's the matter with you?"

"Queequeg," I said, walking up to him, "Queequeg, what's wrong with you?"

"He hain't been a sittin' so all day, has he?" said the landlady.

"He hasn't been sitting all day, has he?" said the landlady.

But all we said, not a word could we drag out of him; I almost felt like pushing him over, so as to change his position, for it was almost intolerable, it seemed so painfully and unnaturally constrained; especially, as in all probability he had been sitting so for upwards of eight or ten hours, going too without his regular meals.

But no matter what we said, we couldn't get a word out of him; I almost felt like pushing him to shift his position because it was nearly unbearable, so painfully and unnaturally stiff; especially since he had probably been sitting like that for eight or ten hours, without his regular meals too.

"Mrs. Hussey," said I, "he's alive at all events; so leave us, if you please, and I will see to this strange affair myself."

"Mrs. Hussey," I said, "he's alive after all; so please, leave us, and I'll handle this strange situation myself."

Closing the door upon the landlady, I endeavored to prevail upon Queequeg to take a chair; but in vain. There he sat; and all he could do—for all my polite arts and blandishments— he would not move a peg, nor say a single word, nor even look at me, nor notice my presence in any the slightest way.

Closing the door on the landlady, I tried to convince Queequeg to take a seat, but it was pointless. He just sat there; no matter my polite gestures and coaxing—he wouldn’t budge an inch, wouldn’t say a word, wouldn’t even look at me or acknowledge my presence in any way.

I wonder, thought I, if this can possibly be a part of his Ramadan; do they fast on their hams that way in his native island. It must be so; yes, it's a part of his creed, I suppose; well, then, let him rest; he'll get up sooner or later, no doubt. It can't last for ever, thank God, and his Ramadan only comes once a year; and I don't believe it's very punctual then.

I wonder, I thought, if this could be part of his Ramadan; do they fast like that on his home island? It must be; yes, it's probably part of his beliefs. Well, let him rest. He'll get up sooner or later, for sure. It can't last forever, thank God, and his Ramadan only happens once a year; and I don't think it's very strict about timing then.

I went down to supper. After sitting a long time listening to the long stories of some sailors who had just come from a plum-pudding voyage, as they called it (that is, a short whaling-voyage in a schooner or brig, confined to the north of the line, in the Atlantic Ocean only); after listening to these plum-puddingers till nearly eleven o'clock, I went up stairs to go to bed, feeling quite sure by this time Queequeg must certainly have brought his Ramadan to a termination. But no; there he was just where I had left him; he had not stirred an inch. I began to grow vexed with him; it seemed so downright senseless and insane to be sitting there all day and half the night on his hams in a cold room, holding a piece of wood on his head.

I went down to dinner. After sitting for a long time listening to the lengthy stories of some sailors who had just returned from what they called a plum-pudding voyage (which means a short whaling trip in a schooner or brig, limited to the northern hemisphere in the Atlantic Ocean); after listening to these plum-puddingers until almost eleven o'clock, I went upstairs to go to bed, feeling pretty sure that by now Queequeg must have finished his Ramadan. But no; he was right where I had left him; he hadn't moved an inch. I started to feel annoyed with him; it seemed so pointless and crazy to be sitting there all day and half the night on his haunches in a cold room, balancing a piece of wood on his head.

"For heaven's sake, Queequeg, get up and shake yourself; get up and have some supper. You'll starve; you'll kill yourself, Queequeg." But not a word did he reply.

"For goodness' sake, Queequeg, get up and wake yourself; get up and have some dinner. You'll starve; you'll harm yourself, Queequeg." But he didn't say a word in response.

Despairing of him, therefore, I determined to go to bed and to sleep; and no doubt, before a great while, he would follow me. But previous to turning in, I took my heavy bearskin jacket, and threw it over him, as it promised to be a very cold night; and he had nothing but his ordinary round jacket on. For some time, do all I would, I could not get into the faintest doze. I had blown out the candle; and the mere thought of Queequeg— not four feet off—sitting there in that uneasy position, stark alone in the cold and dark; this made me really wretched. Think of it; sleeping all night in the same room with a wide awake pagan on his hams in this dreary, unaccountable Ramadan!

Despairing of him, I decided to go to bed and sleep, knowing he would probably join me soon. But before turning in, I grabbed my heavy bearskin jacket and draped it over him, since it promised to be a very cold night and he only had on his ordinary round jacket. I tried for a while, but I just couldn't manage to doze off. I had blown out the candle, and the very thought of Queequeg— not even four feet away—sitting there in that awkward position, completely alone in the cold and dark; it really made me miserable. Just think about it; sleeping all night in the same room with a wide-awake pagan sitting cross-legged in this dreary, inexplicable fast!

But somehow I dropped off at last, and knew nothing more till break of day; when, looking over the bedside, there squatted Queequeg, as if he had been screwed down to the floor. But as soon as the first glimpse of sun entered the window, up he got, with stiff and grating joints, but with a cheerful look; limped towards me where I lay; pressed his forehead again against mine; and said his Ramadan was over.

But somehow I finally dozed off and didn’t remember anything until morning; when I looked over the side of the bed, there was Queequeg sitting as if he’d been nailed to the floor. But as soon as the first light of day came in through the window, he got up, with stiff and creaky joints, but looking cheerful; he limped over to where I was lying, pressed his forehead against mine again, and said his Ramadan was over.

Now, as I before hinted, I have no objection to any person's religion, be it what it may, so long as that person does not kill or insult any other person, because that other person don't believe it also. But when a man's religion becomes really frantic; when it is a positive torment to him; and, in fine, makes this earth of ours an uncomfortable inn to lodge in; then I think it high time to take that individual aside and argue the point with him.

Now, as I mentioned earlier, I have no problem with anyone's religion, no matter what it is, as long as that person doesn't harm or insult someone else for not believing the same thing. But when a person's beliefs become extreme; when they truly torment him; and, ultimately, make this world an unpleasant place to be; then I think it's time to pull that individual aside and discuss it with him.

And just so I now did with Queequeg. "Queequeg," said I, "get into bed now, and lie and listen to me." I then went on, beginning with the rise and progress of the primitive religions, and coming down to the various religions of the present time, during which time I labored to show Queequeg that all these Lents, Ramadans, and prolonged ham-squattings in cold, cheerless rooms were stark nonsense; bad for the health; useless for the soul; opposed, in short, to the obvious laws of Hygiene and common sense. I told him, too, that he being in other things such an extremely sensible and sagacious savage, it pained me, very badly pained me, to see him now so deplorably foolish about this ridiculous Ramadan of his. Besides, argued I, fasting makes the body cave in; hence the spirit caves in; and all thoughts born of a fast must necessarily be half-starved. This is the reason why most dyspeptic religionists cherish such melancholy notions about their hereafters. In one word, Queequeg, said I, rather digressively; hell is an idea first born on an undigested apple-dumpling; and since then perpetuated through the hereditary dyspepsias nurtured by Ramadans.

And that's exactly what I did with Queequeg. "Queequeg," I said, "get into bed now and listen to me." I started talking about the rise and evolution of early religions and made my way to the different religions we have today. I tried to explain to Queequeg that all these Lents, Ramadans, and long sits in cold, dreary rooms were complete nonsense; bad for your health; useless for the soul; in short, against common sense and basic hygiene. I also mentioned that, since he was usually such a rational and wise guy, it really bothered me—like, it really hurt—to see him being so foolish about this ridiculous Ramadan of his. Plus, I argued, fasting weakens the body; therefore, the spirit weakens too; and any thoughts that come from fasting are bound to be half-baked. That's why most people with stomach issues have such gloomy ideas about what comes after this life. In other words, Queequeg, I said, a hell is an idea that was first created after eating an undigested apple dumpling, and it has since been passed down through the generations of upset stomachs caused by Ramadans.

I then asked Queequeg whether he himself was ever troubled with dyspepsia; expressing the idea very plainly, so that he could take it in. He said no; only upon one memorable occasion. It was after a great feast given by his father the king on the gaining of a great battle wherein fifty of the enemy had been killed by about two o'clock in the afternoon, and all cooked and eaten that very evening.

I then asked Queequeg if he had ever had issues with indigestion, putting it in simple terms so he could understand. He said no, except for one unforgettable time. It was after a huge feast his father the king hosted to celebrate winning a big battle where about fifty enemies were killed around two o'clock in the afternoon, and all the food was cooked and eaten that same evening.

"No more, Queequeg," said I, shuddering; "that will do;" for I knew the inferences without his further hinting them. I had seen a sailor who had visited that very island, and he told me that it was the custom, when a great battle had been gained there, to barbecue all the slain in the yard or garden of the victor; and then, one by one, they were placed in great wooden trenchers, and garnished round like a pilau, with breadfruit and cocoanuts; and with some parsley in their mouths, were sent round with the victor's compliments to all his friends, just as though these presents were so many Christmas turkeys.

"No more, Queequeg," I said, shuddering; "that's enough;" because I understood the implications without him needing to say more. I'd met a sailor who had been to that very island, and he told me that when a major battle was won there, they would barbecue all the dead in the yard or garden of the winner; then, one by one, they would be placed in large wooden trays, decorated like a pilaf, with breadfruit and coconuts; and with some parsley in their mouths, they were sent around with the winner's compliments to all his friends, just like these gifts were so many Christmas turkeys.

After all, I do not think that my remarks about religion made much impression upon Queequeg. Because, in the first place, he somehow seemed dull of hearing on that important subject, unless considered from his own point of view; and, in the second place, he did not more than one third understand me, couch my ideas simply as I would; and, finally, he no doubt thought he knew a good deal more about the true religion than I did. He looked at me with a sort of condescending concern and compassion, as though he thought it a great pity that such a sensible young man should be so hopelessly lost to evangelical pagan piety.

After all, I don’t think my comments about religion really affected Queequeg. For one, he seemed somewhat hard of hearing on that important topic unless it was viewed from his perspective; and for another, he understood maybe a third of what I was saying, no matter how simply I expressed my ideas. Lastly, he probably believed he knew a lot more about the true religion than I did. He looked at me with a sort of condescending concern and compassion, as if he thought it was a real shame that such a sensible young man like me was so hopelessly lost to evangelical pagan piety.

At last we rose and dressed; and Queequeg, taking a prodigiously hearty breakfast of chowders of all sorts, so that the landlady should not make much profit by reason of his Ramadan, we sallied out to board the Pequod, sauntering along, and picking our teeth with halibut bones.

At last, we got up and got dressed; Queequeg had an enormous breakfast of all kinds of chowders so the landlady wouldn't make too much profit because of his fasting, and we headed out to board the Pequod, strolling along and picking our teeth with halibut bones.

CHAPTER 18

His Mark

His brand

As we were walking down the end of the wharf towards the ship, Queequeg carrying his harpoon, Captain Peleg in his gruff voice loudly hailed us from his wigwam, saying he had not suspected my friend was a cannibal, and furthermore announcing that he let no cannibals on board that craft, unless they previously produced their papers.

As we walked to the end of the dock towards the ship, Queequeg carried his harpoon. Captain Peleg called out to us in his rough voice from his hut, saying he hadn't realized my friend was a cannibal and added that he didn’t allow any cannibals on board that ship unless they showed their papers first.

"What do you mean by that, Captain Peleg?" said I, now jumping on the bulwarks, and leaving my comrade standing on the wharf.

"What do you mean by that, Captain Peleg?" I asked, now jumping onto the railing and leaving my friend standing on the dock.

"I mean," he replied, "he must show his papers."

"I mean," he responded, "he needs to show his ID."

"Yes," said Captain Bildad in his hollow voice, sticking his head from behind Peleg's, out of the wigwam. "He must show that he's converted. Son of darkness," he added, turning to Queequeg, "art thou at present in communion with any Christian church?"

"Yes," said Captain Bildad in his hollow voice, sticking his head out from behind Peleg's, out of the wigwam. "He must show that he's changed. Son of darkness," he continued, turning to Queequeg, "are you currently part of any Christian church?"

"Why," said I, "he's a member of the first Congregational Church." Here be it said, that many tattooed savages sailing in Nantucket ships at last come to be converted into the churches.

"Why," I said, "he's a member of the first Congregational Church." It should be noted that many tattooed sailors traveling in Nantucket ships eventually end up getting converted in the churches.

"First Congregational Church," cried Bildad, "what! that worships in Deacon Deuteronomy Coleman's meeting-house?" and so saying, taking out his spectacles, he rubbed them with his great yellow bandana handkerchief, and putting them on very carefully, came out of the wigwam, and leaning stiffly over the bulwarks, took a good long look at Queequeg.

"First Congregational Church," shouted Bildad, "what! that meets in Deacon Deuteronomy Coleman's place?" As he said this, he pulled out his glasses, wiped them with his big yellow bandana, and put them on very carefully. He then stepped out of the wigwam, leaned stiffly over the railing, and took a long look at Queequeg.

"How long hath he been a member?" he then said, turning to me; "not very long, I rather guess, young man."

"How long has he been a member?" he asked me, turning to face me. "Not very long, I assume, young man."

"No," said Peleg, "and he hasn't been baptized right either, or it would have washed some of that devil's blue off his face."

"No," said Peleg, "and he hasn't been baptized properly either, or it would have washed some of that devil's blue off his face."

"Do tell, now," cried Bildad, "is this Philistine a regular member of Deacon Deuteronomy's meeting? I never saw him going there, and I pass it every Lord's day."

"Go on, tell me," exclaimed Bildad, "is this Philistine a regular at Deacon Deuteronomy's meeting? I've never seen him there, and I walk by it every Sunday."

"I don't know anything about Deacon Deuteronomy or his meeting," said I; "all I know is, that Queequeg here is a born member of the First Congregational Church. He is a deacon himself, Queequeg is."

"I don't know anything about Deacon Deuteronomy or his meeting," I said; "all I know is that Queequeg here is a natural member of the First Congregational Church. He is a deacon himself, Queequeg is."

"Young man," said Bildad sternly, "thou art skylarking with me— explain thyself, thou young Hittite. What church dost thee mean? answer me."

"Young man," Bildad said sternly, "you're messing around with me— explain yourself, you young Hittite. Which church are you talking about? Answer me."

Finding myself thus hard pushed, I replied, "I mean, sir, the same ancient Catholic Church to which you and I, and Captain Peleg there, and Queequeg here, and all of us, and every mother's son and soul of us belong; the great and everlasting First Congregation of this whole worshipping world; we all belong to that; only some of us cherish some queer crotchets no ways touching the grand belief; in that we all join hands."

Finding myself in a tight spot, I replied, "I mean, sir, the same ancient Catholic Church that you, me, Captain Peleg over there, Queequeg here, and all of us, and every last person, belong to; the great and everlasting First Congregation of the entire worshipping world; we all belong to that; it’s just that some of us hold onto some odd ideas that don’t really relate to the core belief; in that, we all come together."

"Splice, thou mean'st splice hands," cried Peleg, drawing nearer. "Young man, you'd better ship for a missionary, instead of a fore-mast hand; I never heard a better sermon. Deacon Deuteronomy—why Father Mapple himself couldn't beat it, and he's reckoned something. Come aboard, come aboard: never mind about the papers. I say, tell Quohog there— what's that you call him? tell Quohog to step along. By the great anchor, what a harpoon he's got there! looks like good stuff that; and he handles it about right. I say, Quohog, or whatever your name is, did you ever stand in the head of a whale-boat? did you ever strike a fish?"

"Splice, you mean shake hands," shouted Peleg, moving closer. "Young man, you’d be better off signing up as a missionary instead of a Foremast hand; I’ve never heard a better sermon. Deacon Deuteronomy—Father Mapple himself couldn't do better, and he’s considered quite something. Come aboard, come aboard: forget about the papers. I say, tell Quohog there—what do you call him? tell Quohog to come over. By the great anchor, what a harpoon he’s got! Looks like good stuff; and he knows how to handle it. I say, Quohog, or whatever your name is, have you ever been at the front of a whaleboat? Have you ever struck a fish?"

Without saying a word, Queequeg, in his wild sort of way, jumped upon the bulwarks, from thence into the bows of one of the whale-boats hanging to the side; and then bracing his left knee, and poising his harpoon, cried out in some such way as this:—

Without saying a word, Queequeg, in his wild style, jumped onto the side of the ship, then into the front of one of the whale boats hanging from the side; and then bracing his left knee and balancing his harpoon, shouted something like this:—

"Cap'ain, you see him small drop tar on water dere? You see him? well, spose him one whale eye, well, den!" and taking sharp aim at it, he darted the iron right over old Bildad's broad brim, clean across the ship's decks, and struck the glistening tar spot out of sight.

"Captain, do you see that small drop of tar on the water over there? You see it? Well, if it were a whale's eye, then!" Taking careful aim, he threw the iron right over old Bildad's wide-brimmed hat, all the way across the ship's decks, and hit the shiny tar spot out of sight.

"Now," said Queequeg, quietly, hauling in the line, "spos-ee him whale-e eye; why, dad whale dead."

"Now," said Queequeg, calmly pulling in the line, "I guess he sees the whale; well, Dad's whale is dead."

"Quick, Bildad," said Peleg, his partner, who, aghast at the close vicinity of the flying harpoon, had retreated towards the cabin gangway. "Quick, I say, you Bildad, and get the ship's papers. We must have Hedgehog there, I mean Quohog, in one of our boats. Look ye, Quohog, we'll give ye the ninetieth lay, and that's more than ever was given a harpooneer yet out of Nantucket."

"Quick, Bildad," said Peleg, his partner, who, shocked by how close the flying harpoon was, had stepped back towards the cabin entrance. "Hurry up, I say, you Bildad, and get the ship's papers. We need Hedgehog there, I mean Quohog, in one of our boats. Look, Quohog, we’ll give you the ninetieth share, and that’s more than any harpooneer has ever received from Nantucket."

So down we went into the cabin, and to my great joy Queequeg was soon enrolled among the same ship's company to which I myself belonged.

So we headed down into the cabin, and to my immense happiness, Queequeg was soon signed up with the same crew that I was part of.

When all preliminaries were over and Peleg had got everything ready for signing, he turned to me and said, "I guess, Quohog there don't know how to write, does he? I say, Quohog, blast ye! dost thou sign thy name or make thy mark?

When everything was set and Peleg had everything ready for signing, he turned to me and said, "I guess Quohog doesn’t know how to write, right? I say, Quohog, damn it! Do you sign your name or make your mark?"

But at this question, Queequeg, who had twice or thrice before taken part in similar ceremonies, looked no ways abashed; but taking the offered pen, copied upon the paper, in the proper place, an exact counterpart of a queer round figure which was tattooed upon his arm; so that through Captain Peleg's obstinate mistake touching his appellative, it stood something like this:— Quohog. his X mark. Meanwhile Captain Bildad sat earnestly and steadfastly eyeing Queequeg, and at last rising solemnly and fumbling in the huge pockets of his broadskirted drab coat took out a bundle of tracts, and selecting one entitled "The Latter Day Coming; or No Time to Lose," placed it in Queequeg's hands, and then grasping them and the book with both his, looked earnestly into his eyes, and said, "Son of darkness, I must do my duty by thee; I am part owner of this ship, and feel concerned for the souls of all its crew; if thou still clingest to thy Pagan ways, which I sadly fear, I beseech thee, remain not for aye a Belial bondsman. Spurn the idol Bell, and the hideous dragon; turn from the wrath to come; mind thine eye, I say; oh! goodness gracious! steer clear of the fiery pit!"

But at this question, Queequeg, who had participated in similar ceremonies two or three times before, didn't seem embarrassed at all; instead, he took the offered pen and copied an exact replica of a strange round figure tattooed on his arm onto the paper, so that due to Captain Peleg's stubborn mistake regarding his name, it looked something like this:— Quohog. his X mark. Meanwhile, Captain Bildad sat intently and steadily watching Queequeg, and finally rising solemnly, he fumbled in the large pockets of his drab coat and pulled out a bundle of pamphlets. He selected one titled "The Latter Day Coming; or No Time to Lose," handed it to Queequeg, and then took Queequeg's hands and the book in his own, looked deeply into his eyes, and said, "Son of darkness, I must do my duty by you; I am a part owner of this ship, and I care about the souls of all its crew. If you still hold onto your Pagan ways, which I sadly fear, I implore you, do not remain a slave to Belial forever. Reject the idol Bell and the awful dragon; turn away from the coming wrath; keep an eye on your path, I say; oh! goodness gracious! steer clear of the fiery pit!"

Something of the salt sea yet lingered in old Bildad's language, heterogeneously mixed with Scriptural and domestic phrases.

Something of the salty sea still lingered in old Bildad's speech, mixed in a unique way with Biblical and everyday phrases.

"Avast there, avast there, Bildad, avast now spoiling our harpooneer, cried Peleg. "Pious harpooneers never make good voyagers— it takes the shark out of 'em; no harpooneer is worth a straw who aint pretty sharkish. There was young Nat Swaine, once the bravest boat-header out of all Nantucket and the Vineyard; he joined the meeting, and never came to good. He got so frightened about his plaguy soul, that he shrinked and sheered away from whales, for fear of after-claps, in case he got stove and went to Davy Jones."

"Hold on there, hold on there, Bildad, stop ruining our harpooneer," shouted Peleg. "Pious harpooneers don't make good sailors—it takes the adventurous spirit out of them; no harpooneer is worth anything if he isn't a bit daring. There was young Nat Swaine, once the bravest boat leader from all of Nantucket and the Vineyard; he joined the church, and it didn't turn out well for him. He got so worried about his soul that he shrank away from whales, afraid of bad consequences if he ended up in trouble and got taken down to Davy Jones."

"Peleg! Peleg!" said Bildad, lifting his eyes and hands, "thou thyself, as I myself, hast seen many a perilous time; thou knowest, Peleg, what it is to have the fear of death; how, then, can'st thou prate in this ungodly guise. Thou beliest thine own heart, Peleg. Tell me, when this same Pequod here had her three masts overboard in that typhoon on Japan, that same voyage when thou went mate with Captain Ahab, did'st thou not think of Death and the Judgment then?"

"Peleg! Peleg!" Bildad exclaimed, raising his eyes and hands. "You, like me, have been through many dangerous times; you know, Peleg, what it feels like to be afraid of death. So how can you speak like this? You're lying to yourself, Peleg. Tell me, when the Pequod lost her three masts during that typhoon in Japan, the same trip when you served as mate with Captain Ahab, didn't you think about death and judgment then?"

"Hear him, hear him now," cried Peleg, marching across the cabin, and thrusting his hands far down into his pockets,—"hear him, all of ye. Think of that! When every moment we thought the ship would sink! Death and the Judgment then? What? With all three masts making such an everlasting thundering against the side; and every sea breaking over us, fore and aft. Think of Death and the Judgment then? No! no time to think about Death then. Life was what Captain Ahab and I was thinking of; and how to save all hands how to rig jury-masts how to get into the nearest port; that was what I was thinking of."

"Hear him, hear him now," shouted Peleg, walking across the cabin and burying his hands deep in his pockets—"hear him, everyone. Can you believe it? When every moment we thought the ship would go down! Death and Judgment then? What? With all three masts making such a deafening noise against the side, and every wave crashing over us, front and back. Think about Death and Judgment then? No! No time to think about Death then. Life was what Captain Ahab and I were focused on; how to save everyone, how to rig makeshift masts, how to reach the nearest port; that’s what I was focused on."

Bildad said no more, but buttoning up his coat, stalked on deck, where we followed him. There he stood, very quietly overlooking some sailmakers who were mending a top-sail in the waist. Now and then he stooped to pick up a patch, or save an end of tarred twine, which otherwise might have been wasted.

Bildad didn't say anything else, but he buttoned up his coat and walked out on deck, where we followed him. There he stood, quietly watching some sailmakers who were repairing a top-sail in the middle of the ship. Now and then, he bent down to pick up a patch or save a piece of tarred twine that would have otherwise been thrown away.

CHAPTER 19

The Prophet

The Prophet

"Shipmates, have ye shipped in that ship?"

"Shipmates, did you sign up on that ship?"

Queequeg and I had just left the Pequod, and were sauntering away from the water, for the moment each occupied with his own thoughts, when the above words were put to us by a stranger, who, pausing before us, levelled his massive forefinger at the vessel in question. He was but shabbily apparelled in faded jacket and patched trowsers; a rag of a black handkerchief investing his neck. A confluent smallpox had in all directions flowed over his face, and left it like the complicated ribbed bed of a torrent, when the rushing waters have been dried up.

Queequeg and I had just left the Pequod and were walking away from the water, lost in our own thoughts, when a stranger approached us. He stopped and pointed his big forefinger at the ship. He was poorly dressed in a worn-out jacket and patched pants, with a ragged black handkerchief around his neck. His face was scarred all over from a severe case of smallpox, leaving it looking like the complex, ribbed bed of a stream after the water has dried up.

"Have ye shipped in her?" he repeated.

"Have you shipped in her?" he asked again.

"You mean the ship Pequod, I suppose," said I, trying to gain a little more time for an uninterrupted look at him.

"You mean the ship Pequod, I guess," I said, trying to buy a little more time for an uninterrupted look at him.

"Aye, the Pequod—that ship there," he said, drawing back his whole arm and then rapidly shoving it straight out from him-, with the fixed bayonet of his pointed finger darted full at the object.

"Yeah, the Pequod—that ship over there," he said, pulling his whole arm back and then quickly pointing it straight at the object with the sharp tip of his finger aimed right at it.

"Yes," said I, "we have just signed the articles."

"Yeah," I said, "we just signed the papers."

"Anything down there about your souls?"

"Is there anything down there about your souls?"

"About what?"

"About what?"

"Oh, perhaps you hav'n't got any," he said quickly.
"No matter though, I know many chaps that hav'n't got any,—
good luck to 'em; and they are all the better off for it.
A soul's a sort of a fifth wheel to a wagon."

"Oh, maybe you don't have any," he said quickly.
"That's fine, I know plenty of guys who don't have any—
good for them; and they're all better off for it.
A soul is like a fifth wheel on a wagon."

"What are you jabbering about, shipmate?" said I.

"What are you talking about, shipmate?" I said.

"He's got enough, though, to make up for all deficiencies of that sort in other chaps," abruptly said the stranger, placing a nervous emphasis upon the word he.

"He's got enough, though, to make up for all the shortcomings of that sort in other guys," the stranger said suddenly, putting a nervous emphasis on the word he.

"Queequeg," said I, "let's go; this fellow has broken loose from somewhere; he's talking about something and somebody we don't know."

"Queequeg," I said, "let's go; this guy has broken free from somewhere; he's talking about something and someone we don't know."

"Stop!" cried the stranger. "Ye said true—ye hav'n't seen
Old Thunder yet, have ye?"

"Stop!" shouted the stranger. "You really haven’t seen
Old Thunder yet, have you?"

"Who's Old Thunder?" said I, again riveted with the insane earnestness of his manner.

"Who’s Old Thunder?" I asked, once more captivated by the crazy intensity of his demeanor.

"Captain Ahab."

"Captain Ahab"

"What! the captain of our ship, the Pequod?"

"What! The captain of our ship, the Pequod?"

"Aye, among some of us old sailor chaps, he goes by that name.
Ye hav'n't seen him yet, have ye?"

"Yeah, among some of us old sailor guys, he goes by that name.
You haven't seen him yet, have you?"

"No, we hav'n't. He's sick they say, but is getting better, and will be all right again before long."

"No, we haven't. They say he's sick, but he's getting better and will be fine again soon."

"All right again before long!" laughed the stranger, with a solemnly derisive sort of laugh. "Look ye; when Captain Ahab is all right, then this left arm of mine will be all right; not before."

"Everything will be fine again soon!" laughed the stranger, with a seriously mocking laugh. "Listen; when Captain Ahab is fine, then this left arm of mine will be fine; not until then."

"What do you know about him?"

"What do you know about him?"

"What did they tell you about him? Say that!"

"What did they tell you about him? Just say it!"

"They didn't tell much of anything about him; only I've heard that he's a good whale-hunter, and a good captain to his crew."

"They didn't say much about him; I've only heard that he's a great whale hunter and a good captain to his crew."

"That's true, that's true—yes, both true enough. But you must jump when he gives an order. Step and growl; growl and go—that's the word with Captain Ahab. But nothing about that thing that happened to him off Cape Horn, long ago, when he lay like dead for three days and nights; nothing about that deadly skrimmage with the Spaniard afore the altar in Santa?— heard nothing about that, eh? Nothing about the silver calabash he spat into? And nothing about his losing his leg last voyage, according to the prophecy. Didn't ye hear a word about them matters and something more, eh? No, I don't think ye did; how could ye? Who knows it? Not all Nantucket, I guess. But hows'ever, mayhap, ye've heard tell about the leg, and how he lost it; aye, ye have heard of that, I dare say. Oh, yes, that every one knows a'most—I mean they know he's only one leg; and that a parmacetti took the other off."

"That’s true, that’s true—yeah, both are true enough. But you have to jump when he gives an order. Step and growl; growl and go—that’s how Captain Ahab is. But nothing about that thing that happened to him off Cape Horn, a long time ago, when he lay like he was dead for three days and nights; nothing about that deadly fight with the Spaniard before the altar in Santa?—you didn’t hear about that, right? Nothing about the silver calabash he spat into? And nothing about him losing his leg on the last voyage, according to the prophecy. Didn’t you hear a word about those things and more, huh? No, I don’t think you did; how could you? Who knows it? Not all of Nantucket, I guess. But anyway, maybe you’ve heard about the leg and how he lost it; yeah, you’ve heard about that, I bet. Oh, yes, almost everyone knows that—I mean they know he only has one leg; and that a sperm whale took the other one off."

"My friend," said I, "what all this gibberish of yours is about, I don't know, and I don't much care; for it seems to me that you must be a little damaged in the head. But if you are speaking of Captain Ahab, of that ship there, the Pequod, then let me tell you, that I know all about the loss of his leg."

"My friend," I said, "I don't understand what you're rambling on about, and frankly, I don't really care; it seems to me that there’s something a bit off in your head. But if you're talking about Captain Ahab from that ship over there, the Pequod, let me tell you, I know all about how he lost his leg."

"All about it, eh—sure you do? all?

All about it, huh—are you sure you do? Everything?

"Pretty sure."

"Pretty sure."

With finger pointed and eye levelled at the Pequod, the beggar-like stranger stood a moment, as if in a troubled reverie; then starting a little, turned and said:—"Ye've shipped, have ye? Names down on the papers? Well, well, what's signed, is signed; and what's to be, will be; and then again, perhaps it won't be, after all. Any how, it's all fixed and arranged a'ready; and some sailors or other must go with him, I suppose; as well these as any other men, God pity 'em! Morning to ye, shipmates, morning; the ineffable heavens bless ye; I'm sorry I stopped ye."

With his finger pointing and eyes fixed on the Pequod, the beggar-like stranger paused for a moment, as if lost in thought; then he slightly startled, turned, and said:—"So, you’ve signed up, huh? Your names are on the papers? Well, well, what’s signed is signed; what’s meant to happen will happen; and then again, maybe it won’t, after all. Anyway, it’s all set and ready; and some sailors or someone has to go with him, I guess; as good as any other men, God help them! Good morning to you, shipmates, good morning; may the heavens bless you; I’m sorry I held you up."

"Look here, friend," said I, "if you have anything important to tell us, out with it; but if you are only trying to bamboozle us, you are mistaken in your game; that's all I have to say."

"Listen, friend," I said, "if you have something important to tell us, just say it; but if you’re just trying to mess with us, you’ve got the wrong idea; that’s all I’m saying."

"And it's said very well, and I like to hear a chap talk up that way; you are just the man for him—the likes of ye. Morning to ye, shipmates, morning! Oh! when ye get there, tell 'em I've concluded not to make one of 'em."

"And it's said really well, and I enjoy hearing a guy talk like that; you're just the person for him—the likes of you. Good morning to you, shipmates, good morning! Oh! when you get there, let them know I've decided not to be one of them."

"Ah, my dear fellow, you can't fool us that way—you can't fool us. It is the easiest thing in the world for a man to look as if he had a great secret in him."

"Ah, my friend, you can't trick us like that—you can't trick us. It's the simplest thing for someone to appear as if they hold a big secret inside."

"Morning to ye, shipmates, morning."

"Good morning, shipmates."

"Morning it is," said I. "Come along, Queequeg, let's leave this crazy man. But stop, tell me your name, will you?"

"Good morning," I said. "Come on, Queequeg, let's get away from this crazy guy. But wait, tell me your name first, will you?"

"Elijah."

"Elijah."

Elijah! thought I, and we walked away, both commenting, after each other's fashion, upon this ragged old sailor; and agreed that he was nothing but a humbug, trying to be a bugbear. But we had not gone perhaps above a hundred yards, when chancing to turn a corner, and looking back as I did so, who should be seen but Elijah following us, though at a distance. Somehow, the sight of him struck me so, that I said nothing to Queequeg of his being behind, but passed on with my comrade, anxious to see whether the stranger would turn the same corner that we did. He did; and then it seemed to me that he was dogging us, but with what intent I could not for the life of me imagine. This circumstance, coupled with his ambiguous, half-hinting, half-revealing, shrouded sort of talk, now begat in me all kinds of vague wonderments and half-apprehensions, and all connected with the Pequod; and Captain Ahab; and the leg he had lost; and the Cape Horn fit; and the silver calabash; and what Captain Peleg had said of him, when I left the ship the day previous; and the prediction of the squaw Tistig; and the voyage we had bound ourselves to sail; and a hundred other shadowy things.

Elijah! I thought, as we walked away, each of us commenting, in our own way, about that ragged old sailor; we both agreed he was just a fraud, trying to be intimidating. But we hadn’t gone more than about a hundred yards when, as I turned a corner and looked back, there was Elijah trailing after us, though at a distance. For some reason, seeing him startled me, so I didn’t mention to Queequeg that he was behind us, but continued on with my friend, curious to see if the stranger would turn the same corner we did. He did; and it felt like he was following us, but for what reason, I couldn’t figure out. This situation, along with his vague, half-suggestive, half-revealing way of speaking, filled me with all sorts of ambiguous thoughts and unease, all tied to the Pequod; Captain Ahab; the leg he had lost; the Cape Horn incident; the silver calabash; what Captain Peleg had said about him when I left the ship the day before; the prediction of the squaw Tistig; the voyage we had committed to sail; and countless other shadowy things.

I was resolved to satisfy myself whether this ragged Elijah was really dogging us or not, and with that intent crossed the way with Queequeg, and on that side of it retraced our steps. But Elijah passed on, without seeming to notice us. This relieved me; and once more, and finally as it seemed to me, I pronounced him in my heart, a humbug.

I was determined to find out if this scruffy Elijah was actually following us or not, so with that in mind, I crossed the street with Queequeg and retraced our steps on that side. But Elijah walked on by without appearing to notice us. This made me feel better, and once again, as it seemed to me for the last time, I silently labeled him a fraud.

CHAPTER 20

All Astir

All Astir

A day or two passed, and there was great activity aboard the Pequod. Not only were the old sails being mended, but new sails were coming on board, and bolts of canvas, and coils of rigging; in short, everything betokened that the ship's preparations were hurrying to a close. Captain Peleg seldom or never went ashore, but sat in his wigwam keeping a sharp look-out upon the hands: Bildad did all the purchasing and providing at the stores; and the men employed in the hold and on the rigging were working till long after night-fall.

A day or two went by, and there was a lot of activity on the Pequod. Not only were the old sails being repaired, but new sails were being brought on board, along with bolts of canvas and coils of rigging; in short, everything indicated that the ship's preparations were quickly wrapping up. Captain Peleg hardly ever went ashore, but stayed in his hut keeping a close watch on the crew: Bildad took care of all the purchasing and supplying at the stores, and the men working in the hold and on the rigging were busy long after dark.

On the day following Queequeg's signing the articles, word was given at all the inns where the ship's company were stopping, that their chests must be on board before night, for there was no telling how soon the vessel might be sailing. So Queequeg and I got down our traps, resolving, however, to sleep ashore till the last. But it seems they always give very long notice in these cases, and the ship did not sail for several days. But no wonder; there was a good deal to be done, and there is no telling how many things to be thought of, before the Pequod was fully equipped.

On the day after Queequeg signed the articles, everyone at the inns where the crew was staying was notified that their belongings needed to be on board by nightfall, because there was no telling how soon the ship might set sail. So, Queequeg and I brought down our bags, deciding, however, to stay on land until the very end. But it turns out they usually give plenty of notice in these situations, and the ship didn't leave for several days. But it makes sense; there was a lot to be done, and so many things to consider before the Pequod was completely ready.

Every one knows what a multitude of things—beds, sauce-pans, knives and forks, shovels and tongs, napkins, nut-crackers, and what not, are indispensable to the business of housekeeping. Just so with whaling, which necessitates a three-years' housekeeping upon the wide ocean, far from all grocers, costermongers, doctors, bakers, and bankers. And though this also holds true of merchant vessels, yet not by any means to the same extent as with whalemen. For besides the great length of the whaling voyage, the numerous articles peculiar to the prosecution of the fishery, and the impossibility of replacing them at the remote harbors usually frequented, it must be remembered, that of all ships, whaling vessels are the most exposed to accidents of all kinds, and especially to the destruction and loss of the very things upon which the success of the voyage most depends. Hence, the spare boats, spare spars, and spare lines and harpoons, and spare everythings, almost, but a spare Captain and duplicate ship.

Everyone knows how many things—beds, pots and pans, knives and forks, shovels and tongs, napkins, nutcrackers, and so on—are essential for running a household. The same goes for whaling, which requires a three-year stint of housekeeping on the open ocean, far away from all the usual suppliers like grocery stores, street vendors, doctors, bakers, and banks. While this is also true for merchant ships, it’s not nearly as much the case for whalers. Besides the long duration of whaling trips, the various items specific to the fishing trade, and the difficulty of replacing them in the remote ports typically visited, it’s important to note that whaling vessels are the most vulnerable to all sorts of accidents, especially the loss or damage of the very things crucial to the success of the journey. That’s why there are spare boats, spare masts, spare lines and harpoons, and almost everything else, except for a spare captain and a backup ship.

At the period of our arrival at the Island, the heaviest storage of the Pequod had been almost completed; comprising her beef, bread, water, fuel, and iron hoops and staves. But, as before hinted, for some time there was a continual fetching and carrying on board of divers odds and ends of things, both large and small.

At the time we arrived at the Island, the Pequod's main supplies were nearly finished; this included her beef, bread, water, fuel, and iron hoops and staves. However, as previously mentioned, there was still a constant loading and unloading of various random items, both big and small.

Chief among those who did this fetching and carrying was Captain Bildad's sister, a lean old lady of a most determined and indefatigable spirit, but withal very kindhearted, who seemed resolved that, if she could help it, nothing should be found wanting in the Pequod, after once fairly getting to sea. At one time she would come on board with a jar of pickles for the steward's pantry; another time with a bunch of quills for the chief mate's desk, where he kept his log; a third time with a roll of flannel for the small of some one's rheumatic back. Never did any woman better deserve her name, which was Charity—Aunt Charity, as everybody called her. And like a sister of charity did this charitable Aunt Charity bustle about hither and thither, ready to turn her hand and heart to anything that promised to yield safety, comfort, and consolation to all on board a ship in which her beloved brother Bildad was concerned, and in which she herself owned a score or two of well-saved dollars.

Chief among those who handled the tasks was Captain Bildad's sister, a thin old lady with a determined and tireless spirit, but very kindhearted. She seemed set on making sure that nothing would be lacking on the Pequod once it was at sea. At one point, she would come aboard with a jar of pickles for the steward's pantry; another time with a bunch of quills for the chief mate's desk where he kept his log; a third time with a roll of flannel for someone's sore back. No woman ever deserved her name better, which was Charity—Aunt Charity, as everyone called her. And like a true sister of charity, this giving Aunt Charity zipped around, ready to lend her hand and heart to anything that could provide safety, comfort, and consolation to everyone on board the ship where her dear brother Bildad was involved, and in which she herself owned a few well-saved dollars.

But it was startling to see this excellent hearted Quakeress coming on board, as she did the last day, with a long oil-ladle in one hand, and a still longer whaling lance in the other. Nor was Bildad himself nor Captain Peleg at all backward. As for Bildad, he carried about with him a long list of the articles needed, and at every fresh arrival, down went his mark opposite that article upon the paper. Every once in a while Peleg came hobbling out of his whalebone den, roaring at the men down the hatchways, roaring up to the riggers at the mast-head, and then concluded by roaring back into his wigwam.

But it was surprising to see this kind-hearted Quaker woman coming on board, just like she did the last day, with a long oil ladle in one hand and an even longer whaling lance in the other. Bildad and Captain Peleg were just as eager. Bildad had a long list of the needed supplies, and with each new arrival, he marked off the items on his paper. Every so often, Peleg hobbled out of his whalebone cabin, yelling at the men down the hatchways, shouting up to the riggers at the masthead, and then finishing by yelling back into his hut.

During these days of preparation, Queequeg and I often visited the craft, and as often I asked about Captain Ahab, and how he was, and when he was going to come on board his ship. To these questions they would answer, that he was getting better and better, and was expected aboard every day; meantime, the two Captains, Peleg and Bildad, could attend to everything necessary to fit the vessel for the voyage. If I had been downright honest with myself, I would have seen very plainly in my heart that I did but half fancy being committed this way to so long a voyage, without once laying my eyes on the man who was to be the absolute dictator of it, so soon as the ship sailed out upon the open sea. But when a man suspects any wrong, it sometimes happens that if he be already involved in the matter, he insensibly strives to cover up his suspicions even from himself. And much this way it was with me. I said nothing, and tried to think nothing.

During these days of preparation, Queequeg and I often visited the ship, and I frequently asked about Captain Ahab: how he was doing and when he would come aboard. They would reply that he was getting better and was expected on board any day now; in the meantime, the two captains, Peleg and Bildad, were handling everything necessary to get the ship ready for the voyage. If I had been completely honest with myself, I would have clearly recognized that I wasn’t entirely comfortable committing to such a long journey without having met the man who would be in charge as soon as we sailed into open water. But when someone suspects something wrong, it's not uncommon for them to unconsciously try to hide those suspicions even from themselves. That’s how it was for me. I said nothing and tried not to think about it.

At last it was given out that some time next day the ship would certainly sail. So next morning, Queequeg and I took a very early start.

At last, it was announced that the ship would definitely sail sometime the next day. So, the next morning, Queequeg and I got an early start.

CHAPTER 21

Going Aboard

Boarding Now

It was nearly six o'clock, but only grey imperfect misty dawn, when we drew nigh the wharf.

It was almost six o'clock, but only a grey, imperfect, misty dawn when we reached the wharf.

"There are some sailors running ahead there, if I see right," said I to Queequeg, "it can't be shadows; she's off by sunrise, I guess; come on!"

"There are some sailors up ahead, if I'm seeing correctly," I said to Queequeg, "it can't be just shadows; she's leaving by sunrise, I assume; let's go!"

"Avast!" cried a voice, whose owner at the same time coming close behind us, laid a hand upon both our shoulders, and then insinuating himself between us, stood stooping forward a little, in the uncertain twilight, strangely peering from Queequeg to me. It was Elijah.

"Hey!" shouted a voice, and at the same time, its owner came up behind us, put a hand on both our shoulders, and then wedged himself between us, leaning forward a bit in the dim light, strangely looking from Queequeg to me. It was Elijah.

"Going aboard?"

"Boarding?"

"Hands off, will you," said I.

"Can you not touch that?" I said.

"Lookee here," said Queequeg, shaking himself, "go 'way!"

"Look here," said Queequeg, shaking himself, "go away!"

"Aint going aboard, then?"

"Aren't you going aboard, then?"

"Yes, we are," said I, "but what business is that of yours?
Do you know, Mr. Elijah, that I consider you a little impertinent?"

"Yeah, we are," I said, "but what does that have to do with you?
Do you know, Mr. Elijah, that I think you're being a bit rude?"

"No, no, no; I wasn't aware of that," said Elijah, slowly and wonderingly looking from me to Queequeg, with the most unaccountable glances.

"No, no, no; I didn't know that," said Elijah, looking slowly and curiously from me to Queequeg, with the most puzzled expressions.

"Elijah," said I, "you will oblige my friend and me by withdrawing. We are going to the Indian and Pacific Oceans, and would prefer not to be detained."

"Elijah," I said, "please do my friend and me a favor and step aside. We're heading to the Indian and Pacific Oceans, and we’d rather not be held up."

"Ye be, be ye? Coming back afore breakfast?"

"Are you coming back before breakfast?"

"He's cracked, Queequeg," said I, "come on."

"He's lost it, Queequeg," I said, "let's go."

"Holloa!" cried stationary Elijah, hailing us when we had removed a few paces.

"Holla!" shouted stationary Elijah, calling out to us after we had taken a few steps away.

"Never mind him," said I, "Queequeg, come on."

"Forget him," I said, "Queequeg, let's go."

But he stole up to us again, and suddenly clapping his hand on my shoulder, said—"Did ye see anything looking like men going towards that ship a while ago?"

But he crept up to us again, and suddenly slapped his hand on my shoulder, saying—"Did you see anyone who looked like they were heading toward that ship a little while ago?"

Struck by this plain matter-of-fact question, I answered, saying, "Yes, I thought I did see four or five men; but it was too dim to be sure."

Struck by this straightforward question, I replied, saying, "Yes, I thought I saw four or five men; but it was too dim to be certain."

"Very dim, very dim," said Elijah. "Morning to ye."

"Really dim, really dim," said Elijah. "Good morning to you."

Once more we quitted him; but once more he came softly after us; and touching my shoulder again, said, "See if you can find 'em now, will ye?

Once again, we left him; but once again, he quietly followed us and, touching my shoulder again, said, "See if you can find them now, will you?"

"Find who?"

"Find who?"

"Morning to ye! morning to ye!" he rejoined, again moving off. "Oh! I was going to warn ye against—but never mind, never mind— it's all one, all in the family too;—sharp frost this morning, ain't it? Good-bye to ye. Shan't see ye again very soon, I guess; unless it's before the Grand Jury." And with these cracked words he finally departed, leaving me, for the moment, in no small wonderment at his frantic impudence.

"Morning to you! morning to you!" he replied, turning to leave again. "Oh! I was going to warn you about—but never mind, never mind—it's all the same, all in the family too;—it's a sharp frost this morning, isn’t it? Goodbye to you. I probably won’t see you again anytime soon, I guess; unless it’s before the Grand Jury." And with those strange words, he finally left, leaving me, for the moment, quite amazed at his audacious behavior.

At last, stepping on board the Pequod, we found everything in profound quiet, not a soul moving. The cabin entrance was locked within; the hatches were all on, and lumbered with coils of rigging. Going forward to the forecastle, we found the slide of the scuttle open. Seeing a light, we went down, and found only an old rigger there, wrapped in a tattered pea-jacket. He was thrown at whole length upon two chests, his face downwards and inclosed in his folded arms. The profoundest slumber slept upon him.

At last, when we stepped onto the Pequod, everything was extremely quiet; not a single person was moving. The cabin entrance was locked from the inside; all the hatches were in place, cluttered with coils of rigging. Heading to the forecastle, we noticed the scuttle was open. Seeing a light, we went down and found only an old rigger there, wrapped in a worn pea jacket. He was lying flat on two chests, his face down and tucked into his folded arms. He was deeply asleep.

"Those sailors we saw, Queequeg, where can they have gone to?" said I, looking dubiously at the sleeper. But it seemed that, when on the wharf, Queequeg had not at all noticed what I now alluded to; hence I would have thought myself to have been optically deceived in that matter, were it not for Elijah's otherwise inexplicable question. But I beat the thing down; and again marking the sleeper, jocularly hinted to Queequeg that perhaps we had best sit up with the body; telling him to establish himself accordingly. He put his hand upon the sleeper's rear, as though feeling if it was soft enough; and then, without more ado, sat quietly down there.

"Those sailors we saw, Queequeg, where could they have gone?" I asked, looking skeptically at the sleeper. But it seemed that, while at the wharf, Queequeg hadn't really noticed what I was hinting at; so I might have thought I was just imagining things if it weren't for Elijah's puzzling question. But I pushed the thought aside and, noticing the sleeper again, jokingly suggested to Queequeg that maybe we should keep watch over the body, telling him to make himself comfortable. He placed his hand on the sleeper's back, as if checking if it was soft enough, and then, without any more fuss, sat quietly down there.

"Gracious! Queequeg, don't sit there," said I.

"Wow! Queequeg, don't just sit there," I said.

"Oh; perry dood seat," said Queequeg, "my country way; won't hurt him face."

"Oh, perry dood seat," said Queequeg, "my country way; won't hurt his face."

"Face!" said I, "call that his face? very benevolent countenance then;
but how hard he breathes, he's heaving himself; get off,
Queequeg, you are heavy, it's grinding the face of the poor.
Get off, Queequeg! Look, he'll twitch you off soon.
I wonder he don't wake."

"Face!" I said, "is that really his face? Very kind expression then;
but look how hard he's breathing, he's really struggling; get off,
Queequeg, you're heavy, it's crushing the poor guy's face.
Get off, Queequeg! Look, he's going to shake you off soon.
I can't believe he hasn't woken up."

Queequeg removed himself to just beyond the head of the sleeper, and lighted his tomahawk pipe. I sat at the feet. We kept the pipe passing over the sleeper, from one to the other. Meanwhile, upon questioning him in his broken fashion, Queequeg gave me to understand that, in his land, owing to the absence of settees and sofas of all sorts, the king, chiefs, and great people generally, were in the custom of fattening some of the lower orders for ottomans; and to furnish a house comfortably in that respect, you had only to buy up eight or ten lazy fellows, and lay them round in the piers and alcoves. Besides, it was very convenient on an excursion; much better than those garden-chairs which are convertible into walking sticks; upon occasion, a chief calling his attendant, and desiring him to make a settee of himself under a spreading tree, perhaps in some damp marshy place.

Queequeg moved to just beyond the head of the person sleeping and lit his tomahawk pipe. I sat at his feet. We passed the pipe over the sleeper, from one to the other. Meanwhile, after asking him some questions in his broken way, Queequeg explained that in his country, since there were no couches or sofas, the king, chiefs, and other important people usually fattened some of the lower classes to serve as ottomans. To furnish a house comfortably, you just needed to buy eight or ten lazy people and lay them around in the corners and alcoves. Plus, it was really convenient when traveling; much better than those garden chairs that turn into walking sticks. On occasion, a chief would call his servant and ask him to turn into a bench under a big tree, maybe in some damp, marshy area.

While narrating these things, every time Queequeg received the tomahawk from me, he flourished the hatchet-side of it over the sleeper's head.

While telling these stories, every time Queequeg took the tomahawk from me, he waved the blade side of it over the sleeper's head.

"What's that for, Queequeg?"

"What's that for, Queequeg?"

"Perry easy, kill-e; oh! perry easy!

"Perry easy, kill-e; oh! perry easy!"

He was going on with some wild reminiscences about his tomahawk-pipe which, it seemed, had in its two uses both brained his foes and soothed his soul, when we were directly attracted to the sleeping rigger. The strong vapor now completely filling the contracted hole, it began to tell upon him. He breathed with a sort of muffledness; then seemed troubled in the nose; then revolved over once or twice; then sat up and rubbed his eyes.

He was sharing some crazy memories about his tomahawk-pipe which, it seemed, had both taken out his enemies and calmed him down. Meanwhile, we were drawn to the sleeping worker. The thick smoke now completely filling the small space began to affect him. He breathed in a shallow way; then seemed to have some trouble with his nose; then rolled over a couple of times; then sat up and rubbed his eyes.

"Holloa!" he breathed at last, "who be ye smokers?"

"Holloa!" he finally said, "who are you smokers?"

"Shipped men," answered I, "when does she sail?"

"Shipped men," I replied, "when does she leave?"

"Aye, aye, ye are going in her, be ye? She sails to-day. The Captain came aboard last night."

"Aye, aye, are you getting on her, then? She's setting sail today. The Captain came on board last night."

"What Captain?—Ahab?"

"What Captain?—Ahab?"

"Who but him indeed?"

"Who else but him?"

I was going to ask him some further questions concerning Ahab, when we heard a noise on deck.

I was about to ask him more questions about Ahab when we heard a noise on deck.

"Holloa! Starbuck's astir," said the rigger. "He's a lively chief mate that; good man, and a pious; but all alive now, I must turn to." And so saying he went on deck, and we followed.

said the rigger. With that, he went on deck, and we followed.

It was now clear sunrise. Soon the crew came on board in twos and threes; the riggers bestirred themselves; the mates were actively engaged; and several of the shore people were busy in bringing various last things on board. Meanwhile Captain Ahab remained invisibly enshrined within his cabin.

It was now clearly sunrise. Soon the crew came on board in groups of two and three; the riggers got to work; the mates were actively involved; and several people from shore were busy bringing various last items on board. Meanwhile, Captain Ahab stayed hidden away in his cabin.

CHAPTER 22

Merry Christmas

Happy Holidays

At length, towards noon, upon the final dismissal of the ship's riggers, and after the Pequod had been hauled out from the wharf, and after the ever-thoughtful Charity had come off in a whale-boat, with her last gift— a nightcap for Stubb, the second mate, her brother-in-law, and a spare Bible for the steward—after all this, the two Captains, Peleg and Bildad, issued from the cabin, and turning to the chief mate, Peleg said:

At last, around noon, after the ship's riggers had finished, and after the Pequod was pulled away from the dock, and after the ever-considerate Charity arrived in a whaleboat with her final gift—a nightcap for Stubb, the second mate, who is her brother-in-law, and a spare Bible for the steward—after all of this, the two captains, Peleg and Bildad, came out of the cabin, and turning to the chief mate, Peleg said:

"Now, Mr. Starbuck, are you sure everything is right?
Captain Ahab is all ready—just spoke to him—nothing more
to be got from shore, eh? Well, call all hands, then.
Muster 'em aft here—blast 'em!"

"Now, Mr. Starbuck, are you sure everything is okay?
Captain Ahab is all set—just talked to him—nothing more
to be gotten from shore, right? Well, gather everyone, then.
Bring them here to the back—damn them!"

"No need of profane words, however great the hurry, Peleg," said Bildad, "but away with thee, friend Starbuck, and do our bidding."

"No need for profanity, no matter how urgent it is, Peleg," said Bildad. "But off you go, friend Starbuck, and do what we ask."

How now! Here upon the very point of starting for the voyage, Captain Peleg and Captain Bildad were going it with a high hand on the quarter-deck, just as if they were to be joint-commanders at sea, as well as to all appearances in port. And, as for Captain Ahab, no sign of him was yet to be seen; Only, they said he was in the cabin. But then, the idea was, that his presence was by no means necessary in getting the ship under weigh, and steering her well out to sea. Indeed, as that was not at all his proper business, but the pilot's; and as he was not yet completely recovered—so they said—therefore, Captain Ahab stayed below. And all this seemed natural enough; especially as in the merchant service many captains never show themselves on deck for a considerable time after heaving up the anchor, but remain over the cabin table, having a farewell merry-making with their shore friends, before they quit the ship for good with the pilot.

How's it going! Right at the moment of setting off on the voyage, Captain Peleg and Captain Bildad were taking charge on the quarter-deck, acting like they were going to be co-commanders at sea, just as they appeared to be in port. As for Captain Ahab, he was nowhere to be seen; they only said he was in the cabin. However, the belief was that his presence wasn't really needed to get the ship moving and steer her out to sea. In fact, that wasn’t really his job, but the pilot's; and since he hadn't fully recovered—so they said—Captain Ahab stayed below. All this seemed pretty normal, especially since in the merchant service, many captains don’t show up on deck for quite a while after lifting the anchor, opting instead to stay at the cabin table, enjoying a farewell gathering with their friends from shore before leaving the ship for good with the pilot.

But there was not much chance to think over the matter, for Captain Peleg was now all alive. He seemed to do most of the talking and commanding, and not Bildad.

But there wasn't much time to think about it, because Captain Peleg was now wide awake. He seemed to do most of the talking and giving orders, not Bildad.

"Aft here, ye sons of bachelors," he cried, as the sailors lingered at the main-mast. "Mr. Starbuck, drive aft."

"Aft here, you sons of bachelors," he shouted, as the sailors hung around the main mast. "Mr. Starbuck, get them moving aft."

"Strike the tent there!"—was the next order. As I hinted before, this whalebone marquee was never pitched except in port; and on board the Pequod, for thirty years, the order to strike the tent was well known to be the next thing to heaving up the anchor.

"Take down the tent there!"—was the next order. As I mentioned earlier, this whalebone marquee was only set up in port; and on board the Pequod, for thirty years, the command to take down the tent was well understood to be the next step after raising the anchor.

"Man the capstan! Blood and thunder!—jump!"—was the next command, and the crew sprang for the handspikes.

"Man the capstan! Blood and thunder!—jump!"—was the next command, and the crew sprang for the handspikes.

Now in getting under weigh, the station generally occupied by the pilot is the forward part of the ship. And here Bildad, who, with Peleg, be it known, in addition to his other offices, was one of the licensed pilots of the port—he being suspected to have got himself made a pilot in order to save the Nantucket pilot-fee to all the ships he was concerned in, for he never piloted any other craft—Bildad, I say, might now be seen actively engaged in looking over the bows for the approaching anchor, and at intervals singing what seemed a dismal stave of psalmody, to cheer the hands at the windlass, who roared forth some sort of a chorus about the girls in Booble Alley, with hearty good will. Nevertheless, not three days previous, Bildad had told them that no profane songs would be allowed on board the Pequod, particularly in getting under weigh; and Charity, his sister, had placed a small choice copy of Watts in each seaman's berth.

Now, as the ship gets underway, the pilot usually takes position at the front of the vessel. And here, Bildad, who, along with Peleg, was not only a licensed pilot of the port but also held other roles, was suspected of becoming a pilot just to save the Nantucket pilot fee for all the ships he worked with, since he never piloted any other crafts. Bildad, I say, could now be seen actively scanning the horizon for the approaching anchor, and occasionally singing what sounded like a gloomy psalm to lift the spirits of those at the windlass, who joyfully responded with some kind of chorus about the girls in Booble Alley. However, just three days earlier, Bildad had informed them that no profane songs would be allowed on board the Pequod, especially while getting underway; and his sister, Charity, had placed a small, selected copy of Watts in each sailor's bunk.

Meantime, overseeing the other part of the ship, Captain Peleg ripped and swore astern in the most frightful manner. I almost thought he would sink the ship before the anchor could be got up; involuntarily I paused on my handspike, and told Queequeg to do the same, thinking of the perils we both ran, in starting on the voyage with such a devil for a pilot. I was comforting myself, however, with the thought that in pious Bildad might be found some salvation, spite of his seven hundred and seventy-seventh lay; when I felt a sudden sharp poke in my rear, and turning round, was horrified at the apparition of Captain Peleg in the act of withdrawing his leg from my immediate vicinity. That was my first kick.

In the meantime, while managing another part of the ship, Captain Peleg was yelling and cursing in the most terrifying way. I nearly thought he would sink the ship before we could raise the anchor; I unconsciously paused my work and told Queequeg to do the same, considering the dangers we both faced starting this journey with such a rough captain. I was, however, finding some comfort in the idea that pious Bildad might bring us some salvation, despite his seven hundred and seventy-seventh sermon; when I suddenly felt a sharp poke in my rear, and turning around, I was shocked to see Captain Peleg pulling his leg away from me. That was my first kick.

"Is that the way they heave in the marchant service?" he roared. "Spring, thou sheep-head; spring, and break thy backbone! Why don't ye spring, I say, all of ye—spring! Quohog! spring, thou chap with the red whiskers; spring there, Scotch-cap; spring, thou green pants. Spring, I say, all of ye, and spring your eyes out!" And so saying, he moved along the windlass, here and there using his leg very freely, while imperturbable Bildad kept leading off with his psalmody. Thinks I, Captain Peleg must have been drinking something to-day.

"Is that how you guys work in the merchant service?" he yelled. "Jump, you sheep-brain; jump and break your back! Why aren't you jumping, I ask you—all of you—jump! Quohog! Jump, you guy with the red whiskers; jump there, Scotch-cap; jump, you in the green pants. I say, all of you, jump and give it your all!" As he said this, he moved along the windlass, using his leg quite a bit, while the unshakeable Bildad kept leading off with his singing. I thought to myself, Captain Peleg must have been drinking something today.

At last the anchor was up, the sails were set, and off we glided. It was a short, cold Christmas; and as the short northern day merged into night, we found ourselves almost broad upon the wintry ocean, whose freezing spray cased us in ice, as in polished armor. The long rows of teeth on the bulwarks glistened in the moonlight; and like the white ivory tusks of some huge elephant, vast curving icicles depended from the bows.

At last, we lifted the anchor, set the sails, and glided away. It was a brief, chilly Christmas, and as the short northern day faded into night, we found ourselves almost directly on the wintry ocean, where the freezing spray covered us in ice like polished armor. The long rows of teeth on the bulwarks sparkled in the moonlight, and huge, curving icicles hung from the bows like the white tusks of some massive elephant.

Lank Bildad, as pilot, headed the first watch, and ever and anon, as the old craft deep dived into the green seas, and sent the shivering frost all over her, and the winds howled, and the cordage rang, his steady notes were heard,—

Lank Bildad, as the pilot, started the first watch, and from time to time, as the old ship plunged into the green waves, sending shivers of frost all over her while the winds howled and the rigging creaked, his steady notes could be heard,—

             "Sweet fields beyond the swelling flood,
                Stand dressed in living green.
              So to the Jews old Canaan stood,
                While Jordan rolled between."

"Sweet fields beyond the rising river,
                Stand dressed in vibrant green.
              So to the Jews, old Canaan appeared,
                While the Jordan flowed in between."

Never did those sweet words sound more sweetly to me than then. They were full of hope and fruition. Spite of this frigid winter night in the boisterous Atlantic, spite of my wet feet and wetter jacket, there was yet, it then seemed to me, many a pleasant haven in store; and meads and glades so eternally vernal, that the grass shot up by the spring, untrodden, unwilted, remains at midsummer.

Never did those sweet words sound more beautiful to me than at that moment. They were full of hope and promise. Despite this cold winter night in the rough Atlantic, despite my wet feet and soggy jacket, it seemed to me then that there were still many pleasant places ahead; meadows and groves that are so forever green that the grass springs up in the spring, untouched and fresh, remaining vibrant even in midsummer.

At last we gained such an offing, that the two pilots were needed no longer. The stout sail-boat that had accompanied us began ranging alongside.

At last, we got far enough out that we no longer needed the two pilots. The sturdy sailboat that had been with us started to come alongside.

It was curious and not unpleasing, how Peleg and Bildad were affected at this juncture, especially Captain Bildad. For loath to depart, yet; very loath to leave, for good, a ship bound on so long and perilous a voyage—beyond both stormy Capes; a ship in which some thousands of his hardearned dollars were invested; a ship, in which an old shipmate sailed as captain; a man almost as old as he, once more starting to encounter all the terrors of the pitiless jaw; loath to say good-bye to a thing so every way brimful of every interest to him,— poor old Bildad lingered long; paced the deck with anxious strides; ran down into the cabin to speak another farewell word there; again came on deck, and looked to windward; looked towards the wide and endless waters, only bounded by the far-off unseen Eastern Continents; looked towards the land; looked aloft; looked right and left; looked everywhere and nowhere; and at last, mechanically coiling a rope upon its pin, convulsively grasped stout Peleg by the hand, and holding up a lantern, for a moment stood gazing heroically in his face, as much as to say, "Nevertheless, friend Peleg, I can stand it; yes, I can."

It was interesting and somewhat reassuring how Peleg and Bildad felt at this moment, especially Captain Bildad. He was reluctant to leave but was really hesitant to part ways for good with a ship set for such a long and dangerous journey—beyond both stormy Capes; a ship where he had invested thousands of his hard-earned dollars; a ship that an old friend of his was captaining; a man nearly as old as he was, once again facing all the dangers ahead; reluctant to say goodbye to something that meant so much to him—poor old Bildad took his time; pacing the deck with anxious strides; rushing down to the cabin to say another farewell; coming back on deck, looking to the windward; gazing out over the vast, endless waters, only marked by the distant, unseen Eastern Continents; looking toward the land; looking up; looking right and left; looking everywhere and nowhere; and finally, mechanically coiling a rope on its pin, he tightly grasped stout Peleg's hand, and holding up a lantern, stood for a moment, heroically staring into his face, as if to say, "But still, friend Peleg, I can handle this; yes, I can."

As for Peleg himself, he took it more like a philosopher; but for all his philosophy, there was a tear twinkling in his eye, when the lantern came too near. And he, too, did not a little run from the cabin to deck—now a word below, and now a word with Starbuck, the chief mate.

As for Peleg himself, he approached it more like a philosopher; but despite his philosophical stance, there was a tear glistening in his eye when the lantern got too close. He also made quite a few trips from the cabin to the deck—sometimes saying a word below, and other times chatting with Starbuck, the chief mate.

But, at last, he turned to his comrade, with a final sort of look about him,—"Captain Bildad—come, old shipmate, we must go. Back the mainyard there! Boat ahoy! Stand by to come close alongside, now! Careful, careful!—come, Bildad, boy— say your last. Luck to ye, Starbuck—luck to ye, Mr. Stubb— luck to ye, Mr. Flask—good-bye and good luck to ye all— and this day three years I'll have a hot supper smoking for ye in old Nantucket. Hurrah and away!"

But finally, he turned to his friend with one last look around and said, “Captain Bildad—come on, old shipmate, we need to go. Bring the mainsail down! Boat’s coming! Get ready to tie up alongside, now! Careful, careful!—come on, Bildad, buddy—say your goodbyes. Good luck to you, Starbuck—good luck to you, Mr. Stubb—good luck to you, Mr. Flask—goodbye and good luck to all of you—and in three years, I’ll have a hot dinner waiting for you in old Nantucket. Hurrah and let’s go!”

"God bless ye, and have ye in His holy keeping, men," murmured old Bildad, almost incoherently. "I hope ye'll have fine weather now, so that Captain Ahab may soon be moving among ye—a pleasant sun is all he needs, and ye'll have plenty of them in the tropic voyage ye go. Be careful in the hunt, ye mates. Don't stave the boats needlessly, ye harpooneers; good white cedar plank is raised full three per cent within the year. Don't forget your prayers, either. Mr. Starbuck, mind that cooper don't waste the spare staves. Oh! the sail-needles are in the green locker. Don't whale it too much a' Lord's days, men; but don't miss a fair chance either, that's rejecting Heaven's good gifts. Have an eye to the molasses tierce, Mr. Stubb; it was a little leaky, I thought. If ye touch at the islands, Mr. Flask, beware of fornication. Good-bye, good-bye! Don't keep that cheese too long down in the hold, Mr. Starbuck; it'll spoil. Be careful with the butter—twenty cents the pound it was, and mind ye, if—"

"God bless you and keep you safe, men," murmured old Bildad, almost unintelligibly. "I hope you'll have good weather now so that Captain Ahab can be among you soon—a nice sun is all he needs, and you'll have plenty of that on the tropical voyage you're going on. Be careful during the hunt, mates. Don't damage the boats unnecessarily, harpooneers; good white cedar planks have gone up three percent this year. Don't forget your prayers, either. Mr. Starbuck, make sure that cooper doesn't waste the spare staves. Oh! The sail needles are in the green locker. Don’t overdo it on Sundays, men; but don’t miss a good opportunity either, that's turning down Heaven’s blessings. Keep an eye on the molasses barrel, Mr. Stubb; I thought it was a bit leaky. If you stop at the islands, Mr. Flask, watch out for trouble. Goodbye, goodbye! Don’t let that cheese sit too long down in the hold, Mr. Starbuck; it’ll spoil. Be careful with the butter—it was twenty cents a pound, and remember, if—"

"Come, come, Captain Bildad; stop palavering,—away!" and with that,
Peleg hurried him over the side, and both dropt into the boat.

"Come on, Captain Bildad; quit chatting,—let's go!" and with that,
Peleg rushed him over the side, and both dropped into the boat.

Ship and boat diverged; the cold, damp night breeze blew between; a screaming gull flew overhead; the two hulls wildly rolled; we gave three heavy-hearted cheers, and blindly plunged like fate into the lone Atlantic.

Ship and boat drifted apart; the chilly, damp night air rushed between them; a shrieking gull soared above; the two hulls tossed violently; we let out three heavy cheers and then plunged into the lonely Atlantic like it was our destiny.

CHAPTER 23

The Lee Shore

The Lee Shore

Some chapters back, one Bulkington was spoken of, a tall, newlanded mariner, encountered in New Bedford at the inn.

Some chapters ago, we talked about Bulkington, a tall, recently arrived sailor, who was met in New Bedford at the inn.

When on that shivering winter's night, the Pequod thrust her vindictive bows into the cold malicious waves, who should I see standing at her helm but Bulkington! I looked with sympathetic awe and fearfulness upon the man, who in mid-winter just landed from a four years' dangerous voyage, could so unrestingly push off again for still another tempestuous term. The land seemed scorching to his feet. Wonderfullest things are ever the unmentionable; deep memories yield no epitaphs; this six-inch chapter is the stoneless grave of Bulkington. Let me only say that it fared with him as with the storm-tossed ship, that miserably drives along the leeward land. The port would fain give succor; the port is pitiful; in the port is safety, comfort, hearthstone, supper, warm blankets, friends, all that's kind to our mortalities. But in that gale, the port, the land, is that ship's direst jeopardy; she must fly all hospitality; one touch of land, though it but graze the keel, would make her shudder through and through. With all her might she crowds all sail off shore; in so doing, fights 'gainst the very winds that fain would blow her homeward; seeks all the lashed sea's landlessness again; for refuge's sake forlornly rushing into peril; her only friend her bitterest foe!

When on that cold winter night, the Pequod drove her vengeful bow into the icy, hostile waves, who do you think I saw standing at her helm but Bulkington! I looked at him with a mix of admiration and fear, as he, having just come back from a risky four-year voyage in mid-winter, was ready to set sail again for another wild adventure. The land felt like it was burning beneath him. The most amazing things are often the ones we can't talk about; deep memories leave no markers; this six-inch chapter is the unmarked grave of Bulkington. All I can say is that his fate mirrored that of the storm-tossed ship, haplessly drifting toward the leeward shore. The port would gladly offer help; it is compassionate; in the port, there’s safety, comfort, home-cooked meals, warm blankets, friends—everything that is kind to our fragile lives. But in that storm, the port, the land, is the ship’s greatest danger; she must escape all hospitality; even the slightest touch of land, just brushing the keel, would make her tremble to her core. With all her strength, she spreads her sails and heads away from shore; in doing so, she fights against the very winds that want to carry her home; she seeks the landlessness of the raging sea once again; in a desperate search for refuge, she rushes headlong into danger; her only ally becomes her worst enemy!

Know ye now, Bulkington? Glimpses do ye seem to see of that mortally intolerable truth; that all deep, earnest thinking is but the intrepid effort of the soul to keep the open independence of her sea; while the wildest winds of heaven and earth conspire to cast her on the treacherous, slavish shore?

Know you now, Bulkington? It seems you catch glimpses of that painfully intolerable truth; that all deep, serious thinking is just the courageous attempt of the soul to maintain her unrestricted independence at sea; while the fiercest winds of heaven and earth work together to force her onto the dangerous, submissive shore?

But as in landlessness alone resides the highest truth, shoreless, indefinite as God—so better is it to perish in that howling infinite, than be ingloriously dashed upon the lee, even if that were safety! For worm-like, then, oh! who would craven crawl to land! Terrors of the terrible! is all this agony so vain? Take heart, take heart, O Bulkington! Bear thee grimly, demigod! Up from the spray of thy ocean-perishing—straight up, leaps thy apotheosis!

But just like the ultimate truth lies in being landless, boundless, and ambiguous like God—it's better to perish in that howling nothingness than to be safely washed up on the shore, even if that means safety! Who would want to cowardly crawl to land like a worm? The horrors of the terrifying! Is all this suffering for nothing? Stay strong, Bulkington! Keep your chin up, demigod! From the spray of your ocean-ending—straight up, your moment of glory leaps!

CHAPTER 24

The Advocate

The Advocate

As Queequeg and I are now fairly embarked in this business of whaling; and as this business of whaling has somehow come to be regarded among landsmen as a rather unpoetical and disreputable pursuit; therefore, I am all anxiety to convince ye, ye landsmen, of the injustice hereby done to us hunters of whales.

As Queequeg and I are now pretty settled into this whaling adventure, and since this whole whaling thing has somehow come to be seen by people on land as a pretty unromantic and shady career, I feel a strong need to show you, folks on land, how unfair this reputation is for us whale hunters.

In the first place, it may be deemed almost superfluous to establish the fact, that among people at large, the business of whaling is not accounted on a level with what are called the liberal professions. If a stranger were introduced into any miscellaneous metropolitan society, it would but slightly advance the general opinion of his merits, were he presented to the company as a harpooneer, say; and if in emulation of the naval officers he should append the initials S.W.F. (Sperm Whale Fishery) to his visiting card, such a procedure would be deemed preeminently presuming and ridiculous.

First of all, it might seem unnecessary to point out that among most people, the whaling industry is not considered on par with what are referred to as liberal professions. If a newcomer were introduced into any random social gathering in the city, it wouldn't really improve their reputation if they were introduced as a harpooner. And if, trying to emulate naval officers, they added the initials S.W.F. (Sperm Whale Fishery) to their business card, that would be seen as extremely presumptuous and absurd.

Doubtless one leading reason why the world declines honoring us whalemen, is this: they think that, at best, our vocation amounts to a butchering sort of business; and that when actively engaged therein, we are surrounded by all manner of defilements. Butchers we are, that is true. But butchers, also, and butchers of the bloodiest badge have been all Martial Commanders whom the world invariably delights to honor. And as for the matter of the alleged uncleanliness of our business, ye shall soon be initiated into certain facts hitherto pretty generally unknown, and which, upon the whole, will triumphantly plant the sperm whale-ship at least among the cleanliest things of this tidy earth. But even granting the charge in question to be true; what disordered slippery decks of a whale-ship are comparable to the unspeakable carrion of those battle-fields from which so many soldiers return to drink in all ladies' plaudits? And if the idea of peril so much enhances the popular conceit of the soldier's profession; let me assure ye that many a veteran who has freely marched up to a battery, would quickly recoil at the apparition of the sperm whale's vast tail, fanning into eddies the air over his head. For what are the comprehensible terrors of man compared with the interlinked terrors and wonders of God!

One main reason the world doesn't honor us whalemen is this: they believe that, at best, our job is just a brutal business, and that while we're working, we're surrounded by all kinds of filth. It's true we are butchers. But remember, the most celebrated leaders in history have also been butchers, and the world loves to honor them. As for the supposed dirtiness of our work, soon you'll learn some facts that most people don't know yet, which will show that the sperm whale ship is actually one of the cleanest things on this tidy planet. Even if we accept the accusation of being unclean as true, what chaotic, slippery decks of a whaling ship can compare to the horrific scenes of battlefields where countless soldiers return to receive praise from women? And if the danger associated with being a soldier adds to the public's admiration of that profession, let me tell you that many veterans who courageously go into battle would be terrified at the sight of a sperm whale’s massive tail, stirring up the air above them. After all, what are the understandable fears of man when stacked against the interconnected terrors and wonders of God!

But, though the world scouts at us whale hunters, yet does it unwittingly pay us the profoundest homage; yea, an all-abounding adoration! for almost all the tapers, lamps, and candles that burn round the globe, burn, as before so many shrines, to our glory!

But even though the world looks down on us whale hunters, it unknowingly shows us the deepest respect; yes, a huge admiration! Because almost all the candles, lamps, and lights that are lit around the world are, in a way, burning in tribute to our greatness!

But look at this matter in other lights; weigh it in all sorts of scales; see what we whalemen are, and have been.

But consider this issue from different perspectives; evaluate it using various criteria; understand who we whalemen are and have been.

Why did the Dutch in De Witt's time have admirals of their whaling fleets? Why did Louis XVI of France, at his own personal expense, fit out whaling ships from Dunkirk, and politely invite to that town some score or two of families from our own island of Nantucket? Why did Britain between the years 1750 and 1788 pay to her whalemen in bounties upwards of 1,000,000 pounds? And lastly, how comes it that we whalemen of America now outnumber all the rest of the banded whalemen in the world; sail a navy of upwards of seven hundred vessels; manned by eighteen thousand men; yearly consuming 00824,000,000 of dollars; the ships worth, at the time of sailing, 20,000,000 dollars; and every year importing into our harbors a well reaped harvest of 00847,000,000 dollars. How comes all this, if there be not something puissant in whaling?

Why did the Dutch in De Witt's time have admirals for their whaling fleets? Why did Louis XVI of France, at his own expense, outfit whaling ships from Dunkirk and kindly invite a couple of families from our own Nantucket? Why did Britain pay her whalemen over 1,000,000 pounds in bounties between 1750 and 1788? And lastly, how did it happen that we American whalemen now outnumber all the other whalemen combined worldwide; operate a fleet of over seven hundred vessels; employ eighteen thousand men; spend 00824,000,000 dollars each year; with ships valued at 20,000,000 dollars at the time of sailing; and import a well-earned harvest of 00847,000,000 dollars into our ports each year? How can this be so if there isn’t something powerful in whaling?

But this is not the half; look again.

But that's not all; take another look.

I freely assert, that the cosmopolite philosopher cannot, for his life, point out one single peaceful influence, which within the last sixty years has operated more potentially upon the whole broad world, taken in one aggregate, than the high and mighty business of whaling. One way and another, it has begotten events so remarkable in themselves, and so continuously momentous in their sequential issues, that whaling may well be regarded as that Egyptian mother, who bore offspring themselves pregnant from her womb. It would be a hopeless, endless task to catalogue all these things. Let a handful suffice. For many years past the whale-ship has been the pioneer in ferreting out the remotest and least known parts of the earth. She has explored seas and archipelagoes which had no chart, where no Cooke or Vancouver had ever sailed. If American and European men-of-war now peacefully ride in once savage harbors, let them fire salutes to the honor and glory of the whale-ship, which originally showed them the way, and first interpreted between them and the savages. They may celebrate as they will the heroes of Exploring Expeditions, your Cookes, Your Krusensterns; but I say that scores of anonymous Captains have sailed out of Nantucket, that were as great, and greater, than your Cooke and your Krusenstern. For in their succorless empty-handedness, they, in the heathenish sharked waters, and by the beaches of unrecorded, javelin islands, battled with virgin wonders and terrors that Cooke with all his marines and muskets would not willingly have willingly dared. All that is made such a flourish of in the old South Sea Voyages, those things were but the life-time commonplaces of our heroic Nantucketers. Often, adventures which Vancouver dedicates three chapters to, these men accounted unworthy of being set down in the ship's common log. Ah, the world! Oh, the world!

I boldly claim that the worldwide philosopher can't, for the life of them, identify a single peaceful influence in the past sixty years that has impacted the entire world more significantly than whaling. In one way or another, it has led to events that are remarkable in their own right and continuously significant in their consequences, making whaling comparable to that Egyptian mother who gave birth to offspring already pregnant. It would be a pointless, endless job to list all these occurrences. Let’s just consider a few. For many years, whale ships have been at the forefront of discovering the most remote, least known areas of the earth. They have explored oceans and archipelagos that had no maps, where no Cook or Vancouver had ever been. If American and European warships now peacefully anchor in once-hostile ports, they should salute the whale ship, which first blazed the trail for them and acted as a bridge between them and the local tribes. They can celebrate as much as they want the heroes of exploring expeditions, your Cooks, your Krusensterns; but I assert that many anonymous captains have set sail from Nantucket who were as great, if not greater, than Cook and Krusenstern. For in their unsupported and unarmed ventures, they faced untamed wonders and dangers in treacherous waters and on the shores of uncharted, spear-throwing islands—challenges that Cook, with all his marines and muskets, would not have dared to face willingly. Everything that is glorified in the old South Sea Voyages was just the everyday routine of our brave Nantucketers. Often, adventures that Vancouver devoted three chapters to were considered by these men as unworthy to be entered in the ship's common log. Ah, the world! Oh, the world!

Until the whale fishery rounded Cape Horn, no commerce but colonial, scarcely any intercourse but colonial, was carried on between Europe and the long line of the opulent Spanish provinces on the Pacific coast. It was the whalemen who first broke through the jealous policy of the Spanish crown, touching those colonies; and, if space permitted, it might be distinctly shown how from those whalemen at last eventuated the liberation of Peru, Chili, and Bolivia from the yoke of Old Spain, and the establishment of the eternal democracy in those parts.

Until the whale fishery rounded Cape Horn, there was almost no trade or interaction between Europe and the wealthy Spanish provinces along the Pacific coast; it was mostly colonial. The whalemen were the first to penetrate the protective policy of the Spanish crown, reaching those colonies. If there were more room, it could be clearly demonstrated how these whalemen ultimately led to the liberation of Peru, Chile, and Bolivia from Spanish rule, as well as the establishment of lasting democracy in those regions.

That great America on the other side of the sphere, Australia, was given to the enlightened world by the whaleman. After its first blunder-born discovery by a Dutchman, all other ships, long shunned those shores as pestiferously barbarous; but the whale-ship touched there. The whale-ship is the true mother of that now mighty colony. Moreover, in the infancy of the first Australian settlement, the emigrants were several times saved from starvation by the benevolent biscuit of the whale-ship luckily dropping an anchor in their waters. The uncounted isles of all Polynesia confess the same truth, and do commercial homage to the whale-ship, that cleared the way for the missionary and the merchant, and in many cases carried the primitive missionaries to their first destinations. If that double-bolted land, Japan, is ever to become hospitable, it is the whale-ship alone to whom the credit will be due; for already she is on the threshold.

That great America on the other side of the world, Australia, was gifted to the enlightened world by the whalers. After its first clumsy discovery by a Dutchman, other ships largely avoided those shores as extremely uncivilized; but the whaling ship made the journey. The whaling ship is the true origin of that now powerful colony. Additionally, in the early days of the first Australian settlement, the emigrants were saved from starvation several times by the kind biscuits from the whaling ship that happened to drop anchor in their waters. The countless islands of all Polynesia acknowledge the same truth and pay commercial tribute to the whaling ship that paved the way for both missionaries and merchants, and in many instances, transported the early missionaries to their first destinations. If that heavily fortified land, Japan, ever becomes welcoming, the credit will solely go to the whaling ship; for she is already on the brink.

But if, in the face of all this, you still declare that whaling has no aesthetically noble associations connected with it, then am I ready to shiver fifty lances with you there, and unhorse you with a split helmet every time.

But if, despite all this, you still say that whaling has no beautiful or noble connections, then I'm ready to face you head-on and knock you off your horse every time.

The whale has no famous author, and whaling no famous chronicler, you will say.

The whale doesn’t have a famous author, and whaling doesn’t have a famous historian, you might say.

The whale no famous author, and whaling no famous chronicler? Who wrote the first account of our Leviathan? Who but mighty Job? And who composed the first narrative of a whaling-voyage? Who, but no less a prince than Alfred the Great, who, with his own royal pen, took down the words from Other, the Norwegian whale-hunter of those times! And who pronounced our glowing eulogy in Parliament? Who, but Edmund Burke!

The whale has no famous author, and whaling has no famous chronicler? Who wrote the first account of our Leviathan? Who but the mighty Job? And who came up with the first story of a whaling voyage? Who, but none other than Alfred the Great, who, with his own royal pen, wrote down the words from Other, the Norwegian whale-hunter of that time! And who delivered our glowing eulogy in Parliament? Who, but Edmund Burke!

True enough, but then whalemen themselves are poor devils; they have no good blood in their veins.

True enough, but whalemen are poor souls; they don't have good blood in their veins.

No good blood in their veins? They have something better than royal blood there. The grandmother of Benjamin Franklin was Mary Morrel; afterwards, by marriage, Mary Folger, one of the old settlers of Nantucket, and the ancestress to a long line of Folgers and harpooneers—all kith and kin to noble Benjamin— this day darting the barbed iron from one side of the world to the other.

No good blood in their veins? They have something better than royal blood there. Benjamin Franklin's grandmother was Mary Morrel; later, through marriage, she became Mary Folger, one of the early settlers of Nantucket, and the ancestor of a long line of Folgers and whalers—all related to the noble Benjamin—who today are throwing the barbed iron from one side of the world to the other.

Good again; but then all confess that somehow whaling is not respectable.

Good again; but everyone admits that whaling just isn't respectable.

Whaling not respectable? Whaling is imperial! By old English statutory law, the whale is declared "a royal fish."

Whaling not respectable? Whaling is imperial! According to old English law, the whale is called "a royal fish."

Oh, that's only nominal! The whale himself has never figured in any grand imposing way.

Oh, that's just a small amount! The whale itself has never played a significant role in any impressive way.

The whale never figured in any grand imposing way? In one of the mighty triumphs given to a Roman general upon his entering the world's capital, the bones of a whale, brought all the way from the Syrian coast, were the most conspicuous object in the cymballed procession.*

The whale never stood out in any grand or impressive way. In one of the major victories celebrated for a Roman general upon his arrival in the world's capital, the bones of a whale, transported all the way from the Syrian coast, were the most prominent feature in the parade.

*See subsequent chapters for something more on this head.

*See subsequent chapters for more on this topic.

Grant it, since you cite it; but say what you will, there is no real dignity in whaling.

Grant it, since you mention it; but no matter what you say, there’s no real dignity in whaling.

No dignity in whaling? The dignity of our calling the very heavens attest. Cetus is a constellation in the South! No more! Drive down your hat in presence of the Czar, and take it off to Queequeg! No more! I know a man that, in his lifetime has taken three hundred and fifty whales. I account that man more honorable than that great captain of antiquity who boasted of taking as many walled towns.

No dignity in whaling? The dignity of our profession is attested to by the heavens themselves. Cetus is a constellation in the South! No less! Bow your hat in front of the Czar, and take it off for Queequeg! No less! I know a man who, in his lifetime, has caught three hundred and fifty whales. I consider that man more honorable than that famous captain from old times who bragged about capturing as many walled cities.

And, as for me, if, by any possibility, there be any as yet undiscovered prime thing in me; if I shall ever deserve any real repute in that small but high hushed world which I might not be unreasonably ambitious of; if hereafter I shall do anything that, upon the whole, a man might rather have done than to have left undone; if, at my death, my executors, or more properly my creditors, find any precious MSS. in my desk, then here I prospectively ascribe all the honor and the glory to whaling; for a whale-ship was my Yale College and my Harvard.

And as for me, if there's any undiscovered greatness within me; if I ever earn any real recognition in that small but esteemed world that I might reasonably aspire to; if in the future I do anything that is better done than left undone; if, at my death, my executors, or more accurately my creditors, find any valuable manuscripts in my desk, then I hereby give all the credit and glory to whaling, because a whale ship was my Yale and my Harvard.

CHAPTER 25

Postscript

P.S.

In behalf of the dignity of whaling, I would fain advance naught but substantiated facts. But after embattling his facts, an advocate who should wholly suppress a not unreasonable surmise, which might tell eloquently upon his cause—such an advocate, would he not be blame-worthy?

In defense of the dignity of whaling, I would like to present only verified facts. However, if an advocate, after challenging his facts, were to completely ignore a reasonable suspicion that could strongly support his case—wouldn't that advocate be at fault?

It is well known that at the coronation of kings and queens, even modern ones, a certain curious process of seasoning them for their functions is gone through. There is a saltcellar of state, so called, and there may be a caster of state. How they use the salt, precisely—who knows? Certain I am, however, that a king's head is solemnly oiled at his coronation, even as a head of salad. Can it be, though, that they anoint it with a view of making its interior run well, as they anoint machinery? Much might be ruminated here, concerning the essential dignity of this regal process, because in common life we esteem but meanly and contemptibly a fellow who anoints his hair, and palpably smells of that anointing. In truth, a mature man who uses hairoil, unless medicinally, that man has probably got a quoggy spot in him somewhere. As a general rule, he can't amount to much in his totality.

It’s well known that during the coronation of kings and queens, even the modern ones, there’s a strange ritual to prepare them for their roles. There's a ceremonial salt shaker, or "saltcellar of state," and there might even be a special caster for it. How exactly they use the salt—who knows? I’m certain, though, that a king's head is ceremoniously oiled at his coronation, just like a salad. But could it be that they anoint it to keep its inner workings running smoothly, like they do with machines? There's a lot to think about regarding the importance of this royal ritual, especially since in everyday life we look down on someone who puts oil in their hair and clearly smells like it. In reality, a grown man who uses hair oil, unless it’s for medical reasons, probably has something a little off about him. Generally speaking, he probably doesn’t amount to much overall.

But the only thing to be considered here is this—what kind of oil is used at coronations? Certainly it cannot be olive oil, nor macassar oil, nor castor oil, nor bear's oil, nor train oil, nor cod-liver oil. What then can it possibly be, but the sperm oil in its unmanufactured, unpolluted state, the sweetest of all oils?

But the only thing to consider here is this—what kind of oil is used at coronations? It definitely can't be olive oil, or macassar oil, or castor oil, or bear oil, or train oil, or cod liver oil. So what can it possibly be, if not the unrefined, pure sperm oil, the sweetest of all oils?

Think of that, ye loyal Britons! we whalemen supply your kings and queens with coronation stuff!

Think about that, you loyal Brits! We whalemen provide your kings and queens with their coronation materials!

CHAPTER 26

Knights and Squires

Knights and Squires

The chief mate of the Pequod was Starbuck, a native of Nantucket, and a Quaker by descent. He was a long, earnest man, and though born on an icy coast, seemed well adapted to endure hot latitudes, his flesh being hard as twice-baked biscuit. Transported to the Indies, his live blood would not spoil like bottled ale. He must have been born in some time of general drought and famine, or upon one of those fast days for which his state is famous. Only some thirty arid summers had he seen; those summers had dried up all his physical superfluousness. But this, his thinness, so to speak, seemed no more the token of wasting anxieties and cares, than it seemed the indication of any bodily blight. It was merely the condensation of the man. He was by no means ill-looking; quite the contrary. His pure tight skin was an excellent fit; and closely wrapped up in it, and embalmed with inner health and strength, like a revivified Egyptian, this Starbuck seemed prepared to endure for long ages to come, and to endure always, as now; for be it Polar snow or torrid sun, like a patent chronometer, his interior vitality was warranted to do well in all climates. Looking into his eyes, you seemed to see there the yet lingering images of those thousand-fold perils he had calmly confronted through life. A staid, steadfast man, whose life for the most part was a telling pantomime of action, and not a tame chapter of sounds. Yet, for all his hardy sobriety and fortitude, there were certain qualities in him which at times affected, and in some cases seemed well nigh to overbalance all the rest. Uncommonly conscientious for a seaman, and endued with a deep natural reverence, the wild watery loneliness of his life did therefore strongly incline him to superstition; but to that sort of superstition, which in some organizations seems rather to spring, somehow, from intelligence than from ignorance. Outward portents and inward presentiments were his. And if at times these things bent the welded iron of his soul, much more did his far-away domestic memories of his young Cape wife and child, tend to bend him still more from the original ruggedness of his nature, and open him still further to those latent influences which, in some honest-hearted men, restrain the gush of dare-devil daring, so often evinced by others in the more perilous vicissitudes of the fishery. "I will have no man in my boat," said Starbuck, "who is not afraid of a whale." By this, he seemed to mean, not only that the most reliable and useful courage was that which arises from the fair estimation of the encountered peril, but that an utterly fearless man is a far more dangerous comrade than a coward.

The first mate of the Pequod was Starbuck, who came from Nantucket and had Quaker roots. He was a tall, serious man, and even though he was born in a cold place, he seemed well-suited to handle hot climates, his body being as tough as a twice-baked biscuit. If he were taken to the Indies, his vital energy wouldn’t fade like stale beer. He must have been born during a time of widespread drought and famine, or on one of those fasting days for which his region is known. He had only lived through about thirty dry summers; those summers had stripped away all his physical excess. But this thinness didn’t indicate worry or illness; rather, it was just a reflection of who he was. He was by no means unattractive; in fact, quite the opposite. His smooth, tight skin fitted him perfectly, and wrapped up in it, infused with deep health and strength, this Starbuck seemed ready to endure for countless ages, always facing whatever nature threw at him, whether it was polar snow or scorching sun. Looking into his eyes, you could see the lingering traces of the many dangers he had faced calmly in his life. He was a steady, resolute man, whose life was more about action than words. Yet, despite his tough demeanor and strength, there were certain traits in him that sometimes overshadowed everything else. He was unusually conscientious for a sailor, with a deep respect for life, which made the wild isolation of his existence lead him towards superstition—not the kind born from ignorance, but the kind that seemed to come from insight. He experienced both external omens and internal feelings. If these things ever tested his resilient spirit, his distant memories of his young wife and child back home affected him even more, softening his rough edges and opening him up to those hidden influences that, in some sincere men, hold back the reckless bravery often seen in others during the risky moments of fishing. "I won’t have anyone in my boat," Starbuck said, "who isn't afraid of a whale." By this, he implied that the most dependable and valuable courage comes from accurately assessing the danger at hand, and that a completely fearless person is often a far more dangerous partner than a coward.

"Aye, aye," said Stubb, the second mate, "Starbuck, there, is as careful a man as you'll find anywhere in this fishery." But we shall ere long see what that word "careful" precisely means when used by a man like Stubb, or almost any other whale hunter.

"Aye, aye," said Stubb, the second mate, "Starbuck over there is one of the most careful guys you'll find in this fishery." But soon we'll see what that word "careful" really means when it's used by someone like Stubb, or pretty much any other whale hunter.

Starbuck was no crusader after perils; in him courage was not a sentiment; but a thing simply useful to him, and always at hand upon all mortally practical occasions. Besides, he thought, perhaps, that in this business of whaling, courage was one of the great staple outfits of the ship, like her beef and her bread, and not to be foolishly wasted. Wherefore he had no fancy for lowering for whales after sun-down; nor for persisting in fighting a fish that too much persisted in fighting him. For, thought Starbuck, I am here in this critical ocean to kill whales for my living, and not to be killed by them for theirs; and that hundreds of men had been so killed Starbuck well knew. What doom was his own father's? Where, in the bottomless deeps, could he find the torn limbs of his brother?

Starbuck wasn’t a hero chasing after dangers; for him, courage wasn’t just a feeling; it was something practical that he had ready for any serious situation. He believed that in the world of whaling, courage was as essential to the ship as food like beef and bread, and shouldn’t be wasted thoughtlessly. That’s why he didn’t like the idea of going after whales after sunset, or fighting a fish that was too determined to fight back. Starbuck thought, I’m here in this dangerous ocean to catch whales to earn a living, not to be killed by them for theirs; and he knew all too well that many men had met that fate. What happened to his father? Where, in the endless depths, could he find the dismembered remains of his brother?

With memories like these in him, and, moreover, given to a certain superstitiousness, as has been said; the courage of this Starbuck, which could, nevertheless, still flourish, must indeed have been extreme. But it was not in reasonable nature that a man so organized, and with such terrible experiences and remembrances as he had; it was not in nature that these things should fail in latently engendering an element in him, which, under suitable circumstances, would break out from its confinement, and burn all his courage up. And brave as he might be, it was that sort of bravery chiefly, visible in some intrepid men, which, while generally abiding firm in the conflict with seas, or winds, or whales, or any of the ordinary irrational horrors of the world, yet cannot withstand those more terrific, because more spiritual terrors, which sometimes menace you from the concentrating brow of an enraged and mighty man.

With memories like these inside him, and, on top of that, a certain superstitious streak, as mentioned before, the courage of this Starbuck, which could still thrive, must have been exceptional. But it wasn't reasonable that a man so structured, with such horrific experiences and memories as he had, would not have an element within him that, under the right circumstances, could break free and consume all his courage. And as brave as he might be, it was that kind of bravery, often seen in some fearless men, which, while typically holding strong against the challenges of seas, winds, whales, or any other ordinary irrational fears, still couldn't withstand the more terrifying, because more spiritual, fears that sometimes come from the intense gaze of an enraged and powerful man.

But were the coming narrative to reveal in any instance, the complete abasement of poor Starbuck's fortitude, scarce might I have the heart to write it; for it is a thing most sorrowful, nay shocking, to expose the fall of valor in the soul. Men may seem detestable as joint stock-companies and nations; knaves, fools, and murderers there may be; men may have mean and meagre faces; but, man, in the ideal, is so noble and so sparkling, such a grand and glowing creature, that over any ignominious blemish in him all his fellows should run to throw their costliest robes. That immaculate manliness we feel within ourselves, so far within us, that it remains intact though all the outer character seem gone; bleeds with keenest anguish at the undraped spectacle of a valor-ruined man. Nor can piety itself, at such a shameful sight, completely stifle her upbraidings against the permitting stars. But this august dignity I treat of, is not the dignity of kings and robes, but that abounding dignity which has no robed investiture. Thou shalt see it shining in the arm that wields a pick or drives a spike; that democratic dignity which, on all hands, radiates without end from God; Himself! The great God absolute! The centre and circumference of all democracy! His omnipresence, our divine equality!

But if the upcoming story were to show, in any instance, the complete breakdown of poor Starbuck's strength, I would hardly have the heart to write it; because it’s truly heartbreaking, even shocking, to reveal the fall of bravery in a person. People might seem awful like corporations and nations; there might be crooks, fools, and murderers; people may have dull and miserable faces; but, in the ideal, humanity is so noble and vibrant, such a grand and radiant being, that anyone should rush to cover any shameful blemish with their finest garments. That pure strength we feel deep inside ourselves remains untouched even when all external character seems lost; it aches intensely at the bare sight of a man stripped of his courage. Even piety, in the face of such disgrace, can't fully silence her complaints against the indifferent stars. But this great dignity I'm talking about isn’t the dignity of kings and their robes, but that overflowing dignity that needs no royal attire. You’ll see it shining in the hand that swings a pick or drives a nail; that democratic dignity which radiates endlessly from God Himself! The great God absolute! The center and circumference of all democracy! His omnipresence, our divine equality!

If, then, to meanest mariners, and renegades and castaways, I shall hereafter ascribe high qualities, though dark; weave round them tragic graces; if even the most mournful, perchance the most abased, among them all, shall at times lift himself to the exalted mounts; if I shall touch that workman's arm with some ethereal light; if I shall spread a rainbow over his disastrous set of sun; then against all mortal critics bear me out in it, thou just Spirit of Equality, which hast spread one royal mantle of humanity over all my kind! Bear me out in it, thou great democratic God! who didst not refuse to the swart convict, Bunyan, the pale, poetic pearl; Thou who didst clothe with doubly hammered leaves of finest gold, the stumped and paupered arm of old Cervantes; Thou who didst pick up Andrew Jackson from the pebbles; who didst hurl him upon a war-horse; who didst thunder him higher than a throne! Thou who, in all Thy mighty, earthly marchings, ever cullest Thy selectest champions from the kingly commoners; bear me out in it, O God!

If, then, to the lowest sailors, outcasts, and lost souls, I will hereafter attribute noble traits, even if they are shadowy; if I will surround them with tragic beauty; if even the saddest, perhaps the most disgraced among them, will sometimes rise to great heights; if I will touch that worker's arm with some heavenly glow; if I will cast a rainbow over his miserable sunset; then, against all earthly critics, support me in this, you just Spirit of Equality, which has spread a royal mantle of humanity over all people! Stand by me, you great democratic God! who did not deny the dark convict, Bunyan, the pale, poetic gem; You who adorned with carefully crafted golden leaves the maimed and impoverished arm of old Cervantes; You who lifted Andrew Jackson from the ground; who threw him onto a war-horse; who raised him higher than a throne! You who, in all Your mighty earthly movements, always choose Your finest champions from the noble commoners; support me in this, O God!

CHAPTER 27

Knights and Squires

Knights and Pages

Stubb was the second mate. He was a native of Cape Cod; and hence, according to local usage, was called a Cape-Cod-man. A happy-go-lucky; neither craven nor valiant; taking perils as they came with an indifferent air; and while engaged in the most imminent crisis of the chase, toiling away, calm and collected as a journeyman joiner engaged for the year. Good-humored, easy, and careless, he presided over his whaleboat as if the most deadly encounter were but a dinner, and his crew all invited guests. He was as particular about the comfortable arrangements of his part of the boat, as an old stage-driver is about the snugness of his box. When close to the whale, in the very death-lock of the fight, he handled his unpitying lance coolly and off-handedly, as a whistling tinker his hammer. He would hum over his old rigadig tunes while flank and flank with the most exasperated monster. Long usage had, for this Stubb, converted the jaws of death into an easy chair. What he thought of death itself, there is no telling. Whether he ever thought of it at all, might be a question; but, if he ever did chance to cast his mind that way after a comfortable dinner, no doubt, like a good sailor, he took it to be a sort of call of the watch to tumble aloft, and bestir themselves there, about something which he would find out when he obeyed the order, and not sooner.

Stubb was the second mate. He was from Cape Cod, and due to that, he was called a Cape-Cod-man. He was carefree, neither cowardly nor brave, taking risks as they came with a nonchalant attitude. Even in the most intense moments of the chase, he worked away, calm and collected like a skilled carpenter on a year-long job. Good-natured, easygoing, and careless, he ran his whaleboat as if the most dangerous encounter was just a dinner party, with his crew as invited guests. He paid as much attention to the comfort of his part of the boat as an old stagecoach driver does to the snugness of his seat. When close to the whale, in the thick of the fight, he handled his merciless lance casually, like a tinkerer with his hammer. He would hum his old catchy tunes while battling the most furious monster. Long experience had turned the jaws of death into a comfy chair for Stubb. What he thought about death itself is uncertain. Whether he ever thought about it at all might be debatable, but if he did happen to think about it after a satisfying meal, undoubtedly, like a good sailor, he saw it as a call to action, to get up and do something he would figure out when it was time, and not before.

What, perhaps, with other things, made Stubb such an easy-going, unfearing man, so cheerily trudging off with the burden of life in a world full of grave peddlers, all bowed to the ground with their packs; what helped to bring about that almost impious good-humor of his; that thing must have been his pipe. For, like his nose, his short, black little pipe was one of the regular features of his face. You would almost as soon have expected him to turn out of his bunk without his nose as without his pipe. He kept a whole row of pipes there ready loaded, stuck in a rack, within easy reach of his hand; and, whenever he turned in, he smoked them all out in succession, lighting one from the other to the end of the chapter; then loading them again to be in readiness anew. For, when Stubb dressed, instead of first putting his legs into his trowsers, he put his pipe into his mouth.

What, maybe along with other things, made Stubb such an easy-going, unafraid guy, cheerfully trudging off with the weight of life in a world full of serious traders, all hunched over with their loads; what contributed to his almost irreverent good humor; that thing must have been his pipe. Because, just like his nose, his short, black little pipe was a defining feature of his face. You would almost expect him to get out of his bunk without his nose as much as without his pipe. He kept a whole rack of ready-loaded pipes within easy reach; and, whenever he turned in, he smoked through them one after the other, lighting one from the next until he finished them all; then reloaded them to be ready again. Because, when Stubb got dressed, instead of first slipping his legs into his pants, he popped his pipe into his mouth.

I say this continual smoking must have been one cause, at least of his peculiar disposition; for every one knows that this earthly air, whether ashore or afloat, is terribly infected with the nameless miseries of the numberless mortals who have died exhaling it; and as in time of the cholera, some people go about with a camphorated handkerchief to their mouths; so, likewise, against all mortal tribulations, Stubb's tobacco smoke might have operated as a sort of disinfecting agent.

I think this constant smoking has to be one reason for his unusual personality, because everyone knows that the air we breathe, whether on land or at sea, is filled with the unspoken suffering of countless people who have died breathing it in. Just like during cholera outbreaks, when some people carry camphorated handkerchiefs to cover their mouths, Stubb's tobacco smoke might have acted like a sort of disinfectant against all the problems of life.

The third mate was Flask, a native of Tisbury, in Martha's Vineyard. A short, stout, ruddy young fellow, very pugnacious concerning whales, who somehow seemed to think that the great Leviathans had personally and hereditarily affronted him; and therefore it was a sort of point of honor with him, to destroy them whenever encountered. So utterly lost was he to all sense of reverence for the many marvels of their majestic bulk and mystic ways; and so dead to anything like an apprehension of any possible danger from encountering them; that in his poor opinion, the wondrous whale was but a species of magnified mouse, or at least water-rat, requiring only a little circumvention and some small application of time and trouble in order to kill and boil. This ignorant, unconscious fearlessness of his made him a little waggish in the matter of whales; he followed these fish for the fun of it; and a three years' voyage round Cape Horn was only a jolly joke that lasted that length of time. As a carpenter's nails are divided into wrought nails and cut nails; so mankind may be similarly divided. Little Flask was one of the wrought ones; made to clinch tight and last long. They called him King-Post on board of the Pequod; because, in form, he could be well likened to the short, square timber known by that name in Arctic whalers; and which by the means of many radiating side timbers inserted into it, serves to brace the ship against the icy concussions of those battering seas.

The third mate was Flask, a guy from Tisbury in Martha's Vineyard. He was a short, stocky, red-faced young man who had a fierce attitude towards whales and seemed to believe that the massive creatures had insulted him personally and for generations. For him, it was a point of pride to hunt them down whenever he saw them. He had completely lost any sense of awe for their impressive size and mysterious nature. He was oblivious to any potential danger posed by these animals; in his eyes, the magnificent whale was just a giant mouse or maybe a water-rat, needing only a bit of cleverness and some effort to catch and cook. His unaware boldness made him a bit playful about whales; he pursued them for the thrill of it, treating a three-year voyage around Cape Horn as just a long-running joke. Just as carpenter's nails are classified as wrought and cut nails, people can be divided similarly. Little Flask was one of the wrought ones; he was built to hold tight and endure. They called him King-Post on board the Pequod because he resembled the short, square timber by that name used in Arctic whalers, which, along with many side timbers radiating from it, helps brace the ship against the harsh impacts of those rough seas.

Now these three mates—Starbuck, Stubb and Flask, were momentous men. They it was who by universal prescription commanded three of the Pequod's boats as headsmen. In that grand order of battle in which Captain Ahab would probably marshal his forces to descend on the whales, these three headsmen were as captains of companies. Or, being armed with their long keen whaling spears, they were as a picked trio of lancers; even as the harpooneers were flingers of javelins.

Now these three guys—Starbuck, Stubb, and Flask—were important men. They were universally recognized as the ones who commanded three of the Pequod's boats as headsmen. In that grand strategy where Captain Ahab would likely organize his forces to chase after the whales, these three headsmen were like captains of different teams. Or, armed with their long, sharp whaling spears, they were like a chosen trio of lancers; just as the harpooneers were like throwers of javelins.

And since in this famous fishery, each mate or headsman, like a Gothic Knight of old, is always accompanied by his boat-steerer or harpooneer, who in certain conjunctures provides him with a fresh lance, when the former one has been badly twisted, or elbowed in the assault; and moreover, as there generally subsists between the two, a close intimacy and friendliness; it is therefore but meet, that in this place we set down who the Pequod's harpooneers were, and to what headsman each of them belonged.

And since in this famous fishing area, every mate or leader, just like a Gothic Knight from the past, is always accompanied by his boat steerer or harpooner, who at times gives him a new spear when the old one is bent or damaged in the fight; and also, because there’s usually a strong bond and friendship between the two; it's only right that we note who the Pequod's harpooners were and which leader each of them worked with.

First of all was Queequeg, whom Starbuck, the chief mate, had selected for his squire. But Queequeg is already known.

First up was Queequeg, who Starbuck, the chief mate, had chosen as his squire. But Queequeg is already well-known.

Next was Tashtego, an unmixed Indian from Gay Head, the most westerly promontory of Martha's Vineyard, where there still exists the last remnant of a village of red men, which has long supplied the neighboring island of Nantucket with many of her most daring harpooneers. In the fishery, they usually go by the generic name of Gay-Headers. Tashtego's long, lean, sable hair, his high cheek bones, and black rounding eyes—for an Indian, Oriental in their largeness, but Antarctic in their glittering expression—all this sufficiently proclaimed him an inheritor of the unvitiated blood of those proud warrior hunters, who, in quest of the great New England moose, had scoured, bow in hand, the aboriginal forests of the main. But no longer snuffing in the trail of the wild beasts of the woodland, Tashtego now hunted in the wake of the great whales of the sea; the unerring harpoon of the son fitly replacing the infallible arrow of the sires. To look at the tawny brawn of his lithe snaky limbs, you would almost have credited the superstitions of some of the earlier Puritans and half-believed this wild Indian to be a son of the Prince of the Powers of the Air. Tashtego was Stubb the second mate's squire.

Next was Tashtego, a pure Native American from Gay Head, the westernmost point of Martha's Vineyard, where the last remnants of a village of Indigenous people still exist, having long provided many of Nantucket's most daring whalers. In the fishing industry, they are generally referred to as Gay-Headers. Tashtego's long, lean, black hair, high cheekbones, and round black eyes—Oriental in their size but sparkling like the Antarctic—clearly marked him as a descendant of those proud warrior hunters who, in search of the great New England moose, had roamed the original forests of the mainland with bow in hand. But no longer tracking wild animals, Tashtego now pursued the great whales of the ocean; the precise harpoon of this son fittingly replaced the unerring arrow of his ancestors. Looking at the tawny muscles of his agile limbs, you might almost have believed some of the early Puritans' superstitions and half-expected this wild Indian to be a descendant of the Prince of the Powers of the Air. Tashtego was Stubb the second mate's assistant.

Third among the harpooneers was Daggoo, a gigantic, coal-black negro-savage, with a lion-like tread—an Ahasuerus to behold. Suspended from his ears were two golden hoops, so large that the sailors called them ringbolts, and would talk of securing the top-sail halyards to them. In his youth Daggoo had voluntarily shipped on board of a whaler, lying in a lonely bay on his native coast. And never having been anywhere in the world but in Africa, Nantucket, and the pagan harbors most frequented by the whalemen; and having now led for many years the bold life of the fishery in the ships of owners uncommonly heedful of what manner of men they shipped; Daggoo retained all his barbaric virtues, and erect as a giraffe, moved about the decks in all the pomp of six feet five in his socks. There was a corporeal humility in looking up at him; and a white man standing before him seemed a white flag come to beg truce of a fortress. Curious to tell, this imperial negro, Ahasuerus Daggoo, was the Squire of little Flask, who looked like a chess-man beside him. As for the residue of the Pequod's company, be it said, that at the present day not one in two of the many thousand men before the mast employed in the American whale fishery, are Americans born, though pretty nearly all the officers are. Herein it is the same with the American whale fishery as with the American army and military and merchant navies, and the engineering forces employed in the construction of the American Canals and Railroads. The same, I say, because in all these cases the native American literally provides the brains, the rest of the world as generously supplying the muscles. No small number of these whaling seamen belong to the Azores, where the outward bound Nantucket whalers frequently touch to augment their crews from the hardy peasants of those rocky shores. In like manner, the Greenland whalers sailing out of Hull or London, put in at the Shetland Islands, to receive the full complement of their crew. Upon the passage homewards, they drop them there again. How it is, there is no telling, but Islanders seem to make the best whalemen. They were nearly all Islanders in the Pequod, Isolatoes too, I call such, not acknowledging the common continent of men, but each Isolato living on a separate continent of his own. Yet now, federated along one keel, what a set these Isolatoes were! An Anacharsis Clootz deputation from all the isles of the sea, and all the ends of the earth, accompanying Old Ahab in the Pequod to lay the world's grievances before that bar from which not very many of them ever come back. Black Little Pip— he never did—oh, no! he went before. Poor Alabama boy! On the grim Pequod's forecastle, ye shall ere long see him, beating his tambourine; prelusive of the eternal time, when sent for, to the great quarter-deck on high, he was bid strike in with angels, and beat his tambourine in glory; called a coward here, hailed a hero there!

Third among the harpooneers was Daggoo, a massive, coal-black man, with a lion-like stride—an impressive sight. From his ears hung two large golden hoops, so big that the sailors referred to them as ringbolts and joked about securing the top-sail halyards to them. In his youth, Daggoo had chosen to join a whaler that was docked in a remote bay on his home coast. Having only traveled in Africa, Nantucket, and the pagan ports frequented by whalers, and after years of bravely working in the fishery on ships owned by those who paid careful attention to the type of crew they hired, Daggoo kept all his primal traits and moved around the deck like a tall figure at six feet five. There was a certain humbling feeling in looking up at him; a white man standing before him seemed like a white flag begging for peace from a stronghold. Interestingly, this impressive man, Ahasuerus Daggoo, was the right-hand man of little Flask, who looked like a chess piece next to him. As for the rest of the Pequod's crew, it should be noted that today, not even half of the many thousands of men working in the American whaling industry are born Americans, although nearly all the officers are. This situation mirrors that of the American army, military and merchant navies, and the engineering forces working on American canals and railroads. I say the same because in all these cases, native Americans provide the brains, while the rest of the world generously offers the muscle. Many of these whaling sailors come from the Azores, where Nantucket whalers often stop to add tough local men to their crews. Similarly, Greenland whalers leaving from Hull or London stop at the Shetland Islands to fully crew their ships. On their way back, they drop these men off again. It's hard to say why, but islanders seem to make the best whalers. Most of the crew on the Pequod were islanders, Isolatoes as I call them, not recognizing the shared continent of humanity, but each Isolato living on their own isolated land. Yet now, joined together on one ship, what a crew these Isolatoes were! A diverse group from all corners of the sea and the world, following Old Ahab on the Pequod to voice the world's issues before that place from which not many return. Black Little Pip—he never did—oh no! he went before. Poor Alabama boy! On the grim Pequod's forecastle, you'll soon see him, beating his tambourine; a precursor to the eternal time when he was called up to the great quarterdeck above, told to join the angels, and beat his tambourine in glory; called a coward here, hailed a hero there!

CHAPTER 28

Ahab

Ahab

For several days after leaving Nantucket, nothing above hatches was seen of Captain Ahab. The mates regularly relieved each other at the watches, and for aught that could be seen to the contrary, they seemed to be the only commanders of the ship; only they sometimes issued from the cabin with orders so sudden and peremptory, that after all it was plain they but commanded vicariously. Yes, their supreme lord and dictator was there, though hitherto unseen by any eyes not permitted to penetrate into the now sacred retreat of the cabin.

For several days after leaving Nantucket, Captain Ahab was not seen above deck. The mates took turns watching over the ship, and as far as anyone could tell, they were the only ones in command. However, they occasionally emerged from the cabin with orders that were so abrupt and authoritative that it was clear they were only acting on behalf of someone else. Yes, their ultimate leader was present, though until now, no one but a select few had been allowed to see into the now-holy space of the cabin.

Every time I ascended to the deck from my watches below, I instantly gazed aft to mark if any strange face were visible; for my first vague disquietude touching the unknown captain, now in the seclusion of the sea became almost a perturbation. This was strangely heightened at times by the ragged Elijah's diabolical incoherences uninvitedly recurring to me, with a subtle energy I could not have before conceived of. But poorly could I withstand them, much as in other moods I was almost ready to smile at the solemn whimsicalities of that outlandish prophet of the wharves. But whatever it was of apprehensiveness or uneasiness—to call it so— which I felt, yet whenever I came to look about me in the ship, it seemed against all warranty to cherish such emotions. For though the harpooneers, with the great body of the crew, were a far more barbaric, heathenish, and motley set than any of the tame merchant-ship companies which my previous experiences had made me acquainted with, still I ascribed this—and rightly ascribed it—to the fierce uniqueness of the very nature of that wild Scandinavian vocation in which I had so abandonedly embarked. But it was especially the aspect of the three chief officers of the ship, the mates, which was most forcibly calculated to allay these colorless misgivings, and induce confidence and cheerfulness in every presentment of the voyage. Three better, more likely sea-officers and men, each in his own different way, could not readily be found, and they were every one of them Americans; a Nantucketer, a Vineyarder, a Cape man. Now, it being Christmas when the ship shot from out her harbor, for a space we had biting Polar weather, though all the time running away from it to the southward; and by every degree and minute of latitude which we sailed, gradually leaving that merciless winter, and all its intolerable weather behind us. It was one of those less lowering, but still grey and gloomy enough mornings of the transition, when with a fair wind the ship was rushing through the water with a vindictive sort of leaping and melancholy rapidity, that as I mounted to the deck at the call of the forenoon watch, so soon as I levelled my glance towards the taffrail, foreboding shivers ran over me. Reality outran apprehension; Captain Ahab stood upon his quarter-deck.

Every time I came up to the deck from my shifts below, I quickly looked back to see if any unfamiliar faces were visible. My initial vague unease about the unknown captain was now turning into a real feeling of anxiety in the isolation of the sea. This feeling was strangely intensified at times by the crazy ramblings of the ragged Elijah, which kept resurfacing in my mind with an intensity I couldn’t have previously imagined. I could hardly bear it, even though in other moods I was almost ready to laugh at the solemn quirks of that bizarre prophet of the docks. But whatever this feeling of dread or discomfort—if I can call it that—was, whenever I looked around the ship, it seemed unreasonable to hold onto those emotions. Although the harpooneers, along with most of the crew, were a much more wild, uncivilized, and mixed group than any of the tame merchant ship crews I had encountered before, I attributed this—and rightly so—to the fierce uniqueness of the wild Scandinavian job I had so recklessly taken up. However, it was mainly the presence of the three chief officers of the ship, the mates, that effectively eased my colorless worries and instilled confidence and cheerfulness in every expectation of the voyage. You couldn’t easily find three better, more capable sea officers and men, each in his own unique way, and they were all Americans: a Nantucketer, a Vineyarder, and a Cape man. Since it was Christmas when the ship left the harbor, we faced harsh Polar weather for a while, though we were always heading south to escape it; with every degree and minute of latitude we traveled, we gradually left that brutal winter and its intolerable conditions behind us. It was one of those less dreary but still grey and gloomy mornings of transition when, with a favorable wind, the ship was speeding through the water with a bitter kind of leaping and melancholy rapidity. As I climbed to the deck at the call of the forenoon watch, the moment I focused my gaze on the taffrail, a foreboding chill ran through me. Reality came faster than my worries; Captain Ahab was standing on his quarter-deck.

There seemed no sign of common bodily illness about him, nor of the recovery from any. He looked like a man cut away from the stake, when the fire has overrunningly wasted all the limbs without consuming them, or taking away one particle from their compacted aged robustness. His whole high, broad form, seemed made of solid bronze, and shaped in an unalterable mould, like Cellini's cast Perseus. Threading its way out from among his grey hairs, and continuing right down one side of his tawny scorched face and neck, till it disappeared in his clothing, you saw a slender rod-like mark, lividly whitish. It resembled that perpendicular seam sometimes made in the straight, lofty trunk of a great tree, when the upper lightning tearingly darts down it, and without wrenching a single twig, peels and grooves out the bark from top to bottom ere running off into the soil, leaving the tree still greenly alive, but branded. Whether that mark was born with him, or whether it was the scar left by some desperate wound, no one could certainly say. By some tacit consent, throughout the voyage little or no allusion was made to it, especially by the mates. But once Tashtego's senior, an old Gay-Head Indian among the crew, superstitiously asserted that not till he was full forty years old did Ahab become that way branded, and then it came upon him, not in the fury of any mortal fray, but in an elemental strife at sea. Yet, this wild hint seemed inferentially negatived, by what a grey Manxman insinuated, an old sepulchral man, who, having never before sailed out of Nantucket, had never ere this laid eye upon wild Ahab. Nevertheless, the old sea-traditions, the immemorial credulities, popularly invested this old Manxman with preternatural powers of discernment. So that no white sailor seriously contradicted him when he said that if ever Captain Ahab should be tranquilly laid out— which might hardly come to pass, so he muttered—then, whoever should do that last office for the dead, would find a birth-mark on him from crown to sole.

There seemed to be no signs of common physical illness in him, nor of recovery from any. He looked like a man who had been cut down from a stake when the fire had thoroughly burned away all his limbs without consuming them or taking away any part of their sturdy, aged strength. His entire tall, broad form seemed made of solid bronze and shaped in an unchangeable mold, like Cellini's cast of Perseus. A slender, rod-like, pale mark threaded its way out from among his grey hair, continuing down one side of his tanned, scorched face and neck until it disappeared into his clothing. It looked like that vertical seam carved into the tall trunk of a great tree when lightning strikes down it, peeling and grooving the bark from top to bottom without breaking a single branch, leaving the tree still green and alive but branded. Whether that mark was something he was born with or a scar from a severe wound, no one could say for sure. By a kind of mutual agreement, little to no mention was made of it during the voyage, especially by the crew members. But once, Tashtego's superior, an old Gay-Head Indian among the crew, superstitiously claimed that Ahab had become branded only after he turned forty, and that it happened not in the heat of any human conflict, but in a struggle against the elements at sea. However, this wild suggestion seemed to be subtly contradicted by what an old Manxman hinted, a grave man who had never before sailed out of Nantucket and had never laid eyes on wild Ahab until now. Still, the old sea traditions and long-held superstitions gave this old Manxman an air of supernatural insight. So no white sailor seriously disputed him when he said that if Captain Ahab were ever laid out peacefully—which seemed unlikely, he muttered—then whoever performed the last rites for the dead would find a birthmark on him from head to toe.

So powerfully did the whole grim aspect of Ahab affect me, and the livid brand which streaked it, that for the first few moments I hardly noted that not a little of this overbearing grimness was owing to the barbaric white leg upon which he partly stood. It had previously come to me that this ivory leg had at sea been fashioned from the polished bone of the sperm whale's jaw. "Aye, he was dismasted off Japan," said the old Gay-Head Indian once; "but like his dismasted craft, he shipped another mast without coming home for it. He has a quiver of 'em."

The whole dark vibe of Ahab really hit me hard, especially the pale scar running across his face. For the first few moments, I barely noticed that a big part of this intense grimness came from the barbaric white leg he was standing on. I had previously learned that this ivory leg had been made at sea from the polished bone of a sperm whale's jaw. "Yeah, he lost his mast off Japan," an old Gay-Head Indian once said; "but just like his dismasted ship, he got another mast without coming back for it. He's got a whole collection of them."

I was struck with the singular posture he maintained. Upon each side of the Pequod's quarter deck, and pretty close to the mizzen shrouds, there was an auger hole, bored about half an inch or so, into the plank. His bone leg steadied in that hole; one arm elevated, and holding by a shroud; Captain Ahab stood erect, looking straight out beyond the ship's ever-pitching prow. There was an infinity of firmest fortitude, a determinate, unsurrenderable wilfulness, in the fixed and fearless, forward dedication of that glance. Not a word he spoke; nor did his officers say aught to him; though by all their minutest gestures and expressions, they plainly showed the uneasy, if not painful, consciousness of being under a troubled master-eye. And not only that, but moody stricken Ahab stood before them with a crucifixion in his face; in all the nameless regal overbearing dignity of some mighty woe.

I was struck by the unique stance he held. On each side of the Pequod's quarterdeck, close to the mizzen shrouds, there was a hole drilled about half an inch into the wood. His wooden leg anchored in that hole; one arm raised and gripping a shroud, Captain Ahab stood straight, gazing far beyond the ship's constantly pitching bow. There was an overwhelming sense of unyielding strength, a determined, unyielding will in the steady and bold focus of that gaze. He didn't say a word; nor did his officers speak to him; yet through their smallest gestures and expressions, they made it clear they felt the unease, if not the pain, of being under a troubled leader's gaze. Moreover, moody Ahab stood before them with an expression of deep suffering; bearing the heavy, unnameable dignity of immense sorrow.

Ere long, from his first visit in the air, he withdrew into his cabin. But after that morning, he was every day visible to the crew; either standing in his pivot-hole, or seated upon an ivory stool he had; or heavily walking the deck. As the sky grew less gloomy; indeed, began to grow a little genial, he became still less and less a recluse; as if, when the ship had sailed from home, nothing but the dead wintry bleakness of the sea had then kept him so secluded. And, by and by, it came to pass, that he was almost continually in the air; but, as yet, for all that he said, or perceptibly did, on the at last sunny deck, he seemed as unnecessary there as another mast. But the Pequod was only making a passage now; not regularly cruising; nearly all whaling preparatives needing supervision the mates were fully competent to, so that there was little or nothing, out of himself, to employ or excite Ahab, now; and thus chase away, for that one interval, the clouds that layer upon layer were piled upon his brow, as ever all clouds choose the loftiest peaks to pile themselves upon.

Before long, after his first flight, he retreated to his cabin. But after that morning, he was visible to the crew every day; either standing in his usual spot, sitting on an ivory stool he owned, or walking heavily on the deck. As the sky became less gloomy and started to warm up a bit, he grew less of a recluse; it was as if the dead, wintry bleakness of the sea had kept him secluded since the ship had left home. Eventually, he was almost always in the open air; yet, despite everything he said or did on the now sunny deck, he seemed as unnecessary there as another mast. The Pequod was only making a passage now, not actively whaling; the mates were fully capable of handling all whaling preparations, so there was little for Ahab to do or excite him now; and thus, for that brief moment, the clouds that layered upon his brow, as they always do, kept piling up on the highest peaks.

Nevertheless, ere long, the warm, warbling persuasiveness of the pleasant, holiday weather we came to, seemed gradually to charm him from his mood. For, as when the red-cheeked, dancing girls, April and May, trip home to the wintry, misanthropic woods; even the barest, ruggedest, most thunder-cloven old oak will at least send forth some few green sprouts, to welcome such gladhearted visitants; so Ahab did, in the end, a little respond to the playful allurings of that girlish air. More than once did he put forth the faint blossom of a look, which, in any other man, would have soon flowered out in a smile.

Nevertheless, before long, the warm, cheerful charm of the nice holiday weather we experienced seemed to gradually uplift his mood. Just as when the rosy-cheeked, dancing girls of April and May return to the cold, gloomy woods, even the oldest, roughest, most weather-beaten oak will at least sprout a few green leaves to welcome such joyful visitors; Ahab, in the end, did respond a bit to the playful calls of that youthful air. More than once, he offered a faint glimmer of a look that, in any other man, would have quickly blossomed into a smile.

CHAPTER 29

Enter Ahab; to Him, Stubb

Enter Ahab; to him, Stubb

Some days elapsed, and ice and icebergs all astern, the Pequod now went rolling through the bright Quito spring, which at sea, almost perpetually reigns on the threshold of the eternal August of the Tropic. The warmly cool, clear, ringing perfumed, overflowing, redundant days, were as crystal goblets of Persian sherbet, heaped up— flaked up, with rose-water snow. The starred and stately nights seemed haughty dames in jewelled velvets, nursing at home in lonely pride, the memory of their absent conquering Earls, the golden helmeted suns! For sleeping man, 'twas hard to choose between such winsome days and such seducing nights. But all the witcheries of that unwaning weather did not merely lend new spells and potencies to the outward world. Inward they turned upon the soul, especially when the still mild hours of eve came on; then, memory shot her crystals as the clear ice most forms of noiseless twilights. And all these subtle agencies, more and more they wrought on Ahab's texture.

Some days passed, and with ice and icebergs behind them, the Pequod now rolled through the bright Quito spring, which almost always hangs on the edge of the eternal summer of the Tropics at sea. The warm, cool, clear, fragrant, overflowing days felt like crystal goblets of Persian sherbet, piled high with rose-water snow. The starry and grand nights resembled proud ladies in jeweled velvet, home alone, remembering their absent conquering Earls, the sun shining like a golden helmet! For a sleeping man, it was tough to choose between such charming days and such tempting nights. But all the magic of that unchanging weather didn’t just cast new spells on the world outside. It turned inward toward the soul, especially as the calm, mild evenings approached; then, memory sparked like crystals in the clear ice of quiet twilights. And all these subtle influences increasingly affected Ahab’s being.

Old age is always wakeful; as if, the longer linked with life, the less man has to do with aught that looks like death. Among sea-commanders, the old greybeards will oftenest leave their berths to visit the night-cloaked deck. It was so with Ahab; only that now, of late, he seemed so much to live in the open air, that truly speaking, his visits were more to the cabin, than from the cabin to the planks. "It feels like going down into one's tomb,"—he would mutter to himself—"for an old captain like me to be descending this narrow scuttle, to go to my grave-dug berth."

Old age is always restless; as if the longer someone is tied to life, the less they have to do with anything that resembles death. Among sea captains, the older guys are the ones most likely to leave their cabins to walk on the deck at night. Ahab was like that; the only difference was that lately, he seemed to spend so much time outside that, honestly, it felt more like he was going to the cabin than coming from it to the deck. "It feels like going down into my grave," he would mutter to himself, "for an old captain like me to be going down this narrow ladder to my grave-dug cabin."

So, almost every twenty-four hours, when the watches of the night were set, and the band on deck sentinelled the slumbers of the band below; and when if a rope was to be hauled upon the forecastle, the sailors flung it not rudely down, as by day, but with some cautiousness dropt it to its place for fear of disturbing their slumbering shipmates; when this sort of steady quietude would begin to prevail, habitually, the silent steersman would watch the cabin-scuttle; and ere long the old man would emerge, gripping at the iron banister, to help his crippled way. Some considering touch of humanity was in him; for at times like these, he usually abstained from patrolling the quarter-deck; because to his wearied mates, seeking repose within six inches of his ivory heel, such would have been the reverberating crack and din of that bony step, that their dreams would have been of the crunching teeth of sharks. But once, the mood was on him too deep for common regardings; and as with heavy, lumber-like pace he was measuring the ship from taffrail to mainmast, Stubb, the old second mate, came up from below, and with a certain unassured, deprecating humorousness, hinted that if Captain Ahab was pleased to walk the planks, then, no one could say nay; but there might be some way of muffling the noise; hinting something indistinctly and hesitatingly about a globe of tow, and the insertion into it, of the ivory heel. Ah! Stubb, thou didst not know Ahab then.

So, almost every twenty-four hours, when the night watches were set, and the crew on deck kept an eye on the crew below; and when a rope needed to be pulled on the forecastle, the sailors didn’t just drop it like they did during the day, but carefully placed it down to avoid waking their sleeping shipmates; when this kind of steady calm would start to take over, the silent steersman would watch the cabin door; and soon, the old man would come out, gripping the iron railing to help himself along. There was a touch of humanity in him; for at times like these, he usually avoided walking the quarter-deck; because for his weary mates, trying to rest just inches away from his ivory heel, the sound of his heavy steps would have made them dream of jaws snapping shut like sharks. But one time, he was in a mood too deep to care about that; and as he walked slowly and heavily from the taffrail to the mainmast, Stubb, the old second mate, came up from below and jokingly suggested that if Captain Ahab wanted to walk the deck, then no one could object; but there might be a way to muffle the noise, hinting awkwardly about using a ball of tow and putting the ivory heel into it. Ah! Stubb, you didn't know Ahab then.

"Am I a cannon-ball, Stubb," said Ahab, "that thou wouldst wad me that fashion? But go thy ways; I had forgot. Below to thy nightly grave; where such as ye sleep between shrouds, to use ye to the filling one at last.—Down, dog, and kennel!"

"Am I just some cannonball, Stubb," Ahab asked, "that you’d pack me away like that? But do what you want; I had forgotten. Go below to your nightly grave, where people like you sleep between shrouds, to finally fill one at the end.—Down, dog, and get in your kennel!"

Starting at the unforeseen concluding exclamation of the so suddenly scornful old man, Stubb was speechless a moment; then said excitedly, "I am not used to be spoken to that way, sir; I do but less than half like it, sir."

Starting at the unexpected final shout of the suddenly disdainful old man, Stubb was momentarily at a loss for words; then he said excitedly, "I’m not used to being spoken to like that, sir; I like it less than half, sir."

"Avast! gritted Ahab between his set teeth, and violently moving away, as if to avoid some passionate temptation.

"Stop! gritted Ahab between his clenched teeth, and he violently moved away, as if to escape some intense temptation."

"No, sir; not yet," said Stubb, emboldened, "I will not tamely be called a dog, sir."

"No, sir; not yet," said Stubb, gaining confidence, "I refuse to be called a dog, sir."

"Then be called ten times a donkey, and a mule, and an ass, and begone, or I'll clear the world of thee!"

"Then be called a donkey, a mule, and an ass ten times, and get lost, or I'll get rid of you for good!"

As he said this, Ahab advanced upon him with such overbearing terrors in his aspect, that Stubb involuntarily retreated.

As he said this, Ahab approached him with such an intimidating presence that Stubb instinctively stepped back.

"I was never served so before without giving a hard blow for it," muttered Stubb, as he found himself descending the cabin-scuttle. "It's very queer. Stop, Stubb; somehow, now, I don't well know whether to go back and strike him, or—what's that?— down here on my knees and pray for him? Yes, that was the thought coming up in me; but it would be the first time I ever did pray. It's queer; very queer; and he's queer too; aye, take him fore and aft, he's about the queerest old man Stubb ever sailed with. How he flashed at me!—his eyes like powder-pans! is he mad! Anyway there's something's on his mind, as sure as there must be something on a deck when it cracks. He aint in his bed now, either, more than three hours out of the twenty-four; and he don't sleep then. Didn't that Dough-Boy, the steward, tell me that of a morning he always finds the old man's hammock clothes all rumpled and tumbled, and the sheets down at the foot, and the coverlid almost tied into knots, and the pillow a sort of frightful hot, as though a baked brick had been on it? A hot old man! I guess he's got what some folks ashore call a conscience; it's a kind of Tic-Dolly-row they say— worse nor a toothache. Well, well; I don't know what it is, but the Lord keep me from catching it. He's full of riddles; I wonder what he goes into the after hold for, every night, as Dough-Boy tells me he suspects; what's that for, I should like to know? Who's made appointments with him in the hold? Ain't that queer, now? But there's no telling, it's the old game— Here goes for a snooze. Damn me, it's worth a fellow's while to be born into the world, if only to fall right asleep. And now that I think of it, that's about the first thing babies do, and that's a sort of queer, too. Damn me, but all things are queer, come to think of 'em. But that's against my principles. Think not, is my eleventh commandment; and sleep when you can, is my twelfth—So here goes again. But how's that? didn't he call me a dog? blazes! he called me ten times a donkey, and piled a lot of jackasses on top of that! He might as well have kicked me, and done with it. Maybe he did kick me, and I didn't observe it, I was so taken all aback with his brow, somehow. It flashed like a bleached bone. What the devil's the matter with me? I don't stand right on my legs. Coming afoul of that old man has a sort of turned me wrong side out. By the Lord, I must have been dreaming, though—How? how? how?— but the only way's to stash it; so here goes to hammock again; and in the morning, I'll see how this plaguey juggling thinks over by daylight."

"I've never been treated like this before without getting into a fight," Stubb muttered to himself as he was heading down the ladder into the cabin. "It's really strange. Wait, should I go back and hit him, or—what's that?—get down on my knees and pray for him? Yeah, that thought crossed my mind, but it would be the first time I actually prayed. It's odd; very odd; and he's odd too; seriously, from start to finish, he’s the weirdest old man Stubb has ever sailed with. The way he glared at me!—his eyes were like powder kegs! Is he crazy? Either way, something's obviously bothering him, just like there's always something going on when a deck creaks. He hardly spends more than three hours in his bed out of twenty-four; and he doesn't even sleep then. Didn't that Dough-Boy, the steward, tell me that in the mornings he always finds the old man's hammock all rumpled up, with the sheets at the foot and the cover almost in knots, and the pillow feeling like a hot brick? A hot old man! I suppose he's got what some people ashore call a conscience; it’s like a worse version of a toothache, they say. Well, I don’t know what it is, but I sure hope I don’t catch it. He's full of mysteries; I wonder why he sneaks down to the after hold every night, like Dough-Boy thinks—what's that all about? Who's meeting him in the hold? Isn’t that strange? But who knows, it’s just the same old game—time for a nap. Damn, it’s worth being born into the world just to fall asleep like this. And now that I think about it, that’s the first thing babies do, which is kind of weird too. Damn, but everything is strange when you really think about it. But that goes against my principles. Don't think, that's my eleventh commandment; and sleep whenever you can, that’s my twelfth—so, here I go again. But wait, didn’t he call me a dog? Hell! He called me a donkey ten times and threw in a bunch of jackasses for good measure! He might as well have just kicked me. Maybe he did kick me, and I didn’t notice because I was so startled by his expression. It was like a bleached bone. What the hell’s wrong with me? I can't stand properly. Running into that old man has kind of flipped me inside out. By God, I must have been dreaming—How? how? how?—but the only thing to do is to forget it; so I’m heading back to the hammock; and in the morning, I’ll see how this annoying mess makes sense in the sunlight."

CHAPTER 30

The Pipe

The Pipe

When Stubb had departed, Ahab stood for a while leaning over the bulwarks; and then, as had been usual with him of late, calling a sailor of the watch, he sent him below for his ivory stool, and also his pipe. Lighting the pipe at the binnacle lamp and planting the stool on the weather side of the deck, he sat and smoked.

When Stubb left, Ahab leaned over the rail for a moment. Then, as he often did recently, he called a sailor from the watch and sent him below for his ivory stool and his pipe. After lighting the pipe at the binnacle lamp and setting the stool on the side of the deck that faced the wind, he sat down and smoked.

In old Norse times, the thrones of the sea-loving Danish kings were fabricated, saith tradition, of the tusks of the narwhale. How could one look at Ahab then, seated on that tripod of bones, without bethinking him of the royalty it symbolized? For a Khan of the plank, and a king of the sea and a great lord of Leviathans was Ahab.

In ancient Norse times, it’s said that the thrones of the sea-loving Danish kings were made from the tusks of the narwhale. How could anyone look at Ahab then, sitting on that tripod of bones, without thinking about the royalty it represented? Ahab was like a Khan of the plank, a king of the sea, and a great lord of Leviathans.

Some moments passed, during which the thick vapor came from his mouth in quick and constant puffs, which blew back again into his face. "How now," he soliloquized at last, withdrawing the tube, "this smoking no longer soothes. Oh, my pipe! hard must it go with me if thy charm be gone! Here have I been unconsciously toiling, not pleasuring— aye, and ignorantly smoking to windward all the while; to windward, and with such nervous whiffs, as if, like the dying whale, my final jets were the strongest and fullest of trouble. What business have I with this pipe? This thing that is meant for sereneness, to send up mild white vapors among mild white hairs, not among torn iron-grey locks like mine. I'll smoke no more-"

Some moments passed, during which thick smoke puffed quickly from his mouth, blowing back into his face. "Well," he finally said to himself, pulling the pipe away, "this smoking isn’t soothing anymore. Oh, my pipe! It’s going to be tough for me if your magic is gone! Here I’ve been unknowingly working hard instead of enjoying myself—yes, and mindlessly smoking against the wind all this time; against the wind, and with such anxious puffs, as if, like a dying whale, my last breaths were filled with deeper trouble. What do I even have to do with this pipe? It’s supposed to bring peace, to let out soft white smoke among gentle gray hairs, not among my ragged iron-gray locks. I’ll smoke no more—"

He tossed the still lighted pipe into the sea. The fire hissed in the waves; the same instant the ship shot by the bubble the sinking pipe made. With slouched hat, Ahab lurchingly paced the planks.

He threw the still-lit pipe into the sea. The fire hissed in the waves; at that moment, the ship sped past the bubble created by the sinking pipe. With his hat slouched, Ahab staggered as he walked along the deck.

CHAPTER 31

Queen Mab

Queen Mab

Next morning Stubb accosted Flask.

The next morning, Stubb confronted Flask.

"Such a queer dream, King-Post, I never had. You know the old man's ivory leg, well I dreamed he kicked me with it; and when I tried to kick back, upon my soul, my little man, I kicked my leg right off! And then, presto! Ahab seemed a pyramid, and I like a blazing fool, kept kicking at it. But what was still more curious, Flask—you know how curious all dreams are—through all this rage that I was in, I somehow seemed to be thinking to myself, that after all, it was not much of an insult, that kick from Ahab. 'Why,' thinks I, 'what's the row? It's not a real leg, only a false one.' And there's a mighty difference between a living thump and a dead thump. That's what makes a blow from the hand, Flask, fifty times more savage to bear than a blow from a cane. The living member— that makes the living insult, my little man. And thinks I to myself all the while, mind, while I was stubbing my silly toes against that cursed pyramid—so confoundedly contradictory was it all, all the while, I say, I was thinking to myself, 'what's his leg now, but a cane-. a whale-bone cane. Yes,' thinks I, 'it was only a playful cudgelling—in fact, only a whaleboning that he gave me— not a base kick. Besides,' thinks I, 'look at it once; why, the end of it—the foot part—what a small sort of end it is; whereas, if a broad footed farmer kicked me, there's a devilish broad insult. But this insult is whittled down to a point only.' But now comes the greatest joke of the dream, Flask. While I was battering away at the pyramid, a sort of badger-haired old merman, with a hump on his back, takes me by the shoulders, and slews me round. 'What are you 'bout?' says he. Slid! man, but I was frightened. Such a phiz! But, somehow, next moment I was over the fright. 'What am I about?' says I at last. 'And what business is that of yours, I should like to know, Mr. Humpback? Do you want a kick?' By the lord, Flask, I had no sooner said that, than he turned round his stern to me, bent over, and dragging up a lot of seaweed he had for a clout—what do you think, I saw?—why thunder alive, man, his stern was stuck full of marlinspikes, with the points out. Says I on second thought, 'I guess I won't kick you, old fellow.' 'Wise Stubb,' said he, 'wise Stubb;' and kept muttering it all the time, a sort of eating of his own gums like a chimney hag. Seeing he wasn't going to stop saying over his 'wise Stubb, wise Stubb,' I thought I might as well fall to kicking the pyramid again. But I had only just lifted my foot for it, when he roared out, 'Stop that kicking!' 'Halloa,' says I, 'what's the matter now, old fellow?' 'Look ye here,' says he; 'let's argue the insult. Captain Ahab kicked ye, didn't he?' 'Yes, he did,' says I—'right here it was.' 'Very good,' says he—'he used his ivory leg, didn't he?' 'Yes, he did,' says I. 'Well then,' says he, 'wise Stubb, what have you to complain of? Didn't he kick with right good will? it wasn't a common pitch pine leg he kicked with, was it? No, you were kicked by a great man, and with a beautiful ivory leg, Stubb. It's an honor; I consider it an honor. Listen, wise Stubb. In old England the greatest lords think it great glory to be slapped by a queen, and made garter-knights of; but, be your boast, Stubb, that ye were kicked by old Ahab, and made a wise man of. Remember what I say; be kicked by him; account his kicks honors; and on no account kick back; for you can't help yourself, wise Stubb. Don't you see that pyramid?' With that, he all of a sudden seemed somehow, in some queer fashion, to swim off into the air. I snored; rolled over; and there I was in my hammock! Now, what do you think of that dream, Flask?"

"Such a weird dream, King-Post, I've never had. You know the old man's ivory leg? Well, I dreamed he kicked me with it, and when I tried to kick back, I swear, my little man, I kicked my own leg right off! And then, suddenly, Ahab looked like a pyramid, and I, like a complete fool, kept kicking at it. But what was even more strange, Flask—you know how odd dreams can be—in the midst of all this anger, I somehow kept thinking to myself that it wasn't really much of an insult, that kick from Ahab. 'Why,' I thought, 'what’s the big deal? It's not a real leg, just a fake one.' And there’s a huge difference between a living hit and a dead hit. That's what makes a punch from a person fifty times more painful than a hit from a cane. The living limb—that’s what creates the living insult, my little man. And mind you, while I was stubbing my toes against that cursed pyramid—how contradictory it all was—throughout, I kept thinking to myself, 'What’s his leg now, but a cane—a whale-bone cane. Yes,' I thought, 'it was just a playful hit—in fact, just a whale-boning he gave me—not a real kick. Besides,' I thought, 'look at it; the end of it—the foot part—what a small sort of end it is; whereas, if a broad-footed farmer kicked me, that would be a serious insult. But this insult is narrowed down to a point.' But now comes the funniest part of the dream, Flask. While I was kicking at the pyramid, this sort of old merman with badger hair and a hump on his back grabbed me by the shoulders and turned me around. 'What are you doing?' he asks. Man, I was startled. Such a face! But somehow, next moment I got over the fear. 'What am I doing?' I finally said. 'And what’s it to you, Mr. Humpback? Do you want a kick?' By God, Flask, as soon as I said that, he turned his back to me, bent over, and pulled up a bunch of seaweed he had for a rag—guess what I saw?—his backside was full of marlinspikes, points sticking out. I thought for a second, 'Maybe I won't kick you, old man.' 'Wise Stubb,' he said, 'wise Stubb;' and kept muttering it all the time, sort of chewing on his own gums like an old hag. Since he wasn’t going to stop with his 'wise Stubb, wise Stubb,' I figured I might as well start kicking the pyramid again. But I had just lifted my foot when he yelled, 'Stop that kicking!' 'Hey,' I said, 'what’s the issue now, old man?' 'Look here,' he said; 'let’s discuss the insult. Captain Ahab kicked you, didn’t he?' 'Yes, he did,' I said—'right here it was.' 'Very good,' he said—'he used his ivory leg, didn’t he?' 'Yes, he did,' I said. 'Well then,' he said, 'wise Stubb, what do you have to complain about? Didn’t he kick with a lot of intent? It wasn't a regular pitch pine leg he kicked you with, was it? No, you were kicked by a great man, and with a beautiful ivory leg, Stubb. It’s an honor; I see it as an honor. Listen, wise Stubb. In old England, the greatest lords think it a huge pride to be slapped by a queen, and made into knights; but take pride, Stubb, that you were kicked by old Ahab, and made a wise man. Remember what I say; be kicked by him; consider his kicks as honors; and under no circumstances kick back; because you can’t help yourself, wise Stubb. Don’t you see that pyramid?' With that, he suddenly seemed, in some strange way, to swim off into the air. I snored, rolled over, and there I was in my hammock! Now, what do you think of that dream, Flask?"

"I don't know; it seems a sort of foolish to me, tho.'"

"I don't know; it seems kind of silly to me, though."

"May be; may be. But it's made a wise man of me, Flask. D'ye see Ahab standing there, sideways looking over the stern? Well, the best thing you can do, Flask, is to let the old man alone; never speak to him, whatever he says. Halloa! What's that he shouts? Hark!"

"Maybe; maybe. But it's made me wiser, Flask. Do you see Ahab standing there, looking sideways over the back? Well, the best thing you can do, Flask, is to leave the old man alone; never talk to him, whatever he says. Hey! What's that he's shouting? Listen!"

"Mast-head, there! Look sharp, all of ye! There are whales hereabouts!

"Masthead, there! Pay attention, everyone! There are whales around here!"

If ye see a white one, split your lungs for him!

If you see a white one, shout your lungs out for him!

"What do you think of that now, Flask? ain't there a small drop of something queer about that, eh? A white whale—did ye mark that, man? Look ye—there's something special in the wind. Stand by for it, Flask. Ahab has that that's bloody on his mind. But, mum; he comes this way."

"What do you think about that now, Flask? Isn’t there something a bit strange about it, huh? A white whale—did you notice that, man? Look—there’s something different going on. Get ready for it, Flask. Ahab has something intense on his mind. But shh; he’s coming this way."

CHAPTER 32

Cetology

Cetology

Already we are boldly launched upon the deep; but soon we shall be lost in its unshored harborless immensities. Ere that come to pass; ere the Pequod's weedy hull rolls side by side with the barnacled hulls of the leviathan; at the outset it is but well to attend to a matter almost indispensable to a thorough appreciative understanding of the more special leviathanic revelations and allusions of all sorts which are to follow.

Already we’ve boldly set sail into the deep; but soon we’ll get lost in its vast, shoreless expanses. Before that happens; before the Pequod’s weathered hull rolls alongside the barnacle-encrusted hulls of the giant sea creatures; it’s important to pay attention to something essential for fully appreciating the detailed revelations and references to these leviathans that are coming up.

It is some systematized exhibition of the whale in his broad genera, that I would now fain put before you. Yet is it no easy task. The classification of the constituents of a chaos, nothing less is here essayed. Listen to what the best and latest authorities have laid down.

It’s a well-organized display of whales across their various types that I want to share with you now. But it’s not an easy job. This is nothing less than an effort to classify the parts of chaos. Pay attention to what the best and most recent experts have stated.

"No branch of Zoology is so much involved as that which is entitled Cetology," says Captain Scoresby, A.D. 1820.

"No area of Zoology is as complex as Cetology," says Captain Scoresby, A.D. 1820.

"It is not my intention, were it in my power, to enter into the inquiry as to the true method of dividing the cetacea into groups and families…. Utter confusion exists among the historians of this animal" (sperm whale), says Surgeon Beale, A.D. 1839.

"It’s not my goal, even if I could, to dive into the question of the best way to classify cetaceans into groups and families…. There is complete confusion among the historians of this animal" (sperm whale), says Surgeon Beale, A.D. 1839.

"Unfitness to pursue our research in the unfathomable waters."
"Impenetrable veil covering our knowledge of the cetacea."
"A field strewn with thorns." "All these incomplete indications
but serve to torture us naturalists."

"Unsuitable to continue our research in the mysterious depths."
"An impenetrable barrier obscuring our understanding of whales."
"A landscape filled with obstacles." "All these partial clues
only serve to torment us naturalists."

Thus speak of the whale, the great Cuvier, and John Hunter, and Lesson, those lights of zoology and anatomy. Nevertheless, though of real knowledge there be little, yet of books there are a plenty; and so in some small degree, with cetology, or the science of whales. Many are the men, small and great, old and new, landsmen and seamen, who have at large or in little, written of the whale. Run over a few:— The Authors of the Bible; Aristotle; Pliny; Aldrovandi; Sir Thomas Browne; Gesner; Ray; Linnaeus; Rondeletius; Willoughby; Green; Artedi; Sibbald; Brisson; Marten; Lacepede; Bonneterre; Desmarest; Baron Cuvier; Frederick Cuvier; John Hunter; Owen; Scoresby; Beale; Bennett; J. Ross Browne; the Author of Miriam Coffin; Olmstead; and the Rev. T. Cheever. But to what ultimate generalizing purpose all these have written, the above cited extracts will show.

So let's talk about the whale, featuring great figures like Cuvier, John Hunter, and Lesson, those shining stars of zoology and anatomy. However, while there's not much real knowledge out there, there are plenty of books on the subject; thus, there's a bit of the same happening with cetology, or the study of whales. Many people, big and small, old and new, both land-dwellers and sailors, have written about the whale to varying degrees. Here are a few: the Authors of the Bible; Aristotle; Pliny; Aldrovandi; Sir Thomas Browne; Gesner; Ray; Linnaeus; Rondeletius; Willoughby; Green; Artedi; Sibbald; Brisson; Marten; Lacepede; Bonneterre; Desmarest; Baron Cuvier; Frederick Cuvier; John Hunter; Owen; Scoresby; Beale; Bennett; J. Ross Browne; the Author of Miriam Coffin; Olmstead; and the Rev. T. Cheever. But for what broader purpose all these authors wrote, the cited excerpts will clarify.

Of the names in this list of whale authors only those following Owen ever saw living whales; and but one of them was a real professional harpooneer and whaleman. I mean Captain Scoresby. On the separate subject of the Greenland or right-whale, he is the best existing authority. But Scoresby knew nothing and says nothing of the great sperm whale, compared with which the Greenland whale is almost unworthy mentioning. And here be it said, that the Greenland whale is an usurper upon the throne of the seas. He is not even by any means the largest of the whales. Yet, owing to the long priority of his claims, and the profound ignorance which till some seventy years back, invested the then fabulous and utterly unknown sperm-whale, and which ignorance to this present day still reigns in all but some few scientific retreats and whale-ports; this usurpation has been every way complete. Reference to nearly all the leviathanic allusions in the great poets of past days, will satisfy you that the Greenland whale, without one rival, was to them the monarch of the seas. But the time has at last come for a new proclamation. This is Charing Cross; hear ye! good people all,—the Greenland whale is deposed,— the great sperm whale now reigneth!

Of the names on this list of whale authors, only those after Owen ever saw living whales; and only one of them was a true professional harpooner and whaleman. I’m talking about Captain Scoresby. He’s the leading authority on the Greenland or right whale. However, Scoresby knew nothing and said nothing about the great sperm whale, which is almost too great to mention next to the Greenland whale. It should be noted that the Greenland whale is an usurper of the throne of the seas. It’s not even the largest of the whales. Yet, due to its long-standing claims and the deep ignorance that surrounded the then-mysterious and completely unknown sperm whale until about seventy years ago—and which ignorance still persists today in all but a few scientific circles and whaling ports—this usurpation has been completely successful. Referring to nearly all the monstrous references in the works of great poets from the past will show you that for them, the Greenland whale, without any rival, was the king of the seas. But now the time has finally come for a new declaration. This is Charing Cross; listen up, everyone— the Greenland whale is out, and the great sperm whale now reigns!

There are only two books in being which at all pretend to put the living sperm whale before you, and at the same time, in the remotest degree succeed in the attempt. Those books are Beale's and Bennett's; both in their time surgeons to the English South-Sea whale-ships, and both exact and reliable men. The original matter touching the sperm whale to be found in their volumes is necessarily small; but so far as it goes, it is of excellent quality, though mostly confined to scientific description. As yet, however, the sperm whale, scientific or poetic, lives not complete in any literature. Far above all other hunted whales, his is an unwritten life.

There are only two books out there that really try to present the living sperm whale to you, and even then, they only somewhat succeed. Those books are Beale's and Bennett's; both were surgeons on English South-Sea whale-ships and are known for being accurate and reliable. The original content about the sperm whale in their books is limited, but what’s there is of great quality, mostly focusing on scientific descriptions. However, the sperm whale—whether in a scientific or poetic sense—has yet to be fully captured in any literature. Compared to all other hunted whales, his life remains largely unwritten.

Now the various species of whales need some sort of popular comprehensive classification, if only an easy outline one for the present, hereafter to be filled in all-outward its departments by subsequent laborers. As no better man advances to take this matter in hand, I hereupon offer my own poor endeavors. I promise nothing complete; because any human thing supposed to be complete must for that very reason infallibly be faulty. I shall not pretend to a minute anatomical description of the various species, or—in this space at least— to much of any description. My object here is simply to project the draught of a systematization of cetology. I am the architect, not the builder.

Now, various species of whales need a popular and comprehensive classification, even if it's just a simple outline for now, which can be filled in extensively by others later. Since no one else has stepped up to tackle this, I’m offering my own humble efforts. I don’t promise anything complete because anything considered complete is likely to be flawed. I won’t try to provide detailed anatomical descriptions of the different species, or—at least in this space—much description at all. My goal here is simply to sketch out a system for organizing cetology. I’m the planner, not the builder.

But it is a ponderous task; no ordinary letter-sorter in the Post-Office is equal to it. To grope down into the bottom of the sea after them; to have one's hands among the unspeakable foundations, ribs, and very pelvis of the world; this is a fearful thing. What am I that I should essay to hook the nose of this leviathan! The awful tauntings in Job might well appal me. "Will he (the leviathan) make a covenant with thee? Behold the hope of him is vain! But I have swam through libraries and sailed through oceans; I have had to do with whales with these visible hands; I am in earnest; and I will try. There are some preliminaries to settle.

But it's a heavy task; no ordinary mail sorter at the Post Office can handle it. To reach down into the depths of the sea for them; to have my hands among the unimaginable foundations, ribs, and the very core of the world; this is a terrifying thing. Who am I to try to hook the nose of this giant sea creature! The harsh words in Job could easily intimidate me. "Will he (the leviathan) make a deal with you? Just know that hoping for him is pointless! But I have explored libraries and navigated oceans; I have dealt with whales with these very hands; I am serious, and I will try. There are some details to sort out.

First: The uncertain, unsettled condition of this science of Cetology is in the very vestibule attested by the fact, that in some quarters it still remains a moot point whether a whale be a fish. In his System of Nature, A.D. 1776, Linnaeus declares, "I hereby separate the whales from the fish." But of my own knowledge, I know that down to the year 1850, sharks and shad, alewives and herring, against Linnaeus's express edict, were still found dividing the possession of the same seas with the Leviathan.

First: The uncertain and unsettled state of the science of Cetology is evidenced by the fact that in some circles, there’s still debate over whether a whale is a fish. In his System of Nature, published in 1776, Linnaeus stated, "I hereby separate the whales from the fish." However, I know from my own experience that up until 1850, sharks, shad, alewives, and herring, despite Linnaeus’s clear statement, were still sharing the same waters as the Leviathan.

The grounds upon which Linnaeus would fain have banished the whales from the waters, he states as follows: "On account of their warm bilocular heart, their lungs, their movable eyelids, their hollow ears, penem intrantem feminam mammis lactantem," and finally, "ex lege naturae jure meritoque." I submitted all this to my friends Simeon Macey and Charley Coffin, of Nantucket, both messmates of mine in a certain voyage, and they united in the opinion that the reasons set forth were altogether insufficient. Charley profanely hinted they were humbug.

The reasons Linnaeus wanted to exclude whales from the waters are as follows: "Because of their warm two-chambered heart, their lungs, their movable eyelids, their hollow ears, the female's lactating breasts," and finally, "by the law of nature, justly and rightly." I shared all this with my friends Simeon Macey and Charley Coffin from Nantucket, who were both shipmates of mine on a certain voyage, and they agreed that the reasons given were entirely inadequate. Charley jokingly suggested they were nonsense.

Be it known that, waiving all argument, I take the good old fashioned ground that the whale is a fish, and call upon holy Jonah to back me. This fundamental thing settled, the next point is, in what internal respect does the whale differ from other fish. Above, Linnaeus has given you those items. But in brief they are these: lungs and warm blood; whereas, all other fish are lungless and cold blooded.

Be it known that, setting aside all debate, I firmly believe that the whale is a fish, and I call upon the holy Jonah to support my claim. With this basic point established, the next question is, how does the whale differ from other fish internally? Above, Linnaeus has provided those details. But to summarize, they are these: lungs and warm blood; while all other fish are without lungs and cold-blooded.

Next: how shall we define the whale, by his obvious externals, so as conspicuously to label him for all time to come. To be short, then, a whale is a spouting fish with a horizontal tail. There you have him. However contracted, that definition is the result of expanded meditation. A walrus spouts much like a whale, but the walrus is not a fish, because he is amphibious. But the last term of the definition is still more cogent, as coupled with the first. Almost any one must have noticed that all the fish familiar to landsmen have not a flat, but a vertical, or up-and-down tail. Whereas, among spouting fish the tail, though it may be similarly shaped, invariably assumes a horizontal position.

Next: how should we define a whale, in clear terms that will permanently identify him? To put it simply, a whale is a spouting fish with a horizontal tail. There you have it. Even though this definition is brief, it follows considerable thought. A walrus spouts similarly to a whale, but the walrus isn’t a fish because it’s amphibious. However, the last part of the definition is even more relevant when paired with the first. Almost anyone must have noticed that all the fish familiar to those on land have vertical, or up-and-down, tails, while among spouting fish, the tail, although it might be similarly shaped, always takes a horizontal position.

By the above definition of what a whale is, I do by no means exclude from the leviathanic brotherhood any sea creature hitherto identified with the whale by the best informed Nantucketers; nor, on the other hand, link with it any fish hitherto authoritatively regarded as alien.* Hence, all the smaller, spouting and horizontal tailed fish must be included in this ground-plan of Cetology. Now, then, come the grand divisions of the entire whale host.

By the definition of what a whale is, I definitely don’t exclude any sea creature that knowledgeable Nantucketers have associated with whales; nor do I, on the other hand, include any fish that are generally accepted as unrelated. So, all the smaller, spouting fish with horizontal tails must be part of this foundational plan of Cetology. Now, let’s move on to the major categories of the entire whale family.

*I am aware that down to the present time, the fish styled Lamatins and Dugongs (Pig-fish and Sow-fish of the Coffins of Nantucket) are included by many naturalists among the whales. But as these pig-fish are a noisy, contemptible set, mostly lurking in the mouths of rivers, and feeding on wet hay, and especially as they do not spout, I deny their credentials as whales; and have presented them with their passports to quit the Kingdom of Cetology.

*I know that even today, the fish called Lamatins and Dugongs (Pig-fish and Sow-fish from the Coffins of Nantucket) are categorized as whales by many naturalists. However, since these pig-fish are a loud and disregarded group, mostly hanging out in river mouths and munching on wet hay, and especially since they don’t spout, I reject their claim to being whales; and I’ve given them their passports to leave the Kingdom of Cetology.*

First: According to magnitude I divide the whales into three primary BOOKS (subdivisible into CHAPTERS), and these shall comprehend them all, both small and large.

First: Based on size, I divide the whales into three main BOOKS (which can be subdivided into CHAPTERS), and these will include them all, both small and large.

I. THE FOLIO WHALE; II. the OCTAVO WHALE; III. the DUODECIMO WHALE.

I. THE FOLIO WHALE; II. the OCTAVO WHALE; III. the DUODECIMO WHALE.

As the type of the FOLIO I present the Sperm Whale; of the OCTAVO, the Grampus; of the DUODECIMO, the Porpoise.

As the type of the FOLIO, I present the Sperm Whale; for the OCTAVO, the Grampus; and for the DUODECIMO, the Porpoise.

FOLIOS. Among these I here include the following chapters:— I. The Sperm Whale; II. the Right Whale; III. the Fin Back Whale; IV. the Humpbacked Whale; V. the Razor Back Whale; VI. the Sulphur Bottom Whale.

FOLIOS. Among these, I include the following chapters:— I. The Sperm Whale; II. the Right Whale; III. the Fin Back Whale; IV. the Humpbacked Whale; V. the Razor Back Whale; VI. the Sulphur Bottom Whale.

BOOK I. (Folio), CHAPTER I. (Sperm Whale).—This whale, among the English of old vaguely known as the Trumpa whale and the Physeter whale, and the Anvil Headed whale, is the present Cachalot of the French, and the Pottsfich of the Germans, and the Macrocephalus of the Long Words. He is, without doubt, the largest inhabitant of the globe; the most formidable of all whales to encounter; the most majestic in aspect; and lastly, by far the most valuable in commerce; he being the only creature from which that valuable substance, spermaceti, is obtained. All his peculiarities will, in many other places, be enlarged upon. It is chiefly with his name that I now have to do. Philologically considered, it is absurd. Some centuries ago, when the Sperm whale was almost wholly unknown in his own proper individuality, and when his oil was only accidentally obtained from the stranded fish; in those days spermaceti, it would seem, was popularly supposed to be derived from a creature identical with the one then known in England as the Greenland or Right Whale. It was the idea also, that this same spermaceti was that quickening humor of the Greenland Whale which the first syllable of the word literally expresses. In those times, also, spermaceti was exceedingly scarce, not being used for light, but only as an ointment and medicament. It was only to be had from the druggists as you nowadays buy an ounce of rhubarb. When, as I opine, in the course of time, the true nature of spermaceti became known, its original name was still retained by the dealers; no doubt to enhance its value by a notion so strangely significant of its scarcity. And so the appellation must at last have come to be bestowed upon the whale from which this spermaceti was really derived.
BOOK I. (Folio), CHAPTER II. (Right Whale).—In one respect this is the most venerable of the leviathans, being the one first regularly hunted by man. It yields the article commonly known as whalebone or baleen; and the oil specially known as "whale oil," an inferior article in commerce. Among the fishermen, he is indiscriminately designated by all the following titles: The Whale; the Greenland Whale; the Black Whale; the Great Whale; the True Whale; the Right Whale. There is a deal of obscurity concerning the Identity of the species thus multitudinously baptized. What then is the whale, which I include in the second species of my Folios? It is the Great Mysticetus of the English naturalists; the Greenland Whale of the English Whalemen; the Baliene Ordinaire of the French whalemen; the Growlands Walfish of the Swedes. It is the whale which for more than two centuries past has been hunted by the Dutch and English in the Arctic seas; it is the whale which the American fishermen have long pursued in the Indian ocean, on the Brazil Banks, on the Nor' West Coast, and various other parts of the world, designated by them Right Whale Cruising Grounds.

Some pretend to see a difference between the Greenland whale of the English and the right whale of the Americans. But they precisely agree in all their grand features; nor has there yet been presented a single determinate fact upon which to ground a radical distinction. It is by endless subdivisions based upon the most inconclusive differences, that some departments of natural history become so repellingly intricate. The right whale will be elsewhere treated of at some length, with reference to elucidating the sperm whale.

Some people act like there's a difference between the Greenland whale in England and the right whale in America. But they actually share all the main characteristics; no one has yet provided a solid fact to support a significant distinction. Endless subdivisions based on the smallest differences make certain areas of natural history overly complicated and hard to understand. The right whale will be discussed in more detail later, especially in relation to explaining the sperm whale.

BOOK I. (Folio), CHAPTER III. (Fin-Back).—Under this head I reckon a monster which, by the various names of Fin-Back, Tall-Spout, and Long-John, has been seen almost in every sea and is commonly the whale whose distant jet is so often descried by passengers crossing the Atlantic, in the New York packet-tracks. In the length he attains, and in his baleen, the Fin-back resembles the right whale, but is of a less portly girth, and a lighter color, approaching to olive. His great lips present a cable-like aspect, formed by the intertwisting, slanting folds of large wrinkles. His grand distinguishing feature, the fin, from which he derives his name, is often a conspicuous object. This fin is some three or four feet long, growing vertically from the hinder part of the back, of an angular shape, and with a very sharp pointed end. Even if not the slightest other part of the creature be visible, this isolated fin will, at times, be seen plainly projecting from the surface. When the sea is moderately calm, and slightly marked with spherical ripples, and this gnomon-like fin stands up and casts shadows upon the wrinkled surface, it may well be supposed that the watery circle surrounding it somewhat resembles a dial, with its style and wavy hour-lines graved on it. On that Ahaz-dial the shadow often goes back. The Fin-Back is not gregarious. He seems a whale-hater, as some men are man-haters. Very shy; always going solitary; unexpectedly rising to the surface in the remotest and most sullen waters; his straight and single lofty jet rising like a tall misanthropic spear upon a barren plain; gifted with such wondrous power and velocity in swimming, as to defy all present pursuit from man; this leviathan seems the banished and unconquerable Cain of his race, bearing for his mark that style upon his back. From having the baleen in his mouth, the Fin-Back is sometimes included with the right whale, among a theoretic species denominated Whalebone whales, that is, whales with baleen. Of these so-called Whalebone whales, there would seem to be several varieties, most of which, however, are little known. Broad-nosed whales and beaked whales; pike-headed whales; bunched whales; under-jawed whales and rostrated whales, are the fisherman's names for a few sorts.

In connexion with this appellative of "Whalebone whales," it is of great importance to mention, that however such a nomenclature may be convenient in facilitating allusions to some kind of whales, yet it is in vain to attempt a clear classification of the Leviathan, founded upon either his baleen, or hump, or fin, or teeth; notwithstanding that those marked parts or features very obviously seem better adapted to afford the basis for a regular system of Cetology than any other detached bodily distinctions, which the whale, in his kinds, presents. How then? The baleen, hump, back-fin, and teeth; these are things whose peculiarities are indiscriminately dispersed among all sorts of whales, without any regard to what may be the nature of their structure in other and more essential particulars. Thus, the sperm whale and the humpbacked whale, each has a hump; but there the similitude ceases. Then this same humpbacked whale and the Greenland whale, each of these has baleen; but there again the similitude ceases. And it is just the same with the other parts above mentioned. In various sorts of whales, they form such irregular combinations; or, in the case of any one of them detached, such an irregular isolation; as utterly to defy all general methodization formed upon such a basis. On this rock every one of the whale-naturalists has split.

In connection with the term "Whalebone whales," it's important to note that while this naming might make it easier to reference certain types of whales, it’s pointless to try to create a clear classification of the Leviathan based on its baleen, hump, fin, or teeth. Even though these distinct features might seem like a solid foundation for a systematic study of whales, known as Cetology, they don't hold up when looking at the overall characteristics of different whale types. For example, both the sperm whale and the humpback whale have a hump, but that’s where the similarity ends. The humpback whale and the Greenland whale both have baleen, but again, that’s where the similarity stops. The same goes for the other features mentioned. Different types of whales show such varied combinations of these features, or, if looking at any single feature, such irregular differences, that it completely confounds any attempt at creating a general classification based on them. This is a point where many whale researchers have failed.

But it may possibly be conceived that, in the internal parts of the whale, in his anatomy—there, at least, we shall be able to hit the right classification. Nay; what thing, for example, is there in the Greenland whale's anatomy more striking than his baleen? Yet we have seen that by his baleen it is impossible correctly to classify the Greenland whale. And if you descend into the bowels of the various leviathans, why there you will not find distinctions a fiftieth part as available to the systematizer as those external ones already enumerated. What then remains? nothing but to take hold of the whales bodily, in their entire liberal volume, and boldly sort them that way. And this is the Bibliographical system here adopted; and it is the only one that can possibly succeed, for it alone is practicable. To proceed.

But it's possible to think that, when it comes to the inner parts of the whale, in its anatomy—there, at least, we might be able to find the right classification. Seriously; what about the Greenland whale's anatomy is more eye-catching than its baleen? Yet we’ve seen that you can’t accurately classify the Greenland whale based on its baleen alone. And if you look into the guts of the various giants, you won’t find distinctions that are even a fraction as useful for categorization as those external features we've already mentioned. So what’s left? Just to grasp the whales in their entirety and confidently sort them that way. This is the bibliographical system I’ve adopted here; it's the only one that can possibly work since it's the only one that's practical. Let’s move on.

BOOK I. (Folio) CHAPTER IV. (Hump Back).—This whale is often seen on the northern American coast. He has been frequently captured there, and towed into harbor. He has a great pack on him like a peddler; or you might call him the Elephant and Castle whale. At any rate, the popular name for him does not sufficiently distinguish him, since the sperm whale also has a hump though a smaller one. His oil is not very valuable. He has baleen. He is the most gamesome and light-hearted of all the whales, making more gay foam and white water generally than any other of them.
BOOK I. (Folio), CHAPTER V. ( Razor Back).—Of this whale little is known but his name. I have seen him at a distance off Cape Horn. Of a retiring nature, he eludes both hunters and philosophers. Though no coward, he has never yet shown any part of him but his back, which rises in a long sharp ridge. Let him go. I know little more of him, nor does anybody else.
BOOK I. (Folio), CHAPTER VI. (Sulphur Bottom).—Another retiring gentleman, with a brimstone belly, doubtless got by scraping along the Tartarian tiles in some of his profounder divings. He is seldom seen; at least I have never seen him except in the remoter southern seas, and then always at too great a distance to study his countenance. He is never chased; he would run away with rope-walks of line. Prodigies are told of him. Adieu, Sulphur Bottom! I can say nothing more that is true of ye, nor can the oldest Nantucketer.

Thus ends BOOK I. (Folio), and now begins BOOK II. (Octavo).

Thus ends BOOK I. (Folio), and now begins BOOK II. (Octavo).

OCTAVOES.* These embrace the whales of middling magnitude, among which at present may be numbered:—I., the Grampus; II., the Black Fish; III., the Narwhale; IV., the Thrasher; V., the Killer.

OCTAVOES.* These include medium-sized whales, which currently consist of:—I., the Grampus; II., the Black Fish; III., the Narwhale; IV., the Thrasher; V., the Killer.

*Why this book of whales is not denominated the Quarto is very plain. Because, while the whales of this order, though smaller than those of the former order, nevertheless retain a proportionate likeness to them in figure, yet the bookbinder's Quarto volume in its dimensioned form does not preserve the shape of the Folio volume, but the Octavo volume does.

*The reason this book about whales isn't called the Quarto is quite simple. While the whales in this category are smaller than those in the previous category, they still have a similar shape. However, the dimensions of a bookbinder's Quarto volume don't match the shape of a Folio volume, while an Octavo volume does.*

BOOK II. (Octavo), CHAPTER I. (Grampus).—Though this fish, whose loud sonorous breathing, or rather blowing, has furnished a proverb to landsmen, is so well known a denizen of the deep, yet is he not popularly classed among whales. But possessing all the grand distinctive features of the leviathan, most naturalists have recognised him for one. He is of moderate octavo size, varying from fifteen to twenty-five feet in length, and of corresponding dimensions round the waist. He swims in herds; he is never regularly hunted, though his oil is considerable in quantity, and pretty good for light. By some fishermen his approach is regarded as premonitory of the advance of the great sperm whale.

BOOK II. (Octavo), CHAPTER II. (Black Fish).—I give the popular fishermen's names for all these fish, for generally they are the best. Where any name happens to be vague or inexpressive, I shall say so, and suggest another. I do so now touching the Black Fish, so called because blackness is the rule among almost all whales. So, call him the Hyena Whale, if you please. His voracity is well known and from the circumstance that the inner angles of his lips are curved upwards, he carries an everlasting Mephistophelean grin on his face. This whale averages some sixteen or eighteen feet in length. He is found in almost all latitudes. He has a peculiar way of showing his dorsal hooked fin in swimming, which looks something like a Roman nose. When not more profitably employed, the sperm whale hunters sometimes capture the Hyena whale, to keep up the supply of cheap oil for domestic employment— as some frugal housekeepers, in the absence of company, and quite alone by themselves, burn unsavory tallow instead of odorous wax. Though their blubber is very thin, some of these whales will yield you upwards of thirty gallons of oil.
BOOK II. (Octavo), CHAPTER III. (Narwhale), that is, Nostril whale.— Another instance of a curiously named whale, so named I suppose from his peculiar horn being originally mistaken for a peaked nose. The creature is some sixteen feet in length, while its horn averages five feet, though some exceed ten, and even attain to fifteen feet. Strictly speaking, this horn is but a lengthened tusk, growing out from the jaw in a line a little depressed from the horizontal. But it is only found on the sinister side, which has an ill effect, giving its owner something analogous to the aspect of a clumsy left-handed man. What precise purpose this ivory horn or lance answers, it would be hard to say. It does not seem to be used like the blade of the sword-fish and bill-fish; though some sailors tell me that the Narwhale employs it for a rake in turning over the bottom of the sea for food. Charley Coffin said it was used for an ice-piercer; for the Narwhale, rising to the surface of the Polar Sea, and finding it sheeted with ice, thrusts his horn up, and so breaks through. But you cannot prove either of these surmises to be correct. My own opinion is, that however this one-sided horn may really be used by the Narwhale—however that may be—it would certainly be very convenient to him for a folder in reading pamphlets. The Narwhale I have heard called the Tusked whale, the Horned whale, and the Unicorn whale. He is certainly a curious example of the Unicornism to be found in almost every kingdom of animated nature. From certain cloistered old authors I have gathered that this same sea-unicorn's horn was in ancient days regarded as the great antidote against poison, and as such, preparations of it brought immense prices. It was also distilled to a volatile salts for fainting ladies the same way that the horns of the male deer are manufactured into hartshorn. Originally it was in itself accounted an object of great curiosity. Black Letter tells me that Sir Martin Frobisher on his return from that voyage, when Queen Bess did gallantly wave her jewelled hand to him from a window of Greenwich Palace, as his bold ship sailed down the Thames; "when Sir Martin returned from that voyage," saith Black Letter, "on bended knees he presented to her highness a prodigious long horn of the Narwhale, which for a long period after hung in the castle at Windsor." An Irish author avers that the Earl of Leicester, on bended knees, did likewise present to her highness another horn, pertaining to a land beast of the unicorn nature.

The Narwhale has a very picturesque, leopard-like look, being of a milk-white ground color, dotted with round and oblong spots of black. His oil is very superior, clear and fine; but there is little of it, and he is seldom hunted. He is mostly found in the circumpolar seas.

The narwhal has a striking, leopard-like appearance, with a milk-white base color covered in round and oval black spots. Its oil is high-quality, clear, and refined; however, there isn't much of it, and it isn't often hunted. Narwhals are primarily found in the circumpolar seas.

BOOK II. (Octavo), CHAPTER IV. (Killer).—Of this whale little is precisely known to the Nantucketer, and nothing at all to the professed naturalists. From what I have seen of him at a distance, I should say that he was about the bigness of a grampus. He is very savage—a sort of Feegee fish. He sometimes takes the great Folio whales by the lip, and hangs there like a leech, till the mighty brute is worried to death. The Killer is never hunted. I never heard what sort of oil he has. Exception might be taken to the name bestowed upon this whale, on the ground of its indistinctness. For we are all killers, on land and on sea; Bonapartes and Sharks included.
BOOK II. (Octavo), CHAPTER V. (Thrasher).—This gentleman is famous for his tail which he uses for a ferule in thrashing his foes. He mounts the Folio whale's back, and as he swims, he works his passage by flogging him; as some schoolmasters get along in the world by a similar process. Still less is known of the Thrasher than of the Killer. Both are outlaws, even in the lawless seas.

Thus ends BOOK II. (Octavo), and begins BOOK III, (Duodecimo.)

Thus ends BOOK II. (Octavo), and begins BOOK III, (Duodecimo.)

DUODECIMOES.—These include the smaller whales. I. The Huzza Porpoise.
II. The Algerine Porpoise. III. The Mealy-mouthed Porpoise.

DUODECIMOES.—These include the smaller whales. I. The Huzza Porpoise.
II. The Algerine Porpoise. III. The Mealy-mouthed Porpoise.

To those who have not chanced specially to study the subject, it may possibly seem strange, that fishes not commonly exceeding four or five feet should be marshalled among WHALES—a word, which, in the popular sense, always conveys an idea of hugeness. But the creatures set down above as Duodecimoes are infallibly whales, by the terms of my definition of what a whale is—i.e. a spouting fish, with a horizontal tail.

To those who haven't specifically studied the topic, it might seem odd that fish typically no longer than four or five feet are categorized as WHALES—a term that usually suggests something massive. However, the creatures listed above as Duodecimoes are definitely whales, according to my definition of what a whale is—i.e. a spouting fish with a horizontal tail.

BOOK III. (Duodecimo), CHAPTER 1. (Huzza Porpoise).—This is the common porpoise found almost all over the globe. The name is of my own bestowal; for there are more than one sort of porpoises, and something must be done to distinguish them. I call him thus, because he always swims in hilarious shoals, which upon the broad sea keep tossing themselves to heaven like caps in a Fourth-of-July crowd. Their appearance is generally hailed with delight by the mariner. Full of fine spirits, they invariably come from the breezy billows to windward. They are the lads that always live before the wind. They are accounted a lucky omen. If you yourself can withstand three cheers at beholding these vivacious fish, then heaven help ye; the spirit of godly gamesomeness is not in ye. A well-fed, plump Huzza Porpoise will yield you one good gallon of good oil. But the fine and delicate fluid extracted from his jaws is exceedingly valuable. It is in request among jewellers and watchmakers. Sailors put it on their hones. Porpoise meat is good eating, you know. It may never have occurred to you that a porpoise spouts. Indeed, his spout is so small that it is not very readily discernible. But the next time you have a chance, watch him; and you will then see the great Sperm whale himself in miniature.
BOOK III. (Duodecimo), CHAPTER II. (Algerine Porpoise).—A pirate. Very savage. He is only found, I think, in the Pacific. He is somewhat larger than the Huzza Porpoise, but much of the same general make. Provoke him, and he will buckle to a shark. I have lowered for him many times, but never yet saw him captured.
BOOK III. (Duodecimo), CHAPTER III. (Mealy-mouthed Porpoise).—The largest kind of Porpoise; and only found in the Pacific, so far as it is known. The only English name, by which he has hitherto been designated, is that of the fisher—Right-Whale Porpoise, from the circumstance that he is chiefly found in the vicinity of that Folio. In shape, he differs in some degree from the Huzza Porpoise, being of a less rotund and jolly girth; indeed, he is of quite a neat and gentleman-like figure. He has no fins on his back (most other porpoises have), he has a lovely tail, and sentimental Indian eyes of a hazel hue. But his mealy-mouth spoils all. Though his entire back down to his side fins is of a deep sable, yet a boundary line, distinct as the mark in a ship's hull, called the "bright waist," that line streaks him from stem to stern, with two separate colors, black above and white below. The white comprises part of his head, and the whole of his mouth, which makes him look as if he had just escaped from a felonious visit to a meal-bag. A most mean and mealy aspect! His oil is much like that of the common porpoise.

Beyond the DUODECIMO, this system does not proceed, inasmuch as the Porpoise is the smallest of the whales. Above, you have all the Leviathans of note. But there are a rabble of uncertain, fugitive, half-fabulous whales, which, as an American whaleman, I know by reputation, but not personally. I shall enumerate them by their fore-castle appellations; for possibly such a list may be valuable to future investigators, who may complete what I have here but begun. If any of the following whales, shall hereafter be caught and marked, then he can readily be incorporated into this System, according to his Folio, Octavo, or Duodecimo magnitude:— The Bottle-Nose Whale; the Junk Whale; the Pudding-Headed Whale; the Cape Whale; the Leading Whale; the Cannon Whale; the Scragg Whale; the Coppered Whale; the Elephant Whale; the Iceberg Whale; the Quog Whale; the Blue Whale; &c. From Icelandic, Dutch, and old English authorities, there might be quoted other lists of uncertain whales, blessed with all manner of uncouth names. But I omit them as altogether obsolete; and can hardly help suspecting them for mere sounds, full of Leviathanism, but signifying nothing.

Beyond the TWELFTH, this system doesn't go any further, since the Porpoise is the smallest of the whales. Above, you have all the notable Leviathans. However, there are a bunch of uncertain, elusive, half-mythical whales that, as an American whaleman, I know by reputation but not personally. I will list them by their fore-castle names; potentially, such a list may be useful for future researchers who might finish what I have only started. If any of the following whales are caught and tagged in the future, they can easily be integrated into this system based on their Folio, Octavo, or Duodecimo size:— The Bottle-Nose Whale; the Junk Whale; the Pudding-Headed Whale; the Cape Whale; the Leading Whale; the Cannon Whale; the Scragg Whale; the Coppered Whale; the Elephant Whale; the Iceberg Whale; the Quog Whale; the Blue Whale; etc. From Icelandic, Dutch, and old English sources, there could be other lists of uncertain whales, blessed with all sorts of bizarre names. But I’ll skip those as completely outdated, and I can hardly help but suspect they’re just sounds, full of Leviathanism, but meaning nothing.

Finally: It was stated at the outset, that this system would not be here, and at once, perfected. You cannot but plainly see that I have kept my word. But I now leave my cetological System standing thus unfinished, even as the great Cathedral of Cologne was left, with the cranes still standing upon the top of the uncompleted tower. For small erections may be finished by their first architects; grand ones, true ones, ever leave the copestone to posterity. God keep me from ever completing anything. This whole book is but a draught—nay, but the draught of a draught. Oh, Time, Strength, Cash, and Patience!

Finally: It was mentioned at the beginning that this system wouldn’t be perfect from the start. You can clearly see that I’ve kept my promise. But I now leave my cetological System standing unfinished, just like the great Cathedral of Cologne was left, with the cranes still atop the incomplete tower. Smaller projects can be completed by their original builders; grand ones, the true masterpieces, always leave the final touches for future generations. God forbid I ever finish anything. This entire book is just a rough draft—no, it’s just the draft of a draft. Oh, Time, Strength, Money, and Patience!

CHAPTER 33

The Specksynder

The Specksynder

Concerning the officers of the whale-craft, this seems as good a place as any to set down a little domestic peculiarity on ship-board, arising from the existence of the harpooneer class of officers, a class unknown of course in any other marine than the whale-fleet.

Concerning the officers of the whaling ship, this seems as good a place as any to mention a little quirk of life on board, stemming from the presence of the harpooneers, a group that, of course, doesn’t exist in any other fleet.

The large importance attached to the harpooneer's vocation is evinced by the fact, that originally in the old Dutch Fishery, two centuries and more ago, the command of a whale-ship was not wholly lodged in the person now called the captain, but was divided between him and an officer called the Specksynder. Literally this word means Fat-Cutter; usage, however, in time made it equivalent to Chief Harpooneer. In those days, the captain's authority was restricted to the navigation and general management of the vessel; while over the whale-hunting department and all its concerns, the Specksynder or Chief Harpooneer reigned supreme. In the British Greenland Fishery, under the corrupted title of Specksioneer, this old Dutch official is still retained, but his former dignity is sadly abridged. At present he ranks simply as senior Harpooneer; and as such, is but one of the captain's more inferior subalterns. Nevertheless, as upon the good conduct of the harpooneers the success of a whaling voyage largely depends, and since in the American Fishery he is not only an important officer in the boat, but under certain circumstances (night watches on a whaling ground) the command of the ship's deck is also his; therefore the grand political maxim of the sea demands, that he should nominally live apart from the men before the mast, and be in some way distinguished as their professional superior; though always, by them, familiarly regarded as their social equal.

The significant role of the harpooneer is evident from the fact that, originally in the old Dutch Fishery over two centuries ago, the command of a whaling ship wasn’t solely held by the person we now call the captain. Instead, it was shared by him and an officer known as the Specksynder. This word literally means Fat-Cutter; however, over time, it became synonymous with Chief Harpooneer. Back then, the captain’s authority was limited to navigation and overall management of the vessel, while the Specksynder or Chief Harpooneer was in charge of all whale-hunting activities and related matters. In the British Greenland Fishery, under the altered title of Specksioneer, this old Dutch position still exists, though its former prestige has significantly diminished. Today, he is simply ranked as senior Harpooneer and is just one of the captain’s lesser subordinates. Still, since the success of a whaling voyage heavily relies on the harpooneers' performance, and given that in the American Fishery, he is not only a key officer in the boat but sometimes (during night watches on a whaling ground) also takes command of the ship’s deck, the essential principle of the sea dictates that he should nominally be set apart from the crew before the mast and recognized as their professional superior; although the crew still typically regards him as their social equal.

Now, the grand distinction drawn between officer and man at sea, is this—the first lives aft, the last forward. Hence, in whale-ships and merchantmen alike, the mates have their quarters with the captain; and so, too, in most of the American whalers the harpooneers are lodged in the after part of the ship. That is to say, they take their meals in the captain's cabin, and sleep in a place indirectly communicating with it.

Now, the main difference between officers and crew at sea is this—officers live at the back of the ship, while the crew stays at the front. Because of this, in both whaling ships and merchant vessels, the mates have their quarters with the captain; and similarly, in most American whalers, the harpooneers are housed in the back part of the ship. In other words, they eat in the captain's cabin and sleep in a nearby area that connects to it.

Though the long period of a Southern whaling voyage (by far the longest of all voyages now or ever made by man), the peculiar perils of it, and the community of interest prevailing among a company, all of whom, high or low, depend for their profits, not upon fixed wages, but upon their common luck, together with their common vigilance, intrepidity, and hard work; though all these things do in some cases tend to beget a less rigorous discipline than in merchantmen generally; yet, never mind how much like an old Mesopotamian family these whalemen may, in some primitive instances, live together; for all that, the punctilious externals, at least, of the quarter-deck are seldom materially relaxed, and in no instance done away. Indeed, many are the Nantucket ships in which you will see the skipper parading his quarter-deck with an elated grandeur not surpassed in any military navy; nay, extorting almost as much outward homage as if he wore the imperial purple, and not the shabbiest of pilot-cloth.

Though the long duration of a Southern whaling voyage (by far the longest of any voyages ever undertaken by humans), the unique dangers involved, and the shared interests among a crew—where everyone, regardless of rank, relies not on fixed salaries but on their collective luck, along with their shared watchfulness, bravery, and hard work—can sometimes lead to a more relaxed discipline compared to merchant ships in general; still, no matter how much these whalers may live together like an old Mesopotamian family in some primitive instances, the formalities of the quarter-deck are rarely significantly loosened and never completely abandoned. In fact, there are many Nantucket ships where you’ll see the captain walking the quarter-deck with a proud grandeur that rivals any military navy; indeed, he commands almost as much outward respect as if he were wearing imperial robes, not just a worn piece of pilot-cloth.

And though of all men the moody captain of the Pequod was the least given to that sort of shallowest assumption; and though the only homage he ever exacted, was implicit, instantaneous obedience; though he required no man to remove the shoes from his feet ere stepping upon the quarter-deck; and though there were times when, owing to peculiar circumstances connected with events hereafter to be detailed, he addressed them in unusual terms, whether of condescension or in terrorem, or otherwise; yet even Captain Ahab was by no means unobservant of the paramount forms and usages of the sea.

And even though the moody captain of the Pequod was the least likely to make all those shallow assumptions, and the only respect he ever demanded was immediate, unquestioning obedience; and even though he didn’t require anyone to take off their shoes before stepping onto the quarter-deck; and even though there were times when, due to unique circumstances tied to events that we'll talk about later, he spoke to them in unusual ways, whether it was with condescension or intimidation, or something else; still, Captain Ahab was far from ignoring the essential customs and practices of the sea.

Nor, perhaps, will it fail to be eventually perceived, that behind those forms and usages, as it were, he sometimes masked himself; incidentally making use of them for other and more private ends than they were legitimately intended to subserve. That certain sultanism of his brain, which had otherwise in a good degree remained unmanifested; through those forms that same sultanism became incarnate in an irresistible dictatorship. For be a man's intellectual superiority what it will, it can never assume the practical, available supremacy over other men, without the aid of some sort of external arts and entrenchments, always, in themselves, more or less paltry and base. This it is, that for ever keeps God's true princes of the Empire from the world's hustings; and leaves the highest honors that this air can give, to those men who become famous more through their infinite inferiority to the choice hidden handful of the Divine Inert, than through their undoubted superiority over the dead level of the mass. Such large virtue lurks in these small things when extreme political superstitions invest them, that in some royal instances even to idiot imbecility they have imparted potency. But when, as in the case of Nicholas the Czar, the ringed crown of geographical empire encircles an imperial brain; then, the plebeian herds crouch abased before the tremendous centralization. Nor, will the tragic dramatist who would depict mortal indomitableness in its fullest sweep and direct swing, ever forget a hint, incidentally so important in his art, as the one now alluded to.

Nor will it possibly go unnoticed that behind those appearances and customs, he sometimes hid himself; making use of them for other, more personal purposes than they were originally meant for. That certain dominant mindset of his, which had largely remained unexpressed; through those appearances, that same mindset became embodied in an undeniable dictatorship. No matter how great a person's intellectual superiority might be, it can never truly dominate others without some form of external support and defenses, which are always, in themselves, somewhat petty and lowly. This is what keeps the true rulers of God's empire away from the world's stage; they leave the highest honors this world can offer to those who become famous more due to their vast inferiority compared to the select few of the Divine Inert, rather than their undeniable superiority over the masses. Such great virtue lurks in these small matters when extreme political beliefs surround them, that in some royal cases, they have even granted power to foolishness. But when, as in the case of Nicholas the Czar, the crown of geographical empire rests upon an imperial mind; then, the common people bow down before the immense centralization. Nor will the tragic playwright who aims to show human resilience at its fullest ever overlook a crucial hint, so significant to his art, as the one just mentioned.

But Ahab, my Captain, still moves before me in all his Nantucket grimness and shagginess; and in this episode touching Emperors and Kings, I must not conceal that I have only to do with a poor old whale-hunter like him; and, therefore, all outward majestical trappings and housings are denied me. Oh, Ahab! what shall be grand in thee, it must needs be plucked at from the skies, and dived for in the deep, and featured in the unbodied air!

But Ahab, my Captain, still stands in front of me with all his Nantucket seriousness and unkemptness; and in this moment about Emperors and Kings, I can't hide the fact that I’m only dealing with a poor old whale-hunter like him; so, I lack all the impressive outward symbols and decorations. Oh, Ahab! Anything that’s grand in you must be drawn from the heavens, searched for in the depths, and seen in the unformed air!

CHAPTER 34

The Cabin-Table

The Cabin Table

It is noon; and Dough-Boy, the steward, thrusting his pale loaf-of-bread face from the cabin-scuttle, announces dinner to his lord and master who, sitting in the lee quarter-boat, has just been taking an observation of the sun; and is now mutely reckoning the latitude on the smooth, medallion-shaped tablet, reserved for that daily purpose on the upper part of his ivory leg. From his complete inattention to the tidings, you would think that moody Ahab had not heard his menial. But presently, catching hold of the mizen shrouds, he swings himself to the deck, and in an even, unexhilarated voice, saying, "Dinner, Mr. Starbuck," disappears into the cabin.

It’s noon, and Dough-Boy, the steward, pops his pale, bread-like face out of the cabin and announces dinner to his boss, who is sitting by the quarter-boat, just finishing taking a sun sight. He’s now silently calculating the latitude on the smooth, medallion-shaped tablet that’s meant for that daily task on the top of his ivory leg. From his complete lack of interest, you’d think moody Ahab hadn’t heard his servant. But soon, grabbing onto the mizen shrouds, he pulls himself up onto the deck and, in a flat, unenthusiastic voice, says, "Dinner, Mr. Starbuck,” before disappearing into the cabin.

When the last echo of his sultan's step has died away, and Starbuck, the first Emir, has every reason to suppose that he is seated, then Starbuck rouses from his quietude, takes a few turns along the planks, and, after a grave peep into the binnacle, says, with some touch of pleasantness, "Dinner, Mr. Stubb," and descends the scuttle. The second Emir lounges about the rigging awhile, and then slightly shaking the main brace, to see whether it will be all right with that important rope, he likewise takes up the old burden, and with a rapid "Dinner, Mr. Flask," follows after his predecessors.

When the last echo of his sultan's footsteps has faded away, and Starbuck, the first Emir, has every reason to believe he is seated, he then stirs from his stillness, takes a few turns along the deck, and after a serious glance at the binnacle, says, with a hint of cheerfulness, "Dinner, Mr. Stubb," and heads down the scuttle. The second Emir hangs around the rigging for a while, and then, giving the main brace a slight shake to check if it's good with that crucial rope, he also picks up the familiar task, and with a quick "Dinner, Mr. Flask," follows his predecessors.

But the third Emir, now seeing himself all alone on the quarter-deck, seems to feel relieved from some curious restraint; for, tipping all sorts of knowing winks in all sorts of directions, and kicking off his shoes, he strikes into a sharp but noiseless squall of a hornpipe right over the Grand Turk's head; and then, by a dexterous sleight, pitching his cap up into the mizentop for a shelf, he goes down rollicking so far at least as he remains visible from the deck, reversing all other processions, by bringing up the rear with music. But ere stepping into the cabin doorway below, he pauses, ships a new face altogether, and, then, independent, hilarious little Flask enters King Ahab's presence, in the character of Abjectus, or the Slave.

But the third Emir, now seeing himself all alone on the quarter-deck, seems to feel free from some strange restraint; for, winking knowingly in all directions and kicking off his shoes, he breaks into a sharp but silent squall of a hornpipe right over the Grand Turk's head; and then, with a clever move, tossing his cap up into the mizentop for a shelf, he goes down having a great time as far as he remains visible from the deck, reversing all other processions by bringing up the rear with music. But before stepping into the cabin doorway below, he pauses, puts on a completely new expression, and then, independent and cheerful, little Flask enters King Ahab's presence, playing the part of Abjectus, or the Slave.

It is not the least among the strange things bred by the intense artificialness of sea-usages, that while in the open air of the deck some officers will, upon provocation, bear themselves boldly and defyingly enough towards their commander; yet, ten to one, let those very officers the next moment go down to their customary dinner in that same commander's cabin, and straightway their inoffensive, not to say deprecatory and humble air towards him, as he sits at the head of the table; this is marvellous, sometimes most comical. Wherefore this difference? A problem? Perhaps not. To have been Belshazzar, King of Babylon; and to have been Belshazzar, not haughtily but courteously, therein certainly must have been some touch of mundane grandeur. But he who in the rightly regal and intelligent spirit presides over his own private dinner-table of invited guests, that man's unchallenged power and dominion of individual influence for the time; that man's royalty of state transcends Belshazzar's, for Belshazzar was not the greatest. Who has but once dined his friends, has tasted what it is to be Caesar. It is a witchery of social czarship which there is no withstanding. Now, if to this consideration you super-add the official supremacy of a ship-master, then, by inference, you will derive the cause of that peculiarity of sea-life just mentioned.

It’s one of the strange things that come from the intense artificiality of life at sea that while some officers may act bravely and defiantly towards their commander on deck, they will likely transform into someone completely different the moment they head down for their usual dinner in the commander’s cabin, suddenly adopting an innocent, even submissive demeanor as he sits at the head of the table. It’s amazing and sometimes downright humorous. Why the difference? Is it a riddle? Maybe not. To have been Belshazzar, King of Babylon—doing so not with arrogance but with courtesy—must have come with some sense of worldly grandeur. However, the person who presides over their own dinner table with grace and intelligence has an individual power and influence in that moment that surpasses Belshazzar’s, for Belshazzar was not the ultimate authority. Anyone who has hosted a dinner for friends knows what it feels like to be like Caesar. There’s a magic to that kind of social command that’s impossible to resist. Now, if you add to this the official authority of a ship’s captain, you’ll understand the oddities of life at sea that were just mentioned.

Over his ivory-inlaid table, Ahab presided like a mute, maned sea-lion on the white coral beach, surrounded by his war-like but still deferential cubs. In his own proper turn, each officer waited to be served. They were as little children before Ahab; and yet, in Ahab, there seemed not to lurk the smallest social arrogance. With one mind, their intent eyes all fastened upon the old man's knife, as he carved the chief dish before him. I do not suppose that for the world they would have profaned that moment with the slightest observation, even upon so neutral a topic as the weather. No! And when reaching out his knife and fork, between which the slice of beef was locked, Ahab thereby motioned Starbuck's plate towards him, the mate received his meat as though receiving alms; and cut it tenderly; and a little started if, perchance, the knife grazed against the plate; and chewed it noiselessly; and swallowed it, not without circumspection. For, like the Coronation banquet at Frankfort, where the German Emperor profoundly dines with the seven Imperial Electors, so these cabin meals were somehow solemn meals, eaten in awful silence; and yet at table old Ahab forbade not conversation; only he himself was dumb. What a relief it was to choking Stubb, when a rat made a sudden racket in the hold below. And poor little Flask, he was the youngest son, and little boy of this weary family party. His were the shin-bones of the saline beef; his would have been the drumsticks. For Flask to have presumed to help himself, this must have seemed to him tantamount to larceny in the first degree. Had he helped himself at that table, doubtless, never more would he have been able to hold his head up in this honest world; nevertheless, strange to say, Ahab never forbade him. And had Flask helped himself, the chances were Ahab had never so much as noticed it. Least of all, did Flask presume to help himself to butter. Whether he thought the owners of the ship denied it to him, on account of its clotting his clear, sunny complexion; or whether he deemed that, on so long a voyage in such marketless waters, butter was at a premium, and therefore was not for him, a subaltern; however it was, Flask, alas! was a butterless man!

Over his ivory-inlaid table, Ahab sat like a silent, maned sea lion on the white coral beach, surrounded by his war-like but still respectful crew. Each officer patiently waited for his turn to be served. They felt like small children in front of Ahab, and yet, Ahab didn’t seem to have an ounce of social arrogance. With focused intent, their eyes were all fixed on the old man's knife as he carved the main dish in front of him. I doubt they would have disturbed that moment with even the slightest comment, even about a neutral topic like the weather. No! When Ahab reached for Starbuck's plate with his knife and fork, holding a slice of beef, Starbuck accepted his portion as if it were charity; he cut it carefully and flinched a little if the knife touched the plate; he chewed quietly and swallowed with care. Just like the Coronation banquet in Frankfurt, where the German Emperor dines solemnly with the seven Imperial Electors, these meals on the ship felt serious, eaten in heavy silence; yet at the table, old Ahab didn’t stop conversation; it was just that he himself was silent. What a relief it was for the choking Stubb when a rat suddenly made noise in the hold below. And poor little Flask, the youngest in this weary family gathering, was left with the shin bones of the salty beef; he would have taken the drumsticks. For Flask to have served himself would have felt to him like stealing. If he had taken anything from that table, he surely wouldn’t have been able to hold his head high in this honest world; however, strangely enough, Ahab never stopped him. And if Flask had helped himself, chances are Ahab wouldn’t even have noticed. Above all, Flask would never think to take butter. Whether he believed the ship's owners denied him it for the sake of his clear, sunny complexion, or thought that on such a long voyage in such remote waters, butter was rare and therefore not for him, an underling; however it was, Flask was, unfortunately, a butterless man!

Another thing. Flask was the last person down at the dinner, and Flask is the first man up. Consider! For hereby Flask's dinner was badly jammed in point of time. Starbuck and Stubb both had the start of him; and yet they also have the privilege of lounging in the rear. If Stubb even, who is but a peg higher than Flask, happens to have but a small appetite, and soon shows symptoms of concluding his repast, then Flask must bestir himself, he will not get more than three mouthfuls that day; for it is against holy usage for Stubb to precede Flask to the deck. Therefore it was that Flask once admitted in private, that ever since he had arisen to the dignity of an officer, from that moment he had never known what it was to be otherwise than hungry, more or less. For what he ate did not so much relieve his hunger, as keep it immortal in him. Peace and satisfaction, thought Flask, have for ever departed from my stomach. I am an officer; but, how I wish I could fist a bit of old-fashioned beef in the fore-castle, as I used to when I was before the mast. There's the fruits of promotion now; there's the vanity of glory: there's the insanity of life! Besides, if it were so that any mere sailor of the Pequod had a grudge against Flask in Flask's official capacity, all that sailor had to do, in order to obtain ample vengeance, was to go aft at dinnertime, and get a peep at Flask through the cabin sky-light, sitting silly and dumfoundered before awful Ahab.

Another thing. Flask was the last person to finish dinner, and he's the first one up. Think about it! This meant that Flask's dinner was badly timed. Starbuck and Stubb both finished before him, yet they also get to relax at the back. If Stubb, who is just a step above Flask, happens to have a small appetite and finishes eating quickly, Flask has to rush; he won’t get more than three bites that day, because it’s against the rules for Stubb to head out to the deck before him. That’s why Flask once privately admitted that ever since he became an officer, he’s never known what it’s like to be anything but somewhat hungry. What he ate didn’t really satisfy his hunger, it just kept it alive in him. Peace and satisfaction, Flask thought, have forever left my stomach. I’m an officer, but how I wish I could grab a bit of old-fashioned beef in the forecastle like I used to when I was just a sailor. That’s the result of getting promoted; that’s the silliness of glory: that’s the craziness of life! Plus, if any sailor on the Pequod had a grudge against Flask because of his position, all that sailor had to do to get back at Flask was to go back to the cabin at dinnertime and take a look at him through the skylight, sitting there stunned before the intimidating Ahab.

Now, Ahab and his three mates formed what may be called the first table in the Pequod's cabin. After their departure, taking place in inverted order to their arrival, the canvas cloth was cleared, or rather was restored to some hurried order by the pallid steward. And then the three harpooneers were bidden to the feast, they being its residuary legatees. They made a sort of temporary servants' hall of the high and mighty cabin.

Now, Ahab and his three first mates created what could be called the main table in the Pequod's cabin. After they left, which happened in the reverse order of their arrival, the canvas cloth was cleared, or rather quickly tidied up by the pale steward. Then, the three harpooneers were invited to the feast, as they were the remaining beneficiaries. They turned the grand cabin into a sort of temporary servant's hall.

In strange contrast to the hardly tolerable constraint and nameless invisible domineerings of the captain's table, was the entire care-free license and ease, the almost frantic democracy of those inferior fellows the harpooneers. While their masters, the mates, seemed afraid of the sound of the hinges of their own jaws, the harpooneers chewed their food with such a relish that there was a report to it. They dined like lords; they filled their bellies like Indian ships all day loading with spices. Such portentous appetites had Queequeg and Tashtego, that to fill out the vacancies made by the previous repast, often the pale Dough-Boy was fain to bring on a great baron of salt-junk, seemingly quarried out of the solid ox. And if he were not lively about it, if he did not go with a nimble hop-skip-and-jump, then Tashtego had an ungentlemanly way of accelerating him by darting a fork at his back, harpoon-wise. And once Daggoo, seized with a sudden humor, assisted Dough-Boy's memory by snatching him up bodily, and thrusting his head into a great empty wooden trencher, while Tashtego, knife in hand, began laying out the circle preliminary to scalping him. He was naturally a very nervous, shuddering sort of little fellow, this bread-faced steward; the progeny of a bankrupt baker and a hospital nurse. And what with the standing spectacle of the black terrific Ahab, and the periodical tumultuous visitations of these three savages, Dough-Boy's whole life was one continual lip-quiver. Commonly, after seeing the harpooneers furnished with all things they demanded, he would escape from their clutches into his little pantry adjoining, and fearfully peep out at them through the blinds of its door, till all was over.

In strange contrast to the barely tolerable restrictions and nameless, invisible control of the captain’s table, was the completely carefree freedom and ease, the almost wild democracy of those lower-ranked guys, the harpooneers. While their bosses, the mates, seemed afraid to make any noise, the harpooneers chewed their food with such enthusiasm that it made a sound. They dined like kings; they filled their stomachs like ships loaded with spices all day. Queequeg and Tashtego had such enormous appetites that to fill in the gaps from the previous meal, the pale Dough-Boy often had to bring out a huge chunk of salted meat, seemingly carved from a solid ox. If he wasn’t quick about it, if he didn’t move with some energy, Tashtego had an ungentlemanly way of speeding him up by launching a fork at his back, like a harpoon. Once, Daggoo, feeling playful, helped Dough-Boy remember by picking him up and shoving his head into a big empty wooden bowl, while Tashtego, knife in hand, started drawing a circle as if preparing to scalp him. Dough-Boy was naturally a very nervous, jittery little guy, the child of a bankrupt baker and a hospital nurse. AND with the constant spectacle of the fearsome black Ahab and the occasional raucous visits from these three wild men, Dough-Boy’s entire life was one big quivering mess. Usually, after making sure the harpooneers had everything they wanted, he would escape into his little adjoining pantry and nervously peek out at them through the door’s blinds until everything calmed down.

It was a sight to see Queequeg seated over against Tashtego, opposing his filed teeth to the Indian's; crosswise to them, Daggoo seated on the floor, for a bench would have brought his hearse-plumed head to the low carlines; at every motion of his colossal limbs, making the low cabin framework to shake, as when an African elephant goes passenger in a ship. But for all this, the great negro was wonderfully abstemious, not to say dainty. It seemed hardly possible that by such comparatively small mouthfuls he could keep up the vitality diffused through so broad, baronial, and superb a person. But, doubtless, this noble savage fed strong and drank deep of the abounding element of air; and through his dilated nostrils snuffed in the sublime life of the worlds. Not by beef or by bread, are giants made or nourished. But Queequeg, he had a mortal, barbaric smack of the lip in eating— an ugly sound enough—so much so, that the trembling Dough-Boy almost looked to see whether any marks of teeth lurked in his own lean arms. And when he would hear Tashtego singing out for him to produce himself, that his bones might be picked, the simple-witted Steward all but shattered the crockery hanging round him in the pantry, by his sudden fits of the palsy. Nor did the whetstone which the harpooneers carried in their pockets, for their lances and other weapons; and with which whetstones, at dinner, they would ostentatiously sharpen their knives; that grating sound did not at all tend to tranquillize poor Dough-Boy. How could he forget that in his Island days, Queequeg, for one, must certainly have been guilty of some murderous, convivial indiscretion. Alas! Dough-Boy! hard fares the white waiter who waits upon cannibals. Not a napkin should he carry on his arm, but a buckler. In good time, though, to his great delight, the three salt-sea warriors would rise and depart; to his credulous, fable-mongering ears, all their martial bones jingling in them at every step, like Moorish scimetars in scabbards.

It was quite a sight to see Queequeg sitting opposite Tashtego, showing off his filed teeth against the Indian's; crosswise to them sat Daggoo on the floor, since a bench would have forced his tall head too close to the low beams; every time his massive limbs moved, the cabin would shake like when an African elephant boards a ship. Despite this, the great man was surprisingly moderate, not to mention somewhat refined. It seemed almost impossible that he could maintain the energy of such a big, noble, and impressive body with such relatively small bites. But, of course, this noble savage drew strength and energy from the plentiful air around him, breathing in the vibrant life of the world through his flaring nostrils. Giants aren't made or sustained by beef or bread. But Queequeg had a rather barbaric sound when he ate—an unattractive noise, to be honest—so much so that the shaky Dough-Boy almost checked his own thin arms to see if they had any bite marks. And when he heard Tashtego calling for him to show up so they could pick his bones, the simple-minded Steward nearly broke all the dishes hanging around him in the pantry with his sudden panic. The whetstone that the harpooneers carried in their pockets to sharpen their lances and other weapons, which they would show off by sharpening their knives at dinner, didn’t help ease poor Dough-Boy’s nerves at all. How could he forget that back in his island days, Queequeg must surely have indulged in some deadly, rowdy behavior? Poor Dough-Boy! It’s tough being a white waiter serving cannibals. He shouldn’t carry a napkin on his arm, but a shield instead. However, to his great relief, the three salty sea warriors eventually stood up and left; to his gullible, storytelling ears, all their martial bones seemed to jingle with every step, like Moorish scimitars in their sheaths.

But, though these barbarians dined in the cabin, and nominally lived there; still, being anything but sedentary in their habits, they were scarcely ever in it except at mealtimes, and just before sleeping-time, when they passed through it to their own peculiar quarters.

But even though these outsiders ate in the cabin and technically lived there, they were hardly ever inside except during mealtimes and just before bed, when they would walk through it to their own unique areas.

In this one matter, Ahab seemed no exception to most American whale captains, who, as a set, rather incline to the opinion that by rights the ship's cabin belongs to them; and that it is by courtesy alone that anybody else is, at any time, permitted there. So that, in real truth, the mates and harpooneers of the Pequod might more properly be said to have lived out of the cabin than in it. For when they did enter it, it was something as a streetdoor enters a house; turning inwards for a moment, only to be turned out the next; and, as a permanent thing, residing in the open air. Nor did they lose much hereby; in the cabin was no companionship; socially, Ahab was inaccessible. Though nominally included in the census of Christendom, he was still an alien to it. He lived in the world, as the last of the Grisly Bears lived in settled Missouri. And as when Spring and Summer had departed, that wild Logan of the woods, burying himself in the hollow of a tree, lived out the winter there, sucking his own paws; so, in his inclement, howling old age, Ahab's soul, shut up in the caved trunk of his body, there fed upon the sullen paws of its gloom!

In this one aspect, Ahab seemed no different from most American whale captains, who generally believe that the ship's cabin rightfully belongs to them; and it is only out of courtesy that anyone else is allowed in at all. So, in reality, the mates and harpooneers of the Pequod could be considered to have lived more outside the cabin than inside it. When they did enter, it was like how a front door opens to a house; it swings in for a moment, only to be pushed out again right away, and, as a constant state, they resided in the open air. They didn’t miss much by this; there was no camaraderie in the cabin; socially, Ahab was unreachable. Although he was technically part of the population of Christendom, he remained an outsider to it. He existed in the world like the last of the Grizzly Bears living in settled Missouri. And just like that wild bear, who, after Spring and Summer had gone, would hibernate in the hollow of a tree to survive the winter, sucking on his own paws; so, in his harsh, howling old age, Ahab's soul, confined in the decayed trunk of his body, fed on the bleakness of its own despair!

CHAPTER 35

The Mast-Head

The Header

It was during the more pleasant weather, that in due rotation with the other seamen my first mast-head came round.

It was during the nicer weather that, in turn with the other sailors, my first time in the crow's nest came up.

In most American whalemen the mast-heads are manned almost simultaneously with the vessel's leaving her port; even though she may have fifteen thousand miles, and more, to sail ere reaching her proper cruising ground. And if, after a three, four, or five years' voyage she is drawing nigh home with anything empty in her—say, an empty vial even— then, her mast-heads are kept manned to the last! and not till her skysail-poles sail in among the spires of the port, does she altogether relinquish the hope of capturing one whale more.

In most American whaling ships, the lookout posts are staffed almost as soon as the vessel leaves port, even if it has to travel fifteen thousand miles or more before reaching its hunting ground. And if, after a three, four, or five-year trip, the ship is nearing home with anything empty on board—like even an empty bottle—the lookouts stay posted until the very end! It’s not until the top sails come into view among the spires of the port that the crew gives up the hope of spotting one last whale.

Now, as the business of standing mast-heads, ashore or afloat, is a very ancient and interesting one, let us in some measure expatiate here. I take it, that the earliest standers of mast-heads were the old Egyptians; because, in all my researches, I find none prior to them. For though their progenitors, the builders of Babel, must doubtless, by their tower, have intended to rear the loftiest mast-head in all Asia, or Africa either; yet (ere the final truck was put to it) as that great stone mast of theirs may be said to have gone by the board, in the dread gale of God's wrath; therefore, we cannot give these Babel builders priority over the Egyptians. And that the Egyptians were a nation of mast-head standers, is an assertion based upon the general belief among archaeologists, that the first pyramids were founded for astronomical purposes: a theory singularly supported by the peculiar stairlike formation of all four sides of those edifices; whereby, with prodigious long upliftings of their legs, those old astronomers were wont to mount to the apex, and sing out for new stars; even as the look-outs of a modern ship sing out for a sail, or a whale just bearing in sight. In Saint Stylites, the famous Christian hermit of old times, who built him a lofty stone pillar in the desert and spent the whole latter portion of his life on its summit, hoisting his food from the ground with a tackle; in him we have a remarkable instance of a dauntless stander-of-mast-heads; who was not to be driven from his place by fogs or frosts, rain, hail, or sleet; but valiantly facing everything out to the last, literally died at his post. Of modern standers-of-mast-heads we have but a lifeless set; mere stone, iron, and bronze men; who, though well capable of facing out a stiff gale, are still entirely incompetent to the business of singing out upon discovering any strange sight. There is Napoleon; who, upon the top of the column of Vendome stands with arms folded, some one hundred and fifty feet in the air; careless, now, who rules the decks below, whether Louis Philippe, Louis Blanc, or Louis the Devil. Great Washington, too, stands high aloft on his towering main-mast in Baltimore, and like one of Hercules' pillars, his column marks that point of human grandeur beyond which few mortals will go. Admiral Nelson, also, on a capstan of gun-metal, stands his mast-head in Trafalgar Square; and even when most obscured by that London smoke, token is yet given that a hidden hero is there; for where there is smoke, must be fire. But neither great Washington, nor Napoleon, nor Nelson, will answer a single hail from below, however madly invoked to befriend by their counsels the distracted decks upon which they gaze; however it may be surmised, that their spirits penetrate through the thick haze of the future, and descry what shoals and what rocks must be shunned.

Now, standing watch from a mast, whether on land or at sea, is a very old and fascinating tradition, so let's explore it a bit. I believe the earliest mast-standers were the ancient Egyptians, as in all my research, I found no evidence of anyone prior to them. Although their predecessors, the builders of Babel, likely intended to raise the tallest mast in all of Asia or Africa with their tower, that massive stone structure collapsed in the fierce storm of God's wrath; thus, we can't give the Babel builders the title of first mast-standers ahead of the Egyptians. The belief that the Egyptians were a nation of mast-standers is supported by archaeologists, who generally agree that the first pyramids were built for astronomical purposes, a theory notably backed by the unique step-like structure of all four sides of those pyramids. This design allowed those ancient astronomers to climb to the top with great effort and call out for new stars, just like the lookouts of a modern ship call out when they spot a sail or a whale. Take Saint Stylites, the famous Christian hermit from ancient times, who built a tall stone pillar in the desert and spent the latter part of his life at its top, hoisting his food from the ground with a pulley system; he is a remarkable example of a fearless mast-stander, unfazed by fog, frost, rain, hail, or sleet, valiantly facing everything until his death at his post. As for modern mast-standers, we only have lifeless figures made of stone, iron, and bronze. They may be capable of withstanding a strong wind, but they are completely unable to call out when they spot something strange. Look at Napoleon, who stands atop the Vendôme Column with arms crossed, 150 feet in the air, indifferent to who holds power below, whether it’s Louis Philippe, Louis Blanc, or Louis the Devil. Great Washington also stands tall on his grand column in Baltimore, marking a point of human greatness beyond which few will go, much like one of Hercules' pillars. Admiral Nelson, likewise, stands atop a gunmetal capstan in Trafalgar Square; even when obscured by London’s smoke, it is still evident that a hidden hero is there; for where there is smoke, there must be fire. However, neither Great Washington, nor Napoleon, nor Nelson will respond to a single call from below, no matter how desperately they are invoked to lend their wisdom to the troubled decks that gaze up at them, even though one might speculate that their spirits can see through the thick haze of the future and discern the shoals and rocks that must be avoided.

It may seem unwarrantable to couple in any respect the mast-head standers of the land with those of the sea; but that in truth it is not so, is plainly evinced by an item for which Obed Macy, the sole historian of Nantucket, stands accountable. The worthy Obed tells us, that in the early times of the whale fishery, ere ships were regularly launched in pursuit of the game, the people of that island erected lofty spars along the seacoast, to which the look-outs ascended by means of nailed cleats, something as fowls go upstairs in a hen-house. A few years ago this same plan was adopted by the Bay whalemen of New Zealand, who, upon descrying the game, gave notice to the ready-manned boats nigh the beach. But this custom has now become obsolete; turn we then to the one proper mast-head, that of a whale-ship at sea. The three mast-heads are kept manned from sun-rise to sun-set; the seamen taking their regular turns (as at the helm), and relieving each other every two hours. In the serene weather of the tropics it is exceedingly pleasant the mast-head: nay, to a dreamy meditative man it is delightful. There you stand, a hundred feet above the silent decks, striding along the deep, as if the masts were gigantic stilts, while beneath you and between your legs, as it were, swim the hugest monsters of the sea, even as ships once sailed between the boots of the famous Colossus at old Rhodes. There you stand, lost in the infinite series of the sea, with nothing ruffled but the waves. The tranced ship indolently rolls; the drowsy trade winds blow; everything resolves you into languor. For the most part, in this tropic whaling life, a sublime uneventfulness invests you; you hear no news; read no gazettes; extras with startling accounts of commonplaces never delude you into unnecessary excitements; you hear of no domestic afflictions; bankrupt securities; fall of stocks; are never troubled with the thought of what you shall have for dinner— for all your meals for three years and more are snugly stowed in casks, and your bill of fare is immutable.

It might seem unreasonable to connect the watchmen on land with those at sea, but it's clear that it's not the case, as shown by an account from Obed Macy, the only historian of Nantucket. The reliable Obed tells us that in the early days of whaling, before ships were regularly sent out for the hunt, the people of that island built tall poles along the coastline, which the look-outs climbed using nailed cleats, similar to how birds go up the stairs in a henhouse. A few years ago, the Bay whalers in New Zealand adopted the same method, and when they spotted a whale, they notified the nearby boats on the shore. However, this practice has now become outdated; let’s focus on the one true mast-head, that of a whaling ship at sea. The three mast-heads are manned from sunrise to sunset, with sailors taking their turns (like at the helm) and changing every two hours. In the calm weather of the tropics, being at the mast-head is incredibly pleasant; to a thoughtful, daydreaming person, it's delightful. There you stand, a hundred feet above the quiet decks, moving along the deep, as if the masts were giant stilts, while beneath you, swimming between your legs, are the biggest sea monsters, just like ships once passed between the feet of the famous Colossus at old Rhodes. There you stand, immersed in the infinite expanse of the sea, with nothing disturbing the surface but the waves. The ship lazily rolls; the sleepy trade winds blow; everything around you lulls you into a relaxed state. For the most part, this life of tropical whaling wraps you in a sublime unchangingness; you hear no news, read no newspapers; sensational extras with dramatic stories of everyday events never draw you into unnecessary excitement; you don’t hear of any domestic troubles, bankruptcies, or stock market crashes; you're never bothered by thoughts of what to have for dinner— all your meals for three years and more are safely stored away in barrels, and your menu is set.

In one of those southern whalesmen, on a long three or four years' voyage, as often happens, the sum of the various hours you spend at the mast-head would amount to several entire months. And it is much to be deplored that the place to which you devote so considerable a portion of the whole term of your natural life, should be so sadly destitute of anything approaching to a cosy inhabitiveness, or adapted to breed a comfortable localness of feeling, such as pertains to a bed, a hammock, a hearse, a sentry box, a pulpit, a coach, or any other of those small and snug contrivances in which men temporarily isolate themselves. Your most usual point of perch is the head of the t' gallant-mast, where you stand upon two thin parallel sticks (almost peculiar to whalemen) called the t' gallant crosstrees. Here, tossed about by the sea, the beginner feels about as cosy as he would standing on a bull's horns. To be sure, in cold weather you may carry your house aloft with you, in the shape of a watch-coat; but properly speaking the thickest watch-coat is no more of a house than the unclad body; for as the soul is glued inside of its fleshy tabernacle, and cannot freely move about in it, nor even move out of it, without running great risk of perishing (like an ignorant pilgrim crossing the snowy Alps in winter); so a watch-coat is not so much of a house as it is a mere envelope, or additional skin encasing you. You cannot put a shelf or chest of drawers in your body, and no more can you make a convenience closet of your watch-coat.

In one of those southern whaling trips, which can last three or four years, you often find that the total hours you spend at the masthead add up to several full months. It's unfortunate that the place where you dedicate such a significant chunk of your life is so utterly lacking in anything resembling comfort or a sense of home, like a bed, a hammock, a hearse, a sentry box, a pulpit, a coach, or any other small, cozy places where people can isolate themselves. Your typical perch is at the top of the topgallant mast, where you balance on two narrow sticks (almost unique to whalers) called the topgallant crosstrees. Up there, tossed around by the sea, a novice feels about as comfortable as if he were standing on a bull's horns. Sure, in cold weather you can bring your "house" up with you in the form of a watch coat; but honestly, the thickest watch coat is no more a home than your bare body is. Just as the soul is stuck inside its flesh and can’t move around freely or escape without risking death (like an unwary traveler trying to cross the snowy Alps in winter), a watch coat is not really a home; it’s just a cover or an extra layer of skin around you. You can't fit a shelf or drawers in your body, and the same goes for trying to make a handy closet out of your watch coat.

Concerning all this, it is much to be deplored that the mast-heads of a southern whale ship are unprovided with those enviable little tents or pulpits, called crow's-nests, in which the look-outs of a Greenland whaler are protected from the inclement weather of the frozen seas. In the fireside narrative of Captain Sleet, entitled "A Voyage among the Icebergs, in quest of the Greenland Whale, and incidentally for the re-discovery of the Lost Icelandic Colonies of Old Greenland;" in this admirable volume, all standers of mast-heads are furnished with a charmingly circumstantial account of the then recently invented crow's-nest of the Glacier, which was the name of Captain Sleet's good craft. He called it the Sleet's crow's-nest, in honor of himself; he being the original inventor and patentee, and free from all ridiculous false delicacy, and holding that if we call our own children after our own names (we fathers being the original inventors and patentees), so likewise should we denominate after ourselves any other apparatus we may beget. In shape, the Sleet's crow's-nest is something like a large tierce or pipe; it is open above, however, where it is furnished with a movable sidescreen to keep to windward of your head in a hard gale. Being fixed on the summit of the mast, you ascend into it through a little trap-hatch in the bottom. On the after side, or side next the stern of the ship, is a comfortable seat, with a locker underneath for umbrellas, comforters, and coats. In front is a leather rack, in which to keep your speaking trumpet, pipe, telescope, and other nautical conveniences. When Captain Sleet in person stood his mast-head in this crow's-nest of his, he tells us that he always had a rifle with him (also fixed in the rack), together with a powder flask and shot, for the purpose of popping off the stray narwhales, or vagrant sea unicorns infesting those waters; for you cannot successfully shoot at them from the deck owing to the resistance of the water, but to shoot down upon them is a very different thing. Now, it was plainly a labor of love for Captain Sleet to describe, as he does, all the little detailed conveniences of his crow's-nest; but though he so enlarges upon many of these, and though he treats us to a very scientific account of his experiments in this crow's-nest, with a small compass he kept there for the purpose of counteracting the errors resulting from what is called the "local attraction" of all binnacle magnets; an error ascribable to the horizontal vicinity of the iron in the ship's planks, and in the Glacier's case, perhaps, to there having been so many broken-down blacksmiths among her crew; I say, that though the Captain is very discreet and scientific here, yet, for all his learned "binnacle deviations," "azimuth compass observations," and "approximate errors," he knows very well, Captain Sleet, that he was not so much immersed in those profound magnetic meditations, as to fail being attracted occasionally towards that well replenished little case-bottle, so nicely tucked in on one side of his crow's nest, within easy reach of his hand. Though, upon the whole, I greatly admire and even love the brave, the honest, and learned Captain; yet I take it very ill of him that he should so utterly ignore that case-bottle, seeing what a faithful friend and comforter it must have been, while with mittened fingers and hooded head he was studying the mathematics aloft there in that bird's nest within three or four perches of the pole.

Regarding all of this, it’s quite unfortunate that the mast-heads of southern whaling ships lack those desirable little tents or pulpits, called crow's-nests, that protect the look-outs on Greenland whalers from the harsh weather of the icy seas. In the narrative by Captain Sleet, titled "A Voyage among the Icebergs, in Quest of the Greenland Whale, and Incidentally for the Re-Discovery of the Lost Icelandic Colonies of Old Greenland," this excellent book provides all mast-head standers with a detailed description of the newly invented crow's-nest of the Glacier, which was the name of Captain Sleet's ship. He named it Sleet's crow's-nest in honor of himself, being the original inventor and patent holder, free from all ridiculous false modesty, and believing that just as we name our own children after ourselves (we fathers being the original creators), we should also name any other inventions we create after ourselves. The Sleet's crow's-nest is shaped somewhat like a large barrel or pipe; it’s open on top and has a movable side screen to shield your head from the wind in heavy gales. It’s fixed at the top of the mast, and you climb into it through a small hatch at the bottom. On the back side, next to the stern of the ship, is a comfortable seat with a locker underneath for umbrellas, warm clothing, and coats. In front is a leather rack for keeping your speaking trumpet, pipe, telescope, and other nautical tools. When Captain Sleet personally stood at the mast-head in his crow's-nest, he says he always had a rifle with him (also secured in the rack), along with a powder flask and shot, to take out the stray narwhales or wandering sea unicorns in those waters; since you can’t shoot at them successfully from the deck due to the water’s resistance, shooting down at them is a very different experience. Clearly, it was a labor of love for Captain Sleet to detail all the little conveniences of his crow's-nest; however, even though he elaborates on many of these, and provides a scientific account of his experiments in the crow's-nest with a small compass to counteract the inaccuracies caused by what’s known as “local attraction” in all binnacle magnets—an error due to the horizontal proximity of the iron in the ship’s planks, and in the Glacier’s case, possibly also due to the many broken-down blacksmiths among her crew—despite his careful and scientific approach, Captain Sleet knows very well that he wasn’t so lost in those magnetic thoughts that he didn’t occasionally feel drawn to that well-stocked little case-bottle, conveniently stored on one side of his crow's-nest, within easy reach. While I generally greatly admire and even love the brave, honest, and learned Captain, I do find it quite disappointing that he completely overlooks that case-bottle, considering how faithful a companion and comforter it must have been while he was up there, with mittened hands and a hooded head, studying the mathematics just a few steps from the pole.

But if we Southern whale-fishers are not so snugly housed aloft as Captain Sleet and his Greenlandmen were; yet that disadvantage is greatly counter-balanced by the widely contrasting serenity of those seductive seas in which we South fishers mostly float. For one, I used to lounge up the rigging very leisurely, resting in the top to have a chat with Queequeg, or any one else off duty whom I might find there; then ascending a little way further, and throwing a lazy leg over the top-sail yard, take a preliminary view of the watery pastures, and so at last mount to my ultimate destination.

But even though we Southern whale fishers aren’t as comfortably housed up high as Captain Sleet and his Greenland crew were, that drawback is largely balanced out by the calmness of those tempting seas where we Southern fishers mostly operate. For example, I used to climb up the rigging at a relaxed pace, resting in the crow's nest to chat with Queequeg or anyone else on break that I might find there; then I’d go a bit higher, throw a leg over the topsail yard, and take a lazy look at the ocean views before finally reaching my final destination.

Let me make a clean breast of it here, and frankly admit that I kept but sorry guard. With the problem of the universe revolving in me, how could I—being left completely to myself at such a thought-engendering altitude—how could I but lightly hold my obligations to observe all whaleships' standing orders, "Keep your weather eye open, and sing out every time."

Let me come clean and admit that I didn’t do a great job. With the problem of the universe weighing on me, how could I—being left completely to my own thoughts at such a high level—how could I take seriously my duty to follow all the whaleships' standing orders: "Keep your eyes peeled and call out every time."

And let me in this place movingly admonish you, ye ship-owners of Nantucket! Beware of enlisting in your vigilant fisheries any lad with lean brow and hollow eye; given to unseasonable meditativeness; and who offers to ship with the Phaedon instead of Bowditch in his head. Beware of such an one, I say: your whales must be seen before they can be killed; and this sunken-eyed young Platonist will tow you ten wakes round the world, and never make you one pint of sperm the richer. Nor are these monitions at all unneeded. For nowadays, the whale-fishery furnishes an asylum for many romantic, melancholy, and absent-minded young men, disgusted with the corking care of earth, and seeking sentiment in tar and blubber. Childe Harold not unfrequently perches himself upon the mast-head of some luckless disappointed whale-ship, and in moody phrase ejaculates:—

And let me here encourage you, ship owners of Nantucket! Be careful not to hire any guys with a skinny face and hollow eyes; those who are lost in thought and want to join the Phaedon instead of having Bowditch as their guide. Watch out for someone like that, I say: you need to spot your whales before you can catch them, and this dreamy young philosopher will drag you around the world and won’t help you get even a drop of oil. These warnings are definitely necessary. Nowadays, the whale fishery attracts many romantic, moody, and absent-minded young men who are fed up with the everyday grind and look for adventure in tar and blubber. Childe Harold often sits on the mast of some unfortunate and let-down whaling ship and expresses his feelings in a gloomy tone:—

     "Roll on, thou deep and dark blue ocean, roll!
      Ten thousand blubber-hunters sweep over thee in vain."

"Roll on, you deep and dark blue ocean, roll!
      Ten thousand whalers chase after you in vain."

Very often do the captains of such ships take those absent-minded young philosophers to task, upbraiding them with not feeling sufficient "interest" in the voyage; half-hinting that they are so hopelessly lost to all honorable ambition, as that in their secret souls they would rather not see whales than otherwise. But all in vain; those young Platonists have a notion that their vision is imperfect; they are short-sighted; what use, then, to strain the visual nerve? They have left their opera-glasses at home.

Very often, the captains of these ships scold those absent-minded young philosophers for not showing enough "interest" in the voyage, subtly suggesting that they've completely lost touch with any honorable ambition, as if deep down they'd prefer not to see whales at all. But it’s all for nothing; those young Platonists believe their vision is flawed; they’re nearsighted. So what's the point of straining their eyes? They've left their binoculars at home.

"Why, thou monkey," said a harpooneer to one of these lads, "we've been cruising now hard upon three years, and thou hast not raised a whale yet. Whales are scarce as hen's teeth whenever thou art up here." Perhaps they were; or perhaps there might have been shoals of them in the far horizon; but lulled into such an opium-like listlessness of vacant, unconscious reverie is this absent-minded youth by the blending cadence of waves with thoughts, that at last he loses his identity; takes the mystic ocean at his feet for the visible image of that deep, blue, bottomless soul, pervading mankind and nature; and every strange, half-seen, gliding, beautiful thing that eludes him; every dimly-discovered, uprising fin of some undiscernible form, seems to him the embodiment of those elusive thoughts that only people the soul by continually flitting through it. In this enchanted mood, thy spirit ebbs away to whence it came; becomes diffused through time and space; like Crammer's sprinkled Pantheistic ashes, forming at last a part of every shore the round globe over.

"Hey, you monkey," said one of the harpooners to one of the young guys, "we’ve been cruising for almost three years, and you still haven’t spotted a whale. Whales are as rare as hen’s teeth whenever you’re up here." Maybe they really are; or maybe there were plenty of them on the distant horizon. But this absent-minded kid is so lulled into a dreamy state by the soothing rhythm of the waves and his thoughts that he eventually loses his sense of self. He sees the vast ocean at his feet as a reflection of that deep, blue, bottomless soul that connects all of humanity and nature; and every strange, half-seen, beautiful thing that slips away from him, every faintly visible fin of some unknown creature, seems to him like those fleeting thoughts that continuously pass through the soul. In this enchanted state, his spirit flows back to where it came from; it becomes scattered across time and space, like Crammer's scattered Pantheistic ashes, ultimately becoming part of every shore around the globe.

There is no life in thee, now, except that rocking life imparted by a gently rolling ship; by her, borrowed from the sea; by the sea, from the inscrutable tides of God. But while this sleep, this dream is on ye, move your foot or hand an inch; slip your hold at all; and your identity comes back in horror. Over Descartian vortices you hover. And perhaps, at midday, in the fairest weather, with one half-throttled shriek you drop through that transparent air into the summer sea, no more to rise for ever. Heed it well, ye Pantheists!

There’s no life in you now, except for the gentle sway brought on by a softly rolling ship; that life is borrowed from the sea; and the sea, from the mysterious tides of God. But while you’re in this sleep, this dream, if you move your foot or hand even a little; if you lose your grip at all; your true self returns with terror. You float above Descartes' vortices. And maybe, at noon, in the best weather, with one half-choked scream, you plunge through that clear air into the summer sea, never to rise again. Pay attention, you Pantheists!

CHAPTER 36

The Quarter-Deck

The Quarterdeck

(Enter Ahab: Then, all)

(Enter Ahab: Then, all)

It was not a great while after the affair of the pipe, that one morning shortly after breakfast, Ahab, as was his wont, ascended the cabin-gangway to the deck. There most sea-captains usually walk at that hour, as country gentlemen, after the same meal, take a few turns in the garden.

It wasn't long after the pipe incident that one morning, shortly after breakfast, Ahab, as usual, went up the cabin-gangway to the deck. That's where most sea captains typically walk at that time, just like country gentlemen take a few strolls in the garden after the same meal.

Soon his steady, ivory stride was heard, as to and fro he paced his old rounds, upon planks so familiar to his tread, that they were all over dented, like geological stones, with the peculiar mark of his walk. Did you fixedly gaze, too, upon that ribbed and dented brow; there also, you would see still stranger foot-prints—the foot-prints of his one unsleeping, ever-pacing thought.

Soon his steady, white stride was heard as he paced back and forth on his old route, on floorboards so familiar to him that they were all worn down, like geological stones, with the unique marks of his steps. If you looked closely at that ribbed and worn brow, you would also see even stranger imprints—the imprints of his one relentless, ever-moving thought.

But on the occasion in question, those dents looked deeper, even as his nervous step that morning left a deeper mark. And, so full of his thought was Ahab, that at every uniform turn that he made, now at the main-mast and now at the binnacle, you could almost see that thought turn in him as he turned, and pace in him as he paced; so completely possessing him, indeed, that it all but seemed the inward mould of every outer movement.

But on that particular occasion, those dents seemed more pronounced, just like his anxious stride that morning left a bigger impression. Ahab was so absorbed in his thoughts that every time he made a steady turn, whether at the main mast or at the binnacle, you could almost see that thought shift within him as he moved, and walk within him as he walked; it occupied him so completely that it nearly felt like the inner shape of every outer action.

"D'ye mark him, Flask?" whispered Stubb; "the chick that's in him pecks the shell. 'Twill soon be out."

“Do you see him, Flask?” whispered Stubb; “the chick inside him is pecking at the shell. It’ll be out soon.”

The hours wore on;—Ahab now shut up within his cabin; anon, pacing the deck, with the same intense bigotry of purpose in his aspect.

The hours passed;—Ahab was now locked in his cabin; at times, he strode across the deck, with the same intense determination reflected on his face.

It drew near the close of day. Suddenly he came to a halt by the bulwarks, and inserting his bone leg into the auger-hole there, and with one hand grasping a shroud, he ordered Starbuck to send everybody aft.

It was getting close to the end of the day. Suddenly, he stopped by the railing, put his wooden leg into the hole there, and with one hand holding onto a rope, he told Starbuck to call everyone to the back.

"Sir!" said the mate, astonished at an order seldom or never given on ship-board except in some extraordinary case.

"Sir!" said the mate, shocked by an order that was rarely, if ever, given on a ship except in some unusual circumstances.

"Send everybody aft," repeated Ahab. "Mast-heads, there! come down!"

"Send everyone to the back," Ahab repeated. "Mastheads, there! Come down!"

When the entire ship's company were assembled, and with curious and not wholly unapprehensive faces, were eyeing him, for he looked not unlike the weather horizon when a storm is coming up, Ahab, after rapidly glancing over the bulwarks, and then darting his eyes among the crew, started from his standpoint; and as though not a soul were nigh him resumed his heavy turns upon the deck. With bent head and half-slouched hat he continued to pace, unmindful of the wondering whispering among the men; till Stubb cautiously whispered to Flask, that Ahab must have summoned them there for the purpose of witnessing a pedestrian feat. But this did not last long. Vehemently pausing, he cried:—

When the whole crew had gathered, their faces curious and a bit worried, they watched him, as he resembled the sky before a storm. Ahab took a quick look over the ship's rail, then scanned the crew, before abruptly breaking from his position and starting to walk heavily on the deck. With his head down and hat tilted, he continued to pace, ignoring the murmurs among the men; until Stubb quietly whispered to Flask that Ahab must have called them there to see some sort of walking performance. But that didn’t last long. Suddenly stopping fiercely, he shouted:—

"What do ye do when ye see a whale, men?"

"What do you do when you see a whale, guys?"

"Sing out for him!" was the impulsive rejoinder from a score of clubbed voices.

"Shout for him!" was the spontaneous response from a group of voices.

"Good!" cried Ahab, with a wild approval in his tones; observing the hearty animation into which his unexpected question had so magnetically thrown them.

"Good!" shouted Ahab, with an excited approval in his voice, noticing the lively energy his unexpected question had sparked in them.

"And what do ye next, men?"

"And what do you do next, guys?"

"Lower away, and after him!"

"Lower down, and follow him!"

"And what tune is it ye pull to, men?"

"And what tune are you playing, guys?"

"A dead whale or a stove boat!"

"A dead whale or a stove boat!"

More and more strangely and fiercely glad and approving, grew the countenance of the old man at every shout; while the mariners began to gaze curiously at each other, as if marvelling how it was that they themselves became so excited at such seemingly purposeless questions.

More and more strangely and fiercely happy and approving, the old man's face grew with every shout; while the sailors started to look at each other with curiosity, as if wondering why they were so excited about such apparently pointless questions.

But, they were all eagerness again, as Ahab, now half-revolving in his pivot-hole, with one hand reaching high up a shroud, and tightly, almost convulsively grasping it, addressed them thus:—

But they were all eager again as Ahab, now half-turned in his pivot-hole, with one hand reaching high up a shroud and gripping it tightly, almost convulsively, addressed them like this:—

"All ye mast-headers have before now heard me give orders about a white whale. Look ye! d'ye see this Spanish ounce of gold?"—holding up a broad bright coin to the sun—"it is a sixteen dollar piece, men. D'ye see it? Mr. Starbuck, hand me yon top-maul."

"All you guys up in the mast have heard me talk about a white whale before. Look here! Do you see this Spanish gold coin?"—holding up a shiny broad coin to the sun—"It's a sixteen dollar piece, guys. Do you see it? Mr. Starbuck, hand me that top-maul over there."

While the mate was getting the hammer, Ahab, without speaking, was slowly rubbing the gold piece against the skirts of his jacket, as if to heighten its lustre, and without using any words was meanwhile lowly humming to himself, producing a sound so strangely muffled and inarticulate that it seemed the mechanical humming of the wheels of his vitality in him.

While the mate was getting the hammer, Ahab, without saying anything, was slowly rubbing the gold piece against the edges of his jacket, as if to make it shine more, and without speaking was softly humming to himself, creating a sound so oddly muffled and unclear that it felt like the mechanical hum of his life force.

Receiving the top-maul from Starbuck, he advanced towards the main-mast with the hammer uplifted in one hand, exhibiting the gold with the other, and with a high raised voice exclaiming: "Whosoever of ye raises me a white-headed whale with a wrinkled brow and a crooked jaw; whosoever of ye raises me that white-headed whale, with three holes punctured in his starboard fluke—look ye, whosoever of ye raises me that same white whale, he shall have this gold ounce, my boys!"

Receiving the top-maul from Starbuck, he moved toward the main mast with the hammer raised in one hand, showing the gold with the other, and with a loud voice shouted: "Whoever among you catches a white-headed whale with a wrinkled brow and a crooked jaw—listen up, whoever brings me that same white-headed whale, with three holes in its starboard fluke—look, whoever catches that white whale will get this gold ounce, my friends!"

"Huzza! huzza!" cried the seamen, as with swinging tarpaulins they hailed the act of nailing the gold to the mast.

"Hooray! hooray!" shouted the sailors, as they waved their tarpaulins to celebrate the act of nailing the gold to the mast.

"It's a white whale, I say," resumed Ahab, as he threw down the topmaul: "a white whale. Skin your eyes for him, men; look sharp for white water; if ye see but a bubble, sing out."

"It's a white whale, I tell you," Ahab continued, tossing down the topmaul. "A white whale. Keep your eyes peeled for him, guys; pay close attention for any white water; if you spot even a bubble, shout out."

All this while Tashtego, Daggoo, and Queequeg had looked on with even more intense interest and surprise than the rest, and at the mention of the wrinkled brow and crooked jaw they had started as if each was separately touched by some specific recollection.

All this time, Tashtego, Daggoo, and Queequeg had watched with even greater interest and surprise than the others, and when the wrinkled brow and crooked jaw were mentioned, they all jumped as if each was reminded of something specific.

"Captain Ahab," said Tashtego, "that white whale must be the same that some call Moby Dick."

"Captain Ahab," Tashtego said, "that white whale has to be the same one that some people call Moby Dick."

"Moby Dick?" shouted Ahab. "Do ye know the white whale then, Tash?"

"Moby Dick?" shouted Ahab. "Do you know the white whale then, Tash?"

"Does he fan-tail a little curious, sir, before he goes down?" said the Gay-Header deliberately.

"Does he fan out his tail a bit curiously, sir, before he goes down?" said the Gay-Header deliberately.

"And has he a curious spout, too," said Daggoo, "very bushy, even for a parmacetty, and mighty quick, Captain Ahab?"

"And does he have a curious spout, too," said Daggoo, "very bushy, even for a sperm whale, and really fast, Captain Ahab?"

"And he have one, two, tree—oh! good many iron in him hide, too, Captain," cried Queequeg disjointedly, "all twiske-tee be-twisk, like him—him-" faltering hard for a word, and screwing his hand round and round as though uncorking a bottle—"like him—him-"

"And he has one, two, three—oh! a lot of iron hidden in him too, Captain," Queequeg exclaimed awkwardly, "all twisted around, like him—him—" struggling to find the right word and twisting his hand around as if trying to uncork a bottle—"like him—him—"

"Corkscrew!" cried Ahab, "aye, Queequeg, the harpoons lie all twisted and wrenched in him; aye, Daggoo, his spout is a big one, like a whole shock of wheat, and white as a pile of our Nantucket wool after the great annual sheep-shearing; aye, Tashtego, and he fan-tails like a split jib in a squall. Death and devils! men, it is Moby Dick ye have seen— Moby Dick—Moby Dick!"

"Corkscrew!" shouted Ahab, "yeah, Queequeg, the harpoons are all twisted and tangled in him; yeah, Daggoo, his spout is huge, like a whole bunch of wheat, and as white as our Nantucket wool after the big annual sheep shearing; yeah, Tashtego, and he fan-tails like a torn sail in a storm. Damn it! Men, it’s Moby Dick you’ve seen— Moby Dick—Moby Dick!"

"Captain Ahab," said Starbuck, who, with Stubb and Flask, had thus far been eyeing his superior with increasing surprise, but at last seemed struck with a thought which somewhat explained all the wonder. "Captain Ahab, I have heard of Moby Dick—but it was not Moby Dick that took off thy leg?"

"Captain Ahab," Starbuck said, who along with Stubb and Flask, had been watching his boss with growing surprise, but finally seemed to have a revelation that made sense of all their confusion. "Captain Ahab, I've heard of Moby Dick—but it wasn't Moby Dick that took off your leg, was it?"

"Who told thee that?" cried Ahab; then pausing, "Aye, Starbuck; aye, my hearties all round; it was Moby Dick that dismasted me; Moby Dick that brought me to this dead stump I stand on now. Aye, aye," he shouted with a terrific, loud, animal sob, like that of a heart-stricken moose; "Aye, aye! it was that accursed white whale that razeed me; made a poor pegging lubber of me for ever and a day!" Then tossing both arms, with measureless imprecations he shouted out: "Aye, aye! and I'll chase him round Good Hope, and round the Horn, and round the Norway Maelstrom, and round perdition's flames before I give him up. And this is what ye have shipped for, men! to chase that white whale on both sides of land, and over all sides of earth, till he spouts black blood and rolls fin out. What say ye, men, will ye splice hands on it, now? I think ye do look brave."

"Who told you that?" Ahab shouted; then pausing, "Yeah, Starbuck; yeah, my friends all around; it was Moby Dick that took my mast; Moby Dick that brought me to this dead stump I stand on now. Yeah, yeah," he yelled with a tremendous, loud, animal sob, like a heartbroken moose; "Yeah, yeah! it was that cursed white whale that made a useless fool out of me forever!" Then throwing his arms up, with endless curses, he shouted out: "Yeah, yeah! and I'll chase him around the Cape of Good Hope, and around Cape Horn, and around the Norway Maelstrom, and through the flames of hell before I give him up. And this is what you signed up for, men! to chase that white whale on both sides of land, and over all corners of the earth, until he spouts black blood and shows his fin. What do you say, men, will you join hands on it now? I believe you look brave."

"Aye, aye!" shouted the harpooneers and seamen, running closer to the excited old man: "A sharp eye for the White Whale; a sharp lance for Moby Dick!"

"Aye, aye!" shouted the harpooneers and sailors, running closer to the excited old man: "A keen eye for the White Whale; a sharp lance for Moby Dick!"

"God bless ye," he seemed to half sob and half shout.
"God bless ye, men. Steward! go draw the great measure of grog.
But what's this long face about, Mr. Starbuck; wilt thou not
chase the white whale! art not game for Moby Dick?"

"God bless you," he seemed to half sob and half shout.
"God bless you, men. Steward! go pour the big jug of grog.
But what's with the long face, Mr. Starbuck; aren't you going to
chase the white whale? Aren't you up for Moby Dick?"

"I am game for his crooked jaw, and for the jaws of Death too,
Captain Ahab, if it fairly comes in the way of the business we follow;
but I came here to hunt whales, not my commander's vengeance.
How many barrels will thy vengeance yield thee even if thou gettest it,
Captain Ahab? it will not fetch thee much in our Nantucket market."

"I’m all in for his crooked jaw and for Death's jaws too,
Captain Ahab, if it truly relates to the work we’re doing;
but I came here to hunt whales, not to carry out my captain's revenge.
How many barrels will your revenge get you even if you achieve it,
Captain Ahab? It won’t sell for much in our Nantucket market."

"Nantucket market! Hoot! But come closer, Starbuck; thou requirest a little lower layer. If money's to be the measurer, man, and the accountants have computed their great counting-house the globe, by girdling it with guineas, one to every three parts of an inch; then, let me tell thee, that my vengeance will fetch a great premium here!"

"Nantucket market! Hoot! But come closer, Starbuck; you need a little lower level. If money is going to be the measure, man, and the accountants have figured out their huge counting house around the world, wrapping it with guineas, one for every three inches; then, let me tell you, my vengeance will come at a high cost here!"

"He smites his chest," whispered Stubb, "what's that for? methinks it rings most vast, but hollow."

"He pounds his chest," whispered Stubb, "what's that about? I think it sounds really big, but empty."

"Vengeance on a dumb brute!" cried Starbuck, "that simply smote thee from blindest instinct! Madness! To be enraged with a dumb thing, Captain Ahab, seems blasphemous."

"Revenge on a mindless beast!" shouted Starbuck, "that just hit you out of sheer instinct! It's crazy! Getting angry at a dumb creature, Captain Ahab, feels like a sin."

"Hark ye yet again—the little lower layer. All visible objects, man, are but as pasteboard masks. But in each event—in the living act, the undoubted deed—there, some unknown but still reasoning thing puts forth the mouldings of its features from behind the unreasoning mask. If man will strike, strike through the mask! How can the prisoner reach outside except by thrusting through the wall? To me, the white whale is that wall, shoved near to me. Sometimes I think there's naught beyond. But 'tis enough. He tasks me; he heaps me; I see in him outrageous strength, with an inscrutable malice sinewing it. That inscrutable thing is chiefly what I hate; and be the white whale agent, or be the white whale principal, I will wreak that hate upon him. Talk not to me of blasphemy, man; I'd strike the sun if it insulted me. For could the sun do that, then could I do the other; since there is ever a sort of fair play herein, jealousy presiding over all creations. But not my master, man, is even that fair play. Who's over me? Truth hath no confines. Take off thine eye! more intolerable than fiends' glarings is a doltish stare! So, so; thou reddenest and palest; my heat has melted thee to anger-glow. But look ye, Starbuck, what is said in heat, that thing unsays itself. There are men from whom warm words are small indignity. I meant not to incense thee. Let it go. Look! see yonder Turkish cheeks of spotted tawn—living, breathing pictures painted by the sun. The Pagan leopards—the unrecking and unworshipping things, that live; and seek, and give no reasons for the torrid life they feel! The crew, man, the crew! Are they not one and all with Ahab, in this matter of the whale? See Stubb! he laughs! See yonder Chilian! he snorts to think of it. Stand up amid the general hurricane, thy one tost sapling cannot, Starbuck! And what is it? Reckon it. 'Tis but to help strike a fin; no wondrous feat for Starbuck. What is it more? From this one poor hunt, then, the best lance out of all Nantucket, surely he will not hang back, when every foremast-hand has clutched a whetstone. Ah! constrainings seize thee; I see! the billow lifts thee! Speak, but speak!—Aye, aye! thy silence, then, that voices thee. (Aside) Something shot from my dilated nostrils, he has inhaled it in his lungs. Starbuck now is mine; cannot oppose me now, without rebellion."

"Listen again—the little lower layer. All visible things, man, are just cardboard masks. But in every situation—in the living action, the undeniable deed—there’s something unknown yet still reasoning that reveals its features from behind the unthinking mask. If man wants to strike, strike through the mask! How can the prisoner reach out except by pushing through the wall? To me, the white whale is that wall, pushed close to me. Sometimes I think there’s nothing beyond. But that’s enough. He challenges me; he burdens me; I see in him outrageous strength, with an unfathomable malice behind it. That unfathomable thing is mainly what I despise; whether the white whale is the agent or the principal, I will take that hatred out on him. Don’t talk to me about blasphemy, man; I’d strike the sun if it insulted me. Because if the sun could do that, then I could do the other; since there’s always some kind of fair play here, jealousy overseeing all creations. But not my master, man, is even that fair play. Who’s above me? Truth has no limits. Take away your gaze! more unbearable than the glares of devils is a stupid stare! So, so; you’re reddening and paling; my heat has melted you to an angry glow. But look, Starbuck, what is said in anger, that thing takes back. There are men for whom warm words are a small insult. I didn’t mean to provoke you. Let it go. Look! see those Turkish cheeks of spotted tan—living, breathing pictures painted by the sun. The Pagan leopards—the unthinking and unworshipping things that live; and seek, and give no reasons for the scorching life they have! The crew, man, the crew! Are they not all with Ahab in this matter of the whale? See Stubb! he laughs! Look over there at that Chilian! he snorts just thinking about it. Stand up in the overall storm, your one tilted sapling cannot, Starbuck! And what is it? Think about it. It's just to help strike a fin; no great feat for Starbuck. What is it more? From this one poor hunt, then, the best harpooner out of all Nantucket, surely he will not hang back, when every foremast hand has grabbed a whetstone. Ah! restraints seize you; I see! the wave lifts you! Speak, but speak!—Yes, yes! your silence, then, that speaks for you. (Aside) Something shot from my flared nostrils, he has inhaled it in his lungs. Starbuck is now mine; he cannot oppose me now, without rebelling."

"God keep me!—keep us all!" murmured Starbuck, lowly.

"God help me!—help us all!" whispered Starbuck softly.

But in his joy at the enchanted, tacit acquiescence of the mate, Ahab did not hear his foreboding invocation; nor yet the low laugh from the hold; nor yet the presaging vibrations of the winds in the cordage; nor yet the hollow flap of the sails against the masts, as for a moment their hearts sank in. For again Starbuck's downcast eyes lighted up with the stubbornness of life; the subterranean laugh died away; the winds blew on; the sails filled out; the ship heaved and rolled as before. Ah, ye admonitions and warnings! why stay ye not when ye come? But rather are ye predictions than warnings, ye shadows! Yet not so much predictions from without, as verifications of the fore-going things within. For with little external to constrain us, the innermost necessities in our being, these still drive us on.

But in his joy at the silent agreement of his companion, Ahab didn't notice his ominous words; nor the quiet laughter from below deck; nor the warning sounds of the wind in the rigging; nor the dull flapping of the sails against the masts, as for a moment their spirits sank. Again, Starbuck's downcast eyes brightened with life's determination; the underground laughter faded away; the winds continued to blow; the sails filled up; and the ship rolled and swayed just like before. Ah, those warnings and signs! Why don’t you stick around when you show up? Instead, you seem more like predictions than warnings, mere shadows! Yet they are not just outside predictions, but confirmations of the deep truths within us. For with little external pressure to hold us back, the deepest needs of our being still push us forward.

"The measure! the measure!" cried Ahab.

"The measure! the measure!" shouted Ahab.

Receiving the brimming pewter, and turning to the harpooneers, he ordered them to produce their weapons. Then ranging them before him near the capstan, with their harpoons in their hands, while his three mates stood at his side with their lances, and the rest of the ship's company formed a circle round the group; he stood for an instant searchingly eyeing every man of his crew. But those wild eyes met his, as the bloodshot eyes of the prairie wolves meet the eye of their leader, ere he rushes on at their head in the trail of the bison; but, alas! only to fall into the hidden snare of the Indian.

Receiving the full pewter mug and turning to the harpooneers, he ordered them to show their weapons. Then, positioning them in front of him near the capstan, with their harpoons in hand, while his three mates stood beside him with their lances, and the rest of the crew formed a circle around the group; he took a moment to carefully examine each member of his crew. But those wild eyes met his, similar to how the bloodshot eyes of prairie wolves meet the gaze of their leader just before he charges ahead in pursuit of the bison; but, unfortunately, only to stumble into the hidden trap of the Indian.

"Drink and pass!" he cried, handing the heavy charged flagon to the nearest seaman. "The crew alone now drink. Round with it, round! Short draughts—long swallows, men; 'tis hot as Satan's hoof. So, so; it goes round excellently. It spiralizes in ye; forks out at the serpent-snapping eye. Well done; almost drained. That way it went, this way it comes. Hand it me—here's a hollow! Men, ye seem the years; so brimming life is gulped and gone. Steward, refill!

"Drink up and pass it around!" he shouted, handing the heavy flagon to the nearest sailor. "The crew should drink up now. Pass it along, pass it along! Take quick sips—long gulps, guys; it’s as hot as hell. There we go; it’s going around great. It swirls inside you; it hits you right in the eye. Good job; almost empty. That’s how it went, now it’s coming back. Give it to me—here’s a gap! Guys, you seem to feel the years; so much life is chugged and gone. Steward, refill it!"

"Attend now, my braves. I have mustered ye all round this capstan; and ye mates, flank me with your lances; and ye harpooneers, stand there with your irons; and ye, stout mariners, ring me in, that I may in some sort revive a noble custom of my fisherman fathers before me. O men, you will yet see that—Ha! boy, come back? bad pennies come not sooner. Hand it me. Why, now, this pewter had run brimming again, wert not thou St. Vitus' imp—away, thou ague!

"Listen up, everyone. I've gathered you all around this capstan; and you mates, line up next to me with your lances; and you harpooneers, stand there with your gear; and you, strong sailors, close in, so I can bring back a noble tradition from my fisherman ancestors. Oh men, you will see that—Ha! Boy, come back? Bad luck tends to show up sooner. Give it to me. Well, now, this pewter would be overflowing again, if you weren’t St. Vitus’ little demon—go away, you shiver!"

"Advance, ye mates! Cross your lances full before me. Well done! Let me touch the axis." So saying, with extended arm, he grasped the three level, radiating lances at their crossed centre; while so doing, suddenly and nervously twitched them; meanwhile glancing intently from Starbuck to Stubb; from Stubb to Flask. It seemed as though, by some nameless, interior volition, he would fain have shocked into them the same fiery emotion accumulated within the Leyden jar of his own magnetic life. The three mates quailed before his strong, sustained, and mystic aspect. Stubb and Flask looked sideways from him; the honest eye of Starbuck fell downright.

"Move forward, guys! Cross your lances right in front of me. Great job! Let me touch the center." As he said this, with his arm outstretched, he grabbed the three level, radiating lances at their crossed point; while doing so, he suddenly and nervously twitched them, glancing intently from Starbuck to Stubb, and then from Stubb to Flask. It felt as if, by some unnamed inner impulse, he wanted to shock them with the same intense emotion that's built up inside him like a Leyden jar filled with his own magnetic energy. The three mates flinched before his strong, steady, and mysterious presence. Stubb and Flask looked away from him; the honest gaze of Starbuck fell straight down.

"In vain!" cried Ahab; "but, maybe, 'tis well. For did ye three but once take the full-forced shock, then mine own electric thing, that had perhaps expired from out me. Perchance, too, it would have dropped ye dead. Perchance ye need it not. Down lances! And now, ye mates, I do appoint ye three cupbearers to my three pagan kinsmen there— yon three most honorable gentlemen and noblemen, my valiant harpooneers. Disdain the task? What, when the great Pope washes the feet of beggars, using his tiara for ewer? Oh, my sweet cardinals! your own condescension, that shall bend ye to it. I do not order ye; ye will it. Cut your seizings and draw the poles, ye harpooneers!"

"In vain!" Ahab shouted. "But maybe it's for the best. If you three had taken the full force of it, my electric thing might have died with me. It could have killed you too. Maybe you don’t need it. Lower your lances! And now, you mates, I'm naming you three as cupbearers to my three pagan relatives over there—those three most honorable gentlemen and noblemen, my brave harpooneers. Disdain the task? What about when the great Pope washes the feet of beggars, using his tiara as a basin? Oh, my dear cardinals! Your own humility will compel you to do it. I'm not commanding you; you want to do it. Cut your holds and raise the poles, harpooneers!"

Silently obeying the order, the three harpooneers now stood with the detached iron part of their harpoons, some three feet long, held, barbs up, before him.

Silently following the command, the three harpooneers now stood with the detached iron parts of their harpoons, about three feet long, held, barbs up, in front of him.

"Stab me not with that keen steel! Cant them; cant them over! know ye not the goblet end? Turn up the socket! So, so; now, ye cup-bearers, advance. The irons! take them; hold them while I fill!" Forthwith, slowly going from one officer to the other, he brimmed the harpoon sockets with the fiery waters from the pewter.

"Don’t stab me with that sharp steel! Tilt them; tilt them over! Don’t you know the goblet’s end? Turn up the socket! Alright, now, you cup-bearers, come forward. The irons! Take them; hold them while I fill!" Immediately, moving slowly from one officer to the next, he filled the harpoon sockets with the fiery liquid from the pewter.

"Now, three to three, ye stand. Commend the murderous chalices! Bestow them, ye who are now made parties to this indissoluble league. Ha! Starbuck! but the deed is done! Yon ratifying sun now waits to sit upon it. Drink, ye harpooneers! drink and swear, ye men that man the deathful whaleboat's bow— Death to Moby Dick! God hunt us all, if we do not hunt Moby Dick to his death!" The long, barbed steel goblets were lifted; and to cries and maledictions against the white whale, the spirits were simultaneously quaffed down with a hiss. Starbuck paled, and turned, and shivered. Once more, and finally, the replenished pewter went the rounds among the frantic crew; when, waving his free hand to them, they all dispersed; and Ahab retired within his cabin.

"Now, with three votes for and three against, you stand. Toast to the deadly chalices! Hand them over, you who are now part of this unbreakable alliance. Ha! Starbuck! The deed is done! That ratifying sun is ready to set on it. Drink, harpooneers! Drink and swear, you men who man the bow of the deadly whaleboat—Death to Moby Dick! May God help us all if we don’t hunt Moby Dick to his end!" The long, sharp steel goblets were lifted; and with shouts and curses against the white whale, the drinks were all downed with a hiss. Starbuck turned pale and shivered. Once more, the filled pewter was passed around among the frenzied crew; then, waving his free hand to them, they all scattered, and Ahab went back into his cabin.

CHAPTER 37

Sunset

Sunset

The cabin; by the stern windows; Ahab sitting alone, and gazing out.

The cabin; by the back windows; Ahab sitting alone and looking out.

I leave a white and turbid wake; pale waters, paler cheeks, where'er I sail. The envious billows sidelong swell to whelm my track; let them; but first I pass.

I leave a white and murky wake; pale waters, paler cheeks, wherever I go. The jealous waves rise up to drown my path; let them try, but I will go first.

Yonder, by the ever-brimming goblet's rim, the warm waves blush like wine. The gold brow plumbs the blue. The diver sun— slow dived from noon—goes down; my soul mounts up! she wearies with her endless hill. Is, then, the crown too heavy that I wear? this Iron Crown of Lombardy. Yet is it bright with many a gem; I the wearer, see not its far flashings; but darkly feel that I wear that, that dazzlingly confounds. 'Tis iron—that I know—not gold. 'Tis split, too—that I feel; the jagged edge galls me so, my brain seems to beat against the solid metal; aye, steel skull, mine; the sort that needs no helmet in the most brain-battering fight!

Over there, by the overflowing goblet's edge, the warm waves blush like wine. The golden brow dips into the blue. The diving sun—slowly sinking from noon—sets; my soul rises! It tires from its endless climb. Is this crown I wear too heavy? This Iron Crown of Lombardy. Yet it sparkles with many gems; I, the wearer, do not see its distant gleam; but I can feel that I wear something that dazzlingly confuses. It's iron—that I know—not gold. It’s split too—that I can feel; the jagged edge irritates me so, my mind feels like it's pounding against the solid metal; yes, my skull is like steel; the kind that needs no helmet in the fiercest battle!

Dry heat upon my brow? Oh! time was, when as the sunrise nobly spurred me, so the sunset soothed. No more. This lovely light, it lights not me; all loveliness is anguish to me, since I can ne'er enjoy. Gifted with the high perception, I lack the low, enjoying power; damned, most subtly and most malignantly! damned in the midst of Paradise! Good night—good night! (waving his hand, he moves from the window.)

Dry heat on my forehead? Oh! There was a time when the sunrise inspired me just like the sunset calmed me. Not anymore. This beautiful light doesn’t do anything for me; all beauty is pain for me since I can never truly enjoy it. Blessed with deep insight, I lack the simple ability to enjoy; cursed, in the most subtle and evil way! Cursed right in the middle of Paradise! Good night—good night! (waving his hand, he moves away from the window.)

'Twas not so hard a task. I thought to find one stubborn, at the least; but my one cogged circle fits into all their various wheels, and they revolve. Or, if you will, like so many ant-hills of powder, they all stand before me; and I their match. Oh, hard! that to fire others, the match itself must needs be wasting! What I've dared, I've willed; and what I've willed, I'll do! They think me mad— Starbuck does; but I'm demoniac, I am madness maddened! That wild madness that's only calm to comprehend itself! The prophecy was that I should be dismembered; and—Aye! I lost this leg. I now prophesy that I will dismember my dismemberer. Now, then, be the prophet and the fulfiller one. That's more than ye, ye great gods, ever were. I laugh and hoot at ye, ye cricket-players, ye pugilists, ye deaf Burkes and blinded Bendigoes! I will not say as schoolboys do to bullies—Take some one of your own size; don't pommel me! No, ye've knocked me down, and I am up again; but ye have run and hidden. Come forth from behind your cotton bags! I have no long gun to reach ye. Come, Ahab's compliments to ye; come and see if ye can swerve me. Swerve me? ye cannot swerve me, else ye swerve yourselves! man has ye there. Swerve me? The path to my fixed purpose is laid with iron rails, whereon my soul is grooved to run. Over unsounded gorges, through the rifled hearts of mountains, under torrents' beds, unerringly I rush! Naught's an obstacle, naught's an angle to the iron way!

It wasn’t such a difficult task. I expected to find at least one stubborn person, but my one unique piece fits perfectly into all their different mechanisms, and they all turn. Or, if you prefer, like so many piles of powder, they all stand before me, and I can handle them. Oh, it's tough! To ignite others, the match itself must burn out! What I’ve dared, I’ve willed; and what I’ve willed, I’ll do! They think I’m crazy—Starbuck does; but I’m demonic, I’m madness overflowing! That wild madness that only seems calm when it understands itself! The prophecy said I would be dismembered; and—yes! I lost this leg. I now predict that I will dismember my dismemberer. Now, let the prophet and the one who fulfills the prophecy be one and the same. That’s more than you, you great gods, have ever been. I laugh and jeer at you, you cricket players, you fighters, you deaf fools and blinded champions! I won’t say what schoolboys say to bullies—“Pick on someone your own size; don’t beat me up!” No, you’ve knocked me down, and I’m up again; but you have run and hidden. Come out from behind your cotton bags! I don’t have a long gun to reach you. Come, Ahab sends his regards; come and see if you can throw me off course. Throw me off course? You can’t throw me off course, or you’d be throwing yourselves off course! Man has you there. Throw me off course? The path to my fixed purpose is laid with iron tracks, where my soul is set to run. Over deep gorges, through the hearts of mountains, under riverbeds, I rush forward without fail! Nothing is an obstacle, nothing is a curve on this iron path!

CHAPTER 38

Dusk

Twilight

By the Mainmast; Starbuck leaning against it.

By the Mainmast; Starbuck is leaning against it.

My soul is more than matched; she's over-manned; and by a madman! Insufferable sting, that sanity should ground arms on such a field! But he drilled deep down, and blasted all my reason out of me! I think I see his impious end; but feel that I must help him to it. Will I, nill I, the ineffable thing has tied me to him; tows me with a cable I have no knife to cut. Horrible old man! Who's over him, he cries;—aye, he would be a democrat to all above; look, how he lords it over all below! Oh! I plainly see my miserable office,— to obey, rebelling; and worse yet, to hate with touch of pity! For in his eyes I read some lurid woe would shrivel me up, had I it. Yet is there hope. Time and tide flow wide. The hated whale has the round watery world to swim in, as the small gold-fish has its glassy globe. His heaven-insulting purpose, God may wedge aside. I would up heart, were it not like lead. But my whole clock's run down; my heart the all-controlling weight, I have no key to lift again.

My soul is more than challenged; it’s overwhelmed; and by a madman! It’s unbearable that sanity should engage in conflict on such a battlefield! But he drilled deep, and blew all my reason out of me! I think I see his wicked end coming; yet I feel I must help him get there. Whether I want to or not, this indescribable thing has tied me to him; it tugs at me with a cable I can't cut. Horrible old man! Who’s over him, he shouts;—yes, he would be a democrat to everyone above; look how he dominates everyone below! Oh! I can clearly see my miserable role,— to obey, while rebelling; and worse, to hate while feeling pity! For in his eyes, I see some terrible sorrow that would consume me if I had it. Yet there is hope. Time and tide pass broadly. The despised whale has the vast ocean to swim in, just as the small goldfish has its little tank. His blasphemous ambition, God may yet thwart. I would gather my spirits, if it weren't like lifting a lead weight. But my whole clock has stopped; my heart, the controlling weight, has no key to wind it up again.

[A burst of revelry from the forecastle.]

[A burst of celebration from the front of the ship.]

Oh, God! to sail with such a heathen crew that have small touch of human mothers in them! Whelped somewhere by the sharkish sea. The white whale is their demigorgon. Hark! the infernal orgies! that revelry is forward! mark the unfaltering silence aft! Methinks it pictures life. Foremost through the sparkling sea shoots on the gay, embattled, bantering bow, but only to drag dark Ahab after it, where he broods within his sternward cabin, builded over the dead water of the wake, and further on, hunted by its wolfish gurglings. The long howl thrills me through! Peace! ye revellers, and set the watch! Oh, life! 'tis in an hour like this, with soul beat down and held to knowledge,— as wild, untutored things are forced to feed—Oh, life! 'tis now that I do feel the latent horror in thee! but 'tis not me! that horror's out of me, and with the soft feeling of the human in me, yet will I try to fight ye, ye grim, phantom futures! Stand by me, hold me, bind me, O ye blessed influences!

Oh, God! to sail with such a barbaric crew that have little trace of human kindness in them! Born somewhere by the ruthless sea. The white whale is their nightmare. Listen! the hellish celebrations! that party is underway! notice the unbroken silence at the back! I think it reflects life. Up front through the sparkling sea rushes the lively, combative bow, but only to pull dark Ahab behind it, where he broods in his cabin at the stern, built over the still water of the wake, and further on, pursued by its wolfish gurgles. The long howl sends a chill through me! Quiet! you party-goers, and keep watch! Oh, life! it’s in moments like this, with my spirit crushed and forced to understand—like wild, untamed things that have to feed—Oh, life! it’s now that I feel the hidden horror within you! but it’s not me! that horror is outside me, and with the gentle feeling of humanity within me, still I will try to fight you, you grim, ghostly futures! Stand by me, hold me, bind me, O you blessed influences!

CHAPTER 39

First Night Watch

First Night Shift

(Stubb solus, and mending a brace.)

(Stubb alone, adjusting a brace.)

Ha! ha! ha! ha! hem! clear my throat!—I've been thinking over it ever since, and that ha, ha's the final consequence. Why so? Because a laugh's the wisest, easiest answer to all that's queer; and come what will, one comfort's always left— that unfailing comfort is, it's all predestinated. I heard not all his talk with Starbuck; but to my poor eye Starbuck then looked something as I the other evening felt. Be sure the old Mogul has fixed him, too. I twigged it, knew it; had had the gift, might readily have prophesied it—for when I clapped my eye upon his skull I saw it. Well, Stubb, wise Stubb— that's my title—well, Stubb, what of it, Stubb? Here's a carcase. I know not all that may be coming, but be it what it will, I'll go to it laughing. Such a waggish leering as lurks in all your horribles! I feel funny. Fa, la! lirra, skirra! What's my juicy little pear at home doing now? Crying its eyes out?— Giving a party to the last arrived harpooneers, I dare say, gay as a frigate's pennant, and so am I—fa, la! lirra, skirra! Oh—

Ha! Ha! Ha! Ha! *ahem* clear my throat!—I've been thinking about it ever since, and that ha, ha's the final outcome. Why? Because a laugh is the smartest, easiest response to everything strange; and no matter what happens, there's always one comfort left— that reliable comfort is, it's all preordained. I didn't hear all his conversation with Starbuck, but to my untrained eye, Starbuck looked a bit like I felt the other evening. You can bet the old Mogul has set him up, too. I picked up on it, knew it; had the feeling, could have easily predicted it—because when I looked at his skull, I saw it. Well, Stubb, wise Stubb—that's my nickname—well, Stubb, what do you think, Stubb? Here's a dead body. I don't know everything that might be ahead, but whatever it is, I'll face it with a laugh. Such playful grins hide in all your horrors! I feel hilarious. Fa, la! Lirra, skirra! What's my sweet little pear at home doing now? Crying its eyes out?— Throwing a party for the latest harpooneers, I bet, joyful as a ship's flag, and so am I—fa, la! Lirra, skirra! Oh—

         We'll drink to-night with hearts as light,
           To love, as gay and fleeting
         As bubbles that swim, on the beaker's brim,
           And break on the lips while meeting.

We'll drink tonight with light hearts,
           To love, as cheerful and brief
         As bubbles that float on the edge of the glass,
           And burst on the lips when they touch.

A brave stave that—who calls? Mr. Starbuck? Aye, aye, sir—
(Aside) he's my superior, he has his too, if I'm not mistaken.—
Aye, aye, sir, just through with this job—coming.

A brave crew member that—who’s calling? Mr. Starbuck? Yes, yes, sir—
(Aside) he’s my boss, and he has his own duties, if I’m not wrong.—
Yes, yes, sir, just finishing up this task—coming.

CHAPTER 40

Midnight, Forecastle

Midnight, Front Deck

HARPOONEERS AND SAILORS

(Foresail rises and discovers the watch standing, lounging, leaning, and lying in various attitudes, all singing in chorus.)

(Foresail rises and finds the crew standing, lounging, leaning, and lying in different positions, all singing together.)

          Farewell and adieu to you, Spanish ladies!
          Farewell and adieu to you, ladies of Spain!
                   Our captain's commanded.—

Farewell and goodbye to you, Spanish ladies!
          Farewell and goodbye to you, ladies of Spain!
                   Our captain's ordered.—

1ST NANTUCKET SAILOR

Oh, boys, don't be sentimental. it's bad for the digestion!
Take a tonic, follow me! (Sings, and all follow)
           Our captain stood upon the deck,
             A spy-glass in his hand,
           A viewing of those gallant whales
             That blew at every strand.
           Oh, your tubs in your boats, my boys,
             And by your braces stand,
           And we'll have one of those fine whales,
             Hand, boys, over hand!
      So, be cheery, my lads! may your hearts never fail!
      While the bold harpooneer is striking the whale!

Oh, guys, don’t get all sentimental. It messes with your stomach!
Take a tonic, follow me! (Sings, and everyone follows)
Our captain stood on the deck,
A spyglass in his hand,
Looking at those brave whales
That spouted at every shore.
Oh, your barrels in your boats, guys,
And stand by your lines,
And we’ll catch one of those great whales,
Hand over hand, boys!
So, be cheerful, my friends! May your spirits never drop!
While the fearless harpooner is taking down the whale!

MATE'S VOICE FROM THE QUARTER-DECK

Eight bells there, forward!

Eight bells, move forward!

2ND NANTUCKET SAILOR

Avast the chorus! Eight bells there! d'ye hear, bell-boy? Strike the bell eight, thou Pip! thou blackling! and let me call the watch. I've the sort of mouth for that—the hogshead mouth. So, so, (thrusts his head down the scuttle,) Star-bo-l-e-e-n-s, a-h-o-y! Eight bells there below! Tumble up!

Avast the chorus! Eight bells there! Do you hear, bell-boy? Ring the bell at eight, you Pip! You little rascal! And let me call the watch. I've got just the mouth for that—the big mouth. So, so, (leans his head down the hatch,) Star-bo-l-e-e-n-s, ahoy! Eight bells down below! Come on up!

DUTCH SAILOR

Grand snoozing to-night, maty; fat night for that. I mark this in our old
Mogul's wine; it's quite as deadening to some as filliping to others.
We sing; they sleep—aye, lie down there, like ground-tier butts.
At 'em again! There, take this copper-pump, and hail 'em through it.
Tell 'em to avast dreaming of their lassies. Tell 'em it's
the resurrection; they must kiss their last, and come to judgment.
That's the way—that's it; thy throat ain't spoiled with
eating Amsterdam butter.

Big sleep tonight, mate; perfect night for it. I note this in our old
Mogul's wine; it's just as numbing to some as it is energizing to others.
We sing; they sleep—yeah, lie down there, like bags of potatoes.
Let's get back to it! Here, take this horn, and shout at them through it.
Tell them to stop dreaming about their girls. Tell them it's
the resurrection; they must kiss their last, and face the music.
That's the way—that's it; your throat isn't messed up from
eating Amsterdam butter.

FRENCH SAILOR

Hist, boys! let's have a jig or two before we ride to anchor in Blanket Bay. What say ye? There comes the other watch. Stand by all legs! Pip! little Pip! hurrah with your tambourine!

Hist, guys! Let’s have a dance or two before we drop anchor in Blanket Bay. What do you say? Here comes the other watch. Get ready, everyone! Come on, little Pip! Let’s go wild with your tambourine!

PIP (Sulky and sleepy)

PIP (Grumpy and drowsy)

Don't know where it is.

Unsure where it is.

FRENCH SAILOR

Beat thy belly, then, and wag thy ears. Jig it, men, I say;
merry's the word; hurrah! Damn me, won't you dance?
Form, now, Indian-file, and gallop into the double-shuffle?
Throw yourselves! Legs! legs!

Beat your belly, then, and wiggle your ears. Come on, guys, I’m saying; it’s a good time; hooray! Come on, won't you dance?
Line up now, single-file, and jump into the double-shuffle?
Let loose! Legs! Legs!

ICELAND SAILOR

I don't like your floor, maty; it's too springy to my taste. I'm used to ice-floors. I'm sorry to throw cold water on the subject; but excuse me.

I don't like your floor, buddy; it's too bouncy for my liking. I'm used to icy floors. I'm sorry to bring this up; but please forgive me.

MALTESE SAILOR

Me too; where's your girls? Who but a fool would take his left hand by his right, and say to himself, how d'ye do? Partners! I must have partners!

Me too; where are your girls? Who but a fool would grab his left hand with his right and ask himself, how are you? Partners! I need to have partners!

SICILIAN SAILOR

Aye; girls and a green!—then I'll hop with ye; yea, turn grasshopper!

Aye; girls and a drink!—then I'll join you; yeah, let's go!

LONG-ISLAND SAILOR

Well, well, ye sulkies, there's plenty more of us.
Hoe corn when you may, say I. All legs go to harvest soon.
Ah! here comes the music; now for it!

Well, well, you grumpy folks, there are plenty more of us.
I say, hoe the corn while you can. All legs head to harvest soon.
Ah! Here comes the music; let's do this!

AZORE SAILOR (Ascending, and pitching the tambourine up the scuttle.)

AZORE SAILOR (Throwing the tambourine up through the hatch.)

Here you are, Pip; and there's the windlass-bits; up you mount! Now, boys!

Here you go, Pip; and there are the windlass-bits; up you go! Now, guys!

(The half of them dance to the tambourine; some go below; some sleep or lie among the coils of rigging. Oaths a-plenty.)

(The half of them dance to the tambourine; some go below; some sleep or lie among the coils of rigging. Plenty of oaths.)

AZORE SAILOR (Dancing)

AZORE SAILOR (Dancing)

Go it, Pip! Bang it, bell-boy! Rig it, dig it, stig it, quig it, bell-boy! Make fire-flies; break the jinglers!

Go for it, Pip! Hit it, bellboy! Set it up, dig it, stig it, quig it, bellboy! Create fireflies; break the jinglers!

PIP

Jinglers, you say?—there goes another, dropped off; I pound it so.

Jinglers, you say?—there goes another one, dropped off; I hit it hard.

CHINA SAILOR

Rattle thy teeth, then, and pound away; make a pagoda of thyself.

Rattle your teeth, then, and go for it; turn yourself into a pagoda.

FRENCH SAILOR

Merry-mad! Hold up thy hoop, Pip, till I jump through it!
Split jibs! tear yourselves! Tashtego ( Quietly smoking.)

Merry-mad! Hold up your hoop, Pip, until I jump through it!
Split jibs! tear yourselves! Tashtego (Quietly smoking.)

That's a white man; he calls that fun: humph! I save my sweat.

That's a white guy; he thinks that's fun: humph! I save my energy.

OLD MANX SAILOR

I wonder whether those jolly lads bethink them of what they are dancing over. I'll dance over your grave, I will—that's the bitterest threat of your night-women, that beat head-winds round corners. O Christ! to think of the green navies and the green-skulled crews! Well, well; belike the whole world's a ball, as you scholars have it; and so 'tis right to make one ballroom of it. Dance on, lads, you're young; I was once.

I wonder if those cheerful guys think about what they’re dancing over. I’ll dance on your grave, I will—that’s the cruelest threat from your night women who are always causing trouble. Oh man! Just thinking about the forgotten ships and their ghostly crews! Well, well; maybe the whole world is a party, like you scholars say; and if that’s the case, then it makes sense to turn it into one big dance floor. Keep dancing, guys, you’re young; I was once too.

3D NANTUCKET SAILOR

Spell oh!—whew! this is worse than pulling after whales in a calm— give us a whiff, Tash.

Spell oh!—wow! this is worse than chasing after whales in a calm—give us a sniff, Tash.

(They cease dancing, and gather in clusters. Meantime the sky darkens— the wind rises.)

(They stop dancing and group together. Meanwhile, the sky gets darker—the wind picks up.)

LASCAR SAILOR

By Brahma! boys, it'll be douse sail soon. The sky-born, high-tide
Ganges turned to wind! Thou showest thy black brow, Seeva!

By Brahma! Guys, it's going to be stormy soon. The sky-born, high-tide
Ganges has turned to wind! You're showing your dark side, Shiva!

MALTESE SAILOR (Reclining and shaking his cap)

MALTESE SAILOR (Lying back and shaking his hat)

It's the waves—the snow's caps turn to jig it now. They'll shake their tassels soon. Now would all the waves were women, then I'd go drown, and chassee with them evermore! There's naught so sweet on earth—heaven may not match it!— as those swift glances of warm, wild bosoms in the dance, when the over-arboring arms hide such ripe, bursting grapes.

It's the waves—the snow’s caps are dancing now. They'll be shaking their tassels soon. If only all the waves were women, then I would drown and dance with them forever! There's nothing as sweet on earth—heaven can't compare!—as those quick looks from warm, wild bodies in the dance, when the overhead arms hide such ripe, bursting grapes.

SICILIAN SAILOR (Reclining)

Sicilian Sailor (Reclining)

Tell me not of it! Hark ye, lad—fleet interlacings of the limbs— lithe swayings—coyings—flutterings! lip! heart! hip! all graze: unceasing touch and go! not taste, observe ye, else come satiety. Eh, Pagan? (Nudging.)

Tell me not about it! Listen, kid—quick movements of the limbs—smooth sways—playfulness—flutters! lip! heart! hip! all graze: endless touch and go! not taste, you see, or else it becomes too much. Eh, Pagan? (Nudging.)

TAHITAN SAILOR (Reclining on a mat)

TAHITAN SAILOR (Lying on a mat)

Hail, holy nakedness of our dancing girls!—the Heeva-Heeva! Ah! low veiled, high palmed Tahiti! I still rest me on thy mat, but the soft soil has slid! I saw thee woven in the wood, my mat! green the first day I brought ye thence; now worn and wilted quite. Ah me!—not thou nor I can bear the change! How then, if so be transplanted to yon sky? Hear I the roaring streams from Pirohitee's peak of spears, when they leap down the crags and drown the villages?—The blast, the blast! Up, spine, and meet it! (Leaps to his feet.)

Hail, sacred nudity of our dancers!—the Heeva-Heeva! Ah! low veiled, high palmed Tahiti! I’m still resting on your mat, but the soft earth has shifted! I saw you woven in the woods, my mat! Green was the first day I brought you home; now you’re worn and wilted. Oh, neither you nor I can handle this change! What then, if we're uprooted to that sky? Do I hear the roaring streams from Pirohitee's peak of spears as they leap down the cliffs and flood the villages?—The wind, the wind! Get up, spine, and face it! (Leaps to his feet.)

PORTUGUESE SAILOR

How the sea rolls swashing 'gainst the side! Stand by for reefing, hearties! the winds are just crossing swords, pell-mell they'll go lunging presently.

How the sea crashes against the side! Get ready to reef, crew! The winds are just clashing, and soon they'll be coming at us wildly.

DANISH SAILOR

Crack, crack, old ship! so long as thou crackest, thou holdest! Well done! The mate there holds ye to it stiffly. He's no more afraid than the isle fort at Cattegat, put there to fight the Baltic with storm-lashed guns, on which the sea-salt cakes!

Crack, crack, old ship! As long as you’re cracking, you’re holding! Good job! The mate there is keeping you steady. He’s no more afraid than the fort at Cattegat, built to battle the Baltic with storm-battered cannons covered in sea salt!

4TH NANTUCKET SAILOR

He has his orders, mind ye that. I heard old Ahab tell him he must always kill a squall, something as they burst a waterspout with a pistol— fire your ship right into it!

He has his orders, remember that. I heard old Ahab tell him he must always confront a squall, like bursting a waterspout with a pistol—drive your ship straight into it!

ENGLISH SAILOR

Blood! but that old man's a grand old cove! We are the lads to hunt him up his whale!

Blood! That old man is quite a character! We're the guys to help him track down his whale!

ALL

Aye! aye!

Aye!

OLD MANX SAILOR

How the three pines shake! Pines are the hardest sort of tree to live when shifted to any other soil, and here there's none but the crew's cursed clay. Steady, helmsman! steady. This is the sort of weather when brave hearts snap ashore, and keeled hulls split at sea. Our captain has his birthmark; look yonder, boys, there's another in the sky lurid—like, ye see, all else pitch black.

How the three pines shake! Pines are the toughest type of tree to survive when moved to different soil, and here there's nothing but the crew's cursed clay. Steady, helmsman! Steady. This is the kind of weather that makes brave hearts break on land and cause hulls to splinter at sea. Our captain has his birthmark; look over there, guys, there's another one in the sky, bright—like, you see, everything else is pitch black.

DAGGOO

What of that? Who's afraid of black's afraid of me!
I'm quarried out of it!

What about that? Anyone who's afraid of black is afraid of me!
I’m shaped by it!

SPANISH SAILOR

(Aside.) He wants to bully, ah!—the old grudge makes me touchy (Advancing.) Aye, harpooneer, thy race is the undeniable dark side of mankind—devilish dark at that. No offence.

(Aside.) He wants to bully, huh!—the old grudge makes me sensitive (Advancing.) Yeah, harpooneer, your kind is the undeniable dark side of humanity—really dark, in fact. No offense.

DAGGOO (Grimly)

DAGGOO (Sternly)

None.

None.

ST. JAGO'S SAILOR

That Spaniard's mad or drunk. But that can't be, or else in his one case our old Mogul's fire-waters are somewhat long in working.

That Spaniard is either crazy or drunk. But that can't be, or else our old Mogul's strong drinks are taking a long time to kick in.

5TH NANTUCKET SAILOR

What's that I saw—lightning? Yes.

Did I just see lightning? Yes.

SPANISH SAILOR

No; Daggoo showing his teeth.

No; Daggoo bared his teeth.

DAGGOO (Springing)

DAGGOO (Jumping)

Swallow thine, mannikin! White skin, white liver!

Swallow it, little man! White skin, white liver!

SPANISH SAILOR (Meeting him)

SPANISH SAILOR (Meeting him)

Knife thee heartily! big frame, small spirit!

Knife you heartily! big frame, small spirit!

ALL

A row! a row! a row!

A row! a row! a row!

TASHTEGO (With a whiff)

TASHTEGO (Sniffing the air)

A row a'low, and a row aloft—Gods and men—both brawlers! Humph!

A row below and a row above—gods and humans—both fighters! Hmph!

BELFAST SAILOR

A row! arrah a row! The Virgin be blessed, a row!
Plunge in with ye!

A fight! Oh, a fight! Thank goodness, a fight!
Jump in with you!

ENGLISH SAILOR

Fair play! Snatch the Spaniard's knife! A ring, a ring!

Fair play! Grab the Spaniard's knife! A ring, a ring!

OLD MANX SAILOR

Ready formed. There! the ringed horizon. In that ring Cain struck Abel. Sweet work, right work! No? Why then, God, mad'st thou the ring?

Ready formed. There! The ringed horizon. In that ring, Cain struck Abel. Sweet work, right work! No? Then why, God, did you make the ring?

MATE'S VOICE FROM THE QUARTER-DECK

Hands by the halyards! in top-gallant sails! Stand by to reef topsails!

Hands on the halyards! in the top-gallant sails! Get ready to reef the topsails!

ALL

The squall! the squall! jump, my jollies! (They scatter.)

The storm! The storm! Hurry, my friends! (They scatter.)

PIP (Shrinking under the windlass)

PIP (Shrinking under the winch)

Jollies? Lord help such jollies! Crish, crash! there goes the jib-stay! Blang-whang! God! Duck lower, Pip, here comes the royal yard! It's worse than being in the whirled woods, the last day of the year! Who'd go climbing after chestnuts now? But there they go, all cursing, and here I don't. Fine prospects to 'em; they're on the road to heaven. Hold on hard! Jimmini, what a squall! But those chaps there are worse yet— they are your white squalls, they. White squalls? white whale, shirr! shirr! Here have I heard all their chat just now, and the white whale—shirr! shirr!—but spoken of once! and only this evening—it makes me jingle all over like my tambourine— that anaconda of an old man swore 'em in to hunt him! Oh! thou big white God aloft there somewhere in yon darkness, have mercy on this small black boy down here; preserve him from all men that have no bowels to feel fear!

Jollies? Oh, what a disaster! Crash! There goes the jib-stay! Bang! Wow! Duck lower, Pip, here comes the royal yard! It's worse than being in the wild woods on New Year's Eve! Who would go climbing for chestnuts now? But there they go, all cursing, while I’m just here. Great future for them; they're on their way to heaven. Hold on tight! Wow, what a storm! But those guys are even worse—they're your white squalls. White squalls? White whale, shirr! shirr! I just heard all their talk moments ago, and the white whale—shirr! shirr!—was only mentioned once! And just this evening—it makes me jingle all over like my tambourine— that old man swore them in to hunt him! Oh! you big white God up there somewhere in that darkness, have mercy on this small black boy down here; protect him from all men who have no compassion to feel fear!

CHAPTER 41

Moby Dick

Moby-Dick

I, Ishmael, was one of that crew; my shouts had gone up with the rest; my oath had been welded with theirs; and stronger I shouted, and more did I hammer and clinch my oath, because of the dread in my soul. A wild, mystical, sympathetical feeling was in me; Ahab's quenchless feud seemed mine. With greedy ears I learned the history of that murderous monster against whom I and all the others had taken our oaths of violence and revenge.

I, Ishmael, was part of that crew; my shouts had joined with the others; my oath was fused with theirs; and I shouted louder, and I hammered and reinforced my oath even more due to the fear in my soul. A wild, mystical, sympathetic feeling surged within me; Ahab's relentless grudge felt like my own. With eager ears, I absorbed the story of that deadly beast against whom I and all the others had sworn our vows of violence and revenge.

For some time past, though at intervals only, the unaccompanied, secluded White Whale had haunted those uncivilized seas mostly frequented by the Sperm Whale fishermen. But not all of them knew of his existence; only a few of them, comparatively, had knowingly seen him; while the number who as yet had actually and knowingly given battle to him, was small indeed. For, owing to the large number of whale-cruisers; the disorderly way they were sprinkled over the entire watery circumference, many of them adventurously pushing their quest along solitary latitudes, so as seldom or never for a whole twelvemonth or more on a stretch, to encounter a single news-telling sail of any sort; the inordinate length of each separate voyage; the irregularity of the times of sailing from home; all these, with other circumstances, direct and indirect, long obstructed the spread through the whole world-wide whaling-fleet of the special individualizing tidings concerning Moby Dick. It was hardly to be doubted, that several vessels reported to have encountered, at such or such a time, or on such or such a meridian, a Sperm Whale of uncommon magnitude and malignity, which whale, after doing great mischief to his assailants, has completely escaped them; to some minds it was not an unfair presumption, I say, that the whale in question must have been no other than Moby Dick. Yet as of late the Sperm Whale fishery had been marked by various and not unfrequent instances of great ferocity, cunning, and malice in the monster attacked; therefore it was, that those who by accident ignorantly gave battle to Moby Dick; such hunters, perhaps, for the most part, were content to ascribe the peculiar terror he bred, more, as it were, to the perils of the Sperm Whale fishery at large, than to the individual cause. In that way, mostly, the disastrous encounter between Ahab and the whale had hitherto been popularly regarded.

For a while now, although only occasionally, the lone, hidden White Whale had been haunting those untamed seas mainly visited by Sperm Whale fishermen. However, not all of them were aware of his existence; comparatively few had seen him knowingly, and the number who had actually fought him was very small. Due to the large number of whale-hunting ships and the random way they were spread across the ocean, many pushed their search into isolated waters, often not encountering any news-telling sail for an entire year or more. The lengthy durations of each voyage, the irregular schedules of leaving home, and various other factors—both direct and indirect—have long impeded the spread of specific information about Moby Dick throughout the global whaling fleet. It was hardly surprising that several ships reported having encountered, at a certain time or location, a Sperm Whale of unusual size and malevolence, which, after causing significant damage to its attackers, managed to escape completely. Some believed it was fair to assume that the whale in question must be Moby Dick. However, recently, the Sperm Whale fishery had seen numerous instances of extreme ferocity, cunning, and malice from the creatures being hunted. Because of this, those who accidentally clashed with Moby Dick were often inclined to attribute the unique fear he instilled more to the general dangers of Sperm Whale hunting than to him personally. This is mostly how the disastrous encounter between Ahab and the whale had been viewed by the public up to now.

And as for those who, previously hearing of the White Whale, by chance caught sight of him; in the beginning of the thing they had every one of them, almost, as boldly and fearlessly lowered for him, as for any other whale of that species. But at length, such calamities did ensue in these assaults— not restricted to sprained wrists and ankles, broken limbs, or devouring amputations—but fatal to the last degree of fatality; those repeated disastrous repulses, all accumulating and piling their terrors upon Moby Dick; those things had gone far to shake the fortitude of many brave hunters, to whom the story of the White Whale had eventually come.

And for those who had heard about the White Whale and happened to see him, at first, they all fearlessly went after him like they would any other whale of that type. But over time, the disasters that followed these attempts—ranging from sprained wrists and ankles to broken bones or even horrific injuries—became extremely deadly. These continuous, disastrous encounters only added to the terror surrounding Moby Dick, and they shook the courage of many brave hunters who eventually heard the tale of the White Whale.

Nor did wild rumors of all sorts fail to exaggerate, and still the more horrify the true histories of these deadly encounters. For not only do fabulous rumors naturally grow out of the very body of all surprising terrible events,—as the smitten tree gives birth to its fungi; but, in maritime life, far more than in that of terra firma, wild rumors abound, wherever there is any adequate reality for them to cling to. And as the sea surpasses the land in this matter, so the whale fishery surpasses every other sort of maritime life, in the wonderfulness and fearfulness of the rumors which sometimes circulate there. For not only are whalemen as a body unexempt from that ignorance and superstitiousness hereditary to all sailors; but of all sailors, they are by all odds the most directly brought into contact with whatever is appallingly astonishing in the sea; face to face they not only eye its greatest marvels, but, hand to jaw, give battle to them. Alone, in such remotest waters, that though you sailed a thousand miles, and passed a thousand shores, you would not come to any chiselled hearth-stone, or aught hospitable beneath that part of the sun; in such latitudes and longitudes, pursuing too such a calling as he does, the whaleman is wrapped by influences all tending to make his fancy pregnant with many a mighty birth. No wonder, then, that ever gathering volume from the mere transit over the wildest watery spaces, the outblown rumors of the White Whale did in the end incorporate with themselves all manner of morbid hints, and half-formed foetal suggestions of supernatural agencies, which eventually invested Moby Dick with new terrors unborrowed from anything that visibly appears. So that in many cases such a panic did he finally strike, that few who by those rumors, at least, had heard of the White Whale, few of those hunters were willing to encounter the perils of his jaw.

Nor did wild rumors of all kinds fail to exaggerate, and even more horrify the true stories of these deadly encounters. Fabulous rumors naturally grow out of surprising terrible events, much like how a damaged tree spawns fungi. In maritime life, even more than on land, wild rumors thrive wherever there’s enough reality for them to latch onto. And just as the sea exceeds the land in this regard, the whale fishery overshadows all other forms of maritime life in the extraordinary and frightening rumors that occasionally circulate there. Not only are whalemen as a group subject to the ignorance and superstitions common to all sailors, but out of all sailors, they are by far the most directly faced with the sea’s astonishing wonders; they not only witness its greatest marvels but also clash with them directly. Alone in such remote waters, even if you sailed a thousand miles and passed countless shores, you would not come across any welcoming hearth or anything hospitable in that part of the world. In those latitudes and longitudes, pursuing such a profession, the whaleman is influenced by many things that fuel his imagination. It’s no surprise then that the rumors of the White Whale grew in intensity from merely crossing the wildest seas, incorporating all kinds of morbid hints and half-formed suggestions of supernatural forces, ultimately giving Moby Dick new terrors unrelated to anything that physically exists. As a result, in many cases, he instilled such panic that few hunters who had heard of the White Whale through those rumors were willing to face the dangers of his bite.

But there were still other and more vital practical influences at work. Nor even at the present day has the original prestige of the Sperm Whale, as fearfully distinguished from all other species of the leviathan, died out of the minds of the whalemen as a body. There are those this day among them, who, though intelligent and courageous enough in offering battle to the Greenland or Right whale, would perhaps—either from professional inexperience, or incompetency, or timidity, decline a contest with the Sperm Whale; at any rate, there are plenty of whalemen, especially among those whaling nations not sailing under the American flag, who have never hostilely encountered the Sperm Whale, but whose sole knowledge of the leviathan is restricted to the ignoble monster primitively pursued in the North; seated on their hatches, these men will hearken with a childish fireside interest and awe, to the wild, strange tales of Southern whaling. Nor is the preeminent tremendousness of the great Sperm Whale anywhere more feelingly comprehended, than on board of those prows which stem him.

But there were still other, more important practical influences at play. Even today, the original prestige of the Sperm Whale, distinctly different from all other types of whales, hasn’t faded from the minds of whalers as a whole. There are still some among them who, while brave and knowledgeable enough to hunt the Greenland or Right whale, might—due to lack of experience, skill, or courage—hesitate to take on the Sperm Whale. In fact, many whalers, especially from countries not flying the American flag, have never faced the Sperm Whale in battle and only know the giant from stories of the less respectable monster they originally hunted in the North. Sitting on their hatches, these men listen with childlike wonder and awe to the wild, strange tales of whaling in the South. The overwhelming power of the great Sperm Whale is most deeply understood on the ships that confront him.

And as if the now tested reality of his might had in former legendary times thrown its shadow before it; we find some book naturalists— Olassen and Povelson—declaring the Sperm Whale not only to be a consternation to every other creature in the sea, but also to be so incredibly ferocious as continually to be athirst for human blood. Nor even down to so late a time as Cuvier's, were these or almost similar impressions effaced. For in his Natural History, the Baron himself affirms that at sight of the Sperm Whale, all fish (sharks included) are "struck with the most lively terrors," and "often in the precipitancy of their flight dash themselves against the rocks with such violence as to cause instantaneous death." And however the general experiences in the fishery may amend such reports as these; yet in their full terribleness, even to the bloodthirsty item of Povelson, the superstitious belief in them is, in some vicissitudes of their vocation, revived in the minds of the hunters.

And just like the legendary times of old, the reality of his power has cast a long shadow. We see some naturalists—Olassen and Povelson—claiming that the Sperm Whale not only terrifies every other creature in the sea but is also so incredibly fierce that it is always craving human blood. Even as late as Cuvier's time, these or similar beliefs had not faded. In his Natural History, the Baron himself states that at the sight of the Sperm Whale, all fish (including sharks) are "struck with the most vivid terror," and "often in their frantic escape, they dash themselves against the rocks with such force that it causes instant death." Although the general experiences in the fishery may challenge these reports, the frightening beliefs, even the bloodthirsty ideas of Povelson, are occasionally revived in the minds of the hunters during different phases of their work.

So that overawed by the rumors and portents concerning him, not a few of the fishermen recalled, in reference to Moby Dick, the earlier days of the Sperm Whale fishery, when it was oftentimes hard to induce long practised Right whalemen to embark in the perils of this new and daring warfare; such men protesting that although other leviathans might be hopefully pursued, yet to chase and point lances at such an apparition as the Sperm Whale was not for mortal man. That to attempt it, would be inevitably to be torn into a quick eternity. On this head, there are some remarkable documents that may be consulted.

So, feeling overwhelmed by the rumors and signs about him, several fishermen remembered the early days of the Sperm Whale fishery. Back then, it was often difficult to get experienced Right whalers to take on the dangers of this new and bold hunting. These men argued that while other giant sea creatures could be pursued with some hope, chasing and trying to stab a creature like the Sperm Whale was beyond what any human could handle. They believed that attempting it would only result in a swift and fatal end. There are some impressive documents on this subject that you can look at.

Nevertheless, some there were, who even in the face of these things were ready to give chase to Moby Dick; and a still greater number who, chancing only to hear of him distantly and vaguely, without the specific details of any certain calamity, and without superstitious accompaniments were sufficiently hardy not to flee from the battle if offered.

Nevertheless, there were some who, even in light of these things, were ready to go after Moby Dick; and an even larger number who, simply hearing about him in a distant and unclear way, without knowing the exact details of any particular disaster or being influenced by superstitions, were brave enough not to run away if a fight was presented.

One of the wild suggestions referred to, as at last coming to be linked with the White Whale in the minds of the superstitiously inclined, was the unearthly conceit that Moby Dick was ubiquitous; that he had actually been encountered in opposite latitudes at one and the same instant of time.

One of the wild ideas mentioned, which finally started to connect with the White Whale in the minds of those who were superstitious, was the strange notion that Moby Dick was everywhere; that he had actually been seen in opposite locations at the same time.

Nor, credulous as such minds must have been, was this conceit altogether without some faint show of superstitious probability. For as the secrets of the currents in the seas have never yet been divulged, even to the most erudite research; so the hidden ways of the Sperm Whale when beneath the surface remain, in great part, unaccountable to his pursuers; and from time to time have originated the most curious and contradictory speculations regarding them, especially concerning the mystic modes whereby, after sounding to a great depth, he transports himself with such vast swiftness to the most widely distant points.

Nor, as gullible as such minds must have been, was this idea completely without some slight hint of superstitious likelihood. Just as the secrets of ocean currents have never been fully revealed, even to the most knowledgeable researchers, the mysterious paths of the Sperm Whale when it’s below the surface remain largely unexplained to those who chase it. From time to time, this has given rise to the most curious and contradictory theories about them, especially regarding the mysterious ways in which, after diving to great depths, it moves with such incredible speed to the farthest distances.

It is a thing well known to both American and English whale-ships, and as well a thing placed upon authoritative record years ago by Scoresby, that some whales have been captured far north in the Pacific, in whose bodies have been found the barbs of harpoons darted in the Greenland seas. Nor is it to be gainsaid, that in some of these instances it has been declared that the interval of time between the two assaults could not have exceeded very many days. Hence, by inference, it has been believed by some whalemen, that the Nor' West Passage, so long a problem to man, was never a problem to the whale. So that here, in the real living experience of living men, the prodigies related in old times of the inland Strello mountain in Portugal (near whose top there was said to be a lake in which the wrecks of ships floated up to the surface); and that still more wonderful story of the Arethusa fountain near Syracuse (whose waters were believed to have come from the Holy Land by an underground passage); these fabulous narrations are almost fully equalled by the realities of the whalemen.

It is well known to both American and English whaling ships, and has been officially recorded years ago by Scoresby, that some whales have been caught far north in the Pacific, in whose bodies were found the barbs of harpoons fired in the Greenland seas. It is also indisputable that in some of these cases it has been stated that the time between the two hunts could not have been more than a few days. Therefore, some whalers believe that the Northwest Passage, which has long puzzled humanity, was never a mystery to the whale. So, in the real experiences of living men, the extraordinary stories from ancient times about the inland Strello mountain in Portugal (where it was said a lake at the top contained the wrecks of ships floating to the surface) and the even more incredible tale of the Arethusa fountain near Syracuse (whose waters were thought to come from the Holy Land via an underground passage); these amazing tales are almost matched by the actual experiences of whalers.

Forced into familiarity, then, with such prodigies as these; and knowing that after repeated, intrepid assaults, the White Whale had escaped alive; it cannot be much matter of surprise that some whalemen should go still further in their superstitions; declaring Moby Dick not only ubiquitous, but immortal (for immortality is but ubiquity in time); that though groves of spears should be planted in his flanks, he would still swim away unharmed; or if indeed he should ever be made to spout thick blood, such a sight would be but a ghastly deception; for again in unensanguined billows hundreds of leagues away, his unsullied jet would once more be seen.

Forced into familiarity with wonders like these, and knowing that after repeated, fearless attempts, the White Whale had escaped alive, it’s not surprising that some whalemen take their superstitions further, claiming Moby Dick is not only everywhere but also immortal (since immortality is just ubiquity over time); that even if spears were driven into his sides, he would still swim away unscathed; or if he were ever to spout thick blood, that sight would merely be a horrifying illusion; for once again, in bloodless waves hundreds of leagues away, his pure spout would be seen.

But even stripped of these supernatural surmisings, there was enough in the earthly make and incontestable character of the monster to strike the imagination with unwonted power. For, it was not so much his uncommon bulk that so much distinguished him from other sperm whales, but, as was elsewhere thrown out—a peculiar snow-white wrinkled forehead, and a high, pyramidical white hump. These were his prominent features; the tokens whereby, even in the limitless, uncharted seas, he revealed his identity, at a long distance, to those who knew him.

But even without these supernatural speculations, there was plenty about the monster's physical form and undeniable character to capture the imagination with unusual intensity. It wasn't just his unusual size that set him apart from other sperm whales; it was also his distinct snow-white wrinkled forehead and a tall, pyramid-shaped white hump. These were his most notable features—marks that allowed those who recognized him to identify him from afar, even in the vast, unmapped ocean.

The rest of his body was so streaked, and spotted, and marbled with the same shrouded hue, that, in the end, he had gained his distinctive appellation of the White Whale; a name, indeed, literally justified by his vivid aspect, when seen gliding at high noon through a dark blue sea, leaving a milky-way wake of creamy foam, all spangled with golden gleamings.

The rest of his body was so striped, spotted, and marbled with the same covered color that, in the end, he earned his unique name of the White Whale; a name that was truly justified by his striking appearance when seen gliding at noon through a deep blue sea, leaving a milky wake of creamy foam, all sparkling with golden highlights.

Nor was it his unwonted magnitude, nor his remarkable hue, nor yet his deformed lower jaw, that so much invested the whale with natural terror, as that unexampled, intelligent malignity which, according to specific accounts, he had over and over again evinced in his assaults. More than all, his treacherous retreats struck more of dismay than perhaps aught else. For, when swimming before his exulting pursuers, with every apparent symptom of alarm, he had several times been known to turn around suddenly, and, bearing down upon them, either stave their boats to splinters, or drive them back in consternation to their ship.

It wasn't his unusual size, his striking color, or his misshapen lower jaw that gave the whale its natural terror; it was the exceptional, intelligent malice he had repeatedly shown in his attacks, according to various reports. More than anything, his deceptive retreats caused more fear than anything else. When he would swim away from his eager pursuers, appearing frightened, he had been known to suddenly turn around and charge at them, either smashing their boats to pieces or sending them racing back to their ship in panic.

Already several fatalities had attended his chase. But though similar disasters, however little bruited ashore, were by no means unusual in the fishery; yet, in most instances, such seemed the White Whale's infernal aforethought of ferocity, that every dismembering or death that he caused, was not wholly regarded as having been inflicted by an unintelligent agent.

Already several deaths had occurred during his pursuit. Although similar disasters, however little publicized on land, were not uncommon in the fishing industry, in most cases, the White Whale's seemingly malicious intent made it so that every injury or fatality he caused was not entirely seen as being inflicted by a mindless creature.

Judge, then, to what pitches of inflamed, distracted fury the minds of his more desperate hunters were impelled, when amid the chips of chewed boats, and the sinking limbs of torn comrades, they swam out of the white curds of the whale's direful wrath into the serene, exasperating sunlight, that smiled on, as if at a birth or a bridal.

Judge the extent of overwhelming, chaotic anger that drove his more desperate hunters when, amidst the debris of chewed boats and the sinking bodies of their wounded comrades, they emerged from the white froth of the whale's terrifying fury into the calm, frustrating sunlight that beamed down as if celebrating a birth or a wedding.

His three boats stove around him, and oars and men both whirling in the eddies; one captain, seizing the line-knife from his broken prow, had dashed at the whale, as an Arkansas duellist at his foe, blindly seeking with a six inch blade to reach the fathom-deep life of the whale. That captain was Ahab. And then it was, that suddenly sweeping his sickle-shaped lower jaw beneath him, Moby Dick had reaped away Ahab's leg, as a mower a blade of grass in the field. No turbaned Turk, no hired Venetian or Malay, could have smote him with more seeming malice. Small reason was there to doubt, then, that ever since that almost fatal encounter, Ahab had cherished a wild vindictiveness against the whale, all the more fell for that in his frantic morbidness he at last came to identify with him, not only all his bodily woes, but all his intellectual and spiritual exasperations. The White Whale swam before him as the monomaniac incarnation of all those malicious agencies which some deep men feel eating in them, till they are left living on with half a heart and half a lung. That intangible malignity which has been from the beginning; to whose dominion even the modern Christians ascribe one-half of the worlds; which the ancient Ophites of the east reverenced in their statue devil;— Ahab did not fall down and worship it like them; but deliriously transferring its idea to the abhorred white whale, he pitted himself, all mutilated, against it. All that most maddens and torments; all that stirs up the lees of things; all truth with malice in it; all that cracks the sinews and cakes the brain; all the subtle demonisms of life and thought; all evil, to crazy Ahab, were visibly personified, and made practically assailable in Moby Dick. He piled upon the whale's white hump the sum of all the general rage and hate felt by his whole race from Adam down; and then, as if his chest had been a mortar, he burst his hot heart's shell upon it.

His three boats swirled around him, and oars and men were both spinning in the currents; one captain, grabbing the line-knife from his damaged bow, charged at the whale like an Arkansas duelist going after his opponent, desperately trying to reach the whale’s deep, hidden life with a six-inch blade. That captain was Ahab. And then, suddenly sweeping his sickle-shaped lower jaw beneath him, Moby Dick took Ahab's leg, just like a mower cutting a blade of grass in the field. No turbaned Turk, no hired Venetian or Malay, could have struck him with more apparent malice. There was little reason to doubt that ever since that nearly fatal encounter, Ahab had harbored a fierce desire for revenge against the whale, intensified by his desperation as he began to identify with it, internalizing not just all his physical pain, but all his mental and spiritual frustrations as well. The White Whale loomed before him as a singular embodiment of all the cruel forces that some deep thinkers feel consuming them, leaving them alive with half a heart and half a lung. That intangible evil which has existed since the beginning; to whose reign even modern Christians attribute one-half of the world's troubles; which the ancient Ophites of the east worshipped in their devil statue— Ahab did not kneel and worship it like they did; instead, he crazily projected that idea onto the despised white whale, positioning himself, all wounded, against it. Everything that drives people mad and torments them; everything that brings forth the dregs of experiences; all truth laced with malice; everything that strains the nerves and clouds the mind; all the subtle demons of life and thought; all evil, to the deranged Ahab, were visibly personified and made tangible in Moby Dick. He loaded upon the whale's white hump the collective rage and hatred felt by his entire race since Adam; and then, as if his chest were a mortar, he unleashed the fury of his burning heart upon it.

It is not probable that this monomania in him took its instant rise at the precise time of his bodily dismemberment. Then, in darting at the monster, knife in hand, he had but given loose to a sudden, passionate, corporal animosity; and when he received the stroke that tore him, he probably but felt the agonizing bodily laceration, but nothing more. Yet, when by this collision forced to turn towards home, and for long months of days and weeks, Ahab and anguish lay stretched together in one hammock, rounding in mid winter that dreary, howling Patagonian Cape; then it was, that his torn body and gashed soul bled into one another; and so interfusing, made him mad. That it was only then, on the homeward voyage, after the encounter, that the final monomania seized him, seems all but certain from the fact that, at intervals during the passage, he was a raving lunatic; and, though unlimbed of a leg, yet such vital strength yet lurked in his Egyptian chest, and was moreover intensified by his delirium, that his mates were forced to lace him fast, even there, as he sailed, raving in his hammock. In a strait-jacket, he swung to the mad rockings of the gales. And, when running into more sufferable latitudes, the ship, with mild stun'sails spread, floated across the tranquil tropics, and, to all appearances, the old man's delirium seemed left behind him with the Cape Horn swells, and he came forth from his dark den into the blessed light and air; even then, when he bore that firm, collected front, however pale, and issued his calm orders once again; and his mates thanked God the direful madness was now gone; even then, Ahab, in his hidden self, raved on. Human madness is oftentimes a cunning and most feline thing. When you think it fled, it may have but become transfigured into some still subtler form. Ahab's full lunacy subsided not, but deepeningly contracted; like the unabated Hudson, when that noble Northman flows narrowly, but unfathomably through the Highland gorge. But, as in his narrow-flowing monomania, not one jot of Ahab's broad madness had been left behind; so in that broad madness, not one jot of his great natural intellect had perished. That before living agent, now became the living instrument. If such a furious trope may stand, his special lunacy stormed his general sanity, and carried it, and turned all its concentred cannon upon its own mad mark; so that far from having lost his strength, Ahab, to that one end, did now possess a thousand fold more potency than ever he had sanely brought to bear upon any one reasonable object.

It's unlikely that this obsession in him started right when he lost his leg. At that moment, as he rushed at the monster with a knife, he was simply giving in to a burst of intense, physical rage; when he was struck and torn, he probably felt just the horrific physical pain, nothing beyond that. However, after being forced to head home from that collision, and spending long months together in the same small space, Ahab and his suffering intertwined during those bleak, howling days at the Patagonian Cape; it was then that his damaged body and wounded soul merged together, driving him mad. It seems almost certain that it was only later, on the way back after the encounter, that his full obsession took hold, since at times during the journey, he was a raving lunatic; and even though he was missing a leg, a vital strength still resided in his strong chest, intensified by his delirium, forcing his crew to tie him down as he raved in his hammock. In a straitjacket, he swung to the wild rocking of the storms. When they reached calmer waters, the ship, with its gentle sails up, glided through the peaceful tropics, and to all appearances, the old man’s madness seemed to have been left behind with the swells of Cape Horn; he emerged from his dark den into the bright light and fresh air; even then, when he appeared composed and issued calm orders, his crew thanked God the dreadful madness was gone; yet deep down, Ahab was still raving. Human madness is often clever and cat-like. Just when you think it's gone, it may have transformed into some subtler form. Ahab's full madness didn't disappear; it shrank and deepened, like the unyielding Hudson River flowing narrowly yet unfathomably through a Highland gorge. However, in this narrow obsession, none of Ahab's broader madness was left behind; similarly, in that broad madness, none of his natural intelligence had vanished. That living agent now became the living tool. If such an intense metaphor may apply, his specific madness stormed through his overall sanity, seizing it, and aimed all its concentrated power at its own crazy target; far from losing his strength, Ahab now had an exponentially greater power focused on that one purpose than he ever had applied reasonably before.

This is much; yet Ahab's larger, darker, deeper part remains unhinted. But vain to popularize profundities, and all truth is profound. Winding far down from within the very heart of this spiked Hotel de Cluny where we here stand—however grand and wonderful, now quit it;— and take your way, ye nobler, sadder souls, to those vast Roman halls of Thermes; where far beneath the fantastic towers of man's upper earth, his root of grandeur, his whole awful essence sits in bearded state; an antique buried beneath antiquities, and throned on torsoes! So with a broken throne, the great gods mock that captive king; so like a Caryatid, he patient sits, upholding on his frozen brow the piled entablatures of ages. Wind ye down there, ye prouder, sadder souls! question that proud, sad king! A family likeness! aye, he did beget ye, ye young exiled royalties; and from your grim sire only will the old State-secret come.

This is a lot; yet Ahab's bigger, darker, deeper side is still unmentioned. But it's pointless to try to break down deep ideas, and all truth is deep. Going far down from within the very core of this spiked Hotel de Cluny where we stand—no matter how grand and amazing it is, leave it behind;— and head to those vast Roman halls of the Thermes; where far beneath the fantastic towers of man's upper world, his source of greatness, his entire terrifying essence sits in a bearded state; an ancient figure buried beneath more antiquities, and seated on torsos! So with a broken throne, the great gods mock that captive king; similarly, like a Caryatid, he patiently sits, supporting on his frozen brow the stacked entablatures of ages. Go down there, you prouder, sadder souls! Question that proud, sad king! There’s a family resemblance! Yes, he did beget you, you young exiled royalties; and from your grim father, only the old State secret will be revealed.

Now, in his heart, Ahab had some glimpse of this, namely; all my means are sane, my motive and my object mad. Yet without power to kill, or change, or shun the fact; he likewise knew that to mankind he did now long dissemble; in some sort, did still. But that thing of his dissembling was only subject to his perceptibility, not to his will determinate. Nevertheless, so well did he succeed in that dissembling, that when with ivory leg he stepped ashore at last, no Nantucketer thought him otherwise than but naturally grieved, and that to the quick, with the terrible casualty which had overtaken him.

Now, deep down, Ahab realized this: all my methods are rational, but my motives and goals are insane. Yet, he felt powerless to kill, change, or escape this truth; he also knew that he no longer hid this from humanity, in some way, he still did. But his act of hiding was more about his perception than his will. Still, he was so good at pretending that when he finally stepped ashore with his ivory leg, no one from Nantucket thought anything other than that he was genuinely grieving, deeply affected by the terrible ordeal he had faced.

The report of his undeniable delirium at sea was likewise popularly ascribed to a kindred cause. And so too, all the added moodiness which always afterwards, to the very day of sailing in the Pequod on the present voyage, sat brooding on his brow. Nor is it so very unlikely, that far from distrusting his fitness for another whaling voyage, on account of such dark symptoms, the calculating people of that prudent isle were inclined to harbor the conceit, that for those very reasons he was all the better qualified and set on edge, for a pursuit so full of rage and wildness as the bloody hunt of whales. Gnawed within and scorched without, with the infixed, unrelenting fangs of some incurable idea; such an one, could he be found, would seem the very man to dart his iron and lift his lance against the most appalling of all brutes. Or, if for any reason thought to be corporeally incapacitated for that, yet such an one would seem superlatively competent to cheer and howl on his underlings to the attack. But be all this as it may, certain it is, that with the mad secret of his unabated rage bolted up and keyed in him, Ahab had purposely sailed upon the present voyage with the one only and all-engrossing object of hunting the White Whale. Had any one of his old acquaintances on shore but half dreamed of what was lurking in him then, how soon would their aghast and righteous souls have wrenched the ship from such a fiendish man! They were bent on profitable cruises, the profit to be counted down in dollars from the mint. He was intent on an audacious, immitigable, and supernatural revenge.

The report of his undeniable craziness at sea was also commonly attributed to a similar cause. Likewise, all the added moodiness that hung over him, right up to the day of sailing on the Pequod for this trip, was clear on his face. It's not so unlikely that, instead of doubting his ability to take another whaling voyage because of these dark signs, the practical folks from that cautious island might have thought that, for those very reasons, he was even better suited and motivated for a pursuit as full of fury and wildness as the bloody hunt for whales. Consumed inside and burned on the outside by the relentless grip of some unshakeable idea; someone like that, if found, would seem like the perfect man to throw his harpoon and lift his lance against the most terrifying of all beasts. Or, even if thought to be physically unfit for that, such a person would still seem extremely capable of rallying and encouraging his crew into the attack. But regardless of all this, it's certain that with the wild secret of his unrelenting anger locked away inside him, Ahab had set sail on this voyage with the singular and all-consuming goal of hunting the White Whale. If any of his old friends back on shore had even slightly imagined what was stirring inside him, they would have quickly yanked the ship away from such a dangerous man! They were focused on profitable voyages, profits that could be counted in dollars from the mint. He was fixated on a bold, unyielding, and supernatural revenge.

Here, then, was this grey-headed, ungodly old man, chasing with curses a Job's whale round the world, at the head of a crew, too, chiefly made up of mongrel renegades, and castaways, and cannibals—morally enfeebled also, by the incompetence of mere unaided virtue or right-mindedness in Starbuck, the invulnerable jollity of indifference and recklessness in Stubb, and the pervading mediocrity in Flask. Such a crew, so officered, seemed specially picked and packed by some infernal fatality to help him to his monomaniac revenge. How it was that they so aboundingly responded to the old man's ire—by what evil magic their souls were possessed, that at times his hate seemed almost theirs; the White Whale as much their insufferable foe as his; how all this came to be—what the White Whale was to them, or how to their unconscious understandings, also, in some dim, unsuspected way, he might have seemed the gliding great demon of the seas of life,— all this to explain, would be to dive deeper than Ishmael can go. The subterranean miner that works in us all, how can one tell whither leads his shaft by the ever shifting, muffled sound of his pick? Who does not feel the irresistible arm drag? What skiff in tow of a seventy-four can stand still? For one, I gave myself up to the abandonment of the time and the place; but while yet all a-rush to encounter the whale, could see naught in that brute but the deadliest ill.

Here was this old man with grey hair, cursing as he chased a whale called Moby Dick around the world, leading a crew made up mostly of misfits, outcasts, and even cannibals—morally weakened too, by the ineffectiveness of Starbuck's pure intentions, Stubb's carefree indifference, and Flask's overall mediocrity. This crew, under such leadership, felt like they were purposefully chosen by some sinister fate to aid him in his obsessive quest for revenge. They responded so readily to the old man's anger—what twisted magic possessed their souls, making it seem at times like his hatred was also theirs; the White Whale was just as much their relentless enemy as it was his. How all of this came to be—what the White Whale meant to them, or how, in some unrecognized way, he might have appeared as the great demon of life's seas—all of that is beyond Ishmael's understanding. The deep-seated instincts within us all, how can one ever know where they lead, given the constant, muffled sounds of our struggles? Who doesn't feel that unstoppable pull? What small boat can stay still when tied to a massive ship? As for me, I surrendered to the chaos of the moment; yet, even as I rushed to face the whale, I saw nothing in that creature but pure malice.

CHAPTER 42

The Whiteness of The Whale

The White Whale

What the white whale was to Ahab, has been hinted; what, at times, he was to me, as yet remains unsaid.

What the white whale was to Ahab has been suggested; what he sometimes was to me still hasn't been mentioned.

Aside from those more obvious considerations touching Moby Dick, which could not but occasionally awaken in any man's soul some alarm, there was another thought, or rather vague, nameless horror concerning him, which at times by its intensity completely overpowered all the rest; and yet so mystical and well nigh ineffable was it, that I almost despair of putting it in a comprehensible form. It was the whiteness of the whale that above all things appalled me. But how can I hope to explain myself here; and yet, in some dim, random way, explain myself I must, else all these chapters might be naught.

Aside from the more obvious thoughts about Moby Dick that would inevitably cause alarm in any man, there was another feeling, or rather a vague, nameless dread concerning him, that at times completely overwhelmed everything else; and yet it was so mysterious and nearly impossible to express that I almost give up trying to put it into understandable words. It was the whiteness of the whale that scared me more than anything else. But how can I hope to make that clear here; and yet, in some unclear, random way, I need to try to explain myself, or else all these chapters might mean nothing.

Though in many natural objects, whiteness refiningly enhances beauty, as if imparting some special virtue of its own, as in marbles, japonicas, and pearls; and though various nations have in some way recognised a certain royal preeminence in this hue; even the barbaric, grand old kings of Pegu placing the title "Lord of the White Elephants" above all their other magniloquent ascriptions of dominion; and the modern kings of Siam unfurling the same snow-white quadruped in the royal standard; and the Hanoverian flag bearing the one figure of a snow-white charger; and the great Austrian Empire, Caesarian, heir to overlording Rome, having for the imperial color the same imperial hue; and though this pre-eminence in it applies to the human race itself, giving the white man ideal mastership over every dusky tribe; and though, besides, all this, whiteness has been even made significant of gladness, for among the Romans a white stone marked a joyful day; and though in other mortal sympathies and symbolizings, this same hue is made the emblem of many touching, noble things— the innocence of brides, the benignity of age; though among the Red Men of America the giving of the white belt of wampum was the deepest pledge of honor; though in many climes, whiteness typifies the majesty of Justice in the ermine of the Judge, and contributes to the daily state of kings and queens drawn by milk-white steeds; though even in the higher mysteries of the most august religions it has been made the symbol of the divine spotlessness and power; by the Persian fire worshippers, the white forked flame being held the holiest on the altar; and in the Greek mythologies, Great Jove himself being made incarnate in a snow-white bull; and though to the noble Iroquois, the midwinter sacrifice of the sacred White Dog was by far the holiest festival of their theology, that spotless, faithful creature being held the purest envoy they could send to the Great Spirit with the annual tidings of their own fidelity; and though directly from the Latin word for white, all Christian priests derive the name of one part of their sacred vesture, the alb or tunic, worn beneath the cassock; and though among the holy pomps of the Romish faith, white is specially employed in the celebration of the Passion of our Lord; though in the Vision of St. John, white robes are given to the redeemed, and the four-and-twenty elders stand clothed in white before the great-white throne, and the Holy One that sitteth there white like wool; yet for all these accumulated associations, with whatever is sweet, and honorable, and sublime, there yet lurks an elusive something in the innermost idea of this hue, which strikes more of panic to the soul than that redness which affrights in blood.

Though in many natural objects, whiteness beautifully enhances beauty, as if giving off a special quality of its own, like in marbles, japonicas, and pearls; and though various nations have recognized a certain royal superiority in this color; even the ancient, powerful kings of Pegu putting the title "Lord of the White Elephants" above all their other grand titles; and the modern kings of Siam displaying the same snow-white elephant on their royal flag; and the Hanoverian flag featuring a single image of a snow-white horse; and the great Austrian Empire, claiming lineage from Rome, having the same imperial color; and though this superiority extends to humanity itself, granting the white man an ideal dominance over every darker-skinned group; and although, in addition to all this, whiteness has come to symbolize happiness, as among the Romans where a white stone marked a joyful occasion; and although in various human connections and symbolisms, this color represents many meaningful and noble things— the innocence of brides, the kindness of age; although among Native Americans, giving the white belt of wampum was a profound pledge of honor; although in many places, whiteness symbolizes the authority of Justice in the judge's ermine, and contributes to the daily appearance of kings and queens riding milk-white horses; though even in the most sacred aspects of the most revered religions, it has been used as a symbol of divine purity and power; by Persian fire worshipers, for whom the white forked flame is considered the holiest at the altar; and in Greek mythology, where Zeus himself is embodied in a snow-white bull; and although to the noble Iroquois, the midwinter sacrifice of the sacred White Dog was their holiest festival, that pure and loyal creature considered the most faithful messenger they could send to the Great Spirit each year with news of their own loyalty; and although directly from the Latin word for white, all Christian priests derive the name for one type of their sacred clothing, the alb or tunic, worn beneath the cassock; and although among the sacred ceremonies of the Roman Catholic faith, white is particularly used during the celebration of the Passion of our Lord; and though in the Vision of St. John, white robes are given to the redeemed, and the twenty-four elders stand dressed in white before the great white throne, and the Holy One sitting there is white like wool; yet despite all these accumulated associations with everything sweet, honorable, and sublime, there remains an elusive quality in the deepest meaning of this color that provokes more panic in the soul than the fear that comes from blood's redness.

This elusive quality it is, which causes the thought of whiteness, when divorced from more kindly associations, and coupled with any object terrible in itself, to heighten that terror to the furthest bounds. Witness the white bear of the poles, and the white shark of the tropics; what but their smooth, flaky whiteness makes them the transcendent horrors they are? That ghastly whiteness it is which imparts such an abhorrent mildness, even more loathsome than terrific, to the dumb gloating of their aspect. So that not the fierce-fanged tiger in his heraldic coat can so stagger courage as the white-shrouded bear or shark.*

This elusive quality makes the idea of whiteness, when separated from more pleasant associations and combined with any inherently terrifying object, amplify that terror to the highest degree. Just look at the white bear in the polar regions and the white shark in tropical waters; what else but their smooth, shiny whiteness makes them such overwhelming horrors? That ghastly whiteness gives off a repulsive mildness, even more disgusting than frightening, to their blank, triumphant appearance. Thus, not even the fierce-fanged tiger in his colorful coat can shake one’s courage like the white-covered bear or shark.

*With reference to the Polar bear, it may possibly be urged by him who would fain go still deeper into this matter, that it is not the whiteness, separately regarded, which heightens the intolerable hideousness of that brute; for, analysed, that heightened hideousness, it might be said, only rises from the circumstance, that the irresponsible ferociousness of the creature stands invested in the fleece of celestial innocence and love; and hence, by bringing together two such opposite emotions in our minds, the Polar bear frightens us with so unnatural a contrast. But even assuming all this to be true; yet, were it not for the whiteness, you would not have that intensified terror.

*Regarding the Polar bear, someone digging deeper into this topic might argue that it's not just the whiteness alone that amplifies the unbearable ugliness of this animal. Analyzing that heightened ugliness, one could say it primarily comes from the fact that the creature's wild ferocity is wrapped in a coat of innocent and loving whiteness. This combination of such opposing feelings in our minds makes the Polar bear frighten us with such an unnatural contrast. However, even if we accept all of this as true, without the whiteness, you wouldn't experience that heightened terror.*

As for the white shark, the white gliding ghostliness of repose in that creature, when beheld in his ordinary moods, strangely tallies with the same quality in the Polar quadruped. This peculiarity is most vividly hit by the French in the name they bestow upon that fish. The Romish mass for the dead begins with "Requiem eternam" (eternal rest), whence Requiem denominating the mass itself, and any other funeral music. Now, in allusion to the white, silent stillness of death in this shark, and the mild deadliness of his habits, the French call him Requin.

As for the white shark, the ghostly, gliding stillness of that creature, when seen in its usual state, oddly matches the same quality in the polar bear. This unique characteristic is best captured by the French in the name they give that fish. The Roman Catholic mass for the dead starts with “Requiem eternam” (eternal rest), from which "Requiem" derives to refer to the mass itself and other funeral music. Now, relating to the white, silent stillness of death in this shark, and the gentle lethality of its behavior, the French call it Requin.

Bethink thee of the albatross, whence come those clouds of spiritual wonderment and pale dread, in which that white phantom sails in all imaginations? Not Coleridge first threw that spell; but God's great, unflattering laureate, Nature.*

Bethink thee of the albatross, whence come those clouds of spiritual wonderment and pale dread, in which that white phantom sails in all imaginations? Not Coleridge first threw that spell; but God's great, unflattering laureate, Nature.*

*I remember the first albatross I ever saw. It was during a prolonged gale, in waters hard upon the Antarctic seas. From my forenoon watch below, I ascended to the overclouded deck; and there, dashed upon the main hatches, I saw a regal, feathery thing of unspotted whiteness, and with a hooked, Roman bill sublime. At intervals, it arched forth its vast archangel wings, as if to embrace some holy ark. Wondrous flutterings and throbbings shook it. Though bodily unharmed, it uttered cries, as some king's ghost in supernatural distress. Through its inexpressible, strange eyes, methought I peeped to secrets which took hold of God. As Abraham before the angels, I bowed myself; the white thing was so white, its wings so wide, and in those for ever exiled waters, I had lost the miserable warping memories of traditions and of towns. Long I gazed at that prodigy of plumage. I cannot tell, can only hint, the things that darted through me then. But at last I awoke; and turning, asked a sailor what bird was this. A goney, he replied. Goney! never had heard that name before; is it conceivable that this glorious thing is utterly unknown to men ashore! never! But some time after, I learned that goney was some seaman's name for albatross. So that by no possibility could Coleridge's wild Rhyme have had aught to do with those mystical impressions which were mine, when I saw that bird upon our deck. For neither had I then read the Rhyme, nor knew the bird to be an albatross. Yet, in saying this, I do but indirectly burnish a little brighter the noble merit of the poem and the poet.

*I remember the first albatross I ever saw. It was during a long storm, in the waters close to the Antarctic seas. After my morning watch below deck, I came up to the cloudy deck; and there, sprawled on the main hatches, I saw a magnificent, feathery creature of pure white, with a hooked, Roman beak that was sublime. Occasionally, it spread its enormous angelic wings, as if to embrace some sacred vessel. Amazing fluttering and pulsating shook it. Though it was physically unharmed, it let out cries like a king's ghost in supernatural distress. Through its indescribable, strange eyes, I felt like I was peering into secrets that touched the divine. Like Abraham before the angels, I bowed down; the white creature was so white, its wings so wide, and in those eternally remote waters, I had lost the painful, warped memories of traditions and towns. I gazed at that stunning display of plumage for a long time. I can't explain, only hint at, the things that raced through my mind at that moment. But eventually, I snapped back to reality; and turning, I asked a sailor what kind of bird this was. A goney, he replied. Goney! I had never heard that name before; could it really be that this glorious thing was completely unknown to people on land? No way! But some time later, I found out that goney was just a sailor’s term for albatross. So, it couldn't be that Coleridge's wild Rhyme had anything to do with the mystical feelings I had when I saw that bird on our deck. Because I hadn’t read the Rhyme yet, nor did I know the bird was an albatross. Yet, by saying this, I only indirectly highlight a bit more the noble value of the poem and the poet.*

I assert, then, that in the wondrous bodily whiteness of the bird chiefly lurks the secret of the spell; a truth the more evinced in this, that by a solecism of terms there are birds called grey albatrosses; and these I have frequently seen, but never with such emotions as when I beheld the Antarctic fowl.

I assert that the incredible whiteness of the bird holds the key to the enchantment; this is proven even more by the fact that, oddly enough, there are birds referred to as grey albatrosses. I've seen these before, but never with the same feelings as when I saw the Antarctic bird.

But how had the mystic thing been caught? Whisper it not, and I will tell; with a treacherous hook and line, as the fowl floated on the sea. At last the Captain made a postman of it; tying a lettered, leathern tally round its neck, with the ship's time and place; and then letting it escape. But I doubt not, that leathern tally, meant for man, was taken off in Heaven, when the white fowl flew to join the wing-folding, the invoking, and adoring cherubim!

But how was the mysterious creature caught? Don't share this secret, and I'll reveal it: with a sneaky hook and line, while the bird floated on the ocean. Eventually, the Captain turned it into a messenger; he tied a labeled leather tag around its neck with the ship's details and then let it go. But I believe that leather tag, meant for humans, was removed in Heaven when the white bird flew to join the cherubim who were folding their wings, invoking, and worshiping!

Most famous in our Western annals and Indian traditions is that of the White Steed of the Prairies; a magnificent milk-white charger, large-eyed, small-headed, bluff-chested, and with the dignity of a thousand monarchs in his lofty, overscorning carriage. He was the elected Xerxes of vast herds of wild horses, whose pastures in those days were only fenced by the Rocky Mountains and the Alleghanies. At their flaming head he westward trooped it like that chosen star which every evening leads on the hosts of light. The flashing cascade of his mane, the curving comet of his tail, invested him with housings more resplendent than gold and silver-beaters could have furnished him. A most imperial and archangelical apparition of that unfallen, western world, which to the eyes of the old trappers and hunters revived the glories of those primeval times when Adam walked majestic as a god, bluff-bowed and fearless as this mighty steed. Whether marching amid his aides and marshals in the van of countless cohorts that endlessly streamed it over the plains, like an Ohio; or whether with his circumambient subjects browsing all around at the horizon, the White Steed gallopingly reviewed them with warm nostrils reddening through his cool milkiness; in whatever aspect he presented himself, always to the bravest Indians he was the object of trembling reverence and awe. Nor can it be questioned from what stands on legendary record of this noble horse, that it was his spiritual whiteness chiefly, which so clothed him with divineness; and that this divineness had that in it which, though commanding worship, at the same time enforced a certain nameless terror.

Most well-known in our Western history and Indian traditions is the White Steed of the Prairies—a stunning, pure white horse, with large eyes, a small head, a strong chest, and the presence of a thousand kings in his proud, elevated stance. He was the chosen leader of huge herds of wild horses, whose grazing grounds were only defined by the Rocky Mountains and the Alleghenies. He moved westward at the forefront like the bright star that guides the hosts of light every evening. The shimmering flow of his mane and the sweeping arc of his tail adorned him with a glory that was more dazzling than anything gold and silver could provide. A truly regal and angelic sight from that untouched western world, which reminded the old trappers and hunters of the glorious times when Adam walked with the majesty of a god, bold and unafraid, just like this magnificent horse. Whether he was leading his aides and commanders at the front of countless groups streaming across the plains, or roaming with his surrounding subjects grazing along the horizon, the White Steed proudly surveyed them, his warm nostrils glowing against his cool white coat; no matter how he appeared, he was always met with trembling reverence and awe from the bravest Indians. There’s no doubt from what legends tell of this noble horse that it was his spiritual whiteness that gave him his divine quality, a divinity that commanded worship while also instilling an indescribable fear.

But there are other instances where this whiteness loses all that accessory and strange glory which invests it in the White Steed and Albatross.

But there are other cases where this whiteness loses all the extra and unusual glory that surrounds it in the White Steed and Albatross.

What is it that in the Albino man so peculiarly repels and often shocks the eye, as that sometimes he is loathed by his own kith and kin! It is that whiteness which invests him, a thing expressed by the name he bears. The Albino is as well made as other men— has no substantive deformity—and yet this mere aspect of all-pervading whiteness makes him more strangely hideous than the ugliest abortion. Why should this be so?

What is it about the Albino person that so uniquely repels and often shocks the eye, to the point that he is sometimes rejected by his own family? It's that whiteness that surrounds him, which is reflected in the name he carries. The Albino is just as well-built as anyone else—there's no significant deformity—and yet this sheer appearance of complete whiteness makes him seem more strangely ugly than the most grotesque deformity. Why is this the case?

Nor, in quite other aspects, does Nature in her least palpable but not the less malicious agencies, fail to enlist among her forces this crowning attribute of the terrible. From its snowy aspect, the gauntleted ghost of the Southern Seas has been denominated the White Squall. Nor, in some historic instances, has the art of human malice omitted so potent an auxiliary. How wildly it heightens the effect of that passage in Froissart, when, masked in the snowy symbol of their faction, the desperate White Hoods of Ghent murder their bailiff in the market-place!

Nor, in different ways, does Nature with her subtle but equally harmful forces, fail to include this ultimate feature of the terrifying. From its white appearance, the ghostly figure of the Southern Seas has been called the White Squall. Also, in some historical cases, human malice has not overlooked such a powerful ally. How dramatically it enhances the impact of that moment in Froissart when, hidden under the white symbol of their group, the desperate White Hoods of Ghent kill their bailiff in the market square!

Nor, in some things, does the common, hereditary experience of all mankind fail to bear witness to the supernaturalism of this hue. It cannot well be doubted, that the one visible quality in the aspect of the dead which most appals the gazer, is the marble pallor lingering there; as if indeed that pallor were as much like the badge of consternation in the other world, as of mortal trepidation here. And from that pallor of the dead, we borrow the expressive hue of the shroud in which we wrap them. Nor even in our superstitions do we fail to throw the same snowy mantle round our phantoms; all ghosts rising in a milk-white fog—Yea, while these terrors seize us, let us add, that even the king of terrors, when personified by the evangelist, rides on his pallid horse.

Nor does the shared, inherited experience of all humanity fail to testify to the supernatural nature of this color. It's hard to doubt that the most horrifying aspect of the dead, which frightens those who look upon them, is the marble-like pallor that remains; as if that pallor is as much a symbol of fear in the afterlife as it is a sign of human anxiety in this life. From that pallor of the dead, we take the meaningful color of the shroud that we use to cover them. Even in our superstitions, we wrap our ghosts in the same white shroud; all spirits emerging from a milky fog—Yes, while these fears grip us, let’s note that even the ultimate fear, when depicted by the evangelist, rides on his pale horse.

Therefore, in his other moods, symbolize whatever grand or gracious thing he will by whiteness, no man can deny that in its profoundest idealized significance it calls up a peculiar apparition to the soul.

Therefore, in his other moods, symbolize whatever grand or gracious thing he will by whiteness, no man can deny that in its deepest idealized meaning it evokes a unique vision to the soul.

But though without dissent this point be fixed, how is mortal man to account for it? To analyse it, would seem impossible. Can we, then, by the citation of some of those instances wherein this thing of whiteness—though for the time either wholly or in great part stripped of all direct associations calculated to impart to it aught fearful, but nevertheless, is found to exert over us the same sorcery, however modified;— can we thus hope to light upon some chance clue to conduct us to the hidden cause we seek?

But even if everyone agrees on this point, how can a mortal man explain it? Analyzing it seems impossible. Can we instead look at some examples where this thing of whiteness—though at times completely or mostly stripped of any direct associations that would make it frightening—still manages to have the same effect on us, just in a different way; can we hope to discover some clue that will lead us to the hidden cause we're searching for?

Let us try. But in a matter like this, subtlety appeals to subtlety, and without imagination no man can follow another into these halls. And though, doubtless, some at least of the imaginative impressions about to be presented may have been shared by most men, yet few perhaps were entirely conscious of them at the time, and therefore may not be able to recall them now.

Let’s give it a shot. But in situations like this, subtlety attracts subtlety, and without imagination, no one can guide another into these spaces. And while it’s true that some of the imaginative ideas we’re about to explore may have been experienced by many, few were likely fully aware of them at the time, and so they might not be able to remember them now.

Why to the man of untutored ideality, who happens to be but loosely acquainted with the peculiar character of the day, does the bare mention of Whitsuntide marshal in the fancy such long, dreary, speechless processions of slow-pacing pilgrims, down-cast and hooded with new-fallen snow? Or to the unread, unsophisticated Protestant of the Middle American States, why does the passing mention of a White Friar or a White Nun, evoke such an eyeless statue in the soul?

Why does the mention of Whitsuntide make an unrefined dreamer, who only vaguely understands today's unique character, envision long, dreary, silent parades of slow-moving pilgrims, downcast and hooded in freshly fallen snow? Or for the uneducated, unsophisticated Protestant from the Midwest, why does the fleeting mention of a White Friar or a White Nun conjure up such a lifeless figure in the soul?

Or what is there apart from the traditions of dungeoned warriors and kings (which will not wholly account for it) that makes the White Tower of London tell so much more strongly on the imagination of an untravelled American, than those other storied structures, its neighbors— the Byward Tower, or even the Bloody? And those sublimer towers, the White Mountains of New Hampshire, whence, in peculiar moods, comes that gigantic ghostliness over the soul at the bare mention of that name, while the thought of Virginia's Blue Ridge is full of a soft, dewy, distant dreaminess? Or why, irrespective of all latitudes and longitudes, does the name of the White Sea exert such a spectralness over the fancy, while that of the Yellow Sea lulls us with mortal thoughts of long lacquered mild afternoons on the waves, followed by the gaudiest and yet sleepiest of sunsets? Or, to choose a wholly unsubstantial instance, purely addressed to the fancy, why, in reading the old fairy tales of Central Europe, does "the tall pale man" of the Hartz forests, whose changeless pallor unrestingly glides through the green of the groves— why is this phantom more terrible than all the whooping imps of the Blocksburg?

Or what is there apart from the legends of imprisoned warriors and kings (which don’t fully explain it) that makes the White Tower of London resonate so much more powerfully with the imagination of an untraveled American than those other famous buildings nearby—the Byward Tower, or even the Bloody Tower? And what about those more majestic towers, the White Mountains of New Hampshire, which, in certain moods, bring a huge ghostliness over the soul at just the mention of that name, while the thought of Virginia's Blue Ridge is filled with a soft, dewy, distant dreaminess? Or why, regardless of all latitudes and longitudes, does the name of the White Sea have such a haunting presence in our minds, while the Yellow Sea soothes us with thoughts of long, peaceful afternoons on the waves, followed by the most colorful yet tranquil sunsets? Or, to pick a completely imaginary example, why, when reading the old fairy tales of Central Europe, does "the tall pale man" of the Hartz forests, whose unchanging pallor silently moves through the green groves—why is this ghost more terrifying than all the noisy imps of the Blocksburg?

Nor is it, altogether, the remembrance of her cathedral-toppling earthquakes; nor the stampedoes of her frantic seas; nor the tearlessness of arid skies that never rain; nor the sight of her wide field of leaning spires, wrenched cope-stones, and crosses all adroop (like canted yards of anchored fleets); and her suburban avenues of house-walls lying over upon each other, as a tossed pack of cards;— it is not these things alone which make tearless Lima, the strangest, saddest city thou can'st see. For Lima has taken the white veil; and there is a higher horror in this whiteness of her woe. Old as Pizarro, this whiteness keeps her ruins for ever new; admits not the cheerful greenness of complete decay; spreads over her broken ramparts the rigid pallor of an apoplexy that fixes its own distortions.

Nor is it just the memories of her earthquake-ridden cathedrals; nor the pounding of her wild seas; nor the dry, cloudless sky that never rains; nor the view of her wide fields filled with leaning spires, broken rooftops, and drooping crosses (like tilted yards of anchored ships); and her suburban streets where house walls lean on one another like a jumbled deck of cards—it's not just these things that make lifeless Lima the strangest, saddest city you'll ever see. For Lima has donned a white veil, and there’s a deeper horror in this whiteness of her sorrow. As old as Pizarro, this whiteness keeps her ruins perpetually fresh; it doesn’t allow for the cheerful green of total decay; it casts a stark pallor over her crumbling fortifications, resembling the rigidity of an apoplexy that immobilizes its own distortions.

I know that, to the common apprehension, this phenomenon of whiteness is not confessed to be the prime agent in exaggerating the terror of objects otherwise terrible; nor to the unimaginative mind is there aught of terror in those appearances whose awfulness to another mind almost solely consists in this one phenomenon, especially when exhibited under any form at all approaching to muteness or universality. What I mean by these two statements may perhaps be respectively elucidated by the following examples.

I know that, for most people, this idea of whiteness isn't acknowledged as the main factor that intensifies the fear of things that are already frightening; and to a person with a dull imagination, there’s nothing terrifying about those images whose horror to someone else mainly comes from this one aspect, especially when shown in any way that feels silent or all-encompassing. What I mean by these two statements might be clarified by the following examples.

First: The mariner, when drawing nigh the coasts of foreign lands, if by night he hear the roar of breakers, starts to vigilance, and feels just enough of trepidation to sharpen all his faculties; but under precisely similar circumstances, let him be called from his hammock to view his ship sailing through a midnight sea of milky whiteness— as if from encircling headlands shoals of combed white bears were swimming round him, then he feels a silent, superstitious dread; the shrouded phantom of the whitened waters is horrible to him as a real ghost; in vain the lead assures him he is still off soundings; heart and helm they both go down; he never rests till blue water is under him again. Yet where is the mariner who will tell thee, "Sir, it was not so much the fear of striking hidden rocks, as the fear of that hideous whiteness that so stirred me?"

First: The sailor, when approaching the shores of foreign lands, if he hears the roar of crashing waves at night, becomes alert and feels just enough anxiety to sharpen all his senses. But under the same conditions, if he’s called from his hammock to see his ship sailing through a midnight sea of milky whiteness—like shoals of white bears swimming around him from the surrounding headlands—he feels a silent, superstitious fear; the ghostly image of the white waters terrifies him as much as a real ghost. Even though the lead tells him he’s still in safe waters, both his heart and his grip on the helm weaken; he won’t rest until he’s back on blue water again. Yet, where is the sailor who would say, "It wasn’t so much the fear of hitting hidden rocks, but the fear of that terrible whiteness that really disturbed me?"

Second: To the native Indian of Peru, the continual sight of the snowhowdahed Andes conveys naught of dread, except, perhaps, in the mere fancying of the eternal frosted desolateness reigning at such vast altitudes, and the natural conceit of what a fearfulness it would be to lose oneself in such inhuman solitudes. Much the same is it with the backwoodsman of the West, who with comparative indifference views an unbounded prairie sheeted with driven snow, no shadow of tree or twig to break the fixed trance of whiteness. Not so the sailor, beholding the scenery of the Antarctic seas; where at times, by some infernal trick of legerdemain in the powers of frost and air, he, shivering and half shipwrecked, instead of rainbows speaking hope and solace to his misery, views what seems a boundless churchyard grinning upon him with its lean ice monuments and splintered crosses.

Second: For the native Indian of Peru, the constant sight of the snow-covered Andes brings no fear, except maybe in imagining the eternal frost and desolation at such high altitudes, and the natural thought of how terrifying it would be to lose oneself in such lifeless solitude. It's quite similar for the backwoodsman of the West, who, with a sense of indifference, looks at an endless prairie blanketed in snow, with no trees or branches to break the overwhelming whiteness. But it's different for the sailor, who, while gazing at the Antarctic seas, sometimes feels a chilling trick of frost and air. Shivering and feeling half shipwrecked, instead of seeing rainbows that offer hope and comfort during his misery, he looks out at what appears to be an endless graveyard, grinning at him with its gaunt ice monuments and broken crosses.

But thou sayest, methinks this white-lead chapter about whiteness is but a white flag hung out from a craven soul; thou surrenderest to a hypo, Ishmael.

But you say, I think this chapter about whiteness is just a white flag displayed by a coward; you're giving in to a weakness, Ishmael.

Tell me, why this strong young colt, foaled in some peaceful valley of Vermont, far removed from all beasts of prey— why is it that upon the sunniest day, if you but shake a fresh buffalo robe behind him, so that he cannot even see it, but only smells its wild animal muskiness—why will he start, snort, and with bursting eyes paw the ground in phrensies of affright? There is no remembrance in him of any gorings of wild creatures in his green northern home, so that the strange muskiness he smells cannot recall to him anything associated with the experience of former perils; for what knows he, this New England colt, of the black bisons of distant Oregon?

Tell me, why does this strong young colt, born in a peaceful valley in Vermont, far away from any predators—why is it that on the sunniest day, if you just shake a fresh buffalo robe behind him, so that he can't even see it, but only catches its wild animal scent—why does he start, snort, and, with wide eyes, paw the ground in a frenzy of fear? He doesn’t remember any attacks from wild creatures in his green northern home, so the strange scent he picks up can’t remind him of anything linked to past dangers; after all, what does this New England colt know about the black bison of distant Oregon?

No; but here thou beholdest even in a dumb brute, the instinct of the knowledge of the demonism in the world. Though thousands of miles from Oregon, still when he smells that savage musk, the rending, goring bison herds are as present as to the deserted wild foal of the prairies, which this instant they may be trampling into dust.

No; but here you see even in a dumb animal the instinct of knowing about the evil in the world. Even though it's thousands of miles from Oregon, when it smells that fierce musk, the tearing, goring bison herds are as real as they are to the abandoned wild foal of the prairies, which they might currently be trampling into dust.

Thus, then, the muffled rollings of a milky sea; the bleak rustlings of the festooned frosts of mountains; the desolate shiftings of the windrowed snows of prairies; all these, to Ishmael, are as the shaking of that buffalo robe to the frightened colt!

Thus, the muffled sounds of a milky sea; the harsh rustlings of frost-covered mountains; the lonely movements of the piled-up snows of prairies; all of these, to Ishmael, feel like the shaking of that buffalo robe to the scared colt!

Though neither knows where lie the nameless things of which the mystic sign gives forth such hints; yet with me, as with the colt, somewhere those things must exist. Though in many of its aspects this visible world seems formed in love, the invisible spheres were formed in fright.

Though neither knows where the nameless things hinted at by the mystical sign are; still, like the colt, I believe those things must exist somewhere. Even though many aspects of this visible world seem created in love, the invisible realms were created in fear.

But not yet have we solved the incantation of this whiteness, and learned why it appeals with such power to the soul; and more strange and far more portentous—why, as we have seen, it is at once the most meaning symbol of spiritual things, nay, the very veil of the Christian's Deity; and yet should be as it is, the intensifying agent in things the most appalling to mankind.

But we still haven’t figured out the magic of this whiteness or why it captivates the soul so deeply; it's even stranger and more significant—why, as we've seen, it serves as the most meaningful symbol of spiritual matters, even the very veil of the Christian God; and yet it remains the intensifying force in the most terrifying aspects of humanity.

Is it that by its indefiniteness it shadows forth the heartless voids and immensities of the universe, and thus stabs us from behind with the thought of annihilation, when beholding the white depths of the milky way? Or is it, that as in essence whiteness is not so much a color as the visible absence of color; and at the same time the concrete of all colors; is it for these reasons that there is such a dumb blankness, full of meaning, in a wide landscape of snows—a colorless, all-color of atheism from which we shrink? And when we consider that other theory of the natural philosophers, that all other earthly hues—every stately or lovely emblazoning— the sweet tinges of sunset skies and woods; yea, and the gilded velvets of butterflies, and the butterfly cheeks of young girls; all these are but subtile deceits, not actually inherent in substances, but only laid on from without; so that all deified Nature absolutely paints like the harlot, whose allurements cover nothing but the charnel-house within; and when we proceed further, and consider that the mystical cosmetic which produces every one of her hues, the great principle of light, for ever remains white or colorless in itself, and if operating without medium upon matter, would touch all objects, even tulips and roses, with its own blank tinge—pondering all this, the palsied universe lies before us a leper; and like wilful travellers in Lapland, who refuse to wear colored and coloring glasses upon their eyes, so the wretched infidel gazes himself blind at the monumental white shroud that wraps all the prospect around him. And of all these things the Albino whale was the symbol. Wonder ye then at the fiery hunt? ..

Is it that because of its vagueness it reflects the heartless emptiness and vastness of the universe, and thus pierces us with the thought of annihilation when we look at the bright expanses of the Milky Way? Or is it that whiteness is not really a color but the visible absence of color, while at the same time being the concrete of all colors? Is this why there's such an empty blankness, filled with meaning, in a wide snowy landscape—a colorless, all-color representation of atheism that makes us recoil? And when we think about that other idea from natural philosophers, that all other earthly colors—every impressive or beautiful display—the soft shades of sunset skies and forests; yes, and the shiny velvets of butterflies, and the blush of young girls; all these are just subtle illusions, not truly inherent in objects, but merely applied from the outside; so that all revered Nature paints like a prostitute, whose charms conceal nothing but the decay within; and when we go further and consider that the mystical makeup that creates every one of her hues, the great principle of light, always remains white or colorless in itself, and if it operates directly on matter without a medium, it would touch all objects, even tulips and roses, with its own blank tint—thinking about all this, the afflicted universe lies before us like a leper; and like deliberate travelers in Lapland who refuse to wear colored glasses, the miserable skeptic gazes blindly at the monumental white shroud that surrounds him. And of all these things, the Albino whale was the symbol. Are you surprised at the fiery hunt?

CHAPTER 43

Hark!

Hey!

"HIST! Did you hear that noise, Cabaco?

"HIST! Did you hear that noise, Cabaco?

It was the middle-watch: a fair moonlight; the seamen were standing in a cordon, extending from one of the fresh-water butts in the waist, to the scuttle-butt near the taffrail. In this manner, they passed the buckets to fill the scuttle-butt. Standing, for the most part, on the hallowed precincts of the quarter-deck, they were careful not to speak or rustle their feet. From hand to hand, the buckets went in the deepest silence, only broken by the occasional flap of a sail, and the steady hum of the unceasingly advancing keel.

It was the middle of the watch: a bright moonlit night; the crew stood in a line, stretching from one of the fresh-water containers in the middle of the ship to the water barrel near the back. This way, they passed the buckets to fill the water barrel. Mostly standing on the sacred quarter-deck, they were careful not to speak or shuffle their feet. The buckets moved quietly from hand to hand, the silence only interrupted by the occasional flap of a sail and the steady sound of the moving keel.

It was in the midst of this repose, that Archy, one of the cordon, whose post was near the after-hatches, whispered to his neighbor, a Cholo, the words above.

It was during this break that Archy, one of the guards, who was stationed near the back hatches, whispered to his neighbor, a Cholo, the words above.

"Hist! did you hear that noise, Cabaco?"

"Shh! Did you hear that sound, Cabaco?"

"Take the bucket, will ye, Archy? what noise d'ye mean?"

"Could you grab the bucket, Archy? What do you mean by that noise?"

"There it is again—under the hatches—don't you hear it—a cough— it sounded like a cough."

"There it is again—under the hatches—don’t you hear it—a cough—it sounded like a cough."

"Cough be damned! Pass along that return bucket."

"Cough be damned! Hand over that return bucket."

"There again—there it is!—it sounds like two or three sleepers turning over, now!"

"There it is again! It sounds like two or three people sleeping and shifting around now!"

"Caramba! have done, shipmate, will ye? It's the three soaked biscuits ye eat for supper turning over inside of ye—nothing else. Look to the bucket!"

"Wow! You’ve messed up, haven’t you, buddy? It's just those three soggy biscuits you ate for dinner churning around inside you—nothing else. Check the bucket!"

"Say what ye will, shipmate; I've sharp ears."

"Say whatever you want, shipmate; I've got sharp ears."

"Aye, you are the chap, ain't ye, that heard the hum of the old Quakeress's knitting-needles fifty miles at sea from Nantucket; you're the chap."

"Aye, you're the guy, right? The one who heard the hum of the old Quaker woman's knitting needles fifty miles out at sea from Nantucket; you're the guy."

"Grin away; we'll see what turns up. Hark ye, Cabaco, there is somebody down in the after-hold that has not yet been seen on deck; and I suspect our old Mogul knows something of it too. I heard Stubb tell Flask, one morning watch, that there was something of that sort in the wind."

"Keep smiling; we'll see what happens. Hey, Cabaco, there's someone down in the after-hold who hasn't come up on deck yet; and I think our old Mogul knows something about it too. I overheard Stubb tell Flask one morning watch that there was something like that going on."

"Tish! the bucket!"

"Hey! The bucket!"

CHAPTER 44

The Chart

The Chart

Had you followed Captain Ahab down into his cabin after the squall that took place on the night succeeding that wild ratification of his purpose with his crew, you would have seen him go to a locker in the transom, and bringing out a large wrinkled roll of yellowish sea charts, spread them before him on his screwed-down table. Then seating himself before it, you would have seen him intently study the various lines and shadings which there met his eye; and with slow but steady pencil trace additional courses over spaces that before were blank. At intervals, he would refer to piles of old log-books beside him, wherein were set down the seasons and places in which, on various former voyages of various ships, sperm whales had been captured or seen.

If you had followed Captain Ahab into his cabin after the storm that happened the night after he rallied his crew, you would have watched him go to a locker in the back and pull out a big, crumpled roll of yellowed sea charts, spreading them out on his secured table. Then, as he sat down in front of it, you would have seen him closely examine the different lines and colors that caught his eye, slowly adding new courses with a steady pencil over the areas that were previously blank. From time to time, he would check old logbooks stacked next to him, where the seasons and locations of sperm whales that had been caught or spotted on various past voyages of different ships were recorded.

While thus employed, the heavy pewter lamp suspended in chains over his head, continually rocked with the motion of the ship, and for ever threw shifting gleams and shadows of lines upon his wrinkled brow, till it almost seemed that while he himself was marking out lines and courses on the wrinkled charts, some invisible pencil was also tracing lines and courses upon the deeply marked chart of his forehead.

While he was working, the heavy pewter lamp hanging from chains above him kept swinging with the movement of the ship, constantly casting shifting glints and shadows across his wrinkled brow. It almost felt like, as he was drawing lines and paths on the wrinkled charts, some invisible pencil was also sketching lines and paths on the deeply etched map of his forehead.

But it was not this night in particular that, in the solitude of his cabin, Ahab thus pondered over his charts. Almost every night they were brought out; almost every night some pencil marks were effaced, and others were substituted. For with the charts of all four oceans before him, Ahab was threading a maze of currents and eddies, with a view to the more certain accomplishment of that monomaniac thought of his soul.

But it wasn't just this night that Ahab sat alone in his cabin, looking over his charts. Almost every night, he pulled them out; nearly every night, some pencil marks were erased and replaced with new ones. With the charts of all four oceans in front of him, Ahab was navigating through a complex web of currents and eddies, aiming for the more certain achievement of that single-minded obsession of his soul.

Now, to any one not fully acquainted with the ways of the leviathans, it might seem an absurdly hopeless task thus to seek out one solitary creature in the unhooped oceans of this planet. But not so did it seem to Ahab, who knew the sets of all tides and currents; and thereby calculating the driftings of the sperm whale's food; and, also calling to mind the regular, ascertained seasons for hunting him in particular latitudes; could arrive at reasonable surmises, almost approaching to certainties, concerning the timeliest day to be upon this or that ground in search of his prey.

Now, for anyone who isn’t familiar with the ways of the giants of the sea, it might seem like a completely hopeless endeavor to try and find one single creature in the vast oceans of our planet. But it didn’t seem that way to Ahab, who understood the patterns of all tides and currents. By calculating the movements of the sperm whale's food and recalling the established seasons for hunting it in specific latitudes, he could make educated guesses—almost certain predictions—about the best days to be in certain areas searching for his target.

So assured, indeed, is the fact concerning the periodicalness of the sperm whale's resorting to given waters, that many hunters believe that, could he be closely observed and studied throughout the world; were the logs for one voyage of the entire whale fleet carefully collated, then the migrations of the sperm whale would be found to correspond in invariability to those of the herring-shoals or the flights of swallows. On this hint, attempts have been made to construct elaborate migratory charts of the sperm whale.*

So certain is the pattern of the sperm whale returning to specific waters that many hunters believe if they could observe and study them closely worldwide, and if the logs from all whale hunting trips were carefully compiled, they would find the sperm whale's migrations consistently align with those of herring schools or the migration patterns of swallows. Based on this idea, efforts have been made to create detailed migratory charts for the sperm whale.*

*Since the above was written, the statement is happily borne out by an official circular, issued by Lieutenant Maury, of the National Observatory, Washington, April 16th, 1851. By that circular, it appears that precisely such a chart is in course of completion; and portions of it are presented in the circular. "This chart divides the ocean into districts of five degrees of latitude by five degrees of longitude; perpendicularly through each of which districts are twelve columns for the twelve months; and horizontally through each of which districts are three lines; one to show the number of days that have been spent in each month in every district, and the two others to show the number of days in which whales, sperm or right, have been seen."

*Since the above was written, the statement is now confirmed by an official circular issued by Lieutenant Maury of the National Observatory in Washington on April 16, 1851. This circular indicates that a chart is being completed, and parts of it are included in the circular. "This chart divides the ocean into areas of five degrees of latitude and five degrees of longitude; each of these areas has twelve columns for the twelve months, and three lines running horizontally; one shows the number of days spent in each month in every area, and the other two show the number of days when whales, either sperm or right, have been spotted."*

Besides, when making a passage from one feeding-ground to another, the sperm whales, guided by some infallible instinct—say, rather, secret intelligence from the Deity—mostly swim in veins, as they are called; continuing their way along a given ocean-line with such undeviating exactitude, that no ship ever sailed her course, by any chart, with one tithe of such marvellous precision. Though, in these cases, the direction taken by any one whale be straight as a surveyor's parallel, and though the line of advance be strictly confined to its own unavoidable, straight wake, yet the arbitrary vein in which at these times he is said to swim, generally embraces some few miles in width (more or less, as the vein is presumed to expand or contract); but never exceeds the visual sweep from the whale-ship's mast-heads, when circumspectly gliding along this magic zone. The sum is, that at particular seasons within that breadth and along that path, migrating whales may with great confidence be looked for.

Besides, when traveling from one feeding ground to another, sperm whales, guided by some infallible instinct—let's say, rather, a secret intelligence from a higher power—mostly swim in what are called veins. They continue their journey along a specific ocean line with such incredible accuracy that no ship has ever followed its course, according to any chart, with even a fraction of that remarkable precision. Although the direction taken by any single whale is as straight as a surveyor's line, and the path it follows is strictly limited to its own unavoidable, straight trail, the "vein" it swims in typically covers a few miles in width (more or less, depending on whether the vein expands or contracts); but it never exceeds what can be seen from the whale ship's mastheads while carefully gliding along this magical zone. The bottom line is that during certain seasons, within that width and along that path, migrating whales can be expected with great confidence.

And hence not only at substantiated times, upon well known separate feeding-grounds, could Ahab hope to encounter his prey; but in crossing the widest expanses of water between those grounds he could, by his art, so place and time himself on his way, as even then not to be wholly without prospect of a meeting.

And so, not only at specific times, on well-known feeding grounds, could Ahab hope to find his prey; but by crossing the vast stretches of water between those areas, he could, through his skill, position himself in such a way that he still had a chance of an encounter.

There was a circumstance which at first sight seemed to entangle his delirious but still methodical scheme. But not so in the reality, perhaps. Though the gregarious sperm whales have their regular seasons for particular grounds, yet in general you cannot conclude that the herds which haunted such and such a latitude or longitude this year, say, will turn out to be identically the same with those that were found there the preceding season; though there are peculiar and unquestionable instances where the contrary of this has proved true. In general, the same remark, only within a less wide limit, applies to the solitaries and hermits among the matured, aged sperm whales. So that though Moby Dick had in a former year been seen, for example, on what is called the Seychelle ground in the Indian ocean, or Volcano Bay on the Japanese Coast; yet it did not follow that were the Pequod to visit either of those spots at any subsequent corresponding season, she would infallibly encounter him there. So, too, with some other feeding-grounds, where he had at times revealed himself. But all these seemed only his casual stopping-places and ocean-inns, so to speak, not his places of prolonged abode. And where Ahab's chances of accomplishing his object have hitherto been spoken of, allusion has only been made to whatever way-side, antecedent, extra prospects were his, ere a particular set time or place were attained, when all possibilities would become probabilities, and, as Ahab fondly thought, every possibility the next thing to a certainty. That particular set time and place were conjoined in the one technical phrase—the Season-on-the-Line. For there and then, for several consecutive years, Moby Dick had been periodically descried, lingering in those waters for awhile, as the sun, in its annual round, loiters for a predicted interval in any one sign of the Zodiac. There it was, too, that most of the deadly encounters with the white whale had taken place; there the waves were storied with his deeds; there also was that tragic spot where the monomaniac old man had found the awful motive to his vengeance. But in the cautious comprehensiveness and unloitering vigilance with which Ahab threw his brooding soul into this unfaltering hunt, he would not permit himself to rest all his hopes upon the one crowning fact above mentioned, however flattering it might be to those hopes; nor in the sleeplessness of his vow could he so tranquillize his unquiet heart as to postpone all intervening quest.

There was a situation that at first glance appeared to complicate his feverish yet still organized plan. But maybe that wasn't the case in reality. While social sperm whales have regular seasons for specific locations, you can't generally conclude that the pods spotted in a particular latitude or longitude this year will be the same ones that were there the year before; although there are clear instances where the opposite has proven true. The same applies, though to a lesser extent, to the solitary and hermit mature sperm whales. So, even though Moby Dick was seen the previous year, for instance, at what's known as the Seychelles ground in the Indian Ocean or Volcano Bay on the Japanese coast, it didn't mean that if the Pequod were to visit either of those places in the following corresponding season, she would definitely encounter him there. The same goes for other feeding grounds where he had appeared at times. But all these seemed more like his random stopping points and ocean inns, not his long-term homes. When discussing Ahab's chances of achieving his goal, only passing references had been made to any earlier, extra possibilities before a specific time or place was reached, when all possibilities would shift to probabilities, and as Ahab believed, every possibility would be close to certainty. That specific time and place were combined into the technical term—the Season-on-the-Line. Because during those years, Moby Dick had been regularly spotted, lingering in those waters for a while, just as the sun, in its yearly cycle, hangs out for a predictable time in any one sign of the Zodiac. It was also where most of the deadly encounters with the white whale had happened; where the waves were filled with tales of his exploits; and where the tragic spot lay where the obsessed old man had found the terrible reason for his vengeance. But in the careful thoroughness and unwavering focus with which Ahab committed himself to this relentless pursuit, he wouldn’t let himself place all his hopes on that one encouraging fact, regardless of how appealing it might be; nor could he quiet his restless heart enough to delay any intervening quest in the sleeplessness of his vow.

Now, the Pequod had sailed from Nantucket at the very beginning of the Season-on-the-Line. No possible endeavor then could enable her commander to make the great passage southwards, double Cape Horn, and then running down sixty degrees of latitude arrive in the equatorial Pacific in time to cruise there. Therefore, he must wait for the next ensuing season. Yet the premature hour of the Pequod's sailing had, perhaps, been correctly selected by Ahab, with a view to this very complexion of things. Because, an interval of three hundred and sixty-five days and nights was before him; an interval which, instead of impatiently enduring ashore, he would spend in a miscellaneous hunt; if by chance the White Whale, spending his vacation in seas far remote from his periodical feeding-grounds, should turn up his wrinkled brow off the Persian Gulf, or in the Bengal Bay, or China Seas, or in any other waters haunted by his race. So that Monsoons, Pampas, Nor-Westers, Harmattans, Trades; any wind but the Levanter and Simoon, might blow Moby Dick into the devious zig-zag world-circle of the Pequod's circumnavigating wake.

Now, the Pequod had set sail from Nantucket right at the start of the Season-on-the-Line. There was no way for her captain to make the long journey south, round Cape Horn, and then travel down sixty degrees of latitude to reach the equatorial Pacific in time to cruise there. So, he would have to wait for the next season. However, Ahab might have chosen the early departure time for a reason related to this very situation. He had a span of three hundred and sixty-five days and nights ahead of him; a timeframe that, instead of impatiently waiting on shore, he would use for an assorted hunt. If by chance the White Whale, taking his break in waters far from his usual feeding grounds, showed up with his wrinkled brow off the Persian Gulf, or in the Bay of Bengal, or the China Seas, or in any other waters his kind frequented. So, Monsoons, Pampas, Nor-Westers, Harmattans, Trades—any wind except for the Levanter and Simoon—might blow Moby Dick into the winding, zig-zag path of the Pequod's global journey.

But granting all this; yet, regarded discreetly and coolly, seems it not but a mad idea, this; that in the broad boundless ocean, one solitary whale, even if encountered, should be thought capable of individual recognition from his hunter, even as a white-bearded Mufti in the thronged thoroughfares of Constantinople? Yes. For the peculiar snow-white brow of Moby Dick, and his snow-white hump, could not but be unmistakable. And have I not tallied the whale, Ahab would mutter to himself, as after poring over his charts till long after midnight he would throw himself back in reveries—tallied him, and shall he escape? His broad fins are bored, and scalloped out like a lost sheep's ear! And here, his mad mind would run on in a breathless race; till a weariness and faintness of pondering came over him! and in the open air of the deck he would seek to recover his strength. Ah, God! what trances of torments does that man endure who is consumed with one unachieved revengeful desire. He sleeps with clenched hands; and wakes with his own bloody nails in his palms.

But considering all this, when you think about it calmly and rationally, isn’t it a bit crazy to believe that in the vast, endless ocean, one single whale, even if spotted, could be recognized individually by his hunter, just like a white-bearded mufti in the busy streets of Constantinople? Yes. Because the distinct snow-white forehead of Moby Dick and his snow-white hump would be unmistakable. And haven't I counted the whale, Ahab would whisper to himself, as he stared at his charts long past midnight, then leaned back in thought—counted him, and will he get away? His broad fins are chewed up and frayed like a lost sheep's ear! And here, his frenzied mind would race on uncontrollably, until fatigue and dizziness from thinking overwhelmed him! And on the open deck, he would try to regain his strength. Ah, God! What agonizing torments does that man suffer who is consumed by one unfulfilled, vengeful desire. He sleeps with clenched fists and wakes with blood from his own nails in his palms.

Often, when forced from his hammock by exhausting and intolerably vivid dreams of the night, which, resuming his own intense thoughts through the day, carried them on amid a clashing of phrensies, and whirled them round and round and round in his blazing brain, till the very throbbing of his life-spot became insufferable anguish; and when, as was sometimes the case, these spiritual throes in him heaved his being up from its base, and a chasm seemed opening in him, from which forked flames and lightnings shot up, and accursed fiends beckoned him to leap down among them; when this hell in himself yawned beneath him, a wild cry would be heard through the ship; and with glaring eyes Ahab would burst from his state room, as though escaping from a bed that was on fire. Yet these, perhaps, instead of being the unsuppressable symptoms of some latent weakness, or fright at his own resolve, were but the plainest tokens of its intensity. For, at such times, crazy Ahab, the scheming, unappeasedly steadfast hunter of the white whale; this Ahab that had gone to his hammock, was not the agent that so caused him to burst from it in horror again. The latter was the eternal, living principle or soul in him; and in sleep, being for the time dissociated from the characterizing mind, which at other times employed it for its outer vehicle or agent, it spontaneously sought escape from the scorching contiguity of the frantic thing, of which, for the time, it was no longer an integral. But as the mind does not exist unless leagued with the soul, therefore it must have been that, in Ahab's case, yielding up all his thoughts and fancies to his one supreme purpose; that purpose, by its own sheer inveteracy of will, forced itself against gods and devils into a kind of self-assumed, independent being of its own. Nay, could grimly live and burn, while the common vitality to which it was conjoined, fled horror-stricken from the unbidden and unfathered birth. Therefore, the tormented spirit that glared out of bodily eyes, when what seemed Ahab rushed from his room, was for the time but a vacated thing, a formless somnambulistic being, a ray of living light, to be sure, but without an object to color, and therefore a blankness in itself. God help thee, old man, thy thoughts have created a creature in thee; and he whose intense thinking thus makes him a Prometheus; a vulture feeds upon that heart for ever; that vulture the very creature he creates.

Often, when he was jolted awake from his hammock by exhausting and unbearably vivid dreams of the night, which, resuming his intense thoughts from the day, twisted them around in a chaotic frenzy, spinning them repeatedly in his burning mind until the very pulse of his being became unbearable anguish; and when, as sometimes happened, these inner struggles lifted him from his core, making it feel like a chasm was opening within him, from which forked flames and lightnings shot up, and cursed fiends beckoned him to jump down among them; when this hell within him yawned beneath him, a wild cry would echo through the ship; and with wide eyes, Ahab would burst out of his cabin as if escaping from a bed that was on fire. Yet these may be, instead of being undeniable signs of some hidden weakness or fear of his own determination, merely the clearest indicators of its intensity. For, at such moments, crazy Ahab, the relentless and ever-determined hunter of the white whale; this Ahab who had gone to his hammock, was not the same person who sprang from it in horror again. The latter was the eternal, living essence or soul within him; and when he slept, being for that time disconnected from the defining mind, which at other times used it as its outer vessel or agent, it instinctively sought to escape from the tormenting thing, of which, for the moment, it was no longer a part. But since the mind does not exist without being linked to the soul, it must have been that, in Ahab's case, surrendering all his thoughts and fantasies to his one ultimate purpose; that purpose, by its own stubborn will, forced itself against gods and devils into a kind of self-assumed, independent existence of its own. Indeed, it could grimly live and burn, while the common vitality to which it was joined fled in terror from the unbidden and unfathered creation. Therefore, the tormented spirit glaring out of his eyes, when what appeared to be Ahab rushed from his room, was for the time just a vacant thing, a formless sleepwalker, a ray of living light, to be sure, but without an object to color, and thus a blankness in itself. God help you, old man, your thoughts have created a creature within you; and he whose intense thinking thus makes him a Prometheus; a vulture feeds on that heart forever; that vulture the very creature he creates.

CHAPTER 45

The Affidavit

The Affidavit

So far as what there may be of a narrative in this book; and, indeed, as indirectly touching one or two very interesting and curious particulars in the habits of sperm whales, the foregoing chapter, in its earlier part, is as important a one as will be found in this volume; but the leading matter of it requires to be still further and more familiarly enlarged upon, in order to be adequately understood, and moreover to take away any incredulity which a profound ignorance of the entire subject may induce in some minds, as to the natural verity of the main points of this affair.

As for the story in this book, and especially regarding one or two fascinating and unusual facts about the habits of sperm whales, the previous chapter is one of the most important in this volume. However, the main topics need to be explained in more detail so that they can be fully understood and to dispel any skepticism that a lack of knowledge about the subject might cause in some readers regarding the real truth of these key points.

I care not to perform this part of my task methodically; but shall be content to produce the desired impression by separate citations of items, practically or reliably known to me as a whaleman; and from these citations, I take it— the conclusion aimed at will naturally follow of itself.

I don't feel the need to do this part of my task step by step; instead, I'll just share different examples that I know from my experience as a whaleman. From these examples, I believe the conclusion I'm aiming for will naturally come together.

First: I have personally known three instances where a whale, after receiving a harpoon, has effected a complete escape; and, after an interval (in one instance of three years), has been again struck by the same hand, and slain; when the two irons, both marked by the same private cypher, have been taken from the body. In the instance where three years intervened between the flinging of the two harpoons; and I think it may have been something more than that; the man who darted them happening, in the interval, to go in a trading ship on a voyage to Africa, went ashore there, joined a discovery party, and penetrated far into the interior, where he travelled for a period of nearly two years, often endangered by serpents, savages, tigers, poisonous miasmas, with all the other common perils incident to wandering in the heart of unknown regions. Meanwhile, the whale he had struck must also have been on its travels; no doubt it had thrice circumnavigated the globe, brushing with its flanks all the coasts of Africa; but to no purpose. This man and this whale again came together, and the one vanquished the other. I say I, myself, have known three instances similar to this; that is in two of them I saw the whales struck; and, upon the second attack, saw the two irons with the respective marks cut in them, afterwards taken from the dead fish. In the three-year instance, it so fell out that I was in the boat both times, first and last, and the last time distinctly recognized a peculiar sort of huge mole under the whale's eye, which I had observed there three years previous. I say three years, but I am pretty sure it was more than that. Here are three instances, then, which I personally know the truth of; but I have heard of many other instances from persons whose veracity in the matter there is no good ground to impeach.

First: I've personally known three cases where a whale, after being hit with a harpoon, managed to escape entirely; and after some time (in one case, three years later), it was struck again by the same person and killed; both harpoons, marked with the same personal symbol, were taken from its body. In the case where three years passed between the two harpoon throws—and I think it was even longer—the man who threw them happened to go on a trading ship to Africa during that time. He went ashore, joined a discovery expedition, and traveled deep into the interior for nearly two years, often facing dangers from snakes, wild tribes, tigers, poisonous miasmas, and all the other common risks of wandering in unknown regions. Meanwhile, the whale he had struck must have been on its own journey; it likely circled the globe three times, brushing against the shores of Africa, but to no avail. Eventually, this man and this whale met again, and one defeated the other. I can personally confirm that I’ve witnessed three similar cases; in two of them, I saw the whales get struck, and during the second attack, I saw the two harpoons with their unique marks taken from the dead whale. In the three-year case, I happened to be in the boat both times, first and last, and the last time, I distinctly recognized a specific large mole under the whale's eye that I had seen there three years earlier. I say three years, but I’m fairly sure it was more than that. So, here are three cases that I can personally verify, but I’ve also heard of many others from people whose honesty in this matter can’t reasonably be questioned.

Secondly: It is well known in the Sperm Whale Fishery, however ignorant the world ashore may be of it, that there have been several memorable historical instances where a particular whale in the ocean has been at distant times and places popularly cognisable. Why such a whale became thus marked was not altogether and originally owing to his bodily peculiarities as distinguished from other whales; for however peculiar in that respect any chance whale may be, they soon put an end to his peculiarities by killing him, and boiling him down into a peculiarly valuable oil. No: the reason was this: that from the fatal experiences of the fishery there hung a terrible prestige of perilousness about such a whale as there did about Rinaldo Rinaldini, insomuch that most fishermen were content to recognise him by merely touching their tarpaulins when he would be discovered lounging by them on the sea, without seeking to cultivate a more intimate acquaintance. Like some poor devils ashore that happen to known an irascible great man, they make distant unobtrusive salutations to him in the street, lest if they pursued the acquaintance further, they might receive a summary thump for their presumption.

Secondly: It's well known in the Sperm Whale Fishery, even if people on land are completely unaware, that there have been several notable historical examples of a specific whale in the ocean being recognized at different times and places. The reason this whale became so notable wasn't just due to its physical features that set it apart from other whales; after all, no matter how unique any whale might be, they usually meet their end quickly when caught, being processed into valuable oil. No, the real reason was that the tragic events of the fishery created a fearsome reputation around such a whale, much like Rinaldo Rinaldini, to the point where most fishermen were satisfied to simply acknowledge him by touching their tarpaulins when they spotted him relaxing nearby, rather than trying to establish a closer relationship. It’s like some unfortunate folks on land who happen to know a hot-tempered big shot; they offer subtle nods in passing to avoid the risk of getting a swift reprimand for being too familiar.

But not only did each of these famous whales enjoy great individual celebrity—nay, you may call it an oceanwide renown; not only was he famous in life and now is immortal in forecastle stories after death, but he was admitted into all the rights, privileges, and distinctions of a name; had as much a name indeed as Cambyses or Caesar. Was it not so, O Timor Tom! thou famed leviathan, scarred like an iceberg, who so long did'st lurk in the Oriental straits of that name, whose spout was oft seen from the palmy beach of Ombay? Was it not so, O New Zealand Jack! thou terror of all cruisers that crossed their wakes in the vicinity of the Tattoo Land? Was it not so, O Morquan! King of Japan, whose lofty jet they say at times assumed the semblance of a snow-white cross against the sky? Was it not so, O Don Miguel! thou Chilian whale, marked like an old tortoise with mystic hieroglyphics upon the back! In plain prose, here are four whales as well known to the students of Cetacean History as Marius or Sylla to the classic scholar.

But each of these famous whales wasn’t just a celebrity in their own right—let’s say they were renowned across the oceans; not only were they famous in life and have become legendary in sailors' tales after death, but they also held all the rights, privileges, and honors of a name; they had a name just as important as Cambyses or Caesar. Isn’t that right, O Timor Tom! you legendary giant, scarred like an iceberg, who lurked for so long in the straits named after you, whose spout was often seen from the palm-fringed beach of Ombay? Isn’t that right, O New Zealand Jack! you nightmare of all ships that crossed paths near Tattoo Land? Isn’t that right, O Morquan! King of Japan, whose high spray at times looked like a snow-white cross against the sky? Isn’t that right, O Don Miguel! you Chilian whale, marked like an old tortoise with mysterious symbols on your back! In simple terms, here are four whales as well recognized by students of Cetacean History as Marius or Sylla are by classic scholars.

But this is not all. New Zealand Tom and Don Miguel, after at various times creating great havoc among the boats of different vessels, were finally gone in quest of, systematically hunted out, chased and killed by valiant whaling captains, who heaved up their anchors with that express object as much in view, as in setting out through the Narragansett Woods, Captain Butler of old had it in his mind to capture that notorious murderous savage Annawon, the headmost warrior of the Indian King Philip.

But that's not all. New Zealand Tom and Don Miguel, after causing a lot of chaos among the boats of different ships at various times, were finally sought after, systematically tracked down, pursued, and killed by brave whaling captains. They raised their anchors with that purpose in mind, just as Captain Butler had aimed to capture the infamous killer Annawon, the top warrior of Indian King Philip, when he set out through the Narragansett Woods.

I do not know where I can find a better place than just here, to make mention of one or two other things, which to me seem important, as in printed form establishing in all respects the reasonableness of the whole story of the White Whale, more especially the catastrophe. For this is one of those disheartening instances where truth requires full as much bolstering as error. So ignorant are most landsmen of some of the plainest and most palpable wonders of the world, that without some hints touching the plain facts, historical and otherwise, of the fishery, they might scout at Moby Dick as a monstrous fable, or still worse and more detestable, a hideous and intolerable allegory.

I don't know where I can find a better place than right here to mention a couple of other things that seem important to me, especially in printed form, to establish the reasonableness of the entire story of the White Whale, particularly the disaster. This is one of those frustrating situations where truth needs just as much support as falsehood. Most people who aren't fishermen are so unaware of some of the simplest and most obvious wonders of the world that without some details about the basic facts, historical and otherwise, of the fishery, they might view Moby Dick as a ridiculous myth or even worse, an ugly and unbearable allegory.

First: Though most men have some vague flitting ideas of the general perils of the grand fishery, yet they have nothing like a fixed, vivid conception of those perils, and the frequency with which they recur. One reason perhaps is, that not one in fifty of the actual disasters and deaths by casualties in the fishery, ever finds a public record at home, however transient and immediately forgotten that record. Do you suppose that that poor fellow there, who this moment perhaps caught by the whale-line off the coast of New Guinea, is being carried down to the bottom of the sea by the sounding leviathan— do you suppose that that poor fellow's name will appear in the newspaper obituary you will read to-morrow at your breakfast? No: because the mails are very irregular between here and New Guinea. In fact, did you ever hear what might be called regular news direct or indirect from New Guinea? Yet I will tell you that upon one particular voyage which I made to the Pacific, among many others we spoke thirty different ships, every one of which had had a death by a whale, some of them more than one, and three that had each lost a boat's crew. For God's sake, be economical with your lamps and candles! not a gallon you burn, but at least one drop of man's blood was spilled for it.

First: Even though most people have some vague thoughts about the dangers of commercial fishing, they don’t really have a clear understanding of those dangers or how often they happen. One reason might be that hardly any of the actual tragedies and deaths that occur in fishing get reported back home, even if the reports are brief and quickly forgotten. Do you think that poor guy over there, who’s probably getting pulled down to the ocean floor by a giant whale off the coast of New Guinea right now, will have his name in the newspaper obituary you read tomorrow at breakfast? No, because the mail service between here and New Guinea is very irregular. In fact, have you ever heard any regular news—either direct or indirect—from New Guinea? Still, I’ll tell you that on one particular voyage I took to the Pacific, we spoke to thirty different ships, each of which had experienced a death from a whale, some more than once, and three had lost an entire boat crew. For goodness' sake, be mindful of how much fuel and candles you use! For every gallon you burn, at least one drop of human blood was spilled to provide it.

Secondly: People ashore have indeed some indefinite idea that a whale is an enormous creature of enormous power; but I have ever found that when narrating to them some specific example of this two-fold enormousness, they have significantly complimented me upon my facetiousness; when, I declare upon my soul, I had no more idea of being facetious than Moses, when he wrote the history of the plagues of Egypt.

Secondly: People on land have a vague notion that a whale is a huge creature with immense strength; however, whenever I share a specific example of this double enormity, they often praise me for being humorous. I swear, I wasn’t trying to be funny at all, just like Moses wasn’t trying to be funny when he wrote about the plagues of Egypt.

But fortunately the special point I here seek can be established upon testimony entirely independent of my own. That point is this: The Sperm Whale is in some cases sufficiently powerful, knowing, and judiciously malicious, as with direct aforethought to stave in, utterly destroy, and sink a large ship; and what is more, the Sperm Whale has done it.

But fortunately, the specific point I'm trying to make can be backed up by evidence completely independent of my own. That point is this: The Sperm Whale is sometimes powerful enough, smart enough, and intentionally malicious enough to deliberately ram, completely destroy, and sink a large ship; and what's more, the Sperm Whale has actually done this.

First: In the year 1820 the ship Essex, Captain Pollard, of Nantucket, was cruising in the Pacific Ocean. One day she saw spouts, lowered her boats, and gave chase to a shoal of sperm whales. Ere long, several of the whales were wounded; when, suddenly, a very large whale escaping from the boats, issued from the shoal, and bore directly down upon the ship. Dashing his forehead against her hull, he so stove her in, that in less than "ten minutes" she settled down and fell over. Not a surviving plank of her has been seen since. After the severest exposure, part of the crew reached the land in their boats. Being returned home at last, Captain Pollard once more sailed for the Pacific in command of another ship, but the gods shipwrecked him again upon unknown rocks and breakers; for the second time his ship was utterly lost, and forthwith forswearing the sea, he has never attempted it since. At this day Captain Pollard is a resident of Nantucket. I have seen Owen Chace, who was chief mate of the Essex at the time of the tragedy; I have read his plain and faithful narrative; I have conversed with his son; and all this within a few miles of the scene of the catastrophe.*

First: In 1820, the ship Essex, captained by Pollard from Nantucket, was sailing in the Pacific Ocean. One day, they spotted some spouts, lowered their boats, and chased a group of sperm whales. Soon, several of the whales were hurt; then, suddenly, a very large whale, escaping from the group, charged straight at the ship. It slammed its forehead against the hull, causing such damage that in less than "ten minutes," the ship sank and tipped over. No piece of her has been seen since. After enduring severe conditions, part of the crew managed to reach land in their boats. Once home, Captain Pollard set sail again for the Pacific on another ship, but the gods wrecked him again on uncharted rocks and reefs; for the second time, his ship was completely lost, and immediately he swore off the sea, never to try again. Today, Captain Pollard lives in Nantucket. I have met Owen Chace, who was the chief mate of the Essex during the disaster; I have read his honest and straightforward account; I have spoken with his son; and all this happened just a few miles from the site of the tragedy.*

*The following are extracts from Chace's narrative: "Every fact seemed to warrant me in concluding that it was anything but chance which directed his operations; he made two several attacks upon the ship, at a short interval between them, both of this catastrophe I have never chanced to their direction, were calculated to do us the whale hunters I have now and then heard casual allusions to it.

*The following are extracts from Chace's narrative: "Every fact seemed to support my conclusion that it was anything but chance that guided his actions; he made two separate attacks on the ship, with a short interval between them, both of which led to this disaster I have never come across before. They were aimed at us whale hunters, and I've occasionally heard casual references to it.

Thirdly: Some eighteen or twenty years ago Commodore J—-then commanding an American sloop-of-war of the first class, happened to be dining with a party of whaling captains, on board a Nantucket ship in the harbor of Oahu, Sandwich Islands. Conversation turning upon whales, the Commodore was pleased to be sceptical touching the amazing strength ascribed to them by the professional gentlemen present. He peremptorily denied for example, that any whale could so smite his stout sloop-of-war as to cause her to leak so much as a thimbleful. Very good; but there is more coming. Some weeks later, the Commodore set sail in this impregnable craft for Valparaiso. But he was stopped on the way by a portly sperm whale, that begged a few moments' confidential business with him. That business consisted in fetching the Commodore's craft such a thwack, that with all his pumps going he made straight for the nearest port to heave down and repair. I am not superstitious, but I consider the Commodore's interview with that whale as providential. Was not Saul of Tarsus converted from unbelief by a similar fright? I tell you, the sperm whale will stand no nonsense.

Thirdly: About eighteen or twenty years ago, Commodore J—, who was then in charge of a first-class American sloop-of-war, was having dinner with a group of whaling captains on a Nantucket ship in the harbor of Oahu, Sandwich Islands. As the conversation shifted to whales, the Commodore expressed skepticism about the incredible strength that the professionals claimed they possessed. He firmly denied, for example, that any whale could hit his sturdy sloop-of-war hard enough to cause it to leak even a thimbleful of water. That’s fine; but there’s more to the story. A few weeks later, the Commodore set sail on this supposedly invincible ship for Valparaiso. However, he was interrupted on the way by a hefty sperm whale that requested a few moments of his time. This meeting ended with the whale giving the Commodore's ship such a powerful hit that, despite all his pumps running, he immediately headed for the nearest port to dry dock and make repairs. I’m not superstitious, but I view the Commodore’s encounter with that whale as something meant to happen. Wasn’t Saul of Tarsus converted from disbelief by a similar shock? I’m telling you, the sperm whale doesn’t accept any nonsense.

I will now refer you to Langsdorff's Voyages for a little circumstance in point, peculiarly interesting to the writer hereof. Langsdorff, you must know by the way, was attached to the Russian Admiral Krusenstern's famous Discovery Expedition in the beginning of the present century. Captain Langsdorff thus begins his seventeenth chapter:

I will now direct you to Langsdorff's Voyages for a specific detail that's particularly interesting to me. You should know that Langsdorff was part of the Russian Admiral Krusenstern's famous Discovery Expedition in the early 1800s. Captain Langsdorff begins his seventeenth chapter like this:

"By the thirteenth of May our ship was ready to sail, and the next day we were out in the open sea, on our way to Ochotsh. The weather was very clear and fine, but so intolerably cold that we were obliged to keep on our fur clothing. For some days we had very little wind; it was not till the nineteenth that a brisk gale from the northwest sprang up. An uncommonly large whale, the body of which was larger than the ship itself, lay almost at the surface of the water, but was not perceived by any one on board till the moment when the ship, which was in full sail, was almost upon him, so that it was impossible to prevent its striking against him. We were thus placed in the most imminent danger, as this gigantic creature, setting up its back, raised the ship three feet at least out of the water. The masts reeled, and the sails fell altogether, while we who were below all sprang instantly upon the deck, concluding that we had struck upon some rock; instead of this we saw the monster sailing off with the utmost gravity and solemnity. Captain D'Wolf applied immediately to the pumps to examine whether or not the vessel had received any damage from the shock, but we found that very happily it had escaped entirely uninjured."

"By May 13th, our ship was ready to set sail, and the next day we were out in the open sea, heading towards Ochotsh. The weather was clear and nice, but it was so unbearably cold that we had to wear our fur clothing. For a few days, there was hardly any wind; it wasn't until the 19th that a strong gale from the northwest picked up. An unusually large whale, bigger than the ship itself, was lying almost at the surface of the water, but no one on board saw it until the moment the ship, fully under sail, was nearly on top of it, making it impossible to avoid hitting it. We found ourselves in serious danger as this giant creature, arching its back, lifted the ship at least three feet out of the water. The masts swayed, and the sails fell completely, while those of us below rushed onto the deck, thinking we had hit a rock; but instead, we saw the whale moving away with great dignity. Captain D'Wolf immediately went to the pumps to check if the ship had been damaged by the impact, but luckily we found that it had come through entirely unscathed."

Now, the Captain D'Wolf here alluded to as commanding the ship in question, is a New Englander, who, after a long life of unusual adventures as a sea-captain, this day resides in the village of Dorchester near Boston. I have the honor of being a nephew of his. I have particularly questioned him concerning this passage in Langsdorff. He substantiates every word. The ship, however, was by no means a large one: a Russian craft built on the Siberian coast, and purchased by my uncle after bartering away the vessel in which he sailed from home.

Now, Captain D'Wolf, mentioned here as the one in charge of the ship, is from New England. After a long life filled with incredible adventures as a sea captain, he now lives in the village of Dorchester near Boston. I have the honor of being his nephew. I've asked him specifically about this passage in Langsdorff, and he confirms every word. However, the ship was definitely not large: it was a Russian vessel built on the Siberian coast, which my uncle bought after trading away the ship he sailed here on.

In that up and down manly book of old-fashioned adventure, so full, too, of honest wonders—the voyage of Lionel Wafer, one of ancient Dampier's old chums—I found a little matter set down so like that just quoted from Langsdorff, that I cannot forbear inserting it here for a corroborative example, if such be needed.

In that old-school adventurous book filled with honest wonders—the journey of Lionel Wafer, a friend of the ancient Dampier—I found a section that is so similar to the one just quoted from Langsdorff that I can’t help but include it here as a supporting example, if such is necessary.

Lionel, it seems, was on his way to "John Ferdinando," as he calls the modern Juan Fernandes. "In our way thither," he says, "about four o'clock in the morning, when we were about one hundred and fifty leagues from the Main of America, our ship felt a terrible shock, which put our men in such consternation that they could hardly tell where they were or what to think; but every one began to prepare for death. And, indeed, the shock was so sudden and violent, that we took it for granted the ship had struck against a rock; but when the amazement was a little over, we cast the lead, and sounded, but found no ground. … The suddenness of the shock made the guns leap in their carriages, and several of the men were shaken out of their hammocks. Captain Davis, who lay with his head on a gun, was thrown out of his cabin!" Lionel then goes on to impute the shock to an earthquake, and seems to substantiate the imputation by stating that a great earthquake, somewhere about that time, did actually do great mischief along the Spanish land. But I should not much wonder if, in the darkness of that early hour of the morning, the shock was after all caused by an unseen whale vertically bumping the hull from beneath.

Lionel was apparently heading to "John Ferdinando," which is his name for the modern Juan Fernandes. "On our way there," he says, "around four o'clock in the morning, when we were about one hundred and fifty leagues from the coast of America, our ship experienced a terrible jolt that threw our crew into such panic that they could barely understand where they were or what to think; everyone started preparing for death. The impact was so sudden and severe that we assumed the ship must have hit a rock; but once the shock wore off a bit, we dropped the lead and took soundings, finding no bottom. … The abruptness of the jolt caused the cannons to jump in their mounts, and several crew members were tossed from their hammocks. Captain Davis, who was lying with his head on a cannon, was thrown out of his cabin!" Lionel then suggests that the jolt was due to an earthquake, backing this up by mentioning that a significant earthquake around that time had indeed caused major damage along the Spanish coast. However, I wouldn't be surprised if, in the darkness of that early morning, the shock was ultimately caused by an unseen whale bumping the hull from below.

I might proceed with several more examples, one way or another known to me, of the great power and malice at times of the sperm whale. In more than one instance, he has been known, not only to chase the assailing boats back to their ships, but to pursue the ship itself, and long withstand all the lances hurled at him from its decks. The English ship Pusie Hall can tell a story on that head; and, as for his strength, let me say, that there have been examples where the lines attached to a running sperm whale have, in a calm, been transferred to the ship, and secured there! the whale towing her great hull through the water, as a horse walks off with a cart. Again, it is very often observed that, if the sperm whale, once struck, is allowed time to rally, he then acts, not so often with blind rage, as with wilful, deliberate designs of destruction to his pursuers; nor is it without conveying some eloquent indication of his character, that upon being attacked he will frequently open his mouth, and retain it in that dread expansion for several consecutive minutes. But I must be content with only one more and a concluding illustration; a remarkable and most significant one, by which you will not fail to see, that not only is the most marvellous event in this book corroborated by plain facts of the present day, but that these marvels (like all marvels) are mere repetitions of the ages; so that for the millionth time we say amen with Solomon—Verily there is nothing new under the sun.

I could go on with several more examples, known to me in different ways, about the immense power and sometimes the malice of the sperm whale. There have been instances where it not only chased boats back to their ships but even pursued the ship itself, enduring all the harpoons thrown at it from the decks. The English ship Pusie Hall has a story to tell about that; and regarding its strength, let me mention that there have been cases where the lines tied to a running sperm whale have, in calm waters, been transferred to the ship and secured there! The whale then towed the ship's heavy hull through the water, just like a horse pulls a cart. Additionally, it's often noted that if a sperm whale is struck and given time to recover, it doesn't just act in blind rage; instead, it plots deliberate acts of destruction against its hunters. It's not without significance that when attacked, it often opens its mouth and keeps it that way for several minutes. But I will limit myself to one final and significant example; one that will clearly show you that the most astonishing event in this book is supported by straightforward facts of today, and that these wonders (like all wonders) are simply repeats from the ages; so, for the millionth time, we agree with Solomon—Truly, there is nothing new under the sun.

In the sixth Christian century lived Procopius, a Christian magistrate of Constantinople, in the days when Justinian was Emperor and Belisarius general. As many know, he wrote the history of his own times, a work every way of uncommon value. By the best authorities, he has always been considered a most trustworthy and unexaggerating historian, except in some one or two particulars, not at all affecting the matter presently to be mentioned.

In the sixth century, there lived Procopius, a Christian official in Constantinople, during the reign of Emperor Justinian and General Belisarius. As many are aware, he wrote the history of his own time, a work of exceptional value in every respect. By reputable sources, he has always been regarded as a highly trustworthy and moderate historian, except in a few specific instances that do not impact the topic currently at hand.

Now, in this history of his, Procopius mentions that, during the term of his prefecture at Constantinople, a great sea-monster was captured in the neighboring Propontis, or Sea of Marmora, after having destroyed vessels at intervals in those waters for a period of more than fifty years. A fact thus set down in substantial history cannot easily be gainsaid. Nor is there any reason it should be. Of what precise species this sea-monster was, is not mentioned. But as he destroyed ships, as well as for other reasons, he must have been a whale; and I am strongly inclined to think a sperm whale. And I will tell you why. For a long time I fancied that the sperm whale had been always unknown in the Mediterranean and the deep waters connecting with it. Even now I am certain that those seas are not, and perhaps never can be, in the present constitution of things, a place for his habitual gregarious resort. But further investigations have recently proved to me, that in modern times there have been isolated instances of the presence of the sperm whale in the Mediterranean. I am told, on good authority, that on the Barbary coast, a Commodore Davis of the British navy found the skeleton of a sperm whale. Now, as a vessel of war readily passes through the Dardanelles, hence a sperm whale could, by the same route, pass out of the Mediterranean into the Propontis.

Now, in this account, Procopius mentions that during his time as prefect in Constantinople, a huge sea monster was captured in the nearby Propontis, or Sea of Marmora, after having destroyed ships in those waters for over fifty years. A fact recorded in such a significant history can’t easily be disputed. Nor should it be. It’s not specified what exact type of sea monster it was. However, since it sank ships and for other reasons, it must have been a whale; and I strongly believe it was a sperm whale. Here’s why. For a long time, I thought that sperm whales had always been unknown in the Mediterranean and the deep waters connected to it. Even now, I firmly believe that those seas are not, and perhaps never will be, a regular habitat for them as things currently stand. But further research has recently shown me that there have been occasional sightings of sperm whales in the Mediterranean in modern times. I’ve heard from credible sources that on the Barbary coast, Commodore Davis of the British navy discovered the skeleton of a sperm whale. Since a warship can easily pass through the Dardanelles, it follows that a sperm whale could also travel from the Mediterranean into the Propontis by that same route.

In the Propontis, as far as I can learn, none of that peculiar substance called brit is to be found, the aliment of the right whale. But I have every reason to believe that the food of the sperm whale— squid or cuttle-fish—lurks at the bottom of that sea, because large creatures, but by no means the largest of that sort, have been found at its surface. If, then, you properly put these statements together, and reason upon them a bit, you will clearly perceive that, according to all human reasoning, Procopius's sea-monster, that for half a century stove the ships of a Roman Emperor, must in all probability have been a sperm whale.

In the Propontis, as far as I know, you won't find that strange substance called brit, which is the food of the right whale. But I firmly believe that the sperm whale's food—squid or cuttlefish—exists at the bottom of that sea, because large creatures, although not the biggest of their kind, have been spotted at the surface. So, if you put these statements together and think about them a little, you'll see that, based on all human reasoning, Procopius's sea-monster, which sank the ships of a Roman Emperor for half a century, was probably a sperm whale.

CHAPTER 46

Surmises

Guesses

Though, consumed with the hot fire of his purpose, Ahab in all his thoughts and actions ever had in view the ultimate capture of Moby Dick; though he seemed ready to sacrifice all mortal interests to that one passion; nevertheless it may have been that he was by nature and long habituation far too wedded to a fiery whaleman's ways, altogether to abandon the collateral prosecution of the voyage. Or at least if this were otherwise, there were not wanting other motives much more influential with him. It would be refining too much, perhaps, even considering his monomania, to hint that his vindictiveness towards the White Whale might have possibly extended itself in some degree to all sperm whales, and that the more monsters he slew by so much the more he multiplied the chances that each subsequently encountered whale would prove to be the hated one he hunted. But if such an hypothesis be indeed exceptionable, there were still additional considerations which, though not so strictly according with the wildness of his ruling passion, yet were by no means incapable of swaying him.

Though Ahab was consumed by the intense drive to capture Moby Dick, and seemed willing to sacrifice everything for that one obsession, it’s possible that he was too deeply entrenched in the fiery ways of a whaleman to completely abandon the other goals of the voyage. Or if that wasn't the case, there were definitely other motives that held significant influence over him. It might be overly elaborate to suggest that his vengeful feelings toward the White Whale extended in some way to all sperm whales, and that by killing more of them, he increased the chance of encountering the one he sought to destroy. But even if that idea isn’t entirely valid, there were still other factors that, while not perfectly aligned with his overwhelming passion, could certainly sway him.

To accomplish his object Ahab must use tools; and of all tools used in the shadow of the moon, men are most apt to get out of order. He knew, for example, that however magnetic his ascendency in some respects was over Starbuck, yet that ascendency did not cover the complete spiritual man any more than mere corporeal superiority involves intellectual mastership; for to the purely spiritual, the intellectual but stand in a sort of corporeal relation. Starbuck's body and Starbuck's coerced will were Ahab's, so long as Ahab kept his magnet at Starbuck's brain; still he knew that for all this the chief mate, in his soul, abhorred his captain's quest, and could he, would joyfully disintegrate himself from it, or even frustrate it. It might be that a long interval would elapse ere the White Whale was seen. During that long interval Starbuck would ever be apt to fall into open relapses of rebellion against his captain's leadership, unless some ordinary, prudential, circumstantial influences were brought to bear upon him. Not only that, but the subtle insanity of Ahab respecting Moby Dick was noways more significantly manifested than in his superlative sense and shrewdness in foreseeing that, for the present, the hunt should in some way be stripped of that strange imaginative impiousness which naturally invested it; that the full terror of the voyage must be kept withdrawn into the obscure background (for few men's courage is proof against protracted meditation unrelieved by action); that when they stood their long night watches, his officers and men must have some nearer things to think of than Moby Dick. For however eagerly and impetuously the savage crew had hailed the announcement of his quest; yet all sailors of all sorts are more or less capricious and unreliable— they live in the varying outer weather, and they inhale its fickleness— and when retained for any object remote and blank in the pursuit, however promissory of life and passion in the end, it is above all things requisite that temporary interests and employments should intervene and hold them healthily suspended for the final dash.

To achieve his goal, Ahab had to use tools; and of all the tools used under the moonlight, people are the most likely to go off track. He understood, for instance, that even though he had a strong influence over Starbuck, that influence didn’t encompass the entire person, just as physical strength doesn’t guarantee intellectual superiority; for the purely spiritual, intellect merely exists in a physical context. Starbuck’s body and forced will were Ahab’s as long as Ahab kept his hold on Starbuck’s mind; still, he realized that deep down, Starbuck despised his captain's mission and would, if possible, gladly detach himself from it or even sabotage it. It was possible that a long time would pass before they spotted the White Whale. During that period, Starbuck would likely fall into open rebellion against Ahab’s authority unless some ordinary, sensible, situational influences were applied to him. Moreover, Ahab’s intense obsession with Moby Dick was most noticeably shown in his keen awareness that, for now, the hunt needed to be stripped of the strange and almost blasphemous imagination that surrounded it; that the full horror of the journey must remain hidden in the background (because few people can endure prolonged contemplation without action); and that when they were on their long night watches, his officers and crew needed to focus on things closer to them than Moby Dick. Though the wild crew had eagerly embraced the announcement of his quest, all sailors, regardless of their type, are somewhat unpredictable and unreliable—they are affected by the changing outer conditions and breathe in its unpredictability—and when committed to a distant and abstract pursuit, however promising of life and excitement in the end, it is essential to have immediate interests and tasks intervene to keep them mentally engaged for the final effort.

Nor was Ahab unmindful of another thing. In times of strong emotion mankind disdain all base considerations; but such times are evanescent. The permanent constitutional condition of the manufactured man, thought Ahab, is sordidness. Granting that the White Whale fully incites the hearts of this my savage crew, and playing round their savageness even breeds a certain generous knight-errantism in them, still, while for the love of it they give chase to Moby Dick, they must also have food for their more common, daily appetites. For even the high lifted and chivalric Crusaders of old times were not content to traverse two thousand miles of land to fight for their holy sepulchre, without committing burglaries, picking pockets, and gaining other pious perquisites by the way. Had they been strictly held to their one final and romantic object— that final and romantic object, too many would have turned from in disgust. I will not strip these men, thought Ahab, of all hopes of cash—aye, cash. They may scorn cash now; but let some months go by, and no perspective promise of it to them, and then this same quiescent cash all at once mutinying in them, this same cash would soon cashier Ahab.

Ahab was also aware of something else. In moments of intense emotion, people disregard all base motivations; but those moments are fleeting. Ahab thought that the lasting state of the manufactured man is one of greed. Although the White Whale stirs the hearts of this wild crew and even inspires a bit of noble knightly behavior in them, they still need to satisfy their everyday, common desires while pursuing Moby Dick. Even the high-minded Crusaders of the past weren't satisfied to travel two thousand miles to fight for their holy cause without engaging in theft, pickpocketing, and other dubious acts along the way. If they had been focused solely on that one final and romantic goal, many would have turned away in disgust. Ahab decided he wouldn’t take away these men’s hopes for cash—yes, cash. They might scoff at cash now; but if several months passed without any expectation of it, that dormant desire for cash would rise up in them, and suddenly, that desire would quickly undermine Ahab.

Nor was there wanting still another precautionary motive more related to Ahab personally. Having impulsively, it is probable, and perhaps somewhat prematurely revealed the prime but private purpose of the Pequod's voyage, Ahab was now entirely conscious that, in so doing, he had indirectly laid himself open to the unanswerable charge of usurpation; and with perfect impunity, both moral and legal, his crew if so disposed, and to that end competent, could refuse all further obedience to him, and even violently wrest from him the command. From even the barely hinted imputation of usurpation, and the possible consequences of such a suppressed impression gaining ground, Ahab must of course have been most anxious to protect himself. That protection could only consist in his own predominating brain and heart and hand, backed by a heedful, closely calculating attention to every minute atmospheric influence which it was possible for his crew to be subjected to.

Ahab had another reason for being cautious that was more personal. Having revealed the main but private goal of the Pequod's voyage, likely on impulse and maybe a bit too early, he was fully aware that he had opened himself up to accusations of usurpation. His crew could, without any moral or legal consequences, refuse to obey him and could even try to take command away from him if they wanted to. Ahab must have been very worried about the slightest hint of usurpation and the potential fallout from such an impression spreading. The only way he could protect himself was through his own dominant mind, heart, and hand, supported by a careful and calculated awareness of every small atmospheric effect that could influence his crew.

For all these reasons then, and others perhaps too analytic to be verbally developed here, Ahab plainly saw that he must still in a good degree continue true to the natural, nominal purpose of the Pequod's voyage; observe all customary usages; and not only that, but force himself to evince all his well known passionate interest in the general pursuit of his profession.

For all these reasons, and maybe some others that are too complex to explain here, Ahab clearly realized that he had to largely stay true to the original, stated purpose of the Pequod's voyage; follow all usual practices; and not only that, but also push himself to show his well-known intense passion for the general pursuit of his profession.

Be all this as it may, his voice was now often heard hailing the three mastheads and admonishing them to keep a bright look-out, and not omit reporting even a porpoise. This vigilance was not long without reward.

Be that as it may, his voice was now frequently heard calling out to the three mastheads and reminding them to keep a sharp lookout, and to report even a porpoise. This vigilance didn’t go unrewarded for long.

CHAPTER 47

The Mat-Maker

The Mat Creator

It was a cloudy, sultry afternoon; the seamen were lazily lounging about the decks, or vacantly gazing over into the lead-colored waters. Queequeg and I were mildly employed weaving what is called a sword-mat, for an additional lashing to our boat. So still and subdued and yet somehow preluding was all the scene, and such an incantation of revelry lurked in the air, that each silent sailor seemed resolved into his own invisible self.

It was a cloudy, muggy afternoon; the sailors were lazily hanging out on the decks or staring blankly into the lead-colored waters. Queequeg and I were casually working on weaving what’s called a sword-mat, for an extra lashing for our boat. The whole scene felt so calm and subdued, yet somehow it hinted at something more, and there was a hint of celebration in the air, making each quiet sailor seem lost in his own thoughts.

I was the attendant or page of Queequeg, while busy at the mat. As I kept passing and repassing the filling or woof of marline between the long yarns of the warp, using my own hand for the shuttle, and as Queequeg, standing sideways, ever and anon slid his heavy oaken sword between the threads, and idly looking off upon the water, carelessly and unthinkingly drove home every yarn; I say so strange a dreaminess did there then reign all over the ship and all over the sea, only broken by the intermitting dull sound of the sword, that it seemed as if this were the Loom of Time, and I myself were a shuttle mechanically weaving and weaving away at the Fates. There lay the fixed threads of the warp subject to but one single, ever returning, unchanging vibration, and that vibration merely enough to admit of the crosswise interblending of other threads with its own. This warp seemed necessity; and here, thought I, with my own hand I ply my own shuttle and weave my own destiny into these unalterable threads. Meantime, Queequeg's impulsive, indifferent sword, sometimes hitting the woof slantingly, or crookedly, or strongly, or weakly, as the case might be; and by this difference in the concluding blow producing a corresponding contrast in the final aspect of the completed fabric; this savage's sword, thought I, which thus finally shapes and fashions both warp and woof; this easy, indifferent sword must be chance— aye, chance, free will, and necessity—no wise incompatible— all interweavingly working together. The straight warp of necessity, not to be swerved from its ultimate course— its every alternating vibration, indeed, only tending to that; free will still free to ply her shuttle between given threads; and chance, though restrained in its play within the right lines of necessity, and sideways in its motions directed by free will, though thus prescribed to by both, chance by turns rules either, and has the last featuring blow at events.

I was the attendant or page of Queequeg while working at the mat. As I kept passing the filling of the marline between the long threads of the warp, using my own hand as the shuttle, and Queequeg, standing sideways, occasionally slid his heavy wooden sword between the threads, idly gazing out at the water, carelessly pushing each yarn into place; I noticed a strange dreaminess hanging over the ship and the sea. The only interruption was the dull sound of the sword hitting the threads, making it feel like this was the Loom of Time, and I was a shuttle mechanically weaving away at our Fates. The fixed threads of the warp seemed to represent necessity, and here I was, using my own hand to guide my shuttle and weave my destiny into these unchanging threads. Meanwhile, Queequeg's impulsive, indifferent sword sometimes struck the woof at an angle, crookedly, strongly, or weakly, and this difference in the final blow affected the final look of the completed fabric. I thought about this savage's sword that ultimately shapes both the warp and woof; this casual, indifferent sword must be chance—yes, chance, free will, and necessity—working together in a way that is not contradictory. The straight warp of necessity, unwavering in its course—its every alternating vibration only contributing to that; free will is still free to guide its shuttle among given threads; and chance, while limited in its movements to the lines of necessity and subtly directed by free will, can alternately control both and ultimately has the final impact on events.

Thus we were weaving and weaving away when I started at a sound so strange, long drawn, and musically wild and unearthly, that the ball of free will dropped from my hand, and I stood gazing up at the clouds whence that voice dropped like a wing. High aloft in the cross-trees was that mad Gay-Header, Tashtego. His body was reaching eagerly forward, his hand stretched out like a wand, and at brief sudden intervals he continued his cries. To be sure the same sound was that very moment perhaps being heard all over the seas, from hundreds of whalemen's look-outs perched as high in the air; but from few of those lungs could that accustomed old cry have derived such a marvellous cadence as from Tashtego the Indian's.

So we were busy weaving away when I was startled by a sound that was so strange, drawn out, and beautifully wild and otherworldly, that the ball of free will dropped from my hand, and I found myself staring up at the clouds where that voice seemed to descend like a wing. High up in the rigging was that crazy Gay-Header, Tashtego. His body leaned forward eagerly, his hand stretched out like a wand, and at brief, sudden intervals he kept calling out. Sure, that same sound was probably being heard all over the seas at that moment, from hundreds of whalemen’s lookout points perched high in the air; but few of those voices could have given that familiar old cry such a remarkable tone as Tashtego the Indian's.

As he stood hovering over you half suspended in air, so wildly and eagerly peering towards the horizon, you would have thought him some prophet or seer beholding the shadows of Fate, and by those wild cries announcing their coming.

As he hovered over you, partly suspended in the air, eagerly gazing toward the horizon, you might have thought he was some kind of prophet or seer, witnessing the shadows of Fate and announcing their arrival with those wild cries.

"There she blows! there! there! there! she blows! she blows!"

"There she blows! There! There! There! She blows! She blows!"

"Where-away?"

"Where to?"

"On the lee-beam, about two miles off! a school of them!"

"Off to the side, about two miles away! A group of them!"

Instantly all was commotion.

Suddenly there was chaos.

The Sperm Whale blows as a clock ticks, with the same undeviating and reliable uniformity. And thereby whalemen distinguish this fish from other tribes of his genus.

The sperm whale blows as a clock ticks, with the same steady and dependable consistency. This is how whalers identify this creature from other members of its family.

"There go flukes!" was now the cry from Tashtego; and the whales disappeared.

"There go the flukes!" was now the shout from Tashtego; and the whales vanished.

"Quick, steward!" cried Ahab. "Time! time!"

"Quick, steward!" Ahab shouted. "Time! Time!"

Dough-Boy hurried below, glanced at the watch, and reported the exact minute to Ahab.

Dough-Boy rushed downstairs, checked the watch, and told Ahab the exact time.

The ship was now kept away from the wind, and she went gently rolling before it. Tashtego reporting that the whales had gone down heading to leeward, we confidently looked to see them again directly in advance of our bows. For that singular craft at times evinced by the Sperm Whale when, sounding with his head in one direction, he nevertheless, while concealed beneath the surface, mills around, and swiftly swims off in the opposite quarter—this deceitfulness of his could not now be in action; for there was no reason to suppose that the fish seen by Tashtego had been in any way alarmed, or indeed knew at all of our vicinity. One of the men selected for shipkeepers—that is, those not appointed to the boats, by this time relieved the Indian at the main-mast head. The sailors at the fore and mizzen had come down; the line tubs were fixed in their places; the cranes were thrust out; the mainyard was backed, and the three boats swung over the sea like three samphire baskets over high cliffs. Outside of the bulwarks their eager crews with one hand clung to the rail, while one foot was expectantly poised on the gunwale. So look the long line of man-of-war's men about to throw themselves on board an enemy's ship.

The ship was now kept away from the wind, gently rolling before it. Tashtego reported that the whales had gone down heading downwind, and we confidently looked to see them again just ahead of our bow. For that unique trick sometimes displayed by the Sperm Whale, where it dives with its head facing one direction but, while hidden below the surface, swims off in the opposite direction—this deception couldn’t be happening now; there was no reason to think that the whales Tashtego saw were in any way alarmed or even aware of our presence. One of the crew members assigned to be shipkeepers—not those appointed to the boats—had by now taken over from the Indian at the mainmast. The sailors at the fore and mizzen sails had come down; the line tubs were secured in place; the cranes were extended; the main yard was backed, and the three boats hung over the sea like three samphire baskets over high cliffs. Outside the bulwarks, their eager crews clung to the rail with one hand while one foot rested expectantly on the gunwale. They looked like the long line of sailors about to board an enemy ship.

But at this critical instant a sudden exclamation was heard that took every eye from the whale. With a start all glared at dark Ahab, who was surrounded by five dusky phantoms that seemed fresh formed out of air.

But at that critical moment, a sudden shout was heard that drew everyone's attention away from the whale. With a start, they all stared at dark Ahab, who was surrounded by five shadowy figures that appeared to have just materialized out of thin air.

CHAPTER 48

The First Lowering

The First Lowering

The phantoms, for so they then seemed, were flitting on the other side of the deck, and, with a noiseless celerity, were casting loose the tackles and bands of the boat which swung there. This boat had always been deemed one of the spare boats, though technically called the captain's, on account of its hanging from the starboard quarter. The figure that now stood by its bows was tall and swart, with one white tooth evilly protruding from its steel-like lips. A rumpled Chinese jacket of black cotton funereally invested him, with wide black trowsers of the same dark stuff. But strangely crowning this ebonness was a glistening white plaited turban, the living hair braided and coiled round and round upon his head. Less swart in aspect, the companions of this figure were of that vivid, tiger-yellow complexion peculiar to some of the aboriginal natives of the Manillas;—a race notorious for a certain diabolism of subtilty, and by some honest white mariners supposed to be the paid spies and secret confidential agents on the water of the devil, their lord, whose counting-room they suppose to be elsewhere.

The shadows, as they appeared, were moving quickly on the other side of the deck, silently loosening the ropes and straps of the boat hanging there. This boat had always been considered one of the spare boats, even though it was technically called the captain's because it was suspended from the starboard side. The figure standing by its bow was tall and dark, with one white tooth unnervingly sticking out from its steel-like lips. He wore a wrinkled black cotton Chinese jacket that gave him a funeral vibe, along with loose black trousers made of the same dark fabric. But oddly contrasting with this darkness was a shiny white plaited turban, made from living hair braided and wrapped around his head. Less dark-skinned than this figure, his companions had a striking, tiger-yellow complexion typical of some of the native people from the Manillas—a group infamous for their cunning and, according to some honest white sailors, thought to be paid spies and secret agents of their lord, the devil, whose base they believe is located elsewhere.

While yet the wondering ship's company were gazing upon these strangers,
Ahab cried out to the white-turbaned old man at their head,
"All ready there, Fedallah?"

While the amazed crew was still staring at these strangers,
Ahab called out to the old man in the white turban at the front,
"All set over there, Fedallah?"

"Ready," was the half-hissed reply.

"Ready," was the whispered reply.

"Lower away then; d'ye hear?" shouting across the deck.
"Lower away there, I say."

"Lower it down then; do you hear me?" shouting across the deck.
"Lower it down over there, I'm telling you."

Such was the thunder of his voice, that spite of their amazement the men sprang over the rail; the sheaves whirled round in the blocks; with a wallow, the three boats dropped into the sea; while, with a dexterous, off-handed daring, unknown in any other vocation, the sailors, goat-like, leaped down the rolling ship's side into the tossed boats below.

Such was the power of his voice that, despite their astonishment, the men jumped over the railing; the bundles spun in the pulleys; with a splash, the three boats fell into the sea; while, with a casual, fearless skill that you wouldn’t find in any other job, the sailors, like goats, leaped down the swaying side of the ship into the choppy boats below.

Hardly had they pulled out from under the ship's lee, when a fourth keel, coming from the windward side, pulled round under the stern, and showed the five strangers rowing Ahab, who, standing erect in the stern, loudly hailed Starbuck, Stubb, and Flask, to spread themselves widely, so as to cover a large expanse of water. But with all their eyes again riveted upon the swart Fedallah and his crew, the inmates of the other boats obeyed not the command.

Hardly had they moved away from the shade of the ship when a fourth boat, coming from the windward side, swung around under the stern, revealing the five strangers rowing Ahab. Standing upright in the stern, he called out loudly to Starbuck, Stubb, and Flask, urging them to spread out widely to cover a larger area of water. However, all their attention was again fixed on the dark-skinned Fedallah and his crew, and the others in the boats did not follow his command.

"Captain Ahab?-" said Starbuck.

"Captain Ahab?" said Starbuck.

"Spread yourselves," cried Ahab; "give way, all four boats.
Thou, Flask, pull out more to leeward!"

"Spread out," shouted Ahab; "make way, all four boats.
You, Flask, row further to the side!"

"Aye, aye, sir," cheerily cried little King-Post, sweeping round his great steering oar. "Lay back!" addressing his crew. "There!—there!— there again! There she blows right ahead, boys!—lay back!

"Aye, aye, sir," shouted little King-Post cheerfully, swinging his big steering oar. "Lay back!" he called to his crew. "There!—there!—there again! There she blows straight ahead, boys!—lay back!

"Never heed yonder yellow boys, Archy."

"Don't pay any attention to those yellow guys, Archy."

"Oh, I don't mind'em, sir," said Archy; "I knew it all before now.
Didn't I hear 'em in the hold? And didn't I tell Cabaco here of it?
What say ye, Cabaco? They are stowaways, Mr. Flask."

"Oh, I don't mind them, sir," said Archy; "I knew it all before now.
Didn’t I hear them in the hold? And didn’t I tell Cabaco here about it?
What do you say, Cabaco? They are stowaways, Mr. Flask."

"Pull, pull, my fine hearts-alive; pull, my children; pull, my little ones," drawlingly and soothingly sighed Stubb to his crew, some of whom still showed signs of uneasiness. "Why don't you break your backbones, my boys? What is it you stare at? Those chaps in yonder boat? Tut! They are only five more hands come to help us never mind from where the more the merrier. Pull, then, do pull; never mind the brimstone devils are good fellows enough. So, so; there you are now; that's the stroke for a thousand pounds; that's the stroke to sweep the stakes! Hurrah for the gold cup of sperm oil, my heroes! Three cheers, men—all hearts alive! Easy, easy; don't be in a hurry— don't be in a hurry. Why don't you snap your oars, you rascals? Bite something, you dogs! So, so, so, then:—softly, softly! That's it—that's it! long and strong. Give way there, give way! The devil fetch ye, ye ragamuffin rapscallions; ye are all asleep. Stop snoring, ye sleepers, and pull. Pull, will ye? pull, can't ye? pull, won't ye? Why in the name of gudgeons and ginger-cakes don't ye pull?—pull and break something! pull, and start your eyes out! Here," whipping out the sharp knife from his girdle; "every mother's son of ye draw his knife, and pull with the blade between his teeth. That's it—that's it. Now ye do something; that looks like it, my steel-bits. Start her— start her, my silverspoons! Start her, marling-spikes!"

"Pull, pull, my lively hearts; pull, my kids; pull, my little ones," Stubb drawled soothingly to his crew, some of whom still looked uneasy. "Why don’t you push yourselves harder, guys? What are you staring at? Those guys in that boat over there? Come on! They're just five more hands here to help us—more the merrier. So pull, come on, pull; don’t mind the jokers—they're good enough. There you go; that’s the rhythm for a thousand bucks; that’s the rhythm to win it all! Cheers for the sperm oil trophy, my heroes! Three cheers, men—all hearts alive! Easy, easy; don’t rush—don’t rush. Why are you messing around, you scoundrels? Do something, you lazy dogs! So, so, so, now: softly, softly! That’s it—that’s it! Long and strong. Keep going, keep going! You better wake up, you ragged rascals; you’re all asleep. Stop snoring, you lazy ones, and pull. Pull, will you? Pull, can’t you? Pull, won’t you? Why in the world don’t you pull?—pull and break something! Pull, and give it your all! Here,” whipping out a sharp knife from his belt; “every one of you, grab your knife, and pull with the blade between your teeth. That’s it—that’s it. Now you’re doing something; that looks right, my crew. Start her—start her, my team! Get going, ropes!"

Stubb's exordium to his crew is given here at large, because he had rather a peculiar way of talking to them in general, and especially in inculcating the religion of rowing. But you must not suppose from this specimen of his sermonizings that he ever flew into downright passions with his congregation. Not at all; and therein consisted his chief peculiarity. He would say the most terrific things to his crew, in a tone so strangely compounded of fun and fury, and the fury seemed so calculated merely as a spice to the fun, that no oarsman could hear such queer invocations without pulling for dear life, and yet pulling for the mere joke of the thing. Besides he all the time looked so easy and indolent himself, so loungingly managed his steering-oar, and so broadly gaped— open-mouthed at times—that the mere sight of such a yawning commander, by sheer force of contrast, acted like a charm upon the crew. Then again, Stubb was one of those odd sort of humorists, whose jollity is sometimes so curiously ambiguous, as to put all inferiors on their guard in the matter of obeying them.

Stubb's introduction to his crew is included here in full because he had a unique way of addressing them in general, particularly when it came to instilling the importance of rowing. However, you shouldn't think that this example of his sermons means he ever got genuinely angry with his crew. Not at all; and that's what made him so distinctive. He would say the most outrageous things to his crew in a tone that was a strange mix of humor and anger, where the anger seemed just to add a kick to the humor, so that no rower could hear such odd remarks without rowing for all they were worth, all while finding it amusing. Plus, he always appeared so relaxed and lazy himself, managing his steering-oar with a nonchalant style and sometimes even gaping wide—open-mouthed—that just seeing such a yawning captain, in contrast, acted as a charm on the crew. Additionally, Stubb was one of those quirky humorists whose cheerfulness could sometimes be so intriguingly unclear that it kept everyone beneath him on their toes regarding how to obey him.

In obedience to a sign from Ahab, Starbuck was now pulling obliquely across Stubb's bow; and when for a minute or so the two boats were pretty near to each other, Stubb hailed the mate.

In response to a signal from Ahab, Starbuck was now crossing at an angle in front of Stubb's boat; and when the two boats were quite close to each other for a minute or so, Stubb called out to the mate.

"Mr. Starbuck! larboard boat there, ahoy! a word with ye, sir, if ye please!"

"Mr. Starbuck! Hey, the boat on the left, I need to speak with you, sir, if you don't mind!"

"Halloa!" returned Starbuck, turning round not a single inch as he spoke; still earnestly but whisperingly urging his crew; his face set like a flint from Stubb's.

"Hey!" replied Starbuck, not turning an inch as he spoke; still urgently but quietly encouraging his crew; his face set like stone from Stubb's.

"What think ye of those yellow boys, sir!

"What do you think of those yellow boys, sir!"

"Smuggled on board, somehow, before the ship sailed. (Strong, strong, boys!)" in a whisper to his crew, then speaking out loud again: "A sad business, Mr. Stubb! (seethe her, seethe her, my lads!) but never mind, Mr. Stubb, all for the best. Let all your crew pull strong, come what will. (Spring, my men, spring!) There's hogsheads of sperm ahead, Mr. Stubb, and that's what ye came for. (Pull, my boys!) Sperm, sperm's the play! This at least is duty; duty and profit hand in hand."

"Somehow smuggled on board before the ship set sail. (Keep it strong, boys!)" he whispered to his crew, then spoke out loud again: "It's a sad situation, Mr. Stubb! (Keep it up, my lads!) But don’t worry, Mr. Stubb, it’s all for the best. Let all your crew pull hard, whatever happens. (Let’s go, men, let’s go!) There’s plenty of sperm ahead, Mr. Stubb, and that’s what you’re here for. (Pull, guys!) Sperm, sperm is the goal! This is at least about duty; duty and profit go hand in hand."

"Aye, aye, I thought as much," soliloquized Stubb, when the boats diverged, "as soon as I clapt eye on 'em, I thought so. Aye, and that's what he went into the after hold for, so often, as Dough-Boy long suspected. They were hidden down there. The White Whale's at the bottom of it. Well, well, so be it! Can't be helped! All right! Give way men! It ain't the White Whale to-day! Give way!"

"Aye, aye, I figured that out," Stubb said to himself when the boats separated, "as soon as I laid eyes on them, I knew it. Yep, and that's why he kept going into the hold so often, just like Dough-Boy always suspected. They were hidden down there. The White Whale is the reason for all this. Well, well, it is what it is! Nothing we can do about it! All right! Row, guys! It's not the White Whale today! Row!"

Now the advent of these outlandish strangers at such a critical instant as the lowering of the boats from the deck, this had not unreasonably awakened a sort of superstitious amazement in some of the ship's company; but Archy's fancied discovery having some time previous got abroad among them, though indeed not credited then, this had in some small measure prepared them for the event. It took off the extreme edge of their wonder; and so what with all this and Stubb's confident way of accounting for their appearance, they were for the time freed from superstitious surmisings; though the affair still left abundant room for all manner of wild conjectures as to dark Ahab's precise agency in the matter from the beginning. For me, I silently recalled the mysterious shadows I had seen creeping on board the Pequod during the dim Nantucket dawn, as well as the enigmatical hintings of the unaccountable Elijah.

Now, the arrival of these strange newcomers at such a critical moment as the lowering of the boats from the deck had understandably sparked a kind of superstitious amazement among some of the crew. However, Archy's rumored discovery, which had circulated among them some time earlier—though not truly believed back then—had somewhat prepared them for this event. It lessened the intensity of their astonishment, and combined with Stubb's confident explanation for their appearance, they were momentarily free from superstitious speculations. Still, this situation left plenty of room for all kinds of wild theories about dark Ahab's exact involvement from the beginning. As for me, I silently remembered the mysterious shadows I had seen creeping on board the Pequod during the dim dawn in Nantucket, along with the cryptic hints from the enigmatic Elijah.

Meantime, Ahab, out of hearing of his officers, having sided the furthest to windward, was still ranging ahead of the other boats; a circumstance bespeaking how potent a crew was pulling him. Those tiger yellow creatures of his seemed all steel and whalebone; like five trip-hammers they rose and fell with regular strokes of strength, which periodically started the boat along the water like a horizontal burst boiler out of a Mississippi steamer. As for Fedallah, who was seen pulling the harpooneer oar, he had thrown aside his black jacket, and displayed his naked chest with the whole part of his body above the gunwale, clearly cut against the alternating depressions of the watery horizon; while at the other end of the boat Ahab, with one arm, like a fencer's, thrown half backward into the air, as if to counterbalance any tendency to trip; Ahab was seen steadily managing his steering oar as in a thousand boat lowerings ere the White Whale had torn him. All at once the outstretched arm gave a peculiar motion and then remained fixed, while the boat's five oars were seen simultaneously peaked. Boat and crew sat motionless on the sea. Instantly the three spread boats in the rear paused on their way. The whales had irregularly settled bodily down into the blue, thus giving no distantly discernible token of the movement, though from his closer vicinity Ahab had observed it.

Meanwhile, Ahab, out of earshot of his officers, had positioned himself furthest to windward and was still ahead of the other boats, showing how powerful his crew was. Those tiger-yellow guys seemed made of steel and whalebone; like five trip hammers, they rose and fell in strong, steady strokes, which occasionally sent the boat gliding over the water like a horizontal burst boiler from a Mississippi steamer. As for Fedallah, who was seen pulling the harpoon oar, he had discarded his black jacket and was showing off his bare chest, with the upper part of his body above the gunwale clearly outlined against the rising and falling water horizon. At the other end of the boat, Ahab had one arm raised as if he were a fencer, thrown back into the air to counterbalance any chance of tipping; Ahab was seen skillfully managing his steering oar just like in thousands of boat launches before the White Whale had torn him apart. Suddenly, his outstretched arm made a distinct motion and then stayed still, while the boat's five oars were raised at the same time. The boat and crew sat still on the sea. Instantly, the three boats behind them halted as well. The whales had irregularly settled deep into the blue, giving no visible sign of movement, though Ahab, being closer, had noticed it.

"Every man look out along his oars!" cried Starbuck. "Thou, Queequeg, stand up!"

"Every man, look out along your oars!" shouted Starbuck. "You, Queequeg, stand up!"

Nimbly springing up on the triangular raised box in the bow, the savage stood erect there, and with intensely eager eyes gazed off towards the spot where the chase had last been descried. Likewise upon the extreme stern of the boat where it was also triangularly platformed level with the gunwale, Starbuck himself was seen coolly and adroitly balancing himself to the jerking tossings of his chip of a craft, and silently eyeing the vast blue eye of the sea.

Nimbly jumping up on the triangular raised box at the front, the savage stood tall there, and with intensely eager eyes looked out towards the spot where the chase had last been seen. Similarly, at the back of the boat, which was also level and triangular, Starbuck was seen skillfully balancing himself against the swaying of his small craft, silently watching the vast blue expanse of the sea.

Not very far distant Flask's boat was also lying breathlessly still; its commander recklessly standing upon the top of the loggerhead, a stout sort of post rooted in the keel, and rising some two feet above the level of the stern platform. It is used for catching turns with the whale line. Its top is not more spacious than the palm of a man's hand, and standing upon such a base as that, Flask seemed perched at the mast-head of some ship which had sunk to all but her trucks. But little King-Post was small and short, and at the same time little King-Post was full of a large and tall ambition, so that this logger head stand-point of his did by no means satisfy King-Post.

Not too far away, Flask's boat was also sitting completely still; its captain recklessly standing on the loggerhead, a sturdy post anchored in the keel, rising about two feet above the stern platform. It’s used for securing the whale line. Its top is only as big as a man's hand, and standing on that, Flask looked like he was at the top of a mast on a ship that had sunk almost to its highest point. But little King-Post was small and short, yet at the same time, he was filled with big dreams and ambitions, so this loggerhead perch didn't satisfy King-Post at all.

"I can't see three seas off; tip us up an oar there, and let me onto that."

"I can't see three seas away; hand me an oar over there, and let me onto that."

Upon this, Daggoo, with either hand upon the gunwale to steady his way, swiftly slid aft, and then erecting himself volunteered his lofty shoulders for a pedestal.

Upon this, Daggoo, using both hands on the side of the boat to keep his balance, quickly moved to the back and then stood up, offering his tall shoulders as a platform.

"Good a mast-head as any, sir. Will you mount?"

"Good as any masthead, sir. Will you go up?"

"That I will, and thank ye very much, my fine fellow; only I wish you fifty feet taller."

"Sure thing, and thank you so much, my good friend; I just wish you were fifty feet taller."

Whereupon planting his feet firmly against two opposite planks of the boat, the gigantic negro, stooping a little, presented his flat palm to Flask's foot, and then putting Flask's hand on his hearse-plumed head and bidding him spring as he himself should toss, with one dexterous fling landed the little man high and dry on his shoulders. And here was Flask now standing, Daggoo with one lifted arm furnishing him with a breastband to lean against and steady himself by.

Whereupon, planting his feet firmly against two opposite sides of the boat, the huge Black man, bending a bit, offered his flat palm to Flask's foot. Then, he placed Flask's hand on his feathered head and told him to jump as he would toss him. With one swift motion, he lifted the little man high and dry onto his shoulders. And now here was Flask, standing, with Daggoo's lifted arm providing him a support to lean against and help steady himself.

At any time it is a strange sight to the tyro to see with what wondrous habitude of unconscious skill the whaleman will maintain an erect posture in his boat, even when pitched about by the most riotously perverse and cross-running seas. Still more strange to see him giddily perched upon the logger head itself, under such circumstances. But the sight of little Flask mounted upon gigantic Daggoo was yet more curious; for sustaining himself with a cool, indifferent, easy, unthought of, barbaric majesty, the noble negro to every roll of the sea harmoniously rolled his fine form. On his broad back, flaxen-haired Flask seemed a snow-flake. The bearer looked nobler than the rider. Though truly vivacious, tumultuous, ostentatious little Flask would now and then stamp with impatience; but not one added heave did he thereby give to the negro's lordly chest. So have I seen Passion and Vanity stamping the living magnanimous earth, but the earth did not alter her tides and her seasons for that.

At any time, it’s a strange sight for a beginner to see how effortlessly the whaleman maintains an upright posture in his boat, even when tossed around by the most wildly chaotic and unpredictable seas. It's even stranger to see him balance precariously on the loggerhead itself in those conditions. But the sight of little Flask sitting on top of gigantic Dagoo was even more impressive; the noble black man kept his balance with a cool, indifferent, relaxed, and almost regal grace, rolling with the motion of the sea in perfect harmony. On his broad back, the flaxen-haired Flask looked like a snowflake. The bearer seemed grander than the rider. Although the lively, showy little Flask would occasionally stamp his feet in frustration, it didn’t add any extra movement to the strong chest of the noble man. It reminded me of how Passion and Vanity can stomp on the grand, living earth, yet the earth doesn’t change its tides and seasons because of that.

Meanwhile Stubb, the third mate, betrayed no such far-gazing solicitudes. The whales might have made one of their regular soundings, not a temporary dive from mere fright; and if that were the case, Stubb, as his wont in such cases, it seems, was resolved to solace the languishing interval with his pipe. He withdrew it from his hatband, where he always wore it aslant like a feather. He loaded it, and rammed home the loading with his thumb-end; but hardly had he ignited his match across the rough sandpaper of his hand, when Tashtego, his harpooneer, whose eyes had been setting to windward like two fixed stars, suddenly dropped like light from his erect attitude to his seat, crying out in a quick phrensy of hurry, "Down, down all, and give way!—there they are!"

Meanwhile, Stubb, the third mate, showed no signs of worry. The whales might have just been taking their usual breaths, not diving because they were scared; and if that was the case, Stubb, as he often did, decided to pass the time with his pipe. He took it from his hatband, where he always wore it at an angle like a feather. He loaded it and packed the tobacco down with his thumb; but just as he struck the match on the rough skin of his hand, Tashtego, his harpooneer, whose eyes had been scanning the horizon like fixed stars, suddenly dropped from his standing position to his seat, shouting in a rush, "Down, down everyone, and get ready!—there they are!"

To a landsman, no whale, nor any sign of a herring, would have been visible at that moment; nothing but a troubled bit of greenish white water, and thin scattered puffs of vapor hovering over it, and suffusingly blowing off to leeward, like the confused scud from white rolling billows. The air around suddenly vibrated and tingled, as it were, like the air over intensely heated plates of iron. Beneath this atmospheric waving and curling, and partially beneath a thin layer of water, also, the whales were swimming. Seen in advance of all the other indications, the puffs of vapor they spouted, seemed their forerunning couriers and detached flying outriders.

To someone on land, no whale or even a hint of a herring would have been visible at that moment; just a swirl of troubled greenish-white water and wispy puffs of vapor hovering above it, drifting gently downwind like the scattered foam from white, rolling waves. Suddenly, the air around vibrated and tingled, much like the air over hot iron plates. Underneath this shifting atmosphere and a thin layer of water, the whales were swimming. The puffs of vapor they released, appearing before any other signs, seemed like their announcing messengers and roaming scouts.

All four boats were now in keen pursuit of that one spot of troubled water and air. But it bade far to outstrip them; it flew on and on, as a mass of interblending bubbles borne down a rapid stream from the hills.

All four boats were now eagerly chasing that one patch of choppy water and air. But it seemed to speed far ahead of them; it raced on and on, like a bunch of intermingling bubbles carried down a fast-flowing stream from the hills.

"Pull, pull, my good boys," said Starbuck, in the lowest possible but intensest concentrated whisper to his men; while the sharp fixed glance from his eyes darted straight ahead of the bow, almost seemed as two visible needles in two unerring binnacle compasses. He did not say much to his crew, though, nor did his crew say anything to him. Only the silence of the boat was at intervals startlingly pierced by one of his peculiar whispers, now harsh with command, now soft with entreaty.

"Pull, pull, my good boys," Starbuck said in a low but intense whisper to his men, while his sharp, focused gaze shot straight ahead of the bow, almost like two visible needles in two steady compasses. He didn't say much to his crew, and they didn't say much to him either. The silence of the boat was occasionally broken by one of his unique whispers, sometimes commanding and harsh, other times soft and pleading.

How different the loud little King-Post. "Sing out and say something, my hearties. Roar and pull, my thunderbolts! Beach me, beach me on their black backs, boys; only do that for me, and I'll sign over to you my Martha's Vineyard plantation, boys; including wife and children, boys. Lay me on—lay me on! O Lord, Lord! but I shall go stark, staring mad! See! see that white water!" And so shouting, he pulled his hat from his head, and stamped up and down on it; then picking it up, flirted it far off upon the sea; and finally fell to rearing and plunging in the boat's stern like a crazed colt from the prairie.

How different the noisy little King-Post. "Shout out and say something, my friends. Roar and pull, my thunderbolts! Beach me, beach me on their dark backs, guys; just do that for me, and I’ll hand over my Martha's Vineyard plantation to you, including my wife and kids. Lay me on—lay me on! Oh Lord! I’m going to go completely crazy! Look! Look at that white water!" And shouting this, he ripped his hat off, stomped on it; then picked it up and tossed it far out into the sea; and finally began rearing and plunging at the back of the boat like a wild colt from the prairie.

"Look at that chap now," philosophically drawled Stubb, who, with his unlighted short pipe, mechanically retained between his teeth, at a short distance, followed after—"He's got fits, that Flask has. Fits? yes, give him fits—that's the very word—pitch fits into 'em. Merrily, merrily, hearts-alive. Pudding for supper, you know;— merry's the word. Pull, babes—pull, sucklings—pull, all. But what the devil are you hurrying about? Softly, softly, and steadily, my men. Only pull, and keep pulling; nothing more. Crack all your backbones, and bite your knives in two—that's all. Take it easy—why don't ye take it easy, I say, and burst all your livers and lungs!"

"Look at that guy now," Stubb said with a laid-back tone, his unlit short pipe resting between his teeth as he followed behind at a distance. "He’s having a fit, that Flask. Fits? Yeah, let him have fits—that’s exactly the phrase—just toss him into it. Light-hearted, light-hearted, keep the spirits up. Pudding for dinner, you know;— cheerful is the vibe. Pull, kids—pull, little ones—pull, everyone. But what’s the rush? Easy does it, my crew. Just pull, and keep pulling; nothing more. Break your backs and chew your knives in half—that’s it. Chill out—why don’t you take it easy, I ask, and tear your livers and lungs apart!"

But what it was that inscrutable Ahab said to that tiger-yellow crew of his—these were words best omitted here; for you live under the blessed light of the evangelical land. Only the infidel sharks in the audacious seas may give ear to such words, when, with tornado brow, and eyes of red murder, and foam-glued lips, Ahab leaped after his prey.

But what that mysterious Ahab said to his crew dressed in tiger-yellow—those words are better left unsaid here; you live under the blessed light of a righteous land. Only the heartless sharks in the daring seas might listen to such words, as Ahab chased his prey with a stormy brow, red eyes filled with rage, and lips frothing with desperation.

Meanwhile, all the boats tore on. The repeated specific allusions of Flask to "that whale," as he called the fictitious monster which he declared to be incessantly tantalizing his boat's bow with its tail—these allusions of his were at times so vivid and life-like, that they would cause some one or two of his men to snatch a fearful look over his shoulder. But this was against all rule; for the oarsmen must put out their eyes, and ram a skewer through their necks; usages announcing that they must have no organs but ears; and no limbs but arms, in these critical moments.

Meanwhile, all the boats raced on. Flask's constant, specific references to "that whale," as he called the imaginary creature that he claimed was constantly teasing the front of his boat with its tail—his comments were sometimes so vivid and realistic that they made one or two of his crew glance back in fear. But this was against all rules; the rowers had to keep their eyes straight ahead and avoid looking back; the rules stated they should have no senses but hearing and no limbs but arms during these critical moments.

It was a sight full of quick wonder and awe! The vast swells of the omnipotent sea; the surging, hollow roar they made, as they rolled along the eight gunwales, like gigantic bowls in a boundless bowling-green; the brief suspended agony of the boat, as it would tip for an instant on the knife-like edge of the sharper waves, that almost seemed threatening to cut it in two; the sudden profound dip into the watery glens and hollows; the keen spurrings and goadings to gain the top of the opposite hill; the headlong, sled-like slide down its other side;—all these, with the cries of the headsmen and harpooneers, and the shuddering gasps of the oarsmen, with the wondrous sight of the ivory Pequod bearing down upon her boats with outstretched sails, like a wild hen after her screaming brood;—all this was thrilling. Not the raw recruit, marching from the bosom of his wife into the fever heat of his first battle; not the dead man's ghost encountering the first unknown phantom in the other world;— neither of these can feel stranger and stronger emotions than that man does, who for the first time finds himself pulling into the charmed, churned circle of the hunted sperm whale.

It was a sight full of quick wonder and awe! The vast swells of the immense sea; the surging, hollow roar they made as they rolled along the edges of the boat, like gigantic bowls in an endless bowling green; the brief, suspended agony of the boat as it tipped for a moment on the sharp edge of the higher waves, which almost seemed ready to split it in two; the sudden deep plunge into the watery valleys and dips; the urgent pushes to reach the top of the opposite wave; the wild, sled-like slide down its other side;—all of this, along with the shouts of the crew and harpooners, and the nervous gasps of the rowers, coupled with the amazing sight of the ivory Pequod rushing toward her boats with sails outstretched, like a frantic hen after her screaming chicks;—all of it was exhilarating. Not the inexperienced soldier, marching from his mother's arms into the blazing heat of his first battle; not the ghost of a dead man meeting the first unknown spirit in the afterlife;—neither of these can experience stranger and stronger emotions than that man does, who for the first time finds himself entering into the magical, turbulent circle of the hunted sperm whale.

The dancing white water made by the chase was now becoming more and more visible, owing to the increasing darkness of the dun cloud-shadows flung upon the sea. The jets of vapor no longer blended, but tilted everywhere to right and left; the whales seemed separating their wakes. The boats were pulled more apart; Starbuck giving chase to three whales running dead to leeward. Our sail was now set, and, with the still rising wind, we rushed along; the boat going with such madness through the water, that the lee oars could scarcely be worked rapidly enough to escape being torn from the row-locks.

The dancing white water created by the chase was becoming more visible, thanks to the deepening shadows of the dark clouds cast over the sea. The sprays of water were no longer merging but were spraying out to the sides; the whales appeared to be separating their paths. The boats were drifting farther apart, with Starbuck pursuing three whales that were heading downwind. Our sail was up, and with the wind picking up, we sped along; the boat moved so quickly through the water that the leeward oars could barely be handled fast enough to avoid being ripped out of the row-locks.

Soon we were running through a suffusing wide veil of mist; neither ship nor boat to be seen.

Soon we were sprinting through a thick blanket of mist; no ship or boat in sight.

"Give way, men," whispered Starbuck, drawing still further aft the sheet of his sail; "there is time to kill a fish yet before the squall comes. There's white water again!—close to! Spring!"

"Make way, guys," whispered Starbuck, pulling the sheet of his sail even further back; "we still have time to catch a fish before the storm hits. There's white water again!—right up close! Spring!"

Soon after, two cries in quick succession on each side of us denoted that the other boats had got fast; but hardly were they overheard, when with a lightning-like hurtling whisper Starbuck said: "Stand up!" and Queequeg, harpoon in hand, sprang to his feet.

Soon after, two shouts in quick succession on either side of us indicated that the other boats had hooked their prey; but hardly were they heard when, in a swift whisper, Starbuck said, "Get up!" and Queequeg, harpoon in hand, jumped to his feet.

Though not one of the oarsmen was then facing the life and death peril so close to them ahead, yet with their eyes on the intense countenance of the mate in the stern of the boat, they knew that the imminent instant had come; they heard, too, an enormous wallowing sound as of fifty elephants stirring in their litter. Meanwhile the boat was still booming through the mist, the waves curling and hissing around us like the erected crests of enraged serpents.

Though none of the oarsmen were facing the life-and-death danger right in front of them, they could tell from the intense expression on the mate’s face in the back of the boat that the moment had arrived; they also heard a massive rumbling sound like fifty elephants stirring in their bedding. Meanwhile, the boat was still crashing through the mist, the waves curling and hissing around us like the raised heads of angry serpents.

"That's his hump. There, there, give it to him!" whispered Starbuck.

"That's his hump. There, there, give it to him!" whispered Starbuck.

A short rushing sound leaped out of the boat; it was the darted iron of Queequeg. Then all in one welded commotion came an invisible push from astern, while forward the boat seemed striking on a ledge; the sail collapsed and exploded; a gush of scalding vapor shot up near by; something rolled and tumbled like an earthquake beneath us. The whole crew were half suffocated as they were tossed helter-skelter into the white curdling cream of the squall. Squall, whale, and harpoon had all blended together; and the whale, merely grazed by the iron, escaped.

A short rushing sound shot out of the boat; it was Queequeg’s harpoon. Then, all at once, there was an invisible push from behind, while the boat seemed to hit a ledge in front; the sail collapsed and burst; a burst of scalding steam shot up nearby; something rolled and tumbled like an earthquake underneath us. The whole crew was half suffocated as they were thrown chaotically into the white, frothy chaos of the storm. The squall, whale, and harpoon all merged together; and the whale, only nicked by the iron, got away.

Though completely swamped, the boat was nearly unharmed. Swimming round it we picked up the floating oars, and lashing them across the gunwale, tumbled back to our places. There we sat up to our knees in the sea, the water covering every rib and plank, so that to our downward gazing eyes the suspended craft seemed a coral boat grown up to us from the bottom of the ocean.

Though completely overwhelmed, the boat was almost fine. Swimming around it, we grabbed the floating oars and tied them across the edge, then clambered back to our spots. There we sat with the water up to our knees, covering every rib and plank, so that to our downward gazing eyes, the suspended craft looked like a coral boat that had grown up from the ocean floor.

The wind increased to a howl; the waves dashed their bucklers together; the whole squall roared, forked, and crackled around us like a white fire upon the prairie, in which unconsumed, we were burning; immortal in these jaws of death! In vain we hailed the other boats; as well roar to the live coals down the chimney of a flaming furnace as hail those boats in that storm. Meanwhile the driving scud, rack, and mist, grew darker with the shadows of night; no sign of the ship could be seen. The rising sea forbade all attempts to bale out the boat. The oars were useless as propellers, performing now the office of life-preservers. So, cutting the lashing of the waterproof match keg, after many failures Starbuck contrived to ignite the lamp in the lantern; then stretching it on a waif pole, handed it to Queequeg as the standard-bearer of this forlorn hope. There, then, he sat, holding up that imbecile candle in the heart of that almighty forlornness. There, then, he sat, the sign and symbol of a man without faith, hopelessly holding up hope in the midst of despair.

The wind picked up to a howl; the waves crashed together like shields; the whole storm roared, forked, and crackled around us like a white fire on the prairie, where we were burning without being consumed; immortal in these jaws of death! We called out to the other boats in vain; it was as pointless as trying to shout at the live coals in the chimney of a blazing furnace. Meanwhile, the driving rain, mist, and clouds grew darker with the approaching night; there was no sign of the ship. The rising sea made it impossible to bail out the boat. The oars were useless as propellers, now serving only as life preservers. So, after many attempts, Starbuck managed to light the lamp in the lantern by cutting the lashing of the waterproof match keg; then he raised it on a makeshift pole and handed it to Queequeg as the standard-bearer of this desperate hope. There he sat, holding up that feeble candle amidst overwhelming despair. There he sat, the sign and symbol of a man without faith, hopelessly holding up hope in the face of despair.

Wet, drenched through, and shivering cold, despairing of ship or boat, we lifted up our eyes as the dawn came on. The mist still spread over the sea, the empty lantern lay crushed in the bottom of the boat. Suddenly Queequeg started to his feet, hollowing his hand to his ear. We all heard a faint creaking, as of ropes and yards hitherto muffled by the storm. The sound came nearer and nearer; the thick mists were dimly parted by a huge, vague form. Affrighted, we all sprang into the sea as the ship at last loomed into view, bearing right down upon us within a distance of not much more than its length.

Wet, soaked through, and shivering cold, with no hopes of a ship or boat, we looked up as dawn approached. The mist still hung over the sea, and the empty lantern lay smashed at the bottom of the boat. Suddenly, Queequeg jumped to his feet, cupping his hand to his ear. We all heard a faint creaking sound, like ropes and sails that had been muffled by the storm. The sound grew closer and closer; the thick mist parted slightly to reveal a huge, vague shape. Terrified, we all jumped into the sea as the ship finally came into view, bearing down on us, not much farther away than its own length.

Floating on the waves we saw the abandoned boat, as for one instant it tossed and gaped beneath the ship's bows like a chip at the base of a cataract; and then the vast hull rolled over it, and it was seen no more till it came up weltering astern. Again we swam for it, were dashed against it by the seas, and were at last taken up and safely landed on board. Ere the squall came close to, the other boats had cut loose from their fish and returned to the ship in good time. The ship had given us up, but was still cruising, if haply it might light upon some token of our perishing,— an oar or a lance pole.

Floating on the waves, we spotted the abandoned boat. For a brief moment, it bobbed and gaped beneath the ship's bow like a splinter at the base of a waterfall; then the huge hull rolled over it, and it disappeared until it reappeared, swirling behind us. We swam towards it again, were slammed against it by the waves, and finally got picked up and safely brought on board. Before the storm hit, the other boats had cut loose from their catch and returned to the ship in time. The ship had given us up but continued to search, hoping to find something that showed we had perished—a paddle or a spear.

CHAPTER 49

The Hyena

The Hyena

There are certain queer times and occasions in this strange mixed affair we call life when a man takes this whole universe for a vast practical joke, though the wit thereof he but dimly discerns, and more than suspects that the joke is at nobody's expense but his own. However, nothing dispirits, and nothing seems worth while disputing. He bolts down all events, all creeds, and beliefs, and persuasions, all hard things visible and invisible, never mind how knobby; as an ostrich of potent digestion gobbles down bullets and gun flints. And as for small difficulties and worryings, prospects of sudden disaster, peril of life and limb; all these, and death itself, seem to him only sly, good-natured hits, and jolly punches in the side bestowed by the unseen and unaccountable old joker. That odd sort of wayward mood I am speaking of, comes over a man only in some time of extreme tribulation; it comes in the very midst of his earnestness, so that what just before might have seemed to him a thing most momentous, now seems but a part of the general joke. There is nothing like the perils of whaling to breed this free and easy sort of genial, desperado philosophy; and with it I now regarded this whole voyage of the Pequod, and the great White Whale its object.

There are certain strange times and situations in this weird mix we call life when a person sees the whole universe as a massive practical joke, even if he only vaguely grasps the humor and suspects that the joke is really just on him. Still, nothing gets him down, and nothing seems worth arguing over. He swallows down all events, beliefs, and arguments, all the tough things, visible and invisible, no matter how rough they are; just like an ostrich with a strong stomach gobbles up bullets and flint. As for small troubles, worries, sudden disasters, and threats to life and limb; all these, including death itself, appear to him as just friendly jabs and cheerful pokes from an unseen prankster. This weird, unpredictable mood I’m talking about strikes a person only in times of extreme hardship; it arrives right in the middle of his seriousness so that what just moments ago seemed incredibly important now feels like just part of the bigger joke. There’s nothing quite like the dangers of whaling to create this relaxed, easygoing kind of cheerful, reckless philosophy; and with that, I now looked at this entire journey of the Pequod and the great White Whale we aimed to catch.

"Queequeg," said I, when they had dragged me, the last man, to the deck, and I was still shaking myself in my jacket to fling off the water; "Queequeg, my fine friend, does this sort of thing often happen?" Without much emotion, though soaked through just like me, he gave me to understand that such things did often happen.

"Queequeg," I said, when they had pulled me, the last man, onto the deck, and I was still shaking myself in my jacket to get rid of the water; "Queequeg, my good friend, does this kind of thing happen often?" Without showing much emotion, even though he was soaked just like me, he let me know that these things did happen quite often.

"Mr. Stubb," said I, turning to that worthy, who, buttoned up in his oil-jacket, was now calmly smoking his pipe in the rain; "Mr. Stubb, I think I have heard you say that of all whalemen you ever met, our chief mate, Mr. Starbuck, is by far the most careful and prudent. I suppose then, that going plump on a flying whale with your sail set in a foggy squall is the height of a whaleman's discretion?"

"Mr. Stubb," I said, turning to the good man, who was bundled up in his oil jacket, calmly smoking his pipe in the rain. "Mr. Stubb, I think I heard you say that of all the whalemen you've met, our chief mate, Mr. Starbuck, is definitely the most careful and sensible. So, I guess charging straight at a flying whale with your sail up in a foggy storm is the ultimate test of a whaleman's judgment?"

"Certain. I've lowered for whales from a leaking ship in a gale off Cape Horn."

"Sure. I've rescued whales from a leaking ship in a storm off Cape Horn."

"Mr. Flask," said I, turning to little King-Post, who was standing close by; "you are experienced in these things, and I am not. Will you tell me whether it is an unalterable law in this fishery, Mr. Flask, for an oarsman to break his own back pulling himself back-foremost into death's jaws?"

"Mr. Flask," I said, turning to little King-Post, who was standing nearby; "you know a lot about this, and I don't. Can you tell me if it's a fixed rule in this fishery, Mr. Flask, for an oarsman to hurt himself while pulling himself backward into the jaws of death?"

"Can't you twist that smaller?" said Flask. "Yes, that's the law. I should like to see a boat's crew backing water up to a whale face foremost. Ha, ha! the whale would give them squint for squint, mind that!"

"Can't you make that smaller?" Flask said. "Yeah, that's the rule. I'd love to see a boat crew trying to back up to a whale head-on. Ha, ha! The whale would give them a hard time, just so you know!"

Here then, from three impartial witnesses, I had a deliberate statement of the entire case. Considering, therefore, that squalls and capsizings in the water and consequent bivouacks on the deep, were matters of common occurrence in this kind of life; considering that at the superlatively critical instant of going on to the whale I must resign my life into the hands of him who steered the boat— oftentimes a fellow who at that very moment is in his impetuousness upon the point of scuttling the craft with his own frantic stampings; considering that the particular disaster to our own particular boat was chiefly to be imputed to Starbuck's driving on to his whale almost in the teeth of a squall, and considering that Starbuck, notwithstanding, was famous for his great heedfulness in the fishery; considering that I belonged to this uncommonly prudent Starbuck's boat; and finally considering in what a devil's chase I was implicated, touching the White Whale: taking all things together, I say, I thought I might as well go below and make a rough draft of my will. "Queequeg," said I, "come along, you shall be my lawyer, executor, and legatee."

Here, from three unbiased witnesses, I got a clear statement of the whole situation. Given that rough weather and capsizing in the sea, along with the resulting overnight stays on the water, were common in this line of work; given that at the most critical moment of going after the whale, I had to put my life in the hands of the person steering the boat—often someone who, at that very moment, might be recklessly endangering us with their frantic actions; given that the specific disaster that happened to our boat was mainly due to Starbuck's decision to chase a whale almost directly into a storm, and given that Starbuck was known for being very careful in the fishery; considering I was on this exceptionally cautious Starbuck's boat; and finally, considering the wild chase I was involved in regarding the White Whale: putting it all together, I decided it was best to go below and draft a rough version of my will. "Queequeg," I said, "come here, you can be my lawyer

It may seem strange that of all men sailors should be tinkering at their last wills and testaments, but there are no people in the world more fond of that diversion. This was the fourth time in my nautical life that I had done the same thing. After the ceremony was concluded upon the present occasion, I felt all the easier; a stone was rolled away from my heart. Besides, all the days I should now live would be as good as the days that Lazarus lived after his resurrection; a supplementary clean gain of so many months or weeks as the case may be. I survived myself; my death and burial were locked up in my chest. I looked round me tranquilly and contentedly, like a quiet ghost with a clean conscience sitting inside the bars of a snug family vault.

It might seem odd that sailors are often writing their wills, but no group of people enjoys this pastime more. This was the fourth time in my sailing career that I had done the same thing. After the ceremony was over this time, I felt a lot lighter; a weight had been lifted from my heart. Plus, all the days I had left to live would be as good as the days Lazarus lived after he came back to life; an extra bonus of so many months or weeks, depending on how it played out. I had essentially outlived myself; my death and burial were tucked away in my chest. I looked around, calm and satisfied, like a serene ghost with a clear conscience resting inside the cozy confines of a family tomb.

Now then, thought I, unconsciously rolling up the sleeves of my frock, here goes for a cool, collected dive at death and destruction, and the devil fetch the hindmost.

Now then, I thought, unconsciously rolling up the sleeves of my dress, here goes for a calm, focused dive into danger and chaos, and let the devil take the last one standing.

CHAPTER 50

Ahab's Boat and Crew. Fedallah

Ahab's Ship and Crew. Fedallah

"Who would have thought it, Flask!" cried Stubb; "if I had but one leg you would not catch me in a boat, unless maybe to stop the plug-hole with my timber toe. Oh! he's a wonderful old man!"

"Who would have guessed it, Flask!" shouted Stubb; "if I only had one leg, you wouldn't catch me in a boat, unless maybe to block the hole with my wooden toe. Oh! he's an amazing old man!"

"I don't think it so strange, after all, on that account," said Flask. "If his leg were off at the hip, now, it would be a different thing. That would disable him; but he has one knee, and good part of the other left, you know."

"I don't think it's that weird, really," said Flask. "If his leg were missing at the hip, that would be a different story. That would really hold him back; but he has one knee and most of the other one still, you know."

"I don't know that, my little man; I never yet saw him kneel."

"I don't know that, my little guy; I've never seen him kneel."

Among whale-wise people it has often been argued whether, considering the paramount importance of his life to the success of the voyage, it is right for a whaling captain to jeopardize that life in the active perils of the chase. So Tamerlane's soldiers often argued with tears in their eyes, whether that invaluable life of his ought to be carried into the thickest of the fight.

Among knowledgeable people about whales, there’s often a debate about whether, given how crucial his life is to the success of the journey, it’s appropriate for a whaling captain to put that life at risk in the dangers of the hunt. Similarly, Tamerlane's soldiers often argued with tears in their eyes about whether his invaluable life should be put into the heart of the battle.

But with Ahab the question assumed a modified aspect. Considering that with two legs man is but a hobbling wight in all times of danger; considering that the pursuit of whales is always under great and extraordinary difficulties; that every individual moment, indeed, then comprises a peril; under these circumstances is it wise for any maimed man to enter a whale-boat in the hunt? As a general thing, the joint-owners of the Pequod must have plainly thought not.

But with Ahab, the situation took on a different perspective. Considering that a man with two legs is just a stumbling figure in every danger, and that hunting whales always comes with huge and unusual challenges, where every single moment is risky, is it smart for any injured person to get into a whale boat for the hunt? Generally, the co-owners of the Pequod must have clearly believed it wasn’t.

Ahab well knew that although his friends at home would think little of his entering a boat in certain comparatively harmless vicissitudes of the chase, for the sake of being near the scene of action and giving his orders in person, yet for Captain Ahab to have a boat actually apportioned to him as a regular headsman in the hunt—above all for Captain Ahab to be supplied with five extra men, as that same boat's crew, he well knew that such generous conceits never entered the heads of the owners of the Pequod. Therefore he had not solicited a boat's crew from them, nor had he in any way hinted his desires on that head. Nevertheless he had taken private measures of his own touching all that matter. Until Cabaco's published discovery, the sailors had little foreseen it, though to be sure when, after being a little while out of port, all hands had concluded the customary business of fitting the whaleboats for service; when some time after this Ahab was now and then found bestirring himself in the matter of making thole-pins with his own hands for what was thought to be one of the spare boats, and even solicitously cutting the small wooden skewers, which when the line is running out are pinned over the groove in the bow: when all this was observed in him, and particularly his solicitude in having an extra coat of sheathing in the bottom of the boat, as if to make it better withstand the pointed pressure of his ivory limb; and also the anxiety he evinced in exactly shaping the thigh board, or clumsy cleat, as it is sometimes called, the horizontal piece in the boat's bow for bracing the knee against in darting or stabbing at the whale; when it was observed how often he stood up in that boat with his solitary knee fixed in the semi-circular depression in the cleat, and with the carpenter's chisel gouged out a little here and straightened it a little there; all these things, I say, had awakened much interest and curiosity at the time. But almost everybody supposed that this particular preparative heedfulness in Ahab must only be with a view to the ultimate chase of Moby Dick; for he had already revealed his intention to hunt that mortal monster in person. But such a supposition did by no means involve the remotest suspicion as to any boat's crew being assigned to that boat.

Ahab knew well that while his friends back home might not think much of him getting into a boat during certain relatively harmless situations in the hunt, just to be closer to the action and give orders himself, for Captain Ahab to actually have a boat assigned to him as a regular leader in the hunt—especially for him to be given five extra men as that boat's crew—was something he knew the owners of the Pequod would never consider. So, he hadn’t asked them for a crew, nor had he hinted at his wishes for one. Still, he had taken his own private steps regarding the matter. Until Cabaco's announcement, the sailors had not seen it coming, although once they had set sail and completed the usual tasks of preparing the whaleboats for use, Ahab was occasionally seen working on making thole-pins for what was believed to be one of the spare boats, even carefully cutting the small wooden skewers used to secure the line as it ran out over the bow. Observing how he was concerned about adding an extra layer of sheathing to the bottom of the boat, presumably to protect against the pressure of his ivory leg, and his meticulous shaping of the thigh board—a horizontal piece in the boat's bow for bracing the knee when darting at a whale—sparked a lot of interest and curiosity. People noticed how often he stood in that boat with his knee fitted into the special groove, using a carpenter's chisel to make little adjustments here and there. All these actions intrigued many at the time. Most figured Ahab’s careful preparations must be solely for the eventual pursuit of Moby Dick, since he had already expressed his desire to hunt that legendary beast himself. However, this thought did not lead anyone to suspect that a crew would actually be assigned to that boat.

Now, with the subordinate phantoms, what wonder remained soon waned away; for in a whaler wonders soon wane. Besides, now and then such unaccountable odds and ends of strange nations come up from the unknown nooks and ash-holes of the earth to man these floating outlaws of whalers; and the ships themselves often pick up such queer castaway creatures found tossing about the open sea on planks, bits of wreck, oars, whaleboats, canoes, blown-off Japanese junks, and what not; that Beelzebub himself might climb up the side and step down into the cabin to chat with the captain, and it would not create any unsubduable excitement in the forecastle.

Now, with the ghostly crew members, any sense of wonder quickly faded; because in a whaler, wonder doesn't last long. Plus, every now and then, bizarre odds and ends from strange nations drift up from the hidden corners and refuse of the earth to crew these outlaw whalers; and the ships themselves often rescue odd castaway creatures found floating in the open sea on planks, pieces of wreckage, oars, whaleboats, canoes, blown-off Japanese junks, and other things; so much so that even Beelzebub himself could climb aboard and drop into the cabin to chat with the captain, and it wouldn't stir up any overwhelming excitement in the crew quarters.

But be all this as it may, certain it is that while the subordinate phantoms soon found their place among the crew, though still as it were somehow distinct from them, yet that hair-turbaned Fedallah remained a muffled mystery to the last. Whence he came in a mannerly world like this, by what sort of unaccountable tie he soon evinced himself to be linked with Ahab's peculiar fortunes; nay, so far as to have some sort of a half-hinted influence; Heaven knows, but it might have been even authority over him; all this none knew. But one cannot sustain an indifferent air concerning Fedallah. He was such a creature as civilized, domestic people in the temperate zone only see in their dreams, and that but dimly; but the like of whom now and then glide among the unchanging Asiatic communities, especially the Oriental isles to the east of the continent— those insulated, immemorial, unalterable countries, which even in these modern days still preserve much of the ghostly aboriginalness of earth's primal generations, when the memory of the first man was a distinct recollection, and all men his descendants, unknowing whence he came, eyed each other as real phantoms, and asked of the sun and the moon why they were created and to what end; when though, according to Genesis, the angels indeed consorted with the daughters of men, the devils also, add the uncanonical Robbins, indulged in mundane amours.

But no matter what, it's clear that while the lesser spirits quickly found their role among the crew, remaining somewhat distinct from them, the turbaned Fedallah remained an unresolved mystery until the very end. No one knew where he came from in a world like this, what strange connection he had with Ahab's unusual fate; in fact, it seemed he exerted a sort of subtle influence—Heaven knows, it might have even been authority over him. But no one could remain indifferent to Fedallah. He was the kind of being that civilized people in temperate regions only glimpse in their dreams, and even then, it's faint; yet similar figures occasionally drift through the unchanging Asian communities, especially in the Oriental islands east of the continent—those isolated, ancient, unchanging lands that, even in modern times, still hold onto much of the ghostly essence of the world's earliest generations, when the memory of the first man was still vivid, and all men were his descendants, unsure of his origins, looking at each other like real phantoms, and questioning the sun and the moon about their purpose; when, according to Genesis, angels did indeed mingle with the daughters of men, and devils, as the apocryphal Robbins noted, engaged in earthly affairs.

CHAPTER 51

The Spirit-Spout

The Spirit Fountain

Days, weeks passed, and under easy sail, the ivory Pequod had slowly swept across four several cruising-grounds; that off the Azores; off the Cape de Verdes; on the Plate (so called), being off the mouth of the Rio de la Plata; and the Carrol Ground, an unstaked, watery locality, southerly from St. Helena.

Days and weeks went by, and with a steady sail, the ivory Pequod gradually traversed four different cruising areas: the one near the Azores, near the Cape Verde Islands, the Plate area near the mouth of the Rio de la Plata, and the Carrol Ground, an unmarked watery spot to the south of St. Helena.

It was while gliding through these latter waters that one serene and moonlight night, when all the waves rolled by like scrolls of silver; and, by their soft, suffusing seethings, made what seemed a silvery silence, not a solitude; on such a silent night a silvery jet was seen far in advance of the white bubbles at the bow. Lit up by the moon, it looked celestial; seemed some plumed and glittering god uprising from the sea. Fedallah first descried this jet. For of these moonlight nights, it was his wont to mount to the main-mast head, and stand a look-out there, with the same precision as if it had been day. And yet, though herds of whales were seen by night, not one whaleman in a hundred would venture a lowering for them. You may think with what emotions, then, the seamen beheld this old Oriental perched aloft at such unusual hours; his turban and the moon, companions in one sky. But when, after spending his uniform interval there for several successive nights without uttering a single sound; when, after all this silence, his unearthly voice was heard announcing that silvery, moon-lit jet, every reclining mariner started to his feet as if some winged spirit had lighted in the rigging, and hailed the mortal crew. "There she blows!" Had the trump of judgment blown, they could not have quivered more; yet still they felt no terror; rather pleasure. For though it was a most unwonted hour, yet so impressive was the cry, and so deliriously exciting, that almost every soul on board instinctively desired a lowering.

It was during a peaceful moonlit night while gliding through these waters that the waves rolled by like silver scrolls, creating a soft, shimmering silence rather than solitude. On such a quiet night, a silvery spray was spotted ahead of the white bubbles at the bow. Illuminated by the moon, it appeared almost divine; like a glittering god rising from the sea. Fedallah was the first to notice this spray. On these moonlit nights, he would climb to the top of the main mast and keep watch there, just as he would during the day. Although whales could be sighted at night, only about one whaleman in a hundred would dare to lower a boat for them. You can imagine the excitement among the sailors when they saw this old Oriental perched up high at such unusual hours, his turban and the moon sharing the same sky. But when, after spending his usual time there without making a sound, his otherworldly voice was finally heard announcing that silvery, moonlit spray, every relaxed crew member jumped to their feet as if a winged spirit had landed in the rigging and called out to the mortal crew. "There she blows!" Had the trumpet of judgment sounded, they couldn't have trembled more; yet they felt no fear, only excitement. Even though it was an unusual hour, the call was so powerful and thrilling that almost everyone on board instinctively wanted to launch a boat.

Walking the deck with quick, side-lunging strides, Ahab commanded the t'gallant sails and royals to be set, and every stunsail spread. The best man in the ship must take the helm. Then, with every mast-head manned, the piled-up craft rolled down before the wind. The strange, upheaving, lifting tendency of the taffrail breeze filling the hollows of so many sails, made the buoyant, hovering deck to feel like air beneath the feet; while still she rushed along, as if two antagonistic influences were struggling in her—one to mount direct to heaven, the other to drive yawingly to some horizontal goal. And had you watched Ahab's face that night, you would have thought that in him also two different things were warring. While his one live leg made lively echoes along the deck, every stroke of his dead limb sounded like a coffin-tap. On life and death this old man walked. But though the ship so swiftly sped, and though from every eye, like arrows, the eager glances shot, yet the silvery jet was no more seen that night. Every sailor swore he saw it once, but not a second time.

Walking the deck with quick, side-lunging strides, Ahab ordered the t'gallant sails and royals to be set, and every stunsail unfurled. The best man on the ship had to take the helm. Then, with every mast manned, the big ship rolled down before the wind. The strange, uplifting breeze from the taffrail filled the spaces in so many sails, making the buoyant, floating deck feel like air beneath their feet; even as she rushed ahead, it was as if two opposing forces were battling within her—one aiming to soar directly to heaven, the other trying to veer sideways toward some horizontal target. And if you had watched Ahab's face that night, you would have thought he also had two conflicting things at war within him. While his one good leg echoed lively along the deck, every step of his dead limb sounded like a coffin knock. The old man walked between life and death. But even though the ship moved so quickly, and even though eager glances shot from every eye like arrows, the silvery spray was not seen that night. Every sailor swore he saw it once, but not a second time.

This midnight-spout had almost grown a forgotten thing, when, some days after, lo! at the same silent hour, it was again announced: again it was descried by all; but upon making sail to overtake it, once more it disappeared as if it had never been. And so it served us night after night, till no one heeded it but to wonder at it. Mysteriously jetted into the clear moonlight, or starlight, as the case might be; disappearing again for one whole day, or two days, or three; and somehow seeming at every distinct repetition to be advancing still further and further in our van, this solitary jet seemed for ever alluring us on.

This midnight fountain had almost been forgotten when, a few days later, at the same quiet hour, it appeared again: everyone saw it; but when we tried to catch up to it, it vanished again as if it had never existed. This happened night after night until no one paid it much attention except to be curious about it. Mysteriously shooting into the clear moonlight or starlight, depending on the night, it would disappear for a whole day, or two days, or three; and somehow, with each appearance, it seemed to be moving even further ahead of us. This solitary jet kept drawing us in.

Nor with the immemorial superstition of their race, and in accordance with the preternaturalness, as it seemed, which in many things invested the Pequod, were there wanting some of the seamen who swore that whenever and wherever descried; at however remote times, or in however far apart latitudes and longitudes, that unnearable spout was cast by one selfsame whale; and that whale, Moby Dick. For a time, there reigned, too, a sense of peculiar dread at this flitting apparition, as if it were treacherously beckoning us on and on, in order that the monster might turn round upon us, and rend us at last in the remotest and most savage seas.

Nor with the age-old superstition of their people, and in line with the almost supernatural aura that seemed to surround the Pequod, were there a few of the crew members who claimed that whenever and wherever it was spotted; no matter how long ago or in how distant latitudes and longitudes, that unmistakable spout came from one and the same whale; and that whale was Moby Dick. For a time, there was also a sense of peculiar fear regarding this fleeting apparition, as if it were slyly leading us on and on, so that the beast could finally turn on us and tear us apart in the furthest and wildest seas.

These temporary apprehensions, so vague but so awful, derived a wondrous potency from the contrasting serenity of the weather, in which, beneath all its blue blandness, some thought there lurked a devilish charm, as for days and days we voyaged along, through seas so wearily, lonesomely mild, that all space, in repugnance to our vengeful errand, seemed vacating itself of life before our urn-like prow.

These temporary feelings of anxiety, vague yet awful, gained a strange power from the calm weather. Underneath its blue tranquility, some believed there was a devilish allure, as we traveled for days through seas that were tiresomely and lonely mild. It felt as if all the space around us, in resistance to our angry mission, was emptying itself of life in front of our prow, which was as solid as a tomb.

But, at last, when turning to the eastward, the Cape winds began howling around us, and we rose and fell upon the long, troubled seas that are there; when the ivory-tusked Pequod sharply bowed to the blast, and gored the dark waves in her madness, till, like showers of silver chips, the foamflakes flew over her bulwarks; then all this desolate vacuity of life went away, but gave place to sights more dismal than before.

But finally, as we turned east, the Cape winds started howling around us, and we were tossed up and down on the long, choppy seas there. The ivory-tusked Pequod suddenly dipped into the wind, cutting through the dark waves in her frenzy, until the foam flew over her sides like showers of silver chips. Then, that empty feeling of life disappeared, only to be replaced by sights even more depressing than before.

Close to our bows, strange forms in the water darted hither and thither before us; while thick in our rear flew the inscrutable sea-ravens. And every morning, perched on our stays, rows of these birds were seen; and spite of our hootings, for a long time obstinately clung to the hemp, as though they deemed our ship some drifting, uninhabited craft; a thing appointed to desolation, and therefore fit roosting-place for their homeless selves. And heaved and heaved, still unrestingly heaved the black sea, as if its vast tides were a conscience; and the great mundane soul were in anguish and remorse for the long sin and suffering it had bred.

Close to our bows, strange shapes in the water darted back and forth in front of us, while behind us flew the mysterious sea ravens. Every morning, rows of these birds perched on our rigging, and despite our shouting, they stubbornly clung to the ropes for a long time, as if they thought our ship was just a drifting, uninhabited vessel; an abandoned thing, and thus a suitable resting place for their homeless selves. The black sea heaved and heaved, restless as ever, as if its vast tides were a conscience; and the great soul of the world was in torment and regret for the long sin and suffering it had caused.

Cape of Good Hope, do they call ye? Rather Cape Tormentoto, as called of yore; for long allured by the perfidious silences that before had attended us, we found ourselves launched into this tormented sea, where guilty beings transformed into those fowls and these fish, seemed condemned to swim on everlastingly without any haven in store, or beat that black air without any horizon. But calm, snow-white, and unvarying; still directing its fountain of feathers to the sky; still beckoning us on from before, the solitary jet would at times be descried.

Cape of Good Hope, is that what you call it? More like Cape Torment, as it was known in the past; for a long time, we were drawn in by the deceptive calm that had surrounded us, only to find ourselves thrust into this troubled sea, where guilty souls turned into birds and fish seemed doomed to swim forever without any safe place or to batter against that dark sky with no horizon in sight. Yet calm, bright white, and unchanging; still sending its plume of feathers into the sky; still beckoning us forward from the front, the solitary jet could occasionally be seen.

During all this blackness of the elements, Ahab, though assuming for the time the almost continual command of the drenched and dangerous deck, manifested the gloomiest reserve; and more seldom than ever addressed his mates. In tempestuous times like these, after everything above and aloft has been secured, nothing more can be done but passively to await the issue of the gale. Then Captain and crew become practical fatalists. So, with his ivory leg inserted into its accustomed hole, and with one hand firmly grasping a shroud, Ahab for hours and hours would stand gazing dead to windward, while an occasional squall of sleet or snow would all but congeal his very eyelashes together. Meantime, the crew driven from the forward part of the ship by the perilous seas that burstingly broke over its bows, stood in a line along the bulwarks in the waist; and the better to guard against the leaping waves, each man had slipped himself into a sort of bowline secured to the rail, in which he swung as in a loosened belt. Few or no words were spoken; and the silent ship, as if manned by painted sailors in wax, day after day tore on through all the swift madness and gladness of the demoniac waves. By night the same muteness of humanity before the shrieks of the ocean prevailed; still in silence the men swung in the bowlines; still wordless Ahab stood up to the blast. Even when wearied nature seemed demanding repose he would not seek that repose in his hammock. Never could Starbuck forget the old man's aspect, when one night going down into the cabin to mark how the barometer stood, he saw him with closed eyes sitting straight in his floor-screwed chair; the rain and half-melted sleet of the storm from which he had some time before emerged, still slowly dripping from the unremoved hat and coat. On the table beside him lay unrolled one of those charts of tides and currents which have previously been spoken of. His lantern swung from his tightly clenched hand. Though the body was erect, the head was thrown back so that the closed eyes were pointed towards the needle of the tell-tale that swung from a beam in the ceiling.*

During all this darkness of the elements, Ahab, while taking almost constant control of the soaked and dangerous deck, showed the gloomiest reserve and spoke even less to his mates. In stormy times like these, after everything above has been secured, the only thing left to do is passively wait for the storm to pass. Then both captain and crew become practical fatalists. So, with his ivory leg in its usual place and one hand firmly gripping a shroud, Ahab would stand for hours staring dead into the wind, while occasional squalls of sleet or snow would nearly freeze his eyelashes together. Meanwhile, the crew, pushed from the front of the ship by the treacherous waves crashing over the bow, stood in a line along the bulwarks in the waist; to better protect themselves against the jumping waves, each man had slipped into a sort of bowline secured to the rail, allowing him to swing like in a loose belt. Few or no words were exchanged; and the silent ship, as if crewed by painted sailors in wax, tore on day after day through the wild chaos and excitement of the raging waves. By night, the same silence of humanity persisted before the ocean's screams; still, in silence, the men swung in their bowlines; still wordless, Ahab stood against the wind. Even when fatigue seemed to demand rest, he wouldn’t seek that rest in his hammock. Starbuck could never forget the old man's appearance when one night, going down to the cabin to check the barometer, he found him sitting upright in his tight chair with closed eyes; the rain and half-melted sleet from the storm he had emerged from still slowly dripping from his hat and coat. On the table beside him lay one of those rolled-out charts of tides and currents that had been mentioned before. His lantern swung from his tightly clenched hand. Though his body was upright, his head was thrown back so that his closed eyes faced the needle of the tell-tale swinging from a beam in the ceiling.*

*The cabin-compass is called the tell-tale, because without going to the compass at the helm, the Captain, while below, can inform himself of the course of the ship.

*The cabin-compass is called the tell-tale because the Captain can check the ship's course while below deck without needing to go to the compass at the helm.

Terrible old man! thought Starbuck with a shudder, sleeping in this gale, still thou steadfastly eyest thy purpose.

Terrible old man! thought Starbuck with a shiver, sleeping through this storm, yet you still focus on your goal.

CHAPTER 52

The Albatross

The Albatross

South-eastward from the Cape, off the distant Crozetts, a good cruising ground for Right Whalemen, a sail loomed ahead, the Goney (Albatross) by name. As she slowly drew nigh, from my lofty perch at the fore-mast-head, I had a good view of that sight so remarkable to a tyro in the far ocean fisheries— a whaler at sea, and long absent from home.

South-east from the Cape, near the distant Crozet Islands, a great area for Right Whalemen, a sail appeared ahead, called the Goney (Albatross). As it slowly came closer, from my high spot on the foremast, I had a clear view of a truly remarkable sight for a beginner in the deep-sea fishing world—a whaler at sea, far away from home.

As if the waves had been fullers, this craft was bleached like the skeleton of a stranded walrus. All down her sides, this spectral appearance was traced with long channels of reddened rust, while all her spars and her rigging were like the thick branches of trees furred over with hoar-frost. Only her lower sails were set. A wild sight it was to see her long-bearded look-outs at those three mast-heads. They seemed clad in the skins of beasts, so torn and bepatched the raiment that had survived nearly four years of cruising. Standing in iron hoops nailed to the mast, they swayed and swung over a fathomless sea; and though, when the ship slowly glided close under our stern, we six men in the air came so nigh to each other that we might almost have leaped from the mast-heads of one ship to those of the other; yet, those forlorn-looking fishermen, mildly eyeing us as they passed, said not one word to our own look-outs, while the quarter-deck hail was being heard from below.

As if the waves had bleached it, this boat looked like the skeleton of a stranded walrus. Down its sides, this ghostly appearance was marked with long streaks of rust, while all its spars and rigging resembled thick tree branches covered in frost. Only its lower sails were set. It was a wild sight to see the long-bearded lookouts at those three mastheads. They looked like they were dressed in animal skins, so tattered and patched were their clothes that had survived nearly four years of sailing. Standing in iron hoops nailed to the mast, they rocked back and forth over an endless sea; and although, when the ship slowly glided close under our stern, we six men in the air were so near that we could almost leap from the mastheads of one ship to those of the other, those forlorn-looking fishermen, gazing at us as they passed, didn’t say a word to our own lookouts while the call from the quarter-deck was heard from below.

"Ship ahoy! Have ye seen the White Whale?"

"Ahoy! Have you seen the White Whale?"

But as the strange captain, leaning over the pallid bulwarks, was in the act of putting his trumpet to his mouth, it somehow fell from his hand into the sea; and the wind now rising amain, he in vain strove to make himself heard without it. Meantime his ship was still increasing the distance between us. While in various silent ways the seamen of the Pequod were evincing their observance of this ominous incident at the first mere mention of the White Whale's name to another ship, Ahab for a moment paused; it almost seemed as though he would have lowered a boat to board the stranger, had not the threatening wind forbade. But taking advantage of his windward position, he again seized his trumpet, and knowing by her aspect that the stranger vessel was a Nantucketer and shortly bound home, he loudly hailed—"Ahoy there! This is the Pequod, bound round the world! Tell them to address all future letters to the Pacific ocean! and this time three years, if I am not at home, tell them to address them to-"

But as the strange captain leaned over the pale railings, he was about to raise his trumpet when it suddenly slipped from his hand and fell into the sea. With the wind picking up, he struggled to make himself heard without it. In the meantime, his ship was getting further away from us. Meanwhile, the sailors on the Pequod silently showed their awareness of this ominous event at the mere mention of the White Whale's name to another ship. Ahab paused for a moment; it almost seemed like he was going to lower a boat to board the stranger's vessel if the threatening wind hadn’t stopped him. But taking advantage of his position against the wind, he grabbed his trumpet again and, realizing that the other ship was a Nantucket vessel heading home, he shouted, “Ahoy there! This is the Pequod, bound around the world! Tell them to address all future letters to the Pacific Ocean! And for the next three years, if I’m not at home, tell them to address them to—”

At that moment the two wakes were fairly crossed, and instantly, then, in accordance with their singular ways, shoals of small harmless fish, that for some days before had been placidly swimming by our side, darted away with what seemed shuddering fins, and ranged themselves fore and aft with the stranger's flanks. Though in the course of his continual voyagings Ahab must often before have noticed a similar sight, yet, to any monomaniac man, the veriest trifles capriciously carry meanings.

At that moment, the two wakes crossed paths, and right then, in line with their usual behavior, schools of small harmless fish that had been swimming peacefully beside us for days suddenly dashed away, their fins seeming to tremble, and aligned themselves along the sides of the stranger. Even though Ahab must have seen something like this many times during his travels, for someone obsessed, even the smallest details can take on significant meanings.

"Swim away from me, do ye?" murmured Ahab, gazing over into the water. There seemed but little in the words, but the tone conveyed more of deep helpless sadness than the insane old man had ever before evinced. But turning to the steersman, who thus far had been holding the ship in the wind to diminish her headway, he cried out in his old lion voice,—"Up helm! Keep her off round the world!"

"Are you swimming away from me?" Ahab murmured, looking into the water. The words didn’t seem like much, but the tone revealed a deep sense of helpless sadness unlike anything the crazed old man had shown before. Turning to the steersman, who had been keeping the ship steady against the wind to slow it down, he shouted in his familiar commanding voice, “Steer away! Let's head around the world!”

Round the world! There is much in that sound to inspire proud feelings; but whereto does all that circumnavigation conduct? Only through numberless perils to the very point whence we started, where those that we left behind secure, were all the time before us.

Round the world! There’s a lot in that idea to inspire pride; but where does all that travel lead us? Only through countless dangers back to the exact spot we began, where those we left behind were always in front of us.

Were this world an endless plain, and by sailing eastward we could for ever reach new distances, and discover sights more sweet and strange than any Cyclades or Islands of King Solomon, then there were promise in the voyage. But in pursuit of those far mysteries we dream of, or in tormented chase of that demon phantom that, some time or other, swims before all human hearts; while chasing such over this round globe, they either lead us on in barren mazes or midway leave us whelmed.

If this world were a never-ending plain, and by sailing east we could keep reaching new horizons and discover sights more beautiful and strange than any Cyclades or the Islands of King Solomon, then there would be promise in the journey. But in chasing those distant mysteries we imagine, or in the troubled pursuit of that elusive phantom that, at some point, tempts every human heart; while following such things across this round globe, they either lead us into pointless twists or leave us overwhelmed halfway.

CHAPTER 53

The Gam

The Game

The ostensible reason why Ahab did not go on board of the whaler we had spoken was this: the wind and sea betokened storms. But even had this not been the case, he would not after all, perhaps, have boarded her—judging by his subsequent conduct on similar occasions—if so it had been that, by the process of hailing, he had obtained a negative answer to the question he put. For, as it eventually turned out, he cared not to consort, even for five minutes, with any stranger captain, except he could contribute some of that information he so absorbingly sought. But all this might remain inadequately estimated, were not something said here of the peculiar usages of whaling-vessels when meeting each other in foreign seas, and especially on a common cruising-ground.

The apparent reason Ahab didn’t board the whaler we talked about was because the wind and sea indicated storms. But even if that wasn’t the case, he probably still wouldn’t have boarded her—judging by how he acted on similar occasions later—if he had received a negative answer to his hail. As it turned out, he wasn’t interested in spending even five minutes with any stranger captain unless they could provide some of the information he was desperately seeking. However, this might not be fully understood without mentioning the unique practices of whaling ships when they encounter each other in foreign waters, especially on a shared cruising ground.

If two strangers crossing the Pine Barrens in New York State, or the equally desolate Salisbury Plain in England; if casually encountering each other in such inhospitable wilds, these twain, for the life of them, cannot well avoid a mutual salutation; and stopping for a moment to interchange the news; and, perhaps, sitting down for a while and resting in concert: then, how much more natural that upon the illimitable Pine Barrens and Salisbury Plains of the sea, two whaling vessels descrying each other at the ends of the earth—off lone Fanning's Island, or the far away King's Mills; how much more natural, I say, that under such circumstances these ships should not only interchange hails, but come into still closer, more friendly and sociable contact. And especially would this seem to be a matter of course, in the case of vessels owned in one seaport, and whose captains, officers, and not a few of the men are personally known to each other; and consequently, have all sorts of dear domestic things to talk about.

If two strangers crossing the Pine Barrens in New York State or the equally barren Salisbury Plain in England meet each other in such inhospitable places, they can't help but greet each other; maybe they'll stop for a moment to share some news and perhaps sit down together to rest. So, it's even more natural that in the vast Pine Barrens and Salisbury Plains of the sea, two whaling ships spotting each other at the ends of the earth—near the lonely Fanning's Island or far-off King's Mills—would not only exchange greetings but also come into closer, friendlier contact. This seems even more expected if the vessels are from the same seaport, with captains, officers, and many crew members who know each other personally; they would naturally have all sorts of familiar topics to discuss.

For the long absent ship, the outward-bounder, perhaps, has letters on board; at any rate, she will be sure to let her have some papers of a date a year or two later than the last one on her blurred and thumb-worn files. And in return for that courtesy, the outward-bound ship would receive the latest whaling intelligence from the cruising-ground to which she may be destined, a thing of the utmost importance to her. And in degree, all this will hold true concerning whaling vessels crossing each other's track on the cruising-ground itself, even though they are equally long absent from home. For one of them may have received a transfer of letters from some third, and now far remote vessel; and some of those letters may be for the people of the ship she now meets. Besides, they would exchange the whaling news, and have an agreeable chat. For not only would they meet with all the sympathies of sailors, but likewise with all the peculiar congenialities arising from a common pursuit and mutually shared privations and perils.

For the long-absent ship, the one heading out, maybe has letters on board; in any case, she will definitely pass along some papers dated a year or two later than the last one in her worn and faded files. And in exchange for that favor, the outgoing ship would get the latest whaling updates from the area she’s headed to, which is extremely important for her. This applies to whaling ships crossing paths in the cruising grounds even if they've been away from home for a long time. One of them might have received a transfer of letters from a third ship that's now far away; some of those letters could be for the crew of the ship she encounters. Also, they would swap whaling news and have a nice chat. They would not only share the camaraderie of sailors but also the unique bonds formed from a shared pursuit and the hardships and dangers they’ve both faced.

Nor would difference of country make any very essential difference; that is, so long as both parties speak one language, as is the case with Americans and English. Though, to be sure, from the small number of English whalers, such meetings do not very often occur, and when they do occur there. is too apt to be a sort of shyness between them; for your Englishman is rather reserved, and your Yankee, he does not fancy that sort of thing in anybody but himself. Besides, the English whalers sometimes affect a kind of metropolitan superiority over the American whalers; regarding the long, lean Nantucketer, with his nondescript provincialisms, as a sort of sea-peasant. But where this superiority in the English whaleman does really consist, it would be hard to say, seeing that the Yankees in one day, collectively, kill more whales than all the English, collectively, in ten years. But this is a harmless little foible in the English whale-hunters, which the Nantucketer does not take much to heart; probably, because he knows that he has a few foibles himself.

Nor would the difference in country make any significant difference; that is, as long as both parties speak the same language, like Americans and English do. However, since there are so few English whalers, these meetings don’t happen very often, and when they do, there's usually a bit of awkwardness between them. The Englishman tends to be quite reserved, while the Yankee doesn’t appreciate that sort of thing in anyone but himself. Additionally, English whalers sometimes act like they have a sort of metropolitan superiority over American whalers, seeing the long, lean Nantucketer, with his various provincial quirks, as a kind of sea-peasant. But it’s hard to pinpoint where this superiority actually comes from, considering that the Yankees, in a single day, can catch more whales than all the English do in ten years. Still, this is a harmless little quirk among the English whalers, which the Nantucketer doesn’t take to heart; likely because he knows he has a few quirks of his own.

So, then, we see that of all ships separately sailing the sea, the whalers have most reason to be sociable—and they are so. Whereas, some merchant ships crossing each other's wake in the mid-Atlantic, will oftentimes pass on without so much as a single word of recognition, mutually cutting each other on the high seas, like a brace of dandies in Broadway; and all the time indulging, perhaps, in finical criticism upon each other's rig. As for Men-of-War, when they chance to meet at sea, they first go through such a string of silly bowings and scrapings, such a ducking of ensigns, that there does not seem to be much right-down hearty good-will and brotherly love about it at all. As touching Slave-ships meeting, why, they are in such a prodigious hurry, they run away from each other as soon as possible. And as for Pirates, when they chance to cross each other's cross-bones, the first hail is—"How many skulls?"— the same way that whalers hail—"How many barrels?" And that question once answered, pirates straightway steer apart, for they are infernal villains on both sides, and don't like to see overmuch of each other's villanous likenesses.

So, we see that of all the ships sailing the sea, the whalers have the best reason to be friendly—and they really are. In contrast, some merchant ships crossing paths in the mid-Atlantic often sail past each other without a single word of acknowledgment, ignoring one another like a couple of snobs on Broadway; meanwhile, they might be critiquing each other’s rigging. As for warships, when they happen to meet at sea, they go through a whole routine of pointless bows and flag movements, which makes it seem like there's not much genuine goodwill or camaraderie between them at all. When it comes to slave ships meeting, they’re in such a rush to get away from each other that they leave as quickly as possible. And as for pirates, when they encounter one another, their first shout is—"How many skulls?"—just like whalers ask—"How many barrels?" Once that question is answered, pirates immediately steer clear, as they are all despicable on both sides and don’t want to be reminded of each other’s villainy.

But look at the godly, honest, unostentatious, hospitable, sociable, free-and-easy whaler! What does the whaler do when she meets another whaler in any sort of decent weather? She has a "Gam," a thing so utterly unknown to all other ships that they never heard of the name even; and if by chance they should hear of it, they only grin at it, and repeat gamesome stuff about "spouters" and "blubber-boilers," and such like pretty exclamations. Why it is that all Merchant-seamen, and also all Pirates and Man-of-War's men, and Slave-ship sailors, cherish such a scornful feeling towards Whale-ships; this is a question it would be hard to answer. Because, in the case of pirates, say, I should like to know whether that profession of theirs has any peculiar glory about it. It sometimes ends in uncommon elevation, indeed; but only at the gallows. And besides, when a man is elevated in that odd fashion, he has no proper foundation for his superior altitude. Hence, I conclude, that in boasting himself to be high lifted above a whaleman, in that assertion the pirate has no solid basis to stand on.

But check out the godly, honest, humble, welcoming, friendly, laid-back whaler! What does a whaler do when she encounters another whaler in any decent weather? She has a "Gam," something completely unknown to all other ships who haven’t even heard of the term; and if by chance they do hear of it, they just laugh and toss around playful jabs about "spouters" and "blubber-boilers," and other cute remarks. It's puzzling why all merchant sailors, as well as all pirates, navy men, and slave ship sailors, have such a disdainful attitude towards whaling ships; that’s a tough question to answer. For instance, in the case of pirates, I’d love to know what makes their profession so glorified. Sure, it sometimes leads to an unusual kind of notoriety, but only on the gallows. And besides, when someone is raised in that strange way, they lack a solid foundation for that lofty status. Therefore, I believe that when a pirate brags about being above a whaleman, he has no real ground to stand on.

But what is a Gam? You might wear out your index-finger running up and down the columns of dictionaries, and never find the word, Dr. Johnson never attained to that erudition; Noah Webster's ark does not hold it. Nevertheless, this same expressive word has now for many years been in constant use among some fifteen thousand true born Yankees. Certainly, it needs a definition, and should be incorporated into the Lexicon. With that view, let me learnedly define it.

But what is a Gam? You could wear out your index finger scrolling through dictionaries and never find the word; Dr. Johnson never reached that level of knowledge, and Noah Webster's dictionary doesn’t include it. Still, this same vibrant word has been in regular use for many years among about fifteen thousand true-born Yankees. Clearly, it needs a definition and should be added to the dictionary. With that in mind, let me define it in an educated way.

GAM. NOUN—A social meeting of two (or more) Whaleships, generally on a cruising-ground; when, after exchanging hails, they exchange visits by boats' crews, the two captains remaining, for the time, on board of one ship, and the two chief mates on the other.

GAM. NOUN—A social gathering of two (or more) Whaleships, usually in a cruising area; when, after calling out to each other, they visit back and forth using boat crews, while the two captains stay on one ship and the two chief mates are on the other.

There is another little item about Gamming which must not be forgotten here. All professions have their own little peculiarities of detail; so has the whale fishery. In a pirate, man-of-war, or slave ship, when the captain is rowed anywhere in his boat, he always sits in the stern sheets on a comfortable, sometimes cushioned seat there, and often steers himself with a pretty little milliner's tiller decorated with gay cords and ribbons. But the whale-boat has no seat astern, no sofa of that sort whatever, and no tiller at all. High times indeed, if whaling captains were wheeled about the water on castors like gouty old aldermen in patent chairs. And as for a tiller, the whale-boat never admits of any such effeminacy; and therefore as in gamming a complete boat's crew must leave the ship, and hence as the boat steerer or harpooneer is of the number, that subordinate is the steersman upon the occasion, and the captain, having no place to sit in, is pulled off to his visit all standing like a pine tree. And often you will notice that being conscious of the eyes of the whole visible world resting on him from the sides of the two ships, this standing captain is all alive to the importance of sustaining his dignity by maintaining his legs. Nor is this any very easy matter; for in his rear is the immense projecting steering oar hitting him now and then in the small of his back, the after-oar reciprocating by rapping his knees in front. He is thus completely wedged before and behind, and can only expand himself sideways by settling down on his stretched legs; but a sudden, violent pitch of the boat will often go far to topple him, because length of foundation is nothing without corresponding breadth. Merely make a spread angle of two poles, and you cannot stand them up. Then, again, it would never do in plain sight of the world's riveted eyes, it would never do, I say, for this straddling captain to be seen steadying himself the slightest particle by catching hold of anything with his hands; indeed, as token of his entire, buoyant self-command, he generally carries his hands in his trowsers' pockets; but perhaps being generally very large, heavy hands, he carries them there for ballast. Nevertheless there have occurred instances, well authenticated ones too, where the captain has been known for an uncommonly critical moment or two, in a sudden squall say—to seize hold of the nearest oarsman's hair, and hold on there like grim death.

There’s another small detail about Gamming that shouldn’t be overlooked. Every profession has its quirks, and so does whaling. On a pirate ship, a navy vessel, or a slave ship, when the captain is rowed anywhere in his boat, he always sits comfortably in the back seat, sometimes cushioned, and often steers with a fancy tiller decorated with bright cords and ribbons. But in a whaleboat, there’s no comfortable seat in the back and no tiller at all. It would be absurd if whaling captains were wheeled around the water like cranky old men in fancy chairs. As for a tiller, the whaleboat doesn’t allow for that kind of luxury; so when gamming occurs, the entire crew must leave the ship, and since the boat steerer or harpooneer is part of the crew, that person takes over steering for the occasion, while the captain has to stand the whole time, like a tree. You often notice that with the eyes of the world on him from both ships, this standing captain is very aware of the need to maintain his dignity by keeping his legs steady. It's not easy; behind him is the huge steering oar bumping against his back, while the after-oar occasionally hits his knees. He ends up wedged in and can only balance himself by leaning sideways on his extended legs, but a sudden jolt of the boat can easily nearly knock him over because a long base doesn't mean much without enough width. Just try to stand two poles upright in a spread angle, and you’ll see the problem. Additionally, it would be quite inappropriate in front of the world’s watchful eyes for this captain to steady himself even a little by grabbing onto anything with his hands; in fact, to show he’s completely composed, he usually keeps his hands in his pants pockets. But perhaps he keeps them there for balance since they tend to be large, heavy hands. Still, there have been instances—well documented—where the captain, during a particularly tense moment, like a sudden squall, has been known to grab the nearest oarsman’s hair and hold on for dear life.

CHAPTER 54

The Town-Ho's Story

The Town-Ho's Tale

(As told at the Golden Inn)

(As told at the Golden Inn)

The Cape of Good Hope, and all the watery region round about there, is much like some noted four corners of a great highway, where you meet more travellers than in any other part.

The Cape of Good Hope, along with all the surrounding waters, is a lot like a famous crossroads on a major highway, where you encounter more travelers than anywhere else.

It was not very long after speaking the Goney that another homeward-bound whaleman, the Town-Ho,* was encountered. She was manned almost wholly by Polynesians. In the short gam that ensued she gave us strong news of Moby Dick. To some the general interest in the White Whale was now wildly heightened by a circumstance of the Town-Ho's story, which seemed obscurely to involve with the whale a certain wondrous, inverted visitation of one of those so called judgments of God which at times are said to overtake some men. This latter circumstance, with its own particular accompaniments, forming what may be called the secret part of the tragedy about to be narrated, never reached the ears of Captain Ahab or his mates. For that secret part of the story was unknown to the captain of the Town-Ho himself. It was the private property of three confederate white seamen of that ship, one of whom, it seems, communicated it to Tashtego with Romish injunctions of secrecy, but the following night Tashtego rambled in his sleep, and revealed so much of it in that way, that when he was wakened he could not well withhold the rest. Nevertheless, so potent an influence did this thing have on those seamen in the Pequod who came to the full knowledge of it, and by such a strange delicacy, to call it so, were they governed in this matter, that they kept the secret among themselves so that it never transpired abaft the Pequod's main-mast. Interweaving in its proper place this darker thread with the story as publicly narrated on the ship, the whole of this strange affair I now proceed to put on lasting record.

It wasn't long after hearing about the Goney that we encountered another whaleman heading home, the Town-Ho.* She was mostly crewed by Polynesians. During the brief chat that followed, they brought us significant news about Moby Dick. For some, the general fascination with the White Whale intensified dramatically due to a part of the Town-Ho's tale, which seemed to vaguely connect the whale with a remarkable, twisted experience that some referred to as a judgment of God that sometimes befalls certain individuals. This part of the story, along with its specific details, makes up what could be called the hidden aspect of the tragedy about to be told, and it never reached Captain Ahab or his crew. In fact, that secret part of the tale was unknown even to the captain of the Town-Ho. It belonged solely to three secretive white crew members from that ship, one of whom, it appears, told it to Tashtego with strict instructions to keep it quiet. However, that night, Tashtego talked in his sleep and inadvertently revealed so much of it that, when he woke up, he struggled to hide the rest. Still, such a strong effect did this have on the crew of the Pequod who learned the whole story, and so delicately were they affected that they kept the secret among themselves, ensuring it never spread to the part of the ship behind the main-mast. I will now weave this darker thread into the public narrative of the story on the ship and record the entire strange affair for posterity.

*The ancient whale-cry upon first sighting a whale from the mast-head, still used by whalemen in hunting the famous Gallipagos terrapin.

*The ancient whale call upon first spotting a whale from the masthead is still used by whalers when hunting the famous Galapagos tortoise.

For my humor's sake, I shall preserve the style in which I once narrated it at Lima, to a lounging circle of my Spanish friends, one saint's eve, smoking upon the thick-gilt tiled piazza of the Golden Inn. Of those fine cavaliers, the young Dons, Pedro and Sebastian, were on the closer terms with me; and hence the interluding questions they occasionally put, and which are duly answered at the time.

For the sake of my humor, I’ll keep the style I used when I told it in Lima, to a relaxed group of my Spanish friends, one saint’s eve, while we were smoking on the elaborately tiled piazza of the Golden Inn. Among those fine gentlemen, the young Dons Pedro and Sebastian were closer to me, which is why they occasionally asked questions during the story, and I answered them at the time.

"Some two years prior to my first learning the events which I am about rehearsing to you, gentlemen, the Town-Ho, Sperm Whaler of Nantucket, was cruising in your Pacific here, not very many days' sail eastward from the eaves of this good Golden Inn. She was somewhere to the northward of the Line. One morning upon handling the pumps according to daily usage, it was observed that she made more water in her hold than common. They supposed a sword-fish had stabbed her, gentlemen. But the captain, having some unusual reason for believing that rare good luck awaited him in those latitudes; and therefore being very averse to quit them, and the leak not being then considered at all dangerous, though, indeed, they could not find it after searching the hold as low down as was possible in rather heavy weather, the ship still continued her cruisings, the mariners working at the pumps at wide and easy intervals; but no good luck came; more days went by and not only was the leak yet undiscovered, but it sensibly increased. So much so, that now taking some alarm, the captain, making all sail, stood away for the nearest harbor among the islands, there to have his hull hove out and repaired.

"About two years before I learned the events I’m about to share with you, gentlemen, the Town-Ho, a sperm whaler from Nantucket, was cruising in your Pacific here, not too many days’ sail east of this good Golden Inn. She was somewhere north of the equator. One morning, while checking the pumps as was the daily routine, it was noticed that she was taking on more water than usual. They thought a swordfish might have punctured her, gentlemen. However, the captain, having some unusual feeling that good luck was coming his way in those waters, was very reluctant to leave them, and since the leak wasn’t considered dangerous at that moment, even though they couldn't find it after searching the hold as far down as possible in somewhat rough weather, the ship continued her cruise, with the crew working the pumps at wide and easy intervals. But no good luck came; more days passed, and not only was the leak still undiscovered, but it was noticeably growing. So much so that now feeling alarmed, the captain set all sails and headed for the nearest harbor among the islands to have the hull repaired."

"Though no small passage was before her, yet, if the commonest chance favoured, he did not at all fear that his ship would founder by the way, because his pumps were of the best, and being periodically relieved at them, those six-and-thirty men of his could easily keep the ship free; never mind if the leak should double on her. In truth, well nigh the whole of this passage being attended by very prosperous breezes, the Town-Ho had all but certainly arrived in perfect safety at her port without the occurrence of the least fatality, had it not been for the brutal overbearing of Radney, the mate, a Vineyarder, and the bitterly provoked vengeance of Steelkilt, a Lakeman and desperado from Buffalo.

"Although there was a significant journey ahead of her, if luck was on their side, he wasn’t worried at all that his ship would sink along the way. His pumps were top-notch, and with regular shifts, his thirty-six men could easily keep the ship afloat—even if a leak became worse. In fact, if it weren’t for the favorable winds throughout most of this journey, the Town-Ho would have almost certainly reached her destination safely without any fatalities, if not for the harsh and overbearing behavior of Radney, the first mate from the Vineyard, and the deeply provoked wrath of Steelkilt, a tough guy from Buffalo."

"'Lakeman!—Buffalo! Pray, what is a Lakeman, and where is Buffalo?' said Don Sebastian, rising in his swinging mat of grass.

"'Lakeman!—Buffalo! Please, what is a Lakeman, and where is Buffalo?' said Don Sebastian, getting up in his swinging mat of grass."

"On the eastern shore of our Lake Erie, Don; but—I crave your courtesy—may be, you shall soon hear further of all that. Now, gentlemen, in square-sail brigs and three-masted ships, well nigh as large and stout as any that ever sailed out of your old Callao to far Manilla; this Lakeman, in the land-locked heart of our America, had yet been nurtured by all those agrarian freebooting impressions popularly connected with the open ocean. For in their interflowing aggregate, those grand fresh-water seas of ours,—Erie, and Ontario, and Huron, and Superior, and Michigan,— possess an ocean-like expansiveness, with many of the ocean's noblest traits; with many of its rimmed varieties of races and of climes. They contain round archipelagoes of romantic isles, even as the Polynesian waters do; in large part, are shored by two great contrasting nations, as the Atlantic is; they furnish long maritime approaches to our numerous territorial colonies from the East, dotted all round their banks; here and there are frowned upon by batteries, and by the goat-like craggy guns of lofty Mackinaw; they have heard the fleet thunderings of naval victories; at intervals, they yield their beaches to wild barbarians, whose red painted faces flash from out their peltry wigwams; for leagues and leagues are flanked by ancient and unentered forests, where the gaunt pines stand like serried lines of kings in Gothic genealogies; those same woods harboring wild Afric beasts of prey, and silken creatures whose exported furs give robes to Tartar Emperors; they mirror the paved capitals of Buffalo and Cleveland, as well as Winnebago villages; they float alike the full-rigged merchant ship, the armed cruiser of the State, the steamer, and the beech canoe; they are swept by Borean and dismasting blasts as direful as any that lash the salted wave; they know what shipwrecks are, for out of sight of land, however inland, they have drowned full many a midnight ship with all its shrieking crew. Thus, gentlemen, though an inlander, Steelkilt was wild-ocean born, and wild-ocean nurtured; as much of an audacious mariner as any. And for Radney, though in his infancy he may have laid him down on the lone Nantucket beach, to nurse at his maternal sea; though in after life he had long followed our austere Atlantic and your contemplative Pacific; yet was he quite as vengeful and full of social quarrel as the backwoods seaman, fresh from the latitudes of buckhorn handled Bowie-knives. Yet was this Nantucketer a man with some good-hearted traits; and this Lakeman, a mariner, who though a sort of devil indeed, might yet by inflexible firmness, only tempered by that common decency of human recognition which is the meanest slave's right; thus treated, this Steelkilt had long been retained harmless and docile. At all events, he had proved so thus far; but Radney was doomed and made mad, and Steelkilt—but, gentlemen, you shall hear.

"On the eastern shore of Lake Erie, Don; but—if you don’t mind—I’d like to ask for your patience—soon, you’ll hear more about all that. Now, gentlemen, in square-sail brigs and three-masted ships, almost as big and sturdy as any that ever set sail from your old Callao to far Manila; this Lakeman, right in the heart of our America, has still been shaped by all those adventurous impressions commonly linked with the open ocean. Because in their interconnected mass, those great freshwater lakes of ours—Erie, Ontario, Huron, Superior, and Michigan—have an ocean-like vastness, along with many of the ocean’s finest characteristics; just like the ocean, they have diverse races and climates along their shores. They contain rounded clusters of romantic islands, similar to the Polynesian waters; for the most part, they are bordered by two contrasting nations, like the Atlantic; they provide long sea routes to our many territorial colonies from the East, scattered all around their edges; here and there, they are overshadowed by coastal fortifications and the rocky artillery of tall Mackinaw; they have experienced the booming sounds of naval victories; occasionally, they host wild tribes, whose painted faces appear from their fur-covered homes; for miles and miles, they are lined with ancient, untouched forests, where tall pines stand like a row of kings in Gothic lineages; those same woods harbor wild African beasts of prey, and silky animals whose furs are exported to adorn Tartar Emperors; they reflect the bustling cities of Buffalo and Cleveland, as well as Winnebago villages; they equally accommodate the fully rigged merchant ship, the state’s armed cruiser, the steamer, and the beach canoe; they are swept by northern gales as fierce as any that whip the salty sea; they know what shipwrecks are, for out of sight of land, even inland, they have claimed many a midnight ship with all its screaming crew. So, gentlemen, even though Steelkilt was an inland man, he was born of the wild ocean and raised by it; he was as much an audacious seaman as anyone. And for Radney, although as an infant he may have laid down on the isolated Nantucket beach to nurse at his mother’s sea; and although later in life he followed our stern Atlantic and your reflective Pacific for a long time; he was just as vengeful and filled with social conflict as the backwoods sailor, fresh from the wilds of buckhorn-handled Bowie knives. Yet, this Nantucketer had some good-hearted traits; and this Lakeman, while somewhat devilish, could nevertheless, with unwavering firmness, tempered only by that basic decency of human acknowledgment which even the lowest slave is entitled to; treated this way, Steelkilt had long remained harmless and compliant. In any case, he had proven so up to this point; but Radney was doomed and driven mad, and Steelkilt—but, gentlemen, you shall hear."

"It was not more than a day or two at the furthest after pointing her prow for her island haven, that the Town-Ho's leak seemed again increasing, but only so as to require an hour or more at the pumps every day. You must know that in a settled and civilized ocean like our Atlantic, for example, some skippers think little of pumping their whole way across it; though of a still, sleepy night, should the officer of the deck happen to forget his duty in that respect, the probability would be that he and his shipmates would never again remember it, on account of all hands gently subsiding to the bottom. Nor in the solitary and savage seas far from you to the westward, gentlemen, is it altogether unusual for ships to keep clanging at their pump-handles in full chorus even for a voyage of considerable length! that is, if it lie along a tolerably accessible coast, or if any other reasonable retreat is afforded them. It is only when a leaky vessel is in some very out of the way part of those waters, some really landless latitude, that her captain begins to feel a little anxious.

"It was only a day or two at most after heading towards her island refuge that the Town-Ho's leak seemed to worsen again, requiring about an hour or more at the pumps each day. You should know that in a settled and civilized ocean like our Atlantic, some captains don't think much of pumping their way across it; however, on a still, quiet night, if the officer on deck happens to forget his duties, it’s likely that he and his crew will never realize it again, as everyone gently sinks to the bottom. In the lonely and wild seas far to the west, gentlemen, it's not unusual for ships to keep pumping in full force even on long voyages, as long as they're near a reasonably accessible coast or have some other safe place to dock. It's only when a leaking vessel is in a very remote part of those waters, in a truly landless region, that her captain starts to feel a bit anxious."

"Much this way had it been with the Town-Ho; so when her leak was found gaining once more, there was in truth some small concern manifested by several of her company; especially by Radney the mate. He commanded the upper sails to be well hoisted, sheeted home anew, and every way expanded to the breeze. Now this Radney, I suppose, was as little of a coward, and as little inclined to any sort of nervous apprehensiveness touching his own person as any fearless, unthinking creature on land or on sea that you can conveniently imagine, gentlemen. Therefore when he betrayed this imagine, solicitude about the safety of the ship, some of the seamen declared that it was only on account of his being a part owner in her. So when they were working that evening at the pumps, there was on this head no small gamesomeness slily going on among them, as they stood with their feet continually overflowed by the rippling clear water; clear as any mountain spring, gentlemen—that bubbling from the pumps ran across the deck, and poured itself out in steady spouts at the lee scupper-holes.

"Much the same way it had been with the Town-Ho; so when her leak was discovered again, there was a bit of concern shown by several of her crew, especially by Radney, the first mate. He ordered the upper sails to be hoisted properly, re-tied, and fully opened to catch the wind. Now, Radney was hardly a coward and not easily rattled about his own safety, as you can imagine any fearless, carefree person on land or sea, gentlemen. So when he showed worry about the ship's safety, some of the sailors said it was only because he was a part-owner. As they worked at the pumps that evening, there was quite a bit of teasing going on among them as they stood with their feet soaked by the clear water—clear as any mountain spring, gentlemen—that bubbled from the pumps, running across the deck and streaming out in steady jets at the leeward scupper-holes."

"Now, as you well know, it is not seldom the case in this conventional world of ours—watery or otherwise; that when a person placed in command over his fellow-men finds one of them to be very significantly his superior in general pride of manhood, straightway against that man he conceives an unconquerable dislike and bitterness; and if he had a chance he will pull down and pulverize that subaltern's tower, and make a little heap of dust of it. Be this conceit of mine as it may, gentlemen, at all events Steelkilt was a tall and noble animal with a head like a Roman, and a flowing golden beard like the tasseled housings of your last viceroy's snorting charger; and a brain, and a heart, and a soul in him, gentlemen, which had made Steelkilt Charlemagne, had he been born son to Charlemagne's father. But Radney, the mate, was ugly as a mule; yet as hardy, as stubborn, as malicious. He did not love Steelkilt, and Steelkilt knew it.

"Now, as you know, it's not uncommon in our traditional world—whether watery or not—that when someone is in charge of others and recognizes one of them as significantly superior in overall manhood, they often develop an intense dislike and resentment towards that person. Given the opportunity, they would do everything they could to tear down that subordinate's standing and reduce it to nothing. Regardless of how arrogant I may sound, gentlemen, Steelkilt was a tall and noble figure with a head like a Roman and a flowing golden beard like the fancy adornments of your last viceroy's proud horse; and he had a brain, a heart, and a spirit that could have made Steelkilt Charlemagne if he had been born the son of Charlemagne's father. But Radney, the mate, was as ugly as a mule; yet just as tough, stubborn, and spiteful. He didn’t like Steelkilt, and Steelkilt was aware of it."

"Espying the mate drawing near as he was toiling at the pump with the rest, the Lakeman affected not to notice him, but unawed, went on with his gay banterings.

"Seeing the mate approaching while he was working at the pump with the others, the Lakeman pretended not to notice him but, unbothered, continued his cheerful teasing."

"'Aye, aye, my merry lads, it's a lively leak this; hold a cannikin, one of ye, and let's have a taste. By the Lord, it's worth bottling! I tell ye what, men, old Rad's investment must go for it! he had best cut away his part of the hull and tow it home. The fact is, boys, that sword-fish only began the job; he's come back again with a gang of ship-carpenters, saw-fish, and file-fish, and what not; and the whole posse of 'em are now hard at work cutting and slashing at the bottom; making improvements, I suppose. If old Rad were here now, I'd tell him to jump overboard and scatter 'em. They're playing the devil with his estate, I can tell him. But he's a simple old soul,—Rad, and a beauty too. Boys, they say the rest of his property is invested in looking-glasses. I wonder if he'd give a poor devil like me the model of his nose.'

"'Hey, hey, my cheerful friends, this is quite a lively drink; hold a cup, one of you, and let’s have a taste. By God, it’s worth bottling! I’ll tell you what, guys, old Rad’s investment must be worth it! He should just cut off his part of the hull and tow it home. The truth is, boys, that the swordfish only started the job; he’s come back with a bunch of ship carpenters, sawfish, and filefish, and who knows what else; and the whole crew is now hard at work cutting and shaping the bottom; making improvements, I guess. If old Rad were here now, I’d tell him to jump overboard and scatter them. They’re messing up his property, I can tell you. But he’s a simple old guy—Rad, and quite charming too. Guys, they say the rest of his money is tied up in mirrors. I wonder if he’d give a poor guy like me the design of his nose.'

"'Damn your eyes! what's that pump stopping for?' roared Radney, pretending not to have heard the sailors' talk. 'Thunder away at it!'

"'Damn your eyes! Why is that pump stopping?' Radney shouted, acting as if he hadn't heard the sailors talking. 'Keep going at it!'"

'Aye, aye, sir,' said Steelkilt, merry as a cricket. 'Lively, boys, lively, now!' And with that the pump clanged like fifty fire-engines; the men tossed their hats off to it, and ere long that peculiar gasping of the lungs was heard which denotes the fullest tension of life's utmost energies.

'Aye, aye, sir,' said Steelkilt, as cheerful as can be. 'Come on, guys, let’s hustle now!' And with that, the pump sounded off like a bunch of fire trucks; the men threw their hats into the air, and soon enough, the unmistakable sound of heavy breathing was heard, signaling that they were pushing themselves to the limits of their capabilities.

"Quitting the pump at last, with the rest of his band, the Lakeman went forward all panting, and sat himself down on the windlass; his face fiery red, his eyes bloodshot, and wiping the profuse sweat from his brow. Now what cozening fiend it was, gentlemen, that possessed Radney to meddle with such a man in that corporeally exasperated state, I know not; but so it happened. Intolerably striding along the deck, the mate commanded him to get a broom and sweep down the planks, and also a shovel, and remove some offensive matters consequent upon allowing a pig to run at large.

"Finally quitting the pump along with his band, the Lakeman moved forward, panting, and sat down on the windlass; his face was bright red, his eyes bloodshot, as he wiped the excessive sweat from his brow. Now, I have no idea what kind of deceitful spirit possessed Radney to provoke such a man in that physically exhausted state, but that’s how it went down. Striding intolerably along the deck, the mate ordered him to grab a broom and sweep the planks, and also a shovel to get rid of some unpleasant mess left behind after letting a pig run loose."

"Now, gentlemen, sweeping a ship's deck at sea is a piece of household work which in all times but raging gales is regularly attended to every evening; it has been known to be done in the case of ships actually foundering at the time. Such, gentlemen, is the inflexibility of sea-usages and the instinctive love of neatness in seamen; some of whom would not willingly drown without first washing their faces. But in all vessels this broom business is the prescriptive province of the boys, if boys there be aboard. Besides, it was the stronger men in the Town-Ho that had been divided into gangs, taking turns at the pumps; and being the most athletic seaman of them all, Steelkilt had been regularly assigned captain of one of the gangs; consequently he should have been freed from any trivial business not connected with truly nautical duties, such being the case with his comrades. I mention all these particulars so that you may understand exactly how this affair stood between the two men.

"Now, gentlemen, sweeping a ship's deck at sea is a household chore that’s taken care of every evening except in rough weather; it’s even been done when ships were sinking. Such is the persistence of sea traditions and the natural inclination for cleanliness among sailors; some wouldn’t want to drown without washing their faces first. In all ships, this broom duty usually falls to the boys, if there are any onboard. Additionally, it was the stronger men on the Town-Ho who had been split into teams, taking turns at the pumps; and because he was the most athletic of them all, Steelkilt had been put in charge of one of the teams, so he should have been exempt from any minor tasks unrelated to actual seafaring duties, unlike his shipmates. I mention all these details so you can fully understand how this situation unfolded between the two men."

"But there was more than this: the order about the shovel was almost as plainly meant to sting and insult Steelkilt, as though Radney had spat in his face. Any man who has gone sailor in a whale-ship will understand this; and all this and doubtless much more, the Lakeman fully comprehended when the mate uttered his command. But as he sat still for a moment, and as he steadfastly looked into the mate's malignant eye and perceived the stacks of powder-casks heaped up in him and the slow-match silently burning along towards them; as he instinctively saw all this, that strange forbearance and unwillingness to stir up the deeper passionateness in any already ireful being—a repugnance most felt, when felt at all, by really valiant men even when aggrieved— this nameless phantom feeling, gentlemen, stole over Steelkilt.

"But there was more to it: the order about the shovel was clearly intended to provoke and insult Steelkilt, almost as if Radney had spat in his face. Anyone who has sailed on a whaling ship will understand this; and all of this, along with much more, the Lakeman fully grasped when the mate gave his command. But as he sat quietly for a moment, and as he firmly looked into the mate's hostile eye and sensed the barrels of gunpowder stacked up inside him and the slow fuse silently burning towards them; as he instinctively saw all this, that strange restraint and reluctance to provoke the deeper anger in someone who was already mad—a reluctance most often experienced, if at all, by truly brave men even when wronged—this nameless, ghostly feeling, gentlemen, washed over Steelkilt."

"Therefore, in his ordinary tone, only a little broken by the bodily exhaustion he was temporarily in, he answered him saying that sweeping the deck was not his business, and he would not do it. And then, without at all alluding to the shovel, he pointed to three lads, as the customary sweepers; who, not being billeted at the pumps, had done little or nothing all day. To this, Radney replied, with an oath, in a most domineering and outrageous manner unconditionally reiterating his command; meanwhile advancing upon the still seated Lakeman, with an uplifted cooper's club hammer which he had snatched from a cask near by.

"Therefore, in his usual tone, slightly affected by his physical exhaustion, he replied that sweeping the deck wasn’t his responsibility and he wouldn’t do it. Then, without mentioning the shovel at all, he pointed to three boys who were the usual sweepers; they hadn't done much all day because they weren’t assigned to the pumps. In response, Radney swore and, in a very controlling and aggressive way, repeated his order without hesitation, while moving toward the still-seated Lakeman, brandishing a cooper's club hammer he had grabbed from a nearby barrel."

"Heated and irritated as he was by his spasmodic toil at the pumps, for all his first nameless feeling of forbearance the sweating Steelkilt could but ill brook this bearing in the mate; but somehow still smothering the conflagration within him, without speaking he remained doggedly rooted to his seat, till at last the incensed Radney shook the hammer within a few inches of his face, furiously commanding him to do his bidding.

Heated and annoyed by his sporadic work at the pumps, despite his initial, unidentifiable sense of patience, the sweating Steelkilt could hardly tolerate the mate's attitude. Yet, somehow still suppressing the anger inside him, he stayed stubbornly in his seat without saying a word, until finally, the furious Radney shook the hammer just inches from his face, angrily ordering him to follow his commands.

"Steelkilt rose, and slowly retreating round the windlass, steadily followed by the mate with his menacing hammer, deliberately repeated his intention not to obey. Seeing, however, that his forbearance had not the slightest effect, by an awful and unspeakable intimation with his twisted hand he warned off the foolish and infatuated man; but it was to no purpose. And in this way the two went once slowly round the windlass; when, resolved at last no longer to retreat, bethinking him that he had now forborne as much as comported with his humor, the Lakeman paused on the hatches and thus spoke to the officer:

"Steelkilt got up and, slowly moving around the windlass, was followed by the mate holding his threatening hammer, as he firmly repeated that he wouldn’t obey. However, seeing that his patience wasn’t making any difference, he made a terrible and unutterable gesture with his twisted hand to warn the foolish and obsessed man to back off; but it was useless. And so, the two went around the windlass slowly. Finally, deciding not to back down anymore and thinking he had been patient enough for his liking, the Lakeman stopped on the hatches and spoke to the officer:"

"'Mr. Radney, I will not obey you. Take that hammer away, or look to yourself.' But the predestinated mate coming still closer to him, where the Lakeman stood fixed, now shook the heavy hammer within an inch of his teeth; meanwhile repeating a string of insufferable maledictions. Retreating not the thousandth part of an inch; stabbing him in the eye with the unflinching poniard of his glance, Steelkilt, clenching his right hand behind him and creepingly drawing it back, told his persecutor that if the hammer but grazed his cheek he (Steelkilt) would murder him. But, gentlemen, the fool had been branded for the slaughter by the gods. Immediately the hammer touched the cheek; the next instant the lower jaw of the mate was stove in his head; he fell on the hatch spouting blood like a whale.

"'Mr. Radney, I won't follow your orders. Get that hammer away from me, or you'll be sorry.' But the doomed mate stepped even closer to him, where the Lakeman stood his ground, now shaking the heavy hammer just inches from his face; meanwhile launching a barrage of intolerable curses. Not backing up even the tiniest bit; piercing him with an unwavering stare, Steelkilt, clenching his right hand behind him and slowly drawing it back, warned his tormentor that if the hammer touched his cheek even slightly, he (Steelkilt) would kill him. But, gentlemen, the fool had already been marked for destruction by fate. As soon as the hammer made contact with his cheek; in the next moment, the mate’s jaw was smashed in, and he collapsed on the hatch, gushing blood like a whale."

"Ere the cry could go aft Steelkilt was shaking one of the backstays leading far aloft to where two of his comrades were standing their mastheads. They were both Canallers.

"Ere the cry could go aft, Steelkilt was shaking one of the backstays leading way up to where two of his comrades were standing at their mastheads. They were both Canallers."

"'Canallers!' cried Don Pedro. 'We have seen many whaleships in our harbors, but never heard of your Canallers. Pardon: who and what are they?'

"'Canallers!' shouted Don Pedro. 'We've seen plenty of whaling ships in our ports, but we've never heard of your Canallers. Excuse me, who are they and what do they do?'"

"'Canallers, Don, are the boatmen belonging to our grand
Erie Canal. You must have heard of it.'

"'Canallers, Don, are the boatmen who work on our grand
Erie Canal. You must have heard of it.'"

"'Nay, Senor; hereabouts in this dull, warm, most lazy, and hereditary land, we know but little of your vigorous North.'

"'No, sir; around here in this boring, warm, really lazy, and inherited land, we know very little about your energetic North.'"

"'Aye? Well then, Don, refill my cup. Your chicha's very fine; and ere proceeding further I will tell ye what our Canallers are; for such information may throw side-light upon my story.'

"'Oh? Well then, Don, fill my cup again. Your chicha's really good; and before we go any further, I’ll tell you what our Canallers are; that info might shed some light on my story.'"

"For three hundred and sixty miles, gentlemen, through the entire breadth of the state of New York; through numerous populous cities and most thriving villages; through long, dismal, uninhabited swamps, and affluent, cultivated fields, unrivalled for fertility; by billiard-room and bar-room; through the holy-of-holies of great forests; on Roman arches over Indian rivers; through sun and shade; by happy hearts or broken; through all the wide contrasting scenery of those noble Mohawk counties; and especially, by rows of snow-white chapels, whose spires stand almost like milestones, flows one continual stream of Venetianly corrupt and often lawless life. There's your true Ashantee, gentlemen; there howl your pagans; where you ever find them, next door to you; under the long-flung shadow, and the snug patronizing lee of churches. For by some curious fatality, as it is often noted of your metropolitan freebooters that they ever encamp around the halls of justice, so sinners, gentlemen, most abound in holiest vicinities.

"For three hundred sixty miles, gentlemen, across the entire width of New York State; through numerous bustling cities and thriving villages; through long, gloomy, uninhabited swamps and rich, cultivated fields that are unmatched in fertility; past billiard rooms and bars; through the sacred depths of vast forests; over Roman bridges spanning Native American rivers; through sunlight and shade; among joyful hearts or broken ones; through all the diverse landscapes of those remarkable Mohawk counties; and especially by rows of bright white chapels, whose spires stand like milestones, flows a continuous stream of corrupt and often lawless life. That's your true Ashantee, gentlemen; that's where your pagans howl; you can find them right next door to you; under the long shadows and the cozy, protective shelter of churches. For some strange irony, much like how it's often noted that your urban pirates gather around courthouses, so too do sinners, gentlemen, seem to thrive in the most sacred places."

"'Is that a friar passing?' said Don Pedro, looking downwards into the crowded plazza, with humorous concern.

"'Is that a friar passing by?' Don Pedro asked, peering down into the bustling plaza with a playful sense of worry.

"'Well for our northern friend, Dame Isabella's Inquisition wanes in Lima,' laughed Don Sebastian. 'Proceed, Senor.'

"'Well, for our northern friend, Dame Isabella's Inquisition is losing power in Lima,' laughed Don Sebastian. 'Go on, Sir.'"

"'A moment! Pardon!' cried another of the company. 'In the name of all us Limeese, I but desire to express to you, sir sailor, that we have by no means overlooked your delicacy in not substituting present Lima for distant Venice in your corrupt comparison. Oh! do not bow and look surprised: you know the proverb all along this coast—"Corrupt as Lima." It but bears out your saying, too; churches more plentiful than billiard-tables, and for ever open-and "Corrupt as Lima." So, too, Venice; I have been there; the holy city of the blessed evangelist, St. Mark!—St. Dominic, purge it! Your cup! Thanks: here I refill; now, you pour out again.'

"'A moment! Excuse me!' exclaimed another member of the group. 'On behalf of all of us from Lima, I just want to say, sir sailor, that we fully recognize your tact in choosing to compare present-day Lima with far-off Venice in your flawed analogy. Oh! Don't bow and act surprised: you know the saying along this coast—"Corrupt as Lima." It just confirms what you said, too; churches are more common than billiard tables, and always open—and "Corrupt as Lima." The same goes for Venice; I've been there; the holy city of the blessed evangelist, St. Mark!—St. Dominic, cleanse it! Your glass! Thanks: let me refill it; now, you pour it out again.'

"Freely depicted in his own vocation, gentlemen, the Canaller would make a fine dramatic hero, so abundantly and picturesquely wicked is he. Like Mark Antony, for days and days along his green-turfed, flowery Nile, he indolently floats, openly toying with his red-cheeked Cleopatra, ripening his apricot thigh upon the sunny deck. But ashore, all this effeminacy is dashed. The brigandish guise which the Canaller so proudly sports; his slouched and gaily-ribboned hat betoken his grand features. A terror to the smiling innocence of the villages through which he floats; his swart visage and bold swagger are not unshunned in cities. Once a vagabond on his own canal, I have received good turns from one of these Canallers; I thank him heartily; would fain be not ungrateful; but it is often one of the prime redeeming qualities of your man of violence, that at times he has as stiff an arm to back a poor stranger in a strait, as to plunder a wealthy one. In sum, gentlemen, what the wildness of this canal life is, is emphatically evinced by this; that our wild whale-fishery contains so many of its most finished graduates, and that scarce any race of mankind, except Sydney men, are so much distrusted by our whaling captains. Nor does it at all diminish the curiousness of this matter, that to many thousands of our rural boys and young men born along its line, the probationary life of the Grand Canal furnishes the sole transition between quietly reaping in a Christian corn-field, and recklessly ploughing the waters of the most barbaric seas.

"Freely depicted in his own profession, guys, the Canaller would make a great dramatic hero, so abundantly and vividly wicked is he. Like Mark Antony, for days and days along his green, flowery Nile, he lazily drifts, openly playing with his rosy-cheeked Cleopatra, while lounging on the sunny deck. But on land, all this softness disappears. The rugged look that the Canaller proudly wears; his slouched and colorfully ribboned hat shows off his impressive features. He’s a threat to the innocent smiles of the villages he passes through; his dark face and bold swagger are not welcome in cities. Once a wanderer on my own canal, I received kindness from one of these Canallers; I thank him sincerely; I’d like to not be ungrateful; but it’s often one of the key redeeming traits of a violent man that sometimes he’s just as ready to defend a poor stranger in trouble as to rob a wealthy one. In short, guys, the wildness of this canal life is clearly shown by the fact that our wild whaling industry has so many of its most skilled graduates, and that hardly any group of people, except for Sydney men, is as distrusted by our whaling captains. It’s also interesting that for many thousands of our rural boys and young men born along its route, the challenging life of the Grand Canal provides the only bridge between quietly harvesting in a Christian cornfield and recklessly navigating the most savage seas."

"'I see! I see!' impetuously exclaimed Don Pedro, spilling his
chicha upon his silvery ruffles. 'No need to travel!
The world's one Lima. I had thought, now, that at your temperate
North the generations were cold and holy as the hills.—
But the story.'

"'I get it! I get it!' Don Pedro exclaimed excitedly, spilling his
chicha on his shiny ruffles. 'No need to travel!
The whole world is just Lima. I used to think that up in your cool
North, the generations were as calm and pure as the hills.—
But the story.'"

"I had left off, gentlemen, where the Lakeman shook the backstay. Hardly had he done so, when he was surrounded by the three junior mates and the four harpooneers, who all crowded him to the deck. But sliding down the ropes like baleful comets, the two Canallers rushed into the uproar, and sought to drag their man out of it towards the forecastle. Others of the sailors joined with them in this attempt, and a twisted turmoil ensued; while standing out of harm's way, the valiant captain danced up and down with a whale-pike, calling upon his officers to manhandle that atrocious scoundrel, and smoke him along to the quarter-deck. At intervals, he ran close up to the revolving border of the confusion, and prying into the heart of it with his pike, sought to prick out the object of his resentment. But Steelkilt and his desperadoes were too much for them all; they succeeded in gaining the forecastle deck, where, hastily slewing about three or four large casks in a line with the windlass, these sea-Parisians entrenched themselves behind the barricade.

"I had left off, guys, where the Lakeman shook the backstay. Hardly had he done that when he was surrounded by the three junior mates and the four harpooneers, who all crowded him onto the deck. But sliding down the ropes like bad omens, the two Canallers rushed into the chaos, trying to pull their guy out of it towards the forecastle. Other sailors joined in their effort, creating a tangled mess; while standing clear of the action, the brave captain danced up and down with a whale-pike, urging his officers to deal with that horrible scoundrel and push him along to the quarter-deck. Occasionally, he ran right up to the edge of the chaos, and poking into the middle of it with his pike, he tried to pinpoint the target of his anger. But Steelkilt and his crew were too much for them all; they managed to reach the forecastle deck, where, quickly shifting around three or four large casks in line with the windlass, these sea rebels set up their defense behind the barricade."

"'Come out of that, ye pirates!' roared the captain, now menacing them with a pistol in each hand, just brought to him by the steward. 'Come out of that, ye cut-throats!'

"'Get out of there, you pirates!' shouted the captain, now threatening them with a pistol in each hand, just handed to him by the steward. 'Get out of there, you killers!'"

"Steelkilt leaped on the barricade, and striding up and down there, defied the worst the pistols could do; but gave the captain to understand distinctly, that his (Steelkilt's) death would be the signal for a murderous mutiny on the part of all hands. Fearing in his heart lest this might prove but too true, the captain a little desisted, but still commanded the insurgents instantly to return to their duty.

"Steelkilt jumped onto the barricade and paced back and forth, challenging the worst the pistols could inflict. He made it clear to the captain that his (Steelkilt's) death would trigger a violent mutiny from the entire crew. Deep down, the captain feared that this could actually happen, so he hesitated a bit but still ordered the rebels to return to their duties immediately."

"'Will you promise not to touch us, if we do?' demanded their ringleader.

"'Will you promise not to touch us if we do?' asked their ringleader."

"'Turn to! turn to!—I make no promise; to your duty!
Do you want to sink the ship, by knocking off at a time like this?
Turn to!' and he once more raised a pistol.

"'Get to work! Get to work!—I’m not making any promises; focus on your duty!
Do you want to sink the ship by slacking off at a time like this?
Get to work!' and he raised a pistol again."

"'Sink the ship?' cried Steelkilt. 'Aye, let her sink.
Not a man of us turns to, unless you swear not to raise a rope-yarn
against us. What say ye, men?' turning to his comrades.
A fierce cheer was their response.

"'Sink the ship?' shouted Steelkilt. 'Yeah, let it sink.
None of us will get to work unless you promise not to hold anything
against us. What do you say, guys?' he turned to his friends.
A loud cheer was their answer."

"The Lakeman now patrolled the barricade, all the while keeping his eye on the Captain, and jerking out such sentences as these:— 'It's not our fault; we didn't want it; I told him to take his hammer away; it was boy's business; he might have known me before this; I told him not to prick the buffalo; I believe I have broken a finger here against his cursed jaw; ain't those mincing knives down in the forecastle there, men? look to those handspikes, my hearties. Captain, by God, look to yourself; say the word; don't be a fool; forget it all; we are ready to turn to; treat us decently, and we're your men; but we won't be flogged.'

"The Lakeman now patrolled the barricade, keeping an eye on the Captain and throwing out comments like: 'It’s not our fault; we didn’t want this; I told him to put away his hammer; that’s kid stuff; he should have known me by now; I told him not to poke the buffalo; I think I broke a finger on his damn jaw; are those mincing knives down in the forecastle, guys? Watch those handspikes, my friends. Captain, seriously, watch yourself; just say the word; don’t be stupid; let’s forget all of this; we’re ready to work; treat us right, and we’ve got your back; but we won’t be punished.'

"'Turn to! I make no promises, turn to, I say!'

"'Turn to! I can't make any promises, turn to, I say!'"

"'Look ye, now,' cried the Lakeman, flinging out his arm towards him, 'there are a few of us here (and I am one of them) who have shipped for the cruise, d'ye see; now as you well know, sir, we can claim our discharge as soon as the anchor is down; so we don't want a row; it's not our interest; we want to be peaceable; we are ready to work, but we won't be flogged.'

"'Look here,' shouted the Lakeman, waving his arm at him, 'there are a few of us here (and I'm one of them) who signed up for the trip, you see; now as you know very well, sir, we can quit as soon as the anchor hits the bottom; so we don't want any trouble; it's not in our interest; we want to keep the peace; we’re ready to work, but we won’t be beaten.'

"'Turn to!' roared the Captain.

"Turn to!" yelled the Captain.

"Steelkilt glanced round him a moment, and then said:—'I tell you what it is now, Captain, rather than kill ye, and be hung for such a shabby rascal, we won't lift a hand against ye unless ye attack us; but till you say the word about not flogging us, we don't do a hand's turn.'

"Steelkilt looked around for a moment, then said, 'Listen, Captain, instead of killing you and getting hanged for it, we won’t lay a finger on you unless you come after us. But until you say we won't be flogged, we aren't lifting a finger to help.'"

"'Down into the forecastle then, down with ye, I'll keep ye there till ye're sick of it. Down ye go.'

"'Down into the quarters then, down with you, I'll keep you there until you can't stand it anymore. Down you go.'"

"'Shall we?' cried the ringleader to his men. Most of them were against it; but at length, in obedience to Steelkilt, they preceded him down into their dark den, growlingly disappearing, like bears into a cave.

"'Shall we?' shouted the ringleader to his group. Most of them didn't want to, but eventually, out of respect for Steelkilt, they followed him down into their dark hideout, grumbling as they went, like bears retreating into a cave."

"As the Lakeman's bare head was just level with the planks, the Captain and his posse leaped the barricade, and rapidly drawing over the slide of the scuttle, planted their group of hands upon it, and loudly called for the steward to bring the heavy brass padlock belonging to the companionway.

"As the Lakeman's bare head was just level with the planks, the Captain and his crew jumped over the barrier, quickly closed the slide of the scuttle, placed their hands on it, and loudly asked the steward to bring the heavy brass padlock for the companionway."

Then opening the slide a little, the Captain whispered something down the crack, closed it, and turned the key upon them—ten in number— leaving on deck some twenty or more, who thus far had remained neutral.

Then, opening the slide a bit, the Captain whispered something through the gap, closed it, and turned the key on them—there were ten in total—leaving about twenty or more on deck, who had so far stayed neutral.

"All night a wide-awake watch was kept by all the officers, forward and aft, especially about the forecastle scuttle and fore hatchway; at which last place it was feared the insurgents might emerge, after breaking through the bulkhead below. But the hours of darkness passed in peace; the men who still remained at their duty toiling hard at the pumps, whose clinking and clanking at intervals through the dreary night dismally resounded through the ship.

"All night, all the officers stayed alert, both at the front and back of the ship, particularly around the forecastle scuttle and fore hatchway, where there was concern that the insurgents might surface after breaking through the bulkhead below. However, the dark hours went by peacefully; the men who still had duties worked hard at the pumps, the clinking and clanking sounds echoing through the ship during the long, dreary night."

"At sunrise the Captain went forward, and knocking on the deck, summoned the prisoners to work; but with a yell they refused. Water was then lowered down to them, and a couple of handfuls of biscuit were tossed after it; when again turning the key upon them and pocketing it, the Captain returned to the quarter-deck. Twice every day for three days this was repeated; but on the fourth morning a confused wrangling, and then a scuffling was heard, as the customary summons was delivered; and suddenly four men burst up from the forecastle, saying they were ready to turn to. The fetid closeness of the air, and a famishing diet, united perhaps to some fears of ultimate retribution, had constrained them to surrender at discretion. Emboldened by this, the Captain reiterated his demand to the rest, but Steelkilt shouted up to him a terrific hint to stop his babbling and betake himself where he belonged. On the fifth morning three others of the mutineers bolted up into the air from the desperate arms below that sought to restrain them. Only three were left.

"At sunrise, the Captain went forward and knocked on the deck to call the prisoners to work, but they refused with a yell. Water was then lowered down to them, along with a couple of handfuls of biscuits tossed after it; after locking them in again and pocketing the key, the Captain returned to the quarter-deck. This happened twice a day for three days; but on the fourth morning, a chaotic argument and then a scuffle was heard as the usual summons was given, and suddenly four men burst up from the forecastle, claiming they were ready to work. The stuffy air and starving conditions, combined with some fear of eventual punishment, had forced them to surrender. Encouraged by this, the Captain repeated his demand to the others, but Steelkilt shouted up a fierce warning for him to stop talking and go where he belonged. On the fifth morning, three more of the mutineers shot up from the desperate hands below trying to hold them back. Only three remained."

"'Better turn to, now?' said the Captain with a heartless jeer.

"'Better get going now?' said the Captain with a cold laugh.

"'Shut us up again, will ye!' cried Steelkilt.

"'Shut us up again, will you!' yelled Steelkilt."

"Oh! certainly," said the Captain, and the key clicked.

"Oh! definitely," said the Captain, and the key clicked.

"It was at this point, gentlemen, that enraged by the defection of seven of his former associates, and stung by the mocking voice that had last hailed him, and maddened by his long entombment in a place as black as the bowels of despair; it was then that Steelkilt proposed to the two Canallers, thus far apparently of one mind with him, to burst out of their hole at the next summoning of the garrison; and armed with their keen mincing knives (long, crescentic, heavy implements with a handle at each end) run amuck from the bowsprit to the taffrail; and if by any devilishness of desperation possible, seize the ship. For himself, he would do this, he said, whether they joined him or not. That was the last night he should spend in that den. But the scheme met with no opposition on the part of the other two; they swore they were ready for that, or for any other mad thing, for anything in short but a surrender. And what was more, they each insisted upon being the first man on deck, when the time to make the rush should come. But to this their leader as fiercely objected, reserving that priority for himself; particularly as his two comrades would not yield, the one to the other, in the matter; and both of them could not be first, for the ladder would but admit one man at a time. And here, gentlemen, the foul play of these miscreants must come out.

"It was at this point, gentlemen, that angered by the desertion of seven of his former associates, stung by the mocking voice that had last called to him, and driven mad by his long confinement in a place as dark as the depths of despair; it was then that Steelkilt suggested to the two Canallers, who had so far seemed to share his views, to break out of their hiding spot at the next call of the garrison; and armed with their sharp mincing knives (long, crescent-shaped, heavy tools with a handle at each end) charge from the bowsprit to the taffrail; and if by any desperate trick possible, seize the ship. For himself, he said he would do this, whether they joined him or not. That would be the last night he spent in that hole. But the plan faced no opposition from the other two; they swore they were up for that, or any other crazy thing, anything at all but a surrender. And what’s more, they each insisted on being the first man on deck when the time came to make the dash. But to this, their leader objected fiercely, reserving that spot for himself; especially since his two comrades wouldn’t back down, one to the other, on the matter; and both of them couldn’t be first, as the ladder would fit only one person at a time. And here, gentlemen, the foul play of these miscreants must come to light."

"Upon hearing the frantic project of their leader, each in his own separate soul had suddenly lighted, it would seem, upon the same piece of treachery, namely: to be the foremost in breaking out, in order to be the first of the three, though the last of the ten, to surrender; and thereby secure whatever small chance of pardon such conduct might merit. But when Steelkilt made known his determination still to lead them to the last, they in some way, by some subtle chemistry of villany, mixed their before secret treacheries together; and when their leader fell into a doze, verbally opened their souls to each other in three sentences; and bound the sleeper with cords, and gagged him with cords; and shrieked out for the Captain at midnight.

"After hearing their leader's desperate plan, each of them suddenly seemed to realize the same betrayal—that they wanted to be the first to escape and surrender, even if that meant being the last of the ten. This way, they hoped to earn any small chance of mercy for their actions. But when Steelkilt expressed his intention to lead them until the end, they somehow conspired together, combining their secret betrayals. When their leader dozed off, they quickly revealed their plans to one another in just a few words, bound him with ropes, gagged him, and screamed for the Captain in the middle of the night."

"Thinking murder at hand, and smelling in the dark for the blood, he and all his armed mates and harpooneers rushed for the forecastle. In a few minutes the scuttle was opened, and, bound hand and foot, the still struggling ringleader was shoved up into the air by his perfidious allies, who at once claimed the honor of securing a man who had been fully ripe for murder. But all these were collared, and dragged along the deck like dead cattle; and, side by side, were seized up into the mizzen rigging, like three quarters of meat, and there they hung till morning. 'Damn ye,' cried the Captain, pacing to and fro before them, 'the vultures would not touch ye, ye villains!'

"Thinking about murder and sensing blood in the dark, he and all his armed crew and harpooneers rushed to the forecastle. A few minutes later, the hatch was opened, and the still-struggling ringleader, bound hand and foot, was hoisted into the air by his treacherous allies, who immediately took credit for capturing a man who was already ready to commit murder. But all of them were grabbed and dragged along the deck like dead animals; side by side, they were tied up in the mizzen rigging, like cuts of meat, and hung there until morning. 'Damn you,' shouted the Captain, pacing back and forth in front of them, 'even the vultures wouldn't touch you, you villains!'"

"At sunrise he summoned all hands; and separating those who had rebelled from those who had taken no part in the mutiny, he told the former that he had a good mind to flog them all round—thought, upon the while, he would do so—he ought to—justice demanded it; but for the present, considering their timely surrender, he would let them go with a reprimand, which he accordingly administered in the vernacular.

"At sunrise, he called everyone together and separated those who had rebelled from those who had stayed loyal. He told the rebels that he was seriously considering flogging them all, and while he thought about it—he should have—justice required it; but for now, taking into account their timely surrender, he would let them off with a reprimand, which he delivered in their language."

"'But as for you, ye carrion rogues,' turning to the three men in the rigging—'for you, I mean to mince ye up for the try-pots;' and, seizing a rope, he applied it with all his might to the backs of the two traitors, till they yelled no more, but lifelessly hung their heads sideways, as the two crucified thieves are drawn.

"'But as for you, you dirty scoundrels,' he said, turning to the three men in the rigging—'for you, I plan to chop you up for the try-pots;' and grabbing a rope, he swung it with all his force at the backs of the two traitors, until they cried out no more, but hung their heads limply to the side, like the two thieves on the cross."

"'My wrist is sprained with ye!' he cried, at last; 'but there is still rope enough left for you, my fine bantam, that wouldn't give up. Take that gag from his mouth, and let us hear what he can say for himself.'

"'My wrist is sprained because of you!' he shouted finally; 'but there’s still enough rope left for you, my tough little fighter, who refuses to back down. Take that gag out of his mouth, and let’s hear what he has to say for himself.'"

"For a moment the exhausted mutineer made a tremulous motion of his cramped jaws, and then painfully twisting round his head, said in a sort of hiss, 'What I say is this—and mind it well—- if you flog me, I murder you!'

"For a moment, the tired mutineer made a shaky movement with his sore jaw, and then, painfully turning his head, said in a hissing voice, 'What I'm saying is this—listen closely—if you whip me, I'll kill you!'"

"'Say ye so? then see how ye frighten me'—and the Captain drew off with the rope to strike.

"'Is that what you say? Then see how you scare me'—and the Captain pulled back with the rope to hit."

"'Best not,' hissed the Lakeman.

"Better not," hissed the Lakeman.

"'But I must,'—and the rope was once more drawn back for the stroke.

"'But I have to,'—and the rope was pulled back again for the blow.

"Steelkilt here hissed out something, inaudible to all but the Captain; who, to the amazement of all hands, started back, paced the deck rapidly two or three times, and then suddenly throwing down his rope, said, 'I won't do it—let him go— cut him down: d'ye hear?'

"Steelkilt hissed something that only the Captain could hear; to everyone's surprise, the Captain stepped back, walked quickly back and forth on the deck two or three times, and then suddenly dropped his rope and said, 'I won't do it—let him go—cut him down: do you hear?'"

But as the junior mates were hurrying to execute the order, a pale man, with a bandaged head, arrested them—Radney the chief mate. Ever since the blow, he had lain in his berth; but that morning, hearing the tumult on the deck, he had crept out, and thus far had watched the whole scene. Such was the state of his mouth, that he could hardly speak; but mumbling something about his being willing and able to do what the captain dared not attempt, he snatched the rope and advanced to his pinioned foe.

But as the junior crew members rushed to carry out the order, a pale man with a bandaged head stopped them—Radney, the chief mate. Ever since the injury, he had been lying in his bunk, but that morning, hearing the chaos on deck, he had crept out and had been watching the whole scene unfold. His mouth was in such a state that he could barely speak, but mumbling something about being willing and able to do what the captain dared not attempt, he grabbed the rope and moved toward his bound opponent.

"'You are a coward!' hissed the Lakeman.

"'You're a coward!' the Lakeman hissed."

"'So I am, but take that.' The mate was in the very act of striking, when another hiss stayed his uplifted arm. He paused: and then pausing no more, made good his word, spite of Steelkilt's threat, whatever that might have been. The three men were then cut down, all hands were turned to, and, sullenly worked by the moody seamen, the iron pumps clanged as before.

"'So I am, but take that.' The mate was just about to hit when another hiss stopped his raised arm. He hesitated, but then, without any more thought, went through with it, ignoring Steelkilt's threat, whatever that was. The three men were then taken down, everyone worked together, and, with the moody sailors still in a bad mood, the iron pumps clanged like before."

"Just after dark that day, when one watch had retired below, a clamor was heard in the forecastle; and the two trembling traitors running up, besieged the cabin door, saying they durst not consort with the crew. Entreaties, cuffs, and kicks could not drive them back, so at their own instance they were put down in the ship's run for salvation. Still, no sign of mutiny reappeared among the rest. On the contrary, it seemed, that mainly at Steelkilt's instigation, they had resolved to maintain the strictest peacefulness, obey all orders to the last, and, when the ship reached port, desert her in a body. But in order to insure the speediest end to the voyage, they all agreed to another thing—namely, not to sing out for whales, in case any should be discovered. For, spite of her leak, and spite of all her other perils, the Town-Ho still maintained her mast-heads, and her captain was just as willing to lower for a fish that moment, as on the day his craft first struck the cruising ground; and Radney the mate was quite as ready to change his berth for a boat, and with his bandaged mouth seek to gag in death the vital jaw of the whale.

"Just after dark that day, when one watch had gone below, there was a commotion in the forecastle; and the two shaking traitors ran up, crowding around the cabin door, saying they couldn't associate with the crew. Pleas, slaps, and kicks couldn't push them back, so they were put down in the ship's run for safety at their own request. Still, there was no sign of mutiny among the others. On the contrary, it seemed that mainly because of Steelkilt's urging, they had decided to keep things peaceful, follow all orders carefully, and when the ship reached port, leave together. But to ensure the quickest end to the voyage, they all agreed on one more thing—not to call out for whales if any were spotted. Despite her leak and all her other dangers, the Town-Ho still kept her mastheads, and her captain was just as eager to lower for a fish at that moment as he had been on the day his ship first hit the cruising grounds; and Radney the mate was equally ready to switch from his post to a boat, trying to silence the whale's vital jaw with his bandaged mouth."

"But though the Lakeman had induced the seamen to adopt this sort of passiveness in their conduct, he kept his own counsel (at least till all was over) concerning his own proper and private revenge upon the man who had stung him in the ventricles of his heart. He was in Radney the chief mate's watch; and as if the infatuated man sought to run more than half way to meet his doom, after the scene at the rigging, he insisted, against the express counsel of the captain, upon resuming the head of his watch at night. Upon this, and one or two other circumstances, Steelkilt systematically built the plan of his revenge.

"But even though the Lakeman had convinced the sailors to act passively, he kept his intentions to himself (at least until everything was settled) regarding his own personal revenge on the man who had hurt him deeply. He was on watch with Radney, the chief mate; and as if the foolish man wanted to rush towards his own downfall after the incident at the rigging, he insisted, against the captain’s clear advice, on taking charge of his watch at night again. Based on this and a few other things, Steelkilt carefully devised his plan for revenge."

"During the night, Radney had an unseaman-like way of sitting on the bulwarks of the quarterdeck, and leaning his arm upon the gunwale of the boat which was hoisted up there, a little above the ship's side. In this attitude, it was well known, he sometimes dozed. There was a considerable vacancy between the boat and the ship, and down between this was the sea. Steelkilt calculated his time, and found that his next trick at the helm would come round at two o'clock, in the morning of the third day from that in which he had been betrayed. At his leisure, he employed the interval in braiding something very carefully in his watches below.

"During the night, Radney had an unseamanlike way of sitting on the bulwarks of the quarterdeck, leaning his arm on the gunwale of the boat that was hoisted up there, a bit above the ship's side. It was well known that he sometimes dozed in this position. There was a considerable gap between the boat and the ship, with the sea down below. Steelkilt timed it out and realized that his next turn at the helm would come at two o’clock in the morning on the third day since he had been betrayed. At his leisure, he used the time to carefully braid something in his quarters below."

"'What are you making there?' said a shipmate.

"'What are you working on there?' said a shipmate."

"'What do you think? what does it look like?'

"'What do you think? How does it look?'"

"'Like a lanyard for your bag; but it's an odd one, seems to me.'

"'Like a lanyard for your bag; but it's a strange one, if you ask me.'"

'Yes, rather oddish,' said the Lakeman, holding it at arm's length before him; 'but I think it will answer. Shipmate, I haven't enough twine,—have you any?'

'Yeah, it's kind of strange,' said the Lakeman, holding it out at arm's length in front of him; 'but I think it will work. Shipmate, I don't have enough twine—do you have any?'

"But there was none in the forecastle.

But there was none in the forecastle.

"'Then I must get some from old Rad;' and he rose to go aft.

"'Then I have to get some from old Rad;' and he stood up to head towards the back."

"'You don't mean to go a begging to him!' said a sailor.

"'You can't seriously be thinking of begging him for help!' said a sailor."

"'Why not? Do you think he won't do me a turn, when it's to help himself in the end, shipmate?' and going to the mate, he looked at him quietly, and asked him for some twine to mend his hammock. It was given him—neither twine nor lanyard were seen again; but the next night an iron ball, closely netted, partly rolled from the pocket of the Lakeman's monkey jacket, as he was tucking the coat into his hammock for a pillow. Twenty-four hours after, his trick at the silent helm— nigh to the man who was apt to doze over the grave always ready dug to the seaman's hand—that fatal hour was then to come; and in the fore-ordaining soul of Steelkilt, the mate was already stark and stretched as a corpse, with his forehead crushed in.

"'Why not? Do you think he won't help me out if it benefits him in the end, buddy?' He then approached the mate, looked at him calmly, and asked for some twine to fix his hammock. He was given some—neither the twine nor the lanyard were seen again; but the next night, an iron ball, tightly wrapped in netting, partially fell out of the pocket of the Lakeman's monkey jacket as he was tucking the coat into his hammock to use it as a pillow. Twenty-four hours later, his watch at the silent helm—close to the guy who always seemed to doze off over the grave that was always ready for the seaman—was nearing; that fatal hour was approaching, and in the preordained mind of Steelkilt, the mate was already lifeless and laid out like a corpse, with his forehead caved in."

"But, gentlemen, a fool saved the would-be murderer from the bloody deed he had planned. Yet complete revenge he had, and without being the avenger. For by a mysterious fatality, Heaven itself seemed to step in to take out of his hands into its own the damning thing he would have done.

"But, gentlemen, a fool stopped the would-be murderer from carrying out the bloody act he intended. Yet he still got complete revenge without being the one to take action. It was as if a mysterious fate intervened, with Heaven itself stepping in to take away from him the terrible thing he would have done."

"It was just between daybreak and sunrise of the morning of the second day, when they were washing down the decks, that a stupid Teneriffe man, drawing water in the main-chains, all at once shouted out, 'There she rolls! there she rolls!' Jesu, what a whale! It was Moby Dick.

"It was just before dawn on the morning of the second day, while they were cleaning the decks, that a clueless guy from Tenerife, scooping water in the main-chains, suddenly yelled, 'There she rolls! there she rolls!' Jesus, what a whale! It was Moby Dick."

"'Moby Dick!' cried Don Sebastian; 'St. Dominic! Sir sailor, but do whales have christenings? Whom call you Moby Dick?'

"'Moby Dick!' shouted Don Sebastian; 'Saint Dominic! Hey sailor, do whales get names? Who do you call Moby Dick?'"

"'A very white, and famous, and most deadly immortal monster, Don;— but that would be too long a story.'

"'A very white, famous, and extremely deadly immortal monster, Don;— but that would take too long to explain.'"

"'How? how?' cried all the young Spaniards, crowding.

"'How? How?' cried all the young Spaniards, crowding.

"'Nay, Dons, Dons—nay, nay! I cannot rehearse that now.
Let me get more into the air, Sirs.'

"'No, Dons, Dons—no, no! I can't rehearse that right now.
Let me get back to the main topic, gentlemen.'"

"'The chicha! the chicha!' cried Don Pedro; 'our vigorous friend looks faint;—fill up his empty glass!'

"'The chicha! The chicha!' shouted Don Pedro; 'our spirited friend looks pale;—fill his empty glass!'"

"No need, gentlemen; one moment, and I proceed.—Now, gentlemen, so suddenly perceiving the snowy whale within fifty yards of the ship— forgetful of the compact among the crew—in the excitement of the moment, the Teneriffe man had instinctively and involuntarily lifted his voice for the monster, though for some little time past it had been plainly beheld from the three sullen mast-heads. All was now a phrensy. 'The White Whale—the White Whale!' was the cry from captain, mates, and harpooneers, who, undeterred by fearful rumours, were all anxious to capture so famous and precious a fish; while the dogged crew eyed askance, and with curses, the appalling beauty of the vast milky mass, that lit up by a horizontal spangling sun, shifted and glistened like a living opal in the blue morning sea. Gentlemen, a strange fatality pervades the whole career of these events, as if verily mapped out before the world itself was charted. The mutineer was the bowsman of the mate, and when fast to a fish, it was his duty to sit next him, while Radney stood up with his lance in the prow, and haul in or slacken the line, at the word of command. Moreover, when the four boats were lowered, the mate's got the start; and none howled more fiercely with delight than did Steelkilt, as he strained at his oar. After a stiff pull, their harpooneer got fast, and, spear in hand, Radney sprang to the bow. He was always a furious man, it seems, in a boat. And now his bandaged cry was, to beach him on the whale's topmost back. Nothing loath, his bowsman hauled him up and up, through a blinding foam that blent two whitenesses together; till of a sudden the boat struck as against a sunken ledge, and keeling over, spilled out the standing mate. That instant, as he fell on the whale's slippery back, the boat righted, and was dashed aside by the swell, while Radney was tossed over into the sea, on the other flank of the whale. He struck out through the spray, and, for an instant, was dimly seen through that veil, wildly seeking to remove himself from the eye of Moby Dick. But the whale rushed round in a sudden maelstrom; seized the swimmer between his jaws; and rearing high up with him, plunged headlong again, and went down.

"No need, gentlemen; just a moment, and I’ll continue.—Now, gentlemen, suddenly spotting the white whale just fifty yards away from the ship—forgetting the agreement among the crew—in the heat of the moment, the man from Teneriffe instinctively shouted for the monster, even though it had been clearly visible from the three gloomy mastheads for some time. It was pure chaos. 'The White Whale—the White Whale!' was the cry from the captain, mates, and harpooneers, all eager to catch such a famous and valuable fish despite the frightening rumors. Meanwhile, the grim crew watched with distrust and curses at the stunning sight of the massive white creature, illuminated by a sparkling sun, shifting and glistening like a living opal in the blue morning sea. Gentlemen, a strange fate seems to hang over the entire course of these events, as if it were predestined before the world was even charted. The mutineer was the bowsman of the mate, and when they were connected to a fish, it was his job to sit next to him while Radney stood at the front with his lance, hauling in or letting out the line at the command. When the four boats were launched, the mate's boat got the jump on the others; and none cheered more loudly than Steelkilt as he pulled on his oar. After a hard pull, their harpooneer got a hook in, and, spear in hand, Radney jumped to the front. It seems he was always a furious man in a boat. Now, his shouted command was to land him on the whale's highest back. His bowsman eagerly pulled him up through a blinding spray that merged two whitenesses together; until suddenly the boat hit something submerged and tipped over, throwing the mate out into the water. At that moment, as he fell onto the whale's slick back, the boat righted itself and was pushed aside by the wave, while Radney was thrown into the sea on the other side of the whale. He swam through the spray and, for an instant, could be seen through the mist, desperately trying to get away from the eye of Moby Dick. But the whale turned in a sudden whirlpool; grabbed the swimmer in its jaws; and rising high with him, plunged headfirst again and disappeared below the surface."

"Meantime, at the first tap of the boat's bottom, the Lakeman had slackened the line, so as to drop astern from the whirlpool; calmly looking on, he thought his own thoughts. But a sudden, terrific, downward jerking of the boat, quickly brought his knife to the line. He cut it; and the whale was free. But, at some distance, Moby Dick rose again, with some tatters of Radney's red woollen shirt, caught in the teeth that had destroyed him. All four boats gave chase again; but the whale eluded them, and finally wholly disappeared.

"Meanwhile, at the first bump of the boat against the bottom, the Lakeman loosened the line to pull back from the whirlpool; calmly observing, he was lost in his own thoughts. But a sudden, terrifying jolt of the boat made him reach for his knife to cut the line. He did, and the whale was set free. However, not far away, Moby Dick surfaced again, with some scraps of Radney's red wool shirt caught in the teeth that had killed him. All four boats pursued again, but the whale dodged them and eventually vanished completely."

"In good time, the Town-Ho reached her port—a savage, solitary place— where no civilized creature resided. There, headed by the Lakeman, all but five or six of the foremastmen deliberately deserted among the palms; eventually, as it turned out, seizing a large double war-canoe of the savages, and setting sail for some other harbor.

"In due time, the Town-Ho arrived at its port—a wild, isolated place—where no civilized person lived. There, led by the Lakeman, nearly all the foremastmen except for five or six intentionally abandoned ship among the palms; eventually, as it turned out, they took a large double war canoe from the natives and set off for another harbor."

"The ship's company being reduced to but a handful, the captain called upon the Islanders to assist him in the laborious business of heaving down the ship to stop the leak. But to such unresting vigilance over their dangerous allies was this small band of whites necessitated, both by night and by day, and so extreme was the hard work they underwent, that upon the vessel being ready again for sea, they were in such a weakened condition that the captain durst not put off with them in so heavy a vessel. After taking counsel with his officers, he anchored the ship as far off shore as possible; loaded and ran out his two cannon from the bows; stacked his muskets on the poop; and warning the Islanders not to approach the ship at their peril, took one man with him, and setting the sail of his best whale-boat, steered straight before the wind for Tahiti, five hundred miles distant, to procure a reinforcement to his crew.

"The ship's crew had dwindled to just a few people, so the captain asked the Islanders to help him with the difficult task of repairing the ship to stop the leak. However, this small group of white men had to stay constantly vigilant against their dangerous allies both day and night, and the hard work they put in left them so exhausted that when the ship was finally ready to sail again, the captain was afraid to leave with them in such a heavy vessel. After discussing with his officers, he anchored the ship as far from shore as possible, loaded and rolled out his two cannons from the front, stacked his muskets on the deck, and warned the Islanders not to come near the ship at their own risk. He took one man with him, set the sail of his best whaleboat, and headed straight into the wind for Tahiti, which was five hundred miles away, to get reinforcements for his crew."

"On the fourth day of the sail, a large canoe was descried, which seemed to have touched at a low isle of corals. He steered away from it; but the savage craft bore down on him; and soon the voice of Steelkilt hailed him to heave to, or he would run him under water. The captain presented a pistol. With one foot on each prow of the yoked war-canoes, the Lakeman laughed him to scorn; assuring him that if the pistol so much as clicked in the lock, he would bury him in bubbles and foam.

"On the fourth day of sailing, a large canoe appeared, which seemed to have landed at a low coral island. He steered away from it, but the aggressive canoe moved toward him; soon Steelkilt's voice called out, telling him to stop or he would be run under. The captain aimed a pistol. With one foot on each prow of the paired war canoes, the Lakeman mocked him, assuring him that if the pistol even made a sound, he would drown him in bubbles and foam."

"'What do you want of me?' cried the captain.

"'What do you want from me?' shouted the captain.

"'Where are you bound? and for what are you bound?' demanded Steelkilt; 'no lies.'

"'Where are you headed? And what are you headed for?' asked Steelkilt; 'no lies.'"

"'I am bound to Tahiti for more men.'

'I am headed to Tahiti for more people.'

"'Very good. Let me board you a moment—I come in peace.' With that he leaped from the canoe, swam to the boat; and climbing the gunwale, stood face to face with the captain.

"'Very good. Let me join you for a moment—I come in peace.' With that, he jumped from the canoe, swam to the boat, and climbing over the edge, stood face to face with the captain."

"'Cross your arms, sir; throw back your head. Now, repeat after me. As soon as Steelkilt leaves me, I swear to beach this boat on yonder island, and remain there six days. If I do not, may lightning strike me!'

"'Cross your arms, sir; tilt your head back. Now, repeat after me. As soon as Steelkilt leaves me, I swear to run this boat aground on that island over there, and stay there for six days. If I don’t, may lightning strike me!'"

"'A pretty scholar,' laughed the Lakeman. 'Adios, Senor!' and leaping into the sea, he swam back to his comrades.

"'A smart scholar,' laughed the Lakeman. 'See you later, Sir!' and jumping into the sea, he swam back to his friends."

"Watching the boat till it was fairly beached, and drawn up to the roots of the cocoa-nut trees, Steelkilt made sail again, and in due time arrived at Tahiti, his own place of destination. There, luck befriended him; two ships were about to sail for France, and were providentially in want of precisely that number of men which the sailor headed. They embarked, and so for ever got the start of their former captain, had he been at all minded to work them legal retribution.

"Watching the boat until it was mostly beached and pulled up to the roots of the coconut trees, Steelkilt set sail again and eventually reached Tahiti, his intended destination. There, fortune smiled on him; two ships were getting ready to leave for France and just happened to need exactly the number of men that the sailor was leading. They boarded, and so they permanently got the upper hand over their former captain, if he had ever intended to pursue legal action against them."

"Some ten days after the French ships sailed, the whale-boat arrived, and the captain was forced to enlist some of the more civilized Tahitians, who had been somewhat used to the sea. Chartering a small native schooner, he returned with them to his vessel; and finding all right there, again resumed his cruisings.

"About ten days after the French ships left, the whale boat arrived, and the captain had to recruit some of the more civilized Tahitians, who were somewhat familiar with the sea. He chartered a small local schooner and took them back to his ship; after making sure everything was okay there, he continued his voyages."

"Where Steelkilt now is, gentlemen, none know; but upon the island of Nantucket, the widow of Radney still turns to the sea which refuses to give up its dead; still in dreams sees the awful white whale that destroyed him.

"Where Steelkilt is now, gentlemen, no one knows; but on the island of Nantucket, Radney's widow still looks to the sea that won't give up its dead; she still dreams of the terrible white whale that killed him."

"'Are you through?' said Don Sebastian, quietly.

"'Are you done?' Don Sebastian asked quietly."

"'I am, Don.'

"I'm in, Don."

"'Then I entreat you, tell me if to the best of your own convictions, this your story is in substance really true? It is so passing wonderful! Did you get it from an unquestionable source? Bear with me if I seem to press.'

"'Then I urge you, please tell me if, based on your own beliefs, your story is really true? It's so incredibly amazing! Did you get it from a reliable source? Please forgive me if I seem to be insisting.'"

"'Also bear with all of us, sir sailor; for we all join in
Don Sebastian's suit,' cried the company, with exceeding interest.

"'Also bear with all of us, sailor; for we all support
Don Sebastian's request,' the group exclaimed, very eagerly.

"'Is there a copy of the Holy Evangelists in the Golden Inn, gentlemen?'

"'Is there a copy of the Holy Evangelists at the Golden Inn, gentlemen?'"

"'Nay,' said Don Sebastian; 'but I know a worthy priest near by, who will quickly procure one for me. I go for it; but are you well advised? this may grow too serious.'

"'No,' said Don Sebastian; 'but I know a good priest nearby who can get one for me quickly. I'm going to get it; but are you sure about this? This could get too serious.'"

"'Will you be so good as to bring the priest also, Don?'

"'Could you please bring the priest too, Don?'"

"'Though there are no Auto-da-Fe's in Lima now,' said one of the company to another; 'I fear our sailor friend runs risks of the archiepiscopacy. Let us withdraw more out of the moonlight. I see no need of this.'

"'Even though there are no Auto-da-Fe's in Lima anymore,' one of the group said to another, 'I worry our sailor friend is taking risks with the archbishop. Let's move further away from the moonlight. I don't see any reason for this.'"

"'Excuse me for running after you, Don Sebastian; but may I also beg that you will be particular in procuring the largest sized Evangelists you can.'

"'Sorry for chasing after you, Don Sebastian; but can I also ask that you make sure to get the largest sized Evangelists you can.'"

'This is the priest, he brings you the Evangelists,' said Don Sebastian, gravely, returning with a tall and solemn figure.

'This is the priest; he brings you the Evangelists,' said Don Sebastian seriously, coming back with a tall and serious figure.

"'Let me remove my hat. Now, venerable priest, further into the light, and hold the Holy Book before me that I may touch it.

"'Let me take off my hat. Now, respected priest, come closer into the light, and hold the Holy Book in front of me so I can touch it.

"'So help me Heaven, and on my honor the story I have told ye, gentlemen, is in substance and its great items, true. I know it to be true; it happened on this ball; I trod the ship; I knew the crew; I have seen and talked with Steelkilt since the death of Radney."

"'So help me God, and on my honor, the story I've told you, gentlemen, is basically true in all its important details. I know it's true; it happened on this voyage; I was on the ship; I knew the crew; I've seen and talked with Steelkilt since Radney's death."

CHAPTER 55

Of the Monstrous Pictures of Whales

Of the Monstrous Pictures of Whales

I shall ere long paint to you as well as one can without canvas, something like the true form of the whale as he actually appears to the eye of the whaleman when in his own absolute body the whale is moored alongside the whaleship so that he can be fairly stepped upon there. It may be worth while, therefore, previously to advert to those curious imaginary portraits of him which even down to the present day confidently challenge the faith of the landsman. It is time to set the world right in this matter, by proving such pictures of the whale all wrong.

I will soon describe to you, as best as I can without a canvas, something like the true appearance of the whale as a whaleman sees it when the whale is right next to the whaling ship, so close that you could almost step onto it. Therefore, it’s worth taking a moment to look at those strange, imaginary images of the whale that still today confidently claim to represent it for those who live on land. It's time to set the record straight by proving that those pictures of the whale are all wrong.

It may be that the primal source of all those pictorial delusions will be found among the oldest Hindoo, Egyptian, and Grecian sculptures. For ever since those inventive but unscrupulous times when on the marble panellings of temples, the pedestals of statues, and on shields, medallions, cups, and coins, the dolphin was drawn in scales of chain-armor like Saladin's, and a helmeted head like St. George's; ever since then has something of the same sort of license prevailed, not only in most popular pictures of the whale, but in many scientific presentations of him.

It’s possible that the original source of all those visual illusions can be traced back to the oldest Hindu, Egyptian, and Greek sculptures. Ever since those creative yet unprincipled times when dolphins were illustrated with chainmail scales like Saladin's, and a helmeted head similar to St. George's on the marble panels of temples, the bases of statues, and on shields, medallions, cups, and coins; ever since then, a similar kind of freedom in representation has existed, not just in many popular images of whales, but also in various scientific depictions of them.

Now, by all odds, the most ancient extant portrait anyways purporting to be the whale's, is to be found in the famous cavern-pagoda of Elephants, in India. The Brahmins maintain that in the almost endless sculptures of that immemorial pagoda, all the trades and pursuits, every conceivable avocation of man, were prefigured ages before any of them actually came into being. No wonder then, that in some sort our noble profession of whaling should have been there shadowed forth. The Hindoo whale referred to, occurs in a separate department of the wall, depicting the incarnation of Vishnu in the form of leviathan, learnedly known as the Matse Avatar. But though this sculpture is half man and half whale, so as only to give the tail of the latter, yet that small section of him is all wrong. It looks more like the tapering tail of an anaconda, than the broad palms of the true whale's majestic flukes.

Now, by all accounts, the oldest existing portrait claiming to be of the whale is found in the famous elephant cave temple in India. The Brahmins believe that in the nearly endless sculptures of that ancient temple, all the trades and pursuits, every imaginable occupation of humanity, were predicted long before any of them actually existed. It’s not surprising, then, that our noble profession of whaling has been represented there in some way. The Hindu whale mentioned occurs in a separate section of the wall, depicting the incarnation of Vishnu in the form of a leviathan, known in scholarly terms as the Matse Avatar. However, although this sculpture is half man and half whale, showing only the tail of the latter, that small part is entirely inaccurate. It resembles the tapering tail of an anaconda more than the wide flukes of a true whale.

But go to the old Galleries, and look now at a great Christian painter's portrait of this fish; for he succeeds no better than the antediluvian Hindoo. It is Guido's picture of Perseus rescuing Andromeda from the sea-monster or whale. Where did Guido get the model of such a strange creature as that? Nor does Hogarth, in painting the same scene in his own "Perseus Descending," make out one whit better. The huge corpulence of that Hogarthian monster undulates on the surface, scarcely drawing one inch of water. It has a sort of howdah on its back, and its distended tusked mouth into which the billows are rolling, might be taken for the Traitors' Gate leading from the Thames by water into the Tower. Then, there are the Prodromus whales of the old Scotch Sibbald, and Jonah's whale, as depicted in the prints of old Bibles and the cuts of old primers. What shall be said of these? As for the book-binder's whale winding like a vine-stalk round the stock of a descending anchor— as stamped and gilded on the backs and titlepages of many books both old and new—that is a very picturesque but purely fabulous creature, imitated, I take it, from the like figures on antique vases. Though universally denominated a dolphin, I nevertheless call this book-binder's fish an attempt at a whale; because it was so intended when the device was first introduced. It was introduced by an old Italian publisher somewhere about the 15th century, during the Revival of Learning; and in those days, and even down to a comparatively late period, dolphins were popularly supposed to be a species of the Leviathan.

But visit the old galleries and check out a great Christian painter's depiction of this fish; he doesn't do any better than the ancient Hindoo. It's Guido's painting of Perseus saving Andromeda from the sea monster or whale. Where did Guido find a model for such a strange creature? Hogarth, in his own painting of the same scene titled "Perseus Descending," doesn't fare any better either. The enormous bulk of that Hogarthian monster barely stirs the water, hardly moving an inch. It has a kind of howdah on its back, and its gaping, tusked mouth that the waves crash into could be mistaken for the Traitors' Gate, where boats enter from the Thames to the Tower. Then there are the Prodromus whales from the old Scottish Sibbald, and Jonah's whale as shown in the prints of old Bibles and the illustrations in ancient primers. What can be said about these? As for the bookbinder's whale curling like a vine around the stock of a descending anchor—stamped and gilded on the spines and title pages of many books, both old and new—that's a very picturesque but purely mythical creature, I assume modeled after similar figures on ancient vases. Although it's universally called a dolphin, I still refer to this bookbinder's fish as an attempt at a whale because that's what it was meant to represent when the design first appeared. An old Italian publisher introduced it around the 15th century, during the Renaissance; back then, and even until a comparatively recent time, people commonly believed dolphins were a type of Leviathan.

In the vignettes and other embellishments of some ancient books you will at times meet with very curious touches at the whale, where all manner of spouts, jets d'eau, hot springs and cold, Saratoga and Baden-Baden, come bubbling up from his unexhausted brain. In the title-page of the original edition of the "Advancement of Learning" you will find some curious whales.

In the stories and other details of some old books, you'll occasionally come across interesting references to the whale, where all sorts of spouts, water jets, hot and cold springs, as well as Saratoga and Baden-Baden, bubble up from its endless imagination. On the title page of the original edition of the "Advancement of Learning," you'll see some intriguing whales.

But quitting all these unprofessional attempts, let us glance at those pictures of leviathan purporting to be sober, scientific delineations, by those who know. In old Harris's collection of voyages there are some plates of whales extracted from a Dutch book of voyages, A.D. 1671, entitled "A Whaling Voyage to Spitzbergen in the ship Jonas in the Whale, Peter Peterson of Friesland, master." In one of those plates the whales, like great rafts of logs, are represented lying among ice-isles, with white bears running over their living backs. In another plate, the prodigious blunder is made of representing the whale with perpendicular flukes.

But putting aside all these unprofessional attempts, let’s take a look at those images of giant sea creatures that claim to be serious, scientifically accurate depictions, made by those who really know. In old Harris's collection of voyages, there are some illustrations of whales taken from a Dutch book of voyages from the year 1671, titled "A Whaling Voyage to Spitzbergen in the ship Jonas in the Whale, Peter Peterson of Friesland, captain." In one of those illustrations, the whales, like massive logs, are shown lying among ice islands, with white bears running across their living backs. In another illustration, there’s a huge mistake made by depicting the whale with upright flukes.

Then again, there is an imposing quarto, written by one Captain Colnett, a Post Captain in the English navy, entitled "A Voyage round Cape Horn into the South Seas, for the purpose of extending the Spermaceti Whale Fisheries." In this book is an outline purporting to be a "Picture of a Physeter or Spermaceti whale, drawn by scale from one killed on the coast of Mexico, August, 1793, and hoisted on deck." I doubt not the captain had this veracious picture taken for the benefit of his marines. To mention but one thing about it, let me say that it has an eye which applied, according to the accompanying scale, to a full grown sperm whale, would make the eye of that whale a bow-window some five feet long. Ah, my gallant captain, why did ye not give us Jonah looking out of that eye!

Then again, there’s an impressive book written by Captain Colnett, a Post Captain in the English navy, titled "A Voyage around Cape Horn into the South Seas, for the purpose of expanding the Spermaceti Whale Fisheries." In this book is an outline that claims to be a "Picture of a Physeter or Spermaceti whale, drawn to scale from one killed on the coast of Mexico in August 1793, and hoisted on deck." I have no doubt the captain had this accurate picture made for the benefit of his crew. Just to mention one thing about it, let me point out that it has an eye which, according to the accompanying scale, if applied to a fully grown sperm whale, would make the whale’s eye a bow-window about five feet long. Ah, my brave captain, why didn’t you give us Jonah looking out of that eye!

Nor are the most conscientious compilations of Natural History for the benefit of the young and tender, free from the same heinousness of mistake. Look at that popular work "Goldsmith's Animated Nature." In the abridged London edition of 1807, there are plates of an alleged "whale" and a "narwhale." I do not wish to seem inelegant, but this unsightly whale looks much like an amputated sow; and, as for the narwhale, one glimpse at it is enough to amaze one, that in this nineteenth century such a hippogriff could be palmed for genuine upon any intelligent public of schoolboys.

Nor are the most careful collections of Natural History aimed at young readers free from the same serious mistakes. Take a look at the popular book "Goldsmith's Animated Nature." In the shortened London edition from 1807, there are illustrations of a so-called "whale" and a "narwhale." I don’t mean to be rude, but this awkward whale looks a lot like a chopped-up pig; and as for the narwhale, just seeing it is enough to make you wonder how such a mythological creature could be passed off as real to any thoughtful group of schoolboys in this nineteenth century.

Then, again, in 1825, Bernard Germain, Count de Lacepede, a great naturalist, published a scientific systemized whale book, wherein are several pictures of the different species of the Leviathan. All these are not only incorrect, but the picture of the Mysticetus or Greenland whale (that is to say the Right whale), even Scoresby, a long experienced man as touching that species, declares not to have its counterpart in nature.

Then, again, in 1825, Bernard Germain, Count de Lacepede, a prominent naturalist, released a scientific book about whales, which included several illustrations of different species of the Leviathan. However, all of these are not only inaccurate, but the illustration of the Mysticetus or Greenland whale (the Right whale) even has Scoresby, a long-experienced expert on that species, stating it doesn’t accurately represent anything found in nature.

But the placing of the cap-sheaf to all this blundering business was reserved for the scientific Frederick Cuvier, brother to the famous Baron. In 1836, he published a Natural History of Whales, in which he gives what he calls a picture of the Sperm Whale. Before showing that picture to any Nantucketer, you had best provide for your summary retreat from Nantucket. In a word, Frederick Cuvier's Sperm Whale is not a Sperm Whale, but a squash. Of course, he never had the benefit of a whaling voyage (such men seldom have), but whence he derived that picture, who can tell? Perhaps he got it as his scientific predecessor in the same field, Desmarest, got one of his authentic abortions; that is, from a Chinese drawing. And what sort of lively lads with the pencil those Chinese are, many queer cups and saucers inform us.

But the culmination of all this messy business was left to the scientist Frederick Cuvier, brother of the famous Baron. In 1836, he published a Natural History of Whales, where he presented what he called a picture of the Sperm Whale. Before you show that picture to anyone from Nantucket, you better plan your hasty exit from the island. In short, Frederick Cuvier's Sperm Whale isn't actually a Sperm Whale; it's a squash. Of course, he never experienced a whaling trip (such men rarely do), but where he got that picture, who knows? Maybe he got it like his scientific predecessor in the same field, Desmarest, got one of his genuine blunders; that is, from a Chinese drawing. And those Chinese are really talented with a pencil, as many odd cups and saucers tell us.

As for the sign-painters' whales seen in the streets hanging over the shops of oil-dealers, what shall be said of them? They are generally Richard III. whales, with dromedary humps, and very savage; breakfasting on three or four sailor tarts, that is whaleboats full of mariners: their deformities floundering in seas of blood and blue paint.

As for the sign-painters' whales hanging above the oil dealers' shops on the streets, what can be said about them? They are usually Richard III whales, with camel-like humps, and quite fierce; feeding on three or four sailor tarts, which are basically whaleboats full of sailors: their deformities floundering in seas of blood and blue paint.

But these manifold mistakes in depicting the whale are not so very surprising after all. Consider! Most of the scientific drawings have been taken from the stranded fish; and these are about as correct as a drawing of a wrecked ship, with broken back, would correctly represent the noble animal itself in all its undashed pride of hull and spars. Though elephants have stood for their full-lengths, the living Leviathan has never yet fairly floated himself for his portrait. The living whale, in his full majesty and significance, is only to be seen at sea in unfathomable waters; and afloat the vast bulk of him is out of sight, like a launched line-of-battle ship; and out of that element it is a thing eternally impossible for mortal man to hoist him bodily into the air, so as to preserve all his mighty swells and undulations. And, not to speak of the highly presumable difference of contour between a young suckling whale and a full-grown Platonian Leviathan; yet, even in the case of one of those young sucking whales hoisted to a ship's deck, such is then the outlandish, eel-like, limbered, varying shape of him, that his precise expression the devil himself could not catch.

But these many mistakes in showing the whale aren't all that surprising after all. Think about it! Most scientific drawings have been made from stranded whales; and these are about as accurate as a drawing of a wrecked ship with a broken back would be in representing the majestic animal in all its impressive glory. While elephants have stood still for their full-length portraits, the living Leviathan has never truly shown itself for a proper picture. The living whale, in all its grandeur, can only be seen at sea in deep waters; and when it’s afloat, most of its massive body is hidden, like a launched battleship. It's also impossible for any human to lift it out of the water to capture all its grand curves and movements. And not to mention the likely differences in shape between a young nursing whale and a fully grown Platonian Leviathan; even in the case of one of those young whales pulled onto a ship's deck, its strange, eel-like, flexible, and constantly changing shape makes its exact expression impossible to capture, even for the devil himself.

But it may be fancied, that from the naked skeleton of the stranded whale, accurate hints may be derived touching his true form. Not at all. For it is one of the more curious things about this Leviathan, that his skeleton gives very little idea of his general shape. Though Jeremy Bentham's skeleton, which hangs for candelabra in the library of one of his executors, correctly conveys the idea of a burly-browed utilitarian old gentleman, with all Jeremy's other leading personal characteristics; yet nothing of this kind could be inferred from any leviathan's articulated bones. In fact, as the great Hunter says, the mere skeleton of the whale bears the same relation to the fully invested and padded animal as the insect does to the chrysalis that so roundingly envelopes it. This peculiarity is strikingly evinced in the head, as in some part of this book will be incidentally shown. It is also very curiously displayed in the side fin, the bones of which almost exactly answer to the bones of the human hand, minus only the thumb. This fin has four regular bone-fingers, the index, middle, ring, and little finger. But all these are permanently lodged in their fleshy covering, as the human fingers in an artificial covering. "However recklessly the whale may sometimes serve us," said humorous Stubb one day, "he can never be truly said to handle us without mittens."

But you might think that you could figure out the whale's true shape by looking at its bare skeleton. Not at all. One of the more interesting things about this creature is that its skeleton doesn’t really give a clear picture of its overall form. While Jeremy Bentham's skeleton, which is used as a candelabrum in the library of one of his estates, accurately reflects the image of a sturdy, practical old man, complete with all of Jeremy's distinctive traits, you can't deduce anything similar from a whale's bones. In fact, as the great Hunter points out, the skeleton of a whale is to the fully fleshed and padded animal what an insect's skeleton is to the cocoon that envelops it. This difference is especially noticeable in the head, as will be pointed out in some parts of this book. It’s also interestingly shown in the flipper, the bones of which closely resemble the bones of a human hand, except for the thumb. This flipper has four distinct bone fingers: the index, middle, ring, and little finger. But all of these bones are permanently covered by flesh, similar to how human fingers are in a glove. "No matter how carelessly the whale might sometimes deal with us," said the witty Stubb one day, "he can never truly be said to handle us without mittens."

For all these reasons, then, any way you may look at it, you must needs conclude that the great Leviathan is that one creature in the world which must remain unpainted to the last. True, one portrait may hit the mark much nearer than another, but none can hit it with any very considerable degree of exactness. So there is no earthly way of finding out precisely what the whale really looks like. And the only mode in which you can derive even a tolerable idea of his living contour, is by going a whaling yourself; but by so doing, you run no small risk of being eternally stove and sunk by him. Wherefore, it seems to me you had best not be too fastidious in your curiosity touching this Leviathan.

For all these reasons, you have to conclude that the great Leviathan is the one creature in the world that must remain un描 painted until the end. Sure, one portrait might get closer than another, but none can capture it with any real accuracy. So, there's no way to find out exactly what the whale really looks like. The only way you can get a decent idea of its living form is by going whaling yourself; but by doing so, you take on the serious risk of being completely destroyed by it. Therefore, it seems to me you shouldn’t be too picky about your curiosity regarding this Leviathan.

CHAPTER 56

Of the Less Erroneous Pictures of Whales and the True Pictures of Whaling Scenes

Of the Less Incorrect Images of Whales and the Accurate Images of Whaling Scenes

In connexion with the monstrous pictures of whales, I am strongly tempted here to enter upon those still more monstrous stories of them which are to be found in certain books, both ancient and modern, especially in Pliny, Purchas, Hackluyt, Harris, Cuvier, &c. But I pass that matter by.

In connection with the huge images of whales, I'm really tempted to dive into those even crazier stories about them that can be found in some books, both old and new, especially in Pliny, Purchas, Hackluyt, Harris, Cuvier, etc. But I'll skip that topic for now.

I know of only four published outlines of the great Sperm Whale; Colnett's, Huggins's, Frederick Cuvier's, and Beale's. In the previous chapter Colnett and Cuvier have been referred to. Huggins's is far better than theirs; but, by great odds, Beale's is the best. All Beale's drawings of this whale are good, excepting the middle figure in the picture of three whales in various attitudes, capping his second chapter. His frontispiece, boats attacking Sperm Whales, though no doubt calculated to excite the civil scepticism of some parlor men, is admirably correct and life-like in its general effect. Some of the Sperm Whale drawings in J. Ross Browne are pretty correct in contour; but they are wretchedly engraved. That is not his fault though.

I know of only four published outlines of the great Sperm Whale: Colnett's, Huggins's, Frederick Cuvier's, and Beale's. In the previous chapter, I mentioned Colnett and Cuvier. Huggins's work is much better than theirs, but by a long shot, Beale's is the best. All of Beale's drawings of this whale are good, except for the middle figure in the image of three whales in different poses that caps his second chapter. His frontispiece, showing boats attacking Sperm Whales, may raise the doubts of some casual observers, but it's impressively accurate and lifelike overall. Some of the Sperm Whale drawings in J. Ross Browne are fairly accurate in outline, but they're poorly engraved. That’s not his fault, though.

Of the Right Whale, the best outline pictures are in Scoresby; but they are drawn on too small a scale to convey a desirable impression. He has but one picture of whaling scenes, and this is a sad deficiency, because it is by such pictures only, when at all well done, that you can derive anything like a truthful idea of the living whale as seen by his living hunters.

Of the Right Whale, the best illustrations are in Scoresby; however, they're drawn at too small a scale to create an effective impression. He has only one image of whaling scenes, which is a significant shortcoming, because it is through such images—when done well—that you can get a somewhat accurate idea of the living whale as seen by its living hunters.

But, taken for all in all, by far the finest, though in some details not the most correct, presentations of whales and whaling scenes to be anywhere found, are two large French engravings, well executed, and taken from paintings by one Garnery. Respectively, they represent attacks on the Sperm and Right Whale. In the first engraving a noble Sperm Whale is depicted in full majesty of might, just risen beneath the boat from the profundities of the ocean, and bearing high in the. air upon his back the terrific wreck of the stoven planks. The prow of the boat is partially unbroken, and is drawn just balancing upon the monster's spine; and standing in that prow, for that one single incomputable flash of time, you behold an oarsman, half shrouded by the incensed boiling spout of the whale, and in the act of leaping, as if from a precipice. The action of the whole thing is wonderfully good and true. The half-emptied line-tub floats on the whitened sea; the wooden poles of the spilled harpoons obliquely bob in it; the heads of the swimming crew are scattered about the whale in contrasting expressions of affright; while in the black stormy distance the ship is bearing down upon the scene. Serious fault might be found with the anatomical details of this whale, but let that pass; since, for the life of me, I could not draw so good a one.

But overall, the best representations of whales and whaling scenes you can find are two large French engravings, which are well done and based on paintings by Garnery. They show attacks on the Sperm and Right Whale. In the first engraving, a majestic Sperm Whale is depicted, having just emerged from the depths of the ocean and carrying the wreckage of broken planks high on its back. The bow of the boat is partially intact, balancing on the whale's back, and in that moment, you see an oarsman, half-hidden by the whale’s spouting water, getting ready to leap, as if from a cliff. The overall action is incredibly dynamic and realistic. The half-filled line-tub floats on the frothy sea; the wooden poles of the fallen harpoons bob in it; the crew’s heads are scattered around the whale with varying expressions of fear; while in the dark, stormy distance, a ship approaches the scene. Some might criticize the anatomical accuracy of this whale, but that doesn't matter; because honestly, I couldn't draw one as well.

In the second engraving, the boat is in the act of drawing alongside the barnacled flank of a large running Right Whale, that rolls his black weedy bulk in the sea like some mossy rock-slide from the Patagonian cliffs. His jets are erect, full, and black like soot; so that from so abounding a smoke in the chimney, you would think there must be a brave supper cooking in the great bowels below. Sea fowls are pecking at the small crabs, shell-fish, and other sea candies and maccaroni, which the Right Whale sometimes carries on his pestilent back. And all the while the thick-lipped leviathan is rushing through the deep, leaving tons of tumultuous white curds in his wake, and causing the slight boat to rock in the swells like a skiff caught nigh the paddle-wheels of an ocean steamer. Thus, the fore-ground is all raging commotion; but behind, in admirable artistic contrast, is the glassy level of a sea becalmed, the drooping unstarched sails of the powerless ship, and the inert mass of a dead whale, a conquered fortress, with the flag of capture lazily hanging from the whale-pole inserted into his spout-hole.

In the second engraving, the boat is pulling up alongside the barnacle-covered side of a large Right Whale, which rolls its dark, weedy body in the sea like a mossy rockslide from the Patagonian cliffs. Its spouts are tall, full, and black as soot; so from all that smoke, you'd think there was a great meal cooking deep below. Sea birds are picking at the small crabs, shellfish, and other ocean treats and pasta that the Right Whale sometimes carries on its pesky back. Meanwhile, the thick-lipped giant is speeding through the depths, leaving a trail of turbulent white foam behind it, causing the small boat to rock in the swells like a little skiff caught near the paddle wheels of a massive ocean liner. So, the foreground is all wild chaos; but behind it, in a striking artistic contrast, is the smooth, calm surface of a tranquil sea, the drooping sails of the powerless ship, and the lifeless mass of a dead whale, a subdued stronghold, with the flag of capture lazily draped from the whale pole inserted into its blowhole.

Who Garnery the painter is, or was, I know not. But my life for it he was either practically conversant with his subject, or else marvellously tutored by some experienced whaleman. The French are the lads for painting action. Go and gaze upon all the paintings in Europe, and where will you find such a gallery of living and breathing commotion on canvas, as in that triumphal hall at Versailles; where the beholder fights his way, pell-mell, through the consecutive great battles of France; where every sword seems a flash of the Northern Lights, and the successive armed kings and Emperors dash by, like a charge of crowned centaurs? Not wholly unworthy of a place in that gallery, are these sea battle-pieces of Garnery.

Who Garnery the painter is, or was, I don’t know. But I bet he was either really knowledgeable about his subject or incredibly well-taught by some experienced whaleman. The French are great at capturing action in their art. Go look at all the paintings in Europe, and where will you find a collection of such vibrant and dynamic scenes on canvas, as in that grand hall at Versailles; where the viewer fights their way through the key battles of France? Every sword seems to shine like the Northern Lights, and the successive kings and emperors rush by like a charge of crowned centaurs. Not entirely unworthy of a spot in that gallery are these sea battle paintings by Garnery.

The natural aptitude of the French for seizing the picturesqueness of things seems to be peculiarly evinced in what paintings and engravings they have of their whaling scenes. With not one tenth of England's experience in the fishery, and not the thousandth part of that of the Americans, they have nevertheless furnished both nations with the only finished sketches at all capable of conveying the real spirit of the whale hunt. For the most part, the English and American whale draughtsmen seem entirely content with presenting the mechanical outline of things, such as the vacant profile of the whale; which, so far as picturesqueness of effect is concerned, is about tantamount to sketching the profile of a pyramid. Even Scoresby, the justly renowned Right whaleman, after giving us a stiff full length of the Greenland whale, and three or four delicate miniatures of narwhales and porpoises, treats us to a series of classical engravings of boat hooks, chopping knives, and grapnels; and with the microscopic diligence of a Leuwenhoeck submits to the inspection of a shivering world ninety-six fac-similes of magnified Arctic snow crystals. I mean no disparagement to the excellent voyager (I honor him for a veteran), but in so important a matter it was certainly an oversight not to have procured for every crystal a sworn affidavit taken before a Greenland Justice of the Peace.

The French have a natural knack for capturing the beauty of things, especially evident in their paintings and engravings of whaling scenes. Despite having only a fraction of England's experience in the fishery and almost none compared to the Americans, they have still provided both nations with the only detailed sketches that truly capture the spirit of the whale hunt. In contrast, English and American whale artists seem satisfied with showing the mechanical aspects, like the simple profile of the whale; which, in terms of visual appeal, is similar to sketching the outline of a pyramid. Even Scoresby, who is rightly celebrated as a skilled whaler, after giving us a stiff full-length drawing of the Greenland whale and a few delicate miniatures of narwhales and porpoises, presents a series of classical engravings of boat hooks, chopping knives, and grapnels. With the meticulous attention of a scientist like Leuwenhoeck, he offers a shivering world ninety-six facsimiles of enlarged Arctic snow crystals. I mean no disrespect to this accomplished traveler (I admire him as a veteran), but in such an important matter, it was definitely a missed opportunity not to have obtained a sworn affidavit for each crystal from a Greenland Justice of the Peace.

In addition to those fine engravings from Garnery, there are two other French engravings worthy of note, by some one who subscribes himself "H. Durand." One of them, though not precisely adapted to our present purpose, nevertheless deserves mention on other accounts. It is a quiet noon-scene among the isles of the Pacific; a French whaler anchored, inshore, in a calm, and lazily taking water on board; the loosened sails of the ship, and the long leaves of the palms in the background, both drooping together in the breezeless air. The effect is very fine, when considered with reference to its presenting the hardy fishermen under one of their few aspects of oriental repose. The other engraving is quite a different affair: the ship hove-to upon the open sea, and in the very heart of the Leviathanic life, with a Right Whale alongside; the vessel (in the act of cutting-in) hove over to the monster as if to a quay; and a boat, hurriedly pushing off from this scene of activity, is about giving chase to whales in the distance. The harpoons and lances lie levelled for use; three oarsmen are just setting the mast in its hole; while from a sudden roll of the sea, the little craft stands half-erect out of the water, like a rearing horse. From the ship, the smoke of the torments of the boiling whale is going up like the smoke over a village of smithies; and to windward, a black cloud, rising up with earnest of squalls and rains, seems to quicken the activity of the excited seamen.

In addition to those beautiful engravings by Garnery, there are two other French engravings worth mentioning, signed by someone named "H. Durand." One of them, while not exactly suited to our current purpose, is noteworthy for other reasons. It depicts a peaceful noon scene among the islands of the Pacific; a French whaling ship is anchored near the shore, calmly taking on water; the unfurled sails and the long palm leaves in the background are both drooping in the still air. The effect is striking, as it showcases the tough fishermen in one of their rare moments of tranquil rest. The other engraving is quite different: the ship is anchored on the open sea, right in the midst of the massive life around it, with a Right Whale alongside; the vessel (in the process of cutting in) is leaning toward the giant as if it were a dock; and a boat, quickly pushing off from this scene of activity, is about to chase whales in the distance. The harpoons and lances are ready for action; three oarsmen are just setting the mast in place; and as the sea rolls beneath it, the small craft stands half-erect out of the water, like a rearing horse. From the ship, the smoke from the boiling whale rises like smoke over a village of blacksmiths; and to windward, a dark cloud, building up with promises of squalls and rain, seems to intensify the excitement of the energized sailors.

CHAPTER 57

Of Whales in Paint; in Teeth; in Wood; in Sheet-Iron; in Stone; in Mountains; in Stars

Of Whales in Paint; in Teeth; in Wood; in Sheet Metal; in Stone; in Mountains; in Stars

On Tower-hill, as you go down to the London docks, you may have seen a crippled beggar (or kedger, as the sailors say) holding a painted board before him, representing the tragic scene in which he lost his leg. There are three whales and three boats; and one of the boats (presumed to contain the missing leg in all its original integrity) is being crunched by the jaws of the foremost whale. Any time these ten years, they tell me, has that man held up that picture, and exhibited that stump to an incredulous world. But the time of his justification has now come. His three whales are as good whales as were ever published in Wapping, at any rate; and his stump as unquestionable a stump as any you will find in the western clearings. But, though for ever mounted on that stump, never a stump-speech does the poor whaleman make; but, with downcast eyes, stands ruefully contemplating his own amputation.

On Tower Hill, as you head down to the London docks, you might have spotted a disabled beggar (or kedger, as sailors call him) holding a painted sign in front of him, depicting the tragic moment he lost his leg. There are three whales and three boats; and one of the boats (presumably containing the missing leg in all its original form) is being crushed by the jaws of the leading whale. They say that for the past ten years, this man has held up that picture and shown his stump to a skeptical world. But now the time for his justification has come. His three whales are as good as any that have ever been displayed in Wapping, and his stump is as undeniable as any you'll find in the western clearings. Yet, even though he’s always standing on that stump, the poor whaleman never gives a stump speech; instead, he stands with downcast eyes, sadly contemplating his own amputation.

Throughout the Pacific, and also in Nantucket, and New Bedford, and Sag Harbor, you will come across lively sketches of whales and whaling-scenes, graven by the fishermen themselves on Sperm Whale-teeth, or ladies' busks wrought out of the Right Whale-bone, and other like skrimshander articles, as the whalemen call the numerous little ingenious contrivances they elaborately carve out of the rough material, in their hours of ocean leisure. Some of them have little boxes of dentistical-looking implements, specially intended for the skrimshandering business. But, in general, they toil with their jack-knives alone; and, with that almost omnipotent tool of the sailor, they will turn you out anything you please, in the way of a mariner's fancy.

Throughout the Pacific, as well as in Nantucket, New Bedford, and Sag Harbor, you'll find vibrant carvings of whales and whaling scenes, made by the fishermen themselves on Sperm Whale teeth, or women's busks crafted from Right Whale bone, and other similar scrimshaw items, as the whalers call the various clever creations they intricately carve from rough materials during their downtime at sea. Some have little boxes filled with dentist-like tools specifically for scrimshaw work. But generally, they work with just their jackknives, and with that almost magical tool of the sailor, they can create anything you like in the way of a sailor's imagination.

Long exile from Christendom and civilization inevitably restores a man to that condition in which God placed him, i.e. what is called savagery. Your true whale-hunter is as much a savage as an Iroquois. I myself am a savage, owning no allegiance but to the King of the Cannibals; and ready at any moment to rebel against him.

Long exile from Christendom and civilization inevitably brings a person back to the state in which God created them, which is what's referred to as savagery. Your real whale-hunter is just as much a savage as an Iroquois. I myself am a savage, owing no loyalty but to the King of the Cannibals; and I'm ready at any moment to rebel against him.

Now, one of the peculiar characteristics of the savage in his domestic hours, is his wonderful patience of industry. An ancient Hawaiian war-club or spear-paddle, in its full multiplicity and elaboration of carving, is as great a trophy of human perseverance as a Latin lexicon. For, with but a bit of broken sea-shell or a shark's tooth, that miraculous intricacy of wooden net-work has been achieved; and it has cost steady years of steady application.

Now, one of the strange traits of the savage during his domestic hours is his incredible patience and hard work. An ancient Hawaiian war club or spear paddle, with its detailed and intricate carvings, is just as impressive a testament to human perseverance as a Latin dictionary. Because, with only a small piece of broken seashell or a shark's tooth, that amazing complexity of wooden design has been created; and it has taken years of consistent effort to accomplish.

As with the Hawaiian savage, so with the white sailor-savage. With the same marvellous patience, and with the same single shark's tooth, of his one poor jack-knife, he will carve you a bit of bone sculpture, not quite as workmanlike, but as close packed in its maziness of design, as the Greek savage, Achilles's shield; and full of barbaric spirit and suggestiveness, as the prints of that fine old Dutch savage, Albert Durer.

As with the Hawaiian native, so with the white sailor-native. With the same remarkable patience, and using the same single shark's tooth from his one poor jackknife, he will carve you a piece of bone sculpture. It may not be as skillfully done, but it's just as intricately designed, similar to the Greek native, Achilles's shield; and it's filled with a wild spirit and creativity, like the prints of that great old Dutch artist, Albrecht Dürer.

Wooden whales, or whales cut in profile out of the small dark slabs of the noble South Sea war-wood, are frequently met with in the forecastles of American whalers. Some of them are done with much accuracy.

Wooden whales, or whales shaped in profile from the small dark pieces of the fine South Sea war-wood, are often found in the forecastles of American whalers. Some of them are made with great precision.

At some old gable-roofed country houses you will see brass whales hung by the tail for knockers to the road-side door. When the porter is sleepy, the anvil-headed whale would be best. But these knocking whales are seldom remarkable as faithful essays. On the spires of some old-fashioned churches you will see sheet-iron whales placed there for weathercocks; but they are so elevated, and besides that are to all intents and purposes so labelled with "Hands off!" you cannot examine them closely enough to decide upon their merit.

At some old country houses with gable roofs, you'll find brass whales hanging by their tails as door knockers. If the doorman is dozing off, the whale shaped like an anvil would be ideal. However, these whale knockers often don't do a great job of representing their purpose. On the steeples of some traditional churches, you can spot sheet-metal whales used as weather vanes; but they’re positioned so high, and they're clearly marked with "Hands off!" that you can't get close enough to evaluate their worth.

In bony, ribby regions of the earth, where at the base of high broken cliffs masses of rock lie strewn in fantastic groupings upon the plain, you will often discover images as of the petrified forms of the Leviathan partly merged in grass, which of a windy day breaks against them in a surf of green surges.

In rocky, uneven areas of the earth, where large pieces of rock are scattered in odd arrangements at the foot of tall, jagged cliffs, you will often find shapes that look like the fossilized forms of giant sea creatures partly covered in grass, which on a windy day sways against them in a wave of green.

Then, again, in mountainous countries where the traveller is continually girdled by amphitheatrical heights; here and there from some lucky point of view you will catch passing glimpses of the profiles of whales defined along the undulating ridges. But you must be a thorough whaleman, to see these sights; and not only that, but if you wish to return to such a sight again, you must be sure and take the exact intersecting latitude and longitude of your first stand-point, else so chance-like are such observations of the hills, that your precise, previous stand-point would require a laborious re-discovery; like the Solomon islands, which still remain incognita, though once high-ruffed Mendanna trod them and old Figuera chronicled them.

Then again, in mountainous regions where travelers are always surrounded by towering heights, you might catch glimpses of whale shapes outlined against the rolling ridges from certain viewpoints. But you need to be a true whale enthusiast to notice these sights; and if you want to see them again, you have to be sure to take the exact latitude and longitude of your initial spot. Otherwise, these observations of the hills are so random that you'd have to go through a tough process to find your exact previous location again—like the Solomon Islands, which still remain unknown, even though the notable Mendanna once walked on them and the old Figuera wrote about them.

Nor when expandingly lifted by your subject, can you fail to trace out great whales in the starry heavens, and boats in pursuit of them; as when long filled with thoughts of war the Eastern nations saw armies locked in battle among the clouds. Thus at the North have I chased Leviathan round and round the Pole with the revolutions of the bright points that first defined him to me. And beneath the effulgent Antarctic skies I have boarded the Argo-Navis, and joined the chase against the starry Cetus far beyond the utmost stretch of Hydrus and the Flying Fish.

Nor when you’re inspired by your subject can you miss the great whales in the starry sky, and boats chasing after them; just like when, lost in thoughts of war, the Eastern nations saw armies clashing among the clouds. So in the North, I've chased Leviathan around the Pole with the movements of the shining stars that first showed him to me. And under the brilliant Antarctic skies, I've boarded the Argo-Navis and joined the hunt against the starry Cetus, far beyond the farthest reaches of Hydrus and the Flying Fish.

With a frigate's anchors for my bridle-bitts and fasces of harpoons for spurs, would I could mount that whale and leap the topmost skies, to see whether the fabled heavens with all their countless tents really lie encamped beyond my mortal sight!

With a frigate's anchors for my bridle-bits and bundles of harpoons for spurs, I wish I could ride that whale and leap into the highest skies, to find out if the legendary heavens with all their countless tents are really camped out beyond my mortal view!

CHAPTER 58

Brit

Brit

Steering north-eastward from the Crozetts, we fell in with vast meadows of brit, the minute, yellow substance, upon which the Right Whale largely feeds. For leagues and leagues it undulated round us, so that we seemed to be sailing through boundless fields of ripe and golden wheat.

Steering northeast from the Crozetts, we came across vast meadows of brit, the tiny yellow substance that the Right Whale mainly feeds on. For leagues and leagues, it undulated around us, making it feel like we were sailing through endless fields of ripe, golden wheat.

On the second day, numbers of Right Whales were seen, who, secure from the attack of a Sperm-Whaler like the Pequod, with open jaws sluggishly swam through the brit, which, adhering to the fringing fibres of that wondrous Venetian blind in their mouths, was in that manner separated from the water that escaped at the lips.

On the second day, a number of Right Whales were spotted, who, safe from the threat of a Sperm Whale hunter like the Pequod, lazily swam through the surface water with their mouths open. The plankton clung to the fine filters in their mouths, separating it from the water that flowed out at their lips.

As morning mowers, who side by side slowly and seethingly advance their scythes through the long wet grass of marshy meads; even so these monsters swam, making a strange, grassy, cutting sound; and leaving behind them endless swaths of blue upon the yellow sea.*

As morning mowers, who work side by side, slowly and intensely moving their scythes through the long, wet grass of marshy meadows; these monsters swam in the same way, creating a strange, grassy, cutting sound, and leaving behind endless strips of blue on the yellow sea.*

*That part of the sea known among whalemen as the "Brazil Banks" does not bear that name as the Banks of Newfoundland do, because of there being shallows and soundings there, but because of this remarkable meadow-like appearance, caused by the vast drifts of brit continually floating in those latitudes, where the Right Whale is often chased.

*That section of the ocean referred to by whalers as the "Brazil Banks" doesn't get its name like the Banks of Newfoundland, which are known for their shallow waters and soundings. Instead, it’s named for its striking meadow-like look, which is a result of the large drifts of small fish constantly drifting in those areas, where the Right Whale is frequently hunted.*

But it was only the sound they made as they parted the brit which at all reminded one of mowers. Seen from the mast-heads, especially when they paused and were stationary for a while, their vast black forms looked more like lifeless masses of rock than anything else. And as in the great hunting countries of India, the stranger at a distance will sometimes pass on the plains recumbent elephants without knowing them to be such, taking them for bare, blackened elevations of the soil; even so, often, with him, who for the first time beholds this species of the leviathans of the sea. And even when recognized at last, their immense magnitude renders it very hard really to believe that such bulky masses of overgrowth can possibly be instinct, in all parts, with the same sort of life that lives in a dog or a horse.

But it was only the sound they made as they moved through the water that reminded anyone of mowers. Seen from the mastheads, especially when they paused and stayed still for a while, their huge black forms looked more like lifeless piles of rock than anything else. Just like in the vast hunting areas of India, where a stranger might pass by reclining elephants on the plains without realizing what they are, mistaking them for dark patches of ground; so too, often happens with someone who sees these sea giants for the first time. Even when they are finally recognized, their incredible size makes it hard to believe that such large, bulky creatures can be alive in the same way that a dog or a horse is.

Indeed. in other respects, you can hardly regard any creatures of the deep with the same feelings that you do those of the shore. For though some old naturalists have maintained that all creatures of the land are of their kind in the sea; and though taking a broad general view of the thing, this may very well be; yet coming to specialties, where, for example, does the ocean furnish any fish that in disposition answers to the sagacious kindness of the dog? The accursed shark alone can in any generic respect be said to bear comparative analogy to him.

Indeed, in other ways, you can hardly view any sea creatures the same way you do those from the shore. Although some ancient naturalists have argued that every land creature has a counterpart in the sea, and this might be true on a broad scale, when you look at specifics, where does the ocean provide a fish that matches the wise affection of a dog? Only the cursed shark can be considered in any way similar to it.

But though, to landsmen in general, the native inhabitants of the seas have ever been regarded with emotions unspeakably unsocial and repelling; though we know the sea to be an everlasting terra incognita, so that Columbus sailed over numberless unknown worlds to discover his one superficial western one; though, by vast odds, the most terrific of all mortal disasters have immemorially and indiscriminately befallen tens and hundreds of thousands of those who have gone upon the waters; though but a moment's consideration will teach that, however baby man may brag of his science and skill, and however much, in a flattering future, that science and skill may augment; yet for ever and for ever, to the crack of doom, the sea will insult and murder him, and pulverize the stateliest, stiffest frigate he can make; nevertheless, by the continual repetition of these very impressions, man has lost that sense of the full awfulness of the sea which aboriginally belongs to it.

But even though people who stay on land have always looked at the native inhabitants of the seas with feelings that are incredibly unsocial and off-putting; even though we know the sea is an endless unknown territory, so that Columbus sailed over countless uncharted worlds to find his one shallow western one; even though, by a huge margin, the most terrifying of all human disasters have historically and indiscriminately struck tens of thousands of those who ventured onto the waters; even though just a moment's thought shows that, no matter how much humans brag about their knowledge and skills, and no matter how much that knowledge and skill might improve in the future; yet forever and always, until the end of time, the sea will insult and kill them, and crush the mightiest, sturdiest ship they can build; still, through the constant repetition of these very thoughts, humans have lost that sense of the true terror of the sea that originally belonged to it.

The first boat we read of, floated on an ocean, that with Portuguese vengeance had whelmed a whole world without leaving so much as a widow. That same ocean rolls now; that same ocean destroyed the wrecked ships of last year. Yea, foolish mortals, Noah's flood is not yet subsided; two thirds of the fair world it yet covers.

The first boat we read about floated on an ocean that, with Portuguese fury, sank an entire world without even leaving behind a widow. That same ocean still moves; that same ocean wrecked the ships from last year. Yes, foolish humans, Noah's flood isn't over yet; it still covers two-thirds of the beautiful world.

Wherein differ the sea and the land, that a miracle upon one is not a miracle upon the other? Preternatural terrors rested upon the Hebrews, when under the feet of Korah and his company the live ground opened and swallowed them up for ever; yet not a modern sun ever sets, but in precisely the same manner the live sea swallows up ships and crews.

Where do the sea and the land differ, that a miracle on one isn't a miracle on the other? Strange horrors fell upon the Hebrews when the ground opened up under Korah and his group and swallowed them forever; yet, every modern sunset occurs just like the sea swallowing ships and their crews.

But not only is the sea such a foe to man who is an alien to it, but it is also a fiend to its own off-spring; worse than the Persian host who murdered his own guests; sparing not the creatures which itself hath spawned. Like a savage tigress that tossing in the jungle overlays her own cubs, so the sea dashes even the mightiest whales against the rocks, and leaves them there side by side with the split wrecks of ships. No mercy, no power but its own controls it. Panting and snorting like a mad battle steed that has lost its rider, the masterless ocean overruns the globe.

But the sea isn't just an enemy to humans who are foreign to it; it’s also a monster to its own offspring; worse than the Persian army that killed its own guests, showing no mercy to the creatures it has brought into existence. Like a wild tigress in the jungle that accidentally crushes her own cubs, the sea hurls even the strongest whales against the rocks and leaves them lying next to the shattered remains of ships. There’s no mercy, no power except its own that controls it. Panting and snorting like a mad war horse that has lost its rider, the uncontrollable ocean floods the earth.

Consider the subtleness of the sea; how its most dreaded creatures glide under water, unapparent for the most part, and treacherously hidden beneath the loveliest tints of azure. Consider also the devilish brilliance and beauty of many of its most remorseless tribes, as the dainty embellished shape of many species of sharks. Consider once more, the universal cannibalism of the sea; all whose creatures prey upon each other, carrying on eternal war since the world began.

Consider the subtleness of the ocean; how its most feared creatures glide beneath the surface, mostly unseen, and dangerously concealed under the beautiful shades of blue. Also think about the wicked brilliance and beauty of many of its most ruthless species, like the elegantly crafted shapes of various sharks. Finally, reflect on the overall cannibalism of the sea; all its creatures prey on one another, waging an endless battle since the beginning of time.

Consider all this; and then turn to this green, gentle, and most docile earth; consider them both, the sea and the land; and do you not find a strange analogy to something in yourself? For as this appalling ocean surrounds the verdant land, so in the soul of man there lies one insular Tahiti, full of peace and joy, but encompassed by all the horrors of the half known life. God keep thee! Push not off from that isle, thou canst never return!

Consider all of this; and then look at this green, gentle, and very calm earth; think about both the sea and the land; don’t you notice a strange similarity to something within yourself? Just as this overwhelming ocean surrounds the lush land, so in the human soul, there exists an insular Tahiti, filled with peace and joy, yet surrounded by all the horrors of a life only partially understood. God protect you! Don’t leave that island; you can never come back!

CHAPTER 59

Squid

Squid

Slowly wading through the meadows of brit, the Pequod still held on her way north-eastward towards the island of Java; a gentle air impelling her keel, so that in the surrounding serenity her three tall tapering masts mildly waved to that languid breeze, as three mild palms on a plain. And still, at wide intervals in the silvery night, the lonely, alluring jet would be seen.

Slowly making her way through the meadows of brit, the Pequod continued on her journey northeast toward the island of Java; a light breeze pushing her along, so that in the peaceful night, her three tall, slender masts gently swayed in the soft air, like three calm palm trees on a flat landscape. And still, at regular intervals in the silvery night, the lonely, captivating jet could be spotted.

But one transparent blue morning, when a stillness almost preternatural spread over the sea, however unattended with any stagnant calm; when the long burnished sun-glade on the waters seemed a golden finger laid across them, enjoining some secrecy; when the slippered waves whispered together as they softly ran on; in this profound hush of the visible sphere a strange spectre was seen by Daggoo from the main-mast-head.

But one clear blue morning, when an almost unnatural stillness spread over the sea, without any stagnant calm; when the long shimmering sunlight on the water looked like a golden finger resting on it, hinting at some secret; when the soft waves whispered to each other as they gently flowed; in this deep silence of the visible world, a strange figure was spotted by Daggoo from the main-mast-head.

In the distance, a great white mass lazily rose, and rising higher and higher, and disentangling itself from the azure, at last gleamed before our prow like a snow-slide, new slid from the hills. Thus glistening for a moment, as slowly it subsided, and sank. Then once more arose, and silently gleamed. It seemed not a whale; and yet is this Moby Dick? thought Daggoo. Again the phantom went down, but on re-appearing once more, with a stiletto-like cry that startled every man from his nod, the negro yelled out—"There! there again! there she breaches! right ahead! The White Whale, the White Whale!"

In the distance, a huge white mass slowly rose, getting higher and higher, and pulling away from the blue sky, eventually glimmering in front of our ship like a snow slide just fallen from the hills. It sparkled for a moment before it gradually sank down. Then it rose again and shone silently. It didn’t look like a whale; yet, is this Moby Dick? Daggoo wondered. Once more, the apparition disappeared, but when it resurfaced again, with a sharp cry that startled everyone awake, the man shouted, “There! There it is again! It’s breaching! Right ahead! The White Whale, the White Whale!”

Upon this, the seamen rushed to the yard-arms, as in swarming-time the bees rush to the boughs. Bare-headed in the sultry sun, Ahab stood on the bowsprit, and with one hand pushed far behind in readiness to wave his orders to the helmsman, cast his eager glance in the direction indicated aloft by the outstretched motionless arm of Daggoo.

Upon this, the sailors scrambled to the yardarms, like bees flocking to the branches during swarming season. Bare-headed under the hot sun, Ahab stood on the bowsprit, with one hand positioned behind him, ready to signal the helmsman, while he eagerly looked in the direction pointed out by Daggoo's steady outstretched arm.

Whether the flitting attendance of the one still and solitary jet had gradually worked upon Ahab, so that he was now prepared to connect the ideas of mildness and repose with the first sight of the particular whale he pursued; however this was, or whether his eagerness betrayed him; whichever way it might have been, no sooner did he distinctly perceive the white mass, than with a quick intensity he instantly gave orders for lowering.

Whether the fleeting presence of the one still and solitary jet had slowly affected Ahab, making him ready to associate feelings of calmness and stillness with the first glimpse of the specific whale he was chasing; however this might have happened, or whether his excitement gave him away; no matter how it was, as soon as he clearly saw the white shape, he urgently commanded the crew to lower the boats.

The four boats were soon on the water; Ahab's in advance, and all swiftly pulling towards their prey. Soon it went down, and while, with oars suspended, we were awaiting its reappearance, lo! in the same spot where it sank, once more it slowly rose. Almost forgetting for the moment all thoughts of Moby Dick, we now gazed at the most wondrous phenomenon which the secret seas have hitherto revealed to mankind. A vast pulpy mass, furlongs in length and breadth, of a glancing cream-color, lay floating on the water, innumerable long arms radiating from its centre, and curling and twisting like a nest of anacondas, as if blindly to clutch at any hapless object within reach. No perceptible face or front did it have; no conceivable token of either sensation or instinct; but undulated there on the billows, an unearthly, formless, chance-like apparition of life.

The four boats were soon on the water; Ahab's in the lead, and all quickly moving toward their target. Soon it went down, and while we paused with our oars, waiting for it to reappear, unexpectedly, in the same spot where it sank, it slowly rose again. Almost forgetting our thoughts of Moby Dick for a moment, we now stared at the most amazing sight the mysterious seas have shown us so far. A huge, pulpy mass, stretching for miles in length and width, floated on the water, shimmering in a creamy color. Numerous long arms spread out from its center, curling and twisting like a tangle of anacondas, as if trying to grab any unfortunate object within reach. It had no visible face or front; no clear sign of sensation or instinct; it just floated there on the waves, an unworldly, formless, chance-like display of life.

As with a low sucking sound it slowly disappeared again, Starbuck still gazing at the agitated waters where it had sunk, with a wild voice exclaimed—"Almost rather had I seen Moby Dick and fought him, than to have seen thee, thou white ghost!"

As it made a low sucking sound and slowly vanished again, Starbuck continued to stare at the restless waters where it had gone under, and with a wild voice shouted, "I’d almost prefer to have seen Moby Dick and battled him than to have seen you, you white ghost!"

"What was it, Sir?" said Flask.

"What was it, Sir?" asked Flask.

"The great live squid, which, they say, few whale-ships ever beheld, and returned to their ports to tell of it."

"The great live squid, which, they say, few whaling ships have ever seen and returned to their ports to talk about."

But Ahab said nothing; turning his boat, he sailed back to the vessel; the rest as silently following.

But Ahab said nothing; he turned his boat and sailed back to the ship, with the others following quietly behind.

Whatever superstitions the sperm whalemen in general have connected with the sight of this object, certain it is, that a glimpse of it being so very unusual, that circumstance has gone far to invest it with portentousness. So rarely is it beheld, that though one and all of them declare it to be the largest animated thing in the ocean, yet very few of them have any but the most vague ideas concerning its true nature and form; notwithstanding, they believe it to furnish to the sperm whale his only food. For though other species of whales find their food above water, and may be seen by man in the act of feeding, the spermaceti whale obtains his whole food in unknown zones below the surface; and only by inference is it that any one can tell of what, precisely, that food consists. At times, when closely pursued, he will disgorge what are supposed to be the detached arms of the squid; some of them thus exhibited exceeding twenty and thirty feet in length. They fancy that the monster to which these arms belonged ordinarily clings by them to the bed of the ocean; and that the sperm whale, unlike other species, is supplied with teeth in order to attack and tear it.

No matter what superstitions the sperm whalers have about this sighting, it’s clear that catching a glimpse of it is so rare that it gives it an ominous significance. They all claim it’s the largest living thing in the ocean, yet very few have a clear understanding of what it really is or what it looks like; still, they believe it’s the only food source for the sperm whale. While other whale species feed on prey above water and can be observed feeding, the sperm whale gets all its food from unknown depths below the surface, leaving others to guess what exactly that food is. Sometimes, when it’s being chased, it will spit out what appear to be the severed arms of a squid; some of these can be over twenty or thirty feet long. They believe the creature these arms belonged to usually clings to the ocean floor, and that the sperm whale, unlike other types, has teeth to hunt and rip it apart.

There seems some ground to imagine that the great Kraken of Bishop Pontoppodan may ultimately resolve itself into Squid. The manner in which the Bishop describes it, as alternately rising and sinking, with some other particulars he narrates, in all this the two correspond. But much abatement is necessary with respect to the incredible bulk he assigns it.

There’s some reason to believe that the great Kraken described by Bishop Pontoppidan might actually be a type of squid. The way the Bishop talks about it, rising and sinking alternately, along with some other details he mentions, suggests a similarity. However, we need to significantly reduce the enormous size he claims it has.

By some naturalists who have vaguely heard rumors of the mysterious creature, here spoken of, it is included among the class of cuttle-fish, to which, indeed, in certain external respects it would seem to belong, but only as the Anak of the tribe.

By some naturalists who have vaguely heard rumors of the mysterious creature mentioned here, it is classified as part of the cuttlefish family, to which it may seem to belong based on certain external features, but only as a kind of giant of the tribe.

CHAPTER 60

The Line

The Line

With reference to the whaling scene shortly to be described, as well as for the better understanding of all similar scenes elsewhere presented, I have here to speak of the magical, sometimes horrible whale-line.

With regard to the whaling scene that will be described shortly, and for a better understanding of all similar scenes presented elsewhere, I need to mention the magical, sometimes terrifying whale-line.

The line originally used in the fishery was of the best hemp, slightly vapored with tar, not impregnated with it, as in the case of ordinary ropes; for while tar, as ordinarily used, makes the hemp more pliable to the rope-maker, and also renders the rope itself more convenient to the sailor for common ship use; yet, not only would the ordinary quantity too much stiffen the whale-line for the close coiling to which it must be subjected; but as most seamen are beginning to learn, tar in general by no means adds to the rope's durability or strength, however much it may give it compactness and gloss.

The line originally used in the fishery was made of the best hemp, lightly treated with tar, not fully soaked in it like regular ropes. While tar, when used in the usual way, makes the hemp easier for rope makers to work with and also makes the rope more user-friendly for sailors on board; the regular amount would not only make the whale-line too stiff for the tight coils it needs to go through, but as most sailors are starting to realize, tar doesn’t actually enhance the rope's durability or strength, even though it might make it look smoother and more compact.

Of late years the Manilla rope has in the American fishery almost entirely superseded hemp as a material for whale-lines; for, though not so durable as hemp, it is stronger, and far more soft and elastic; and I will add (since there is an aesthetics in all things), is much more handsome and becoming to the boat, than hemp. Hemp is a dusky, dark fellow, a sort of Indian; but Manilla is as a golden-haired Circassian to behold.

Recently, Manilla rope has almost completely replaced hemp in American whaling as the material for whale lines. While it’s not as durable as hemp, it is stronger and much softer and more elastic. I’ll also mention (since there’s an aesthetic to everything) that it looks much better and more appealing on the boat than hemp does. Hemp is dark and dull, a bit like an Indian; but Manilla is like a golden-haired Circassian to look at.

The whale-line is only two thirds of an inch in thickness. At first sight, you would not think it so strong as it really is. By experiment its one and fifty yarns will each suspend a weight of one hundred and twenty pounds; so that the whole rope will bear a strain nearly equal to three tons. In length, the common sperm whale-line measures something over two hundred fathoms. Towards the stern of the boat it is spirally coiled away in the tub, not like the worm-pipe of a still though, but so as to form one round, cheese-shaped mass of densely bedded "sheaves," or layers of concentric spiralizations, without any hollow but the "heart," or minute vertical tube formed at the axis of the cheese. As the least tangle or kink in the coiling would, in running out, infallibly take somebody's arm, leg, or entire body off, the utmost precaution is used in stowing the line in its tub. Some harpooneers will consume almost an entire morning in this business, carrying the line high aloft and then reeving it downwards through a block towards the tub, so as in the act of coiling to free it from all possible wrinkles and twists.

The whale line is only two-thirds of an inch thick. At first glance, you wouldn't think it's as strong as it actually is. Tests show that each of its fifty yarns can support a weight of one hundred and twenty pounds, so the entire rope can handle a strain close to three tons. The average sperm whale line is about two hundred fathoms long. Toward the back of the boat, it's coiled up in a tub, not like a worm-pipe from a still, but arranged into one round, cheese-shaped mass of tightly packed "sheaves" or layers of concentric spirals, with only a small vertical tube in the center acting as the "heart." Since even the slightest tangle or kink in the line could easily cause a serious injury to someone's arm, leg, or even their entire body when it’s being pulled out, extreme care is taken when storing the line in its tub. Some harpooneers will spend almost the whole morning on this task, lifting the line high and then running it down through a block into the tub, so they can coil it up without any wrinkles or twists.

In the English boats two tubs are used instead of one; the same line being continuously coiled in both tubs. There is some advantage in this; because these twin-tubs being so small they fit more readily into the boat, and do not strain it so much; whereas, the American tub, nearly three feet in diameter and of proportionate depth, makes a rather bulky freight for a craft whose planks are but one-half inch in thickness; for the bottom of the whale-boat is like critical ice, which will bear up a considerable distributed weight, but not very much of a concentrated one. When the painted canvas cover is clapped on the american line-tub, the boat looks as if it were pulling off with a prodigious great wedding-cake to present to the whales.

In the English boats, two tubs are used instead of one, with the same line continuously coiled in both tubs. This has some advantages; the twin tubs are smaller, so they fit more easily into the boat and put less strain on it. On the other hand, the American tub, nearly three feet in diameter and deep, is bulky for a boat whose planks are just half an inch thick. The bottom of the whale boat is like thin ice; it can support a fair amount of evenly distributed weight but not much concentrated weight. When the painted canvas cover is put on the American line tub, the boat looks like it’s setting off with a giant wedding cake to present to the whales.

Both ends of the line are exposed; the lower end terminating in an eye-splice or loop coming up from the bottom against the side of the tub, and hanging over its edge completely disengaged from everything. This arrangement of the lower end is necessary on two accounts. First: In order to facilitate the fastening to it of an additional line from a neighboring boat, in case the stricken whale should sound so deep as to threaten to carry off the entire line originally attached to the harpoon. In these instances, the whale of course is shifted like a mug of ale, as it were, from the one boat to the other; though the first boat always hovers at hand to assist its consort. Second: This arrangement is indispensable for common safety's sake; for were the lower end of the line in any way attached to the boat, and were the whale then to run the line out to the end almost in a single, smoking minute as he sometimes does, he would not stop there, for the doomed boat would infallibly be dragged down after him into the profundity of the sea; and in that case no town-crier would ever find her again.

Both ends of the line are exposed; the lower end has an eye-splice or loop that comes up from the bottom against the side of the tub and hangs over the edge, completely disconnected from everything else. This setup for the lower end is necessary for two reasons. First: To make it easier to attach an additional line from a nearby boat if the injured whale dives deep enough to threaten pulling the entire line that’s originally attached to the harpoon. In these situations, the whale essentially shifts from one boat to another, although the first boat always stays close to help its partner. Second: This setup is crucial for safety; if the lower end of the line was connected to the boat and the whale suddenly took off pulling the line out at high speed, the doomed boat would inevitably be pulled down into the depths of the sea, and no town-crier would ever be able to find it again.

Before lowering the boat for the chase, the upper end of the line is taken aft from the tub, and passing round the loggerhead there, is again carried forward the entire length of the boat, resting crosswise upon the loom or handle of every man's oar, so that it jogs against his wrist in rowing; and also passing between the men, as they alternately sit at the opposite gunwales, to the leaded chocks or grooves in the extreme pointed prow of the boat, where a wooden pin or skewer the size of a common quill, prevents it from slipping out. From the chocks it hangs in a slight festoon over the bows, and is then passed inside the boat again; and some ten or twenty fathoms (called box-line) being coiled upon the box in the bows, it continues its way to the gunwale still a little further aft, and is then attached to the short-warp— the rope which is immediately connected with the harpoon; but previous to that connexion, the short-warp goes through sundry mystifications too tedious to detail.

Before lowering the boat for the chase, the upper end of the line is pulled back from the tub, wrapped around the loggerhead, and then carried forward the entire length of the boat, resting across the handles of each person's oar so that it nudges against their wrist while rowing. It also goes between the men, who sit alternately on opposite sides of the boat, until it reaches the leaded chocks or grooves at the pointed front of the boat, where a wooden pin or skewer about the size of a regular quill keeps it from slipping out. From the chocks, it hangs down slightly over the front and is then brought inside the boat again. About ten or twenty fathoms (referred to as box-line) are coiled on the box at the bow, and it continues to the side of the boat a bit further back, where it connects to the short-warp—the rope that directly links to the harpoon. However, before that connection is made, the short-warp goes through a series of complicated steps that are too tedious to explain.

Thus the whale-line folds the whole boat in its complicated coils, twisting and writhing around it in almost every direction. All the oarsmen are involved in its perilous contortions; so that to the timid eye of the landsman, they seem as Indian jugglers, with the deadliest snakes sportively festooning their limbs. Nor can any son of mortal woman, for the first time, seat himself amid those hempen intricacies, and while straining his utmost at the oar, bethink him that at any unknown instant the harpoon may be darted, and all these horrible contortions be put in play like ringed lightnings; he cannot be thus circumstanced without a shudder that makes the very marrow in his bones to quiver in him like a shaken jelly. Yet habit—strange thing! what cannot habit accomplish?—Gayer sallies, more merry mirth, better jokes, and brighter repartees, you never heard over your mahogany, than you will hear over the half-inch white cedar of the whaleboat, when thus hung in hangman's nooses; and, like the six burghers of Calais before King Edward, the six men composing the crew pull into the jaws of death, with a halter around every neck, as you may say.

So the whale line wraps the entire boat in its complicated coils, twisting and writhing around it in almost every direction. All the rowers are caught up in its dangerous movements; to the nervous observer on land, they look like Indian jugglers, with deadly snakes playfully draped over their bodies. No man, for the first time, can sit amidst those tangled ropes, and while straining his hardest at the oar, think for a moment that at any unknown instant the harpoon might be thrown, sending all those terrifying movements into action like flashes of lightning; being in such a situation sends a shudder through him that makes his very bones quiver like jelly. Yet habit—strange thing! what can’t habit achieve?—You’ve never heard livelier banter, funnier jokes, or sharper comebacks than you will over the half-inch white cedar of the whaleboat, when it’s tied up in hangman’s nooses; and like the six burghers of Calais before King Edward, the six men in the crew head into the jaws of death, with a noose around each neck, so to speak.

Perhaps a very little thought will now enable you to account for those repeated whaling disasters—some few of which are casually chronicled—of this man or that man being taken out of the boat by the line, and lost. For, when the line is darting out, to be seated then in the boat, is like being seated in the midst of the manifold whizzings of a steam-engine in full play, when every flying beam, and shaft, and wheel, is grazing you. It is worse; for you cannot sit motionless in the heart of these perils, because the boat is rocking like a cradle, and you are pitched one way and the other, without the slightest warning; and only by a certain self-adjusting buoyancy and simultaneousness of volition and action, can you escape being made a Mazeppa of, and run away with where the all-seeing sun himself could never pierce you out.

Maybe just a little thought will help you understand those repeated whaling disasters—some of which are casually mentioned—where this person or that person gets pulled out of the boat by the line and goes missing. When the line is flying out, sitting in the boat feels like being in the middle of a steam engine working at full speed, with every moving beam, shaft, and wheel whizzing past you. It’s even worse because you can't just stay still in the middle of these dangers; the boat is rocking like a cradle, tossing you back and forth without any warning. Only by having a certain natural buoyancy and synchronization of thought and action can you avoid being swept away like Mazeppa, lost somewhere where even the all-seeing sun couldn’t find you.

Again: as the profound calm which only apparently precedes and prophesies of the storm, is perhaps more awful than the storm itself; for, indeed, the calm is but the wrapper and envelope of the storm; and contains it in itself, as the seemingly harmless rifle holds the fatal powder, and the ball, and the explosion; so the graceful repose of the line, as it silently serpentines about the oarsmen before being brought into actual play— this is a thing which carries more of true terror than any other aspect of this dangerous affair. But why say more? All men live enveloped in whale-lines. All are born with halters round their necks; but it is only when caught in the swift, sudden turn of death, that mortals realize the silent, subtle, everpresent perils of life. And if you be a philosopher, though seated in the whale-boat, you would not at heart feel one whit more of terror, than though seated before your evening fire with a poker, and not a harpoon, by your side.

Once again: the deep calm that seems to come just before a storm can be even more terrifying than the storm itself. That calm is really just the surface of the impending storm, containing it like a seemingly harmless rifle carries deadly powder and a bullet, ready to explode. The elegant stillness of the line as it curves around the rowers before being put to use holds more true fear than any other part of this dangerous situation. But why go on? Everyone lives tied up in whale lines. We are all born with nooses around our necks; it's only when we're caught in the swift, unexpected grip of death that we truly understand the quiet, subtle, always-present dangers of life. And if you were a philosopher, even sitting in a whale boat, you wouldn't feel any more fear than if you were relaxing in front of your fire with a poker instead of a harpoon beside you.

CHAPTER 61

Stubb Kills a Whale

Stubb Takes Down a Whale

If to Starbuck the apparition of the Squid was a thing of portents, to Queequeg it was quite a different object.

If the sight of the Squid was a bad omen for Starbuck, for Queequeg it was something completely different.

"When you see him 'quid," said the savage, honing his harpoon in the bow of his hoisted boat, "then you quick see him 'parm whale."

"When you see him 'quid," said the savage, sharpening his harpoon in the bow of his lifted boat, "then you quickly see him 'parm whale."

The next day was exceedingly still and sultry, and with nothing special to engage them, the Pequod's crew could hardly resist the spell of sleep induced by such a vacant sea. For this part of the Indian Ocean through which we then were voyaging is not what whalemen call a lively ground; that is, it affords fewer glimpses of porpoises, dolphins, flying-fish, and other vivacious denizens of more stirring waters, than those off the Rio de la Plata, or the in-shore ground off Peru.

The next day was extremely calm and hot, and with nothing particular to keep them busy, the crew of the Pequod could barely fight off the drowsiness brought on by the empty sea. This section of the Indian Ocean we were traveling through isn’t what whalers would call a lively area; it offers fewer sightings of porpoises, dolphins, flying fish, and other lively creatures that inhabit more dynamic waters, unlike those near the Rio de la Plata or the coastal waters off Peru.

It was my turn to stand at the foremast-head; and with my shoulders leaning against the slackened royal shrouds, to and fro I idly swayed in what seemed an enchanted air. No resolution could withstand it; in that dreamy mood losing all consciousness, at last my soul went out of my body; though my body still continued to sway as a pendulum will, long after the power which first moved it is withdrawn.

It was my turn to stand at the foremast-head, and with my shoulders resting against the loose royal shrouds, I swayed back and forth in what felt like an enchanted breeze. No determination could hold up against it; in that dreamy state, losing all awareness, eventually my soul left my body, even though my body kept swaying like a pendulum long after the force that first set it in motion was gone.

Ere forgetfulness altogether came over me, I had noticed that the seamen at the main and mizzen mast-heads were already drowsy. So that at last all three of us lifelessly swung from the spars, and for every swing that we made there was a nod from below from the slumbering helmsman. The waves, too, nodded their indolent crests; and across the wide trance of the sea, east nodded to west, and the sun over all.

Before I completely lost my train of thought, I noticed that the sailors at the main and mizzen mast-heads were already getting sleepy. Eventually, all three of us simply hung there from the spars, and with every swing we made, the dozing helmsman below gave a nod. The waves also lazily nodded their crests; and across the vast stillness of the sea, east nodded to west, with the sun shining over everything.

Suddenly bubbles seemed bursting beneath my closed eyes; like vices my hands grasped the shrouds; some invisible, gracious agency preserved me; with a shock I came back to life. And lo! close under our lee, not forty fathoms off, a gigantic Sperm Whale lay rolling in the water like the capsized hull of a frigate, his broad, glossy back, of an Ethiopian hue, glistening in the sun's rays like a mirror. But lazily undulating in the trough of the sea, and ever and anon tranquilly spouting his vapory jet, the whale looked like a portly burgher smoking his pipe of a warm afternoon. But that pipe, poor whale, was thy last. As if struck by some enchanter's wand, the sleepy ship and every sleeper in it all at once started into wakefulness; and more than a score of voices from all parts of the vessel, simultaneously with the three notes from aloft, shouted forth the accustomed cry, as the great fish slowly and regularly spouted the sparkling brine into the air.

Suddenly, it felt like bubbles were popping beneath my closed eyes; my hands gripped the sails tightly. Some invisible, kind force kept me safe; with a jolt, I came back to my senses. And look! Right next to us, not even forty fathoms away, a gigantic Sperm Whale was rolling in the water like an overturned ship, its broad, shiny back, dark as an Ethiopian, gleaming in the sun like a mirror. But as it lazily moved in the waves, calmly shooting out a stream of vapor, the whale looked like a contented local enjoying his pipe on a warm afternoon. But that pipe, poor whale, was your last. As if touched by some magical force, the drowsy ship and everyone in it suddenly woke up; and more than twenty voices from all over the vessel, at the same time as the three notes from above, shouted the usual cry as the great fish slowly and steadily sprayed the sparkling seawater into the air.

"Clear away the boats! Luff!" cried Ahab. And obeying his own order, he dashed the helm down before the helmsman could handle the spokes.

"Clear the boats! Luff!" shouted Ahab. And following his own command, he slammed the helm down before the helmsman could grab the wheel.

The sudden exclamations of the crew must have alarmed the whale; and ere the boats were down, majestically turning, he swam away to the leeward, but with such a steady tranquillity, and making so few ripples as he swam, that thinking after all he might not as yet be alarmed, Ahab gave orders that not an oar should be used, and no man must speak but in whispers. So seated like Ontario Indians on the gunwales of the boats, we swiftly but silently paddled along; the calm not admitting of the noiseless sails being set. Presently, as we thus glided in chase, the monster perpendicularly flitted his tail forty feet into the air, and then sank out of sight like a tower swallowed up.

The sudden shouts from the crew must have startled the whale; and before the boats were lowered, it turned majestically and swam away to the side. But it did so with such a calm grace and created so few ripples that Ahab thought maybe it wasn’t actually scared yet. He ordered that no one should use an oar and that everyone should only speak in whispers. So we sat like Ontario Indians on the edges of the boats, quickly but silently paddling along; the stillness kept us from using the sails. Soon, as we glided in pursuit, the giant flicked its tail forty feet into the air and then disappeared like a tower sinking into the sea.

"There go flukes!" was the cry, an announcement immediately followed by Stubb's producing his match and igniting his pipe, for now a respite was granted. After the full interval of his sounding had elapsed, the whale rose again, and being now in advance of the smoker's boat, and much nearer to it than to any of the others, Stubb counted upon the honor of the capture. It was obvious, now, that the whale had at length become aware of his pursuers. All silence of cautiousness was therefore no longer of use. Paddles were dropped, and oars came loudly into play. And still puffing at his pipe, Stubb cheered on his crew to the assault.

"There go the flukes!" was the shout, quickly followed by Stubb lighting his match and firing up his pipe, as a break was now granted. After the full time of his sounding had passed, the whale surfaced again, now ahead of the smoker's boat and much closer to it than to any of the others, making Stubb confident about the capture. It was clear now that the whale had finally noticed its pursuers. All the silence of caution was no longer useful. Paddles were set down, and oars started making noise. Still puffing on his pipe, Stubb urged his crew to go for the attack.

Yes, a mighty change had come over the fish. All alive to his jeopardy, he was going "head out"; that part obliquely projecting from the mad yeast which he brewed.*

Yes, a huge change had taken place with the fish. Fully aware of his danger, he was going "head out"; that part sticking out from the wild yeast he had created.*

*It will be seen in some other place of what a very light substance the entire interior of the sperm whale's enormous head consists. Though apparently the most massive, it is by far the most buoyant part about him. So that with ease he elevates it in the air, and invariably does so when going at his utmost speed. Besides, such is the breadth of the upper part of the front of his head, and such the tapering cut-water formation of the lower part, that by obliquely elevating his head, he thereby may be said to transform himself from a bluff-bowed sluggish galliot into a sharppointed New York pilot-boat.

*It will be shown elsewhere how incredibly lightweight the entire interior of the sperm whale's massive head is. Although it seems the heaviest part, it’s actually the most buoyant. This allows him to easily lift it into the air, which he always does when he's swimming at full speed. Moreover, the wide shape of the top of his head and the tapered design of the bottom allow him, by lifting his head at an angle, to change from a broad and slow vessel into a sleek, sharp-pointed New York pilot boat.*

"Start her, start her, my men! Don't hurry yourselves; take plenty of time—but start her; start her like thunder-claps, that's all," cried Stubb, spluttering out the smoke as he spoke. "Start her, now; give 'em the long and strong stroke, Tashtego. Start her, Tash, my boy— start her, all; but keep cool, keep cool—cucumbers is the word— easy, easy—only start her like grim death and grinning devils, and raise the buried dead perpendicular out of their graves, boys— that's all. Start her!"

"Start her up, start her up, guys! Don't rush; take your time—but start her; start her like a clap of thunder, that's all," shouted Stubb, coughing out the smoke as he spoke. "Start her now; give them the long, strong stroke, Tashtego. Start her, Tash, my friend—start her, everyone; but stay calm, stay calm—cool as cucumbers—that's the key—easy, easy—just start her like grim death and grinning devils, and lift the buried dead straight out of their graves, boys— that's all. Start her!"

"Woo-hoo! Wa-hee!" screamed the Gay-Header in reply, raising some old war-whoop to the skies; as every oarsman in the strained boat involuntarily bounced forward with the one tremendous leading stroke which the eager Indian gave.

"Woo-hoo! Wa-hee!" shouted the Gay-Header in response, lifting an old war cry to the skies; as every oarsman in the strained boat instinctively lunged forward with the powerful leading stroke that the eager Indian provided.

But his wild screams were answered by others quite as wild. "Kee-hee! Kee-hee!" yelled Daggoo, straining forwards and backwards on his seat, like a pacing tiger in his cage.

But his wild screams were answered by others just as wild. "Kee-hee! Kee-hee!" yelled Daggoo, straining back and forth in his seat, like a pacing tiger in its cage.

"Ka-la! Koo-loo!" howled Queequeg, as if smacking his lips over a mouthful of Grenadier's steak. And thus with oars and yells the keels cut the sea. Meanwhile, Stubb, retaining his place in the van, still encouraged his men to the onset, all the while puffing the smoke from his mouth. Like desperadoes they tugged and they strained, till the welcome cry was heard—"Stand up, Tashtego!—give it to him!" The harpoon was hurled. "Stern all!" The oarsmen backed water; the same moment something went hot and hissing along every one of their wrists. It was the magical line. An instant before, Stubb had swiftly caught two additional turns with it round the loggerhead, whence, by reason of its increased rapid circlings, a hempen blue smoke now jetted up and mingled with the steady fumes from his pipe. As the line passed round and round the loggerhead; so also, just before reaching that point, it blisteringly passed through and through both of Stubb's hands, from which the hand-cloths, or squares of quilted canvas sometimes worn at these times, had accidentally dropped. It was like holding an enemy's sharp two-edged sword by the blade, and that enemy all the time striving to wrest it out of your clutch.

"Ka-la! Koo-loo!" howled Queequeg, as if savoring a mouthful of Grenadier's steak. And so, with oars and shouts, the keels sliced through the sea. Meanwhile, Stubb, still leading the way, encouraged his crew to press on, all while puffing smoke from his mouth. Like determined warriors, they pulled and strained until the welcome shout rang out—"Stand up, Tashtego!—give it to him!" The harpoon was thrown. "Stern all!" The rowers pushed back; at that same moment, something burned and hissed along each of their wrists. It was the magical line. Just before, Stubb had quickly wrapped two extra turns of it around the loggerhead, which, due to its increased rapid spinning, now sent up a billowing blue smoke that mixed with the steady fumes from his pipe. As the line circled around the loggerhead, it also blisteringly passed through both of Stubb's hands, from which the hand-cloths, or squares of quilted canvas sometimes worn during these times, had accidentally fallen. It was like gripping an enemy's sharp two-edged sword by the blade, with that enemy constantly trying to wrest it from your grasp.

"Wet the line! wet the line!" cried Stubb to the tub oarsman (him seated by the tub) who, snatching off his hat, dashed the sea-water into it.* More turns were taken, so that the line began holding its place. The boat now flew through the boiling water like a shark all fins. Stubb and Tashtego here changed places—stem for stern—a staggering business truly in that rocking commotion.

"Wet the line! Wet the line!" shouted Stubb to the oarsman sitting by the tub, who quickly took off his hat and splashed sea water into it. They made more turns so that the line started to stay in place. The boat now raced through the churning water like a shark with all its fins. Stubb and Tashtego switched places—front to back—which was quite a feat in that rocking chaos.

*Partly to show the indispensableness of this act, it may here be stated, that, in the old Dutch fishery, a mop was used to dash the running line with water; in many other ships, a wooden piggin, or bailer, is set apart for that purpose. Your hat, however, is the most convenient.

*Partly to show how essential this act is, it's worth mentioning that, in the old Dutch fishery, a mop was used to splash the running line with water; in many other ships, a wooden piggin, or bailer, is reserved for that purpose. However, your hat is the most convenient option.*

From the vibrating line extending the entire length of the upper part of the boat, and from its now being more tight than a harpstring, you would have thought the craft had two keels—one cleaving the water, the other the air—as the boat churned on through both opposing elements at once. A continual cascade played at the bows; a ceaseless whirling eddy in her wake; and, at the slightest motion from within, even but of a little finger, the vibrating, cracking craft canted over her spasmodic gunwale into the sea. Thus they rushed; each man with might and main clinging to his seat, to prevent being tossed to the foam; and the tall form of Tashtego at the steering oar crouching almost double, in order to bring down his centre of gravity. Whole Atlantics and Pacifics seemed passed as they shot on their way, till at length the whale somewhat slackened his flight.

From the vibrating line running the full length of the top of the boat, and since it was now tighter than a harp string, you’d think the craft had two keels—one cutting through the water and the other through the air—as the boat plowed through both elements at once. A constant cascade poured at the front; a never-ending swirling eddy in its wake; and with the slightest movement from inside, even just a little finger, the vibrating, creaking boat tipped over its jerky side into the sea. They sped along; each man desperately gripping his seat to avoid being thrown into the foam; while the tall figure of Tashtego at the steering oar bent nearly in half to lower his center of gravity. It felt like they were crossing whole oceans as they rushed on their way, until finally the whale eased up on its speed.

"Haul in—haul in!" cried Stubb to the bowsman! and, facing round towards the whale, all hands began pulling the boat up to him, while yet the boat was being towed on. Soon ranging up by his flank, Stubb, firmly planting his knee in the clumsy cleat, darted dart after dart into the flying fish; at the word of command, the boat alternately sterning out of the way of the whale's horrible wallow, and then ranging up for another fling.

"Haul in—haul in!" shouted Stubb to the bowsman! Turning to face the whale, everyone started pulling the boat up to it while the boat was still being towed. Soon positioning himself alongside, Stubb, firmly planting his knee on the awkward cleat, quickly threw dart after dart into the flying fish. At the command, the boat alternated between moving out of the way of the whale's terrifying splash and then positioning itself for another throw.

The red tide now poured from all sides of the monster like brooks down a hill. His tormented body rolled not in brine but in blood, which bubbled and seethed for furlongs behind in their wake. The slanting sun playing upon this crimson pond in the sea, sent back its reflection into every face, so that they all glowed to each other like red men. And all the while, jet after jet of white smoke was agonizingly shot from the spiracle of the whale, and vehement puff after puff from the mouth of the excited headsman; as at every dart, hauling in upon his crooked lance (by the line attached to it), Stubb straightened it again and again, by a few rapid blows against the gunwale, then again and again sent it into the whale.

The red tide now surged from all sides of the monster like streams down a hill. His tortured body rolled not in saltwater but in blood, which bubbled and seethed for miles behind them. The slanting sun reflecting off this crimson pool in the sea sent its reflection into every face, making them all glow like red men. Meanwhile, jets of white smoke were painfully shot from the whale's blowhole, and vigorous puffs came from the mouth of the excited headsman; as Stubb pulled in on his crooked lance (attached by a line), he repeatedly straightened it with a few quick hits against the gunwale, then sent it back into the whale again and again.

"Pull up—pull up!" he now cried to the bowsman, as the waning whale relaxed in his wrath. "Pull up!—close to!" and the boat ranged along the fish's flank. When reaching far over the bow, Stubb slowly churned his long sharp lance into the fish, and kept it there, carefully churning and churning, as if cautiously seeking to feel after some gold watch that the whale might have swallowed, and which he was fearful of breaking ere he could hook it out. But that gold watch he sought was the innermost life of the fish. And now it is struck; for, starting from his trance into that unspeakable thing called his "flurry," the monster horribly wallowed in his blood, overwrapped himself in impenetrable, mad, boiling spray, so that the imperilled craft, instantly dropping astern, had much ado blindly to struggle out from that phrensied twilight into the clear air of the day.

"Pull up—pull up!" he shouted to the bowsman as the exhausted whale calmed down. "Pull up!—close to!" and the boat moved along the side of the fish. Leaning far over the bow, Stubb slowly pushed his long sharp lance into the whale and kept it there, carefully churning it, as if he were trying to find a gold watch that the whale might have swallowed, and he was worried about breaking it before he could hook it out. But that gold watch he was after was the whale's very life. And now it is struck; for, snapping out of its trance into that indescribable state called its "flurry," the creature thrashed violently in its own blood, surrounding itself in a chaotic, boiling spray, so that the endangered boat, quickly falling behind, struggled blindly to escape from that frenzied twilight into the clear light of day.

And now abating in his flurry, the whale once more rolled out into view! surging from side to side; spasmodically dilating and contracting his spout-hole, with sharp, cracking, agonized respirations. At last, gush after gush of clotted red gore, as if it had been the purple lees of red wine, shot into the frightened air; and falling back again, ran dripping down his motionless flanks into the sea. His heart had burst!

And now calming down from his frenzy, the whale appeared again! He surged from side to side, intermittently expanding and contracting his blowhole, with sharp, cracking, agonized breaths. Finally, bursts of thick red blood, like the dregs of red wine, shot into the terrified air; and as it fell back down, it dripped off his still sides into the sea. His heart had exploded!

"He's dead, Mr. Stubb," said Daggoo.

"He's dead, Mr. Stubb," Daggoo said.

"Yes; both pipes smoked out!" and withdrawing his own from his mouth, Stubb scattered the dead ashes over the water; and, for a moment, stood thoughtfully eyeing the vast corpse he had made.

"Yeah, both pipes are out!" Stubb said as he pulled his pipe from his mouth and tossed the dead ashes into the water. For a moment, he stood there, lost in thought, looking at the huge dead body he had created.

CHAPTER 62

The Dart

The Dartboard

A word concerning an incident in the last chapter.

A note about an event in the last chapter.

According to the invariable usage of the fishery, the whale-boat pushes off from the ship, with the headsman or whale-killer as temporary steersman, and the harpooneer or whale-fastener pulling the foremost oar, the one known as the harpooneer-oar. Now it needs a strong, nervous arm to strike the first iron into the fish; for often, in what is called a long dart, the heavy implement has to be flung to the distance of twenty or thirty feet. But however prolonged and exhausting the chase, the harpooneer is expected to pull his oar meanwhile to the uttermost; indeed, he is expected to set an example of superhuman activity to the rest, not only by incredible rowing, but by repeated loud and intrepid exclamations; and what it is to keep shouting at the top of one's compass, while all the other muscles are strained and half started— what that is none know but those who have tried it. For one, I cannot bawl very heartily and work very recklessly at one and the same time. In this straining, bawling state, then, with his back to the fish, all at once the exhausted harpooneer hears the exciting cry—"Stand up, and give it to him!" He now has to drop and secure his oar, turn round on his centre half way, seize his harpoon from the crotch, and with what little strength may remain, he essays to pitch it somehow into the whale. No wonder, taking the whole fleet of whalemen in a body, that out of fifty fair chances for a dart, not five are successful; no wonder that so many hapless harpooneers are madly cursed and disrated; no wonder that some of them actually burst their blood-vessels in the boat; no wonder that some sperm whalemen are absent four years with four barrels; no wonder that to many ship owners, whaling is but a losing concern; for it is the harpooneer that makes the voyage, and if you take the breath out of his body how can you expect to find it there when most wanted!

According to the established practices of the fishery, the whale boat leaves the ship with the headsman or whale killer acting as the temporary steersman, and the harpooneer or whale fastener rowing the front oar, known as the harpooneer-oar. It takes a strong, skilled arm to strike the first iron into the whale; often, in what’s called a long dart, the heavy implement has to be thrown as far as twenty or thirty feet. But no matter how long and exhausting the chase, the harpooneer is expected to row his hardest the entire time; he’s expected to set the pace for everyone else, not only by rowing intensely but also by shouting repeatedly and boldly. No one knows what it's like to keep yelling at the top of your lungs while all your other muscles are strained and ready to give out—except for those who’ve experienced it. For me, I can't shout loudly and row recklessly at the same time. In this intense, shouting state, with his back to the whale, the exhausted harpooneer suddenly hears the thrilling call—“Stand up, and give it to him!” Now he has to drop and secure his oar, turn around halfway, grab his harpoon from the rest, and with whatever little strength he has left, he tries to throw it at the whale. It’s no surprise that out of fifty fair chances for a throw, only five are successful; it’s no shock that so many unfortunate harpooneers get angrily cursed and demoted; it’s no surprise that some even burst blood vessels in the boat; it’s no wonder that some sperm whalers are away for four years with only four barrels; and it’s no wonder that for many ship owners, whaling is a losing venture; because it’s the harpooneer who makes the voyage, and if you drain his energy, how can you expect to find it when it’s needed most!

Again, if the dart be successful, then at the second critical instant, that is, when the whale starts to run, the boatheader and harpooneer likewise start to running fore and aft, to the imminent jeopardy of themselves and every one else. It is then they change places; and the headsman, the chief officer of the little craft, takes his proper station in the bows of the boat.

Again, if the dart hits its mark, then at the second crucial moment, that is, when the whale begins to run, the boat leader and harpooner also start moving back and forth, putting themselves and everyone else in serious danger. It's at that moment they switch positions; the headsman, the main officer of the small boat, takes his rightful spot at the front of the boat.

Now, I care not who maintains the contrary, but all this is both foolish and unnecessary. The headsman should stay in the bows from first to last; he should both dart the harpoon and the lance, and no rowing whatever should be expected of him, except under circumstances obvious to any fisherman. I know that this would sometimes involve a slight loss of speed in the chase; but long experience in various whalemen of more than one nation has convinced me that in the vast majority of failures in the fishery, it has not by any means been so much the speed of the whale as the before described exhaustion of the harpooneer that has caused them.

Now, I don’t care who disagrees, but this is both silly and unnecessary. The harpooner should stay in the bows from start to finish; he should handle both the harpoon and the lance, and he shouldn’t be expected to row at all, except in situations that any fisherman would recognize. I know that this might sometimes slow down the chase a bit; but long experience with various whalemen from different countries has shown me that in most cases of failure in fishing, it hasn’t really been the whale's speed that caused it, but rather the exhaustion of the harpooner as described earlier.

To insure the greatest efficiency in the dart, the harpooneers of this world must start to their feet from out of idleness, and not from out of toil.

To ensure the greatest efficiency in the dart, the harpooneers of this world must rise to their feet from a state of rest, not from a state of labor.

CHAPTER 63

The Crotch

The Crotch

Out of the trunk, the branches grow; out of them, the twigs.
So, in productive subjects, grow the chapters.

Out of the trunk, the branches grow; out of them, the twigs.
So, in productive topics, the chapters develop.

The crotch alluded to on a previous page deserves independent mention. It is a notched stick of a peculiar form, some two feet in length, which is perpendicularly inserted into the starboard gunwale near the bow, for the purpose of furnishing a rest for the wooden extremity of the harpoons, whose other naked, barbed end slopingly projects from the prow. Thereby the weapon is instantly at hand to its hurler, who snatches it up as readily from its rest as a backwoodsman swings his rifle from the wall. It is customary to have two harpoons reposing in the crotch, respectively called the first and second irons.

The crotch mentioned on a previous page deserves its own attention. It's a notched stick with a unique shape, about two feet long, which is vertically inserted into the starboard gunwale near the front, serving as a rest for the wooden end of the harpoons. The other bare, barbed end sticks out from the front at an angle. This way, the weapon is always ready for its thrower, who can grab it just as easily as a woodsman grabs his rifle off the wall. Typically, there are two harpoons resting in the crotch, known as the first and second irons.

But these two harpoons, each by its own cord, are both connected with the line; the object being this: to dart them both, if possible, one instantly after the other into the same whale; so that if, in the coming drag, one should draw out, the other may still retain a hold. It is a doubling of the chances. But it very often happens that owing to the instantaneous, violent, convulsive running of the whale upon receiving the first iron, it becomes impossible for the harpooneer, however lightning-like in his movements, to pitch the second iron into him. Nevertheless, as the second iron is already connected with the line, and the line is running, hence that weapon must, at all events, be anticipatingly tossed out of the boat, somehow and somewhere; else the most terrible jeopardy would involve all hands. Tumbled into the water, it accordingly is in such cases; the spare coils of box line (mentioned in a preceding chapter) making this feat, in most instances, prudently practicable. But this critical act is not always unattended with the saddest and most fatal casualties.

But these two harpoons, each on its own line, are both attached to the main line; the idea is to throw them both, if possible, one right after the other into the same whale; so that if one gets pulled out during the struggle, the other can still hold on. It's a way to double the chances. However, it often happens that due to the sudden, powerful thrashing of the whale as soon as it gets hit with the first harpoon, it becomes impossible for the harpooneer, no matter how quick he is, to throw the second harpoon into it. Still, since the second harpoon is already attached to the line and that line is running, that harpoon must be tossed out of the boat somehow; otherwise, everyone would be in serious danger. So, it ends up in the water, which is usually made feasible by the spare coils of line mentioned in a previous chapter. But sometimes, this critical action comes with the saddest and most fatal consequences.

Furthermore: you must know that when the second iron is thrown overboard, it thenceforth becomes a dangling, sharp-edged terror, skittishly curvetting about both boat and whale, entangling the lines, or cutting them, and making a prodigious sensation in all directions. Nor, in general, is it possible to secure it again until the whale is fairly captured and a corpse.

Furthermore: you should know that once the second iron is thrown overboard, it becomes a dangerous, sharp-edged threat, wildly bouncing around both the boat and the whale, getting the lines tangled or cutting them, and creating a huge commotion in every direction. Generally, it’s not possible to retrieve it until the whale is fully captured and dead.

Consider, now, how it must be in the case of four boats all engaging one unusually strong, active, and knowing whale; when owing to these qualities in him, as well as to the thousand concurring accidents of such an audacious enterprise, eight or ten loose second irons may be simultaneously dangling about him. For, of course, each boat is supplied with several harpoons to bend on to the line should the first one be ineffectually darted without recovery. All these particulars are faithfully narrated here, as they will not fail to elucidate several most important however intricate passages, in scenes hereafter to be painted.

Consider, now, how it must be when four boats are all trying to catch one unusually strong, active, and clever whale; when, due to these traits in the whale, as well as the countless unpredictable factors of such a bold venture, eight or ten loose second irons may be hanging off him at the same time. Each boat carries several harpoons ready to attach to the line in case the first one misses and isn't recovered. All these details are shared here because they will help clarify several crucial, though complex, moments in the scenes that will be described later.

CHAPTER 64

Stubb's Supper

Stubb's Dinner

Stubb's whale had been killed some distance from the ship. It was a calm; so, forming a tandem of three boats, we commenced the slow business of towing the trophy to the Pequod. And now, as we eighteen men with our thirty-six arms, and one hundred and eighty thumbs and fingers, slowly toiled hour after hour upon that inert, sluggish corpse in the sea; and it seemed hardly to budge at all, except at long intervals; good evidence was hereby furnished of the enormousness of the mass we moved. For, upon the great canal of Hang-Ho, or whatever they call it, in China, four or five laborers on the foot-path will draw a bulky freighted junk at the rate of a mile an hour; but this grand argosy we towed heavily forged along, as if laden with piglead in bulk.

Stubb's whale had been killed some distance from the ship. It was calm, so forming a team of three boats, we started the slow process of towing the trophy to the Pequod. Now, as we eighteen men with our thirty-six arms and one hundred and eighty thumbs and fingers slowly worked hour after hour on that lifeless, sluggish carcass in the sea, it seemed to barely move at all, except at long intervals; this provided clear evidence of the massive weight we were moving. Because, on the great canal of Hang-Ho, or whatever they call it, in China, four or five workers on the path can pull a heavily loaded junk at a rate of a mile an hour; but this grand ship we towed moved heavily as if it were filled with lead.

Darkness came on; but three lights up and down in the Pequod's main-rigging dimly guided our way; till drawing nearer we saw Ahab dropping one of several more lanterns over the bulwarks. Vacantly eyeing the heaving whale for a moment, he issued the usual orders for securing it for the night, and then handing his lantern to a seaman, went his way into the cabin, and did not come forward again until morning.

Darkness fell, but three lights flickering in the Pequod's main rigging faintly guided us. As we got closer, we saw Ahab lowering one of the extra lanterns over the side. He stared blankly at the rolling whale for a moment, then gave the usual orders for securing it for the night. After handing his lantern to a crew member, he headed into the cabin and didn’t return until morning.

Though, in overseeing the pursuit of this whale, Captain Ahab had evinced his customary activity, to call it so; yet now that the creature was dead, some vague dissatisfaction, or impatience, or despair, seemed working in him; as if the sight of that dead body reminded him that Moby Dick was yet to be slain; and though a thousand other whales were brought to his ship, all that would not one jot advance his grand, monomaniac object. Very soon you would have thought from the sound on the Pequod's decks, that all hands were preparing to cast anchor in the deep; for heavy chains are being dragged along the deck, and thrust rattling out of the port-holes. But by those clanking links, the vast corpse itself, not the ship, is to be moored. Tied by the head to the stern, and by the tail to the bows, the whale now lies with its black hull close to the vessel's, and seen through the darkness of the night, which obscured the spars and rigging aloft, the two—ship and whale, seemed yoked together like colossal bullocks, whereof one reclines while the other remains standing.*

Though Captain Ahab had shown his usual energy in chasing this whale, now that the creature was dead, a sense of vague dissatisfaction, impatience, or despair seemed to be stirring in him; as if seeing that dead body reminded him that Moby Dick was still out there to be killed; and although a thousand other whales were brought to his ship, none of that mattered in the slightest for achieving his singular, obsessive goal. Soon, it sounded on the Pequod's decks as if everyone was getting ready to drop anchor in the deep; heavy chains were being dragged along the deck and clanking as they were pushed out of the portholes. But those clanking links were meant to moor the massive corpse itself, not the ship. Tied by the head to the stern and by the tail to the bow, the whale now lay with its black body close to the vessel's, and seen through the darkness of the night, which obscured the masts and rigging above, the two—ship and whale—appeared yoked together like giant oxen, one lying down while the other stood.

*A little item may as well be related here. The strongest and most reliable hold which the ship has upon the whale when moored alongside, is by the flukes or tail; and as from its greater density that part is relatively heavier than any other (excepting the side-fins), its flexibility even in death, causes it to sink low beneath the surface; so that with the hand you cannot get at it from the boat, in order to put the chain round it. But this difficulty is ingeniously overcome: a small, strong line is prepared with a wooden float at its outer end, and a weight in its middle, while the other end is secured to the ship. By adroit management the wooden float is made to rise on the other side of the mass, so that now having girdled the whale, the chain is readily made to follow suit; and being slipped along the body, is at last locked fast round the smallest part of the tail, at the point of junction with its broad flukes or lobes.

*A small detail should be mentioned here. The strongest and most dependable way the ship holds onto the whale when parked alongside is by the flukes or tail; and since that part is denser, it's relatively heavier than any other part (except for the side fins). Its flexibility, even after death, causes it to sink low below the surface, making it impossible to reach with your hand from the boat to wrap the chain around it. However, this challenge is cleverly solved: a small, strong line is prepared with a wooden float at one end and a weight in the middle, while the other end is secured to the ship. With skilled handling, the wooden float is maneuvered to rise on the other side of the mass, so that once the whale is encircled, the chain easily follows suit; and as it is slid along the body, it finally locks tightly around the narrowest part of the tail, at the point where it meets the broad flukes or lobes.*

If moody Ahab was now all quiescence, at least so far as could be known on deck, Stubb, his second mate, flushed with conquest, betrayed an unusual but still good-natured excitement. Such an unwonted bustle was he in that the staid Starbuck, his official superior, quietly resigned to him for the time the sole management of affairs. One small, helping cause of all this liveliness in Stubb, was soon made strangely manifest. Stubb was a high liver; he was somewhat intemperately fond of the whale as a flavorish thing to his palate.

If moody Ahab was now completely calm, at least as far as anyone could tell on deck, Stubb, his second mate, was flushed with victory and showed an unusual but still friendly excitement. He was so lively that the serious Starbuck, his official superior, quietly let him take over the management of things for the time being. One small reason for all this energy in Stubb became clear soon enough. Stubb loved to eat well; he was somewhat indulgently fond of the whale for its delicious taste.

"A steak, a steak, ere I sleep! You, Daggoo! overboard you go, and cut me one from his small!"

"A steak, a steak, before I sleep! You, Daggoo! Jump overboard and get me one from his small!"

Here be it known, that though these wild fishermen do not, as a general thing, and according to the great military maxim, make the enemy defray the current expenses of the war (at least before realizing the proceeds of the voyage), yet now and then you find some of these Nantucketers who have a genuine relish for that particular part of the Sperm Whale designated by Stubb; comprising the tapering extremity of the body.

Here it is known that, although these wild fishermen generally do not, following the great military principle, make the enemy cover the current costs of the war (at least before they see the profits from the voyage), now and then you find some of these Nantucketers who truly enjoy that particular part of the Sperm Whale that Stubb refers to, which includes the tapered end of the body.

About midnight that steak was cut and cooked; and lighted by two lanterns of sperm oil, Stubb stoutly stood up to his spermaceti supper at the capstan-head, as if that capstan were a sideboard. Nor was Stubb the only banqueter on whale's flesh that night. Mingling their mumblings with his own mastications, thousands on thousands of sharks, swarming round the dead leviathan, smackingly feasted on its fatness. The few sleepers below in their bunks were often startled by the sharp slapping of their tails against the hull, within a few inches of the sleepers' hearts. Peering over the side you could just see them (as before you heard them) wallowing in the sullen, black waters, and turning over on their backs as they scooped out huge globular pieces of the whale of the bigness of a human head. This particular feat of the shark seems all but miraculous. How at such an apparently unassailable surface, they contrive to gouge out such symmetrical mouthfuls, remains a part of the universal problem of all things. The mark they thus leave on the whale, may best be likened to the hollow made by a carpenter in countersinking for a screw.

About midnight, that steak was sliced and cooked, and lit by two sperm oil lanterns, Stubb confidently dug into his spermaceti dinner at the capstan-head, as if it were a dining table. But Stubb wasn't the only one enjoying whale meat that night. Joining in with their own chewing sounds, thousands upon thousands of sharks surrounded the dead whale, eagerly feasting on its blubber. The few crew members sleeping below in their bunks were often jolted awake by the sharp slapping of the sharks' tails against the hull, just inches from their hearts. Peering over the side, you could barely see them (as you had previously heard them) thrashing in the dark, murky waters, flipping onto their backs as they scooped out massive, globular chunks of the whale the size of a human head. This impressive trick of the sharks seems almost miraculous. How they manage to carve out such perfectly-sized bites from an apparently impenetrable surface remains one of life's great mysteries. The marks they leave on the whale can be compared to the indentations a carpenter makes when countersinking a screw.

Though amid all the smoking horror and diabolism of a sea-fight, sharks will be seen longingly gazing up to the ship's decks, like hungry dogs round a table where red meat is being carved, ready to bolt down every killed man that is tossed to them; and though, while the valiant butchers over the deck-table are thus cannibally carving each other's live meat with carving-knives all gilded and tasselled, the sharks, also, with their jewel-hilted mouths, are quarrelsomely carving away under the table at the dead meat; and though, were you to turn the whole affair upside down, it would still be pretty much the same thing, that is to say, a shocking sharkish business enough for all parties; and though sharks also are the invariable outriders of all slave ships crossing the Atlantic, systematically trotting alongside, to be handy in case a parcel is to be carried anywhere, or a dead slave to be decently buried; and though one or two other like instances might be set down, touching the set terms, places, and occasions, when sharks do most socially congregate, and most hilariously feast; yet is there no conceivable time or occasion when you will find them in such countless numbers, and in gayer or more jovial spirits, than around a dead sperm whale, moored by night to a whaleship at sea. If you have never seen that sight, then suspend your decision about the propriety of devil-worship, and the expediency of conciliating the devil.

Though in the chaos and terror of a sea battle, sharks can be seen longingly staring up at the ship's decks, like hungry dogs around a table where meat is being carved, ready to devour every dead man tossed to them; and while the brave butchers on the deck are cannibalistically cutting each other's live flesh with their gilded and tasseled knives, the sharks, with their jewel-encrusted jaws, are tussling beneath the table over the dead bodies; and even if you flipped the whole scene upside down, it would still essentially be the same—a shocking, shark-like affair for everyone involved; and even though sharks are the constant companions of slave ships crossing the Atlantic, always trotting alongside to be useful when a parcel needs to be moved or a dead slave needs a decent burial; and even though a few other similar examples could be mentioned regarding the specific times, places, and occasions when sharks gather most eagerly and feast most joyfully; there is no time or event where you'll find them in such huge numbers and brighter spirits than around a dead sperm whale, anchored at night next to a whaling ship in the sea. If you've never witnessed that sight, then hold off on judging the appropriateness of devil-worship and the practicality of making peace with the devil.

But, as yet, Stubb heeded not the mumblings of the banquet that was going on so nigh him, no more than the sharks heeded the smacking of his own epicurean lips.

But, for now, Stubb didn't pay any attention to the chatter of the banquet happening so close to him, just like the sharks didn't pay any attention to the sound of his own gourmet lips smacking.

"Cook, cook!—where's that old Fleece?" he cried at length, widening his legs still further, as if to form a more secure base for his supper; and, at the same time darting his fork into the dish, as if stabbing with his lance; "cook, you cook!— sail this way, cook!"

"Hey, cook! Where's that old Fleece?" he shouted finally, spreading his legs wider, as if to create a more stable stance for his dinner; at the same time, he lunged his fork into the dish, as if he were stabbing with a spear. "Come on, cook! Bring it over here, cook!"

The old black, not in any very high glee at having been previously routed from his warm hammock at a most unseasonable hour, came shambling along from his galley, for, like many old blacks, there was something the matter with his knee-pans, which he did not keep well scoured like his other pans; this old Fleece, as they called him, came shuffling and limping along, assisting his step with his tongs, which, after a clumsy fashion, were made of straightened iron hoops; this old Ebony floundered along, and in obedience to the word of command, came to a dead stop on the opposite side of Stubb's sideboard; when, with both hands folded before him, and resting on his two-legged cane, he bowed his arched back still further over, at the same time sideways inclining his head, so as to bring his best ear into play.

The old black man, not too happy about being woken from his cozy hammock at such an early hour, shuffled along from his kitchen. Like many older black men, he had some issues with his knees, which he didn't keep as clean as his other cookware. This old guy, known as Fleece, limped and hobbled along, using his tongs—which were awkwardly made from straightened iron hoops—to help him get around. This old man struggled along, then came to a stop at Stubb's sideboard when commanded. With both hands resting on his two-legged cane, he bent his curved back even more, tilting his head to make sure he could hear better with his good ear.

"Cook," said Stubb, rapidly lifting a rather reddish morsel to his mouth, "don't you think this steak is rather overdone? You've been beating this steak too much, cook; it's too tender. Don't I always say that to be good, a whale-steak must be tough? There are those sharks now over the side, don't you see they prefer it tough and rare? What a shindy they are kicking up! Cook, go and talk to 'em; tell 'em they are welcome to help themselves civilly, and in moderation, but they must keep quiet. Blast me, if I can hear my own voice. Away, cook, and deliver my message. Here, take this lantern," snatching one from his sideboard; "now then, go and preach to them!"

"Cook," Stubb said, quickly lifting a somewhat reddish piece of meat to his mouth, "don’t you think this steak is a bit overcooked? You’ve been pounding this steak too much; it’s too tender. Don’t I always say that for a whale steak to be good, it has to be tough? Look at those sharks over the side; can't you see they prefer it tough and rare? What a noise they’re making! Cook, go and talk to them; tell them they’re welcome to serve themselves politely and in moderation, but they need to keep it down. I can’t even hear myself speak. Go on, cook, and deliver my message. Here, take this lantern," grabbing one from the sideboard; "now go and preach to them!"

Sullenly taking the offered lantern, old Fleece limped across the deck to the bulwarks; and then, with one hand drooping his light low over the sea, so as to get a good view of his congregation, with the other hand he solemnly flourished his tongs, and leaning far over the side in a mumbling voice began addressing the sharks, while Stubb, softly crawling behind, overheard all that was said.

Sullenly taking the offered lantern, old Fleece limped across the deck to the railings; then, with one hand holding the light low over the sea to get a good look at his audience, he solemnly waved his tongs with the other hand. Leaning far over the side, he started mumbling an address to the sharks while Stubb quietly crawled behind, listening to everything that was said.

"Fellow-critters: I'se ordered here to say dat you must stop dat dam noise dare. You hear? Stop dat dam smackin' ob de lips! Massa Stubb say dat you can fill your dam bellies up to de hatchings, but by Gor! you must stop dat dam racket!"

"Hey everyone: I’m here to tell you that you need to stop that damn noise over there. Do you hear me? Stop that damn smacking of your lips! Mr. Stubb said you can fill your damn bellies up to the hatches, but by God! you need to stop that damn racket!"

"Cook," here interposed Stubb, accompanying the word with a sudden slap on the shoulder,—Cook! why, damn your eyes, you mustn't swear that way when you're preaching. That's no way to convert sinners, Cook! Who dat? Den preach to him yourself," sullenly turning to go.

"Cook," Stubb interrupted, giving him a sudden slap on the shoulder, "Cook! Come on, you can't swear like that when you're preaching. That's not going to help you convert sinners, Cook! Who's that? Then you should preach to him yourself," he said, sulkily turning to leave.

No, Cook; go on, go on."

No, Cook; keep going, keep going."

"Well, den, Belubed fellow-critters:"—

"Well then, beloved fellow critters:"

"Right!" exclaimed Stubb, approvingly, "coax 'em to it, try that," and Fleece continued.

"Right!" Stubb said, nodding in agreement, "encourage them to do it, give that a shot," and Fleece went on.

"Do you is all sharks, and by natur wery woracious, yet I zay to you, fellow-critters, dat dat woraciousness—'top dat dam slappin' ob de tail! How you tink to hear, 'spose you keep up such a dam slapping and bitin' dare?"

"Do you all sharks, and by nature very greedy, yet I say to you, fellow creatures, that greediness—'stop that damn slapping of the tail! How do you think you’ll hear if you keep up such damn slapping and biting there?"

"Cook," cried Stubb, collaring him, "I won't have that swearing.
Talk to 'em gentlemanly."

"Cook," Stubb exclaimed, grabbing him, "I won't tolerate that swearing.
Talk to them politely."

Once more the sermon proceeded.

The sermon continued once more.

"Your woraciousness, fellow-critters. I don't blame ye so much for; dat is natur, and can't be helped; but to gobern dat wicked natur, dat is de pint. You is sharks, sartin; but if you gobern de shark in you, why den you be angel; for all angel is not'ing more dan de shark well goberned. Now, look here, bred'ren, just try wonst to be cibil, a helping yourselbs from dat whale. Don't be tearin' de blubber out your neighbour's mout, I say. Is not one shark dood right as toder to dat whale? And, by Gor, none on you has de right to dat whale; dat whale belong to some one else. I know some o' you has berry brig mout, brigger dan oders; but den de brig mouts sometimes has de small bellies; so dat de brigness of de mout is not to swallar wid, but to bit off de blubber for de small fry ob sharks, dat can't get into de scrouge to help demselves."

"Your greediness, fellow creatures. I don't blame you too much for it; that's natural, and it can't be helped; but controlling that wicked nature, that's the key. You are definitely sharks; but if you control the shark within you, then you can be an angel; because an angel is nothing more than a well-governed shark. Now, listen, brothers, just try once to be civil, instead of helping yourselves to that whale. Don't be tearing the blubber out of your neighbor's mouth, I say. Is one shark really entitled to that whale over another? And, by God, none of you has the right to that whale; that whale belongs to someone else. I know some of you have really big mouths, bigger than others; but then those big mouths sometimes have small bellies; so the size of the mouth doesn't mean it's meant to swallow, but to bite off the blubber for the smaller sharks that can't get into the scrum to help themselves."

"Well done, old Fleece!" cried Stubb, "that's Christianity; go on."

"Great job, old Fleece!" yelled Stubb, "that's what Christianity is all about; keep it up."

"No use goin' on; de dam willains will keep a scrougin' and slappin' each oder, Massa Stubb; dey don't hear one word; no use a-preaching to such dam g'uttons as you call 'em, till dare bellies is full, and dare bellies is bottomless; and when dey do get 'em full, dey wont hear you den; for den dey sink in de sea, go fast to sleep on de coral, and can't hear noting at all, no more, for eber and eber."

"No use continuing; the damn villains will keep pushing and hitting each other, Massa Stubb; they don’t hear a word; there’s no point in preaching to such damn gluttons as you call them, until their stomachs are full, and their stomachs are bottomless; and when they do fill up, they won’t hear you then; because then they sink into the sea, fall fast asleep on the coral, and can’t hear anything at all, not ever again."

"Upon my soul, I am about of the same opinion; so give the benediction, Fleece, and I'll away to my supper."

"Honestly, I feel the same way; so please give the blessing, Fleece, and I'll go have my dinner."

Upon this, Fleece, holding both hands over the fishy mob, raised his shrill voice, and cried—

Upon this, Fleece, with both hands over the fishy crowd, raised his high-pitched voice and shouted—

"Cussed fellow-critters! Kick up de damndest row as ever you can; fill your dam bellies 'till dey bust—and den die."

"Cursed fellow creatures! Make as much noise as you can; fill your damn bellies until they burst—and then die."

"Now, cook," said Stubb, resuming his supper at the capstan; Stand just where you stood before, there, over against me, and pay particular attention."

"Now, cook," Stubb said, going back to his dinner at the capstan; "Stand right where you were before, over there across from me, and pay close attention."

"All 'dention," said Fleece, again stooping over upon his tongs in the desired position.

"All 'dention," said Fleece, again bending over his tongs in the position he wanted.

"Well," said Stubb, helping himself freely meanwhile;
"I shall now go back to the subject of this steak.
In the first place, how old are you, cook?"

"Well," Stubb said, helping himself generously in the meantime;
"I'll go back to the topic of this steak.
First of all, how old are you, cook?"

"What dat do wid de 'teak, " said the old black, testily.

"What do you do with the 'teak?" said the old man, irritably.

"Silence! How old are you, cook?"

"Quiet! How old are you, chef?"

"'Bout ninety, dey say," he gloomily muttered.

"'About ninety, they say," he said gloomily.

And have you have lived in this world hard upon one hundred years, cook, and don't know yet how to cook a whale-steak?" rapidly bolting another mouthful at the last word, so that that morsel seemed a continuation of the question. "Where were you born, cook?"

And have you lived in this world for almost a hundred years, cook, and still don't know how to cook a whale steak?" he quickly swallowed another bite right after he spoke, making it feel like part of the question. "Where were you born, cook?"

"'Hind de hatchway, in ferry-boat, goin' ober de Roanoke."

"'Behind the hatchway, in the ferryboat, going over the Roanoke."

"Born in a ferry-boat! That's queer, too. But I want to know what country you were born in, cook!"

"Born on a ferry boat? That's strange, too. But I want to know which country you were born in, cook!"

"Didn't I say de Roanoke country?" he cried sharply.

"Didn't I mention the Roanoke area?" he said sharply.

"No, you didn't, cook; but I'll tell you what I'm coming to, cook. You must go home and be born over again; you don't know how to cook a whale-steak yet."

"No, you didn't, cook; but I'll tell you what I mean, cook. You need to go home and start over; you still don’t know how to cook a whale steak."

"Bress my soul, if I cook noder one," he growled, angrily, turning round to depart.

"Bless my soul, if I cook another one," he said angrily, turning around to leave.

"Come back here, cook;—here, hand me those tongs;—now take that bit of steak there, and tell me if you think that steak cooked as it should be? Take it, I say"—holding the tongs towards him—"take it, and taste it."

"Come back here, chef;—here, pass me those tongs;—now take that piece of steak there and tell me if you think it’s cooked properly. Take it, I said"—holding the tongs out to him—"take it and taste it."

Faintly smacking his withered lips over it for a moment, the old negro muttered, "Best cooked 'teak I eber taste; joosy, berry joosy."

Faintly smacking his dry lips over it for a moment, the old man muttered, "Best cooked steak I've ever tasted; juicy, really juicy."

"Cook," said Stubb, squaring himself once more; "do you belong to the church?"

"Cook," Stubb said, getting himself in position again, "are you part of the church?"

"Passed one once in Cape-Down," said the old man sullenly.

"Once, I traveled through Cape Town," the old man said gloomily.

"And you have once in your life passed a holy church in Cape-Town, where you doubtless overheard a holy parson addressing his hearers as his beloved fellow-creatures, have you, cook! And yet you come here, and tell me such a dreadful lie as you did just now, eh?" said Stubb. "Where do you expect to go to, cook?"

"And at some point in your life, you walked past a holy church in Cape Town, where you probably heard a holy priest speaking to his audience as his beloved fellow beings, right, cook? And yet you come here and tell me such an awful lie as you just did, huh?" said Stubb. "Where do you think you're going, cook?"

"Go to bed berry soon," he mumbled, half-turning as he spoke.

"Go to bed really soon," he mumbled, half-turning as he spoke.

"Avast! heave to! I mean when you die, cook. It's an awful question.
Now what's your answer?"

"Stop right there! I mean when you die, cook. It's a terrible question.
So, what's your answer?"

"When dis old brack man dies," said the negro slowly, changing his whole air and demeanor, "he hisself won't go nowhere; but some bressed angel will come and fetch him."

"When this old black man dies," the Black man said slowly, changing his entire mood and demeanor, "he himself won't go anywhere; but some blessed angel will come and take him."

"Fetch him? How? In a coach and four, as they fetched Elijah?
And fetch him where?"

"Get him? How? In a carriage with four horses, like they did with Elijah?
And where do I bring him?"

"Up dere," said Fleece, holding his tongs straight over his head, and keeping it there very solemnly.

"Up there," said Fleece, holding his tongs straight above his head and keeping them there very seriously.

"So, then, you expect to go up into our main-top, do you, cook, when you are dead? But don't you know the higher you climb, the colder it gets? Main-top, eh?"

"So, you think you're going to climb up to our main-top when you're dead, huh, cook? Don’t you realize that the higher you go, the colder it gets? Main-top, really?"

"Didn't say dat t'all," said Fleece, again in the sulks.

"Didn't say that at all," said Fleece, sulking again.

"You said up there, didn't you? and now look yourself, and see where your tongs are pointing. But, perhaps you expect to get into heaven by crawling through the lubber's hole, cook; but, no, no, cook, you don't get there, except you go the regular way, round by the rigging. It's a ticklish business, but must be done, or else it's no go. But none of us are in heaven yet. Drop your tongs, cook, and hear my orders. Do ye hear? Hold your hat in one hand, and clap t'other a'top of your heart, when I'm giving my orders, cook. What! that your heart, there?— that's your gizzard! Aloft! aloft!—that's it—now you have it. Hold it there now, and pay attention."

"You said up there, didn’t you? Now take a look and see where your tongs are pointing. But maybe you think you can get into heaven by sneaking through the easy way, cook; well, no, cook, you can’t get there unless you take the proper route, around by the rigging. It’s a tricky task, but it needs to be done, or else you won't make it. But none of us are in heaven yet. Drop your tongs, cook, and listen to my orders. Do you hear? Hold your hat in one hand, and place your other hand over your heart while I’m giving my orders, cook. What? That’s your heart? — that’s your gizzard! Up high! Up high!—that’s it—now you’ve got it. Hold it there now, and pay attention."

"All 'dention," said the old black, with both hands placed as desired, vainly wriggling his grizzled head, as if to get both ears in front at one and the same time.

"All 'dention," said the old man, with both hands positioned as he wanted, futilely twisting his gray head, as if trying to get both ears in front at the same time.

"Well then, cook, you see this whale-steak of yours was so very bad, that I have put it out of sight as soon as possible; you see that, don't you? Well, for the future, when you cook another whale-steak for my private table here, the capstan, I'll tell you what to do so as not to spoil it by overdoing. Hold the steak in one hand, and show a live coal to it with the other; that done, dish it; d'ye hear? And now to-morrow, cook, when we are cutting in the fish, be sure you stand by to get the tips of his fins; have them put in pickle. As for the ends of the flukes, have them soused, cook. There, now ye may go."

"Alright then, cook, I need to tell you that your whale steak was so bad that I got rid of it as quickly as I could; you understand that, right? So, next time you cook another whale steak for my private table here at the capstan, I’ll tell you how to make sure you don’t ruin it by cooking it too much. Hold the steak in one hand and show it a live coal with the other; once you've done that, plate it up; got it? And tomorrow, cook, when we’re cutting into the fish, make sure you’re ready to grab the tips of the fins; put them in pickle. And for the ends of the flukes, have them cured, cook. There, now you can go."

But Fleece had hardly got three paces off, when he was recalled.

But Fleece had barely taken three steps when he was called back.

"Cook, give me cutlets for supper to-morrow night in the mid-watch. D'ye hear? away you sail then.—Halloa! stop! make a bow before you go.— Avast heaving again! Whale-balls for breakfast—don't forget."

"Cook, get me cutlets for dinner tomorrow night during the night watch. Did you hear me? Off you go then.—Hey! Wait! Do a bow before you leave.—Hold on! Whale balls for breakfast—don’t forget."

"Wish, by gor! whale eat him, 'stead of him eat whale. I'm bressed if he ain't more of shark dan Massa Shark hisself," muttered the old man, limping away; with which sage ejaculation he went to his hammock.

"Man, I swear, that whale should eat him instead of him eating the whale. I’d be amazed if he’s not more of a shark than Mr. Shark himself," muttered the old man, limping away; with that wise comment, he headed to his hammock.

CHAPTER 65

The Whale as a Dish

Whale as a Dish

That mortal man should feed upon the creature that feeds his lamp, and, like Stubb, eat him by his own light, as you may say; this seems so outlandish a thing that one must needs go a little into the history and philosophy of it.

That a human should eat the creature that fuels his lamp, and, like Stubb, consume it by his own light, as one might say; this seems so strange that we must delve a bit into the history and philosophy of it.

It is upon record, that three centuries ago the tongue of the Right Whale was esteemed a great delicacy in France, and commanded large prices there. Also, that in Henry VIIIth's time, a certain cook of the court obtained a handsome reward for inventing an admirable sauce to be eaten with barbacued porpoises, which, you remember, are a species of whale. Porpoises, indeed, are to this day considered fine eating. The meat is made into balls about the size of billiard balls, and being well seasoned and spiced might be taken for turtle-balls or veal balls. The old monks of Dunfermline were very fond of them. They had a great porpoise grant from the crown.

It is recorded that three centuries ago, the tongue of the Right Whale was considered a delicacy in France and fetched high prices. Also, during the time of Henry VIII, a court cook received a nice reward for creating an amazing sauce to accompany barbecued porpoises, which, as you may recall, are a type of whale. Porpoises are still regarded as a tasty dish today. The meat is formed into balls about the size of billiard balls, and when well-seasoned and spiced, could easily be mistaken for turtle or veal balls. The old monks of Dunfermline loved them; they had a generous porpoise grant from the crown.

The fact is, that among his hunters at least, the whale would by all hands be considered a noble dish, were there not so much of him; but when you come to sit down before a meat-pie nearly one hundred feet long, it takes away your appetite. Only the most unprejudiced of men like Stubb, nowadays partake of cooked whales; but the Esquimaux are not so fastidious. We all know how they live upon whales, and have rare old vintages of prime old train oil. Zogranda, one of their most famous doctors, recommends strips of blubber for infants, as being exceedingly juicy and nourishing. And this reminds me that certain Englishmen, who long ago were accidentally left in Greenland by a whaling vessel— that these men actually lived for several months on the mouldy scraps of whales which had been left ashore after trying out the blubber. Among the Dutch whalemen these scraps are called "fritters"; which, indeed, they greatly resemble, being brown and crisp, and smelling something like old Amsterdam housewives' dough-nuts or oly-cooks, when fresh. They have such an eatable look that the most self-denying stranger can hardly keep his hands off.

The truth is, among his fellow hunters at least, the whale would be seen as a delicacy by everyone if there wasn’t so much of it; but when you sit down to a meat pie that's nearly one hundred feet long, it really takes away your appetite. Nowadays, only the most open-minded people like Stubb dare to eat cooked whale; but the Inuit are not so picky. We all know they survive on whales and even have fine old stocks of premium whale oil. Zogranda, one of their most renowned doctors, suggests giving strips of blubber to infants because they’re very juicy and nourishing. This reminds me of certain Englishmen who were accidentally left in Greenland by a whaling ship long ago—they lived for several months on the moldy remains of whales left on shore after the blubber was processed. Among Dutch whalers, these leftovers are called "fritters," which they resemble quite a bit, being brown and crispy and smelling a little like the doughnuts or oly-cooks made by old housewives in Amsterdam when they’re fresh. They look so appetizing that even the most self-disciplined stranger can hardly resist them.

But what further depreciates the whale as a civilized dish, is his exceeding richness. He is the great prize ox of the sea, too fat to be delicately good. Look at his hump, which would be as fine eating as the buffalo's (which is esteemed a rare dish), were it not such a solid pyramid of fat. But the spermaceti itself, how bland and creamy that is; like the transparent, half jellied, white meat of a cocoanut in the third month of its growth, yet far too rich to supply a substitute for butter. Nevertheless, many whalemen have a method of absorbing it into some other substance, and then partaking of it. In the long try watches of the night it is a common thing for the seamen to dip their ship-biscuit into the huge oil-pots and let them fry there awhile. Many a good supper have I thus made.

But what really makes the whale less appealing as a civilized dish is how incredibly rich it is. It’s like the prize bull of the sea, too fatty to be delicately delicious. Just look at his hump; it could be as tasty as buffalo meat (which is considered a delicacy), if it weren’t such a solid block of fat. And the spermaceti itself—how smooth and creamy it is! It resembles the transparent, slightly jellied, white meat of a coconut in its third month of growth, but it’s way too rich to be a substitute for butter. Still, many whalers have a way of mixing it with other foods and then enjoying it. During those long overnight watches, it’s common for sailors to dip their ship biscuits into the large oil pots and let them soak for a while. Many a good meal have I made this way.

In the case of a small Sperm Whale the brains are accounted a fine dish. The casket of the skull is broken into with an axe, and the two plump, whitish lobes being withdrawn (precisely resembling two large puddings), they are then mixed with flour, and cooked into a most delectable mess, in flavor somewhat resembling calves' head, which is quite a dish among some epicures; and every one knows that some young bucks among the epicures, by continually dining upon calves' brains, by and by get to have a little brains of their own, so as to be able to tell a calf's head from their own heads; which, indeed, requires uncommon discrimination. And that is the reason why a young buck with an intelligent looking calf's head before him, is somehow one of the saddest sights you can see. The head looks a sort of reproachfully at him, with an "Et tu Brute!" expression.

In the case of a small sperm whale, the brain is considered a delicacy. The skull is cracked open with an axe, and the two plump, whitish lobes are removed (which look a lot like two large puddings). They are then mixed with flour and cooked into a delicious dish, somewhat similar in flavor to calves' head, which is quite popular among some food enthusiasts. Everyone knows that some young foodies, by constantly eating calves' brains, eventually develop a bit of their own brainpower, allowing them to distinguish a calf's head from their own heads, which definitely requires some skill. That's why a young man, with an intelligent-looking calf's head in front of him, is one of the saddest sights you can witness. The head seems to look at him reproachfully, with an "Et tu, Brute!" expression.

It is not, perhaps, entirely because the whale is so excessively unctuous that landsmen seem to regard the eating of him with abhorrence; that appears to result, in some way, from the consideration before mentioned: i.e. that a man should eat a newly murdered thing of the sea, and eat it too by its own light. But no doubt the first man that ever murdered an ox was regarded as a murderer; perhaps he was hung; and if he had been put on his trial by oxen, he certainly would have been; and he certainly deserved it if any murderer does. Go to the meat-market of a Saturday night and see the crowds of live bipeds staring up at the long rows of dead quadrupeds. Does not that sight take a tooth out of the cannibal's jaw? Cannibals? who is not a cannibal? I tell you it will be more tolerable for the Fejee that salted down a lean missionary in his cellar against a coming famine; it will be more tolerable for that provident Fejee, I say, in the day of judgment, than for thee, civilized and enlightened gourmand, who nailest geese to the ground and feastest on their bloated livers in thy pate-de-foie-gras.

It’s not just because whales are so greasy that people on land seem to find eating them disgusting; it likely comes from the idea mentioned earlier: that a person should consume a freshly killed creature from the sea, especially one that lights up the water itself. But surely, the first person who ever killed an ox was seen as a murderer; maybe he was executed; if judged by a group of oxen, he definitely would have been. And he would have deserved it, just like any murderer would. Go to the meat market on a Saturday night and watch the crowds of live people staring up at the long lines of dead animals. Doesn’t that sight take a bite out of the cannibal’s appetite? Cannibals? Who isn’t a cannibal? I tell you, it will be easier for the Fejee who salted down a skinny missionary in his cellar for a future famine; it will be more bearable for that foresighted Fejee, I say, on judgment day than for you, civilized and educated gourmet, who nails geese to the ground and feasts on their swollen livers in your pâté de foie gras.

But Stubb, he eats the whale by its own light, does he? and that is adding insult to injury, is it? Look at your knife-handle, there, my civilized and enlightened gourmand, dining off that roast beef, what is that handle made of?—what but the bones of the brother of the very ox you are eating? And what do you pick your teeth with, after devouring that fat goose? With a feather of the same fowl. And with what quill did the Secretary of the Society for the Suppression of Cruelty to Ganders formally indite his circulars? It is only within the last month or two that that society passed a resolution to patronize nothing but steel pens.

But Stubb, he eats the whale by its own light, right? And that’s just rubbing salt in the wound, isn’t it? Take a look at your knife handle there, my civilized and sophisticated foodie, enjoying that roast beef—what's that handle made of?—but the bones of the brother of the very ox you’re eating! And what do you use to pick your teeth after munching on that fatty goose? A feather from the same bird. And which quill did the Secretary of the Society for the Suppression of Cruelty to Ganders use to write his letters? Just recently, that society decided to only support the use of steel pens.

CHAPTER 66

The Shark Massacre

The Shark Massacre

When in the Southern Fishery a captured Sperm Whale, after long and weary toil, is brought alongside late at night, it is not, as a general thing at least, customary to proceed at once to the business of cutting him in. For that business is an exceedingly laborious one; is not very soon completed; and requires all hands to set about it. Therefore, the common usage is to take in all sail; lash the helm a'lee; and then send every one below to his hammock till daylight, with the reservation that, until that time, anchor-watches shall be kept; that is, two and two for an hour, each couple, the crew in rotation shall mount the deck to see that all goes well.

When a Sperm Whale is captured in the Southern Fishery after a long and exhausting struggle, it’s generally not the practice to start cutting it up right away, especially late at night. This task is extremely labor-intensive, takes a long time to finish, and requires everyone’s help. So, the usual procedure is to take in all sails, secure the helm, and then send everyone below to their hammocks until morning. However, anchor-watches will be maintained until then, meaning that two crew members at a time will take turns going up on deck for an hour to ensure everything is okay.

But sometimes, especially upon the Line in the Pacific, this plan will not answer at all; because such incalculable hosts of sharks gather round the moored carcase, that were he left so for six hours, say, on a stretch, little more than the skeleton would be visible by morning. In most other parts of the ocean, however, where these fish do not so largely abound, their wondrous voracity can be at times considerably diminished, by vigorously stirring them up with sharp whaling-spades, a procedure notwithstanding, which, in some instances, only seems to tickle them into still greater activity. But it was not thus in the present case with the Pequod's sharks; though, to be sure, any man unaccustomed to such sights, to have looked over her side that night, would have almost thought the whole round sea was one huge cheese, and those sharks the maggots in it.

But sometimes, especially along the Pacific Line, this plan doesn’t work at all; because such countless numbers of sharks gather around the moored carcass that if it were left like that for six hours, for example, by morning little more than the skeleton would be left. In most other parts of the ocean, however, where these fish aren’t as abundant, their incredible greed can sometimes be significantly reduced by stirring them up vigorously with sharp whaling spades; a method that, in some cases, just seems to excite them even more. But that wasn’t the case with the sharks near the Pequod; indeed, any man who wasn’t used to such sights, looking over the side that night, might have almost thought the entire round sea was one giant cheese, and those sharks the maggots in it.

Nevertheless, upon Stubb setting the anchor-watch after his supper was concluded; and when, accordingly Queequeg and a forecastle seaman came on deck, no small excitement was created among the sharks; for immediately suspending the cutting stages over the side, and lowering three lanterns, so that they cast long gleams of light over the turbid sea, these two mariners, darting their long whaling-spades,* kept up an incessant murdering of the sharks, by striking the keen steel deep into their skulls, seemingly their only vital part. But in the foamy confusion of their mixed and struggling hosts, the marksmen could not always hit their mark; and this brought about new revelations of the incredible ferocity of the foe. They viciously snapped, not only at each other's disembowelments, but like flexible bows, bent round, and bit their own; till those entrails seemed swallowed over and over again by the same mouth, to be oppositely voided by the gaping wound. Nor was this all. It was unsafe to meddle with the corpses and ghosts of these creatures. A sort of generic or Pantheistic vitality seemed to lurk in their very joints and bones, after what might be called the individual life had departed. Killed and hoisted on deck for the sake of his skin, one of these sharks almost took poor Queequeg's hand off, when he tried to shut down the dead lid of his murderous jaw.

But when Stubb set the anchor-watch after finishing his dinner, and Queequeg along with a crew member from the forecastle came up on deck, it stirred quite a buzz among the sharks. They quickly lowered the cutting stages over the side and hung three lanterns to cast long beams of light across the murky sea. These two sailors, wielding their long whaling spades, relentlessly attacked the sharks by driving the sharp steel deep into their skulls, which seemed to be their only vital spot. However, in the chaotic mix of thrashing bodies, the marksmen couldn’t always hit their targets, revealing the sharks' astonishing ferocity. They viciously snapped not only at each other’s torn insides but also bent around like flexible bows, biting at themselves, so that those entrails appeared to be repeatedly swallowed and then expelled from their own gaping wounds. And that wasn’t all. It was dangerous to handle the bodies and remnants of these creatures. There seemed to be a sort of generic or Pantheistic life lingering in their very joints and bones even after what could be considered their individual life had ended. When one of these sharks was killed and dragged on deck for its skin, it nearly took off Queequeg’s hand when he tried to close its deadly jaw.

*The whaling-spade used for cutting-in is made of the very best steel; is about the bigness of a man's spread hand; and in general shape, corresponds to the garden implement after which it is named; only its sides are perfectly flat, and its upper end considerably narrower than the lower. This weapon is always kept as sharp as possible; and when being used is occasionally honed, just like a razor. In its socket, a stiff pole, from twenty to thirty feet long, is inserted for a handle.

*The whaling spade used for cutting in is made of the finest steel; it’s roughly the size of a man’s outstretched hand; and in general shape, it resembles the garden tool it’s named after; only its sides are completely flat, and the upper end is much narrower than the lower. This tool is always kept as sharp as possible, and while in use, it’s occasionally sharpened, just like a razor. A stiff pole, about twenty to thirty feet long, is inserted into its socket to act as a handle.*

"Queequeg no care what god made him shark," said the savage, agonizingly lifting his hand up and down; "wedder Fejee god or Nantucket god; but de god wat made shark must be one dam Ingin."

"Queequeg doesn’t care which god made him a shark," said the savage, painfully lifting his hand up and down; "whether it’s the Fiji god or the Nantucket god; but the god that made the shark must be one damn Indian."

CHAPTER 67

Cutting In

Cutting In

It was a Saturday night, and such a Sabbath as followed! Ex officio professors of Sabbath breaking are all whalemen. The ivory Pequod was turned into what seemed a shamble; every sailor a butcher. You would have thought we were offering up ten thousand red oxen to the sea gods.

It was a Saturday night, and what a Sabbath that was! By nature, whalers are the unofficial experts in Sabbath-breaking. The ivory Pequod looked like a mess; every sailor acted like a butcher. You would have thought we were sacrificing ten thousand red oxen to the sea gods.

In the first place, the enormous cutting tackles, among other ponderous things comprising a cluster of blocks generally painted green, and which no single man can possibly lift—this vast bunch of grapes was swayed up to the main-top and firmly lashed to the lower mast-head, the strongest point anywhere above a ship's deck. The end of the hawser-like rope winding through these intricacies, was then conducted to the windlass, and the huge lower block of the tackles was swung over the whale; to this block the great blubber hook, weighing some one hundred pounds, was attached. And now suspended in stages over the side, Starbuck and Stubb, the mates, armed with their long spades, began cutting a hole in the body for the insertion of the hook just above the nearest of the two side-fins. This done, a broad, semicircular line is cut round the hole, the hook is inserted, and the main body of the crew striking up a wild chorus, now commence heaving in one dense crowd at the windlass. When instantly, the entire ship careens over on her side; every bolt in her starts like the nailheads of an old house in frosty weather; she trembles, quivers, and nods her frighted mast-heads to the sky. More and more she leans over to the whale, while every gasping heave of the windlass is answered by a helping heave from the billows; till at last, a swift, startling snap is heard; with a great swash the ship rolls upwards and backwards from the whale, and the triumphant tackle rises into sight dragging after it the disengaged semicircular end of the first strip of blubber. Now as the blubber envelopes the whale precisely as the rind does an orange, so is it stripped off from the body precisely as an orange is sometimes stripped by spiralizing it. For the strain constantly kept up by the windlass continually keeps the whale rolling over and over in the water, and as the blubber in one strip uniformly peels off along the line called the "scarf," simultaneously cut by the spades of Starbuck and Stubb, the mates; and just as fast as it is thus peeled off, and indeed by that very act itself, it is all the time being hoisted higher and higher aloft till its upper end grazes the main-top; the men at the windlass then cease heaving, and for a moment or two the prodigious blood-dripping mass sways to and fro as if let down from the sky, and every one present must take good heed to dodge it when it swings, else it may box his ears and pitch him headlong overboard.

First of all, the huge cutting tackles, along with other heavy equipment made up of a cluster of blocks usually painted green, are things no one person can lift. This massive group was hoisted up to the main top and securely tied to the lower mast-head, the sturdiest point above a ship's deck. The end of the hawser-like rope winding through these complex setups was then led to the windlass, and the huge lower block of the tackles was swung over the whale; to this block, a great blubber hook weighing about one hundred pounds was attached. Now, suspended in stages over the side, Starbuck and Stubb, the mates, equipped with their long spades, began cutting a hole in the whale's body for the hook, just above the nearest of its two side fins. Once that was done, a wide, semicircular line was cut around the hole, the hook was inserted, and the main body of the crew started singing a lively chorus as they began hauling in a dense crowd at the windlass. Suddenly, the entire ship leaned over on its side; every bolt creaked like the nails of an old house on a frosty day; she shook, trembled, and nodded her frightened mast-heads toward the sky. The ship leaned further toward the whale, with every struggling pull of the windlass met by a surge from the waves; then, finally, a sharp, startling snap was heard. With a loud swoosh, the ship rolled back and upward from the whale, and the victorious tackle appeared, dragging along the free semicircular end of the first blubber strip. Just as the blubber wraps around the whale like the rind of an orange, it was peeled away from the body just as an orange can be spiralized. The constant strain applied by the windlass kept the whale rolling over and over in the water, and as the blubber in one strip peeled off along the line called the "scarf," which had been cut by the spades of Starbuck and Stubb, it was lifted higher and higher until its upper end nearly touched the main top. The men at the windlass then stopped pulling, and for a moment, the enormous blood-dripping mass swayed back and forth as if lowered from the sky, and everyone present had to be careful to dodge it when it swung, or it might hit them and send them crashing overboard.

One of the attending harpooneers now advances with a long, keen weapon called a boarding-sword, and watching his chance he dexterously slices out a considerable hole in the lower part of the swaying mass. Into this hole, the end of the second alternating great tackle is then hooked so as to retain a hold upon the blubber, in order to prepare for what follows. Whereupon, this accomplished swordsman, warning all hands to stand off, once more makes a scientific dash at the mass, and with a few sidelong, desperate, lunging, slicings, severs it completely in twain; so that while the short lower part is still fast, the long upper strip, called a blanket-piece, swings clear, and is all ready for lowering. The heavers forward now resume their song, and while the one tackle is peeling and hoisting a second strip from the whale, the other is slowly slackened away, and down goes the first strip through the main hatchway right beneath, into an unfurnished parlor called the blubber-room. Into this twilight apartment sundry nimble hands keep coiling away the long blanket-piece as if it were a great live mass of plaited serpents. And thus the work proceeds; the two tackles hoisting and lowering simultaneously; both whale and windlass heaving, the heavers singing, the blubber-room gentlemen coiling, the mates scarfing, the ship straining, and all hands swearing occasionally, by way of assuaging the general friction.

One of the harpooneers steps forward with a long, sharp tool known as a boarding sword, and when the moment is right, he skillfully cuts out a sizable hole in the lower part of the swaying mass. Into this hole, the end of the second large tackle is hooked to secure a grip on the blubber, preparing for what comes next. Then, this skilled swordsman, instructing everyone to stand back, makes another precise move at the mass and, with a few quick, desperate slices, completely splits it in two; so the short lower part remains attached while the long upper piece, called a blanket piece, swings free and is ready to be lowered. The heavers at the front start singing again, and while one tackle is taking and lifting a second strip from the whale, the other is slowly let loose, and down goes the first strip through the main hatchway, right below, into an empty room known as the blubber room. In this dimly lit space, various quick hands keep coiling the long blanket piece as if it were a massive, writhing group of snakes. And so the work continues; the two tackles lifting and lowering at the same time; both the whale and windlass pulling, the heavers singing, the blubber room workers coiling, the mates managing the operations, the ship straining, and everyone swearing occasionally to ease the overall tension.

CHAPTER 68

The Blanket

The Blanket

I have given no small attention to that not unvexed subject, the skin of the whale. I have had controversies about it with experienced whalemen afloat, and learned naturalists ashore. My original opinion remains unchanged; but it is only an opinion.

I have paid considerable attention to the somewhat debated topic of whale skin. I've had discussions about it with seasoned whalers at sea and knowledgeable naturalists on land. My initial view hasn't changed; however, it is just an opinion.

The question is, what and where is the skin of the whale. Already you know what his blubber is. That blubber is something of the consistence of firm, close-grained beef, but tougher, more elastic and compact, and ranges from eight or ten to twelve and fifteen inches in thickness.

The question is, what and where is the whale's skin? You already know what its blubber is. That blubber has a texture similar to firm, fine-grained beef, but it’s tougher, more elastic, and denser, ranging from eight or ten to twelve and fifteen inches in thickness.

Now, however preposterous it may at first seem to talk of any creature's skin as being of that sort of consistence and thickness, yet in point of fact these are no arguments against such a presumption; because you cannot raise any other dense enveloping layer from the whale's body but that same blubber; and the outermost enveloping layer of any animal, if reasonably dense, what can that be but the skin? True, from the unmarred dead body of the whale, you may scrape off with your hand an infinitely thin, transparent substance, somewhat resembling the thinnest shreds of isinglass, only it is almost as flexible and soft as satin; that is, previous to being dried, when it not only contracts and thickens, but becomes rather hard and brittle. I have several such dried bits, which I use for marks in my whale-books. It is transparent, as I said before; and being laid upon the printed page, I have sometimes pleased myself with fancying it exerted a magnifying influence. At any rate, it is pleasant to read about whales through their own spectacles, as you may say. But what I am driving at here is this. That same infinitely thin, isinglass substance, which, I admit, invests the entire body of the whale, is not so much to be regarded as the skin of the creature, as the skin of the skin, so to speak; for it were simply ridiculous to say, that the proper skin of the tremendous whale is thinner and more tender than the skin of a new-born child. But no more of this.

Now, as strange as it may seem at first to talk about any creature's skin being that kind of thickness and texture, there’s actually no argument against that idea; because you can’t find any other dense covering on the whale’s body besides that same blubber. The outer layer of any animal, if it’s reasonably thick, must be the skin, right? True, from the unblemished dead body of the whale, you can scrape off an incredibly thin, transparent substance, similar to the thinnest bits of isinglass, that is also almost as flexible and soft as satin; that is, before it dries out when it contracts and thickens, making it quite hard and brittle. I have several of these dried pieces that I use as markers in my whale books. As I mentioned, it’s transparent, and when placed on a printed page, I've sometimes enjoyed imagining that it has a magnifying effect. At any rate, it’s nice to read about whales through their own lens, so to speak. But what I’m getting at here is this: that same incredibly thin, isinglass-like substance, which I admit covers the entire body of the whale, shouldn’t really be considered the creature’s skin, but rather the skin of the skin, so to speak; because it would be simply ridiculous to claim that the actual skin of the immense whale is thinner and more delicate than that of a newborn child. But enough of that.

Assuming the blubber to be the skin of the whale; then, when this skin, as in the case of a very large Sperm Whale, will yield the bulk of one hundred barrels of oil; and, when it is considered that, in quantity, or rather weight, that oil, in its expressed state, is only three fourths, and not the entire substance of the coat; some idea may hence be had of the enormousness of that animated mass, a mere part of whose mere integument yields such a lake of liquid as that. Reckoning ten barrels to the ton, you have ten tons for the net weight of only three quarters of the stuff of the whale's skin.

Assuming the blubber is the whale's skin, then in the case of a very large Sperm Whale, this skin can produce around one hundred barrels of oil. Considering that the oil, when extracted, is only three-quarters of the total weight of the skin, you can get an idea of how massive that living creature is, as just a portion of its skin generates such a large amount of liquid. If you estimate ten barrels to a ton, that means the net weight of just three-quarters of the whale's skin is about ten tons.

In life, the visible surface of the Sperm Whale is not the least among the many marvels he presents. Almost invariably it is all over obliquely crossed and re-crossed with numberless straight marks in thick array, something like those in the finest Italian line engravings. But these marks do not seem to be impressed upon the isinglass substance above mentioned, but seem to be seen through it, as if they were engraved upon the body itself. Nor is this all. In some instances, to the quick, observant eye, those linear marks, as in a veritable engraving, but afford the ground for far other delineations. These are hieroglyphical; that is, if you call those mysterious cyphers on the walls of pyramids hieroglyphics, then that is the proper word to use in the present connexion. By my retentive memory of the hieroglyphics upon one Sperm Whale in particular, I was much struck with a plate representing the old Indian characters chiselled on the famous hieroglyphic palisades on the banks of the Upper Mississippi. Like those mystic rocks, too, the mystic-marked whale remains undecipherable. This allusion to the Indian rocks reminds me of another thing. Besides all the other phenomena which the exterior of the Sperm Whale presents, he not seldom displays the back, and more especially his flanks, effaced in great part of the regular linear appearance, by reason of numerous rude scratches, altogether of an irregular, random aspect. I should say that those New England rocks on the seacoast, which Agassiz imagines to bear the marks of violent scraping contact with vast floating icebergs—I should say, that those rocks must not a little resemble the Sperm Whale in this particular. It also seems to me that such scratches in the whale are probably made by hostile contact with other whales; for I have most remarked them in the large, full-grown bulls of the species.

In life, the surface of the Sperm Whale is definitely one of the many wonders it shows. Almost always, it's covered with countless straight marks arranged in a thick pattern, similar to those found in fine Italian engravings. However, these marks don’t seem to be pressed into the isinglass-like substance mentioned earlier, but rather appear to be visible through it, as if they were etched onto the whale's body itself. That’s not all. In some cases, to the keen, observant eye, those linear marks offer the basis for much more complex designs. These are like hieroglyphics; if you consider the mysterious symbols on pyramid walls hieroglyphics, then that’s the right term to use here. From my strong memory of the hieroglyphics on one particular Sperm Whale, I was struck by a plate displaying the ancient Indian symbols carved on the famous hieroglyphic palisades along the Upper Mississippi. Like those mystical rocks, the whale with these mystical marks remains unsolved. This reference to the Indian rocks reminds me of something else. Besides the other features that the exterior of the Sperm Whale exhibits, it often shows its back, especially its sides, largely missing the regular linear pattern due to many rough scratches, all appearing irregular and random. I’d say that those New England coastal rocks, which Agassiz believes show the marks of violent scraping by huge floating icebergs—those rocks must resemble the Sperm Whale in this respect. It also seems to me that these scratches on the whale are likely caused by aggressive interactions with other whales, as I’ve noticed them most in the large, fully grown bulls of the species.

A word or two more concerning this matter of the skin or blubber of the whale. It has already been said, that it is stript from him in long pieces, called blanket-pieces. Like most sea-terms, this one is very happy and significant. For the whale is indeed wrapt up in his blubber as in a real blanket or counterpane; or, still better, an Indian poncho slipt over his head, and skirting his extremity. It is by reason of this cosy blanketing of his body, that the whale is enabled to keep himself comfortable in all weathers, in all seas, times, and tides. What would become of a Greenland whale, say, in those shuddering, icy seas of the North, if unsupplied with his cosy surtout? True, other fish are found exceedingly brisk in those Hyperborean waters; but these, be it observed, are your cold-blooded, lungless fish, whose very bellies are refrigerators; creatures, that warm themselves under the lee of an iceberg, as a traveller in winter would bask before an inn fire; whereas, like man, the whale has lungs and warm blood. Freeze his blood, and he dies. How wonderful is it then—except after explanation—that this great monster, to whom corporeal warmth is as indispensable as it is to man; how wonderful that he should be found at home, immersed to his lips for life in those Arctic waters! where, when seamen fall overboard, they are sometimes found, months afterwards, perpendicularly frozen into the hearts of fields of ice, as a fly is found glued in amber. But more surprising is it to know, as has been proved by experiment, that the blood of a Polar whale is warmer than that of a Borneo negro in summer.

A word or two more about the skin or blubber of the whale. It has already been mentioned that it’s stripped from the whale in long pieces, called blanket-pieces. Like many maritime terms, this one is quite fitting and meaningful. The whale is indeed wrapped up in its blubber like it's in a real blanket or comforter; or, even better, like an Indian poncho slipped over its head, draping down to cover its body. This cozy layer of fat allows the whale to stay comfortable in all kinds of weather, in any sea, at all times and tides. What would happen to a Greenland whale, for instance, in those freezing, icy northern seas without that warm covering? True, other fish thrive in those frigid waters; but these are cold-blooded, lungless fish, whose very bellies are like refrigerators—creatures that warm themselves under the shelter of an iceberg, just like a winter traveler might bask in front of an inn fire. Meanwhile, like humans, the whale has lungs and warm blood. Freeze its blood, and it dies. How amazing is it, then—except with explanation—that this incredible creature, to whom bodily warmth is as necessary as it is to humans, can be found living in those Arctic waters? There, when sailors fall overboard, they can sometimes be found months later, frozen upright in the ice fields, like a fly trapped in amber. Even more surprising is that, as experiments have shown, the blood of a polar whale is warmer than that of a Borneo native in summer.

It does seem to me, that herein we see the rare virtue of a strong individual vitality, and the rare virtue of thick walls, and the rare virtue of interior spaciousness. Oh, man! admire and model thyself after the whale! Do thou, too, remain warm among ice. Do thou, too, live in this world without being of it. Be cool at the equator; keep thy blood fluid at the Pole. Like the great dome of St. Peter's, and like the great whale, retain, O man! in all seasons a temperature of thine own.

It seems to me that here we see the unique strength of individual vitality, the unique strength of solid walls, and the unique strength of spacious interiors. Oh, human! Look up to and emulate the whale! You, too, should stay warm among the ice. You, too, should live in this world without fully belonging to it. Stay cool at the equator; keep your blood flowing at the Pole. Like the great dome of St. Peter's and like the great whale, maintain, oh human! your own temperature in all seasons.

But how easy and how hopeless to teach these fine things! Of erections, how few are domed like St. Peter's! of creatures, how few vast as the whale!

But how easy and how hopeless it is to teach these wonderful things! Of structures, how few are domed like St. Peter's! Of creatures, how few are as massive as the whale!

CHAPTER 69

The Funeral

The Funeral

Haul in the chains! Let the carcase go astern!

Haul in the chains! Let the carcass drift behind!

The vast tackles have now done their duty. The peeled white body of the beheaded whale flashes like a marble sepulchre; though changed in hue, it has not perceptibly lost anything in bulk. It is still colossal. Slowly it floats more and more away, the water round it torn and splashed by the insatiate sharks, and the air above vexed with rapacious flights of screaming fowls, whose beaks are like so many insulting poniards in the whale.The vast white headless phantom floats further and further from the ship, and every rod that it so floats, what seem square roods of sharks and cubic roods of fowls, augment the murderous din. For hours and hours from the almost stationary ship that hideous sight is seen. Beneath the unclouded and mild azure sky, upon the fair face of the pleasant sea, wafted by the joyous breezes, that great mass of death floats on and on, till lost in infinite perspectives.

The massive tackle has now done its job. The peeled white body of the decapitated whale glimmers like a marble tomb; although its color has changed, it hasn't noticeably lost any size. It's still enormous. Slowly, it drifts further away, the water around it churned and splashed by the relentless sharks, and the air above disturbed by the greedy flights of screaming birds, whose beaks are like so many taunting daggers in the whale. The enormous white headless figure floats farther and farther from the ship, and with every distance it covers, it seems to bring square chunks of sharks and heaps of birds, intensifying the murderous clamor. For hours, from the nearly motionless ship, that gruesome sight can be seen. Under the clear and gentle blue sky, on the beautiful surface of the serene sea, carried by the cheerful breezes, that great mass of death continues to drift on and on, until it disappears into endless horizons.

There's a most doleful and most mocking funeral! The sea-vultures all in pious mourning, the air-sharks all punctiliously in black or speckled. In life but few of them would have helped the whale, I ween, if peradventure he had needed it; but upon the banquet of his funeral they most piously do pounce. Oh, horrible vulturism of earth! from which not the mightiest whale is free.

There's a really sad and mocking funeral happening! The sea vultures are all in mournful attire, the air sharks are all carefully dressed in black or patterned. In life, few of them would have helped the whale, I believe, if he had needed it; but at the feast of his funeral, they eagerly swoop in. Oh, the terrible vulturism of the earth! Not even the greatest whale is free from it.

Nor is this the end. Desecrated as the body is, a vengeful ghost survives and hovers over it to scare. Espied by some timid man-of-war or blundering discovery-vessel from afar, when the distance obscuring the swarming fowls, nevertheless still shows the white mass floating in the sun, and the white spray heaving high against it; straightway the whale's unharming corpse, with trembling fingers is set down in the log—shoals, rocks, and breakers hereabouts: beware! And for years afterwards, perhaps, ships shun the place; leaping over it as silly sheep leap over a vacuum, because their leader originally leaped there when a stick was held. There's your law of precedents; there's your utility of traditions; there's the story of your obstinate survival of old beliefs never bottomed on the earth, and now not even hovering in the air! There's orthodoxy!

Nor is this the end. Even though the body is desecrated, a vengeful ghost remains and hovers over it to scare. Spotted by some cautious ship or clumsy exploration vessel from far away, when the distance hides the masses of birds, it still reveals the white form floating in the sun, and the white spray rising high against it; immediately the whale's harmless corpse is recorded in the log with trembling hands—shoals, rocks, and breakers in this area: beware! And for years afterward, maybe, ships avoid the spot; jumping over it like foolish sheep jump over a pit, just because their leader jumped there when a stick was held. There’s your law of precedents; there’s your utility of traditions; there’s the story of your stubborn survival of old beliefs that were never grounded on reality, and now not even floating in the air! There’s orthodoxy!

Thus, while in the life the great whale's body may have been a real terror to his foes, in his death his ghost becomes a powerless panic to a world.

Thus, while the great whale was a real terror to his enemies in life, in death his ghost becomes a powerless source of panic for the world.

Are you a believer in ghosts, my friend? There are other ghosts than the Cock-Lane one, and far deeper men than Doctor Johnson who believe in them.

Are you a believer in ghosts, my friend? There are more ghosts than just the Cock-Lane one, and there are much deeper thinkers than Doctor Johnson who believe in them.

CHAPTER 70

The Sphynx

The Sphinx

It should not have been omitted that previous to completely stripping the body of the leviathan, he was beheaded. Now, the beheading of the Sperm Whale is a scientific anatomical feat, upon which experienced whale surgeons very much pride themselves: and not without reason.

It shouldn't be overlooked that before fully stripping the body of the leviathan, he was decapitated. The decapitation of the Sperm Whale is a scientific anatomical accomplishment that experienced whale surgeons take great pride in, and rightly so.

Consider that the whale has nothing that can properly be called a neck; on the contrary, where his head and body seem to join, there, in that very place, is the thickest part of him. Remember, also, that the surgeon must operate from above, some eight or ten feet intervening between him and his subject, and that subject almost hidden in a discolored, rolling, and oftentimes tumultuous and bursting sea. Bear in mind, too, that under these untoward circumstances he has to cut many feet deep in the flesh; and in that subterraneous manner, without so much as getting one single peep into the ever-contracting gash thus made, he must skilfully steer clear of all adjacent, interdicted parts, and exactly divide the spine at a critical point hard by its insertion into the skull. Do you not marvel, then, at Stubb's boast, that he demanded but ten minutes to behead a sperm whale?

Consider that the whale doesn’t have what you would call a neck; instead, where its head meets its body is actually the thickest part. Keep in mind that the surgeon has to approach from above, with eight to ten feet between him and the whale, which is often concealed in a murky, rolling, and sometimes wild and crashing sea. Also remember that under these challenging conditions, he has to cut many feet deep into the flesh; and in this underground way, without ever getting a single glimpse into the constantly tightening wound he’s creating, he must skillfully avoid all surrounding, forbidden areas, and precisely cut the spine at a critical spot near where it connects to the skull. Don't you find it amazing, then, that Stubb bragged he only needed ten minutes to behead a sperm whale?

When first severed, the head is dropped astern and held there by a cable till the body is stripped. That done, if it belong to a small whale it is hoisted on deck to be deliberately disposed of. But, with a full grown leviathan this is impossible; for the sperm whale's head embraces nearly one third of his entire bulk, and completely to suspend such a burden as that, even by the immense tackles of a whaler, this were as vain a thing as to attempt weighing a Dutch barn in jewellers' scales.

When it's first cut off, the head is dropped over the back and held there by a cable until the body is stripped. Once that's done, if it’s a small whale, it’s lifted onto the deck to be disposed of. But with a fully grown sperm whale, that’s not possible; the sperm whale's head makes up nearly one-third of its total weight, and trying to lift such a heavy load, even with the huge tackle of a whaler, would be as pointless as trying to weigh a Dutch barn on a jeweler's scale.

The Pequod's whale being decapitated and the body stripped, the head was hoisted against the ship's side—about half way out of the sea, so that it might yet in great part be buoyed up by its native element. And there with the strained craft steeply leaning over to it, by reason of the enormous downward drag from the lower mast-head, and every yard-arm on that side projecting like a crane over the waves; there, that blood-dripping head hung to the Pequod's waist like the giant Holofernes's from the girdle of Judith.

The Pequod's whale was decapitated, and the body was stripped. The head was hoisted against the ship's side—about halfway out of the water, so it could still be partly supported by its natural element. With the ship leaning steeply toward it due to the massive downward pull from the lower masthead, and every yardarm on that side sticking out like a crane over the waves; there, that blood-dripping head hung from the Pequod like the giant Holofernes from Judith's girdle.

When this last task was accomplished it was noon, and the seamen went below to their dinner. Silence reigned over the before tumultuous but now deserted deck. An intense copper calm, like a universal yellow lotus, was more and more unfolding its noiseless measureless leaves upon the sea.

When this last task was finished, it was noon, and the sailors went below for their dinner. Silence filled the previously chaotic but now empty deck. A deep copper calm, like a vast yellow lotus, was slowly unfolding its quiet, boundless leaves over the sea.

A short space elapsed, and up into this noiselessness came Ahab alone from his cabin. Taking a few turns on the quarter-deck, he paused to gaze over the side, then slowly getting into the main-chains he took Stubb's long spade still remaining there after the whale's decapitation and striking it into the lower part of the half-suspended mass, placed its other end crutchwise under one arm, and so stood leaning over with eyes attentively fixed on this head.

A brief moment passed, and Ahab came out alone from his cabin into the quiet. He took a few turns on the quarter-deck, then stopped to look over the side. Slowly climbing into the main-chains, he grabbed Stubb's long spade that was still there after the whale was beheaded. He drove it into the lower part of the partially hanging mass, propped the other end under one arm, and leaned over, staring intently at the head.

It was a black and hooded head; and hanging there in the midst of so intense a calm, it seemed the Sphynx's in the desert. "Speak, thou vast and venerable head," muttered Ahab, "which, though ungarnished with a beard, yet here and there lookest hoary with mosses; speak, mighty head, and tell us the secret thing that is in thee. Of all divers, thou hast dived the deepest. That head upon which the upper sun now gleams, has moved amid this world's foundations. Where unrecorded names and navies rust, and untold hopes and anchors rot; where in her murderous hold this frigate earth is ballasted with bones of millions of the drowned; there, in that awful water-land, there was thy most familiar home. Thou hast been where bell or diver never went; hast slept by many a sailor's side, where sleepless mothers would give their lives to lay them down. Thou saw'st the locked lovers when leaping from their flaming ship; heart to heart they sank beneath the exulting wave; true to each other, when heaven seemed false to them. Thou saw'st the murdered mate when tossed by pirates from the midnight deck; for hours he fell into the deeper midnight of the insatiate maw; and his murderers still sailed on unharmed— while swift lightnings shivered the neighboring ship that would have borne a righteous husband to outstretched, longing arms. O head! thou hast seen enough to split the planets and make an infidel of Abraham, and not one syllable is thine!"

It was a black, hooded head; and hanging there in such intense calm, it seemed like the Sphinx in the desert. "Speak, you vast and ancient head," muttered Ahab, "which, even without a beard, still looks aged in places with moss; speak, mighty head, and tell us the secret that lies within you. Of all divers, you have gone the deepest. That head, upon which the upper sun now shines, has moved through the foundations of this world. Where unrecorded names and navies rust, and untold hopes and anchors decay; where this murderous planet is weighed down with the bones of millions who drowned; there, in that terrible underwater realm, was your most familiar home. You’ve been to places where no bell or diver has been; you’ve rested beside many sailors, while sleepless mothers would trade their lives to lay down next to them. You saw the locked lovers when they jumped from their burning ship; heart to heart, they sank beneath the triumphant wave; true to each other when heaven seemed false to them. You witnessed the murdered mate tossed overboard by pirates from the midnight deck; for hours he fell into the deeper darkness of the insatiable void; and his murderers continued sailing on unharmed— while swift lightning struck the nearby ship that could have carried a righteous husband into outstretched, longing arms. Oh head! you’ve seen enough to shatter planets and make an infidel of Abraham, and yet not a word comes from you!"

"Sail ho!" cried a triumphant voice from the main-mast-head.

"Sail ahead!" yelled a victorious voice from the top of the main mast.

"Aye? Well, now, that's cheering," cried Ahab, suddenly erecting himself, while whole thunder-clouds swept aside from his brow. "That lively cry upon this deadly calm might almost convert a better man.—Where away?"

"Aye? Well, now, that's uplifting," shouted Ahab, suddenly sitting up straight, as dark clouds cleared from his forehead. "That energetic shout in this deadly stillness could almost inspire a better man.—Where to?"

"Three points on the starboard bow, sir, and bringing down her breeze to us!

"Three points on the starboard bow, sir, and the wind is coming our way!"

"Better and better, man. Would now St. Paul would come along that way, and to my breezelessness bring his breeze! O Nature, and O soul of man! how far beyond all utterance are your linked analogies; not the smallest atom stirs or lives on matter, but has its cunning duplicate in mind."

"Better and better, man. If only St. Paul would come this way and bring his breeze to my stillness! Oh Nature, and oh soul of man! how far beyond all words are your connected similarities; not one tiny atom moves or lives in matter without having its clever counterpart in the mind."

CHAPTER 71

The Jeroboam's Story

The Story of the Jeroboam

Hand in hand, ship and breeze blew on; but the breeze came faster than the ship, and soon the Pequod began to rock.

Hand in hand, the ship and the breeze moved along; but the breeze was faster than the ship, and soon the Pequod started to sway.

By and by, through the glass the stranger's boats and manned mast-heads proved her a whale-ship. But as she was so far to windward, and shooting by, apparently making a passage to some other ground, the Pequod could not hope to reach her. So the signal was set to see what response would be made.

By and by, through the glass, the stranger's boats and manned mastheads revealed her to be a whaling ship. But since she was so far upwind and sailing past, seemingly heading to another place, the Pequod couldn't hope to catch her. So the signal was raised to see what response would come.

Here be it said, that like the vessels of military marines, the ships of the American Whale Fleet have each a private signal; all which signals being collected in a book with the names of the respective vessels attached, every captain is provided with it. Thereby, the whale commanders are enabled to recognise each other upon the ocean, even at considerable distance, and with no small facility.

It should be noted that similar to military ships, each vessel in the American Whale Fleet has its own private signal. These signals are compiled in a book along with the names of the respective vessels, and every captain is given a copy. This allows the whale captains to recognize each other on the ocean, even from a significant distance, and with relative ease.

The Pequod's signal was at last responded to by the stranger's setting her own; which proved the ship to be the Jeroboam of Nantucket. Squaring her yards, she bore down, ranged abeam under the Pequod's lee, and lowered a boat; it soon drew nigh; but, as the side-ladder was being rigged by Starbuck's order to accommodate the visiting captain, the stranger in question waved his hand from his boat's stern in token of that proceeding being entirely unnecessary. It turned out that the Jeroboam had a malignant epidemic on board, and that Mayhew, her captain, was fearful of infecting the Pequod's company. For, though himself and the boat's crew remained untainted, and though his ship was half a rifle-shot off, and an incorruptible sea and air rolling and flowing between; yet conscientiously adhering to the timid quarantine of the land, he peremptorily refused to come into direct contact with the Pequod.

The Pequod’s signal was finally answered by the stranger raising her own, revealing the ship to be the Jeroboam from Nantucket. She adjusted her sails, moved in close under the Pequod’s side, and lowered a boat; it quickly approached. However, as Starbuck directed the crew to set up the side ladder for the visiting captain, the stranger waved his hand from the back of his boat, indicating that it wasn’t necessary. It turned out that the Jeroboam had a serious illness on board, and her captain, Mayhew, was concerned about infecting the crew of the Pequod. Although he and his crew remained unaffected, and despite the fact that his ship was half a rifle-shot away, with untainted sea and air separating them, he strictly refused to come into direct contact with the Pequod, following the cautious quarantine rules of the land.

But this did by no means prevent all communications. Preserving an interval of some few yards between itself and the ship, the Jeroboam's boat by the occasional use of its oars contrived to keep parallel to the Pequod, as she heavily forged through the sea (for by this time it blew very fresh), with her main-topsail aback; though, indeed, at times by the sudden onset of a large rolling wave, the boat would be pushed some way ahead; but would be soon skilfully brought to her proper bearings again. Subject to this, and other the like interruptions now and then, a conversation was sustained between the two parties; but at intervals not without still another interruption of a very different sort.

But this didn’t stop all communication. Keeping a few yards distance from the ship, the Jeroboam's boat occasionally used its oars to stay parallel to the Pequod as it heavily pushed through the sea (by this time it was blowing quite hard), with its main-topsail back; though sometimes, a big rolling wave would push the boat ahead, it would quickly be skillfully brought back on course. Despite this and similar interruptions now and then, a conversation continued between the two parties, but occasionally there was another kind of interruption.

Pulling an oar in the Jeroboam's boat, was a man of a singular appearance, even in that wild whaling life where individual notabilities make up all totalities. He was a small, short, youngish man, sprinkled all over his face with freckles, and wearing redundant yellow hair. A long-skirted, cabalistically-cut coat of a faded walnut tinge enveloped him; the overlapping sleeves of which were rolled up on his wrists. A deep, settled, fanatic delirium was in his eyes.

Pulling an oar in the Jeroboam's boat was a guy with a unique look, even in that rough whaling life where standouts make up the whole scene. He was a small, short, young-looking man, covered in freckles and sporting shaggy yellow hair. He wore a long coat in a faded walnut color that had some strange design to it, and the sleeves were rolled up at his wrists. There was a deep, intense, fanatical gleam in his eyes.

So soon as this figure had been first descried, Stubb had exclaimed— "That's he! that's he!—the long-togged scaramouch the Town-Ho's company told us of!" Stubb here alluded to a strange story told of the Jeroboam, and a certain man among her crew, some time previous when the Pequod spoke the Town-Ho. According to this account and what was subsequently learned, it seemed that the scaramouch in question had gained a wonderful ascendency over almost everybody in the Jeroboam. His story was this:

As soon as this figure was first spotted, Stubb shouted, “That’s him! That’s him!—the long-dressed scam artist the Town-Ho's crew told us about!” Stubb was referring to a strange story about the Jeroboam and a certain man from her crew, which had been shared when the Pequod met the Town-Ho. According to this tale and what was learned later, it appeared that the scam artist in question had gained a remarkable influence over nearly everyone on the Jeroboam. His story was this:

He had been originally nurtured among the crazy society of Neskyeuna Shakers, where he had been a great prophet; in their cracked, secret meetings having several times descended from heaven by the way of a trapdoor, announcing the speedy opening of the seventh vial, which he carried in his vest-pocket; but, which, instead of containing gunpowder, was supposed to be charged with laudanum. A strange, apostolic whim having seized him, he had left Neskyeuna for Nantucket, where, with that cunning peculiar to craziness, he assumed a steady, common sense exterior, and offered himself as a green-hand candidate for the Jeroboam's whaling voyage. They engaged him; but straightway upon the ship's getting out of sight of land, his insanity broke out in a freshet. He announced himself as the archangel Gabriel, and commanded the captain to jump overboard. He published his manifesto, whereby he set himself forth as the deliverer of the isles of the sea and vicar-general of all Oceanica. The unflinching earnestness with which he declared these things;—the dark, daring play of his sleepless, excited imagination, and all the preternatural terrors of real delirium, united to invest this Gabriel in the minds of the majority of the ignorant crew, with an atmosphere of sacredness. Moreover, they were afraid of him. As such a man, however, was not of much practical use in the ship, especially as he refused to work except when he pleased, the incredulous captain would fain have been rid of him; but apprised that that individual's intention was to land him in the first convenient port, the archangel forthwith opened all his seals and vials—devoting the ship and all hands to unconditional perdition, in case this intention was carried out. So strongly did he work upon his disciples among the crew, that at last in a body they went to the captain and told him if Gabriel was sent from the ship, not a man of them would remain. He was therefore forced to relinquish his plan. Nor would they permit Gabriel to be any way maltreated, say or do what he would; so that it came to pass that Gabriel had the complete freedom of the ship. The consequence of all this was, that the archangel cared little or nothing for the captain and mates; and since the epidemic had broken out, he carried a higher hand than ever; declaring that the plague, as he called it, was at his sole command; nor should it be stayed but according to his good pleasure. The sailors, mostly poor devils, cringed, and some of them fawned before him; in obedience to his instructions, sometimes rendering him personal homage, as to a god. Such things may seem incredible; but, however wondrous, they are true. Nor is the history of fanatics half so striking in respect to the measureless self-deception of the fanatic himself, as his measureless power of deceiving and bedevilling so many others. But it is time to return to the Pequod.

He had originally been raised among the eccentric community of Neskyeuna Shakers, where he was considered a great prophet. In their secret, chaotic meetings, he had several times come down from heaven through a trapdoor, proclaiming the imminent opening of the seventh vial, which he kept in his pocket; but instead of containing gunpowder, it was said to hold laudanum. A strange, apostolic impulse took hold of him, leading him to leave Neskyeuna for Nantucket, where, with the crafty logic of madness, he put on a calm, sensible appearance and offered himself as a novice candidate for the Jeroboam's whaling voyage. They accepted him, but as soon as the ship was out of sight of land, his madness surfaced dramatically. He declared himself the archangel Gabriel and ordered the captain to jump overboard. He released a manifesto stating he was the savior of the islands of the sea and the vicar-general of all Oceanica. The unwavering seriousness with which he proclaimed these things—the dark, audacious swirl of his restless, excited imagination, and the overwhelming terrors of true delirium, combined to give this Gabriel a sense of sanctity in the minds of most of the ignorant crew. Furthermore, they were afraid of him. However, such a person was not very useful on the ship, especially since he refused to work unless it suited him, and the skeptical captain wanted to get rid of him. But when he learned that the archangel intended to have him landed at the first convenient port, Gabriel immediately unleashed all his seals and vials—dooming the ship and everyone on board to unconditional ruin if this plan went ahead. He influenced his followers among the crew so effectively that eventually, they all went to the captain together and told him that if Gabriel was removed from the ship, not a single one of them would stay. Therefore, the captain was forced to abandon his plan. They also refused to allow Gabriel to be mistreated in any way, regardless of what he said or did; thus, Gabriel enjoyed complete freedom on the ship. The result of all this was that the archangel cared little for the captain and mates, and since the madness had spread, he exerted even more authority; declaring that the plague, as he referred to it, was entirely under his control and would only be halted at his discretion. The sailors, mostly hapless souls, cowered, and some even fawned before him, following his orders and sometimes showing him personal reverence, as if he were a god. Such occurrences may seem unbelievable; but, remarkable as they are, they are true. Nor is the story of fanatics as striking in terms of the incredible self-deception of the fanatic himself as it is in portraying his boundless ability to deceive and ensnare so many others. But now, it's time to return to the Pequod.

"I fear not thy epidemic, man," said Ahab from the bulwarks, to Captain Mayhew, who stood in the boat's stern; "come on board."

"I’m not afraid of your epidemic, man," Ahab called out from the deck to Captain Mayhew, who was at the back of the boat. "Come on board."

But now Gabriel started to his feet.

But now Gabriel got to his feet.

"Think, think of the fevers, yellow and bilious!
Beware of the horrible plague!"

"Consider the fevers, yellow and sickly!
Watch out for the dreadful plague!"

"Gabriel! Gabriel!" cried Captain Mayhew; "thou must either-" But that instant a headlong wave shot the boat far ahead, and its seethings drowned all speech.

"Gabriel! Gabriel!" shouted Captain Mayhew; "you must either-" But just then, a massive wave propelled the boat forward, drowning out all sounds.

"Hast thou seen the White Whale?" demanded Ahab, when the boat drifted back.

"Have you seen the White Whale?" Ahab asked as the boat drifted back.

"Think, think of thy whale-boat, stoven and sunk!
Beware of the horrible tail!"

"Think, think of your whale boat, battered and sunk!
Watch out for the terrible tail!"

"I tell thee again, Gabriel, that-" But again the boat tore ahead as if dragged by fiends. Nothing was said for some moments, while a succession of riotous waves rolled by which by one of those occasional caprices of the seas were tumbling, not heaving it. Meantime, the hoisted sperm whale's head jogged about very violently, and Gabriel was seen eyeing it with rather more apprehensiveness than his archangel nature seemed to warrant.

"I'll tell you again, Gabriel, that—" But once more, the boat sped forward as if pulled by demons. For a few moments, there was silence while a series of wild waves crashed by, tumbling rather than heaving the boat due to one of those unpredictable quirks of the sea. In the meantime, the hoisted sperm whale's head bobbed around violently, and Gabriel was seen watching it with more concern than his angelic nature seemed to justify.

When this interlude was over, Captain Mayhew began a dark story concerning Moby Dick; not, however, without frequent interruptions from Gabriel, whenever his name was mentioned, and the crazy sea that seemed leagued with him.

When this break was done, Captain Mayhew started a grim tale about Moby Dick; however, he couldn’t get very far without Gabriel interrupting him every time the whale’s name came up, along with the wild sea that seemed to be in cahoots with it.

It seemed that the Jeroboam had not long left home, when upon speaking a whale-ship, her people were reliably apprised of the existence of Moby Dick, and the havoc he had made. Greedily sucking in this intelligence, Gabriel solemnly warned the captain against attacking the White Whale, in case the monster should be seen; in his gibbering insanity, pronouncing the White Whale to be no less a being than the Shaker God incarnated; the Shakers receiving the Bible. But when, some year or two afterwards, Moby Dick was fairly sighted from the mast-heads, Macey, the chief mate, burned with ardor to encounter him; and the captain himself being not unwilling to let him have the opportunity, despite all the archangel's denunciations and forewarnings, Macey succeeded in persuading five men to man his boat. With them he pushed off; and, after much weary pulling, and many perilous, unsuccessful onsets, he at last succeeded in getting one iron fast. Meantime, Gabriel, ascending to the main-royal mast-head, was tossing one arm in frantic gestures, and hurling forth prophecies of speedy doom to the sacrilegious assailants of his divinity. Now, while Macey, the mate, was standing up in his boat's bow, and with all the reckless energy of his tribe was venting his wild exclamations upon the whale, and essaying to get a fair chance for his poised lance, lo! a broad white shadow rose from the sea; by its quick, fanning motion, temporarily taking the breath out of the bodies of the oarsmen. Next instant, the luckless mate, so full of furious life, was smitten bodily into the air, and making a long arc in his descent, fell into the sea at the distance of about fifty yards. Not a chip of the boat was harmed, nor a hair of any oarsman's head; but the mate for ever sank.

It seemed like the Jeroboam had just left home when it spoke to a whale ship, and its crew learned about Moby Dick and the chaos he had caused. Eager to share this news, Gabriel seriously warned the captain not to attack the White Whale if they spotted him, declaring in his rambling madness that the White Whale was nothing less than the Shaker God in human form, as the Shakers followed the Bible. However, a year or two later, when Moby Dick was finally spotted from the mast-heads, Macey, the chief mate, was eager to face him, and the captain, not opposed to giving him the chance despite all of Gabriel's warnings, allowed it. Macey managed to convince five men to join him in his boat. They pushed off and, after much exhausting rowing and many dangerous, unsuccessful attempts, he finally managed to get one iron fast. Meanwhile, Gabriel climbed to the main-royal mast-head, frantically waving one arm and shouting prophecies of swift doom at the sacrilegious attackers of his deity. Now, while Macey, the mate, stood at the front of his boat, energetically shouting at the whale and trying to find a good moment to throw his harpoon, suddenly a large white shadow rose from the sea; its swift movement momentarily stole the breath from the oarsmen. The next moment, the unfortunate mate, filled with furious energy, was lifted into the air and made a long arc before falling into the sea about fifty yards away. Not a single piece of the boat was damaged, nor was a hair on any oarsman's head harmed; but the mate was lost forever.

It is well to parenthesize here, that of the fatal accidents in the Sperm-Whale Fishery, this kind is perhaps almost as frequent as any. Sometimes, nothing is injured but the man who is thus annihilated; oftener the boat's bow is knocked off, or the thigh-board, on which the headsman stands, is torn from its place and accompanies the body. But strangest of all is the circumstance, that in more instances than one, when the body has been recovered, not a single mark of violence is discernible the man being stark dead.

It’s worth noting that among the deadly accidents in the sperm whale fishery, this type is probably one of the most common. Sometimes, only the person is harmed in these incidents; more often, the front of the boat is damaged, or the thigh-board that the harpooner stands on is ripped away, along with the body. But the strangest part is that in more than one case, when the body has been retrieved, there aren’t any visible signs of injury, even though the person is completely dead.

The whole calamity, with the falling form of Macey, was plainly descried from the ship. Raising a piercing shriek—"The vial! the vial!" Gabriel called off the terror-stricken crew from the further hunting of the whale. This terrible event clothed the archangel with added influence; because his credulous disciples believed that he had specifically fore-announced it, instead of only making a general prophecy, which any one might have done, and so have chanced to hit one of many marks in the wide margin allowed. He became a nameless terror to the ship.

The entire disaster, along with Macey's falling form, was clearly seen from the ship. Letting out a sharp scream—"The vial! The vial!"—Gabriel stopped the terrified crew from continuing to hunt the whale. This awful event gave the archangel even more power; his gullible followers believed he had specifically predicted it, rather than just making a vague prophecy that anyone could have made and possibly gotten right by chance within the broad possibilities. He turned into an unknown source of fear for the ship.

Mayhew having concluded his narration, Ahab put such questions to him, that the stranger captain could not forbear inquiring whether he intended to hunt the White Whale, if opportunity should offer. To which Ahab answered—"Aye." Straightway, then, Gabriel once more started to his feet, glaring upon the old man, and vehemently exclaimed, with downward pointed finger—"Think, think of the blasphemer— dead, and down there!—beware of the blasphemer's end!"

Mayhew finished his story, and Ahab asked him questions that made the stranger captain curious whether Ahab planned to hunt the White Whale if he had the chance. Ahab replied, "Yes." Immediately, Gabriel jumped to his feet again, glaring at the old man, and passionately exclaimed, pointing down with his finger, "Think, think of the blasphemer—dead, and down there!—beware of the blasphemer's end!"

Ahab stolidly turned aside; then said to Mayhew, "Captain, I have just bethought me of my letter-bag; there is a letter for one of thy officers, if I mistake not. Starbuck, look over the bag."

Ahab calmly turned away and said to Mayhew, "Captain, I just remembered my letter bag; there's a letter for one of your officers, if I'm not mistaken. Starbuck, check the bag."

Every whale-ship takes out a goodly number of letters for various ships, whose delivery to the persons to whom they may be addressed, depends upon the mere chance of encountering them in the four oceans. Thus, most letters never reach their mark; and many are only received after attaining an age of two or three years or more.

Every whaling ship carries a fair number of letters for different vessels, and whether they get delivered to the intended recipients depends on the random chance of meeting them in the vast oceans. As a result, most letters never arrive at their destination, and many are only received after two or three years or even longer.

Soon Starbuck returned with a letter in his hand. It was sorely tumbled, damp, and covered with a dull, spotted, green mould, in consequence of being kept in a dark locker of the cabin. Of such a letter, Death himself might well have been the post-boy.

Soon Starbuck came back with a letter in his hand. It was badly wrinkled, damp, and covered in a dull, spotted green mold because it had been stored in a dark locker of the cabin. With a letter like this, Death himself could have been the mailman.

"Can'st not read it?" cried Ahab. "Give it me, man. Aye, aye, aye it's but a dim scrawl;—what's this?" As he was studying it out, Starbuck took a long cutting-spade pole, and with his knife slightly split the end, to insert the letter there, and in that way, hand it to the boat, without its coming any closer to the ship.

"Can't you read it?" yelled Ahab. "Give it to me, man. Yeah, yeah, yeah, it's just a blurry scribble;—what's this?" While he was trying to figure it out, Starbuck grabbed a long cutting-spade pole and used his knife to slightly split the end so he could insert the letter there and hand it to the boat without it coming any closer to the ship.

Meantime, Ahab holding the letter, muttered, "Mr. Har— yes, Mr. Harry—(a woman's pinny hand,—the man's wife, I'll wager)—Aye—Mr. Harry Macey, Ship Jeroboam; why it's Macey, and he's dead!"

Meantime, Ahab holding the letter muttered, "Mr. Har—yes, Mr. Harry—(a woman's pinny hand—the man's wife, I bet)—Aye—Mr. Harry Macey, Ship Jeroboam; wait, it’s Macey, and he’s dead!"

"Poor fellow! poor fellow! and from his wife," sighed Mayhew; "but let me have it."

"Poor guy! poor guy! and from his wife," sighed Mayhew; "but let me have it."

"Nay, keep it thyself," cried Gabriel to Ahab; "thou art soon going that way."

"Nah, keep it for yourself," Gabriel shouted to Ahab; "you're heading that way soon."

"Curses throttle thee!" yelled Ahab. "Captain Mayhew, stand by now to receive it"; and taking the fatal missive from Starbuck's hands, he caught it in the slit of the pole, and reached it over towards the boat. But as he did so, the oarsmen expectantly desisted from rowing; the boat drifted a little towards the ship's stern; so that, as if by magic, the letter suddenly ranged along with Gabriel's eager hand. He clutched it in an instant, seized the boat-knife, and impaling the letter on it, sent it thus loaded back into the ship. It fell at Ahab's feet. Then Gabriel shrieked out to his comrades to give way with their oars, and in that manner the mutinous boat rapidly shot away from the Pequod.

"Curses take you!" yelled Ahab. "Captain Mayhew, get ready to take it"; and taking the deadly message from Starbuck's hands, he caught it in the opening of the pole and reached it over toward the boat. But as he did this, the rowers paused their rowing, and the boat drifted slightly toward the ship's stern; so that, almost magically, the letter lined up with Gabriel's eager hand. He grabbed it in an instant, took the boat knife, and impaling the letter on it, sent it back into the ship like that. It landed at Ahab's feet. Then Gabriel shouted to his fellow crew members to row, and in this way, the rebellious boat quickly shot away from the Pequod.

As, after this interlude, the seamen resumed their work upon the jacket of the whale, many strange things were hinted in reference to this wild affair.

As the seamen went back to work on the whale's jacket after this break, many unusual things were suggested about this wild situation.

CHAPTER 72

The Monkey-Rope

The Monkey Rope

In the tumultuous business of cutting-in and attending to a whale, there is much running backwards and forwards among the crew. Now hands are wanted here, and then again hands are wanted there. There is no staying in any one place; for at one and the same time everything has to be done everywhere. It is much the same with him who endeavors the description of the scene. We must now retrace our way a little. It was mentioned that upon first breaking ground in the whale's back, the blubber-hook was inserted into the original hole there cut by the spades of the mates. But how did so clumsy and weighty a mass as that same hook get fixed in that hole? It was inserted there by my particular friend Queequeg, whose duty it was, as harpooneer, to descend upon the monster's back for the special purpose referred to. But in very many cases, circumstances require that the harpooneer shall remain on the whale till the whole tensing or stripping operation is concluded. The whale, be it observed, lies almost entirely submerged, excepting the immediate parts operated upon. So down there, some ten feet below the level of the deck, the poor harpooneer flounders about, half on the whale and half in the water, as the vast mass revolves like a tread-mill beneath him. On the occasion in question, Queequeg figured in the Highland costume— a shirt and socks—in which to my eyes, at least, he appeared to uncommon advantage; and no one had a better chance to observe him, as will presently be seen.

In the chaotic task of cutting into and working on a whale, the crew is constantly running back and forth. Sometimes hands are needed in one place, then in another. There’s no way to stay in one spot because at any given moment, everything needs to be done everywhere. It’s similar for anyone trying to describe the scene. We need to go back a bit. It was mentioned that when they first broke ground on the whale's back, the blubber-hook was pushed into the original hole made by the mates' spades. But how did such a heavy and clumsy hook get stuck in that hole? It was put there by my good friend Queequeg, whose job as harpooneer was to jump onto the monster’s back for that specific purpose. However, often the harpooneer must stay on the whale until the whole process of tensing or stripping is finished. It’s worth noting that the whale is mostly submerged, except for the areas being worked on. So down there, about ten feet below the deck, the poor harpooneer wrestles, half on the whale and half in the water, as the massive creature rotates like a treadmill beneath him. On this occasion, Queequeg was in Highland attire—a shirt and socks—which I thought suited him exceptionally well; and no one had a better view of him, as will soon be revealed.

Being the savage's bowsman, that is, the person who pulled the bow-oar in his boat (the second one from forward), it was my cheerful duty to attend upon him while taking that hard-scrabble scramble upon the dead whale's back. You have seen Italian organ-boys holding a dancing-ape by a long cord. Just so, from the ship's steep side, did I hold Queequeg down there in the sea, by what is technically called in the fishery a monkey-rope, attached to a strong strip of canvas belted round his waist.

Being the savage's bowman, the guy who pulled the bow oar in his boat (the second one from the front), it was my cheerful job to look after him while he tackled that tough scramble on the dead whale's back. You've seen Italian organ grinders with a dancing monkey on a long leash. Just like that, from the ship's steep side, I held Queequeg down in the sea with what’s technically known in the fishing industry as a monkey rope, linked to a strong strip of canvas tied around his waist.

It was a humorously perilous business for both of us. For, before we proceed further, it must be said that the monkey-rope was fast at both ends; fast to Queequeg's broad canvas belt, and fast to my narrow leather one. So that for better or for worse, we two, for the time, were wedded; and should poor Queequeg sink to rise no more, then both usage and honor demanded, that instead of cutting the cord, it should drag me down in his wake. So, then, an elongated Siamese ligature united us. Queequeg was my own inseparable twin brother; nor could I any way get rid of the dangerous liabilities which the hempen bond entailed.

It was a comically risky situation for both of us. Before we go on, I should mention that the monkey-rope was secured at both ends—attached to Queequeg's wide canvas belt and my narrow leather one. So, for better or worse, we were tied together for the moment; if poor Queequeg were to sink and not come back up, then, out of both tradition and honor, instead of cutting the rope, it would drag me down with him. So, an elongated Siamese connection linked us. Queequeg was my own inseparable twin brother, and there was no way I could escape the dangerous responsibilities that the hempen bond brought with it.

So strongly and metaphysically did I conceive of my situation then, that while earnestly watching his motions, I seemed distinctly to perceive that my own individuality was now merged in a joint stock company of two; that my free will had received a mortal wound; and that another's mistake or misfortune might plunge innocent me into unmerited disaster and death. Therefore, I saw that here was a sort of interregnum in Providence; for its even-handed equity never could have so gross an injustice. And yet still further pondering—while I jerked him now and then from between the whale and ship, which would threaten to jam him—still further pondering, I say, I saw that this situation of mine was the precise situation of every mortal that breathes; only, in most cases, he, one way or other, has this Siamese connexion with a plurality of other mortals. If your banker breaks, you snap; if your apothecary by mistake sends you poison in your pills, you die. True, you may say that, by exceeding caution, you may possibly escape these and the multitudinous other evil chances of life. But handle Queequeg's monkey-rope heedfully as I would, sometimes he jerked it so, that I came very near sliding overboard. Nor could I possibly forget that, do what I would, I only had the management of one end of it.*

So deeply and philosophically did I understand my situation back then, that while closely watching his movements, I felt like I could clearly see that my own identity was now part of a partnership of two; that my free will had taken a serious hit; and that someone else’s mistake or misfortune could drag me, an innocent bystander, into undeserved disaster and death. So, I realized this was a kind of pause in Providence; because its fair justice could never allow such a blatant injustice. Yet, while I was still thinking—pulling him now and then from between the whale and the ship that threatened to trap him—while I was still thinking, I realized that my situation was the exact same as every other person alive; except, in most cases, he is, in one way or another, connected to multiple other people. If your banker goes under, you’re done; if your chemist mistakenly sends you poison in your pills, you’re finished. True, you might argue that by being overly cautious, you could possibly avoid these and countless other dangers of life. But no matter how carefully I handled Queequeg's monkey-rope, sometimes he yanked it so hard that I almost slid overboard. And I could never forget that, no matter what I did, I was only in control of one end of it.*

*The monkey-rope is found in all whalers; but it was only in the Pequod that the monkey and his holder were ever tied together. This improvement upon the original usage was introduced by no less a man than Stubb, in order to afford to the imperilled harpooneer the strongest possible guarantee for the faithfulness and vigilance of his monkey-rope holder.

*The monkey-rope is present in all whalers; however, it was only on the Pequod that the monkey and its holder were ever tied together. This enhancement over the original method was introduced by none other than Stubb, to give the endangered harpooneer the best possible assurance of the loyalty and attentiveness of his monkey-rope holder.*

I have hinted that I would often jerk poor Queequeg from between the whale and the ship—where he would occasionally fall, from the incessant rolling and swaying of both. But this was not the only jamming jeopardy he was exposed to. Unappalled by the massacre made upon them during the night, the sharks now freshly and more keenly allured by the before pent blood which began to flow from the carcass—the rabid creatures swarmed round it like bees in a beehive.

I’ve suggested that I would often pull poor Queequeg out from between the whale and the ship—where he would sometimes get stuck, due to the constant rolling and swaying of both. But that wasn’t the only dangerous situation he faced. Undeterred by the carnage that happened overnight, the sharks, now even more attracted by the blood that started to flow from the carcass, swarmed around it like bees around a hive.

And right in among those sharks was Queequeg; who often pushed them aside with his floundering feet. A thing altogether incredible were it not that attracted by such prey as a dead whale, the otherwise miscellaneously carnivorous shark will seldom touch a man.

And right in the middle of those sharks was Queequeg, who often pushed them away with his flailing feet. It would be unbelievable if it weren't for the fact that attracted by things like a dead whale, the otherwise varied-eating shark will rarely go after a human.

Nevertheless, it may well be believed that since they have such a ravenous finger in the pie, it is deemed but wise to look sharp to them. Accordingly, besides the monkey-rope, with which I now and then jerked the poor fellow from too close a vicinity to the maw of what seemed a peculiarly ferocious shark—he was provided with still another protection. Suspended over the side in one of the stages, Tashtego and Daggoo continually flourished over his head a couple of keen whale-spades, wherewith they slaughtered as many sharks as they could reach. This procedure of theirs, to be sure, was very disinterested and benevolent of them. They meant Queequeg's best happiness, I admit; but in their hasty zeal to befriend him, and from the circumstance that both he and the sharks were at times half hidden by the blood-muddled water, those indiscreet spades of theirs would come nearer amputating a leg than a tall. But poor Queequeg, I suppose, straining and gasping there with that great iron hook—poor Queequeg, I suppose, only prayed to his Yojo, and gave up his life into the hands of his gods.

Nevertheless, it’s reasonable to think that since they have such a big stake in things, it’s wise to keep a close eye on them. So, in addition to the monkey-rope, which I occasionally used to pull the poor guy away from the dangerous jaws of what looked like a particularly fierce shark—he had another layer of protection. Hanging over the side in one of the platforms, Tashtego and Daggoo constantly waved a couple of sharp whale spades above his head, using them to kill as many sharks as they could reach. Their actions were, of course, very selfless and well-meaning. They genuinely wanted what was best for Queequeg, I admit; but in their eagerness to help him, coupled with the fact that both he and the sharks were sometimes half-hidden in the blood-soaked water, their reckless spades often came closer to taking off a leg than actually helping. But poor Queequeg, I suppose, struggling and gasping there with that huge iron hook—poor Queequeg, I guess, only prayed to his Yojo and surrendered his life to his gods.

Well, well, my dear comrade and twin-brother, thought I, as I drew in and then slacked off the rope to every swell of the sea— what matters it, after all? Are you not the precious image of each and all of us men in this whaling world? That unsounded ocean you gasp in, is Life; those sharks, your foes; those spades, your friends; and what between sharks and spades you are in a sad pickle and peril, poor lad.

Well, well, my dear friend and twin brother, I thought as I pulled in and then let out the rope with each wave of the sea— what does it really matter? Aren't you the perfect representation of every man in this whaling world? That vast ocean you’re struggling in is Life; those sharks are your enemies; those spades are your allies; and caught between sharks and spades, you’re in a tough spot and in danger, poor guy.

But courage! there is good cheer in store for you, Queequeg. For now, as with blue lips and blood-shot eyes the exhausted savage at last climbs up the chains and stands all dripping and involuntarily trembling over the side; the steward advances, and with a benevolent, consolatory glance hands him—what? Some hot Cognac? No! hands him, ye gods! hands him a cup of tepid ginger and water!

But hang in there! There's some good news coming your way, Queequeg. As the tired warrior finally pulls himself up the chains and stands there, all wet and shaking, the steward approaches and, with a kind, reassuring look, hands him—what? Some hot Cognac? No! He hands him, oh my gosh! He hands him a cup of lukewarm ginger and water!

"Ginger? Do I smell ginger?" suspiciously asked Stubb, coming near. "Yes, this must be ginger," peering into the as yet untasted cup. Then standing as if incredulous for a while, he calmly walked towards the astonished steward slowly saying, "Ginger? ginger? and will you have the goodness to tell me, Mr. Dough-Boy, where lies the virtue of ginger? Ginger! is ginger the sort of fuel you use, Dough-boy, to kindle a fire in this shivering cannibal? Ginger!—what the devil is ginger?— sea-coal? firewood?—lucifer matches?—tinder?—gunpowder?—what the devil is ginger, I say, that you offer this cup to our poor Queequeg here."

"Ginger? Do I smell ginger?" Stubb asked suspiciously as he approached. "Yes, this must be ginger," he said, looking into the untouched cup. He stood there, seemingly in disbelief for a moment, then calmly walked towards the astonished steward, slowly saying, "Ginger? Ginger? Can you please tell me, Mr. Dough-Boy, what’s so special about ginger? Ginger! Is that the kind of fuel you use, Dough-boy, to start a fire in this cold cannibal? Ginger! What the heck is ginger? Sea-coal? Firewood? Lucifer matches? Tinder? Gunpowder? What the heck is ginger, I ask, that you offer this cup to our poor Queequeg here?"

"There is some sneaking Temperance Society movement about this business," he suddenly added, now approaching Starbuck, who had just come from forward. "Will you look at that kannakin, sir; smell of it, if you please." Then watching the mate's countenance, he added, "The steward, Mr. Starbuck, had the face to offer that calomel and jalap to Queequeg, there, this instant off the whale. Is the steward an apothecary, sir? and may I ask whether this is the sort of bitters by which he blows back the life into a half-drowned man?"

"There's some sneaky Temperance Society stuff going on with this," he suddenly added, moving closer to Starbuck, who had just come from the front. "Could you look at that kannakin, sir? Smell it, if you don’t mind." Then, watching the mate's expression, he continued, "The steward, Mr. Starbuck, had the nerve to offer that calomel and jalap to Queequeg right off the whale. Is the steward some kind of pharmacist, sir? And can I ask if this is the kind of bitter stuff he uses to bring a half-drowned man back to life?"

"I trust not," said Starbuck, "it is poor stuff enough."

"I don't think so," said Starbuck, "it's not worth much."

"Aye, aye, steward," cried Stubb, "we'll teach you to drug it harpooneer; none of your apothecary's medicine here; you want to poison us, do ye? You have got out insurances on our lives and want to give way with their oars, and pocket the proceeds, do ye?"

"Aye, aye, steward," shouted Stubb, "we'll show you how to handle that harpoon; no fancy medicine from you. You trying to poison us, huh? You’ve taken out insurance on our lives and want to sink the boat, then pocket the money, right?"

"It was not me," cried Dough-Boy, "it was Aunt Charity that brought the ginger on board; and bade me never give the harpooneers any spirits, but only this ginger-jub—so she called it."

"It wasn't me," shouted Dough-Boy, "it was Aunt Charity who brought the ginger on board; and she told me never to give the harpooneers any alcohol, but only this ginger-jub— that's what she called it."

"Ginger-jub! you gingerly rascal! take that! and run along with ye to the lockers, and get something better. I hope I do no wrong, Mr. Starbuck. It is the captain's orders— grog for the harpooneer on a whale."

"Ginger-jub! You sneaky little rascal! Take that! Now run off to the lockers and grab something better. I hope I'm not overstepping, Mr. Starbuck. It's the captain's orders—grog for the harpooneer on a whale."

"Enough," replied Starbuck, "only don't hit him again, but-"

"Enough," replied Starbuck, "just don't hit him again, but-"

"Oh, I never hurt when I hit, except when I hit a whale or something of that sort; and this fellow's a weazel. What were you about saying, sir?"

"Oh, I never feel pain when I hit, except when I hit a whale or something like that; and this guy is a weasel. What were you going to say, sir?"

"Only this: go down with him, and get what thou wantest thyself."

"Just this: go down with him and get what you want for yourself."

When Stubb reappeared, he came with a dark flask in one hand, and a sort of tea-caddy in the other. The first contained strong spirits, and was handed to Queequeg; the second was Aunt Charity's gift, and that was freely given to the waves.

When Stubb came back, he had a dark flask in one hand and a kind of tea caddy in the other. The flask had strong liquor in it, which he handed to Queequeg; the tea caddy was a gift from Aunt Charity, and that went straight to the waves.

CHAPTER 73

Stubb and Flask Kill a Right Whale; and Then Have a Talk Over Him

Stubb and Flask Kill a Right Whale; and Then Have a Chat About It

It must be borne in mind that all this time we have a Sperm Whale's prodigious head hanging to the Pequod's side. But we must let it continue hanging there a while till we can get a chance to attend to it. For the present other matters press, and the best we can do now for the head, is to pray heaven the tackles may hold.

It’s important to remember that all this time we have a Sperm Whale's enormous head dangling from the side of the Pequod. But we need to leave it there for a bit until we can get the chance to deal with it. For now, there are other pressing issues, and all we can do for the head is hope that the tackles will hold.

Now, during the past night and forenoon, the Pequod had gradually drifted into a sea, which, by its occasional patches of yellow brit, gave unusual tokens of the vicinity of Right Whales, a species of the Leviathan that but few supposed to be at this particular time lurking anywhere near. And though all hands commonly disdained the capture of those inferior creatures; and though the Pequod was not commissioned to cruise for them at all, and though she had passed numbers of them near the Crozetts without lowering a boat; yet now that a Sperm Whale had been brought alongside and beheaded, to the surprise of all, the announcement was made that a Right Whale should be captured that day, if opportunity offered.

Now, during the past night and morning, the Pequod had slowly drifted into a sea that, with its occasional patches of yellow foam, showed clear signs of nearby Right Whales, a type of Leviathan that very few believed were around at that moment. Even though the crew usually looked down on catching those lesser creatures, and even though the Pequod wasn’t originally sent out to hunt them, and even though they had passed many of them near the Crozetts without launching a boat, now that a Sperm Whale had been brought alongside and beheaded, to everyone's surprise, it was announced that a Right Whale would be captured that day, if the chance presented itself.

Nor was this long wanting. Tall spouts were seen to leeward; and two boats, Stubb's and Flask's, were detached in pursuit. Pulling further and further away, they at last became almost invisible to the men at the masthead. But suddenly in the distance, they saw a great heap of tumultuous white water, and soon after news came from aloft that one or both the boats must be fast. An interval passed and the boats were in plain sight, in the act of being dragged right towards the ship by the towing whale. So close did the monster come to the hull, that at first it seemed as if he meant it malice; but suddenly going down in a maelstrom, within three rods of the planks, he wholly disappeared from view, as if diving under the keel. "Cut, cut!" was the cry from the ship to the boats, which, for one instant, seemed on the point of being brought with a deadly dash against the vessel's side. But having plenty of line yet in the tubs, and the whale not sounding very rapidly, they paid out abundance of rope, and at the same time pulled with all their might so as to get ahead of the ship. For a few minutes the struggle was intensely critical; for while they still slacked out the tightened line in one direction, and still plied their oars in another, the contending strain threatened to take them under. But it was only a few feet advance they sought to gain. And they stuck to it till they did gain it; when instantly, a swift tremor was felt running like lightning along the keel, as the strained line, scraping beneath the ship, suddenly rose to view under her bows, snapping and quivering; and so flinging off its drippings, that the drops fell like bits of broken glass on the water, while the whale beyond also rose to sight, and once more the boats were free to fly. But the fagged whale abated his speed, and blindly altering his course, went round the stern of the ship towing the two boats after him, so that they performed a complete circuit.

Nor was it long before this happened. Tall spouts were spotted downwind, and two boats, Stubb's and Flask's, were sent after them. As they paddled farther and farther away, they eventually became nearly invisible to the crew at the masthead. But suddenly, in the distance, they saw a large surge of chaotic white water, and soon after, news came from above that one or both of the boats must be attached. An interval passed, and the boats came into clear view, being dragged straight toward the ship by the whale they were pursuing. The monster got so close to the hull that it initially seemed like it meant to attack; but then, suddenly going down in a whirlpool just a short distance from the planks, it completely vanished from sight, as if diving under the keel. "Cut, cut!" echoed from the ship to the boats, which, for a moment, looked like they might be slammed against the side of the vessel with deadly force. But since they still had plenty of line in the tubs, and the whale wasn't diving very quickly, they let out a lot of rope while also paddling with all their strength to get ahead of the ship. For a few minutes, the situation was extremely tense; while they still fed out the taut line in one direction, they were also rowing hard in another, with the competing tension threatening to pull them under. But they only needed to gain a few feet of distance. They persevered until they did gain it; when suddenly, a swift tremor shot through the keel, as the strained line, scraping underneath the ship, reappeared beneath the bow, snapping and vibrating; and as it shed its water, the drops fell like shards of broken glass onto the water, while the whale rose back into view, and the boats were once more free to speed away. However, the tired whale slowed down and, blindly changing direction, circled around the back of the ship, dragging the two boats behind it, so they completed a full circuit.

Meantime, they hauled more and more upon their lines, till close flanking him on both sides, Stubb answered Flask with lance for lance; and thus round and round the Pequod the battle went, while the multitudes of sharks that had before swum round the Sperm Whale's body, rushed to the fresh blood that was spilled, thirstily drinking at every new gash, as the eager Israelites did at the new bursting fountains that poured from the smitten rock.

Meantime, they pulled harder on their lines, and soon Stubb was flanking Flask on both sides, responding to him with spear for spear. The battle circled around the Pequod as the numerous sharks that had been swimming around the Sperm Whale's body rushed to the fresh blood that had been spilled, eagerly drinking from every new wound, just like the eager Israelites did at the newly bursting fountains that flowed from the struck rock.

At last his spout grew thick, and with a frightful roll and vomit, he turned upon his back a corpse.

At last, his spout became thick, and with a frightening roll and heave, he flipped onto his back a dead body.

While the two headsmen were engaged in making fast cords to his flukes, and in other ways getting the mass in readiness for towing, some conversation ensued between them.

While the two executioners were busy securing ropes to his hooks and preparing the mass for towing in other ways, they started to have a conversation.

"I wonder what the old man wants with this lump of foul lard," said Stubb, not without some disgust at the thought of having to do with so ignoble a leviathan.

"I wonder what the old man wants with this chunk of disgusting fat," said Stubb, not without some disgust at the idea of dealing with such a lowly leviathan.

"Wants with it?" said Flask, coiling some spare line in the boat's bow, "did you never hear that the ship which but once has a Sperm Whale's head hoisted on her starboard side, and at the same time a Right Whale's on the larboard; did you never hear, Stubb, that that ship can never afterwards capsize?"

"Wants with it?" said Flask, coiling some spare line in the boat's bow. "Did you ever hear that a ship that has a Sperm Whale's head raised on her starboard side and at the same time a Right Whale's on the port side—did you ever hear, Stubb, that ship can never capsize?"

"Why not?

"Why not?"

"I don't know, but I heard that gamboge ghost of a Fedallah saying so, and he seems to know all about ships' charms. But I sometimes think he'll charm the ship to no good at last. I don't half like that chap, Stubb. Did you ever notice how that tusk of his is a sort of carved into a snake's head, Stubb?"

"I’m not sure, but I heard that weird ghost of Fedallah saying that, and he seems to know everything about ship charms. But sometimes I feel like he’ll end up charming the ship in a bad way. I really don’t trust that guy, Stubb. Did you ever notice how that tusk of his is carved like a snake's head, Stubb?"

"Sink him! I never look at him at all; but if ever I get a chance of a dark night, and he standing hard by the bulwarks, and no one by; look down there, Flask"—pointing into the sea with a peculiar motion of both hands—"Aye, will I! Flask, I take that Fedallah to be the devil in disguise. Do you believe that cock and bull story about his having been stowed away on board ship? He's the devil, I say. The reason why you don't see his tail, is because he tucks it up out of sight; he carries it coiled away in his pocket, I guess. Blast him! now that I think of it, he's always wanting oakum to stuff into the toes of his boots."

"Sink him! I never look at him at all; but if I ever get a chance on a dark night, and he’s standing right by the bulwarks with no one around; look down there, Flask"—pointing into the sea with a strange motion of both hands—"Yeah, I will! Flask, I think that Fedallah is the devil in disguise. Do you really believe that crazy story about him being hidden on board the ship? He's the devil, I tell you. The reason you don't see his tail is that he tucks it out of sight; he probably carries it coiled up in his pocket. Damn him! Now that I think about it, he's always asking for oakum to stuff into the toes of his boots."

"He sleeps in his boots, don't he? He hasn't got any hammock; but I've seen him lay of nights in a coil of rigging."

"He sleeps in his boots, doesn't he? He doesn't have a hammock; but I've seen him lie at night in a coil of rigging."

"No doubt, and it's because of his cursed tail; he coils it down, do ye see, in the eye of the rigging."

"No doubt, and it's because of his cursed tail; he coils it down, you see, in the eye of the rigging."

"What's the old man have so much to do with him for?"

"What's the old man got to do with him?"

"Striking up a swap or a bargain, I suppose."

"Making a trade or a deal, I guess."

"Bargain?—about what?"

"Bargain?—about what now?"

"Why, do ye see, the old man is hard bent after that White Whale, and the devil there is trying to come round him, and get him to swap away his silver watch, or his soul, or something of that sort, and then he'll surrender Moby Dick."

"Well, you see, the old man is really obsessed with that White Whale, and the devil is trying to tempt him to trade his silver watch, or maybe even his soul, or something like that, and then he'll give up Moby Dick."

"Pooh! Stubb, you are skylarking; how can Fedallah do that?"

"Pooh! Stubb, you're messing around; how can Fedallah do that?"

"I don't know, Flask, but the devil is a curious chap, and a wicked one, I tell ye. Why, they say as how he went a sauntering into the old flag-ship once, switching his tail about devilish easy and gentlemanlike, and inquiring if the old governor was at home. Well, he was at home, and asked the devil what he wanted. The devil, switching his hoofs, up and says, 'I want John.' 'What for?' says the old governor. 'What business is that of yours,' says the devil, getting mad,—'I want to use him.' 'Take him,' says the governor— and by the Lord, Flask, if the devil didn't give John the Asiatic cholera before he got through with him, I'll eat this whale in one mouthful. But look sharp—ain't you all ready there? Well, then, pull ahead, and let's get the whale alongside."

"I’m not sure, Flask, but the devil is a curious guy, and a wicked one, I tell you. They say he once strolled into the old flagship, casually flicking his tail and asking if the old governor was home. Well, he was, and he asked the devil what he wanted. The devil, flicking his hooves, said, 'I want John.' 'What for?' asked the old governor. 'What’s it to you?' the devil snapped, getting angry—'I want to use him.' 'Take him,' said the governor— and I swear, Flask, if the devil didn’t give John the Asiatic cholera before it was all over, I’ll eat this whale in one bite. But hurry up—aren’t you all set there? Well, then, move ahead, and let’s get the whale alongside."

"I think I remember some such story as you were telling," said Flask, when at last the two boats were slowly advancing with their burden towards the ship, "but I can't remember where."

"I think I remember a story like the one you were telling," said Flask, as the two boats were slowly moving with their load toward the ship, "but I can't recall where."

"Three Spaniards? Adventures of those three bloody-minded soldadoes?
Did ye read it there, Flask? I guess ye did?"

"Three Spaniards? The adventures of those three ruthless soldiers?
Did you read it there, Flask? I assume you did?"

"No: never saw such a book; heard of it, though. But now, tell me, Stubb, do you suppose that that devil you was speaking of just now, was the same you say is now on board the Pequod?"

"No, I've never seen such a book; I've heard about it, though. But now, tell me, Stubb, do you think that the devil you were just talking about is the same one you say is now on board the Pequod?"

"Am I the same man that helped kill this whale? Doesn't the devil live for ever; who ever heard that the devil was dead? Did you ever see any parson a wearing mourning for the devil? And if the devil has a latch-key to get into the admiral's cabin, don't you suppose he can crawl into a porthole? Tell me that, Mr. Flask?"

"Am I still the same guy who helped kill this whale? Doesn't the devil live forever? Who ever heard that the devil was dead? Have you ever seen any priest wearing mourning for the devil? And if the devil has a key to get into the admiral's cabin, don't you think he can sneak through a porthole? Tell me that, Mr. Flask?"

"How old do you suppose Fedallah is, Stubb?"

"How old do you think Fedallah is, Stubb?"

"Do you see that mainmast there?" pointing to the ship; "well, that's the figure one; now take all the hoops in the Pequod's hold, and string 'em along in a row with that mast, for oughts, do you see; well, that wouldn't begin to be Fedallah's age. Nor all the coopers in creation couldn't show hoops enough to make oughts enough."

"Do you see that mainmast over there?" pointing to the ship; "well, that's the figure one; now take all the hoops in the Pequod's hold and lay them out in a row with that mast, for zeros, do you see; well, that wouldn't even come close to Fedallah's age. And no amount of coopers in existence could create enough hoops to make the zeros needed."

"But see here, Stubb, I thought you a little boasted just now, that you meant to give Fedallah a sea-toss, if you got a good chance. Now, if he's so old as all those hoops of yours come to, and if he is going to live for ever, what good will it do to pitch him overboard— tell me that?

"But listen, Stubb, I thought you were bragging just now about giving Fedallah a toss into the sea if you got a good chance. Now, if he's as old as all those hoops of yours suggest, and if he's going to live forever, what good will it do to throw him overboard—tell me that?"

"Give him a good ducking, anyhow."

"Just give him a good dunk, anyway."

"But he'd crawl back."

"But he'd come back."

"Duck him again; and keep ducking him."

"Duck him again, and keep ducking him."

"Suppose he should take it into his head to duck you, though— yes, and drown you—what then?"

"Imagine if he decided to push you underwater—yeah, and drown you—what then?"

"I should like to see him try it; I'd give him such a pair of black eyes that he wouldn't dare to show his face in the admiral's cabin again for a long while, let alone down in the orlop there, where he lives, and hereabouts on the upper decks where he sneaks so much. Damn the devil, Flask; do you suppose I'm afraid of the devil? Who's afraid of him, except the old governor who daresn't catch him and put him in double-darbies, as he deserves, but lets him go about kidnapping people; aye, and signed a bond with him, that all the people the devil kidnapped, he'd roast for him? There's a governor!"

"I'd like to see him try it; I'd give him such a black eye that he wouldn't dare to show his face in the admiral's cabin for a long time, let alone down in the orlop where he lives, or around the upper decks where he sneaks around so much. Damn the devil, Flask; do you think I'm afraid of him? Who's afraid of the devil, except for the old governor who wouldn't dare catch him and put him in handcuffs, like he deserves, but lets him roam free and kidnap people; yeah, and signed a deal with him that all the people the devil kidnapped, he’d roast for him? What kind of governor is that!"

"Do you suppose Fedallah wants to kidnap Captain Ahab?"

"Do you think Fedallah wants to kidnap Captain Ahab?"

"Do I suppose it? You'll know it before long, Flask. But I am going now to keep a sharp look-out on him; and if I see anything very suspicious going on, I'll just take him by the nape of his neck, and say—Look here, Beelzebub, you don't do it; and if he makes any fuss, by the Lord I'll make a grab into his pocket for his tail, take it to the capstan, and give him such a wrenching and heaving, that his tail will come short off at the stump—do you see; and then, I rather guess when he finds himself docked in that queer fashion, he'll sneak off without the poor satisfaction of feeling his tail between his legs."

"Do I really think that? You'll find out soon enough, Flask. But I'm going to keep a close eye on him; and if I notice anything really sketchy happening, I'll take him by the scruff of his neck and say—Hey, Beelzebub, you better cut it out; and if he makes a fuss, I swear I'll reach into his pocket for his tail, drag him to the capstan, and give him such a twist and yank that his tail will snap right off at the base—got it? And then, I bet when he realizes he's been docked in such a weird way, he'll slink off without even getting the satisfaction of feeling his tail between his legs."

"And what will you do with the tail, Stubb?"

"And what are you going to do with the tail, Stubb?"

"Do with it? Sell it for an ox whip when we get home;—what else?"

"Do with it? Sell it for an ox whip when we get home;—what else?"

"Now, do you mean what you say, and have been saying all along, Stubb?"

"Now, do you really mean what you've been saying all this time, Stubb?"

"Mean or not mean, here we are at the ship."

"Like it or not, here we are at the ship."

The boats were here hailed, to tow the whale on the larboard side, where fluke chains and other necessaries were already prepared for securing him.

The boats were called over to tow the whale on the left side, where fluke chains and other necessary equipment were already ready for securing it.

"Didn't I tell you so?" said Flask; "yes, you'll soon see this right whale's head hoisted up opposite that parmacety's."

"Didn't I tell you?" said Flask; "yeah, you'll soon see this right whale's head lifted up next to that parmacety's."

In good time, Flask's saying proved true. As before, the Pequod steeply leaned over towards the sperm whale's head, now, by the counterpoise of both heads, she regained her even keel; though sorely strained, you may well believe. So, when on one side you hoist in Locke's head, you go over that way; but now, on the other side, hoist in Kant's and you come back again; but in very poor plight. Thus, some minds for ever keep trimming boat. Oh, ye foolish! throw all these thunder-heads overboard, and then you will float light and right.

In due time, Flask’s words turned out to be true. Just like before, the Pequod leaned steeply toward the sperm whale’s head, but now, by balancing both heads, she managed to level out; although, you can imagine it was under a lot of stress. So, when you pull in Locke's head on one side, the boat tips that way; but then, if you pull in Kant's on the other side, it comes back again, but in pretty poor shape. Some minds just keep adjusting the boat this way and that. Oh, you fools! Throw all these heavy thoughts overboard, and then you’ll float light and true.

In disposing of the body of a right whale, when brought alongside the ship, the same preliminary proceedings commonly take place as in the case of a sperm whale; only, in the latter instance, the head is cut off whole, but in the former the lips and tongue are separately removed and hoisted on deck, with all the well known black bone attached to what is called the crown-piece. But nothing like this, in the present case, had been done. The carcases of both whales had dropped astern; and the head-laden ship not a little resembled a mule carrying a pair of overburdening panniers.

In dealing with the body of a right whale when it's alongside the ship, the usual procedures are similar to those for a sperm whale; however, with a sperm whale, the head is cut off completely, while with a right whale, the lips and tongue are removed separately and brought on deck, along with the well-known black bone connected to what's called the crown-piece. But nothing like that had happened in this case. The carcasses of both whales had fallen behind; and the heavily loaded ship looked a lot like a mule carrying a pair of heavy packs.

Meantime, Fedallah was calmly eyeing the right whale's head, and ever and anon glancing from the deep wrinkles there to the lines in his own hand. And Ahab chanced so to stand, that the Parsee occupied his shadow; while, if the Parsee's shadow was there at all it seemed only to blend with, and lengthen Ahab's. As the crew toiled on, Laplandish speculations were bandied among them, concerning all these passing things.

Meantime, Fedallah was calmly watching the right whale's head, occasionally glancing from the deep wrinkles there to the lines in his own palm. Ahab happened to be standing in such a way that the Parsee was in his shadow; and if the Parsee's shadow was there at all, it seemed to merge with and extend Ahab's. While the crew worked, they exchanged all kinds of Laplandish theories about the things happening around them.

CHAPTER 74

The Sperm Whale's Head - Contrasted View

The Sperm Whale's Head - Contrasted View

Here, now, are two great whales, laying their heads together; let us join them, and lay together our own.

Here, now, are two giant whales, resting their heads close to each other; let’s join them and rest our heads together too.

Of the grand order of folio leviathans, the Sperm Whale and the Right Whale are by far the most noteworthy. They are the only whales regularly hunted by man. To the Nantucketer, they present the two extremes of all the known varieties of the whale. As the external difference between them is mainly observable in their heads; and as a head of each is this moment hanging from the Pequod's side; and as we may freely go from one to the other, by merely stepping across the deck:—where, I should like to know, will you obtain a better chance to study practical cetology than here?

Of the large category of giant whales, the Sperm Whale and the Right Whale are definitely the most significant. They are the only whales regularly hunted by humans. For the people of Nantucket, they represent the two extremes of all the known types of whales. The main differences between them are mainly seen in their heads; and since we have a head of each hanging from the side of the Pequod right now; and since we can easily go from one to the other by just stepping across the deck:—where else could you find a better opportunity to study practical whale science than here?

In the first place, you are struck by the general contrast between these heads. Both are massive enough in all conscience; but, there is a certain mathematical symmetry in the Sperm Whale's which the Right Whale's sadly lacks. There is more character in the Sperm Whale's head. As you behold it, you involuntarily yield the immense superiority to him, in point of pervading dignity. In the present instance, too, this dignity is heightened by the pepper and salt color of his head at the summit, giving token of advanced age and large experience. In short, he is what the fishermen technically call a "grey-headed whale."

First of all, you notice the clear difference between these heads. Both are quite large, but the Sperm Whale's head has a certain mathematical symmetry that the Right Whale's lacks. The Sperm Whale's head has more character. When you look at it, you can’t help but notice his obvious superiority in terms of overall dignity. In this case, that dignity is enhanced by the pepper-and-salt color at the top of his head, indicating age and extensive experience. In short, he is what fishermen technically refer to as a "grey-headed whale."

Let us now note what is least dissimilar in these heads— namely, the two most important organs, the eye and the ear. Far back on the side of the head, and low down, near the angle of either whale's jaw, if you narrowly search, you will at last see a lashless eye, which you would fancy to be a young colt's eye; so out of all proportion is it to the magnitude of the head.

Let’s now point out what is least different in these parts— specifically, the two most important organs, the eye and the ear. If you look closely at the back side of the head, low near the angle of either whale's jaw, you'll eventually spot a lashless eye that you might think belongs to a young colt; it seems completely out of proportion to the size of the head.

Now, from this peculiar sideway position of the whale's eyes, it is plain that he can never see an object which is exactly ahead, no more than he can one exactly astern. In a word, the position of the whale's eyes corresponds to that of a man's ears; and you may fancy, for yourself, how it would fare with you, did you sideways survey objects through your ears. You would find that you could only command some thirty degrees of vision in advance of the straight side-line of sight; and about thirty more behind it. If your bitterest foe were walking straight towards you, with dagger uplifted in broad day, you would not be able to see him, any more than if he were stealing upon you from behind. In a word, you would have two backs, so to speak; but, at the same time, also, two fronts (side fronts): for what is it that makes the front of a man— what, indeed, but his eyes?

Now, because of the unique sideways position of the whale's eyes, it’s clear that he can never see something that is directly in front of him, just as he can’t see something directly behind him. Essentially, the placement of the whale's eyes is similar to the placement of a person's ears; you can imagine how it would be if you had to look at things sideways through your ears. You would realize that you could only see about thirty degrees in front of your straight line of sight and another thirty degrees behind it. If your worst enemy was walking straight towards you with a dagger raised in broad daylight, you wouldn't be able to see him any more than if he was sneaking up from behind. In short, you would have two backs, so to speak, but at the same time, you would also have two fronts (side fronts): because what defines the front of a person— what really is it, if not their eyes?

Moreover, while in most other animals that I can now think of, the eyes are so planted as imperceptibly to blend their visual power, so as to produce one picture and not two to the brain; the peculiar position of the whale's eyes, effectually divided as they are by many cubic feet of solid head, which towers between them like a great mountain separating two lakes in valleys; this, of course, must wholly separate the impressions which each independent organ imparts. The whale, therefore, must see one distinct picture on this side, and another distinct picture on that side; while all between must be profound darkness and nothingness to him. Man may, in effect, be said to look out on the world from a sentry-box with two joined sashes for his window. But with the whale, these two sashes are separately inserted, making two distinct windows, but sadly impairing the view. This peculiarity of the whale's eyes is a thing always to be borne in mind in the fishery; and to be remembered by the reader in some subsequent scenes.

Moreover, while in most other animals I can think of, the eyes are positioned to blend their sight seamlessly, creating a single image for the brain instead of two; the unique placement of the whale's eyes, effectively separated by many cubic feet of solid head, towers between them like a massive mountain dividing two lakes in valleys. This, of course, completely separates the images that each eye perceives. The whale, therefore, sees one clear picture on one side and another clear picture on the other side; everything in between must be complete darkness and emptiness to it. One might say that humans look out at the world from a sentry box with two connected sashes for their window. But for the whale, these two sashes are independently placed, creating two distinct windows, but unfortunately limiting the view. This characteristic of the whale's eyes is something that should always be kept in mind in whaling; and should be noted by the reader in upcoming scenes.

A curious and most puzzling question might be started concerning this visual matter as touching the Leviathan. But I must be content with a hint. So long as a man's eyes are open in the light, the act of seeing is involuntary; that is, he cannot then help mechanically seeing whatever objects are before him. Nevertheless, any one's experience will teach him, that though he can take in an undiscriminating sweep of things at one glance, it is quite impossible for him, attentively, and completely, to examine any two things—however large or however small— at one and the same instant of time; never mind if they lie side by side and touch each other. But if you now come to separate these two objects, and surround each by a circle of profound darkness; then, in order to see one of them, in such a manner as to bring your mind to bear on it, the other will be utterly excluded from your contemporary consciousness. How is it, then, with the whale? True, both his eyes, in themselves, must simultaneously act; but is his brain so much more comprehensive, combining, and subtle than man's, that he can at the same moment of time attentively examine two distinct prospects, one on one side of him, and the other in an exactly opposite direction? If he can, then is it as marvellous a thing in him, as if a man were able simultaneously to go through the demonstrations of two distinct problems in Euclid. Nor, strictly investigated, is there any incongruity in this comparison.

A curious and puzzling question might arise about this visual matter concerning the Leviathan. But I can only provide a brief comment. As long as a person's eyes are open to the light, the act of seeing happens automatically; that is, they can't help but see whatever objects are in front of them. However, anyone's experience will show them that while they can take in a broad view of things at once, it's impossible to fully and attentively examine two things—no matter how big or small—at the same time, even if they are right next to each other. But if you separate these two objects and surround each with complete darkness, in order to focus on one of them, the other will be completely excluded from your awareness. So what about the whale? True, both of its eyes must work at the same time; but is its brain so much more capable, combining, and subtle than a human's that it can attentively observe two different sights, one on each side? If it can, that would be as incredible as a person being able to solve two separate geometric problems at the same time. Moreover, upon closer examination, there’s no contradiction in this comparison.

It may be but an idle whim, but it has always seemed to me, that the extraordinary vacillations of movement displayed by some whales when beset by three or four boats; the timidity and liability to queer frights, so common to such whales; I think that all this indirectly proceeds from the helpless perplexity of volition, in which their divided and diametrically opposite powers of vision must involve them.

It might just be a random thought, but I've always felt that the strange movements some whales make when surrounded by three or four boats, along with their nervousness and tendency to get easily spooked, is all connected to their confused ability to make decisions, which must come from their conflicting and completely opposite perspectives.

But the ear of the whale is full as curious as the eye. If you are an entire stranger to their race, you might hunt over these two heads for hours, and never discover that organ. The ear has no external leaf whatever; and into the hole itself you can hardly insert a quill, so wondrously minute is it. It is lodged a little behind the eye. With respect to their ears, this important difference is to be observed between the sperm whale and the right. While the ears of the former has an external opening, that of the latter is entirely and evenly covered over with a membrane, so as to be quite imperceptible from without.

But the whale's ear is just as fascinating as its eye. If you're completely unfamiliar with their species, you could search around these two heads for hours and never find that organ. The ear has no outer flap at all, and you can barely fit a quill into the hole because it's so incredibly tiny. It's located just behind the eye. Regarding their ears, there's a significant difference to note between the sperm whale and the right whale. While the sperm whale has an external opening for its ears, the right whale's ears are completely covered with a membrane, making them invisible from the outside.

Is it not curious, that so vast a being as the whale should see the world through so small an eye, and hear the thunder through an ear which is smaller than a hare's? But if his eyes were broad as the lens of Herschel's great telescope; and his ears capacious as the porches of cathedrals; would that make him any longer of sight, or sharper of hearing? Not at all.—Why then do you try to "enlarge" your mind? Subtilize it.

Isn't it strange that such a massive creature as the whale sees the world through such a tiny eye and hears thunder with an ear smaller than a rabbit's? But if its eyes were as large as the lens of Herschel's great telescope and its ears as big as the entrances of cathedrals, would that really improve its vision or hearing? Not at all.—So why do you attempt to "enlarge" your mind? Refine it.

Let us now with whatever levers and steam-engines we have at hand, cant over the sperm whale's head, so, that it may lie bottom up; then, ascending by a ladder to the summit, have a peep down the mouth; and were it not that the body is now completely separated from it, with a lantern we might descend into the great Kentucky Mammoth Cave of his stomach. But let us hold on here by this tooth, and look about us where we are. What a really beautiful and chaste-looking mouth! from floor to ceiling, lined, or rather papered with a glistening white membrane, glossy as bridal satins.

Let’s now, with whatever tools and engines we have available, tip the sperm whale’s head over so it lies on its back. Then, climbing up a ladder to the top, we can take a look inside its mouth. If the body weren’t completely cut off from it, we could go down into the vast Kentucky Mammoth Cave of its stomach with a lantern. But for now, let's hold on to this tooth and see where we are. What a truly beautiful and elegant mouth! From floor to ceiling, it's lined—or rather covered—with a shiny white membrane, glossy like bridal satin.

But come out now, and look at this portentous lower jaw, which seems like the long narrow lid of an immense snuff-box, with the hinge at one end, instead of one side. If you pry it up, so as to get it overhead, and expose its rows of teeth, it seems a terrific portcullis; and such, alas! it proves to many a poor wight in the fishery, upon whom these spikes fall with impaling force. But far more terrible is it to behold, when fathoms down in the sea, you see some sulky whale, floating there suspended, with his prodigious jaw, some fifteen feet long, hanging straight down at right-angles with his body; for all the world like a ship's jibboom. This whale is not dead; he is only dispirited; out of sorts, perhaps; hypochondriac; and so supine, that the hinges of his jaw have relaxed, leaving him there in that ungainly sort of plight, a reproach to all his tribe, who must, no doubt, imprecate lock-jaws upon him.

But come out now and look at this impressive lower jaw, which looks like the long, narrow lid of a huge snuff box, with the hinge at one end instead of on one side. If you lift it up, so it’s overhead, and show its rows of teeth, it appears like a terrifying portcullis; and sadly, it proves to be just that for many poor souls in the fishery, whom these spikes strike with impaling force. But it’s even more frightening to see, when deep in the sea, some gloomy whale floating there suspended, with its enormous jaw, about fifteen feet long, hanging straight down at a right angle to its body; just like a ship's jibboom. This whale isn’t dead; it’s just feeling down; maybe out of sorts; hypochondriac; and so laid-back that the hinges of its jaw have relaxed, leaving it in that awkward position, a disgrace to all its kind, who must surely wish for lock-jaw upon it.

In most cases this lower jaw—being easily unhinged by a practised artist— is disengaged and hoisted on deck for the purpose of extracting the ivory teeth, and furnishing a supply of that hard white whalebone with which the fishermen fashion all sorts of curious articles including canes, umbrella-stocks, and handles to riding-whips.

In most cases, this lower jaw—easily dislocated by a skilled artist—is removed and lifted onto the deck to extract the ivory teeth, providing a supply of that hard white whalebone that fishermen use to create all sorts of interesting items, including canes, umbrella handles, and riding whip grips.

With a long, weary hoist the jaw is dragged on board, as if it were an anchor; and when the proper time comes— some few days after the other work—Queequeg, Daggoo, and Tashtego, being all accomplished dentists, are set to drawing teeth. With a keen cutting-spade, Queequeg lances the gums; then the jaw is lashed down to ringbolts, and a tackle being rigged from aloft, they drag out these teeth, as Michigan oxen drag stumps of old oaks out of wild woodlands. There are generally forty-two teeth in all; in old whales, much worn down, but undecayed; nor filled after our artificial fashion. The jaw is afterwards sawn into slabs, and piled away like joists for building houses.

With a long, tired heave, the jaw is pulled on board, like it’s an anchor; and when the right moment arrives—just a few days after the other tasks—Queequeg, Daggoo, and Tashtego, who are all skilled dentists, start extracting teeth. Using a sharp cutting spade, Queequeg slices into the gums; then the jaw is secured to ring bolts, and a tackle is set up from above, allowing them to pull out the teeth, just like Michigan oxen pull stumps of old oaks out of wild forests. There are usually forty-two teeth total; in older whales, they’re quite worn down but not decayed; and they haven’t been filled like we do artificially. The jaw is then sawed into slabs and stacked away like lumber for building houses.

CHAPTER 75

The Right Whale's Head - Contrasted View

The Right Whale's Head - Contrasting View

Crossing the deck, let us now have a good long look at the the
Right Whale's head.

Crossing the deck, let’s take a good long look at the
Right Whale's head.

As in general shape the noble Sperm Whale's head may be compared to a Roman war-chariot (especially in front, where it is so broadly rounded); so, at a broad view, the Right Whale's head bears a rather inelegant resemblance to a gigantic galliot-toed shoe. Two hundred years ago an old Dutch voyager likened its shape to that of a shoemaker's last. And in this same last or shoe, that old woman of the nursery tale with the swarming brood, might very comfortably be lodged, she and all her progeny.

As far as overall shape goes, the noble Sperm Whale's head can be compared to a Roman war chariot (especially in the front, where it's quite broadly rounded); meanwhile, at first glance, the Right Whale's head resembles a huge, awkward shoe. Two hundred years ago, an old Dutch traveler compared its shape to that of a shoemaker's mold. And in that same mold or shoe, that old woman from the nursery rhyme with her countless kids could easily fit, along with all her offspring.

But as you come nearer to this great head it begins to assume different aspects, according to your point of view. If you stand on its summit and look at these two f-shaped spout-holes, you would take the whole head for an enormous bass viol, and these spiracles, the apertures in its soundingboard. Then, again, if you fix your eye upon this strange, crested, comblike incrustation on the top of the mass—this green, barnacled thing, which the Greenlanders call the "crown," and the Southern fishers the "bonnet" of the Right Whale; fixing your eyes solely on this, you would take the head for the trunk of some huge oak, with a bird's nest in its crotch. At any rate, when you watch those live crabs that nestle here on this bonnet, such an idea will be almost sure to occur to you; unless, indeed, your fancy has been fixed by the technical term "crown" also bestowed upon it; in which case you will take great interest in thinking how this mighty monster is actually a diademed king of the sea, whose green crown has been put together for him in this marvellous manner. But if this whale be a king, he is a very sulky looking fellow to grace a diadem. Look at that hanging lower lip! what a huge sulk and pout is there! a sulk and pout, by carpenter's measurement, about twenty feet long and five feet deep; a sulk and pout that will yield you some 500 gallons of oil and more.

But as you get closer to this massive head, it starts to look different depending on your perspective. If you stand at the top and gaze at those two f-shaped holes, you might think the whole head is a gigantic bass violin, and those openings are the sound holes. Then, if you focus on that odd, crest-like, comb-shaped growth on top of it—this green, barnacle-covered thing that the Greenlanders call the "crown," and Southern fishermen refer to as the "bonnet" of the Right Whale—looking solely at that, you might see the head as the trunk of a giant oak tree with a bird's nest in its branches. For sure, when you see those live crabs clinging to this bonnet, you will likely have that thought; unless, of course, you’ve been swayed by the name "crown," in which case you might find it fascinating to think of this huge creature as a crowned king of the sea, adorned with this incredible green crown. But if this whale is a king, he looks pretty grumpy for someone wearing a crown. Just look at that drooping lower lip! What a huge sulk and pout! A sulk and pout, by carpenter's measurement, about twenty feet long and five feet deep; a sulk and pout that could give you around 500 gallons of oil or more.

A great pity, now, that this unfortunate whale should be hare-lipped. The fissure is about a foot across. Probably the mother during an important interval was sailing down the Peruvian coast, when earthquakes caused the beach to gape. Over this lip, as over a slippery threshold, we now slide into the mouth. Upon my word were I at Mackinaw, I should take this to be the inside of an Indian wigwam. Good Lord! is this the road that Jonah went? The roof is about twelve feet high, and runs to a pretty sharp angle, as if there were a regular ridge-pole there; while these ribbed, arched, hairy sides, present us with those wondrous, half vertical, scimitar-shaped slats of whalebone, say three hundred on a side, which depending from the upper part of the head or crown bone, form those Venetian blinds which have elsewhere been cursorily mentioned. The edges of these bones are fringed with hairy fibres, through which the Right Whale strains the water, and in whose intricacies he retains the small fish, when openmouthed he goes through the seas of brit in feeding time. In the central blinds of bone, as they stand in their natural order, there are certain curious marks, curves, hollows, and ridges, whereby some whalemen calculate the creature's age, as the age of an oak by its circular rings. Though the certainty of this criterion is far from demonstrable, yet it has the savor of analogical probability. At any rate, if we yield to it, we must grant a far greater age to the Right Whale than at first glance will seem reasonable.

It's a real shame that this unfortunate whale has a cleft lip. The opening is about a foot wide. It’s likely that while the mother was traveling down the Peruvian coast, an earthquake caused the beach to split open. Now, we slide over this gap, as if it were a slippery entrance, into the whale's mouth. Honestly, if I were at Mackinaw, I would think this is the inside of an Indian wigwam. Good Lord! Is this the path Jonah took? The ceiling is about twelve feet high and angles sharply, as if there’s a ridge-pole up there; while the ribbed, arched, hairy sides present those amazing, partially vertical, sword-shaped slats of whalebone, about three hundred on each side, which hang down from the upper part of the head or crown bone, forming the Venetian blinds I mentioned before. The edges of these bones are fringed with hairy fibers, through which the Right Whale filters water, capturing small fish when it opens its mouth while feeding in schools of bristle. In the center blinds of bone, arranged as they naturally are, there are some interesting marks, curves, hollows, and ridges that some whalemen use to estimate the whale's age, similar to how one determines the age of an oak tree by its rings. Although the accuracy of this method is far from certain, it does carry a sense of analogical probability. In any case, if we accept this, we must acknowledge that the Right Whale is likely much older than one might initially think.

In old times, there seem to have prevailed the most curious fancies concerning these blinds. One voyager in Purchas calls them the wondrous "whiskers" inside of the whale's mouth;* another, "hogs' bristles"; a third old gentleman in Hackluyt uses the following elegant language: "There are about two hundred and fifty fins growing on each side of his upper chop, which arch over his tongue on each side of his mouth."

In ancient times, there were some really strange ideas about these blinds. One traveler in Purchas called them the amazing "whiskers" inside a whale's mouth; another referred to them as "hogs' bristles"; and a third old gentleman in Hackluyt used this fancy language: "There are about two hundred and fifty fins growing on each side of his upper jaw, which curve over his tongue on either side of his mouth."

*This reminds us that the Right Whale really has a sort of whisker, or rather a moustache, consisting of a few scattered white hairs on the upper part of the outer end of the lower jaw. Sometimes these tufts impart a rather brigandish expression to his otherwise solemn countenance.

*This reminds us that the Right Whale has a sort of whisker, or rather a mustache, made up of a few scattered white hairs on the upper part of the outer end of its lower jaw. Sometimes these tufts give it a somewhat roguish expression, contrasting with its otherwise serious face.

As every one knows, these same "hogs' bristles," "fins," "whiskers," "blinds," or whatever you please, furnish to the ladies their busks and other stiffening contrivances. But in this particular, the demand has long been on the decline. It was in Queen Anne's time that the bone was in its glory, the farthingale being then all the fashion. And as those ancient dames moved about gaily, though in the jaws of the whale, as you may say; even so, in a shower, with the like thoughtlessness, do we nowadays fly under the same jaws for protection; the umbrella being a tent spread over the same bone.

As everyone knows, these so-called "hogs' bristles," "fins," "whiskers," "blinds," or whatever you want to call them, provide the ladies with their busks and other stiffening devices. However, the demand for these has been steadily declining. Back in Queen Anne's era, bone was at its peak, as the farthingale was all the rage. Just like those old ladies moved around happily, even while trapped in the jaws of the whale, we too, with similar carelessness, seek shelter under those same jaws in the rain; the umbrella acting as a tent stretched over the same bone.

But now forget all about blinds and whiskers for a moment, and, standing in the Right Whale's mouth, look around you afresh. Seeing all these colonnades of bone so methodically ranged about, would you not think you were inside of the great Haarlem organ, and gazing upon its thousand pipes? For a carpet to the organ we have a rug of the softest Turkey—the tongue, which is glued, as it were, to the floor of the mouth. It is very fat and tender, and apt to tear in pieces in hoisting it on deck. This particular tongue now before us; at a passing glance I should say it was a six-barreler; that is, it will yield you about that amount of oil.

But now, forget about the blinds and whiskers for a moment, and, standing in the Right Whale's mouth, take a fresh look around you. With all these rows of bone so neatly arranged, wouldn't you think you were inside the great Haarlem organ, staring at its thousand pipes? For the carpet of the organ, we have a rug made of the softest Turkey—the tongue, which is almost glued to the floor of the mouth. It’s very fat and tender, and tends to tear apart when we try to lift it on deck. This particular tongue we're looking at; at first glance, I’d say it’s a six-barreler; that is, it will give you about that much oil.

Ere this, you must have plainly seen the truth of what I started with— that the Sperm Whale and the Right Whale have almost entirely different heads. To sum up, then: in the Right Whale's there is no great well of sperm; no ivory teeth at all; no long, slender mandible of a lower jaw, like the Sperm Whale's. Nor in the Sperm Whale are there any of those blinds of bone; no huge lower lip; and scarcely anything of a tongue. Again, the Right Whale has two external spout-holes, the Sperm Whale only one.

Before this, you must have clearly noticed the truth of what I started with—that the Sperm Whale and the Right Whale have almost completely different heads. To sum it up: the Right Whale has no big reservoir of sperm; no ivory teeth at all; no long, slender lower jaw like the Sperm Whale's. On the other hand, the Sperm Whale doesn't have any of those bone blinds; no massive lower lip; and very little of a tongue. Additionally, the Right Whale has two external spout holes, while the Sperm Whale has only one.

Look your last now, on these venerable hooded heads, while they yet lie together; for one will soon sink, unrecorded, in the sea; the other will not be very long in following.

Look at these ancient hooded heads one last time while they still lie together; for one will soon disappear, unremembered, in the sea; the other won't be far behind.

Can you catch the expression of the Sperm Whale's there? It is the same he died with, only some of the longer wrinkles in the forehead seem now faded away. I think his broad brow to be full of a prairie-like placidity, born of a speculative indifference as to death. But mark the other head's expression. See that amazing lower lip, pressed by accident against the vessel's side, so as firmly to embrace the jaw. Does not this whole head seem to speak of an enormous practical resolution in facing death? This Right Whale I take to have been a Stoic; the Sperm Whale, a Platonian, who might have taken up Spinoza in his latter years.

Can you see the expression on the Sperm Whale's face? It's the same one he died with, though some of the longer wrinkles on his forehead seem to have faded. I think his broad forehead reflects a calmness like a vast prairie, stemming from a thoughtful indifference to death. But pay attention to the expression on the other whale's head. Look at that incredible lower lip, pressed accidentally against the side of the vessel, tightly hugging the jaw. Doesn’t this whole head convey a tremendous practical determination in the face of death? I think of this Right Whale as a Stoic, while the Sperm Whale seems like a Platonist who might have delved into Spinoza in his later years.

CHAPTER 76

The Battering-Ram

The Battering Ram

Ere quitting, for the nonce, the Sperm Whale's head, I would have you, as a sensible physiologist, simply—particularly remark its front aspect, in all its compacted collectedness. I would have you investigate it now with the sole view of forming to yourself some unexaggerated, intelligent estimate of whatever battering-ram power may be lodged there. Here is a vital point; for you must either satisfactorily settle this matter with yourself, or for ever remain an infidel as to one of the most appalling, but not the less true events, perhaps anywhere to be found in all recorded history.

Before we leave the Sperm Whale's head for now, I want you, as a knowledgeable physiologist, to take a good look at its front. I want you to examine it carefully to get a realistic understanding of the immense power it possesses. This is crucial; you need to figure this out on your own, or you’ll always doubt one of the most shocking, yet true, events in all of recorded history.

You observe that in the ordinary swimming position of the Sperm Whale, the front of his head presents an almost wholly vertical plane to the water; you observe that the lower part of that front slopes considerably backwards, so as to furnish more of a retreat for the long socket which receives the boom-like lower jaw; you observe that the mouth is entirely under the head, much in the same way, indeed, as though your own mouth were entirely under your chin. Moreover you observe that the whale has no external nose; and that what nose he has—his spout hole— is on the top of his head; you observe that his eyes and ears are at the sides of his head; nearly one third of his entire length from the front. Wherefore, you must now have perceived that the front of the Sperm Whale's head is a dead, blind wall, without a single organ or tender prominence of any sort whatsoever. Furthermore, you are now to consider that only in the extreme, lower, backward sloping part of the front of the head, is there the slightest vestige of bone; and not till you get near twenty feet from the forehead do you come to the full cranial development. So that this whole enormous boneless mass is as one wad. Finally, though, as will soon be revealed, its contents partly comprise the most delicate oil; yet, you are now to be apprised of the nature of the substance which so impregnably invests all that apparent effeminacy. In some previous place I have described to you how the blubber wraps the body of the whale, as the rind wraps an orange. Just so with the head; but with this difference: about the head this envelope, though not so thick is of a boneless toughness, inestimable by any man who has not handled it. The severest pointed harpoon, the sharpest lance darted by the strongest human arm, impotently rebounds from it. It is as though the forehead of the Sperm Whale were paved with horses' hoofs. I do not think that any sensation lurks in it.

You notice that when a Sperm Whale swims, the front of its head is almost completely vertical in the water. You see that the lower part of the front slopes back a lot, providing a space for the long socket that holds the jaw, which resembles a boom. You also observe that the mouth is located entirely beneath the head, much like your mouth being under your chin. Additionally, you see that the whale has no external nose; instead, its blowhole is situated on the top of its head. Its eyes and ears are placed on the sides of its head, nearly a third of the way back from the front. Thus, you should now realize that the front of the Sperm Whale's head is a solid, blind surface without any organs or noticeable features of any kind. Furthermore, consider that only the extreme lower part of the front of the head has the slightest hint of bone, and you won’t find any complete skull structure until you are about twenty feet away from the forehead. So, this whole massive boneless area acts as a single unit. Finally, while its contents include some of the finest oil, it's important for you to understand what substance surrounds all that apparent softness. In another place, I described how the blubber encases the whale's body like the skin of an orange. The same goes for its head; however, this covering is not as thick but has a tough, boneless quality that is hard to comprehend for anyone who hasn't touched it. Even the sharpest harpoon or lance thrown by the strongest human fails to pierce it, bouncing off ineffectively. It’s as if the Sperm Whale's forehead were covered in horse hooves. I doubt any sensation exists in it.

Bethink yourself also of another thing. When two large, loaded Indian-men chance to crowd and crush towards each other in the docks, what do the sailors do? They do not suspend between them, at the point of coming contact, any merely hard substance, like iron or wood. No, they hold there a large, round wad of tow and cork, enveloped in the thickest and toughest of ox-hide. That bravely and uninjured takes the jam which would have snapped all their oaken handspikes and iron crow-bars. By itself this sufficiently illustrates the obvious fact I drive at. But supplementary to this, it has hypothetically occurred to me, that as ordinary fish possess what is called a swimming bladder in them, capable, at will, of distension or contraction; and as the Sperm Whale, as far as I know, has no such provision in him; considering, too, the otherwise inexplicable manner in which he now depresses his head altogether beneath the surface, and anon swims with it high elevated out of the water; considering the unobstructed elasticity of its envelope; considering the unique interior of his head; it has hypothetically occurred to me, I say, that those mystical lung-celled honeycombs there may possibly have some hitherto unknown and unsuspected connexion with the outer air, so as to be susceptible to atmospheric distension and contraction. If this be so, fancy the irresistibleness of that might, to which the most impalpable and destructive of all elements contributes.

Think about this as well. When two large, loaded ships happen to bump into each other in the docks, what do the sailors do? They don’t put any hard material, like iron or wood, between them at the point of impact. No, they place a large, round wad of tow and cork, wrapped in the thickest and toughest ox-hide. That bravely absorbs the impact, which would have broken all their wooden handspikes and iron crow-bars. This alone clearly illustrates the point I'm making. But on top of that, it’s occurred to me that just as regular fish have a swimming bladder in them that can expand or contract at will, and since the Sperm Whale does not have such a feature; considering, too, the strange way it can completely dive below the surface and then swim with its head high above the water; considering the elasticity of its outer layer; considering the peculiar structure of its head; I’ve thought that those unique lung-like honeycombs might have an unknown connection to the outside air, making them responsive to changes in atmospheric pressure. If that’s the case, imagine the incredible power that can be harnessed from such a subtle and destructive force of nature.

Now, mark. Unerringly impelling this dead, impregnable, uninjurable wall, and this most buoyant thing within; there swims behind it all a mass of tremendous life, only to be adequately estimated as piled wood is— by the cord; and all obedient to one volition, as the smallest insect. So that when I shall hereafter detail to you all the specialities and concentrations of potency everywhere lurking in this expansive monster; when I shall show you some of his more inconsiderable braining feats; I trust you will have renounced all ignorant incredulity, and be ready to abide by this; that though the Sperm Whale stove a passage through the Isthmus of Darien, and mixed the Atlantic with the Pacific, you would not elevate one hair of your eye-brow. For unless you own the whale, you are but a provincial and sentimentalist in Truth. But clear Truth is a thing for salamander giants only to encounter; how small the chances for the provincials then? What befell the weakling youth lifting the dread goddess's veil at Lais?

Now, listen. Behind this solid, unbreakable wall, and the most lively thing inside it, there’s a huge amount of life swimming around, which can only be measured like stacked wood—by the cord; and all obeying one will, just like the smallest insect. So, when I later explain all the special features and concentrated power hiding in this massive creature; when I show you some of its more minor clever tricks; I hope you’ll have given up any ignorant disbelief and be ready to accept this: that even if the Sperm Whale carved a path through the Isthmus of Darien and mixed the Atlantic with the Pacific, you wouldn't raise an eyebrow. Because unless you possess the whale, you're just a provincial and sentimentalist in terms of Truth. But clear Truth is something only giant salamanders can face; what are the chances for the provincials then? What happened to the weak youth who dared to lift the fearsome goddess's veil at Lais?

CHAPTER 77

The Great Heidelburgh Tun

The Great Heidelberg Tun

Now comes the Baling of the Case. But to comprehend it aright, you must know something of the curious internal structure of the thing operated upon.

Now comes the Baling of the Case. But to understand it properly, you need to know a bit about the strange internal structure of the thing being worked on.

Regarding the Sperm Whale's head as a solid oblong, you may, on an inclined plane, sideways divide it into two quoins,* whereof the lower is the bony structure, forming the cranium and jaws, and the upper an unctuous mass wholly free from bones; its broad forward end forming the expanded vertical apparent forehead of the whale. At the middle of the forehead horizontally subdivide this upper quoin, and then you have two almost equal parts, which before were naturally divided by an internal wall of a thick tendinous substance.

Regarding the Sperm Whale's head as a solid elongated shape, you can, on a slanted surface, divide it sideways into two sections,* where the lower part is the bony structure, making up the skull and jaws, and the upper part is a fatty mass completely free of bones; its wide front end forms the noticeable vertical forehead of the whale. In the middle of the forehead, if you divide this upper section horizontally, you'll end up with two almost equal halves, which were previously divided by an internal wall of thick tendinous material.

*Quoin is not a Euclidean term. It belongs to the pure nautical mathematics. I know not that it has been defined before. A quoin is a solid which differs from a wedge in having its sharp end formed by the steep inclination of one side, instead of the mutual tapering of both sides.

*Quoin isn't a term from Euclidean geometry. It's part of pure nautical mathematics. I'm not aware of any prior definitions. A quoin is a solid that differs from a wedge because its sharp end is shaped by the steep angle of one side, rather than the gradual tapering on both sides.*

The lower subdivided part, called the junk, is one immense honeycomb of oil, formed by the crossing and recrossing, into ten thousand infiltrated cells, of tough elastic white fibres throughout its whole extent. The upper part, known as the Case, may be regarded as the great Heidelburgh Tun of the Sperm Whale. And as that famous great tierce is mystically carved in front, so the whale's vast plaited forehead forms innumerable strange devices for the emblematical adornment of his wondrous tun. Moreover, as that of Heidelburgh was always replenished with the most excellent of the wines of the Rhenish valleys, so the tun of the whale contains by far the most precious of all his oily vintages; namely, the highly-prized spermaceti, in its absolutely pure, limpid, and odoriferous state. Nor is this precious substance found unalloyed in any other part of the creature. Though in life it remains perfectly fluid, yet, upon exposure to the air, after death, it soon begins to concrete; sending forth beautiful crystalline shoots, as when the first thin delicate ice is just forming in water. A large whale's case generally yields about five hundred gallons of sperm, though from unavoidable circumstances, considerable of it is spilled, leaks, and dribbles away, or is otherwise irrevocably lost in the ticklish business of securing what you can.

The lower divided section, called the junk, is a massive honeycomb of oil, created by the intricate network of tough, elastic white fibers throughout its entirety, forming thousands of infiltrated cells. The upper part, known as the Case, can be seen as the great Heidelburgh Tun of the Sperm Whale. Just like that famous tun has mystical carvings on the front, the whale's broad, braided forehead has countless strange designs serving as symbolic decorations for its impressive structure. Additionally, much like the Heidelburgh is always filled with the finest wines from the Rhenish valleys, the whale's tun holds the most valuable of all its oily treasures; specifically, the highly sought-after spermaceti, in its pure, clear, and fragrant form. This prized substance is not found in any other part of the creature. While it's completely fluid when the whale is alive, it quickly begins to solidify when exposed to air after death, producing beautiful crystalline formations similar to the first delicate ice forming on water. A large whale's case typically provides about five hundred gallons of sperm, but due to unavoidable circumstances, a significant amount is spilled, leaks, drips away, or is otherwise permanently lost in the tricky process of collecting what you can.

I know not with what fine and costly material the Heidelburgh Tun was coated within, but in superlative richness that coating could not possibly have compared with the silken pearl-colored membrane, like the lining of a fine pelisse, forming the inner surface of the Sperm Whale's case.

I don't know what expensive material the Heidelburgh Tun was made of, but no matter how rich it was, it couldn't compare to the silky, pearl-colored layer, like the lining of a luxury coat, that makes up the inside of the Sperm Whale's case.

It will have been seen that the Heidelburgh Tun of the Sperm Whale embraces the entire length of the entire top of the head; and since—as has been elsewhere set forth—the head embraces one third of the whole length of the creature, then setting that length down at eighty feet for a good sized whale, you have more than twenty-six feet for the depth of the tun, when it is lengthwise hoisted up and down against a ship's side.

It has been observed that the Heidelburgh Tun of the Sperm Whale covers the full length of the top of its head; and since, as discussed elsewhere, the head accounts for one third of the total length of the animal, if we estimate that length at eighty feet for a sizable whale, you get more than twenty-six feet for the depth of the tun when it is hoisted up and down along a ship's side.

As in decapitating the whale, the operator's instrument is brought close to the spot where an entrance is subsequently forced into the spermaceti magazine; he has, therefore, to be uncommonly heedful, lest a careless, untimely stroke should invade the sanctuary and wastingly let out its invaluable contents. It is this decapitated end of the head, also, which is at last elevated out of the water, and retained in that position by the enormous cutting tackles, whose hempen combinations, on one side, make quite a wilderness of ropes in that quarter.

As with decapitating the whale, the operator's tool is brought close to the point where an opening is later made into the spermaceti chamber; so, he must be extremely careful to avoid a careless or poorly timed strike that could intrude into this safe space and waste its priceless contents. It is this severed part of the head that is eventually lifted out of the water and held in place by the huge cutting tackles, which create a tangled mess of ropes on one side.

Thus much being said, attend now, I pray you, to that marvellous and— in this particular instance—almost fatal operation whereby the Sperm Whale's great Heidelburgh Tun is tapped.

Thus much being said, please pay attention now to that amazing and—in this specific case—almost deadly procedure where the Sperm Whale's huge Heidelburgh Tun is tapped.

CHAPTER 78

Cistern and Buckets

Tank and Buckets

Nimble as a cat, Tashtego mounts aloft; and without altering his erect posture, runs straight out upon the overhanging mainyard-arm, to the part where it exactly projects over the hoisted Tun. He has carried with him a light tackle called a whip, consisting of only two parts, travelling through a single-sheaved block. Securing this block, so that it hangs down from the yard-arm, he swings one end of the rope, till it is caught and firmly held by a hand on the deck. Then, hand-over-hand, down the other part, the Indian drops through the air, till dexterously he lands on the summit of the head. There—still high elevated above the rest of the company, to whom he vivaciously cries— he seems some Turkish Muezzin calling the good people to prayers from the top of a tower. A short-handled sharp spade being sent up to him, he diligently searches for the proper place to begin breaking into the Tun. In this business he proceeds very heedfully, like a treasure-hunter in some old house, sounding the walls to find where the gold is masoned in. By the time this cautious search is over, a stout ironbound bucket, precisely like a well-bucket, has been attached to one end of the whip; while the other end, being stretched across the deck, is there held by two or three alert hands. These last now hoist the bucket within grasp of the Indian, to whom another person has reached up a very long pole. Inserting this pole into the bucket, Tashtego downward guides the bucket into the Tun, till it entirely disappears; then giving the word to the seamen at the whip, up comes the bucket again, all bubbling like a dairy-maid's pail of new milk. Carefully lowered from its height, the full-freighted vessel is caught by an appointed hand, and quickly emptied into a large tub. Then remounting aloft, it again goes through the same round until the deep cistern will yield no more. Towards the end, Tashtego has to ram his long pole harder and harder, and deeper and deeper into the Tun, until some twenty feet of the pole have gone down.

Nimble as a cat, Tashtego climbs up and, without changing his upright position, runs straight out on the overhanging yardarm to where it extends over the raised Tun. He has brought a light tackle called a whip, made up of just two parts that go through a single-sheaved block. After securing this block so it hangs down from the yardarm, he swings one end of the rope until someone on the deck catches it firmly. Then, hand-over-hand, the Indian drops down through the air until he skillfully lands on top of the head. There—still high above the rest of the crew, to whom he cheerfully calls out—he looks like a Turkish Muezzin calling people to pray from a tower. A short, sharp spade is sent up to him, and he carefully looks for the right spot to start breaking into the Tun. He proceeds with caution, like a treasure hunter in an old house, tapping the walls to find where the gold is hidden. By the time this careful search is finished, a sturdy, iron-bound bucket, similar to a well-bucket, has been attached to one end of the whip; while the other end is stretched across the deck, held by two or three alert hands. These hands lift the bucket within reach of the Indian, to whom another person has handed a very long pole. Inserting this pole into the bucket, Tashtego guides it down into the Tun until it disappears; then he signals to the sailors at the whip, and up comes the bucket again, bubbling like a dairy maid's pail of fresh milk. Carefully lowered from its height, the filled bucket is caught by a designated hand and quickly emptied into a large tub. Then Tashtego climbs back up and repeats the process until the deep cistern runs dry. Toward the end, Tashtego has to push his long pole harder and deeper into the Tun, until about twenty feet of the pole have gone down.

Now, the people of the Pequod had been baling some time in this way; several tubs had been filled with the fragrant sperm; when all at once a queer accident happened. Whether it was that Tashtego, that wild Indian, was so heedless and reckless as to let go for a moment his one-handed hold on the great cabled tackles suspending the head; or whether the place where he stood was so treacherous and oozy; or whether the Evil One himself would have it to fall out so, without stating his particular reasons; how it was exactly, there is no telling now; but, on a sudden, as the eightieth or ninetieth bucket came suckingly up—my God! poor Tashtego— like the twin reciprocating bucket in a veritable well, dropped head-foremost down into this great Tun of Heidelburgh, and with a horrible oily gurgling, went clean out of sight!

Now, the crew of the Pequod had been hauling for a while like this; several tubs were filled with the fragrant oil; when suddenly, a strange accident occurred. Whether it was that Tashtego, that wild Indian, was so careless and reckless that he let go for a moment of his one-handed grip on the thick ropes holding the head; or whether the spot where he stood was so slippery and unstable; or whether the Evil One himself intended for it to happen this way, without revealing his reasons; how it happened exactly, we may never know; but suddenly, as the eightieth or ninetieth bucket came up with a sucking sound—my God! poor Tashtego—like the twin buckets working in a real well, fell headfirst into this huge Tun of Heidelburgh, and with a horrible oily gurgle, disappeared completely!

"Man overboard!" cried Daggoo, who amid the general consternation first came to his senses. "Swing the bucket this way!" and putting one foot into it, so as the better to secure his slippery hand-hold on the whip itself the hoisters ran him high up to the top of the head, almost before Tashtego could have reached its interior bottom. Meantime, there was a terrible tumult. Looking over the side, they saw the before lifeless head throbbing and heaving just below the surface of the sea, as if that moment seized with some momentous idea; whereas it was only the poor Indian unconsciously revealing by those struggles the perilous depth to which he had sunk.

"Man overboard!" shouted Daggoo, who, amidst the general chaos, was the first to snap back to reality. "Swing the bucket this way!" He stepped into it, trying to get a better grip on the whip itself as they hoisted him high up to the top, almost before Tashtego could reach the bottom. In the meantime, there was a horrible commotion. Looking over the side, they saw the previously lifeless head bobbing and thrashing just below the surface, as if struck by some significant thought; but really, it was just the poor Indian unknowingly showing how deep he had sunk through those struggles.

At this instant, while Daggoo, on the summit of the head, was clearing the whip—which had somehow got foul of the great cutting tackles— a sharp cracking noise was heard; and to the unspeakable horror of all, one of the two enormous hooks suspending the head tore out, and with a vast vibration the enormous mass sideways swung, till the drunk ship reeled and shook as if smitten by an iceberg. The one remaining hook, upon which the entire strain now depended, seemed every instant to be on the point of giving way; an event still more likely from the violent motions of the head.

At that moment, while Daggoo was at the top of the head, untangling the whip that had somehow gotten caught in the massive cutting tackles, a sharp cracking sound echoed. To everyone’s utter horror, one of the two huge hooks holding the head snapped off, causing the enormous mass to sway violently, making the ship rock and shudder as if it had been hit by an iceberg. The one remaining hook, now holding all the weight, appeared to be on the verge of breaking at any second, especially with the head’s wild movements.

"Come down, come down!" yelled the seamen to Daggoo, but with one hand holding on to the heavy tackles, so that if the head should drop, he would still remain suspended; the negro having cleared the foul line, rammed down the bucket into the now collapsed well, meaning that the buried harpooneer should grasp it, and so be hoisted out.

"Come down, come down!" shouted the sailors to Daggoo, but with one hand gripping the heavy tackle, ensuring that if his head dropped, he would still be hanging there; the black man, having cleared the obstructed line, pushed the bucket down into the now-collapsed well, signaling that the trapped harpooneer should grab it and be pulled up.

"In heaven's name, man," cried Stubb, "are you ramming home a cartridge there?—Avast! How will that help him; jamming that iron-bound bucket on top of his head? Avast, will ye!"

"In heaven's name, man," shouted Stubb, "are you trying to cram a cartridge in there?—Stop! How is that going to help him; shoving that heavy bucket on top of his head? Stop it, will you!"

"Stand clear of the tackle!" cried a voice like the bursting of a rocket.

"Stand clear of the tackle!" shouted a voice like an exploding rocket.

Almost in the same instant, with a thunder-boom, the enormous mass dropped into the sea, like Niagara's Table-Rock into the whirlpool; the suddenly relieved hull rolled away from it, to far down her glittering copper; and all caught their breath, as half swinging—now over the sailors' heads, and now over the water—Daggoo, through a thick mist of spray, was dimly beheld clinging to the pendulous tackles, while poor, buried-alive Tashtego was sinking utterly down to the bottom of the sea! But hardly had the blinding vapor cleared away, when a naked figure with a boardingsword in his hand, was for one swift moment seen hovering over the bulwarks. The next, a loud splash announced that my brave Queequeg had dived to the rescue. One packed rush was made to the side, and every eye counted every ripple, as moment followed moment, and no sign of either the sinker or the diver could be seen. Some hands now jumped into a boat alongside, and pushed a little off from the ship.

Almost at the same moment, with a loud boom, the massive chunk fell into the sea, like Niagara's Table Rock into the whirlpool; the suddenly relieved hull rolled away from it, shining with its copper plates; and everyone held their breath as Daggoo, swinging half over the sailors' heads and half over the water, was dimly seen clinging to the hanging tackle through a thick mist of spray, while poor, buried-alive Tashtego was sinking completely to the bottom! But just as the blinding mist began to clear, a naked figure with a sword was briefly spotted hovering over the rail. The next moment, a loud splash announced that my brave Queequeg had dived in to rescue him. A quick rush was made to the side, and every eye watched every ripple, moment after moment, as there was no sign of either the one sinking or the one diving. Some hands jumped into a boat alongside and pushed off from the ship.

"Ha! ha!" cried Daggoo, all at once, from his now quiet, swinging perch overhead; and looking further off from the side, we saw an arm thrust upright from the blue waves; a sight strange to see, as an arm thrust forth from the grass over a grave.

"Ha! ha!" shouted Daggoo suddenly from his now quiet, swinging spot above; and looking farther away from the side, we saw an arm sticking straight up from the blue waves; a sight unusual to witness, like an arm reaching up from the grass over a grave.

"Both! both!—it is both!"-cried Daggoo again with a joyful shout; and soon after, Queequeg was seen boldly striking out with one hand, and with the other clutching the long hair of the Indian. Drawn into the waiting boat, they were quickly brought to the deck; but Tashtego was long in coming to, and Queequeg did not look very brisk.

"Both! Both!—it’s both!" cried Daggoo again with a joyful shout; and soon after, Queequeg was seen confidently striking out with one hand, and with the other grabbing the long hair of the Indian. Pulled into the waiting boat, they were quickly brought to the deck; but Tashtego took a while to come to, and Queequeg didn’t look very lively.

Now, how had this noble rescue been accomplished? Why, diving after the slowly descending head, Queequeg with his keen sword had made side lunges near its bottom, so as to scuttle a large hole there; then dropping his sword, had thrust his long arm far inwards and upwards, and so hauled out our poor Tash by the head. He averred, that upon first thrusting in for him, a leg was presented; but well knowing that that was not as it ought to be, and might occasion great trouble;—he had thrust back the leg, and by a dexterous heave and toss, had wrought a somerset upon the Indian; so that with the next trial, he came forth in the good old way— head foremost. As for the great head itself, that was doing as well as could be expected.

Now, how did this noble rescue happen? Well, diving after the slowly sinking head, Queequeg used his sharp sword to make side cuts near the bottom, creating a large hole there; then, dropping his sword, he reached his long arm deep inside and pulled out our poor Tash by the head. He claimed that when he first reached in, a leg was presented; but knowing that wasn't right and could cause a lot of problems, he pushed the leg back, and with a skillful heave and toss, flipped the Indian around, so that with the next attempt, he came out the traditional way—head first. As for the big head itself, it was doing as well as could be expected.

And thus, through the courage and great skill in obstetrics of Queequeg, the deliverance, or rather, delivery of Tashtego, was successfully accomplished, in the teeth, too, of the most untoward and apparently hopeless impediments; which is a lesson by no means to be forgotten. Midwifery should be taught in the same course with fencing and boxing, riding and rowing.

And so, thanks to Queequeg's bravery and incredible skills in delivering babies, Tashtego was successfully brought into the world, despite facing some really tough and seemingly hopeless challenges. This is a lesson that shouldn’t be overlooked. Midwifery should be taught alongside skills like fencing, boxing, riding, and rowing.

I know that this queer adventure of the Gay-Header's will be sure to seem incredible to some landsmen, though they themselves may have either seen or heard of some one's falling into a cistern ashore; an accident which not seldom happens, and with much less reason too than the Indian's, considering the exceeding slipperiness of the curb of the Sperm Whale's well.

I know that this strange adventure of the Gay-Header's will definitely seem unbelievable to some non-sailors, even though they may have seen or heard about someone falling into a cistern on land; an accident that happens more often, and for much less reason than the Indian's, given how incredibly slippery the edge of the Sperm Whale's well is.

But, peradventure, it may be sagaciously urged, how is this? We thought the tissued, infiltrated head of the Sperm Whale, was the lightest and most corky part about him; and yet thou makest it sink in an element of a far greater specific gravity than itself. We have thee there. Not at all, but I have ye; for at the time poor Tash fell in, the case had been nearly emptied of its lighter contents, leaving little but the dense tendinous wall of the well—a double welded, hammered substance, as I have before said, much heavier than the sea water, and a lump of which sinks in it like lead almost. But the tendency to rapid sinking in this substance was in the present instance materially counteracted by the other parts of the head remaining undetached from it, so that it sank very slowly and deliberately indeed, affording Queequeg a fair chance for performing his agile obstetrics on the run, as you may say. Yes, it was a running delivery, so it was.

But, perhaps it may be wisely questioned, how is this? We thought the tissue-filled, spongy head of the Sperm Whale was the lightest and most buoyant part of it; yet you make it sink in a substance that is much denser than itself. We’ve caught you there. Not at all, but I have you; because at the time poor Tash fell in, the case had been mostly emptied of its lighter contents, leaving only the thick, tough wall of the well—a solid, heavily packed substance, as I've mentioned before, much heavier than seawater, and a piece of it sinks in water like lead. However, the tendency to sink quickly in this substance was in this case significantly countered by the other parts of the head still attached to it, so it sank very slowly and deliberately, giving Queequeg a good chance to perform his quick delivery on the move, so to speak. Yes, it was a running delivery, indeed.

Now, had Tashtego perished in that head, it had been a very precious perishing; smothered in the very whitest and daintiest of fragrant spermaceti; coffined, hearsed, and tombed in the secret inner chamber and sanctum sanctorum of the whale. Only one sweeter end can readily be recalled—the delicious death of an Ohio honey-hunter, who seeking honey in the crotch of a hollow tree, found such exceeding store of it, that leaning too far over, it sucked him in, so that he died embalmed. How many, think ye, have likewise fallen into Plato's honey head, and sweetly perished there?

Now, if Tashtego had died in that head, it would have been a very valuable death; smothered in the softest and sweetest fragrant spermaceti; entombed, preserved, and buried in the whale's secret inner chamber and sacred place. Only one sweeter end comes to mind—the delightful death of an Ohio honey-hunter, who while searching for honey in the fork of a hollow tree, discovered such an abundance of it that leaning too far over, he got pulled in and died preserved. How many do you think have similarly fallen into Plato's honey head and sweetly met their end there?

CHAPTER 79

The Prairie

The Prairie

To scan the lines of his face, or feel the bumps on the head of this Leviathan; this is a thing which no Physiognomist or Phrenologist has as yet undertaken. Such an enterprise would seem almost as hopeful as for Lavater to have scrutinized the wrinkles on the Rock of Gibraltar, or for Gall to have mounted a ladder and manipulated the Dome of the Pantheon. Still, in that famous work of his, Lavater not only treats of the various faces of men, but also attentively studies the faces of horses, birds, serpents, and fish; and dwells in detail upon the modifications of expression discernible therein. Nor have Gall and his disciple Spurzheim failed to throw out some hints touching the phrenological characteristics of other beings than man. Therefore, though I am but ill qualified for a pioneer, in the application of these two semi-sciences to the whale, I will do my endeavor. I try all things; I achieve what I can.

To examine the lines on his face or feel the bumps on the head of this giant; this is something that no physiognomist or phrenologist has attempted yet. Such a task would seem almost as futile as Lavater analyzing the wrinkles on the Rock of Gibraltar or Gall climbing a ladder to inspect the Dome of the Pantheon. Still, in his famous work, Lavater not only discusses the different faces of humans but also closely studies the faces of horses, birds, snakes, and fish, and goes into detail about the variations in expressions found in them. Likewise, Gall and his student Spurzheim have also suggested some insights regarding the phrenological traits of creatures other than humans. So, even though I'm not the best suited to be a pioneer in applying these two semi-sciences to the whale, I will do my best. I try everything; I achieve what I can.

Physiognomically regarded, the Sperm Whale is an anomalous creature. He has no proper nose. And since the nose is the central and most conspicuous of the features; and since it perhaps most modifies and finally controls their combined expression; hence it would seem that its entire absence, as an external appendage, must very largely affect the countenance of the whale. For as in landscape gardening, a spire, cupola, monument, or tower of some sort, is deemed almost indispensable to the completion of the scene; so no face can be physiognomically in keeping without the elevated open-work belfry of the nose. Dash the nose from Phidias's marble Jove, and what a sorry remainder! Nevertheless, Leviathan is of so mighty a magnitude, all his proportions are so stately, that the same deficiency which in the sculptured Jove were hideous, in him is no blemish at all. Nay, it is an added grandeur. A nose to the whale would have been impertinent. As on your physiognomical voyage you sail round his vast head in your jollyboat, your noble conceptions of him are never insulted by the reflection that he has a nose to be pulled. A pestilent conceit, which so often will insist upon obtruding even when beholding the mightiest royal beadle on his throne.

Physiognomically speaking, the Sperm Whale is a strange creature. It has no real nose. And since the nose is the most central and noticeable feature; and since it probably has the most impact on their overall appearance; it seems that its complete absence as an external part must greatly affect the whale's expression. Just as in landscape gardening, a spire, cupola, monument, or tower is considered almost essential for completing the scene; no face can truly work without the prominent open structure of a nose. Remove the nose from Phidias's marble Jove, and what a sad sight it becomes! However, Leviathan is so massive, and all his proportions are so grand that the same lack that would be ugly in the sculpted Jove is not a flaw in him at all. In fact, it adds to his grandeur. A nose on the whale would be inappropriate. As you sail around his enormous head in your small boat, your majestic thoughts of him are never diminished by the idea of him having a nose to be grabbed. It's an annoying idea that often intrudes even when viewing the most powerful royal figure on his throne.

In some particulars, perhaps the most imposing physiognomical view to be had of the Sperm Whale, is that of the full front of his head. This aspect is sublime.

In some ways, the most striking view of the Sperm Whale is from the front of its head. This perspective is impressive.

In thought, a fine human brow is like the East when troubled with the morning. In the repose of the pasture, the curled brow of the bull has a touch of the grand in it. Pushing heavy cannon up mountain defiles, the elephant's brow is majestic. Human or animal, the mystical brow is as that great golden seal affixed by the German Emperors to their decrees. It signifies—"God: done this day by my hand." But in most creatures, nay in man himself, very often the brow is but a mere strip of alpine land lying along the snow line. Few are the foreheads which like Shakespeare's or Melancthon's rise so high, and descend so low, that the eyes themselves seem clear, eternal, tideless mountain lakes; and all above them in the forehead's wrinkles, you seem to track the antlered thoughts descending there to drink, as the Highland hunters track the snow prints of the deer. But in the great Sperm Whale, this high and mighty god-like dignity inherent in the brow is so immensely amplified, that gazing on it, in that full front view, you feel the Deity and the dread powers more forcibly than in beholding any other object in living nature. For you see no one point precisely; not one distinct feature is revealed; no nose, eyes, ears, or mouth; no face; he has none, proper; nothing but that one broad firmament of a forehead, pleated with riddles; dumbly lowering with the doom of boats, and ships, and men. Nor, in profile, does this wondrous brow diminish; though that way viewed its grandeur does not domineer upon you so. In profile, you plainly perceive that horizontal, semi-crescentic depression in the forehead's middle, which, in a man, is Lavater's mark of genius.

In thought, a great human forehead is like the East when it's troubled by dawn. In the peaceful pasture, the bull's curled brow has a touch of greatness. As the elephant pushes heavy cannons up mountain paths, its brow appears magnificent. Whether human or animal, the mystical brow is like the great golden seal that German emperors put on their decrees. It signifies—"God: accomplished this day by my hand." But in most creatures, including humans, the brow often resembles a mere stretch of alpine land along the snow line. Few foreheads, like Shakespeare's or Melancthon's, rise so high and fall so deep that the eyes appear like clear, eternal, timeless mountain lakes; and all above them in the forehead's wrinkles, you can almost see the antlered thoughts coming down to drink, just as Highland hunters track deer in the snow. However, in the great Sperm Whale, this high, god-like dignity of the brow is amplified so much that when you look at it head-on, you sense the Divine and the powerful forces more clearly than in any other living creature. You can't identify one specific point; no distinct features are shown; no nose, eyes, ears, or mouth; it has no true face, just that broad expanse of a forehead, lined with mysteries; silently looming with the fate of boats, ships, and men. Even in profile, this incredible brow doesn't lose its presence, although its grandeur is less imposing from that angle. From the side, you can clearly see the horizontal, semi-crescent depression in the middle of the forehead, which, in a person, is Lavater's mark of genius.

But how? Genius in the Sperm Whale? Has the Sperm Whale ever written a book, spoken a speech? No, his great genius is declared in his doing nothing particular to prove it. It is moreover declared in his pyramidical silence. And this reminds me that had the great Sperm Whale been known to the young Orient World, he would have been deified by their child-magian thoughts. They deified the crocodile of the Nile, because the crocodile is tongueless; and the Sperm Whale has no tongue, or at least it is so exceedingly small, as to be incapable of protrusion. If hereafter any highly cultured, poetical nation shall lure back to their birth-right, the merry May-day gods of old; and livingly enthrone them again in the now egotistical sky; in the now unhaunted hill; then be sure, exalted to Jove's high seat, the great Sperm Whale shall lord it.

But how? Genius in the Sperm Whale? Has the Sperm Whale ever written a book or given a speech? No, its great genius is shown by the fact that it doesn’t do anything in particular to prove it. It’s also evident in its monumental silence. This makes me think that if the great Sperm Whale had been known to the young Eastern world, it would have been worshipped by their whimsical beliefs. They worshipped the crocodile of the Nile because the crocodile is tongueless; and the Sperm Whale has no tongue, or at least it’s so incredibly small that it can't stick it out. If in the future any highly cultured, poetic nation brings back their ancient May-day gods and enthrones them once more in the now egotistical sky and on the now deserted hills; then rest assured, elevated to Jove's high seat, the great Sperm Whale will reign supreme.

Champollion deciphered the wrinkled granite hieroglyphics. But there is no Champollion to decipher the Egypt of every man's and every being's face. Physiognomy, like every other human science, is but a passing fable. If then, Sir William Jones, who read in thirty languages, could not read the simplest peasant's face in its profounder and more subtle meanings, how may unlettered Ishmael hope to read the awful Chaldee of the Sperm Whale's brow? I but put that brow before you. Read if it if you can.

Champollion deciphered the wrinkled granite hieroglyphics. But there’s no Champollion to interpret the Egypt of every person’s and every being’s face. Physiognomy, like all other human sciences, is just a passing myth. So, if Sir William Jones, who could read in thirty languages, couldn’t understand the simplest peasant's face in its deeper and more subtle meanings, how can uneducated Ishmael hope to read the terrifying Chaldee of the Sperm Whale's brow? I’m just placing that brow in front of you. See if you can read it.

CHAPTER 80

The Nut

The Nut

If the Sperm Whale be physiognomically a Sphinx, to the phrenologist his brain seems that geometrical circle which it is impossible to square.

If the Sperm Whale looks like a Sphinx, to the phrenologist, its brain appears to be that geometric circle that can't be squared.

In the full-grown creature the skull will measure at least twenty feet in length. Unhinge the lower jaw, and the side view of this skull is as the side view of a moderately inclined plane resting throughout on a level base. But in life—as we have elsewhere seen—this inclined plane is angularly filled up, and almost squared by the enormous superincumbent mass of the junk and sperm. At the high end the skull forms a crater to bed that part of the mass; while under the long floor of this crater—in another cavity seldom exceeding ten inches in length and as many in depth reposes the mere handful of this monster's brain. The brain is at least twenty feet from his apparent forehead in life; it is hidden away behind its vast outworks, like the innermost citadel within the amplified fortifications of Quebec. So like a choice casket is it secreted in him, that I have known some whalemen who peremptorily deny that the Sperm Whale has any other brain than that palpable semblance of one formed by the cubic-yards of his sperm magazine. Lying in strange folds, courses, and convolutions, to their apprehensions, it seems more in keeping with the idea of his general might to regard that mystic part of him as the seat of his intelligence.

In the fully grown creature, the skull measures at least twenty feet long. If you unhinge the lower jaw, the side view of this skull looks like a moderately inclined plane resting on a flat base. But in reality—as we've seen elsewhere—this inclined plane is angularly filled in and almost squared off by the enormous weight of the junk and sperm on top. At the high end, the skull forms a crater to accommodate that part of the mass; while under the long floor of this crater—in another cavity that’s rarely more than ten inches long and as deep—rests the tiny fraction of this monster's brain. The brain is at least twenty feet behind what looks like its forehead when it’s alive; it’s hidden away behind its massive outer structure, like the innermost fortress within the enlarged fortifications of Quebec. So well-protected is it that I’ve met some whalemen who firmly insist that the Sperm Whale doesn’t have any other brain than the obvious one made up of the cubic yards of his sperm reserve. Lying in strange folds, paths, and twists, to them, it seems more fitting to view that mysterious part of him as the source of his intelligence.

It is plain, then, that phrenologically the head of this Leviathan, in the creature's living intact state, is an entire delusion. As for his true brain, you can then see no indications of it, nor feel any. The whale, like all things that are mighty, wears a false brow to the common world.

It’s clear, then, that phrenologically the head of this Leviathan, in the creature's living intact state, is a complete illusion. As for its real brain, you can’t see any signs of it, nor can you feel any. The whale, like all powerful things, has a deceptive appearance to the ordinary world.

If you unload his skull of its spermy heaps and then take a rear view of its rear end, which is the high end, you will be struck by its resemblance to the human skull, beheld in the same situation, and from the same point of view. Indeed, place this reversed skull (scaled down to the human magnitude) among a plate of men's skulls, and you would involuntarily confound it with them; and remarking the depressions on one part of its summit, in phrenological phrase you would say—This man had no self-esteem, and no veneration. And by those negations, considered along with the affirmative fact of his prodigious bulk and power, you can best form to yourself the truest, though not the most exhilarating conception of what the most exalted potency is.

If you empty his skull of its sperm-like masses and then look at the back side, which is the higher end, you'll notice how much it resembles a human skull viewed from the same angle. In fact, if you placed this upside-down skull (scaled down to human size) among a collection of men’s skulls, you would likely confuse it with them; and noticing the indentations on one part of its top, you might say—This person lacked self-esteem and veneration. By considering these deficiencies alongside the undeniable fact of his massive size and strength, you can form the most accurate, though not the most uplifting, idea of what the highest power really is.

But if from the comparative dimensions of the whale's proper brain, you deem it incapable of being adequately charted, then I have another idea for you. If you attentively regard almost any quadruped's spine, you will be struck with the resemblance of its vertebrae to a strung necklace of dwarfed skulls, all bearing rudimental resemblance to the skull proper. It is a German conceit, that the vertebrae are absolutely undeveloped skulls. But the curious external resemblance, I take it the Germans were not the first men to perceive. A foreign friend once pointed it out to me, in the skeleton of a foe he had slain, and with the vertebrae of which he was inlaying, in a sort of basso-relieve, the beaked prow of his canoe. Now, I consider that the phrenologists have omitted an important thing in not pushing their investigations from the cerebellum through the spinal canal. For I believe that much of a man's character will be found betokened in his backbone. I would rather feel your spine than your skull, whoever you are. A thin joist of a spine never yet upheld a full and noble soul. I rejoice in my spine, as in the firm audacious staff of that flag which I fling half out to the world.

But if you think the size of a whale's brain makes it hard to analyze, I have another thought for you. If you take a close look at almost any quadruped's spine, you’ll notice how much its vertebrae resemble a necklace of tiny skulls, all looking similar to an actual skull. There's a German idea that vertebrae are actually undeveloped skulls. But the curious resemblance, I believe, isn't something the Germans were the first to notice. A foreign friend pointed this out to me once, using the skeleton of an enemy he had killed, whose vertebrae he was using as decoration on the front of his canoe. I think phrenologists have missed an important aspect by not extending their studies from the cerebellum down the spinal canal. I believe that much of a person's character is reflected in their backbone. I would prefer to feel your spine rather than your skull, whoever you are. A thin, weak spine has never supported a strong and noble soul. I take pride in my spine, as if it's the strong, bold staff of a flag that I proudly present to the world.

Apply this spinal branch of phrenology to the Sperm Whale. His cranial cavity is continuous with the first neck-vertebra; and in that vertebra the bottom of the spinal canal will measure ten inches across, being eight in height, and of a triangular figure with the base downwards. As it passes through the remaining vertebrae the canal tapers in size, but for a considerable distance remains of large capacity. Now, of course, this canal is filled with much the same strangely fibrous substance—the spinal cord—as the brain; and directly communicates with the brain. And what is still more, for many feet after emerging from the brain's cavity, the spinal cord remains of an undecreasing girth, almost equal to that of the brain. Under all these circumstances, would it be unreasonable to survey and map out the whale's spine phrenologically? For, viewed in this light, the wonderful comparative smallness of his brain proper is more than compensated by the wonderful comparative magnitude of his spinal cord.

Apply this spinal branch of phrenology to the Sperm Whale. His cranial cavity connects with the first neck vertebra, and in that vertebra, the bottom of the spinal canal measures ten inches across, eight in height, and has a triangular shape with the base downwards. As it passes through the remaining vertebrae, the canal narrows, but for a significant distance, it stays quite large. Now, naturally, this canal is filled with a similarly oddly fibrous substance—the spinal cord—as the brain; and it connects directly to the brain. What’s even more interesting is that for many feet after leaving the brain’s cavity, the spinal cord retains an unchanged thickness, nearly equal to that of the brain. Given all these factors, would it be unreasonable to examine and map out the whale’s spine using phrenology? Because, when viewed this way, the remarkable relative smallness of his actual brain is more than offset by the remarkable relative size of his spinal cord.

But leaving this hint to operate as it may with the phrenologists, I would merely assume the spinal theory for a moment, in reference to the Sperm Whale's hump. This august hump, if I mistake not, rises over one of the larger vertebrae, and is, therefore, in some sort, the outer convex mould of it. From its relative situation then, I should call this high hump the organ of firmness or indomitableness in the Sperm Whale. And that the great monster is indomitable, you will yet have reason to know.

But leaving this idea for the phrenologists to ponder, I will briefly consider the spinal theory regarding the Sperm Whale's hump. If I'm not mistaken, this impressive hump sits atop one of the larger vertebrae and is, in a way, the outer shape of it. Given its position, I would describe this high hump as the organ of determination or resilience in the Sperm Whale. And you will come to see that this massive creature is indeed indomitable.

CHAPTER 81

The Pequod Meets The Virgin

The Pequod Encounters The Virgin

The predestinated day arrived, and we duly met the ship
Jungfrau, Derick De Deer, master, of Bremen.

The fated day came, and we met the ship
Jungfrau, Derick De Deer, captain, from Bremen.

At one time the greatest whaling people in the world, the Dutch and Germans are now among the least; but here and there at very wide intervals of latitude and longitude, you still occasionally meet with their flag in the Pacific.

At one time, the best whaling nations in the world, the Dutch and Germans, are now among the least; but every now and then, at very wide intervals of latitude and longitude, you still occasionally spot their flag in the Pacific.

For some reason, the Jungfrau seemed quite eager to pay her respects. While yet some distance from the Pequod, she rounded to, and dropping a boat, her captain was impelled towards us, impatiently standing in the bows instead of the stern.

For some reason, the Jungfrau seemed really eager to pay her respects. While still quite a distance from the Pequod, she turned around and dropped a boat, with her captain anxiously standing in the front instead of the back.

"What has he in his hand there?" cried Starbuck, pointing to something wavingly held by the German. "Impossible!—a lamp-feeder!"

"What does he have in his hand?" shouted Starbuck, pointing at something the German was waving. "No way!—a lamp-feeder!"

"Not that," said Stubb, "no, no, it's a coffee-pot, Mr. Starbuck; he's coming off to make us our coffee, is the Yarman; don't you see that big tin can there alongside of him?—that's his boiling water. Oh! he's all right, is the Yarman."

"Not that," said Stubb, "no, no, it’s a coffee pot, Mr. Starbuck; he’s here to make us our coffee, the Yarman; don’t you see that big tin can next to him?—that’s his boiling water. Oh! he’s all good, the Yarman."

"Go along with you," cried Flask, "it's a lamp-feeder and an oil-can.
He's out of oil, and has come a-begging."

"Go on your way," shouted Flask, "it's a lamp feeder and an oil can.
He's out of oil and has come begging."

However curious it may seem for an oil-ship to be borrowing oil on the whale-ground, and however much it may invertedly contradict the old proverb about carrying coals to Newcastle, yet sometimes such a thing really happens; and in the present case Captain Derick De Deer did indubitably conduct a lamp-feeder as Flask did declare.

However strange it may seem for an oil ship to be borrowing oil in whale territory, and no matter how much it contradicts the old saying about carrying coals to Newcastle, sometimes it really does happen; in this case, Captain Derick De Deer definitely brought a lamp-feeder, as Flask pointed out.

As he mounted the deck, Ahab abruptly accosted him, without at all heeding what he had in his hand; but in his broken lingo, the German soon evinced his complete ignorance of the White Whale; immediately turning the conversation to his lamp-feeder and oil can, with some remarks touching his having to turn into his hammock at night in profound darkness—his last drop of Bremen oil being gone, and not a single flying-fish yet captured to supply the deficiency; concluding by hinting that his ship was indeed what in the Fishery is technically called a clean one (that is, an empty one), well deserving the name of Jungfrau or the Virgin.

As he stepped onto the deck, Ahab suddenly confronted him, not paying any attention to what he was holding. However, in his broken speech, the German quickly showed he had no clue about the White Whale; he immediately shifted the conversation to his lamp-feeder and oil can, mentioning how he had to go to his hammock at night in complete darkness—his last drop of Bremen oil was gone, and he hadn’t caught a single flying fish to make up for it. He ended by suggesting that his ship was truly what’s technically called a clean one in the Fishery (which means it’s empty), and it definitely deserved the name Jungfrau or the Virgin.

His necessities supplied, Derick departed; but he had not gained his ship's side, when whales were almost simultaneously raised from the mast-heads of both vessels; and so eager for the chase was Derick, that without pausing to put his oil-can and lamp-feeder aboard, he slewed round his boat and made after the leviathan lamp-feeders.

His needs taken care of, Derick left; but he hadn't even reached his ship when whales were spotted almost at the same time from the mastheads of both vessels; and Derick was so eager for the chase that he didn't pause to put his oil can and lamp feeder on board. Instead, he turned his boat around and went after the giant sea creatures.

Now, the game having risen to leeward, he and the other three German boats that soon followed him, had considerably the start of the Pequod's keels. There were eight whales, an average pod. Aware of their danger, they were going all abreast with great speed straight before the wind, rubbing their flanks as closely as so many spans of horses in harness. They left a great, wide wake, as though continually unrolling a great wide parchment upon the sea.

Now, with the game having drifted downwind, he and the other three German boats that soon followed had a significant head start on the Pequod. There were eight whales, an average pod. Sensing their danger, they swam side by side at high speed directly before the wind, their sides rubbing against each other just like horses in harness. They created a vast, wide wake, as if they were continually unrolling a large piece of parchment across the sea.

Full in this rapid wake, and many fathoms in the rear, swam a huge, humped old bull, which by his comparatively slow progress, as well as by the unusual yellowish incrustations over-growing him, seemed afflicted with the jaundice, or some other infirmity. Whether this whale belonged to the pod in advance, seemed questionable; for it is not customary for such venerable leviathans to be at all social. Nevertheless, he stuck to their wake, though indeed their back water must have retarded him, because the white-bone or swell at his broad muzzle was a dashed one, like the swell formed when two hostile currents meet. His spout was short, slow, and laborious; coming forth with a choking sort of gush, and spending itself in torn shreds, followed by strange subterranean commotions in him, which seemed to have egress at his other buried extremity, causing the waters behind him to upbubble.

Full in this swift wake, and many depths behind, swam a massive, humped old bull, which, due to his relatively slow pace and the unusual yellowish growths covering him, appeared to be suffering from jaundice or some other ailment. It was questionable whether this whale was part of the pod ahead, as it's not typical for such ancient giants to be social. Still, he followed their wake, even though their backflow must have slowed him down, because the swell at his broad muzzle was erratic, like the swell created when two opposing currents collide. His spout was short, slow, and labored, releasing with a choking sort of rush, breaking apart into ragged bits, accompanied by strange rumblings within him that seemed to exit at his other hidden end, causing the waters behind him to bubble up.

"Who's got some paregoric?" said Stubb, "he has the stomach-ache,
I'm afraid. Lord, think of having half an acre of stomach-ache!
Adverse winds are holding mad Christmas in him, boys.
It's the first foul wind I ever knew to blow from astern; but look,
did ever whale yaw so before? it must be, he's lost his tiller."

"Who has some paregoric?" Stubb asked. "I think he has a stomachache.
Can you imagine having half an acre of stomachache?
The bad winds are stirring up a crazy Christmas in him, guys.
This is the first bad wind I've ever seen blowing from behind; but look,
have you ever seen a whale turn like that before? He must have lost his steering."

As an overladen Indiaman bearing down the Hindostan coast with a deck load of frightened horses, careens, buries, rolls, and wallows on her way; so did this old whale heave his aged bulk, and now and then partly turning over on his cumbrous rib-ends, expose the cause of his devious wake in the unnatural stump of his starboard fin. Whether he had lost that fin in battle, or had been born without it, it were hard to say.

As a heavily loaded Indiaman makes its way down the Hindostan coast with a deck full of scared horses, it tilts, sinks, rolls, and struggles along its path; similarly, this old whale moved his massive body, occasionally turning a bit and revealing the reason for his strange wake in the unusual stump of his right fin. It’s hard to tell whether he lost that fin in a fight or if he was born without it.

"Only wait a bit, old chap, and I'll give ye a sling for that wounded arm," cried cruel Flask, pointing to the whale-line near him.

"Just wait a second, buddy, and I'll get you a sling for that hurt arm," yelled the cruel Flask, pointing to the whale-line beside him.

"Mind he don't sling thee with it," cried Starbuck. "Give way, or the German will have him."

"Make sure he doesn't hit you with it," shouted Starbuck. "Get out of the way, or the German will take him."

With one intent all the combined rival boats were pointed for this one fish, because not only was he the largest, and therefore the most valuable whale, but he was nearest to them, and the other whales were going with such great velocity, moreover, as almost to defy pursuit for the time. At this juncture, the Pequod's keels had shot by the three German boats last lowered; but from the great start he had had, Derick's boat still led the chase, though every moment neared by his foreign rivals. The only thing they feared, was, that from being already so nigh to his mark, he would be enabled to dart his iron before they could completely overtake and pass him. As for Derick, he seemed quite confident that this would be the case, and occasionally with a deriding gesture shook his lamp-feeder at the other boats.

With one goal, all the competing boats were aimed at this one fish, not only because he was the biggest and therefore the most valuable whale, but also because he was the closest to them, while the other whales were moving so fast that it seemed impossible to catch them at the moment. At this point, the Pequod’s keels had passed the last three German boats that had been lowered; however, due to their significant lead, Derick's boat was still in the lead of the chase, though it was being approached quickly by his foreign competitors. Their main concern was that, being so close to his target, he would manage to launch his harpoon before they could fully catch up and pass him. As for Derick, he appeared quite confident that this would happen, and occasionally, with a mocking gesture, he shook his lamp-feeder at the other boats.

"The ungracious and ungrateful dog!" cried Starbuck; "he mocks and dares me with the very poor-box I filled for him not five minutes ago!"— Then in his old intense whisper—"give way, greyhounds! Dog to it!"

"The rude and ungrateful dog!" cried Starbuck; "he mocks and challenges me with the very poor-box I filled for him just five minutes ago!"— Then in his usual intense whisper—"move aside, greyhounds! Go for it, dog!"

"I tell ye what it is, men"—cried Stubb to his crew—It's against my religion to get mad; but I'd like to eat that villainous Yarman—Pull— won't ye? Are ye going to let that rascal beat ye? Do ye love brandy? A hogshead of brandy, then, to the best man. Come, why don't some of ye burst a blood-vessel? Who's that been dropping an anchor overboard— we don't budge an inch—we're becalmed. Halloo, here's grass growing in the boat's bottom—and by the Lord, the mast there's budding. This won't do, boys. Look at that Yarman! The short and long of it is, men, will ye spit fire or not?"

"I'll tell you what it is, guys," Stubb shouted to his crew. "It's against my beliefs to get angry, but I'd love to take down that evil Yarman—Come on—won’t you? Are you really going to let that jerk get away with this? Do you like brandy? A barrel of brandy to the best man. Seriously, why doesn’t someone just explode from all this frustration? Who’s the one dropping an anchor overboard—we’re not moving at all—we’re stuck here. Look, there’s grass growing at the bottom of the boat—and by God, even the mast is sprouting. This isn’t working, guys. Just look at that Yarman! The bottom line is, are you going to show some fight or not?"

"Oh! see the suds he makes!" cried Flask, dancing up and down—"What a hump—Oh, do pile on the beef—lays like a log! Oh! my lads, do spring—slap-jacks and quahogs for supper, you know, my lads— baked clams and muffins—oh, do, do, spring,—he's a hundred barreler— don't lose him now—don't oh, don't!—see that Yarman—Oh, won't ye pull for your duff, my lads—such a sog! such a sogger! Don't ye love sperm? There goes three thousand dollars, men!—a bank!—a whole bank! The bank of England!—Oh, do, do, do!—What's that Yarman about now?"

"Oh! look at all the foam he's creating!" shouted Flask, bouncing up and down—"What a hump—Oh, keep piling on the meat—he's just lying there! Oh! my guys, hurry up—pancakes and quahogs for dinner, you know, my friends—baked clams and muffins—oh, come on, hurry up,—he's a hundred-barrel catch—don't lose him now—please don't!—look at that guy—Oh, will you work for your share, my friends—what a mess! such a mess! Don't you love sperm whale oil? There goes three thousand dollars, guys!—a fortune!—a whole fortune! The Bank of England!—Oh, come on, come on, come on!—What's that guy doing now?"

At this moment Derick was in the act of pitching his lamp-feeder at the advancing boats, and also his oil-can; perhaps with the double view of retarding his rivals' way, and at the same time economically accelerating his own by the momentary impetus of the backward toss.

At that moment, Derick was throwing his lamp feeder and oil can at the oncoming boats, maybe to slow down his competitors while also giving his own boat a slight boost with the backward throw.

"The unmannerly Dutch dogger!" cried Stubb. "Pull now, men, like fifty thousand line-of-battle-ship loads of red-haired devils. What d'ye say, Tashtego; are you the man to snap your spine in two-and-twenty pieces for the honor of old Gayhead? What d'ye say?"

"The rude Dutch ship!" shouted Stubb. "Now pull, guys, like you're hauling a hundred battleships full of red-haired devils. What do you say, Tashtego; are you willing to break your back into twenty-two pieces for the honor of old Gayhead? What do you say?"

"I say, pull like god-dam,"—cried the Indian.

"I say, pull like hell," cried the Indian.

Fiercely, but evenly incited by the taunts of the German, the Pequod's three boats now began ranging almost abreast; and, so disposed, momentarily neared him. In that fine, loose, chivalrous attitude of the headsman when drawing near to his prey, the three mates stood up proudly, occasionally backing the after oarsman with an exhilarating cry of, "There she slides, now! Hurrah for the white-ash breeze! Down with the Yarman! Sail over him!"

Fiercely, but evenly stirred by the taunts of the German, the Pequod's three boats began to position themselves almost side by side; and, as they did, they moved closer to him. In that proud, relaxed stance of the headsman approaching his target, the three mates stood tall, occasionally encouraging the aft rower with an enthusiastic shout of, "There she goes! Hurrah for the white-ash breeze! Take him down! Sail over him!"

But so decided an original start had Derick had, that spite of all their gallantry, he would have proved the victor in this race, had not a righteous judgment descended upon him in a crab which caught the blade of his midship oarsman. While this clumsy lubber was striving to free his white-ash, and while, in consequence, Derick's boat was nigh to capsizing, and he thundering away at his men in a mighty rage;—that was a good time for Starbuck, Stubb, and Flask. With a shout, they took a mortal start forwards, and slantingly ranged up on the German's quarter. An instant more, and all four boats were diagonically in the whale's immediate wake, while stretching from them, on both sides, was the foaming swell that he made.

But Derick had such a strong start that, despite all their bravado, he would have won this race if it hadn't been for a bad break when a crab snagged the blade of his midship oarsman. While this clumsy guy was trying to free his wooden oar, Derick's boat nearly capsized, and he was furiously yelling at his crew; that was the perfect moment for Starbuck, Stubb, and Flask. With a shout, they leapt ahead and angled up on the German's side. In an instant, all four boats were lined up in the whale’s immediate wake, with the foaming waves he created stretching out on both sides.

It was a terrific, most pitiable, and maddening sight. The whale was now going head out, and sending his spout before him in a continual tormented jet; while his one poor fin beat his side in an agony of fright. Now to this hand, now to that, he yawed in his faltering flight, and still at every billow that he broke, he spasmodically sank in the sea, or sideways rolled towards the sky his one beating fin. So have I seen a bird with clipped wing, making affrighted broken circles in the air, vainly striving to escape the piratical hawks. But the bird has a voice, and with plaintive cries will make known her fear; but the fear of this vast dumb brute of the sea, was chained up and enchanted in him; he had no voice, save that choking respiration through his spiracle, and this made the sight of him unspeakably pitiable; while still, in his amazing bulk, portcullis jaw, and omnipotent tail, there was enough to appal the stoutest man who so pitied.

It was an incredible, really heartbreaking, and frustrating sight. The whale was now swimming with its head out of the water, shooting a continuous stream of mist from its blowhole; while its one poor fin was slapping against its side in fear. It swayed from side to side in its shaky escape, and with every wave it broke, it would either plunge down into the sea or awkwardly roll to the side, lifting its one flailing fin toward the sky. I had seen a bird with a clipped wing, flying in scared, erratic circles, desperately trying to escape predatory hawks. But the bird has a voice and can express its fear with pitiful cries; the fear of this massive, silent creature of the sea was trapped within it; it had no voice, except for the choked breathing through its spiracle, which made the sight of it profoundly tragic. Yet still, with its immense size, formidable jaw, and powerful tail, there was enough there to frighten even the bravest person who felt sympathy for it.

Seeing now that but a very few moments more would give the Pequod's boats the advantage, and rather than be thus foiled of his game, Derick chose to hazard what to him must have seemed a most unusually long dart, ere the last chance would for ever escape.

Seeing now that just a few moments more would give the Pequod's boats the upper hand, and rather than lose his chance, Derick decided to take what must have felt like a very long shot before the last opportunity would be lost forever.

But no sooner did his harpooneer stand up for the stroke, than all three tigers—Queequeg, Tashtego, Daggoo—instinctively sprang to their feet, and standing in a diagonal row, simultaneously pointed their barbs; and darted over the head of the German harpooneer, their three Nantucket irons entered the whale. Blinding vapors of foam and white-fire! The three boats, in the first fury of the whale's headlong rush, bumped the German's aside with such force, that both Derick and his baffled harpooneer were spilled out, and sailed over by the three flying keels.

But as soon as his harpooneer got ready to strike, all three tigers—Queequeg, Tashtego, and Daggoo—instinctively jumped to their feet. Standing in a diagonal line, they pointed their harpoons at the same time and shot them over the German harpooneer's head, piercing the whale with their three Nantucket irons. Blinding sprays of foam and white fire! In the initial chaos of the whale’s furious charge, the three boats crashed into the German's with such force that both Derick and his frustrated harpooneer were knocked out and swept away by the three speeding keels.

"Don't be afraid, my butter-boxes," cried Stubb, casting a passing glance upon them as he shot by; "ye'll be picked up presently— all right—I saw some sharks astern—St. Bernard's dogs, you know— relieve distressed travellers. Hurrah! this is the way to sail now. Every keel a sunbeam! Hurrah!—Here we go like three tin kettles at the tail of a mad cougar! This puts me in mind of fastening to an elephant in a tilbury on a plain— makes the wheelspokes fly, boys, when you fasten to him that way; and there's danger of being pitched out too, when you strike a hill. Hurrah! this is the way a fellow feels when he's going to Davy Jones—all a rush down an endless inclined plane! Hurrah! this whale carries the everlasting mail!"

"Don’t worry, my butter-boxes," shouted Stubb, glancing back at them as he sped by; "you’ll be picked up soon—everything’s fine—I saw some sharks behind us—St. Bernard’s dogs, you know—helping distressed travelers. Hooray! this is how to sail now. Every keel a sunbeam! Hooray!—Here we go like three tin kettles following a crazy cougar! This reminds me of hitching onto an elephant in a carriage on a flatland—it really gets the wheels spinning, guys, when you hook onto him like that; and you might get tossed out too when you hit a hill. Hooray! this is how a guy feels when he’s heading to Davy Jones—all a rush down an endless slope! Hooray! this whale is bringing the forever mail!"

But the monster's run was a brief one. Giving a sudden gasp, he tumultuously sounded. With a grating rush, the three lines flew round the loggerheads with such a force as to gouge deep grooves in them; while so fearful were the harpooneers that this rapid sounding would soon exhaust the lines, that using all their dexterous might, they caught repeated smoking turns with the rope to hold on; till at last—owing to the perpendicular strain from the lead-lined chocks of the boats, whence the three ropes went straight down into the blue—the gunwales of the bows were almost even with the water, while the three sterns tilted high in the air. And the whale soon ceasing to sound, for some time they remained in that attitude, fearful of expending more line, though the position was a little ticklish. But though boats have been taken down and lost in this way, yet it is this "holding on," as it is called; this hooking up by the sharp barbs of his live flesh from the back; this it is that often torments the Leviathan into soon rising again to meet the sharp lance of his foes. Yet not to speak of the peril of the thing, it is to be doubted whether this course is always the best; for it is but reasonable to presume, that the longer the stricken whale stays under water, the more he is exhausted. Because, owing to the enormous surface of him— in a full grown sperm whale something less than 2000 square feet— the pressure of the water is immense. We all know what an astonishing atmospheric weight we ourselves stand up under; even here, above-ground, in the air; how vast, then, the burden of a whale, bearing on his back a column of two hundred fathoms of ocean! It must at least equal the weight of fifty atmospheres. One whaleman has estimated it at the weight of twenty line-of-battle ships, with all their guns, and stores, and men on board.

But the monster's sprint was short-lived. With a sudden gasp, he wildly started sounding. The three lines shot around the loggerheads so forcefully that they carved deep grooves into them; the harpooneers were so afraid that this rapid sounding would quickly use up the lines that they, using all their skill, made repeated smoking turns with the rope to hang on. Eventually, due to the vertical strain from the lead-lined chocks of the boats, where the three ropes went straight down into the blue, the gunwales of the bows were nearly level with the water, while the three sterns tilted high in the air. When the whale stopped sounding, they stayed in that position for a while, worried about using up more line, even though it was a bit precarious. However, while boats have been lost this way, it’s this “holding on,” the hooking up by the sharp barbs of his live flesh from the back, that often drives the Leviathan to rise again to face the sharp lance of its enemies. Yet, aside from the danger of this approach, it’s questionable whether it’s always the best strategy; after all, it seems logical to assume that the longer the struck whale remains underwater, the more exhausted it becomes. With its vast surface area—approximately 2000 square feet for a fully grown sperm whale—the pressure of the water is tremendous. We all understand the astonishing atmospheric weight we bear even above ground in the air; so imagine the burden on a whale carrying a column of two hundred fathoms of ocean! It must equal the weight of fifty atmospheres. One whaleman has estimated it to be comparable to the weight of twenty battleships, fully loaded with all their guns, supplies, and crew.

As the three boats lay there on that gently rolling sea, gazing down into its eternal blue noon; and as not a single groan or cry of any sort, nay, not so much as a ripple or a bubble came up from its depths; what landsman would have thought, that beneath all that silence and placidity, the utmost monster of the seas was writhing and wrenching in agony! Not eight inches of perpendicular rope were visible at the bows. Seems it credible that by three such thin threads the great Leviathan was suspended like the big weight to an eight day clock. Suspended? and to what? To three bits of board. Is this the creature of whom it was once so triumphantly said—"Canst thou fill his skin with barbed irons? or his head with fish-spears? The sword of him that layeth at him cannot hold, the spear, the dart, nor the habergeon: he esteemeth iron as straw; the arrow cannot make him flee; darts are counted as stubble; he laugheth at the shaking of a spear!" This the creature? this he? Oh! that unfulfilments should follow the prophets. For with the strength of a thousand thighs in his tail, Leviathan had run his head under the mountains of the sea, to hide him from the Pequod's fishspears!

As the three boats floated on the gently rolling sea, looking down into its endless blue afternoon, and with not a single groan or cry, not even a ripple or a bubble coming up from its depths, what landlubber would have thought that beneath all that silence and calmness, the greatest monster of the seas was twisting and writhing in agony! Not even eight inches of vertical rope were visible at the bows. Can it be believed that such thin threads held the great Leviathan like the weight of an eight-day clock? Suspended? And to what? To three pieces of wood. Is this really the creature that was once boastfully described—"Can you fill his skin with barbed irons? Or his head with fish-spears? The sword of the one who strikes him cannot prevail, neither the spear, the dart, nor the armor: he considers iron as straw; the arrow cannot make him run away; darts are seen as stubble; he laughs at the shaking of a spear!" This the creature? This he? Oh! that unfulfilled prophecies should follow the prophets. For with the strength of a thousand thighs in his tail, Leviathan had run his head under the mountains of the sea, to hide from the Pequod's fish spears!

In that sloping afternoon sunlight, the shadows that the three boats sent down beneath the surface, must have been long enough and broad enough to shade half Xerxes' army. Who can tell how appalling to the wounded whale must have been such huge phantoms flitting over his head!

In that sloping afternoon sunlight, the shadows from the three boats beneath the surface must have been long and wide enough to shade half of Xerxes' army. Who can imagine how terrifying those massive phantoms must have been for the wounded whale beneath them!

"Stand by, men; he stirs," cried Starbuck, as the three lines suddenly vibrated in the water, distinctly conducting upwards to them, as by magnetic wires, the life and death throbs of the whale, so that every oarsman felt them in his seat. The next moment, relieved in a great part from the downward strain at the bows, the boats gave a sudden bounce upwards, as a small icefield will, when a dense herd of white bears are scared from it into the sea.

"Hold on, guys; he's moving," shouted Starbuck, as the three lines suddenly trembled in the water, clearly transmitting the whale's life and death pulses to them, as if through magnetic wires, so that every rower felt them in his seat. The next moment, mostly relieved from the downward pressure at the front, the boats gave a sudden lift, like a small icefield does when a dense group of white bears gets startled and jumps into the sea.

"Haul in! Haul in!" cried Starbuck again; "he's rising."

"Pull in! Pull in!" shouted Starbuck again; "he's coming up."

The lines, of which, hardly an instant before, not one hand's breadth could have been gained, were now in long quick coils flung back all dripping into the boats, and soon the whale broke water within two ship's length of the hunters.

The lines, which just a moment ago could barely be pulled at all, were now being quickly reeled back, all dripping into the boats, and soon the whale surfaced just a short distance from the hunters.

His motions plainly denoted his extreme exhaustion. In most land animals there are certain valves or flood-gates in many of their veins, whereby when wounded, the blood is in some degree at least instantly shut off in certain directions. Not so with the whale; one of whose peculiarities it is, to have an entire non-valvular structure of the blood-vessels, so that when pierced even by so small a point as a harpoon, a deadly drain is at once begun upon his whole arterial system; and when this is heightened by the extraordinary pressure of water at a great distance below the surface, his life may be said to pour from him in incessant streams. Yet so vast is the quantity of blood in him, and so distant and numerous its interior fountains, that he will keep thus bleeding and bleeding for a considerable period; even as in a drought a river will flow, whose source is in the well-springs of far-off and indiscernible hills. Even now, when the boats pulled upon this whale, and perilously drew over his swaying flukes, and the lances were darted into him, they were followed by steady jets from the new made wound, which kept continually playing, while the natural spout-hole in his head was only at intervals, however rapid, sending its affrighted moisture into the air. From this last vent no blood yet came, because no vital part of him had thus far been struck. His life, as they significantly call it, was untouched.

His movements clearly showed his extreme exhaustion. Most land animals have certain valves or floodgates in many of their veins that help stop the blood flow in certain directions when they’re injured. That’s not the case with the whale; one of its unique features is that it has a completely non-valvular structure in its blood vessels. So, when it’s pierced by something as small as a harpoon, a deadly drain on its entire arterial system immediately begins. With the added pressure of water deep below the surface, it can be said that its life pours out in continuous streams. However, the sheer volume of blood it has, along with distant and numerous internal sources, allows it to keep bleeding for quite a while—much like a river that keeps flowing during a drought, drawing from hidden springs in far-off hills. Even now, as the boats pulled on this whale and dangerously drew over its swaying tail flukes, and the lances were thrust into it, steady jets of blood erupted from the newly made wounds, continuously spraying, while the natural spout hole in its head intermittently released frightened moisture into the air. At this point, no blood came from that last opening because no vital part of the whale had been struck yet. Its life, as they significantly refer to it, was still intact.

As the boats now more closely surrounded him, the whole upper part of his form, with much of it that is ordinarily submerged, was plainly revealed. His eyes, or rather the places where his eyes had been, were beheld. As strange misgrown masses gather in the knot-holes of the noblest oaks when prostrate, so from the points which the whale's eyes had once occupied, now protruded blind bulbs, horribly pitiable to see. But pity there was none. For all his old age, and his one arm, and his blind eyes, he must die the death and be murdered, in order to light the gay bridals and other merry-makings of men, and also to illuminate the solemn churches that preach unconditional inoffensiveness by all to all. Still rolling in his blood, at last he partially disclosed a strangely discolored bunch or protuberance, the size of a bushel, low down on the flank.

As the boats now surrounded him more closely, the entire upper part of his body, including much of what is usually underwater, was clearly visible. His eyes, or rather the spots where his eyes had been, were exposed. Just like odd growths that form in the knot-holes of fallen oaks, blind bulbs stuck out from where the whale's eyes used to be, grotesquely pitiful to look at. But there was no pity. Despite his old age, his single arm, and his blind eyes, he had to face death and be brutally killed so that men could celebrate their joyous weddings and other festivities, as well as light up the solemn churches that preach unconditional kindness from everyone to everyone. Still rolling in his blood, he finally revealed a strangely discolored bulge about the size of a bushel, low on his side.

"A nice spot," cried Flask; "just let me prick him there once."

"A nice spot," shouted Flask; "just let me stab him there once."

"Avast!" cried Starbuck, "there's no need of that!"

"Stop!" shouted Starbuck, "there's no need for that!"

But humane Starbuck was too late. At the instant of the dart an ulcerous jet shot from this cruel wound, and goaded by it into more than sufferable anguish, the whale now spouting thick blood, with swift fury blindly darted at the craft, bespattering them and their glorying crews all over with showers of gore, capsizing Flask's boat and marring the bows. It was his death stroke. For, by this time, so spent was he by loss of blood, that he helplessly rolled away from the wreck he had made; lay panting on his side, impotently flapped with his stumped fin, then over and over slowly revolved like a waning world; turned up the white secrets of his belly; lay like a log, and died. It was most piteous, that last expiring spout. As when by unseen hands the water is gradually drawn off from some mighty fountain, and with half-stifled melancholy gurglings the spray-column lowers and lowers to the ground— so the last long dying spout of the whale.

But kind Starbuck was too late. At the moment the dart struck, a stream of thick blood shot from the cruel wound, and driven by pain beyond what he could bear, the whale, now spewing blood, lunged at the boat in a fury, splattering its crew with streams of gore, capsizing Flask's boat and damaging the bow. It was his fatal moment. By this point, he had lost so much blood that he helplessly rolled away from the destruction he had caused; he lay gasping on his side, weakly flapping his mangled fin, then slowly turning over like a fading star; exposing the white underside of his belly; lying like a log, and ultimately dying. That final spout was truly heartbreaking. It was like watching a great fountain slowly run dry, the water gradually being pulled away by unseen forces, with muffled, sorrowful gurgles as the spray dwindled down to the ground—just like the whale's last long dying spout.

Soon, while the crews were awaiting the arrival of the ship, the body showed symptoms of sinking with all its treasures unrifled. Immediately, by Starbuck's orders, lines were secured to it at different points, so that ere long every boat was a buoy; the sunken whale being suspended a few inches beneath them by the cords. By very heedful management, when the ship drew nigh, the whale was transferred to her side, and was strongly secured there by the stiffest fluke-chains, for it was plain that unless artificially upheld, the body would at once sink to the bottom.

Soon, while the crews were waiting for the ship to arrive, the whale showed signs of sinking with all its treasures untouched. Immediately, at Starbuck's orders, lines were secured to it at different points, so that before long every boat was acting as a buoy; the sunken whale was suspended a few inches below them by the cords. With careful management, when the ship got closer, the whale was transferred to her side and was strongly secured there with the sturdiest fluke-chains, because it was clear that unless it was artificially supported, the body would sink right to the bottom.

It so chanced that almost upon first cutting into him with the spade, the entire length of a corroded harpoon was found imbedded in his flesh, on the lower part of the bunch before described. But as the stumps of harpoons are frequently found in the dead bodies of captured whales, with the flesh perfectly healed around them, and no prominence of any kind to denote their place; therefore, there must needs have been some other unknown reason in the present case fully to account for the ulceration alluded to. But still more curious was the fact of a lance-head of stone being found in him, not far from the buried iron, the flesh perfectly firm about it. Who had darted that stone lance? And when? It might have been darted by some Nor' West Indian long before America was discovered.

It just so happened that almost immediately after cutting into him with the spade, the whole length of a rusted harpoon was discovered embedded in his flesh, in the lower part of the mass described earlier. However, since the stumps of harpoons are often found in the dead bodies of captured whales, with the flesh perfectly healed around them and no abnormality to show where they are located, there must have been some other unknown reason in this particular case to explain the mentioned ulceration. Even more intriguing was the fact that a stone lance-head was found in him, not far from the buried iron, with the flesh completely firm around it. Who had thrown that stone lance? And when? It could have been thrown by some Nor' West Indian long before America was discovered.

What other marvels might have been rummaged out of this monstrous cabinet there is no telling. But a sudden stop was put to further discoveries, by the ship's being unprecedentedly dragged over sideways to the sea, owing to the body's immensely increasing tendency to sink. However, Starbuck, who had the ordering of affairs, hung on to it to the last; hung on to it so resolutely, indeed, that when at length the ship would have been capsized, if still persisting in locking arms with the body; then, when the command was given to break clear from it, such was the immovable strain upon the timber-heads to which the fluke-chains and cables were fastened, that it was impossible to cast them off. Meantime everything in the Pequod was aslant. To cross to the other side of the deck was like walking up the steep gabled roof of a house. The ship groaned and gasped. Many of the ivory inlayings of her bulwarks and cabins were started from their places, by the unnatural dislocation. In vain handspikes and crows were brought to bear upon the immovable fluke-chains, to pry them adrift from the timberheads; and so low had the whale now settled that the submerged ends could not be at all approached, while every moment whole tons of ponderosity seemed added to the sinking bulk, and the ship seemed on the point of going over.

What other wonders might have been discovered in this enormous cabinet is unknown. But further discoveries came to an abrupt end when the ship was unexpectedly dragged sideways into the sea because of its overwhelming tendency to sink. However, Starbuck, who was in charge, held on to it until the very end; he was so determined that when the ship was about to capsize as it stubbornly clung to the body, the order was finally given to break free. But the strain on the timber heads, where the fluke chains and cables were attached, was so great that it was impossible to loosen them. Meanwhile, everything on the Pequod was tilted. Crossing to the other side of the deck felt like climbing the steep roof of a house. The ship creaked and gasped. Many of the ivory inlays on her bulwarks and cabins were dislodged due to the unnatural angle. In vain, handspikes and crowbars were used to try to pry the stubborn fluke chains loose from the timber heads. The whale had sunk so low that the submerged ends were completely out of reach, and with every moment, it felt like tons of weight were added to the sinking mass, as the ship seemed on the verge of capsizing.

"Hold on, hold on, won't ye?" cried Stubb to the body, "don't be in such a devil of a hurry to sink! By thunder, men, we must do something or go for it. No use prying there; avast, I say with your handspikes, and run one of ye for a prayer book and a pen-knife, and cut the big chains."

"Wait, wait, will you?" shouted Stubb to the crew, "don't rush to sink! Come on, guys, we need to do something or we'll be in trouble. No point in prying around; stop messing around with your handspikes, and one of you go get a prayer book and a knife, and cut the big chains."

"Knife? Aye, aye," cried Queequeg, and seizing the carpenter's heavy hatchet, he leaned out of a porthole, and steel to iron, began slashing at the largest fluke-chains. But a few strokes, full of sparks, were given, when the exceeding strain effected the rest. With a terrific snap, every fastening went adrift; the ship righted, the carcase sank.

"Knife? Yes, yes," yelled Queequeg, and grabbing the carpenter's heavy hatchet, he leaned out of a porthole and, with steel against iron, started chopping at the largest fluke-chains. After just a few strikes, showering sparks, the immense pressure caused everything to give way. With a loud snap, every fastening came loose; the ship steadied, and the carcass sank.

Now, this occasional inevitable sinking of the recently killed Sperm Whale is a very curious thing; nor has any fisherman yet adequately accounted for it. Usually the dead Sperm Whale floats with great buoyancy, with its side or belly considerably elevated above the surface. If the only whales that thus sank were old, meagre, and broken-hearted creatures, their pads of lard diminished and all their bones heavy and rheumatic; then you might with some reason assert that this sinking is caused by an uncommon specific gravity in the fish so sinking, consequent upon this absence of buoyant matter in him. But it is not so. For young whales, in the highest health, and swelling with noble aspirations, prematurely cut off in the warm flush and May of life, with all their panting lard about them! even these brawny, buoyant heroes do sometimes sink.

Now, this occasional and inevitable sinking of a recently killed Sperm Whale is a very curious phenomenon, and no fisherman has yet fully explained it. Usually, the dead Sperm Whale floats very buoyantly, with its side or belly raised significantly above the surface. If the only whales that sank were old, thin, and broken-hearted creatures, with their fat reduced and all their bones heavy and stiff, then you might reasonably argue that this sinking is due to an unusual specific gravity in the whale, caused by the lack of buoyant matter in it. But that isn’t the case. Because young whales, in perfect health and brimming with potential, cut off too soon in the warm flush of life, with all their rich fat surrounding them—even these strong, buoyant creatures sometimes sink.

Be it said, however, that the Sperm Whale is far less liable to this accident than any other species. Where one of that sort go down, twenty Right Whales do. This difference in the species is no doubt imputable in no small degree to the greater quantity of bone in the Right Whale; his Venetian blinds alone sometimes weighing more than a ton; from this incumbrance the Sperm Whale is wholly free. But there are instances where, after the lapse of many hours or several days, the sunken whale again rises, more buoyant than in life. But the reason of this is obvious. Gases are generated in him; he swells to a prodigious magnitude; becomes a sort of animal balloon. A line-of-battle ship could hardly keep him under then. In the Shore Whaling, on soundings, among the Bays of New Zealand, when a Right Whale gives token of sinking, they fasten buoys to him, with plenty of rope; so that when the body has gone down, they know where to look for it when it shall have ascended again.

It's worth noting that the Sperm Whale is much less likely to have this problem compared to other species. For every Sperm Whale that goes under, about twenty Right Whales do. This difference in species likely comes from the fact that the Right Whale has a lot more bone; its baleen alone can weigh over a ton. The Sperm Whale isn’t burdened by this at all. However, there are cases where, after many hours or even several days, a sunken whale will resurface, more buoyant than when it was alive. The reason is clear: gases build up inside it; it expands to an enormous size, almost like an animal balloon. A battleship would struggle to keep it down at that point. In Shore Whaling in the bays of New Zealand, when a Right Whale shows signs of sinking, they attach buoys to it with lots of rope, so they know where to find it when it comes back up.

It was not long after the sinking of the body that a cry was heard from the Pequod's mast-heads, announcing that the Jungfrau was again lowering her boats; though the only spout in sight was that of a Fin-Back, belonging to the species of uncapturable whales, because of its incredible power of swimming. Nevertheless, the Fin-Back's spout is so similar to the Sperm Whale's, that by unskilful fishermen it is often mistaken for it. And consequently Derick and all his host were now in valiant chase of this unnearable brute. The Virgin crowding all sail, made after her four young keels, and thus they all disappeared far to leeward, still in bold, hopeful chase.

It wasn't long after the body sank that a shout came from the peak of the Pequod, announcing that the Jungfrau was once again launching her boats; although the only spout visible was that of a Fin-Back, a type of whale that's notoriously hard to catch because of its incredible swimming ability. However, the Fin-Back's spout looks so much like that of the Sperm Whale that inexperienced fishermen often confuse the two. As a result, Derick and his crew were now bravely pursuing this elusive creature. The Virgin, with all sails set, raced after her four young boats, and together they disappeared far downwind, still in bold, hopeful pursuit.

Oh! many are the Fin-Backs, and many are the Dericks, my friend.

Oh! there are many Fin-Backs, and many Dericks, my friend.

CHAPTER 82

The Honor and Glory of Whaling

The Honor and Glory of Whaling

There are some enterprises in which a careful disorderliness is the true method.

There are some businesses where a deliberate chaos is the real approach.

The more I dive into this matter of whaling, and push my researches up to the very spring-head of it so much the more am I impressed with its great honorableness and antiquity; and especially when I find so many great demi-gods and heroes, prophets of all sorts, who one way or other have shed distinction upon it, I am transported with the reflection that I myself belong, though but subordinately, to so emblazoned a fraternity.

The more I explore the issue of whaling and dig deep into its origins, the more I realize how honorable and ancient it is. Especially when I discover so many legendary figures, heroes, and various prophets who have celebrated it in different ways, I feel a rush of pride to be part of such a distinguished community, even if it's just in a small way.

The gallant Perseus, a son of Jupiter, was the first whaleman; and to the eternal honor of our calling be it said, that the first whale attacked by our brotherhood was not killed with any sordid intent. Those were the knightly days of our profession, when we only bore arms to succor the distressed, and not to fill men's lamp-feeders. Every one knows the fine story of Perseus and Andromeda; how the lovely Andromeda, the daughter of a king, was tied to a rock on the sea-coast, and as Leviathan was in the very act of carrying her off, Perseus, the prince of whalemen, intrepidly advancing, harpooned the monster, and delivered and married the maid. It was an admirable artistic exploit, rarely achieved by the best harpooneers of the present day; inasmuch as this Leviathan was slain at the very first dart. And let no man doubt this Arkite story; for in the ancient Joppa, now Jaffa, on the Syrian coast, in one of the Pagan temples, there stood for many ages the vast skeleton of a whale, which the city's legends and all the inhabitants asserted to be the identical bones of the monster that Perseus slew. When the Romans took Joppa, the same skeleton was carried to Italy in triumph. What seems most singular and suggestively important in this story, is this: it was from Joppa that Jonah set sail.

The brave Perseus, a son of Jupiter, was the first whaleman; and to the everlasting pride of our profession be it said, that the first whale taken by our community was not killed for any greedy purpose. Those were the noble days of our craft, when we only took up arms to help the needy, and not to fill men’s lamps. Everyone knows the great story of Perseus and Andromeda; how the beautiful Andromeda, the daughter of a king, was tied to a rock by the sea, and as the Leviathan was about to carry her away, Perseus, the prince of whalemen, bravely advanced, harpooned the beast, and rescued and married the maiden. It was an impressive feat, rarely matched by the best harpooners today; as this Leviathan was killed with the very first throw. And let no one doubt this Arkite story; for in the ancient Joppa, now Jaffa, on the Syrian coast, there stood for many ages the enormous skeleton of a whale in one of the Pagan temples, which the city’s legends and all its people claimed was the very skeleton of the monster that Perseus defeated. When the Romans captured Joppa, the same skeleton was taken to Italy in triumph. What seems most unique and notably significant in this tale is this: it was from Joppa that Jonah set sail.

Akin to the adventure of Perseus and Andromeda—indeed, by some supposed to be indirectly derived from it—is that famous story of St. George and the Dragon; which dragon I maintain to have been a whale; for in many old chronicles whales and dragons are strangely jumbled together, and often stand for each other. "Thou art as a lion of the waters, and as a dragon of the sea," said Ezekiel; hereby, plainly meaning a whale; in truth, some versions of the Bible use that word itself. Besides, it would much subtract from the glory of the exploit had St. George but encountered a crawling reptile of the land, instead of doing battle with the great monster of the deep. Any man may kill a snake, but only a Perseus, a St. George, a Coffin, have the heart in them to march boldly up to a whale.

Similar to the adventure of Perseus and Andromeda—indeed, some believe it’s indirectly inspired by it—is the well-known story of St. George and the Dragon; which I argue was actually a whale. In many ancient records, whales and dragons are mixed up, often standing in for each other. "You are like a lion of the waters, and like a dragon of the sea," said Ezekiel; clearly referring to a whale; in fact, some Bible versions use that word directly. Plus, it would really take away from the glory of the feat if St. George had just faced a crawling land reptile instead of battling the great monster of the ocean. Any man can kill a snake, but only a Perseus, a St. George, a Coffin, has the courage to boldly face a whale.

Let not the modern paintings of this scene mislead us; for though the creature encountered by that valiant whaleman of old is vaguely represented of a griffin-like shape, and though the battle is depicted on land and the saint on horseback, yet considering the great ignorance of those times, when the true form of the whale was unknown to artists; and considering that as in Perseus' case, St. George's whale might have crawled up out of the sea on the beach; and considering that the animal ridden by St. George might have been only a large seal, or sea-horse; bearing all this in mind, it will not appear altogether incompatible with the sacred legend and the ancientest draughts of the scene, to hold this so-called dragon no other than the great Leviathan himself. In fact, placed before the strict and piercing truth, this whole story will fare like that fish, flesh, and fowl idol of the Philistines, Dagon by name; who being planted before the ark of Israel, his horse's head and both the palms of his hands fell off from him, and only the stump or fishy part of him remained. Thus, then, one of our own noble stamp, even a whaleman, is the tutelary guardian of England; and by good rights, we harpooneers of Nantucket should be enrolled in the most noble order of St. George. And therefore, let not the knights of that honorable company (none of whom, I venture to say, have ever had to do with a whale like their great patron), let them never eye a Nantucketer with disdain, since even in our woollen frocks and tarred trowsers we are much better entitled to St. George's decoration than they.

Let’s not be misled by the modern paintings of this scene. Although the creature faced by that brave whaleman from long ago is shown as something like a griffin, and the battle is depicted on land with the saint on horseback, we have to remember how little people understood back then when the true shape of the whale was unknown to artists. Just like in Perseus' story, St. George's whale might have crawled out of the sea onto the shore. The animal St. George rode could have been just a large seal or sea horse. Considering all this, it doesn’t seem completely off-base to view this so-called dragon as nothing other than the great Leviathan itself. In fact, when faced with the harsh and clear truth, this entire tale resembles that fish, flesh, and fowl idol of the Philistines called Dagon. When Dagon was placed before the ark of Israel, his horse's head and both of his hands fell off, leaving only the stump or fishy part behind. So, our own noble kind, a whaleman, is the guardian of England. By rights, we whalers from Nantucket should be included in the most noble order of St. George. Therefore, let the knights of that esteemed company (none of whom, I bet, have ever dealt with a whale like their great patron) never look down on a Nantucketer. Even in our woolen coats and tarred trousers, we are far more deserving of St. George's decoration than they are.

Whether to admit Hercules among us or not, concerning this I long remained dubious: for though according to the Greek mythologies, that antique Crockett and Kit Carson—that brawny doer of rejoicing good deeds, was swallowed down and thrown up by a whale; still, whether that strictly makes a whaleman of him, that might be mooted. It nowhere appears that he ever actually harpooned his fish, unless, indeed, from the inside. Nevertheless, he may be deemed a sort of involuntary whaleman; at any rate the whale caught him, if he did not the whale. I claim him for one of our clan.

Whether to include Hercules among us or not, I was uncertain for a long time: even though in Greek mythology, that old-school version of Crockett and Kit Carson—this strong hero known for doing good deeds—was swallowed and then regurgitated by a whale; it still raises the question of whether that really makes him a whaleman. There's no evidence that he ever actually harpooned a whale, unless it was from the inside. Still, he could be considered a sort of unintentional whaleman; in any case, the whale captured him, if he didn’t capture the whale. I claim him as part of our crew.

But, by the best contradictory authorities, this Grecian story of Hercules and the whale is considered to be derived from the still more ancient Hebrew story of Jonah and the whale; and vice versa; certainly they are very similar. If I claim the demigod then, why not the prophet?

But, according to the best contradictory sources, this Greek tale of Hercules and the whale is thought to come from the even older Hebrew story of Jonah and the whale; and the reverse is also true; they are definitely quite similar. If I can claim the demigod, then why not the prophet?

Nor do heroes, saints, demigods, and prophets alone comprise the whole roll of our order. Our grand master is still to be named; for like royal kings of old times, we find the head-waters of our fraternity in nothing short of the great gods themselves. That wondrous oriental story is now to be rehearsed from the Shaster, which gives us the dread Vishnoo, one of the three persons in the godhead of the Hindoos; gives us this divine Vishnoo himself for our Lord;—Vishnoo, who, by the first of his ten earthly incarnations, has for ever set apart and sanctified the whale. When Brahma, or the God of Gods, saith the Shaster, resolved to recreate the world after one of its periodical dissolutions, he gave birth to Vishnoo, to preside over the work; but the Vedas, or mystical books, whose perusal would seem to have been indispensable to Vishnoo before beginning the creation, and which therefore must have contained something in the shape of practical hints to young architects, these Vedas were lying at the bottom of the waters; so Vishnoo became incarnate in a whale, and sounding down in him to the uttermost depths, rescued the sacred volumes. Was not this Vishnoo a whaleman, then? even as a man who rides a horse is called a horseman?

Nor do heroes, saints, demigods, and prophets alone make up the entire list of our order. Our grand master is yet to be named; for like royal kings of ancient times, we find the origins of our fraternity in nothing less than the great gods themselves. That incredible eastern story is about to be recounted from the Shaster, which presents us with the formidable Vishnoo, one of the three aspects of the Hindu godhead; it gives us this divine Vishnoo himself as our Lord—Vishnoo, who, through the first of his ten earthly incarnations, has forever set apart and sanctified the whale. When Brahma, or the God of Gods, says the Shaster, decided to recreate the world after one of its periodic destructions, he gave birth to Vishnoo to oversee the work; however, the Vedas, or mystical texts, which Vishnoo seemed to need to read before starting creation, and which must have contained practical hints for young architects, were lying at the bottom of the waters; so Vishnoo took on the form of a whale, and by diving deep within him to the very depths, rescued the sacred texts. Wasn't this Vishnoo a whaleman, then? Just as a man who rides a horse is called a horseman?

Perseus, St. George, Hercules, Jonah, and Vishnoo! there's a member-roll for you! What club but the whaleman's can head off like that?

Perseus, St. George, Hercules, Jonah, and Vishnu! There's a lineup for you! What club but the whaleman's can boast that?

CHAPTER 83

Jonah Historically Regarded

Jonah Historically Viewed

Reference was made to the historical story of Jonah and the whale in the preceding chapter. Now some Nantucketers rather distrust this historical story of Jonah and the whale. But then there were some sceptical Greeks and Romans, who, standing out from the orthodox pagans of their times, equally doubted the story of Hercules and the whale, and Arion and the dolphin; and yet their doubting those traditions did not make those traditions one whit the less facts, for all that.

Reference was made to the historical story of Jonah and the whale in the preceding chapter. Now some people from Nantucket are somewhat skeptical about this story of Jonah and the whale. However, there were also some doubtful Greeks and Romans who, unlike the traditional pagans of their time, questioned the tales of Hercules and the whale, and Arion and the dolphin; yet their doubts about those stories did not make those stories any less real, despite that.

One old Sag-Harbor whaleman's chief reason for questioning the Hebrew story was this:—He had one of those quaint old-fashioned Bibles, embellished with curious, unscientific plates; one of which represented Jonah's whale with two spouts in his head—a peculiarity only true with respect to a species of the Leviathan (the Right Whale, and the varieties of that order), concerning which the fishermen have this saying, "A penny roll would choke him"; his swallow is so very small. But, to this, Bishop Jebb's anticipative answer is ready. It is not necessary, hints the Bishop, that we consider Jonah as tombed in the whale's belly, but as temporarily lodged in some part of his mouth. And this seems reasonable enough in the good Bishop. For truly, the Right Whale's mouth would accommodate a couple of whist-tables, and comfortably seat all the players. Possibly, too, Jonah might have ensconced himself in a hollow tooth; but, on second thoughts, the Right Whale is toothless.

One old Sag Harbor whaleman's main reason for doubting the Hebrew story was this: he had one of those quirky, old-fashioned Bibles filled with strange, unscientific illustrations; one of which depicted Jonah's whale with two spouts on its head—a detail that only applies to a specific type of Leviathan (the Right Whale and its varieties), about which fishermen say, "A penny roll would choke him"; his throat is so tiny. However, Bishop Jebb's anticipatory response is available. He suggests that we don't need to think of Jonah as being trapped in the whale's belly, but rather as being temporarily lodged in some part of its mouth. This seems quite reasonable from the good Bishop's perspective. After all, the Right Whale's mouth could fit a couple of card tables and comfortably seat all the players. It’s also possible that Jonah might have settled into a hollow tooth; but on second thought, the Right Whale has no teeth.

Another reason which Sag-Harbor (he went by that name) urged for his want of faith in this matter of the prophet, was something obscurely in reference to his incarcerated body and the whale's gastric juices. But this objection likewise falls to the ground, because a German exegetist supposes that Jonah must have taken refuge in the floating body of a dead whale— even as the French soldiers in the Russian campaign turned their dead horses into tents, and crawled into them. Besides, it has been divined by other continental commentators, that when Jonah was thrown overboard from the Joppa ship, he straightway effected his escape to another vessel near by, some vessel with a whale for a figure-head; and, I would add, possibly called "The Whale," as some craft are nowadays christened the "Shark," the "Gull," the "Eagle." Nor have there been wanting learned exegetists who have opined that the whale mentioned in the book of Jonah merely meant a life-preserver—an inflated bag of wind—which the endangered prophet swam to, and so was saved from a watery doom. Poor Sag-Harbor, therefore, seems worsted all round. But he had still another reason for his want of faith. It was this, if I remember right: Jonah was swallowed by the whale in the Mediterranean Sea, and after three days' he was vomited up somewhere within three days' journey of Nineveh, a city on the Tigris, very much more than three days' journey across from the nearest point of the Mediterranean coast. How is that?

Another reason that Sag-Harbor (that was his name) gave for his lack of faith in the prophet's story was something vague about his imprisoned body and the whale's stomach juices. But this objection doesn't hold up either, because a German scholar suggests that Jonah must have found shelter in the floating body of a dead whale—just like the French soldiers in the Russian campaign used their dead horses as makeshift tents to crawl into. Additionally, other European scholars have proposed that when Jonah was thrown overboard from the ship in Joppa, he immediately escaped to another nearby vessel, possibly one with a whale for a figurehead; and I would add, maybe called "The Whale," similar to how some boats today are named "Shark," "Gull," or "Eagle." There have also been learned scholars who have argued that the whale mentioned in the book of Jonah simply referred to a life-preserver—an inflated bag of air—that the endangered prophet swam to in order to be saved from drowning. So, poor Sag-Harbor seems to be at a loss all around. But he had one more reason for his lack of faith. If I remember correctly, it was this: Jonah was swallowed by the whale in the Mediterranean Sea, and after three days, he was vomited up somewhere within a three-day journey to Nineveh, a city on the Tigris, which is much more than a three-day journey from the nearest point on the Mediterranean coast. How does that work?

But was there no other way for the whale to land the prophet within that short distance of Nineveh? Yes. He might have carried him round by the way of the Cape of Good Hope. But not to speak of the passage through the whole length of the Mediterranean, and another passage up the Persian Gulf and Red Sea, such a supposition would involve the complete circumnavigation of all Africa in three days, not to speak of the Tigris waters, near the site of Nineveh, being too shallow for any whale to swim in. Besides, this idea of Jonah's weathering the Cape of Good Hope at so early a day would wrest the honor of the discovery of that great headland from Bartholomew Diaz, its reputed discoverer, and so make modern history a liar.

But was there really no other way for the whale to drop off the prophet close to Nineveh? Yes. It could have taken him around the Cape of Good Hope. But aside from the journey through the entire Mediterranean and then up the Persian Gulf and Red Sea, such a scenario would mean completely circling all of Africa in just three days, not to mention the Tigris waters near Nineveh being too shallow for any whale to swim in. Plus, the idea of Jonah somehow getting past the Cape of Good Hope at such an early time would take away the credit for discovering that landmark from Bartholomew Diaz, who is said to have found it, making modern history a falsehood.

But all these foolish arguments of old Sag-Harbor only evinced his foolish pride of reason—a thing still more reprehensible in him, seeing that he had but little learning except what he had picked up from the sun and the sea. I say it only shows his foolish, impious pride, and abominable, devilish rebellion against the reverend clergy. For by a Portuguese Catholic priest, this very idea of Jonah's going to Nineveh via the Cape of Good Hope was advanced as a signal magnification of the general miracle. And so it was. Besides, to this day, the highly enlightened Turks devoutly believe in the historical story of Jonah. And some three centuries ago, an English traveller in old Harris's Voyages, speaks of a Turkish Mosque built in honor of Jonah, in which Mosque was a miraculous lamp that burnt without any oil.

But all these silly arguments from old Sag-Harbor just showed his ridiculous pride in his own reasoning—a quality that’s even more disgraceful given that he had little knowledge beyond what he learned from the sun and the sea. It's clear this highlights his foolish, irreverent pride and his rebellious attitude towards the respected clergy. A Portuguese Catholic priest once suggested that Jonah's journey to Nineveh via the Cape of Good Hope was an extraordinary enhancement of the overall miracle. And it was. Furthermore, even today, the well-informed Turks sincerely believe in the historic story of Jonah. About three centuries ago, an English traveler in old Harris's Voyages mentioned a Turkish mosque built in honor of Jonah, which housed a miraculous lamp that burned without oil.

CHAPTER 84

Pitchpoling

Pitchpoling

To make them run easily and swiftly, the axles of carriages are anointed; and for much the same purpose, some whalers perform an analogous operation upon their boat; they grease the bottom. Nor is it to be doubted that as such a procedure can do no harm, it may possibly be of no contemptible advantage; considering that oil and water are hostile; that oil is a sliding thing, and that the object in view is to make the boat slide bravely. Queequeg believed strongly in anointing his boat, and one morning not long after the German ship Jungfrau disappeared, took more than customary pains in that occupation; crawling under its bottom, where it hung over the side, and rubbing in the unctuousness as though diligently seeking to insure a crop of hair from the craft's bald keel. He seemed to be working in obedience to some particular presentiment. Nor did it remain unwarranted by the event.

To help them run smoothly and quickly, the axles of carriages are oiled; similarly, some whalers do a comparable thing to their boat by greasing the bottom. There’s no doubt that while this practice can’t hurt, it might offer some significant benefits, considering that oil and water don’t mix, oil is slippery, and the goal is to make the boat glide effortlessly. Queequeg firmly believed in oiling his boat, and one morning, shortly after the German ship Jungfrau vanished, he took extra care with this task; crawling under the boat where it hung over the side and rubbing in the grease as if he were trying to ensure that the craft's bald keel would sprout hair. He seemed to be responding to some instinctive feeling. This proved to be justified by what happened next.

Towards noon whales were raised; but so soon as the ship sailed down to them, they turned and fled with swift precipitancy; a disordered flight, as of Cleopatra's barges from Actium.

Towards noon, whales were spotted; but as soon as the ship approached them, they quickly turned and swam away in a hurried panic, like Cleopatra's ships fleeing from Actium.

Nevertheless, the boats pursued, and Stubb's was foremost. By great exertion, Tashtego at last succeeded in planting one iron; but the stricken whale, without at all sounding, still continued his horizontal flight, with added fleetness. Such unintermitted strainings upon the planted iron must sooner or later inevitably extract it. It became imperative to lance the flying whale, or be content to lose him. But to haul the boat up to his flank was impossible, he swam so fast and furious. What then remained?

Nevertheless, the boats chased after it, and Stubb's was in the lead. With a lot of effort, Tashtego finally managed to plant one iron; however, the wounded whale, without diving at all, continued to swim horizontally, even faster than before. The constant tension on the planted iron would eventually pull it out. It was crucial to stab the moving whale or accept that they would lose him. But getting the boat up to his side was impossible because he swam so quickly and wildly. So what could they do next?

Of all the wondrous devices and dexterities, the sleights of hand and countless subtleties, to which the veteran whaleman is so often forced, none exceed that fine manoeuvre with the lance called pitchpoling. Small sword, or broad sword, in all its exercises boasts nothing like it. It is only indispensable with an inveterate running whale; its grand fact and feature is the wonderful distance to which the long lance is accurately darted from a violently rocking, jerking boat, under extreme headway. Steel and wood included, the entire spear is some ten or twelve feet in length; the staff is much slighter than that of the harpoon, and also of a lighter material—pine. It is furnished with a small rope called a warp, of considerable length, by which it can be hauled back to the hand after darting.

Of all the amazing tools and skills, the tricks and countless techniques that experienced whalemen often rely on, none are more impressive than the precise maneuver with the lance known as pitchpoling. Neither a small sword nor a broad sword, in all its forms, can compare to it. It's essential when dealing with a stubbornly fleeing whale; its main highlight is the impressive distance the long lance can be accurately thrown from a wildly rocking, bouncing boat, while moving fast. The entire spear, including the steel and wood, is about ten or twelve feet long; the shaft is much slimmer than that of the harpoon and made of lighter material—pine. It comes with a long rope called a warp, which allows it to be pulled back to the hand after being thrown.

But before going further, it is important to mention here, that though the harpoon may be pitchpoled in the same way with the lance, yet it is seldom done; and when done, is still less frequently successful, on account of the greater weight and inferior length of the harpoon as compared with the lance, which in effect become serious drawbacks. As a general thing, therefore, you must first get fast to a whale, before any pitchpoling comes into play.

But before moving on, it's important to note that while the harpoon can be pitchpoled like the lance, it is rarely attempted; and when it is, it's even less likely to succeed due to the greater weight and shorter length of the harpoon compared to the lance, which are significant disadvantages. Generally speaking, you need to first secure a grip on a whale before pitchpoling comes into play.

Look now at Stubb; a man who from his humorous, deliberate coolness and equanimity in the direst emergencies, was specially qualified to excel in pitchpoling. Look at him; he stands upright in the tossed bow of the flying boat; wrapt in fleecy foam, the towing whale is forty feet ahead. Handling the long lance lightly, glancing twice or thrice along its length to see if it be exactly straight, Stubb whistlingly gathers up the coil of the warp in one hand, so as to secure its free end in his grasp, leaving the rest unobstructed. Then holding the lance full before his waistband's middle, he levels it at the whale; when, covering him with it, he steadily depresses the butt-end in his hand, thereby elevating the point till the weapon stands fairly balanced upon his palm, fifteen feet in the air. He minds you somewhat of a juggler, balancing a long staff on his chin. Next moment with a rapid, nameless impulse, in a superb lofty arch the bright steel spans the foaming distance, and quivers in the life spot of the whale. Instead of sparkling water, he now spouts red blood.

Look at Stubb now; a guy who, with his humor, calm demeanor, and ability to stay cool in the worst situations, was particularly good at pitchpoling. Check him out; he’s standing upright in the tossed bow of the speeding boat; surrounded by frothy foam, the whale he's towing is forty feet ahead. He lightly handles the long lance, glancing a couple of times along its length to make sure it’s perfectly straight, while he whistlingly gathers the coil of the line in one hand to secure its free end, leaving the rest clear. Then, holding the lance in front of his waistband, he aims it at the whale; as he covers it, he pushes the butt end down, lifting the point until the weapon balances on his palm, fifteen feet in the air. He kind of reminds you of a juggler balancing a long staff on his chin. In the next moment, with a quick, instinctive move, the gleaming steel arcs gracefully through the foamy air and hits the whale in its vital spot. Instead of splashing water, it now spurts out red blood.

"That drove the spigot out of him!" cried Stubb. "'Tis July's immortal Fourth; all fountains must run wine today! Would now, it were old Orleans whiskey, or old Ohio, or unspeakable old Monongahela! Then, Tashtego, lad, I'd have ye hold a canakin to the jet, and we'd drink round it! Yea, verily, hearts alive, we'd brew choice punch in the spread of his spout-hole there, and from that live punch-bowl quaff the living stuff."

"That really got him going!" shouted Stubb. "It's the Fourth of July; all fountains should flow with wine today! I wish it were old Orleans whiskey, or old Ohio, or that unforgettable old Monongahela! Then, Tashtego, my friend, I'd have you hold a cup to the stream, and we'd all drink together! Yes, truly, we'd make some fantastic punch right from that spout, and from that living punch bowl, we'd drink up the good stuff."

Again and again to such gamesome talk, the dexterous dart is repeated, the spear returning to its master like a greyhound held in skilful leash. The agonized whale goes into his flurry; the tow-line is slackened, and the pitchpoler dropping astern, folds his hands, and mutely watches the monster die.

Again and again in such playful conversation, the skilled dart is thrown, the spear coming back to its owner like a greyhound on a tight leash. The distressed whale thrashes around; the tow-line is loosened, and the pitchpole operator falls back, folds his hands, and silently watches the beast perish.

CHAPTER 85

The Fountain

The Fountain

That for six thousand years—and no one knows how many millions of ages before—the great whales should have been spouting all over the sea, and sprinkling and mistifying the gardens of the deep, as with so many sprinkling or mistifying pots; and that for some centuries back, thousands of hunters should have been close by the fountain of the whale, watching these sprinklings and spoutings— that all this should be, and yet, that down to this blessed minute (fifteen and a quarter minutes past one o'clock P.M. of this sixteenth day of December, A.D. 1851), it should still remain a problem, whether these spoutings are, after all, really water, or nothing but vapor—this is surely a noteworthy thing.

That for six thousand years—and who knows how many millions of years before that—the great whales have been spouting all over the ocean, spraying and misting the gardens of the deep like countless sprinkling pots; and that for centuries, thousands of hunters have been close to the whales’ fountain, watching these sprays and spouts— that all of this should be, and yet, down to this very minute (fifteen minutes past one o'clock P.M. on this sixteenth day of December, A.D. 1851), it remains uncertain whether these spouts are actually water or just vapor—this is certainly something remarkable.

Let us, then, look at this matter, along with some interesting items contingent. Every one knows that by the peculiar cunning of their gills, the finny tribes in general breathe the air which at all times is combined with the element in which they swim; hence, a herring or a cod might live a century, and never once raise its head above the surface. But owing to his marked internal structure which gives him regular lungs, like a human being's, the whale can only live by inhaling the disengaged air in the open atmosphere. Wherefore the necessity for his periodical visits to the upper world. But he cannot in any degree breathe through his mouth, for, in his ordinary attitude, the Sperm Whale's mouth is buried at least eight feet beneath the surface; and what is still more, his windpipe has no connexion with his mouth. No, he breathes through his spiracle alone; and this is on the top of his head.

Let’s take a look at this topic, along with some related points. Everyone knows that due to the unique design of their gills, fish can breathe the air that’s always mixed with the water they live in; for this reason, a herring or cod can live for a hundred years without ever coming up for air. However, because of his distinct internal structure, which includes lungs similar to a human's, the whale can only survive by inhaling the free air in the open atmosphere. This is why he needs to periodically visit the surface. But he can’t breathe through his mouth at all, since, typically, the Sperm Whale's mouth is at least eight feet underwater; even more importantly, his windpipe isn’t connected to his mouth. Instead, he breathes solely through his spiracle, which is located on top of his head.

If I say, that in any creature breathing is only a function indispensable to vitality, inasmuch as it withdraws from the air a certain element, which being subsequently brought into contact with the blood imparts to the blood its vivifying principle, I do not think I shall err; though I may possibly use some superfluous scientific words. Assume it, and it follows that if all the blood in a man could be aerated with one breath, he might then seal up his nostrils and not fetch another for a considerable time. That is to say, he would then live without breathing. Anomalous as it may seem, this is precisely the case with the whale, who systematically lives, by intervals, his full hour and more (when at the bottom) without drawing a single breath, or so much as in any way inhaling a particle of air; for, remember, he has no gills. How is this? Between his ribs and on each side of his spine he is supplied with a remarkable involved Cretan labyrinth of vermicelli-like vessels, which vessels, when he quits the surface, are completely distended with oxygenated blood. So that for an hour or more, a thousand fathoms in the sea, he carries a surplus stock of vitality in him, just as the camel crossing the waterless desert carries a surplus supply of drink for future use in its four supplementary stomachs. The anatomical fact of this labyrinth is indisputable; and that the supposition founded upon it is reasonable and true, seems the more cogent to me, when I consider the otherwise inexplicable obstinacy of that leviathan in having his spoutings out, as the fishermen phrase it. This is what I mean. If unmolested, upon rising to the surface, the Sperm Whale will continue there for a period of time exactly uniform with all his other unmolested risings. Say he stays eleven minutes, and jets seventy times, that is, respires seventy breaths; then whenever he rises again, he will be sure to have his seventy breaths over again, to a minute. Now, if after he fetches a few breaths you alarm him, so that he sounds, he will be always dodging up again to make good his regular allowance of air. And not till those seventy breaths are told, will he finally go down to stay out his full term below. Remark, however, that in different individuals these rates are different; but in any one they are alike. Now, why should the whale thus insist upon having his spoutings out, unless it be to replenish his reservoir of air, ere descending for good? How obvious it is it, too, that this necessity for the whale's rising exposes him to all the fatal hazards of the chase. For not by hook or by net could this vast leviathan be caught, when sailing a thousand fathoms beneath the sunlight. Not so much thy skill, then, O hunter, as the great necessities that strike the victory to thee!

If I say that breathing is an essential function for any living creature because it extracts a certain element from the air, which then interacts with the blood to give it its life-giving quality, I don't think I'll be wrong; though I might use some unnecessary scientific terms. Assume it’s true, and it follows that if all the blood in a person could be oxygenated with one breath, they could then seal their nostrils and not need to breathe again for quite a while. In other words, they could live without breathing for a time. As strange as it sounds, this is exactly how whales operate, as they can consistently remain at the bottom for an hour or more without taking a single breath, or even inhaling any air; remember, they don’t have gills. How does this work? Between their ribs and along each side of their spine, they have an impressive, complex network of small vessels, resembling a Cretan labyrinth, which, when they dive, are fully filled with oxygenated blood. So, for an hour or more underwater, even at depths of a thousand fathoms, they carry a reserve of vitality, much like a camel crossing a dry desert carries a supply of water for later use in its four extra stomachs. The anatomical reality of this network is unquestionable; and the idea based on it seems even more convincing to me when I think about why this enormous creature insists on releasing spouts, as fishermen put it. Here’s what I mean. If undisturbed, when the sperm whale rises to the surface, it will stay there for a time that matches its previous surface intervals. If it stays for eleven minutes and blows out seventy times, that means it takes seventy breaths; then, every time it surfaces again, it will take those same seventy breaths within a minute. However, if it takes a few breaths and gets startled, causing it to dive again, it will always come back up to ensure it gets its usual air supply. It won't finally go down for its complete time below until those seventy breaths are accounted for. Note that different whales have different rates, but each individual is consistent. Now, why would a whale insist on releasing spouts if not to refill its air supply before settling down for good? It’s also clear that this need to surface exposes the whale to all the dangers of being hunted. For this massive creature cannot be caught by hook or net when swimming a thousand fathoms beneath the sunlight. It's not just your skill, O hunter, but the great needs that bring victory your way!

In man, breathing is incessantly going on—one breath only serving for two or three pulsations; so that whatever other business he has to attend to, waking or sleeping, breathe he must, or die he will. But the Sperm Whale only breathes about one seventh or Sunday of his time.

In humans, breathing is a continuous process—each breath lasts only for two or three heartbeats; so whatever else he needs to focus on, whether awake or asleep, he must breathe or he will die. However, the Sperm Whale only breathes about one-seventh of the time.

It has been said that the whale only breathes through his spout-hole; if it could truthfully be added that his spouts are mixed with water, then I opine we should be furnished with the reason why his sense of smell seems obliterated in him; for the only thing about him that at all answers to his nose is that identical spout-hole; and being so clogged with two elements, it could not be expected to have the power of smelling. But owing to the mystery of the spout—whether it be water or whether it be vapor—no absolute certainty can as yet be arrived at on this head. Sure it is, nevertheless, that the Sperm Whale has no proper olfactories. But what does he want of them? No roses, no violets, no Cologne-water in the sea.

It’s been said that whales only breathe through their spout holes; if we could honestly say their spouts are mixed with water, then I think we’d understand why their sense of smell seems to be gone. The only thing that resembles a nose is that same spout hole, and since it’s blocked with two substances, it’s not surprising that it can’t smell. But because of the mystery of the spout—whether it's water or vapor—there’s no definite answer on this point yet. But it’s clear that the Sperm Whale doesn’t have a proper sense of smell. But what does it need one for? No roses, no violets, no cologne in the ocean.

Furthermore, as his windpipe solely opens into the tube of his spouting canal, and as that long canal—like the grand Erie Canal— is furnished with a sort of locks (that open and shut) for the downward retention of air or the upward exclusion of water, therefore the whale has no voice; unless you insult him by saying, that when he so strangely rumbles, he talks through his nose. But then again, what has the whale to say? Seldom have I known any profound being that had anything to say to this world, unless forced to stammer out something by way of getting a living. Oh! happy that the world is such an excellent listener!

Furthermore, since his windpipe only connects to the tube of his spouting canal, and this long canal—much like the grand Erie Canal—is equipped with a type of locks (that open and close) for holding air down or pushing water up, the whale has no voice; unless you argue that when he rumbles in that strange way, he’s talking through his nose. But then again, what does the whale have to say? I’ve rarely encountered any profound being that had anything to say to this world, unless they were forced to stammer out something just to make a living. Oh! how fortunate that the world is such a great listener!

Now, the spouting canal of the Sperm Whale, chiefly intended as it is for the conveyance of air, and for several feet laid along, horizontally, just beneath the upper surface of his head, and a little to one side; this curious canal is very much like a gas-pipe laid down in a city on one side of a street. But the question returns whether this gas-pipe is also a water-pipe; in other words, whether the spout of the Sperm Whale is the mere vapor of the exhaled breath, or whether that exhaled breath is mixed with water taken in at the mouth, and discharged through the spiracle. It is certain that the mouth indirectly communicates with the spouting canal; but it cannot be proved that this is for the purpose of discharging water through the spiracle. Because the greatest necessity for so doing would seem to be, when in feeding he accidentally takes in water. But the Sperm Whale's food is far beneath the surface, and there he cannot spout even if he would. Besides, if you regard him very closely, and time him with your watch, you will find that when unmolested, there is an undeviating rhyme between the periods of his jets and the ordinary periods of respiration.

Now, the spouting canal of the Sperm Whale, mainly designed for the passage of air, runs horizontally for several feet, just under the upper surface of its head and a little to one side. This peculiar canal is quite similar to a gas pipe laid down in a city along one side of the street. However, the question arises as to whether this gas pipe also functions as a water pipe; in other words, whether the Sperm Whale's spout consists solely of vapor from its exhaled breath, or if that breath is mixed with water taken in through its mouth and expelled through the spiracle. It’s clear that the mouth connects indirectly with the spouting canal, but it can't be proven that this connection is meant for discharging water through the spiracle. The main reason for doing so would seem to be when the whale accidentally takes in water while feeding. However, the Sperm Whale's food is located far beneath the surface, and it can't spout even if it wanted to while feeding. Furthermore, if you observe it closely and time it with your watch, you'll notice a consistent pattern between the timing of its jets and its normal breathing intervals.

But why pester one with all this reasoning on the subject? Speak out! You have seen him spout; then declare what the spout is; can you not tell water from air? My dear sir, in this world it is not so easy to settle these plain things. I have ever found your plain things the knottiest of all. And as for this whale spout, you might almost stand in it, and yet be undecided as to what it is precisely.

But why bother with all this reasoning? Just say it! You've seen him spray; so explain what the spray is; can you not tell water from air? My dear sir, in this world, it’s not so simple to settle these obvious things. I have always found your obvious things the most complicated of all. And regarding this whale spray, you could almost stand in it and still be unsure about what it actually is.

The central body of it is hidden in the snowy sparkling mist enveloping it; and how can you certainly tell whether any water falls from it, when, always, when you are close enough to a whale to get a close view of his spout, he is in a prodigious commotion, the water cascading all around him. And if at such times you should think that you really perceived drops of moisture in the spout, how do you know that they are not merely condensed from its vapor; or how do you know that they are not those identical drops superficially lodged in the spout-hole fissure, which is countersunk into the summit of the whale's head? For even when tranquilly swimming through the mid-day sea in a calm, with his elevated hump sun-dried as a dromedary's in the desert; even then, the whale always carries a small basin of water on his head, as under a blazing sun you will sometimes see a cavity in a rock filled up with rain.

The main part of it is hidden in the snowy, sparkling mist surrounding it; and how can you really know if any water falls from it when, every time you get close enough to a whale to see its spout, it’s in a huge frenzy, water splashing all around it? And if, in those moments, you think you see drops of moisture in the spout, how do you know they’re not just condensed from its vapor? Or how can you be sure they aren’t those exact drops stuck in the spout-hole crevice, which is recessed into the top of the whale's head? Even when it’s peacefully swimming through the calm mid-day sea, with its raised back sun-dried like a camel's in the desert; even then, the whale always has a small basin of water on its head, much like how you might see a hollowed-out rock filled with rainwater under a scorching sun.

Nor is it at all prudent for the hunter to be over curious touching the precise nature of the whale spout. It will not do for him to be peering into it, and putting his face in it. You cannot go with your pitcher to this fountain and fill it, and bring it away. For even when coming into slight contact with the outer, vapory shreds of the jet, which will often happen, your skin will feverishly smart, from the acridness of the thing so touching it. And I know one, who coming into still closer contact with the spout, whether with some scientific object in view, or otherwise, I cannot say, the skin peeled off from his cheek and arm. Wherefore, among whalemen, the spout is deemed poisonous; they try to evade it. Another thing; I have heard it said, and I do not much doubt it, that if the jet is fairly spouted into your eyes, it will blind you. The wisest thing the investigator can do then, it seems to me, is to let this deadly spout alone.

Nor is it wise for the hunter to be overly curious about the exact nature of the whale spout. It’s not smart for him to peer into it or stick his face near it. You can't just bring a pitcher to this fountain and fill it up to take away. Even when you come into light contact with the misty bits of the jet, which happens often, your skin will sting from the irritants in it. I know someone who got even closer to the spout, whether for scientific reasons or not, I can't say, but he had skin peeled off his cheek and arm. So, among whalemen, the spout is considered poisonous and they try to avoid it. I've also heard, and I believe it, that if the jet sprays directly into your eyes, it can blind you. The smartest thing for the investigator to do, it seems to me, is to steer clear of this dangerous spout.

Still, we can hypothesize, even if we cannot prove and establish. My hypothesis is this: that the spout is nothing but mist. And besides other reasons, to this conclusion I am impelled, by considerations touching the great inherent dignity and sublimity of the Sperm Whale; I account him no common, shallow being, inasmuch as it is an undisputed fact that he is never found on soundings, or near shores; all other whales sometimes are. He is both ponderous and profound. And I am convinced that from the heads of all ponderous profound beings, such as Plato, Pyrrho, the Devil, Jupiter, Dante, and so on, there always goes up a certain semi-visible steam, while in the act of thinking deep thoughts. While composing a little treatise on Eternity, I had the curiosity to place a mirror before me; and ere long saw reflected there, a curious involved worming and undulation in the atmosphere over my head. The invariable moisture of my hair, while plunged in deep thought, after six cups of hot tea in my thin shingled attic, of an August noon; this seems an additional argument for the above supposition.

Still, we can speculate, even if we can't prove or confirm it. My theory is this: that the spout is just mist. And besides other reasons, I am driven to this conclusion by considering the great inherent dignity and majesty of the Sperm Whale; I don't see him as an ordinary shallow creature, since it’s a well-known fact that he's never found in shallow waters or near shores; other whales sometimes are. He is both massive and profound. I believe that from the minds of all heavy, deep-thinking beings, like Plato, Pyrrho, the Devil, Jupiter, Dante, and others, there is always a certain semi-visible vapor rising when they contemplate deep thoughts. While writing a little piece on Eternity, I got curious and placed a mirror in front of me; soon I saw reflected in it a strange twisting and undulation in the air above my head. The constant dampness of my hair while lost in deep thought, after six cups of hot tea in my small attic on a warm August noon, seems to add another point in favor of this idea.

And how nobly it raises our conceit of the mighty, misty monster, to behold him solemnly sailing through a calm tropical sea; his vast, mild head overhung by a canopy of vapor, engendered by his incommunicable contemplations, and that vapor— as you will sometimes see it—glorified by a rainbow, as if Heaven itself had put its seal upon his thoughts. For d'ye see, rainbows do not visit the clear air; they only irradiate vapor. And so, through all the thick mists of the dim doubts in my mind, divine intuitions now and then shoot, enkindling my fog with a heavenly ray. And for this I thank God; for all have doubts; many deny; but doubts or denials, few along with them, have intuitions. Doubts of all things earthly, and intuitions of some things heavenly; this combination makes neither believer nor infidel, but makes a man who regards them both with equal eye.

And how wonderfully it boosts our admiration for the great, mysterious creature to see him solemnly gliding across a calm tropical sea; his huge, gentle head shaded by a cloud of mist, created by his unshareable thoughts, and that mist—like you sometimes see—brightened by a rainbow, as if Heaven itself had stamped its approval on his ideas. Because, you see, rainbows don’t appear in clear air; they only light up mist. And so, through all the thick fog of doubts swirling in my mind, divine insights occasionally shine through, lighting up my haze with a heavenly glow. For this, I thank God; everyone has doubts; many deny them; but few, alongside their doubts or denials, have insights. Doubts about everything earthly, and insights into some things heavenly; this mix creates neither a believer nor an atheist, but a person who views both with equal attention.

CHAPTER 86

The Tail

The Tail

Other poets have warbled the praises of the soft eye of the antelope, and the lovely plumage of the bird that never alights; less celestial, I celebrate a tail.

Other poets have sung the praises of the gentle gaze of the antelope and the beautiful feathers of the bird that never lands; less divine, I celebrate a tail.

Reckoning the largest sized Sperm Whale's tail to begin at that point of the trunk where it tapers to about the girth of a man, it comprises upon its upper surface alone, an area of at least fifty square feet. The compact round body of its root expands into two broad, firm, flat palms or flukes, gradually shoaling away to less than an inch in thickness. At the crotch or junction, these flukes slightly overlap, then sideways recede from each other like wings, leaving a wide vacancy between. In no living thing are the lines of beauty more exquisitely defined than in the crescentic borders of these flukes. At its utmost expansion in the full grown whale, the tail will considerably exceed twenty feet across.

Considering the largest Sperm Whale's tail starts at the point where the trunk narrows to about the size of a man, its upper surface alone covers an area of at least fifty square feet. The solid round body of its base widens into two broad, firm, flat flukes that gradually taper to less than an inch in thickness. At the junction where these flukes meet, they slightly overlap and then move away from each other like wings, creating a wide gap in between. In no other living creature are the lines of beauty more perfectly defined than in the crescent-shaped edges of these flukes. When fully expanded in an adult whale, the tail can be more than twenty feet wide.

The entire member seems a dense webbed bed of welded sinews; but cut into it, and you find that three distinct strata compose it:—upper, middle, and lower. The fibres in the upper and lower layers, are long and horizontal; those of the middle one, very short, and running crosswise between the outside layers. This triune structure, as much as anything else, imparts power to the tail. To the student of old Roman walls, the middle layer will furnish a curious parallel to the thin course of tiles always alternating with the stone in those wonderful relics of the antique, and which undoubtedly contribute so much to the great strength of the masonry.

The whole member looks like a thick, webbed mass of intertwined muscles; but if you slice into it, you'll see that it's made up of three distinct layers: upper, middle, and lower. The fibers in the upper and lower layers are long and run horizontally, while those in the middle layer are very short and oriented crosswise between the outer layers. This three-part structure, among other things, gives strength to the tail. For anyone studying ancient Roman walls, the middle layer serves as an interesting comparison to the thin rows of tiles that consistently alternate with the stone in those remarkable remnants of the past, which undoubtedly add significantly to the impressive strength of the masonry.

But as if this vast local power in the tendinous tail were not enough, the whole bulk of the leviathan is knit over with a warp and woof of muscular fibres and filaments, which passing on either side the loins and running down into the flukes, insensibly blend with them, and largely contribute to their might; so that in the tail the confluent measureless force of the whole whale seems concentrated to a point. Could annihilation occur to matter, this were the thing to do it.

But as if the immense local power in the tail wasn't enough, the entire body of the whale is covered with a network of muscle fibers, which extend from either side of the lower back down into the tail. These fibers blend seamlessly and significantly add to their strength, so that in the tail, the immense power of the whole whale seems focused to a single point. If anything could cause matter to vanish, this would be it.

Nor does this—its amazing strength, at all tend to cripple the graceful flexion of its motions; where infantileness of ease undulates through a Titanism of power. On the contrary, those motions derive their most appalling beauty from it. Real strength never impairs beauty or harmony, but it often bestows it; and in everything imposingly beautiful, strength has much to do with the magic. Take away the tied tendons that all over seem bursting from the marble in the carved Hercules, and its charm would be gone. As devout Eckerman lifted the linen sheet from the naked corpse of Goethe, he was overwhelmed with the massive chest of the man, that seemed as a Roman triumphal arch. When Angelo paints even God the Father in human form, mark what robustness is there. And whatever they may reveal of the divine love in the Son, the soft, curled, hermaphroditical Italian pictures, in which his idea has been most successfully embodied; these pictures, so destitute as they are of all brawniness, hint nothing of any power, but the mere negative, feminine one of submission and endurance, which on all hands it is conceded, form the peculiar practical virtues of his teachings.

Nor does this—its incredible strength—ever hinder the graceful flexibility of its movements, where the ease of youth flows through a power reminiscent of a giant. On the contrary, those movements gain their most stunning beauty from it. True strength never diminishes beauty or harmony; often, it enhances them, and in everything impressively beautiful, strength plays a significant role in the enchantment. Remove the taut tendons that seem to burst from the marble in the carved Hercules, and its allure would vanish. When devoted Eckerman lifted the linen sheet from Goethe's naked body, he was struck by the man’s massive chest, which resembled a Roman triumphal arch. When Michelangelo paints even God the Father in human form, notice the robustness present. And while they may express the divine love in the Son, the soft, curled, and androgynous Italian paintings, in which his idea has been best captured; these images, so lacking in muscle, suggest nothing of real power, only the passive, feminine qualities of submission and endurance, which are widely acknowledged as the unique practical virtues of his teachings.

Such is the subtle elasticity of the organ I treat of, that whether wielded in sport, or in earnest, or in anger, whatever be the mood it be in, its flexions are invariably marked by exceeding grace. Therein no fairy's arm can transcend it.

The flexibility of the organ I’m talking about is so subtle that whether it’s used for fun, seriously, or in anger, its movements are always characterized by incredible grace, no matter the mood. No fairy's arm can surpass it.

Five great motions are peculiar to it. First, when used as a fin for progression; Second, when used as a mace in battle; Third, in sweeping; Fourth, in lobtailing; Fifth, in peaking flukes.

Five great movements are unique to it. First, when it's used as a fin for moving forward; second, when it's used as a club in battle; third, in sweeping; fourth, in lobtailing; fifth, in peaking flukes.

First: Being horizontal in its position, the Leviathan's tail acts in a different manner from the tails of all other sea creatures. It never wriggles. In man or fish, wriggling is a sign of inferiority. To the whale his tail is the sole means of propulsion. Scroll-wise coiled forwards beneath the body, and then rapidly sprung backwards, it is this which gives that singular darting, leaping motion to the monster when furiously swimming. His side-fins only serve to steer by.

First: With its horizontal position, the Leviathan's tail works differently than the tails of all other sea creatures. It never wriggles. In humans or fish, wriggling indicates inferiority. For the whale, its tail is the only way to propel itself. Coiled forward under its body and then quickly snapped back, it creates that unique darting, leaping motion when it swims furiously. Its side fins are just for steering.

Second: It is a little significant, that while one sperm whale only fights another sperm whale with his head and jaw, nevertheless, in his conflicts with man, he chiefly and contemptuously uses his tail. In striking at a boat, he swiftly curves away his flukes from it, and the blow is only inflicted by the recoil. If it be made in the unobstructed air, especially if it descend to its mark, the stroke is then simply irresistible. No ribs of man or boat can withstand it. Your only salvation lies in eluding it; but if it comes sideways through the opposing water, then partly owing to the light buoyancy of the whale-boat, and the elasticity of its materials, a cracked rib or a dashed plank or two, a sort of stitch in the side, is generally the most serious result. These submerged side blows are so often received in the fishery, that they are accounted mere child's play. Some one strips off a frock, and the hole is stopped.

Second: It's a bit interesting that while a sperm whale only uses its head and jaw to fight another sperm whale, it primarily and disdainfully uses its tail in conflicts with humans. When it strikes a boat, it quickly curves its flukes away, and the impact is only felt from the recoil. If the strike happens in open air, especially if it comes down directly, the force is absolutely unstoppable. No human bones or boats can handle it. The only way to survive is to avoid it; however, if it comes in sideways through the water, then due to the light buoyancy of the whale boat and the flexibility of its materials, a cracked rib or a few damaged planks, along with some bruising, is usually the worst outcome. These underwater side blows are so common in the fishery that they are considered child’s play. Someone just takes off a shirt, and the hole is patched up.

Third: I cannot demonstrate it, but it seems to me, that in the whale the sense of touch is concentrated in the tail; for in this respect there is a delicacy in it only equalled by the daintiness of the elephant's trunk. This delicacy is chiefly evinced in the action of sweeping, when in maidenly gentleness the whale with a certain soft slowness moves his immense flukes from side to side upon the surface of the sea; and if he feel but a sailor's whisker, woe to that sailor, whiskers and all. What tenderness there is in that preliminary touch! Had this tail any prehensile power, I should straightway bethink me of Darmonodes' elephant that so frequented the flower-market, and with low salutations presented nosegays to damsels, and then caressed their zones. On more accounts than one, a pity it is that the whale does not possess this prehensile virtue in his tail; for I have heard of yet another elephant, that when wounded in the fight, curved round his trunk and extracted the dart.

Third: I can’t prove it, but it seems to me that in a whale, the sense of touch is concentrated in the tail; because in this way, it has a delicacy that’s only matched by the finesse of an elephant's trunk. This delicacy is mainly shown in the sweeping motion, where the whale gently moves its massive flukes from side to side on the ocean's surface. And if it only brushes against a sailor’s whisker, that sailor is in trouble, whiskers and all. What tenderness there is in that initial touch! If this tail had any grabbing ability, I would instantly think of Darmonodes' elephant that often visited the flower market, bowed low to present bouquets to young women, and then gently touched their waists. For more than one reason, it's a shame that the whale doesn’t have this gripping ability in its tail; I’ve heard of another elephant that, when injured in battle, curled its trunk around and pulled out the spear.

Fourth: Stealing unawares upon the whale in the fancied security of the middle of solitary seas, you find him unbent from the vast corpulence of his dignity, and kitten-like, he plays on the ocean as if it were a hearth. But still you see his power in his play. The broad palms of his tail are flirted high into the air! then smiting the surface, the thunderous concussion resounds for miles. You would almost think a great gun had been discharged; and if you noticed the light wreath of vapor from the spiracle at his other extremity, you would think that that was the smoke from the touch-hole.

Fourth: Sneaking up on the whale in the imagined safety of the middle of empty seas, you find him relaxed and playful, as if the vastness of his dignity doesn’t matter, and like a kitten, he interacts with the ocean as if it’s his home. But you can still see his power in his antics. The wide flukes of his tail are flung high into the air! Then, when he brings it down, the loud splash echoes for miles. You might almost think a cannon had gone off; and if you noticed the light plume of vapor from the blowhole at his other end, you would think that was smoke from the cannon.

Fifth: As in the ordinary floating posture of the leviathan the flukes lies considerably below the level of his back, they are then completely out of sight beneath the surface; but when he is about to plunge into the deeps, his entire flukes with at least thirty feet of his body are tossed erect in the air, and so remain vibrating a moment, till they downwards shoot out of view. Excepting the sublime breach— somewhere else to be described—this peaking of the whale's flukes is perhaps the grandest sight to be seen in all animated nature. Out of the bottomless profundities the gigantic tail seems spasmodically snatching at the highest heaven. So in dreams, have I seen majestic Satan thrusting forth his tormented colossal claw from the flame Baltic of Hell. But in gazing at such scenes, it is all in all what mood you are in; if in the Dantean, the devils will occur to you; if in that of Isaiah, the archangels. Standing at the mast-head of my ship during a sunrise that crimsoned sky and sea, I once saw a large herd of whales in the east, all heading towards the sun, and for a moment vibrating in concert with peaked flukes. As it seemed to me at the time, such a grand embodiment of adoration of the gods was never beheld, even in Persia, the home of the fire worshippers. As Ptolemy Philopater testified of the African elephant, I then testified of the whale, pronouncing him the most devout of all beings. For according to King Juba, the military elephants of antiquity often hailed the morning with their trunks uplifted in the profoundest silence.

Fifth: In the standard floating position of the leviathan, the tail flukes are usually well below the level of its back, making them completely hidden beneath the surface. However, just before it dives into the depths, it thrusts its entire flukes, along with at least thirty feet of its body, up into the air, where they stay momentarily vibrating before disappearing from view. Aside from the spectacular breach—described elsewhere—this rising of the whale's flukes is likely the most majestic sight in all of nature. From the deep, the enormous tail appears to be frantically reaching for the heavens. In dreams, I've imagined a grand Satan emerging with his tortured, colossal claw from the burning depths of Hell. But when witnessing scenes like this, your mindset totally influences your perception; if you're feeling like Dante, you'll think of devils; if you're channeling Isaiah, you'll envision archangels. Once, while standing at the mast-head of my ship during a sunrise that turned the sky and sea crimson, I spotted a large group of whales in the east, all moving toward the sun and momentarily moving in unison with their lifted flukes. At that moment, I thought that such a magnificent expression of worship had never been seen, even in Persia, the land of fire worshippers. Just as Ptolemy Philopater spoke about the African elephant, I could only proclaim the whale as the most devoted of all creatures. According to King Juba, the war elephants of ancient times often greeted the morning with their trunks raised in deep silence.

The chance comparison in this chapter, between the whale and the elephant, so far as some aspects of the tail of the one and the trunk of the other are concerned, should not tend to place those two opposite organs on an equality, much less the creatures to which they respectively belong. For as the mightiest elephant is but a terrier to Leviathan, so, compared with Leviathan's tail, his trunk is but the stalk of a lily. The most direful blow from the elephant's trunk were as the playful tap of a fan, compared with the measureless crush and crash of the sperm whale's ponderous flukes, which in repeated instances have one after the other hurled entire boats with all their oars and crews into the air, very much as an Indian juggler tosses his balls.*

The comparison in this chapter between the whale and the elephant, especially regarding some features of the whale's tail and the elephant's trunk, shouldn’t suggest that these two very different organs are equal, much less the animals they belong to. Just as the strongest elephant is like a small dog next to the Leviathan, the elephant's trunk is merely a lily stalk when compared to the whale's tail. The most devastating hit from an elephant’s trunk would feel like a gentle tap from a fan compared to the immense force of a sperm whale’s massive flukes, which have repeatedly launched entire boats, with all their crew and oars, into the air, similar to how an Indian juggler tosses his balls.*

*Though all comparison in the way of general bulk between the whale and the elephant is preposterous, inasmuch as in that particular the elephant stands in much the same respect to the whale that a dog does to the elephant; nevertheless, there are not wanting some points of curious similitude; among these is the spout. It is well known that the elephant will often draw up water or dust in his trunk, and then elevating it, jet it forth in a stream.

*Although comparing the whale and the elephant in terms of size is ridiculous, since the elephant is to the whale what a dog is to the elephant, there are still some interesting similarities. One of these is the spout. It's well known that elephants often suck up water or dust into their trunks and then raise it up to spray it out in a stream.*

The more I consider this mighty tail, the more do I deplore my inability to express it. At times there are gestures in it, which, though they would well grace the hand of man, remain wholly inexplicable. In an extensive herd, so remarkable, occasionally, are these mystic gestures, that I have heard hunters who have declared them akin to Free-Mason signs and symbols; that the whale, indeed, by these methods intelligently conversed with the world. Nor are there wanting other motions of the whale in his general body, full of strangeness, and unaccountable to his most experienced assailant. Dissect him how I may, then, I but go skin deep. I know him not, and never will. But if I know not even the tail of this whale, how understand his head? much more, how comprehend his face, when face he has none? Thou shalt see my back parts, my tail, he seems to say, but my face shall not be seen. But I cannot completely make out his back parts; and hint what he will about his face, I say again he has no face.

The more I think about this amazing tail, the more I regret my inability to describe it. Sometimes it has gestures that, while they would look great coming from a human hand, are completely mysterious. In a large group, these strange gestures are so notable that I've heard hunters claim they resemble Masonic signs and symbols, suggesting that the whale knowingly communicates with the world through them. There are also other movements of the whale’s entire body that are puzzling and beyond the understanding of even the most seasoned whale hunters. No matter how I dissect it, I can only scratch the surface. I don't truly know it, and I never will. But if I can't even grasp the tail of this whale, how can I understand its head? Even more so, how can I comprehend its face when it doesn’t even have one? It seems to say, you can see my back and my tail, but you shall not see my face. Yet, I can’t fully understand its back either, and regardless of what it hints about its face, I maintain that it has no face.

CHAPTER 87

The Grand Armada

The Grand Armada

The long and narrow peninsula of Malacca, extending south-eastward from the territories of Birmah, forms the most southerly point of all Asia. In a continuous line from that peninsula stretch the long islands of Sumatra, Java, Bally, and Timor; which, with many others, form a vast mole, or rampart, lengthwise connecting Asia with Australia, and dividing the long unbroken Indian ocean from the thickly studded oriental archipelagoes. This rampart is pierced by several sally-ports for the convenience of ships and whales; conspicuous among which are the straits of Sunda and Malacca. By the straits of Sunda, chiefly, vessels bound to China from the west, emerge into the China seas.

The long and narrow Malacca Peninsula stretches southeast from present-day Myanmar and marks the southernmost point of Asia. A continuous line of long islands, including Sumatra, Java, Bali, and Timor, extends from this peninsula, forming a massive barrier that connects Asia to Australia and separates the vast, uninterrupted Indian Ocean from the densely populated eastern archipelagos. This barrier has several passages for the convenience of ships and whales, with the Strait of Sunda and the Strait of Malacca being the most notable. The Strait of Sunda is primarily where ships heading to China from the west enter the South China Sea.

Those narrow straits of Sunda divide Sumatra from Java; and standing midway in that vast rampart of islands, buttressed by that bold green promontory, known to seamen as Java Head; they not a little correspond to the central gateway opening into some vast walled empire: and considering the inexhaustible wealth of spices, and silks, and jewels, and gold, and ivory, with which the thousand islands of that oriental sea are enriched, it seems a significant provision of nature, that such treasures, by the very formation of the land, should at least bear the appearance, however ineffectual, of being guarded from the all-grasping western world. The shores of the Straits of Sunda are unsupplied with those domineering fortresses which guard the entrances to the Mediterranean, the Baltic, and the Propontis. Unlike the Danes, these Orientals do not demand the obsequious homage of lowered top-sails from the endless procession of ships before the wind, which for centuries past, by night and by day, have passed between the islands of Sumatra and Java, freighted with the costliest cargoes of the east. But while they freely waive a ceremonial like this, they do by no means renounce their claim to more solid tribute.

Those narrow straits of Sunda separate Sumatra from Java; and standing in the middle of that vast collection of islands, supported by that prominent green landform known to sailors as Java Head; they somewhat resemble the central gateway opening into a great walled empire. Considering the endless wealth of spices, silks, jewels, gold, and ivory that the thousand islands of that eastern sea hold, it seems like a remarkable aspect of nature that such treasures, due to the way the land is shaped, should at least seem, however ineffective, to be protected from the all-consuming western world. The shores of the Straits of Sunda lack the imposing fortifications that guard the entrances to the Mediterranean, the Baltic, and the Propontis. Unlike the Danes, these easterners don’t require the submissive gesture of lowered sails from the endless stream of ships that have passed between Sumatra and Java for centuries, day and night, carrying the most valuable goods from the east. But while they willingly forgo such a ceremony, they certainly don’t give up their right to more tangible rewards.

Time out of mind the piratical proas of the Malays, lurking among the low shaded coves and islets of Sumatra, have sallied out upon the vessels sailing through the straits, fiercely demanding tribute at the point of their spears. Though by the repeated bloody chastisements they have received at the hands of European cruisers, the audacity of these corsairs has of late been somewhat repressed; yet, even at the present day, we occasionally hear of English and American vessels, which, in those waters, have been remorselessly boarded and pillaged.

For a long time, the pirate proas of the Malays, hiding among the shaded coves and small islands of Sumatra, have attacked ships passing through the straits, aggressively demanding tribute at spearpoint. Although they have faced severe punishment from European warships, which has somewhat limited their boldness, we still occasionally hear about English and American vessels being ruthlessly boarded and robbed in those waters.

With a fair, fresh wind, the Pequod was now drawing nigh to these straits; Ahab purposing to pass through them into the Java sea, and thence, cruising northwards, over waters known to be frequented here and there by the Sperm Whale, sweep inshore by the Philippine Islands, and gain the far coast of Japan, in time for the great whaling season there. By these means, the circumnavigating Pequod would sweep almost all the known Sperm Whale cruising grounds of the world, previous to descending upon the Line in the Pacific; where Ahab, though everywhere else foiled in his pursuit, firmly counted upon giving battle to Moby Dick, in the sea he was most known to frequent; and at a season when he might most reasonably be presumed to be haunting it.

With a nice, fresh breeze, the Pequod was getting closer to these straits; Ahab planned to go through them into the Java Sea, and then, heading north, travel over waters known to be occasionally visited by the Sperm Whale, glide inshore by the Philippine Islands, and reach the far coast of Japan just in time for the big whaling season there. With this strategy, the circling Pequod would cover almost all the known Sperm Whale hunting grounds in the world before heading down to the Line in the Pacific; where Ahab, despite being thwarted in his pursuit everywhere else, confidently expected to confront Moby Dick in the waters he was most familiar with and at a time when he would most likely be around.

But how now? in this zoned quest, does Ahab touch no land? does his crew drink air? Surely, he will stop for water. Nay. For a long time, now, the circus-running sun has raced within his fiery ring, and needs no sustenance but what's in himself. So Ahab. Mark this, too, in the whaler. While other hulls are loaded down with alien stuff, to be transferred to foreign wharves; the world-wandering whale-ship carries no cargo but herself and crew, their weapons and their wants. She has a whole lake's contents bottled in her ample hold. She is ballasted with utilities; not altogether with unusable pig-lead and kentledge. She carries years' water in her. Clear old prime Nantucket water; which, when three years afloat, the Nantucketer, in the Pacific, prefers to drink before the brackish fluid, but yesterday rafted off in casks, from the Peruvian or Indian streams. Hence it is, that, while other ships may have gone to China from New York, and back again, touching at a score of ports, the whale-ship, in all that interval, may not have sighted one grain of soil; her crew having seen no man but floating seamen like themselves. So that did you carry them the news that another flood had come; they would only answer—"Well, boys, here's the ark!"

But how about this? In this focused journey, does Ahab not reach land? Does his crew only breathe air? Surely, he would stop for water. No. For a long time now, the blazing sun has been racing in his fiery path, needing no nourishment except what’s within himself. This is Ahab. Notice this as well in the whaler. While other ships are loaded with foreign goods to be taken to distant ports, the whale-ship carries no cargo but herself and her crew, their tools, and their necessities. She has a whole lake’s worth of water stored in her spacious hold. She’s weighted down with practical supplies; not just unusable pig lead and excess gear. She holds years’ worth of water inside her. Pure, aged Nantucket water; which, when three years at sea, the Nantucketer prefers over the salty water just brought on board from Peruvian or Indian streams. That’s why, while other ships might have sailed to China from New York and back, stopping at a dozen ports, the whale-ship may not have seen a single grain of land in that time; her crew having only met other fishermen like themselves. So if you told them news that another flood had come, they would just respond—"Well, boys, here's the ark!"

Now, as many Sperm Whales had been captured off the western coast of Java, in the near vicinity of the Straits of Sunda; indeed, as most of the ground, roundabout, was generally recognised by the fishermen as an excellent spot for cruising; therefore, as the Pequod gained more and more upon Java Head, the look-outs were repeatedly hailed, and admonished to keep wide awake. But though the green palmy cliffs of the land soon loomed on the starboard bow, and with delighted nostrils the fresh cinnamon was snuffed in the air, yet not a single jet was descried. Almost renouncing all thought of falling in with any game hereabouts, the ship had well nigh entered the straits, when the customary cheering cry was heard from aloft, and ere long a spectacle of singular magnificence saluted us.

Now, since many Sperm Whales had been caught off the western coast of Java, near the Straits of Sunda; and since most of the surrounding area was generally known by the fishermen as a great spot for cruising; as the Pequod approached Java Head, the lookouts were frequently called out and urged to stay alert. But even though the green palm-covered cliffs of the land soon appeared on the starboard bow, and the fresh scent of cinnamon filled the air, not a single spout was spotted. Almost giving up hope of finding any whales in this area, the ship was just about to enter the straits when the usual cheering cry came from above, and soon we were greeted by a breathtaking sight.

But here be it premised, that owing to the unwearied activity with which of late they have been hunted over all four oceans, the Sperm Whales, instead of almost invariably sailing in small detached companies, as in former times, are now frequently met with in extensive herds, sometimes embracing so great a multitude, that it would almost seem as if numerous nations of them had sworn solemn league and covenant for mutual assistance and protection. To this aggregation of the Sperm Whale into such immense caravans, may be imputed the circumstance that even in the best cruising grounds, you may now sometimes sail for weeks and months together, without being greeted by a single spout; and then be suddenly saluted by what sometimes seems thousands on thousands.

But it should be noted that, due to the relentless hunting they've faced across all four oceans recently, Sperm Whales, instead of often traveling in small, separate groups like they used to, are now frequently found in large herds. Sometimes these herds are so massive that it almost feels like many nations of whales have made a solemn agreement for mutual support and protection. This gathering of Sperm Whales into such huge groups explains why, even in the best hunting areas, you might now spend weeks or even months without seeing a single spout, only to suddenly encounter what seems like thousands upon thousands of them.

Broad on both bows, at the distance of some two or three miles, and forming a great semicircle, embracing one half of the level horizon, a continuous chain of whale-jets were up-playing and sparkling in the noon-day air. Unlike the straight perpendicular twin-jets of the Right Whale, which, dividing at top, falls over in two branches, like the cleft drooping boughs of a willow, the single forward-slanting spout of the Sperm Whale presents a thick curled bush of white mist, continually rising and falling away to leeward.

Broad on both sides, about two or three miles away, and forming a wide semicircle that covered half of the flat horizon, a continuous series of whale spouts were spraying and glimmering in the midday air. Unlike the straight, upright twin spouts of the Right Whale, which split at the top and spill over like the drooping branches of a willow, the single, forward-leaning spout of the Sperm Whale creates a thick, swirling plume of white mist that keeps rising and falling away to the side.

Seen from the Pequod's deck, then, as she would rise on a high hill of the sea, this host of vapory spouts, individually curling up into the air, and beheld through a blending atmosphere of bluish haze, showed like the thousand cheerful chimneys of some dense metropolis, descried of a balmy autumnal morning, by some horseman on a height.

Seen from the Pequod's deck, then, as she would rise on a high hill of the sea, this group of misty spouts, each curling up into the air, and viewed through a mix of blue haze, looked like the thousands of cheerful chimneys of a bustling city, spotted on a pleasant autumn morning by a rider on a hill.

As marching armies approaching an unfriendly defile in the mountains, accelerate their march, all eagerness to place that perilous passage in their rear, and once more expand in comparative security upon the plain; even so did this vast fleet of whales now seem hurrying forward through the straits; gradually contracting the wings of their semicircle, and swimming on, in one solid, but still crescentic centre.

As marching armies nearing a hostile narrow pass in the mountains quicken their pace, eager to leave that dangerous stretch behind and once again spread out safely on the plains; in the same way, this huge fleet of whales now appeared to be moving rapidly through the straits; gradually tightening the wings of their semicircle and swimming on in one unified, yet still crescent-shaped, group.

Crowding all sail the Pequod pressed after them; the harpooneers handling their weapons, and loudly cheering from the heads of their yet suspended boats. If the wind only held, little doubt had they, that chased through these Straits of Sunda, the vast host would only deploy into the Oriental seas to witness the capture of not a few of their number. And who could tell whether, in that congregated caravan, Moby Dick himself might not temporarily be swimming, like the worshipped white-elephant in the coronation procession of the Siamese! So with stun-sail piled on stun-sail, we sailed along, driving these leviathans before us; when, of a sudden, the voice of Tashtego was heard, loudly directing attention to something in our wake.

Crowding all sails, the Pequod chased after them; the harpooneers were handling their gear and cheering loudly from the heads of their still-docked boats. If the wind stayed strong, they had no doubt that as they navigated through the Sunda Straits, the massive group would soon spread out into the Asian seas to witness the capture of several of their number. And who knew if, among that gathered crowd, Moby Dick himself might not be swimming by, like the celebrated white elephant in the coronation procession of the Siamese! So, with stun-sail piled on stun-sail, we sailed on, driving these giants before us; when suddenly, Tashtego's voice rang out, loudly directing attention to something behind us.

Corresponding to the crescent in our van, we beheld another in our rear. It seemed formed of detached white vapors, rising and falling something like the spouts of the whales; only they did not so completely come and go; for they constantly hovered, without finally disappearing. Levelling his glass at this sight, Ahab quickly revolved in his pivot-hole, crying, "Aloft there, and rig whips and buckets to wet the sails;—Malays, sir, and after us!"

Corresponding to the crescent in front of us, we saw another one behind us. It looked like separate white clouds, rising and falling like the spouts of whales; only they didn’t completely fade away; they kept hovering, without disappearing entirely. Ahab quickly aimed his telescope at this sight and turned in his pivot-hole, shouting, "Hey up there, rig the whips and buckets to wet the sails;—Malays, sir, and they’re coming after us!"

As if too long lurking behind the headlands, till the Pequod should fairly have entered the straits, these rascally Asiatics were now in hot pursuit, to make up for their over-cautious delay. But when the swift Pequod, with a fresh leading wind, was herself in hot chase; how very kind of these tawny philanthropists to assist in speeding her on to her own chosen pursuit,— mere riding-whips and rowels to her, that they were. As with glass under arm, Ahab to-and-fro paced the deck; in his forward turn beholding the monsters he chased, and in the after one the bloodthirsty pirates chasing him; some such fancy as the above seemed his. And when he glanced upon the green walls of the watery defile in which the ship was then sailing, and bethought him that through that gate lay the route to his vengeance, and beheld, how that through that same gate he was now both chasing and being chased to his deadly end; and not only that, but a herd of remorseless wild pirates and inhuman atheistical devils were infernally cheering him on with their curses;—when all these conceits had passed through his brain, Ahab's brow was left gaunt and ribbed, like the black sand beach after some stormy tide has been gnawing it, without being able to drag the firm thing from its place.

As if they had been hiding behind the cliffs for too long, waiting for the Pequod to enter the straits, these tricky Asians were now in hot pursuit, trying to make up for their overly cautious delay. But when the swift Pequod, with a fresh leading wind, was herself in a fierce chase, how generous of these tanned philanthropists to help her speed toward her chosen goal—just as riding-whips and spurs to her. With glass in hand, Ahab paced back and forth on the deck; in his forward turns, he saw the monsters he was chasing, and in his backward turns, the bloodthirsty pirates chasing him; some notion like that seemed to occupy his mind. And when he looked at the green walls of the watery passage through which the ship was sailing, he realized that this gate led to his vengeance, and saw that through this same gate he was both chasing and being chased to his deadly end; and not only that, but a pack of ruthless wild pirates and inhumane, godless devils were hellishly cheering him on with their curses;—when all these thoughts passed through his mind, Ahab's brow was left gaunt and ridged, like a black sand beach after a stormy tide has been wearing it down, unable to pull the solid thing from its place.

But thoughts like these troubled very few of the reckless crew; and when, after steadily dropping and dropping the pirates astern, the Pequod at last shot by the vivid green Cockatoo Point on the Sumatra side, emerging at last upon the broad waters beyond; then, the harpooneers seemed more to grieve that the swift whales had been gaining upon the ship, than to rejoice that the ship had so victoriously gained upon the Malays. But still driving on in the wake of the whales, at length they seemed abating their speed; gradually the ship neared them; and the wind now dying away, word was passed to spring to the boats. But no sooner did the herd, by some presumed wonderful instinct of the Sperm Whale, become notified of the three keels that were after them,— though as yet a mile in their rear,—than they rallied again, and forming in close ranks and battalions, so that their spouts all looked like flashing lines of stacked bayonets, moved on with redoubled velocity.

But thoughts like these hardly bothered the reckless crew; and when, after steadily leaving the pirates behind, the Pequod finally passed the bright green Cockatoo Point on the Sumatra side, emerging into the wide waters beyond, the harpooneers seemed more upset that the fast whales were catching up to the ship than happy that the ship had so successfully outpaced the Malays. Still pushing on in pursuit of the whales, they eventually seemed to slow down; the ship crept closer to them; and as the wind began to die down, word was given to get the boats ready. But as soon as the herd, by some presumed instinct of the Sperm Whale, sensed the three boats chasing them—though still a mile behind—they rallied again, forming tight ranks and battalions, making their spouts look like glinting lines of stacked bayonets, and sped off with renewed intensity.

Stripped to our shirts and drawers, we sprang to the white-ash, and after several hours' pulling were almost disposed to renounce the chase, when a general pausing commotion among the whales gave animating tokens that they were now at last under the influence of that strange perplexity of inert irresolution, which, when the fishermen perceive it in the whale, they say he is gallied*. The compact martial columns in which they had been hitherto rapidly and steadily swimming, were now broken up in one measureless rout; and like King Porus' elephants in the Indian battle with Alexander, they seemed going mad with consternation. In all directions expanding in vast irregular circles, and aimlessly swimming hither and thither, by their short thick spoutings, they plainly betrayed their distraction of panic. This was still more strangely evinced by those of their number, who, completely paralysed as it were, helplessly floated like water-logged dismantled ships on the sea. Had these Leviathans been but a flock of simple sheep, pursued over the pasture by three fierce wolves, they could not possibly have evinced such excessive dismay. But this occasional timidity is characteristic of almost all herding creatures. Though banding together in tens of thousands, the lion-maned buffaloes of the West have fled before a solitary horseman. Witness, too, all human beings, how when herded together in the sheepfold of a theatre's pit, they will, at the slightest alarm of fire, rush helter-skelter for the outlets, crowding, trampling, jamming, and remorselessly dashing each other to death. Best, therefore, withhold any amazement at the strangely gallied whales before us, for there is no folly of the beasts of the earth which is not infinitely outdone by the madness of men.

Stripped down to our shirts and underwear, we rushed toward the white-ash, and after several hours of pulling, we were almost ready to give up the chase when a general commotion among the whales showed signs that they were finally affected by that strange state of confusion, which fishermen describe as being "gallied." The compact formations they had been swimming in so steadily were now broken apart in one massive panic, and like King Porus' elephants during the battle with Alexander in India, they seemed to be going crazy with fear. Expanding in huge, chaotic circles and swimming around aimlessly with their short, thick spouts, they clearly showed their overwhelming panic. This was even more strangely shown by those among them who, completely paralyzed, simply floated like waterlogged, dismantled ships on the sea. If these leviathans had been just a flock of simple sheep chased across a meadow by three fierce wolves, they couldn't have displayed such sheer terror. Yet, this occasional fearfulness is typical of nearly all herd animals. Even when gathered in the thousands, the lion-maned buffaloes of the West have fled from a single horseman. Look at all humans too: when packed together in the audience of a theater, at the slightest hint of a fire, they will rush to the exits in a frenzy, crowding, trampling, and carelessly pushing each other to death. So, it's best not to be surprised by the oddly frightened whales before us, because there is no madness in the animal world that is not vastly outdone by that of humans.

* To gally, or gallow, is to frighten excessively— to confound with fright. It is an old Saxon word. It occurs once in Shakespeare:—

* To gally, or gallow, is to scare excessively— to confuse with fear. It is an old Saxon word. It appears once in Shakespeare:—

The wrathful skies Gallow the very wanderers of the dark And make them keep their caves.

The angry skies drive the very wanderers of the dark to stay in their caves.

To common language, the word is now completely obsolete. When the polite landsman first hears it from the gaunt Nantucketer, he is apt to set it down as one of the whaleman's self-derived savageries. Much the same is it with many other sinewy Saxonisms of this sort, which emigrated to New-England rocks with the noble brawn of the old English emigrants in the time of the Commonwealth. Thus, some of the best and furthest-descended English words—the etymological Howards and Percys—are now democratised, nay, plebeianised—so to speak— in the New World.

To everyday language, the word is now totally outdated. When a polite person from the mainland first hears it from the lean Nantucketer, they’re likely to think it’s just one of the whaleman's rough terms. It’s similar with many other strong Saxon words like this, which came to the New England coast with the strong English emigrants during the time of the Commonwealth. As a result, some of the best and most historically significant English words—the etymological Howards and Percys—are now made common, even ordinary, in the New World.

Though many of the whales, as has been said, were in violent motion, yet it is to be observed that as a whole the herd neither advanced nor retreated, but collectively remained in one place. As is customary in those cases, the boats at once separated, each making for some one lone whale on the outskirts of the shoal. In about three minutes' time, Queequeg's harpoon was flung; the stricken fish darted blinding spray in our faces, and then running away with us like light, steered straight for the heart of the herd. Though such a movement on the part of the whale struck under such circumstances, is in no wise unprecedented; and indeed is almost always more or less anticipated; yet does it present one of the more perilous vicissitudes of the fishery. For as the swift monster drags you deeper and deeper into the frantic shoal, you bid adieu to circumspect life and only exist in a delirious throb.

Although many of the whales were thrashing around violently, it’s important to note that the herd, as a whole, neither moved forward nor backward but stayed in one location. As is typical in these situations, the boats immediately spread out, each heading toward a single whale on the edge of the group. In about three minutes, Queequeg threw his harpoon; the wounded whale splashed water in our faces and then sped away with us like lightning, charging straight into the heart of the herd. While this kind of action from a whale in these circumstances isn’t unusual—indeed, it’s often expected—it does present one of the more dangerous challenges of whale hunting. As the powerful creature pulls you further into the chaotic group, you leave cautious life behind and exist only in a frenzied state.

As, blind and deaf, the whale plunged forward, as if by sheer power of speed to rid himself of the iron leech that had fastened to him; as we thus tore a white gash in the sea, on all sides menaced as we flew, by the crazed creatures to and fro rushing about us; our beset boat was like a ship mobbed by ice-isles in a tempest, and striving to steer through their complicated channels and straits, knowing not at what moment it may be locked in and crushed.

As the whale, blind and deaf, surged ahead, using nothing but its speed to shake off the iron leech that clung to it; as we cut a white path through the sea, surrounded by the frantic creatures darting around us; our beleaguered boat was like a vessel surrounded by ice floes in a storm, trying to navigate their tangled routes and narrow passages, never knowing when it might be trapped and crushed.

But not a bit daunted, Queequeg steered us manfully; now sheering off from this monster directly across our route in advance; now edging away from that, whose colossal flukes were suspended overhead, while all the time, Starbuck stood up in the bows, lance in hand, pricking out of our way whatever whales he could reach by short darts, for there was no time to make long ones. Nor were the oarsmen quite idle, though their wonted duty was now altogether dispensed with. They chiefly attended to the shouting part of the business. "Out of the way, Commodore!" cried one, to a great dromedary that of a sudden rose bodily to the surface, and for an instant threatened to swamp us. "Hard down with your tail, there!" cried a second to another, which, close to our gunwale, seemed calmly cooling himself with his own fan-like extremity.

But not at all discouraged, Queequeg skillfully steered us; now veering away from this giant right in our path; now dodging that one, whose massive tail was hanging overhead, while all the time, Starbuck stood at the front, spear in hand, prodding any whales he could reach with quick jabs, since there wasn't time for long throws. The rowers weren't entirely inactive, even though their usual job was completely set aside. They mostly focused on the shouting part of things. "Move aside, Commodore!" shouted one, to a huge whale that suddenly popped up to the surface and almost capsized us. "Keep your tail down, over there!" yelled another to another whale, which, close to our edge, seemed to be leisurely cooling off with its fan-like tail.

All whale-boats carry certain curious contrivances, originally invented by the Nantucket Indians, called druggs. Two thick squares of wood of equal size are stoutly clenched together, so that they cross each other's grain at right angles; a line of considerable length is then attached to the middle of this block, and the other end of the line being looped, it can in a moment be fastened to a harpoon. It is chiefly among gallied whales that this drugg is used. For then, more whales are close round you than you can possibly chase at one time. But sperm whales are not every day encountered; while you may, then, you must kill all you can. And if you cannot kill them all at once, you must wing them, so that they can be afterwards killed at your leisure. Hence it is, that at times like these the drug, comes into requisition. Our boat was furnished with three of them. The first and second were successfully darted, and we saw the whales staggeringly running off, fettered by the enormous sidelong resistance of the towing drugg. They were cramped like malefactors with the chain and ball. But upon flinging the third, in the act of tossing overboard the clumsy wooden block, it caught under one of the seats of the boat, and in an instant tore it out and carried it away, dropping the oarsman in the boat's bottom as the seat slid from under him. On both sides the sea came in at the wounded planks, but we stuffed two or three drawers and shirts in, and so stopped the leaks for the time.

All whale boats have some interesting gadgets originally created by the Nantucket Indians, called druggs. Two thick squares of wood that are the same size are strongly joined together, so they cross each other's grain at right angles. A long line is attached to the middle of this block, and the other end of the line has a loop, allowing it to be quickly fastened to a harpoon. This drugg is mainly used with agitated whales, when there are more whales around than you can chase at once. But sperm whales don’t show up every day; so when they do, you have to catch as many as you can. If you can't catch them all at once, you have to wound them so they can be killed later at your convenience. That's when the drugg comes in handy. Our boat had three of them. We successfully darted the first and second, and we saw the whales stagger and run off, held back by the enormous sideways drag of the towing drugg. They were like criminals in chains. But when we threw the third one, as I tossed the heavy wooden block overboard, it got caught under one of the seats in the boat, instantly tearing it out and taking it with it, dropping the oarsman right onto the bottom of the boat as the seat slid out from under him. Water rushed in through the damaged boards on both sides, but we stuffed a couple of drawers and shirts in the gaps, and that helped stop the leaks for a while.

It had been next to impossible to dart these drugged-harpoons, were it not that as we advanced into the herd, our whale's way greatly diminished; moreover, that as we went still further and further from the circumference of commotion, the direful disorders seemed waning. So that when at last the jerking harpoon drew out, and the towing whale sideways vanished; then, with the tapering force of his parting momentum, we glided between two whales into the innermost heart of the shoal, as if from some mountain torrent we had slid into a serene valley lake. Here the storms in the roaring glens between the outermost whales, were heard but not felt. In this central expanse the sea presented that smooth satin-like surface, called a sleek, produced by the subtle moisture thrown off by the whale in his more quiet moods. Yes, we were now in that enchanted calm which they say lurks at the heart of every commotion. And still in the distracted distance we beheld the tumults of the outer concentric circles, and saw successive pods of whales, eight or ten in each, swiftly going round and round, like multiplied spans of horses in a ring; and so closely shoulder to shoulder, that a Titanic circus-rider might easily have over-arched the middle ones, and so have gone round on their backs. Owing to the density of the crowd of reposing whales, more immediately surrounding the embayed axis of the herd, no possible chance of escape was at present afforded us. We must watch for a breach in the living wall that hemmed us in; the wall that had only admitted us in order to shut us up. Keeping at the centre of the lake, we were occasionally visited by small tame cows and calves; the women and children of this routed host.

It would have been nearly impossible to shoot these tranquilized harpoons if we hadn't been moving deeper into the herd, where our whale's path had narrowed. Furthermore, as we ventured further away from the chaos, the frightening disturbances seemed to diminish. So when the jerking harpoon finally pulled free, and the whale disappeared sideways, we glided between two whales into the very heart of the group, as if we’d slid from a mountain stream into a calm valley lake. Here, the storms that raged in the roaring channels between the outer whales were heard but not felt. In this central area, the sea had that smooth, satin-like surface known as sleek, created by the subtle moisture released by the whale in its calmer moments. Yes, we were now in that magical stillness that is said to exist at the core of every tumult. Still, in the distracted distance, we could see the turbulence of the outer circles and watched pods of whales, eight or ten in each, swiftly moving in circles, like a group of horses in a ring; they were so close together that a giant circus rider could have easily arched over the middle ones and ridden around on their backs. Because of the dense crowd of resting whales surrounding the central axis of the herd, there was no possibility of escape for us at that moment. We had to wait for a breach in the living wall that enclosed us, a wall that had only let us in to trap us. Staying in the center of the lake, we were occasionally visited by small, calm cows and calves; the women and children of this displaced group.

Now, inclusive of the occasional wide intervals between the revolving outer circles, and inclusive of the spaces between the various pods in any one of those circles, the entire area at this juncture, embraced by the whole multitude, must have contained at least two or three square miles. At any rate—though indeed such a test at such a time might be deceptive—spoutings might be discovered from our low boat that seemed playing up almost from the rim of the horizon. I mention this circumstance, because, as if the cows and calves had been purposely locked up in this innermost fold; and as if the wide extent of the herd had hitherto prevented them from learning the precise cause of its stopping; or, possibly, being so young, unsophisticated, and every way innocent and inexperienced; however it may have been, these smaller whales— now and then visiting our becalmed boat from the margin of the lake— evinced a wondrous fearlessness and confidence, or else a still becharmed panic which it was impossible not to marvel at. Like household dogs they came snuffling round us, right up to our gunwales, and touching them; till it almost seemed that some spell had suddenly domesticated them. Queequeg patted their foreheads; Starbuck scratched their backs with his lance; but fearful of the consequences, for the time refrained from darting it.

Now, including the occasional wide gaps between the spinning outer circles, and the spaces between the different pods in any of those circles, the entire area at this moment, surrounded by the whole crowd, had to be at least two or three square miles. In any case—though such a test at this time might be misleading—spouts could be seen from our small boat that seemed to be shooting up almost from the edge of the horizon. I mention this because it felt like the cows and calves were intentionally kept locked up in this innermost area; and as if the large size of the herd had so far prevented them from figuring out why it had stopped; or perhaps, being so young, naive, and completely innocent and inexperienced; however it was, these smaller whales—occasionally approaching our still boat from the edge of the lake—showed an incredible fearlessness and trust, or maybe a spellbound panic that was impossible not to be amazed by. Like pet dogs, they came sniffing around us, right up to our gunwales, even touching them; it almost seemed like some spell had suddenly made them domesticated. Queequeg patted their foreheads; Starbuck scratched their backs with his lance; but worried about what might happen, he held off on using it for now.

But far beneath this wondrous world upon the surface, another and still stranger world met our eyes as we gazed over the side. For, suspended in those watery vaults, floated the forms of the nursing mothers of the whales, and those that by their enormous girth seemed shortly to become mothers. The lake, as I have hinted, was to a considerable depth exceedingly transparent; and as human infants while suckling will calmly and fixedly gaze away from the breast, as if leading two different lives at the time; and while yet drawing mortal nourishment, be still spiritually feasting upon some unearthly reminiscence;—even so did the young of these whales seem looking up towards us, but not at us, as if we were but a bit of Gulfweed in their new-born sight. Floating on their sides, the mothers also seemed quietly eyeing us. One of these little infants, that from certain queer tokens seemed hardly a day old, might have measured some fourteen feet in length, and some six feet in girth. He was a little frisky; though as yet his body seemed scarce yet recovered from that irksome position it had so lately occupied in the maternal reticule; where, tail to head, and all ready for the final spring, the unborn whale lies bent like a Tartar's bow. The delicate side-fins, and the palms of his flukes, still freshly retained the plaited crumpled appearance of a baby's ears newly arrived from foreign parts.

But far beneath this amazing world above, another and even stranger world appeared as we looked over the side. Suspended in those watery depths were the shapes of whale mothers nursing their young, and those that, due to their enormous size, seemed about to become mothers. The lake, as I mentioned, was very clear to a great depth; and just like human infants who, while nursing, will calmly gaze away from the breast as if living two different lives at once—drawing nourishment while spiritually enjoying some distant memory—so did the young whales seem to look up at us, but not directly as if we were just a piece of seaweed in their newborn vision. Floating on their sides, the mothers also seemed to be quietly observing us. One of these little infants, which looked hardly a day old by certain odd signs, was about fourteen feet long and six feet wide. He was a bit playful; though his body still seemed to be recovering from the uncomfortable position it had just been in, curled up in the womb like a Tartar's bow, tail to head and all set for the final leap. The delicate side fins and the undersides of his flukes still had the crinkled look of a baby's ears newly arrived from a different place.

"Line! line!" cried Queequeg, looking over the gunwale; "him fast! him fast!—Who line him! Who struck?—Two whale; one big, one little!"

"Line! Line!" shouted Queequeg, peering over the side of the boat. "Got him! Got him!—Who’s got the line? Who hit?—Two whales; one big, one small!"

"What ails ye, man?" cried Starbuck.

"What’s wrong with you, man?" shouted Starbuck.

"Look-e here," said Queequeg, pointing down.

"Look here," said Queequeg, pointing down.

As when the stricken whale, that from the tub has reeled out hundreds of fathoms of rope; as, after deep sounding, he floats up again, and shows the slackened curling line buoyantly rising and spiralling towards the air; so now, Starbuck saw long coils of the umbilical cord of Madame Leviathan, by which the young cub seemed still tethered to its dam. Not seldom in the rapid vicissitudes of the chase, this natural line, with the maternal end loose, becomes entangled with the hempen one, so that the cub is thereby trapped. Some of the subtlest secrets of the seas seemed divulged to us in this enchanted pond. We saw young Leviathan amours in the deep.*

As the wounded whale, having released hundreds of fathoms of rope from the tub, floats back to the surface after diving deep, showing the loose, curling line rising and spiraling into the air; in the same way, Starbuck saw long coils of the umbilical cord of Madame Leviathan, which the young cub still seemed attached to. Often during the fast-paced changes of the hunt, this natural line, with the maternal end loose, gets tangled up with the man-made line, trapping the cub. Some of the deepest secrets of the seas seemed to be revealed to us in this magical pond. We witnessed young Leviathan romances in the deep.*

*The sperm whale, as with all other species of the Leviathan, but unlike most other fish, breeds indifferently at all seasons; after a gestation which may probably be set down at nine months, producing but one at a time; though in some few known instances giving birth to an Esau and Jacob:—a contingency provided for in suckling by two teats, curiously situated, one on each side of the anus; but the breasts themselves extend upwards from that. When by chance these precious parts in a nursing whale are cut by the hunter's lance, the mother's pouring milk and blood rivallingly discolor the sea for rods. The milk is very sweet and rich; it has been tasted by man; it might do well with strawberries. When overflowing with mutual esteem, the whales salute more hominum.

*The sperm whale, like all other species of Leviathan, but unlike most other fish, can breed at any time of the year; after a pregnancy lasting about nine months, it gives birth to just one calf at a time; although there have been a few known cases of twins, like Esau and Jacob:—for this, nature has equipped it to nurse two calves simultaneously from two teats located on either side of the anus, while the breasts extend upward from there. If a hunter accidentally injures these vital areas in a nursing whale, the mother’s milk and blood create a striking discoloration in the sea for quite a distance. The milk is very sweet and rich; it has been tasted by humans and might pair well with strawberries. When they feel a deep affection for each other, the whales greet one another with more human-like gestures.*

And thus, though surrounded by circle upon circle of consternations and affrights, did these inscrutable creatures at the centre freely and fearlessly indulge in all peaceful concernments; yea, serenely revelled in dalliance and delight. But even so, amid the tornadoed Atlantic of my being, do I myself still for ever centrally disport in mute calm; and while ponderous planets of unwaning woe revolve round me, deep down and deep inland there I still bathe me in eternal mildness of joy.

And so, even though they were surrounded by endless circles of worries and fears, these mysterious creatures at the center enjoyed their peaceful activities without a care; indeed, they joyfully indulged in fun and pleasure. Yet, even amidst the chaotic storm of my emotions, I continue to remain at the center in quiet peace; and while heavy planets of unending sadness orbit around me, I still find solace in a deep, lasting joy.

Meanwhile, as we thus lay entranced, the occasional sudden frantic spectacles in the distance evinced the activity of the other boats, still engaged in drugging the whales on the frontier of the host; or possibly carrying on the war within the first circle, where abundance of room and some convenient retreats were afforded them. But the sight of the enraged drugged whales now and then blindly darting to and fro across the circles, was nothing to what at last met our eyes. It is sometimes the custom when fast to a whale more than commonly powerful and alert, to seek to hamstring him, as it were, by sundering or maiming his gigantic tail-tendon. It is done by darting a short-handled cutting-spade, to which is attached a rope for hauling it back again. A whale wounded (as we afterwards learned) in this part, but not effectually, as it seemed, had broken away from the boat, carrying along with him half of the harpoon line; and in the extraordinary agony of the wound, he was now dashing among the revolving circles like the lone mounted desperado Arnold, at the battle of Saratoga, carrying dismay wherever he went.

Meanwhile, as we lay there captivated, the occasional sudden frantic sights in the distance showed the activity of the other boats, still busy sedating the whales on the edge of the group; or maybe continuing the fight in the first circle, where there was plenty of space and some easy places to retreat. But the sight of the furious drugged whales darting around the circles now and then was nothing compared to what we eventually witnessed. It’s sometimes the practice when grappling with a whale that is exceptionally strong and alert, to try to hamstring him, as it were, by cutting or injuring his massive tail tendon. This is done by throwing a short-handled cutting spade, which has a rope attached for pulling it back. A whale wounded (as we later found out) in this area, though not severely as it seemed, had broken free from the boat, taking with him half of the harpoon line; and in the extreme agony of the injury, he was now crashing through the rotating circles like the lone mounted outlaw Arnold, at the battle of Saratoga, causing panic wherever he went.

But agonizing as was the wound of this whale, and an appalling spectacle enough, any way; yet the peculiar horror with which he seemed to inspire the rest of the herd, was owing to a cause which at first the intervening distance obscured from us. But at length we perceived that by one of the unimaginable accidents of the fishery, this whale had become entangled in the harpoon-line that he towed; he had also run away with the cutting-spade in him; and while the free end of the rope attached to that weapon, had permanently caught in the coils of the harpoon-line round his tail, the cutting-spade itself had worked loose from his flesh. So that tormented to madness, he was now churning through the water, violently flailing with his flexible tail, and tossing the keen spade about him, wounding and murdering his own comrades.

But as painful as the wound on this whale was, and it was a horrifying sight, the unique terror he evoked in the rest of the pod stemmed from something that the distance initially hid from us. Eventually, we realized that due to an unimaginable mishap in the fishery, this whale had gotten tangled in the harpoon line he was dragging. He had also ended up with the cutting spade sticking out of him, and while the free end of the rope attached to that weapon had become permanently caught in the coils of the harpoon line around his tail, the cutting spade itself had come loose from his flesh. Driven to madness, he was now thrashing through the water, violently whipping his flexible tail and swinging the sharp spade around him, injuring and killing his own companions.

This terrific object seemed to recall the whole herd from their stationary fright. First, the whales forming the margin of our lake began to crowd a little, and tumble against each other, as if lifted by half spent billows from afar; then the lake itself began faintly to heave and swell; the submarine bridal-chambers and nurseries vanished; in more and more contracting orbits the whales in the more central circles began to swim in thickening clusters. Yes, the long calm was departing. A low advancing hum was soon heard; and then like to the tumultuous masses of block-ice when the great river Hudson breaks up in Spring, the entire host of whales came tumbling upon their inner centre, as if to pile themselves up in one common mountain. Instantly Starbuck and Queequeg changed places; Starbuck taking the stern.

This amazing sight seemed to snap the entire herd out of their frozen fear. First, the whales around the edge of our lake started to move closer together and bump into each other, as if pushed by distant waves; then the lake itself began to gently rise and fall. The underwater nurseries and birthing areas faded away; in tighter and tighter circles, the whales in the middle started to swim together in thicker groups. Yes, the long calm was ending. A low rumbling sound could soon be heard; and then, like the chaotic masses of ice blocks when the Hudson River breaks up in Spring, the whole group of whales surged toward their center, as if trying to create one massive mound. Immediately, Starbuck and Queequeg switched places, with Starbuck taking the back.

"Oars! Oars!" he intensely whispered, seizing the helm—"gripe your oars, and clutch your souls, now! My God, men, stand by! Shove him off, you Queequeg—the whale there!—prick him!—hit him! Stand up—stand up, and stay so! Spring men—pull, men; never mind their backs—scrape them!—scrape away!"

"Oars! Oars!" he whispered urgently, grabbing the steering wheel—"Grip your oars and brace yourselves, now! My God, guys, get ready! Push him off, you Queequeg—the whale's right there!—stab him!—hit him! Stand up—stand up, and hold your ground! Let’s go, guys—pull, everyone; don’t worry about their backs—scrape them!—scrape away!"

The boat was now all but jammed between two vast black bulks, leaving a narrow Dardanelles between their long lengths. But by desperate endeavor we at last shot into a temporary opening; then giving way rapidly, and at the same time earnestly watching for another outlet. After many similar hair-breadth escapes, we at last swiftly glided into what had just been one of the outer circles, but now crossed by random whales, all violently making for one centre. This lucky salvation was cheaply purchased by the loss of Queequeg's hat, who, while standing in the bows to prick the fugitive whales, had his hat taken clean from his head by the air-eddy made by the sudden tossing of a pair of broad flukes close by.

The boat was practically wedged between two huge black masses, leaving just a narrow space between them. But after a lot of effort, we finally burst into a temporary opening, then quickly pulled back while carefully watching for another way out. After many close calls, we finally glided into what had just been one of the outer areas, now crossed by random whales all rushing towards the same spot. This fortunate escape cost us Queequeg's hat, which was snatched right off his head by the gust created when a pair of large tail flukes suddenly splashed nearby.

Riotous and disordered as the universal commotion now was, it soon resolved itself into what seemed a systematic movement; for having clumped together at last in one dense body, they then renewed their onward flight with augmented fleetness. Further pursuit was useless; but the boats still lingered in their wake to pick up what drugged whales might be dropped astern, and likewise to secure one which Flask had killed and waited. The waif is a pennoned pole, two or three of which are carried by every boat; and which, when additional game is at hand, are inserted upright into the floating body of a dead whale, both to mark its place on the sea, and also as token of prior possession, should the boats of any other ship draw near.

Riotous and chaotic as the global uproar was, it soon organized itself into what looked like a systematic movement; after finally grouping together in a solid mass, they then sped away with increased swiftness. Further pursuit was pointless; however, the boats still trailed behind to collect any drugged whales that might be left behind and to secure one that Flask had killed and was waiting for. The waif is a flagged pole, two or three of which are carried by every boat; and when more game is nearby, they are placed upright into the floating body of a dead whale, both to mark its location in the sea and to indicate prior ownership if other ships' boats come close.

The result of this lowering was somewhat illustrative of that sagacious saying in the Fishery,—the more whales the less fish. Of all the drugged whales only one was captured. The rest contrived to escape for the time, but only to be taken, as will hereafter be seen, by some other craft than the Pequod.

The outcome of this decrease was somewhat reflective of the wise saying in the Fishery—the more whales, the fewer fish. Out of all the drugged whales, only one was caught. The others managed to get away for now, but as will be shown later, they were captured by a different ship than the Pequod.

CHAPTER 88

Schools and Schoolmasters

Schools and Educators

The previous chapter gave account of an immense body or herd of Sperm Whales, and there was also then given the probable cause inducing those vast aggregations.

The previous chapter described a large group of Sperm Whales and also discussed the likely reasons for those massive gatherings.

Now, though such great bodies are at times encountered, yet, as must have been seen, even at the present day, small detached bands are occasionally observed, embracing from twenty to fifty individuals each. Such bands are known as schools. They generally are of two sorts; those composed almost entirely of females, and those mustering none but young vigorous males, or bulls as they are familiarly designated.

Now, while large groups are sometimes seen, as has been noted even today, small separate groups are occasionally spotted, containing anywhere from twenty to fifty individuals each. These groups are called schools. They generally come in two types: those made up almost entirely of females, and those consisting solely of young, strong males, or bulls as they are commonly known.

In cavalier attendance upon the school of females, you invariably see a male of full grown magnitude, but not old; who, upon any alarm, evinces his gallantry by falling in the rear and covering the flight of his ladies. In truth, this gentleman is a luxurious Ottoman, swimming about over the watery world, surroundingly accompanied by all the solaces and endearments of the harem. The contrast between this Ottoman and his concubines is striking; because, while he is always of the largest leviathanic proportions, the ladies, even at full growth, are not more than one-third of the bulk of an average-sized male. They are comparatively delicate, indeed; I dare say, not to exceed half a dozen yards round the waist. Nevertheless, it cannot be denied, that upon the whole they are hereditarily entitled to en bon point.

In a casual presence around the group of women, you usually spot a young, full-grown man who, despite his age, is still relatively young. Whenever there's a commotion, he shows his bravery by stepping back to protect his ladies. Actually, this guy is a well-fed Ottoman, gliding around in the water, surrounded by all the comforts and affection of his harem. The difference between this Ottoman and his partners is quite noticeable; while he is always huge, the women, even when fully grown, are only about a third of the size of an average man. They are quite delicate, probably not more than six feet around the waist. Still, it's undeniable that overall, they are naturally inclined to be well-proportioned.

It is very curious to watch this harem and its lord in their indolent ramblings. Like fashionables, they are for ever on the move in leisurely search of variety. You meet them on the Line in time for the full flower of the Equatorial feeding season, having just returned, perhaps, from spending the summer in the Northern seas, and so cheating summer of all unpleasant weariness and warmth. By the time they have lounged up and down the promenade of the Equator awhile, they start for the Oriental waters in anticipation of the cool season there, and so evade the other excessive temperature of the year.

It’s quite fascinating to observe this harem and its leader during their lazy wanderings. Like socialites, they’re always on the move, casually searching for new experiences. You find them on the Line just as the Equatorial feeding season is in full swing, having perhaps just returned from spending the summer in the Northern seas, avoiding the uncomfortable heat and fatigue of summer. After they’ve strolled up and down the Equator’s promenade for a bit, they head to the Eastern waters, looking forward to the cooler season there, effectively dodging the other extreme temperatures of the year.

When serenely advancing on one of these journeys, if any strange suspicious sights are seen, my lord whale keeps a wary eye on his interesting family. Should any unwarrantably pert young Leviathan coming that way, presume to draw confidentially close to one of the ladies, with what prodigious fury the Bashaw assails him, and chases him away! High times, indeed, if unprincipled young rakes like him are to be permitted to invade the sanctity of domestic bliss; though do what the Bashaw will, he cannot keep the most notorious Lothario out of his bed; for alas! all fish bed in common. As ashore, the ladies often cause the most terrible duels among their rival admirers; just so with the whales, who sometimes come to deadly battle, and all for love. They fence with their long lower jaws, sometimes locking them together, and so striving for the supremacy like elks that warringly interweave their antlers. Not a few are captured having the deep scars of these encounters,— furrowed heads, broken teeth, scolloped fins; and in some instances, wrenched and dislocated mouths.

When calmly moving through one of these journeys, if any strange or suspicious sights appear, my lord whale keeps a close watch on his intriguing family. If any overly bold young Leviathan happens to get too close to one of the ladies, how fiercely the Bashaw attacks him and drives him away! It would be quite something if immoral young rakes like him were allowed to invade the peace of domestic life; yet, no matter what the Bashaw does, he can't keep the most notorious womanizer out of his bed; because sadly, all fish share the same bed. Just like on land, the ladies often cause terrible duels among their rival admirers; the same goes for the whales, who sometimes engage in deadly battles, all for love. They spar with their long lower jaws, occasionally locking them together, striving for dominance like elk that tangle their antlers in battle. Many are captured with deep scars from these encounters—scarred heads, broken teeth, notched fins; and in some cases, twisted and dislocated mouths.

But supposing the invader of domestic bliss to betake himself away at the first rush of the harem's lord, then is it very diverting to watch that lord. Gently he insinuates his vast bulk among them again and revels there awhile, still in tantalizing vicinity to young Lothario, like pious Solomon devoutly worshipping among his thousand concubines. Granting other whales to be in sight, the fisherman will seldom give chase to one of these Grand Turks; for these Grand Turks are too lavish of their strength, and hence their unctuousness is small. As for the sons and the daughters they beget, why, those sons and daughters must take care of themselves; at least, with only the maternal help. For like certain other omnivorous roving lovers that might be named, my Lord Whale has no taste for the nursery, however much for the bower; and so, being a great traveller, he leaves his anonymous babies all over the world; every baby an exotic. In good time, nevertheless, as the ardor of youth declines; as years and dumps increase; as reflection lends her solemn pauses; in short, as a general lassitude overtakes the sated Turk; then a love of ease and virtue supplants the love for maidens; our Ottoman enters upon the impotent, repentant, admonitory stage of life, forswears, disbands the harem, and grown to an exemplary, sulky old soul, goes about all alone among the meridians and parallels saying his prayers, and warning each young Leviathan from his amorous errors.

But if the invader of domestic peace decides to leave at the first sign of the harem's lord, it's quite entertaining to watch that lord. He smoothly inserts his enormous presence among them again and enjoys himself for a while, still teasingly close to young Lothario, like a devout Solomon worshiping amid his thousand concubines. Even when other whales are visible, the fisherman rarely chases one of these Grand Turks; they waste their strength too freely, resulting in less oil. As for the sons and daughters they produce, those children must fend for themselves, or at least rely only on their mother. Like some other roaming lovers that could be named, my Lord Whale has no interest in raising a family, though he loves to indulge; and so, being a great traveler, he leaves his unnamed offspring scattered around the globe, each baby a unique addition. In due time, however, as youthful passion fades, as years and worries accumulate, and as thought brings its serious pauses; in short, as general fatigue settles over the indulged Turk; then a desire for comfort and morality replaces his desire for maidens; our Ottoman enters a powerless, regretful, and advisory stage of life, renounces his harem, and, having turned into a model, grumpy old soul, wanders alone among the lines of latitude and longitude, saying his prayers and warning each young Leviathan against his romantic mistakes.

Now, as the harem of whales is called by the fishermen a school, so is the lord and master of that school technically known as the schoolmaster. It is therefore not in strict character, however admirably satirical, that after going to school himself, he should then go abroad inculcating not what he learned there, but the folly of it. His title, schoolmaster, would very naturally seem derived from the name bestowed upon the harem itself, but some have surmised that the man who first thus entitled this sort of Ottoman whale, must have read the memoirs of Vidocq, and informed himself what sort of a country-schoolmaster that famous Frenchman was in his younger days, and what was the nature of those occult lessons he inculcated into some of his pupils.

Now, just as fishermen refer to a group of whales as a school, the leader of that group is called the schoolmaster. So, it's not entirely unexpected, though it's quite ironic, that after attending school himself, he would then go out teaching not what he learned there, but the ridiculousness of it. His title, schoolmaster, seems to be derived from the name given to the group itself, but some think that the person who first used this term for this type of Ottoman whale must have read the memoirs of Vidocq and discovered what kind of rural schoolmaster that famous Frenchman was in his younger days, along with the nature of the secret lessons he taught some of his students.

The same secludedness and isolation to which the schoolmaster whale betakes himself in his advancing years, is true of all aged Sperm Whales. Almost universally, a lone whale— as a solitary Leviathan is called—proves an ancient one. Like venerable moss-bearded Daniel Boone, he will have no one near him but Nature herself; and her he takes to wife in the wilderness of waters, and the best of wives she is, though she keeps so many moody secrets.

The same seclusion and isolation that the schoolmaster whale retreats to in his later years is true for all old Sperm Whales. Almost universally, a lone whale—what we call a solitary Leviathan—turns out to be an ancient one. Like the wise old Daniel Boone with his mossy beard, he prefers to be alone with nothing but Nature herself; he marries her in the wild waters, and she’s the best partner, even if she has plenty of moody secrets.

The schools composing none but young and vigorous males, previously mentioned, offer a strong contrast to the harem schools. For while those female whales are characteristically timid, the young males, or forty-barrel-bulls, as they call them, are by far the most pugnacious of all Leviathans, and proverbially the most dangerous to encounter; excepting those wondrous grey-headed, grizzled whales, sometimes met, and these will fight you like grim fiends exasperated by a penal gout.

The schools made up only of young and strong males, as mentioned earlier, provide a sharp contrast to the harem schools. While the female whales are typically timid, the young males, known as forty-barrel bulls, are by far the most aggressive of all the whales and are famously the most dangerous to come across—except for those incredible grey-headed, grizzled whales that you sometimes encounter, and they'll fight you like relentless demons driven mad by a painful affliction.

The Forty-barrel-bull schools are larger than the harem schools. Like a mob of young collegians, they are full of fight, fun, and wickedness, tumbling round the world at such a reckless, rollicking rate, that no prudent underwriter would insure them any more than he would a riotous lad at Yale or Harvard. They soon relinquish this turbulence though, and when about three-fourths grown, break up, and separately go about in quest of settlements, that is, harems.

The Forty-barrel-bull schools are bigger than the harem schools. Like a group of college kids, they’re full of energy, fun, and mischief, running around the world at such a wild, carefree pace that no sensible insurer would cover them any more than he would a rowdy kid at Yale or Harvard. They quickly give up this chaos, though, and when they're about three-quarters grown, they break apart and each go off in search of their own homes, that is, harems.

Another point of difference between the male and female schools is still more characteristic of the sexes. Say you strike a Forty-barrel-bull—poor devil! all his comrades quit him. But strike a member of the harem school, and her companions swim around her with every token of concern, sometimes lingering so near her and so long, as themselves to fall a prey.

Another point of difference between the male and female schools is even more characteristic of the sexes. If you hit a Forty-barrel-bull—poor guy! all his buddies leave him. But if you hit a member of the harem school, her friends gather around her with every sign of concern, sometimes staying so close and for so long that they end up getting caught themselves.

CHAPTER 89

Fast-Fish and Loose-Fish

Fast Fish and Loose Fish

The allusion to the waifs and waif-poles in the last chapter but one, necessitates some account of the laws and regulations of the whale fishery, of which the waif may be deemed the grand symbol and badge.

The reference to the waifs and waif-poles in the second-to-last chapter requires some explanation of the laws and regulations of whale fishing, of which the waif can be considered the main symbol and mark.

It frequently happens that when several ships are cruising in company, a whale may be struck by one vessel, then escape, and be finally killed and captured by another vessel; and herein are indirectly comprised many minor contingencies, all partaking of this one grand feature. For example,—after a weary and perilous chase and capture of a whale, the body may get loose from the ship by reason of a violent storm; and drifting far away to leeward, be retaken by a second whaler, who, in a calm, snugly tows it alongside, without risk of life or line. Thus the most vexatious and violent disputes would often arise between the fishermen, were there not some written or unwritten, universal, undisputed law applicable to all cases.

It often happens that when several ships are sailing together, one vessel might strike a whale, which escapes, only to be killed and captured by another vessel later; and many smaller issues are involved in this main scenario. For instance, after a long and dangerous chase and capture of a whale, the body might get detached from the ship due to a fierce storm; drifting far away, it could be reclaimed by a second whaler, who safely tows it alongside in calm conditions, without risking lives or gear. This could lead to frustrating and intense disputes among the fishermen, if there weren't some kind of written or unwritten, universal law that applies to all situations.

Perhaps the only formal whaling code authorized by legislative enactment, was that of Holland. It was decreed by the States-General in A.D. 1695. But though no other nation has ever had any written whaling law, yet the American fishermen have been their own legislators and lawyers in this matter. They have provided a system which for terse comprehensiveness surpasses Justinian's Pandects and the By-laws of the Chinese Society for the Suppression of Meddling with other People's Business. Yes; these laws might be engraven on a Queen Anne's farthing, or the barb of a harpoon, and worn round the neck, so small are they.

The only formal whaling code officially sanctioned by law was from Holland, enacted by the States-General in 1695. Although no other country has ever had a written whaling law, American fishermen have acted as their own lawmakers and attorneys in this area. They’ve created a system that is more concise and complete than Justinian’s Pandects and the By-laws of the Chinese Society for the Suppression of Meddling with Other People's Business. In fact, these laws could be engraved on a Queen Anne's farthing or the tip of a harpoon and worn around the neck, so small are they.

I. A Fast-Fish belongs to the party fast to it.

I. A fast-fish belongs to the party that catches it.

II. A Loose-Fish is fair game for anybody who can soonest catch it.

II. A loose fish is fair game for anyone who can catch it first.

But what plays the mischief with this masterly code is the admirable brevity of it, which necessitates a vast volume of commentaries to expound it.

But what causes trouble with this masterful code is its impressive brevity, which requires a huge amount of commentary to explain it.

First: What is a Fast-Fish? Alive or dead a fish is technically fast, when it is connected with an occupied ship or boat, by any medium at all controllable by the occupant or occupants,—a mast, an oar, a nine-inch cable, a telegraph wire, or a strand of cobweb, it is all the same. Likewise a fish is technically fast when it bears a waif, or any other recognized symbol of possession; so long as the party wailing it plainly evince their ability at any time to take it alongside, as well as their intention so to do.

First: What is a Fast-Fish? Whether alive or dead, a fish is considered fast when it is attached to an occupied ship or boat by any means that can be controlled by the occupant or occupants—this could be a mast, an oar, a nine-inch cable, a telegraph wire, or even a strand of cobweb; it all counts. Similarly, a fish is also technically fast when it carries a waif or any other recognized symbol of ownership, as long as the party claiming it clearly shows their ability to take it aboard whenever they choose, as well as their intention to do so.

These are scientific commentaries; but the commentaries of the whalemen themselves sometimes consist in hard words and harder knocks— the Coke-upon-Littleton of the fist. True, among the more upright and honorable whalemen allowances are always made for peculiar cases, where it would be an outrageous moral injustice for one party to claim possession of a whale previously chased or killed by another party. But others are by no means so scrupulous.

These are scientific commentaries; but the whalemen's own comments often come in the form of tough language and tougher actions—like a fistful of legal jargon. It's true that among the more honest and upstanding whalemen, exceptions are always made for unusual situations, where it would be a serious moral injustice for one person to claim a whale that another person has already chased or killed. However, others are not nearly as careful.

Some fifty years ago there was a curious case of whale-trover litigated in England, wherein the plaintiffs set forth that after a hard chase of a whale in the Northern seas; and when indeed they (the plaintiffs) had succeeded in harpooning the fish; they were at last, through peril of their lives, obliged to forsake not only their lines, but their boat itself. Ultimately the defendants (the crew of another ship) came up with the whale, struck, killed, seized, and finally appropriated it before the very eyes of the plaintiffs. And when those defendants were remonstrated with, their captain snapped his fingers in the plaintiffs' teeth, and assured them that by way of doxology to the deed he had done, he would now retain their line, harpoons, and boat, which had remained attached to the whale at the time of the seizure. Wherefore the plaintiffs now sued for the recovery of the value of their whale, line, harpoons, and boat.

About fifty years ago, there was a strange case involving a whale in England, where the plaintiffs claimed that after a tough hunt for a whale in the Northern seas, and after they had managed to harpoon the fish, they were ultimately forced to abandon not just their lines but their boat as well, risking their lives in the process. Eventually, the defendants (the crew of another ship) caught up with the whale, struck it, killed it, seized it, and took it for themselves right in front of the plaintiffs. When the plaintiffs confronted them, the captain of the defendants dismissed their concerns with a snap of his fingers and proudly declared that as a sort of celebration for what he'd done, he would keep their line, harpoons, and boat, which were still attached to the whale when it was taken. As a result, the plaintiffs decided to sue for the value of their whale, line, harpoons, and boat.

Mr. Erskine was counsel for the defendants; Lord Ellenborough was the judge. In the course of the defence, the witty Erskine went on to illustrate his position, by alluding to a recent crim. con. case, wherein a gentleman, after in vain trying to bridle his wife's viciousness, had at last abandoned her upon the seas of life; but in the course of years, repenting of that step, he instituted an action to recover possession of her. Erskine was on the other side; and he then supported it by saying, that though the gentleman had originally harpooned the lady, and had once had her fast, and only by reason of the great stress of her plunging viciousness, had at last abandoned her; yet abandon her he did, so that she became a loose-fish; and therefore when a subsequent gentleman re-harpooned her, the lady then became that subsequent gentleman's property, along with whatever harpoon might have been found sticking in her.

Mr. Erskine was the lawyer for the defendants, and Lord Ellenborough was the judge. During the defense, the clever Erskine illustrated his point by referencing a recent adultery case where a man, after unsuccessfully trying to curb his wife's bad behavior, ultimately left her behind in the struggles of life. Years later, regretting his decision, he filed a lawsuit to regain custody of her. Erskine represented the opposing side and argued that although the man had initially caught the woman and had her under control, he had eventually left her due to her uncontrollable nature, meaning she became free and available. Therefore, when another man later caught her again, she became that man's property, along with whatever attachment was still left in her.

Now in the present case Erskine contended that the examples of the whale and the lady were reciprocally illustrative of each other.

Now in this case, Erskine argued that the examples of the whale and the lady illustrated each other in a reciprocal way.

These pleadings, and the counter pleadings, being duly heard, the very learned Judge in set terms decided, to wit,— That as for the boat, he awarded it to the plaintiffs, because they had merely abandoned it to save their lives; but that with regard to the controverted whale, harpoons, and line, they belonged to the defendants; the whale, because it was a Loose-Fish at the time of the final capture; and the harpoons and line because when the fish made off with them, it (the fish) acquired a property in those articles; and hence anybody who afterwards took the fish had a right to them. Now the defendants afterwards took the fish; ergo, the aforesaid articles were theirs.

These legal motions, along with the responses, were carefully considered, and the knowledgeable Judge made a clear decision: the boat was awarded to the plaintiffs because they had abandoned it just to save their lives. However, regarding the disputed whale, harpoons, and line, those belonged to the defendants. The whale was classified as a Loose-Fish at the time it was ultimately captured, and the harpoons and line belonged to whoever the fish swam away with, giving that person ownership of those items. Since the defendants later caught the fish, it means the aforementioned items are theirs.

A common man looking at this decision of the very learned Judge, might possibly object to it. But ploughed up to the primary rock of the matter, the two great principles laid down in the twin whaling laws previously quoted, and applied and elucidated by Lord Ellenborough in the above cited case; these two laws touching Fast-Fish and Loose-Fish, I say, will on reflection, be found the fundamentals of all human jurisprudence; For notwithstanding its complicated tracery of sculpture, the Temple of the Law, like the Temple of the Philistines, has but two props to stand on.

A regular person looking at this decision from the very knowledgeable Judge might object to it. But getting to the core of the issue, the two key principles outlined in the twin whaling laws mentioned earlier, which were explained by Lord Ellenborough in the previously cited case; these two laws regarding Fast-Fish and Loose-Fish will, upon reflection, be recognized as the foundation of all human law. Because despite its complex design, the Temple of the Law, like the Temple of the Philistines, stands on just two supports.

Is it not a saying in every one's mouth, Possession is half of the law: that is, regardless of how the thing came into possession? But often possession is the whole of the law. What are the sinews and souls of Russian serfs and Republican slaves but Fast-Fish, whereof possession is the whole of the law? What to the rapacious landlord is the widow's last mite but a Fast-Fish? What is yonder undetected villain's marble mansion with a doorplate for a waif; what is that but a Fast-Fish? What is the ruinous discount which Mordecai, the broker, gets from the poor Woebegone, the bankrupt, on a loan to keep Woebegone's family from starvation; what is that ruinous discount but a Fast-Fish? What is the Archbishop of Savesoul's income of 100,000 pounds seized from the scant bread and cheese of hundreds of thousands of broken-backed laborers (all sure of heaven without any of Savesoul's help) what is that globular 100,000 but a Fast-Fish. What are the Duke of Dunder's hereditary towns and hamlets but Fast-Fish? What to that redoubted harpooneer, John Bull, is poor Ireland, but a Fast-Fish? What to that apostolic lancer, Brother Jonathan, is Texas but a Fast-Fish? And concerning all these, is not Possession the whole of the law?

Isn't it commonly said that possession is half of the law, meaning it doesn't matter how something was acquired? But often, possession is everything. What are the lives and struggles of Russian serfs and enslaved people but Fast-Fish, where possession is all that matters? To the greedy landlord, what's the widow's last penny but a Fast-Fish? What about that undiscovered villain’s fancy mansion with a nameplate for an orphan; isn't that just a Fast-Fish? What is the terrible discount that Mordecai, the broker, gets from the poor bankrupt Woebegone on a loan meant to keep his family from starving; isn't that ruinous discount a Fast-Fish? What about the Archbishop of Savesoul’s income of 100,000 pounds taken from the meager bread and cheese of countless broken-hearted workers (who are all guaranteed a place in heaven without any help from Savesoul); isn’t that hefty 100,000 just a Fast-Fish? What are the Duke of Dunder's inherited towns and villages but Fast-Fish? What to that fierce harpooner, John Bull, is poor Ireland, but a Fast-Fish? What to that principled lance-wielder, Brother Jonathan, is Texas but a Fast-Fish? And regarding all these cases, isn't possession truly everything?

But if the doctrine of Fast-Fish be pretty generally applicable, the kindred doctrine of Loose-Fish is still more widely so. That is internationally and universally applicable.

But while the principle of Fast-Fish is fairly widely applicable, the related principle of Loose-Fish is even more so. It applies internationally and universally.

What was America in 1492 but a Loose-Fish, in which Columbus struck the Spanish standard by way of wailing it for his royal master and mistress? What was Poland to the Czar? What Greece to the Turk? What India to England? What at last will Mexico be to the United States? All Loose-Fish.

What was America in 1492 but a Loose-Fish, where Columbus raised the Spanish flag to serve his royal master and mistress? What was Poland to the Czar? What was Greece to the Turk? What was India to England? What will Mexico eventually be to the United States? All Loose-Fish.

What are the Rights of Man and the Liberties of the World but Loose-Fish? What all men's minds and opinions but Loose-Fish? What is the principle of religious belief in them but a Loose-Fish? What to the ostentatious smuggling verbalists are the thoughts of thinkers but Loose-Fish? What is the great globe itself but a Loose-Fish? And what are you, reader, but a Loose-Fish and a Fast-Fish, too?

What are the Rights of Man and the Freedoms of the World but loose concepts? What are all people's thoughts and opinions but loose ideas? What is the basis of their religious beliefs but a loose idea? What are the thoughts of intellectuals to those flashy wordsmiths but loose ideas? What is the entire world itself but a loose concept? And what are you, reader, but both a loose idea and a fixed one as well?

CHAPTER 90

Heads or Tails

Flip a Coin

  "De balena vero sufficit, si rex habeat caput, et regina caudam."
                                      BRACTON, L. 3, C. 3.

"About the whale, it is enough if the king has a head and the queen has a tail."
                                      BRACTON, L. 3, C. 3.

Latin from the books of the Laws of England, which taken along with the context, means, that of all whales captured by anybody on the coast of that land, the King, as Honorary Grand Harpooneer, must have the head, and the Queen be respectfully presented with the tail. A division which, in the whale, is much like halving an apple; there is no intermediate remainder. Now as this law, under a modified form, is to this day in force in England; and as it offers in various respects a strange anomaly touching the general law of Fast—and Loose-Fish, it is here treated of in a separate chapter, on the same courteous principle that prompts the English railways to be at the expense of a separate car, specially reserved for the accommodation of royalty. In the first place, in curious proof of the fact that the above-mentioned law is still in force, I proceed to lay before you a circumstance-that happened within the last two years.

Latin from the books of the Laws of England, which, when combined with the context, means that of all the whales caught by anyone on the coast of that land, the King, as Honorary Grand Harpooneer, must receive the head, and the Queen must respectfully be given the tail. This division in the whale is much like splitting an apple; there is no leftover part. Now, since this law, in a modified form, is still in effect in England today, and since it presents a peculiar anomaly regarding the general law of Fast—and Loose-Fish, it's discussed here in a separate chapter, similar to how English railways allocate a separate car specially reserved for the comfort of royalty. First, to demonstrate that the aforementioned law is still applicable, I will share an incident that occurred within the last two years.

It seems that some honest mariners of Dover, or Sandwich, or some one of the Cinque Ports, had after a hard chase succeeded in killing and beaching a fine whale which they had originally descried afar off from the shore. Now the Cinque Ports are partially or somehow under the jurisdiction of a sort of policeman or beadle, called a Lord Warden. Holding the office directly from the crown, I believe, all the royal emoluments incident to the Cinque Port territories become by assignment his. By some writers this office is called a sinecure. But not so. Because the Lord Warden is busily employed at times in fobbing his perquisites; which are his chiefly by virtue of that same fobbing of them.

It seems that some honest fishermen from Dover, Sandwich, or one of the Cinque Ports managed to kill and beach a fine whale after a tough chase, which they had spotted from the shore. The Cinque Ports are partly under the authority of a sort of local official, called the Lord Warden. Holding the position directly from the crown, I believe he receives all the royal benefits associated with the Cinque Port territories. Some writers refer to this position as a sinecure. But that's not entirely accurate. The Lord Warden is often busy trying to claim his perks, which he mostly acquires by virtue of that very act of claiming them.

Now when these poor sun-burnt mariners, bare-footed, and with their trowsers rolled high up on their eely legs, had wearily hauled their fat fish high and dry, promising themselves a good 150 pounds from the precious oil and bone; and in fantasy sipping rare tea with their wives, and good ale with their cronies, upon the strength of their respective shares; up steps a very learned and most Christian and charitable gentleman, with a copy of Blackstone under his arm; and laying it upon the whale's head, he says—"Hands off! this fish, my masters, is a Fast-Fish. I seize it as the Lord Warden's." Upon this the poor mariners in their respectful consternation—so truly English— knowing not what to say, fall to vigorously scratching their heads all round; meanwhile ruefully glancing from the whale to the stranger. But that did in nowise mend the matter, or at all soften the hard heart of the learned gentleman with the copy of Blackstone. At length one of them, after long scratching about for his ideas, made bold to speak,

Now when these poor sunburned sailors, barefoot and with their pants rolled up high on their slim legs, had wearily pulled their hefty fish ashore, expecting to make a good £150 from the valuable oil and bones; and while dreaming of sipping fine tea with their wives and good beer with their friends based on their respective shares; a very learned and charitable gentleman, with a copy of Blackstone under his arm, stepped up. He placed it on the whale's head and said, “Hands off! This fish, gentlemen, is a Fast-Fish. I claim it as the Lord Warden's.” The poor sailors, caught in respectful confusion—so typically English—not knowing what to say, began to scratch their heads vigorously all around; meanwhile glancing sadly from the whale to the stranger. But that didn’t improve the situation or soften the stern demeanor of the learned gentleman with the copy of Blackstone. Finally, one of them, after a long time scratching his head for ideas, mustered the courage to speak,

"Please, sir, who is the Lord Warden?"

"Excuse me, sir, who is the Lord Warden?"

"The Duke."

"The Duke"

"But the duke had nothing to do with taking this fish?"

"But the duke had nothing to do with catching this fish?"

"It is his."

"It's his."

"We have been at great trouble, and peril, and some expense, and is all that to go to the Duke's benefit; we getting nothing at all for our pains but our blisters?"

"We've gone through a lot of trouble, risk, and some expense, and all of that is just for the Duke's benefit; we're not getting anything at all for our effort except for our blisters?"

"It is his."

"It's his."

"Is the Duke so very poor as to be forced to this desperate mode of getting a livelihood?"

"Is the Duke really so poor that he has to resort to this desperate way of making a living?"

"It is his."

"It's his."

"I thought to relieve my old bed-ridden mother by part of my share of this whale."

"I wanted to help my elderly, bedridden mother by giving her part of my share of this whale."

"It is his."

"It's his."

"Won't the Duke be content with a quarter or a half?"

"Won't the Duke be happy with a quarter or a half?"

"It is his."

"It's his."

In a word, the whale was seized and sold, and his Grace the Duke of Wellington received the money. Thinking that viewed in some particular lights, the case might by a bare possibility in some small degree be deemed, under the circumstances, a rather hard one, an honest clergyman of the town respectfully addressed a note to his Grace, begging him to take the case of those unfortunate mariners into full consideration. To which my Lord Duke in substance replied (both letters were published) that he had already done so, and received the money, and would be obliged to the reverend gentleman if for the future he (the reverend gentleman) would decline meddling with other people's business. Is this the still militant old man, standing at the corners of the three kingdoms, on all hands coercing alms of beggars?

In short, the whale was caught and sold, and the Duke of Wellington got the money. Believing that, from certain angles, this situation might, in reality, seem a bit unfair, a well-meaning clergyman in the town wrote to the Duke, asking him to think about the plight of those unfortunate sailors. The Duke, in essence (both letters were published), replied that he had already considered the matter, accepted the money, and would appreciate it if the reverend would refrain from interfering in other people's affairs in the future. Is this the same determined old man, standing at the corners of the three kingdoms, consistently collecting charity from beggars?

It will readily be seen that in this case the alleged right of the Duke to the whale was a delegated one from the Sovereign. We must needs inquire then on what principle the Sovereign is originally invested with that right. The law itself has already been set forth. But Plowdon gives us the reason for it. Says Plowdon, the whale so caught belongs to the King and Queen, "because of its superior excellence." And by the soundest commentators this has ever been held a cogent argument in such matters.

It will be clear that in this case, the Duke's claimed right to the whale was delegated to him by the Sovereign. We need to explore the principle on which the Sovereign originally holds that right. The law itself has already been explained. However, Plowdon provides the reasoning for it. Plowdon states that the whale caught belongs to the King and Queen "because of its superior excellence." This has always been considered a strong argument in these matters by reputable commentators.

But why should the King have the head, and the Queen the tail?
A reason for that, ye lawyers!

But why should the King have the head and the Queen have the tail?
A reason for that, you lawyers!

In his treatise on "Queen-Gold," or Queen-pin-money, an old King's Bench author, one William Prynne, thus discourseth: "Ye tail is ye Queen's, that ye Queen's wardrobe may be supplied with ye whalebone." Now this was written at a time when the black limber bone of the Greenland or Right whale was largely used in ladies' bodices. But this same bone is not in the tail; it is in the head, which is a sad mistake for a sagacious lawyer like Prynne. But is the Queen a mermaid, to be presented with a tail? An allegorical meaning may lurk here.

In his essay on "Queen-Gold," or Queen-pin-money, an old King's Bench writer, William Prynne, states: "The tail belongs to the Queen, so her wardrobe can be supplied with whale bone." This was written at a time when the black flexible bone from the Greenland or Right whale was commonly used in women’s bodices. However, this bone isn’t in the tail; it’s in the head, which is a serious oversight for a smart lawyer like Prynne. But is the Queen a mermaid, deserving of a tail? There might be a deeper meaning here.

There are two royal fish so styled by the English law writers— the whale and the sturgeon; both royal property under certain limitations, and nominally supplying the tenth branch of the crown's ordinary revenue. I know not that any other author has hinted of the matter; but by inference it seems to me that the sturgeon must be divided in the same way as the whale, the King receiving the highly dense and elastic head peculiar to that fish, which, symbolically regarded, may possibly be humorously grounded upon some presumed congeniality. And thus there seems a reason in all things, even in law.

There are two royal fish recognized by English law writers—the whale and the sturgeon; both are considered royal property under certain conditions and provide a nominal contribution as the tenth source of the crown's usual revenue. I haven’t seen any other author mention this, but it seems to me that the sturgeon should be divided in the same way as the whale, with the King receiving the highly dense and elastic head that is unique to that fish, which, if viewed symbolically, might humorously be based on some assumed compatibility. And so, it appears there’s a reason behind everything, even in law.

CHAPTER 91

The Pequod Meets The Rose-Bud

The Pequod Meets the Rose-Bud

"In vain it was to rake for Ambergriese in the paunch of this Leviathan, insufferable fetor denying not inquiry." SIR T. BROWNE, V. E.

"In vain it was to search for Ambergris in the belly of this Leviathan, the unbearable stench hindering any investigation." SIR T. BROWNE, V. E.

It was a week or two after the last whaling scene recounted, and when we were slowly sailing over a sleepy, vapory, mid-day sea, that the many noses on the Pequod's deck proved more vigilant discoverers than the three pairs of eyes aloft. A peculiar and not very pleasant smell was smelt in the sea.

It was a week or two after the last whaling scene described, and while we were slowly sailing over a calm, misty, midday sea, the many noses on the Pequod's deck turned out to be more alert at spotting something than the three pairs of eyes up high. A strange and not very pleasant smell wafted from the sea.

"I will bet something now," said Stubb, "that somewhere hereabouts are some of those drugged whales we tickled the other day. I thought they would keel up before long."

"I'll wager something now," said Stubb, "that somewhere around here are some of those drugged whales we played with the other day. I figured they would turn up soon."

Presently, the vapors in advance slid aside; and there in the distance lay a ship, whose furled sails betokened that some sort of whale must be alongside. As we glided nearer, the stranger showed French colors from his peak; and by the eddying cloud of vulture sea-fowl that circled, and hovered, and swooped around him, it was plain that the whale alongside must be what the fishermen call a blasted whale, that is, a whale that has died unmolested on the sea, and so floated an unappropriated corpse. It may well be conceived, what an unsavory odor such a mass must exhale; worse than an Assyrian city in the plague, when the living are incompetent to bury the departed. So intolerable indeed is it regarded by some, that no cupidity could persuade them to moor alongside of it. Yet are there those who will still do it; notwithstanding the fact that the oil obtained from such subjects is of a very inferior quality, and by no means of the nature of attar-of-rose.

Right now, the mist parted ahead, revealing a ship in the distance with its sails furled, indicating that some kind of whale must be nearby. As we got closer, the ship displayed French flags at its peak, and the swirling clouds of vultures circling and swooping around it made it clear that the whale next to it was what fishermen refer to as a "blasted whale," meaning a whale that has died naturally at sea and is now an unclaimed carcass. It’s easy to imagine the unpleasant smell such a mass would emit; worse than an Assyrian city during a plague when the living can’t bury the dead. In fact, it’s so intolerable that some wouldn’t be tempted by greed to anchor near it. Yet, there are still those who do, despite knowing that the oil extracted from such a whale is of very poor quality and hardly akin to rose oil.

Coming still nearer with the expiring breeze, we saw that the Frenchman had a second whale alongside; and this second whale seemed even more of a nosegay than the first. In truth, it turned out to be one of those problematical whales that seem to dry up and die with a sort of prodigious dyspepsia, or indigestion; leaving their defunct bodies almost entirely bankrupt of anything like oil. Nevertheless, in the proper place we shall see that no knowing fisherman will ever turn up his nose at such a whale as this, however much he may shun blasted whales in general.

Coming even closer with the fading breeze, we saw that the Frenchman had another whale alongside; and this second whale looked even more peculiar than the first. In fact, it turned out to be one of those questionable whales that seem to dry up and perish from some sort of severe digestive issue, leaving their lifeless bodies almost entirely devoid of any oil. Still, in the right context, we will see that no experienced fisherman would ever dismiss a whale like this, no matter how much he may avoid damaged whales in general.

The Pequod had now swept so nigh to the stranger, that Stubb vowed he recognized his cutting spade-pole entangled in the lines that were knotted round the tail of one of these whales.

The Pequod had now gotten so close to the stranger that Stubb swore he recognized his sharp spade-pole caught in the lines that were tied around the tail of one of these whales.

"There's a pretty fellow, now," he banteringly laughed, standing in the ship's bows, "there's a jackal for ye! I well know that these Crappoes of Frenchmen are but poor devils in the fishery; sometimes lowering their boats for breakers, mistaking them for Sperm Whale spouts; yes, and sometimes sailing from their port with their hold full of boxes of tallow candles, and cases of snuffers, foreseeing that all the oil they will get won't be enough to dip the Captain's wick into; aye, we all know these things; but look ye, here's a Crappo that is content with our leavings, the drugged whale there, I mean; aye, and is content too with scraping the dry bones of that other precious fish he has there. Poor devil! I say, pass round a hat, some one, and let's make him a present of a little oil for dear charity's sake. For what oil he'll get from that drugged whale there, wouldn't be fit to burn in a jail; no, not in a condemned cell. And as for the other whale, why, I'll agree to get more oil by chopping up and trying out these three masts of ours, than he'll get from that bundle of bones; though, now that I think of it, it may contain something worth a good deal more than oil; yes, ambergris. I wonder now if our old man has thought of that. It's worth trying. Yes, I'm for it;" and so saying he started for the quarter-deck.

"Look at that guy," he laughed teasingly, standing at the front of the ship. "What a joker! I know these French guys are not great at fishing; sometimes they lower their boats for what they think are whale spouts, only to realize they’re just breaking waves. Yeah, and sometimes they leave their port with their holds full of boxes of tallow candles and cases of snuffers, knowing that the oil they get won’t even be enough to light the Captain's candle. We all know this; but look, here’s a French guy who’s happy to settle for our leftovers, the drugged whale over there, I mean; and he’s also okay with scraping the bones of that other valuable fish he has. Poor guy! I say, let’s pass around a hat and give him a little oil for charity. The oil he'll get from that drugged whale wouldn’t even be good enough to burn in a jail cell; no, not even in a condemned cell. And as for the other whale, I'd bet I'll get more oil by cutting up these three masts of ours than he’ll get from that pile of bones; though, now that I think about it, it might have something worth a lot more than oil; yeah, ambergris. I wonder if the old man has thought about that. It's worth a shot. Yeah, I’m in,” and with that, he headed for the quarter-deck.

By this time the faint air had become a complete calm; so that whether or no, the Pequod was now fairly entrapped in the smell, with no hope of escaping except by its breezing up again. Issuing from the cabin, Stubb now called his boat's crew, and pulled off for the stranger. Drawing across her bow, he perceived that in accordance with the fanciful French taste, the upper part of her stem-piece was carved in the likeness of a huge drooping stalk, was painted green, and for thorns had copper spikes projecting from it here and there; the whole terminating in a symmetrical folded bulb of a bright red color. Upon her head boards, in large gilt letters, he read "Bouton de Rose,"—Rose-button, or Rose-bud; and this was the romantic name of this aromatic ship.

At this point, the light breeze had turned into a complete calm, meaning the Pequod was now completely trapped in the smell, with no hope of escaping unless the wind picked up again. Stubb came out of the cabin, called his crew, and set off toward the stranger ship. As he crossed her bow, he noticed that, in line with the fanciful French style, the upper part of her stem was carved to look like a large drooping stalk, painted green, and had copper spikes sticking out here and there as thorns; it all ended in a neatly folded bulb of bright red. On her head boards, in big gold letters, he read "Bouton de Rose,"—Rose-button, or Rose-bud; and this was the romantic name of this fragrant ship.

Though Stubb did not understand the Bouton part of the inscription, yet the word rose, and the bulbous figure-head put together, sufficiently explained the whole to him.

Though Stubb didn't get the Bouton part of the inscription, the word "rose" and the bulbous figurehead combined made it clear enough for him.

"A wooden rose-bud, eh?" he cried with his hand to his nose, "that will do very well; but how like all creation it smells!"

"A wooden rosebud, huh?" he exclaimed, with his hand to his nose, "that works just fine; but it smells just like everything else!"

Now in order to hold direct communication with the people on deck, he had to pull round the bows to the starboard side, and thus come close to the blasted whale; and so talk over it.

Now, to communicate directly with the people on deck, he had to turn the bow towards the starboard side, getting close to the wrecked whale to talk over it.

Arrived then at this spot, with one hand still to his nose, he bawled—"Bouton-de-Rose, ahoy! are there any of you Bouton-de-Roses that speak English?"

Arriving at this spot, with one hand still on his nose, he shouted, “Bouton-de-Rose, hey! Are there any of you Bouton-de-Roses who speak English?”

"Yes," rejoined a Guernsey-man from the bulwarks, who turned out to be the chief-mate.

"Yes," replied a Guernsey man from the railing, who turned out to be the first mate.

"Well, then, my Bouton-de-Rose-bud, have you seen the White Whale?"

"Well, then, my Rosebud, have you seen the White Whale?"

"What whale?"

"What whale?"

"The White Whale—a Sperm Whale—Moby Dick, have ye seen him?

"The White Whale—a Sperm Whale—Moby Dick, have you seen him?"

"Never heard of such a whale. Cachalot Blanche! White Whale—no."

"Never heard of a whale like that. Cachalot Blanche! White Whale—no."

"Very good, then; good bye now, and I'll call again in a minute."

"Alright, then; see you later, and I’ll call back in a minute."

Then rapidly pulling back towards the Pequod, and seeing Ahab leaning over the quarter-deck rail awaiting his report, he moulded his two hands into a trumpet and shouted—"No, Sir! No!" Upon which Ahab retired, and Stubb returned to the Frenchman.

Then quickly pulling back towards the Pequod, and seeing Ahab leaning over the quarter-deck rail waiting for his report, he cupped his hands into a trumpet shape and shouted—"No, Sir! No!" After that, Ahab stepped back, and Stubb went back to the Frenchman.

He now perceived that the Guernsey-man, who had just got into the chains, and was using a cutting-spade, had slung his nose in a sort of bag.

He now realized that the Guernsey man, who had just gotten into the chains and was using a cutting spade, had his nose in some kind of bag.

"What's the matter with your nose, there?" said Stubb. "Broke it?"

"What's wrong with your nose?" asked Stubb. "Did you break it?"

"I wish it was broken, or that I didn't have any nose at all!" answered the Guernsey-man, who did not seem to relish the job he was at very much. "But what are you holding yours for?"

"I wish it was broken, or that I didn't have a nose at all!" replied the Guernsey man, who didn't seem to enjoy the task he was doing very much. "But why are you holding yours?"

"Oh, nothing! It's a wax nose; I have to hold it on. Fine day, ain't it? Air rather gardenny, I should say; throw us a bunch of posies, will ye, Bouton-de-Rose?"

"Oh, nothing! It's a wax nose; I have to hold it on. Nice day, right? The air feels a bit like a garden, I’d say; toss me a bunch of flowers, will you, Bouton-de-Rose?"

"What in the devil's name do you want here?" roared the Guernseyman, flying into a sudden passion.

"What in the world do you want here?" shouted the Guernseyman, bursting into sudden anger.

"Oh! keep cool—cool? yes, that's the word! why don't you pack those whales in ice while you're working at 'em? But joking aside, though; do you know, Rose-bud, that it's all nonsense trying to get any oil out of such whales? As for that dried up one, there, he hasn't a gill in his whole carcase."

"Oh! Stay calm—calm? Yes, that's the word! Why don’t you chill those whales while you’re working on them? But seriously, do you know, Rose-bud, that it’s pointless trying to get any oil out of those whales? That dried-up one over there doesn’t have a single gill in its entire body."

"I know that well enough; but, d'ye see, the Captain here won't believe it; this is his first voyage; he was a Cologne manufacturer before. But come aboard, and mayhap he'll believe you, if he won't me; and so I'll get out of this dirty scrape."

"I know that well enough; but, you see, the Captain here won't believe it; this is his first trip; he was a manufacturer in Cologne before. But come aboard, and maybe he'll believe you, if he won't believe me; and then I'll get out of this messy situation."

"Anything to oblige ye, my sweet and pleasant fellow," rejoined Stubb, and with that he soon mounted to the deck. There a queer scene presented itself. The sailors, in tasselled caps of red worsted, were getting the heavy tackles in readiness for the whales. But they worked rather slow and talked very fast, and seemed in anything but a good humor. All their noses upwardly projected from their faces like so many jibbooms. Now and then pairs of them would drop their work, and run up to the mast-head to get some fresh air. Some thinking they would catch the plague, dipped oakum in coal-tar, and at intervals held it to their nostrils. Others having broken the stems of their pipes almost short off at the bowl, were vigorously puffing tobacco-smoke, so that it constantly filled their olfactories.

"Anything to help you, my sweet and cheerful friend," replied Stubb, and with that, he quickly went up to the deck. There, a strange scene unfolded. The sailors, wearing tasselled caps made of red wool, were preparing the heavy tackle for the whales. However, they worked slowly and chatted rapidly, and they didn’t seem to be in a good mood. Their noses jutted out from their faces like so many jibbooms. Occasionally, pairs of them would stop working and rush up to the masthead for some fresh air. Some, fearing they might catch something, dipped oakum in coal-tar and periodically held it to their noses. Others had broken their pipes so short at the bowl that they were vigorously puffing smoke, filling the air around them.

Stubb was struck by a shower of outcries and anathemas proceeding from the Captain's round-house abaft; and looking in that direction saw a fiery face thrust from behind the door, which was held ajar from within. This was the tormented surgeon, who, after in vain remonstrating against the proceedings of the day, had betaken himself to the Captain's round-house (cabinet he called it) to avoid the pest; but still, could not help yelling out his entreaties and indignations at times.

Stubb was hit by a barrage of shouts and curses coming from the Captain's cabin at the back; and when he looked over, he saw a furious face peeking out from behind a door that was slightly open. This was the frustrated surgeon, who, after unsuccessfully trying to protest against the day's events, had retreated to the Captain's cabin (which he called a cabinet) to escape the chaos; but even so, he couldn't help shouting out his pleas and frustrations at times.

Marking all this, Stubb argued well for his scheme, and turning to the Guernsey-man had a little chat with him, during which the stranger mate expressed his detestation of his Captain as a conceited ignoramus, who had brought them all into so unsavory and unprofitable a pickle. Sounding him carefully, Stubb further perceived that the Guernsey-man had not the slightest suspicion concerning the ambergris. He therefore held his peace on that head, but otherwise was quite frank and confidential with him, so that the two quickly concocted a little plan for both circumventing and satirizing the Captain, without his at all dreaming of distrusting their sincerity. According to this little plan of theirs, the Guernsey-man, under cover of an interpreter's office, was to tell the Captain what he pleased, but as coming from Stubb; and as for Stubb, he was to utter any nonsense that should come uppermost in him during the interview.

Marking all this, Stubb made a solid argument for his plan and turned to the Guernsey-man for a brief chat, during which the stranger expressed his disdain for his Captain as a cocky fool who had landed them all in such an unpleasant and unprofitable situation. As Stubb probed him carefully, he realized that the Guernsey-man had no clue about the ambergris. So, he kept quiet on that point but was otherwise open and honest with him, leading the two to quickly hatch a little scheme to both outsmart and mock the Captain, without him suspecting their sincerity at all. According to their plan, the Guernsey-man, acting as an interpreter, would tell the Captain whatever he wanted, pretending it came from Stubb; meanwhile, Stubb would just say whatever nonsense came to mind during the meeting.

By this time their destined victim appeared from his cabin. He was a small and dark, but rather delicate looking man for a sea-captain, with large whiskers and moustache, however; and wore a red cotton velvet vest with watch-seals at his side. To this gentleman, Stubb was now politely introduced by the Guernsey-man, who at once ostentatiously put on the aspect of interpreting between them.

By this time, their intended target came out of his cabin. He was a short, dark, and somewhat delicate-looking man for a sea captain, sporting large whiskers and a mustache, and he wore a red cotton velvet vest with watch seals at his side. Stubb was now politely introduced to this gentleman by the Guernsey man, who immediately put on a show of translating between them.

"What shall I say to him first?" said he.

"What should I say to him first?" he asked.

"Why," said Stubb, eyeing the velvet vest and the watch and seals, "you may as well begin by telling him that he looks a sort of babyish to me, though I don't pretend to be a judge."

"Why," said Stubb, looking at the velvet vest and the watch and seals, "you might as well start by telling him that he seems a bit childish to me, though I don't claim to be an expert."

"He says, Monsieur," said the Guernsey-man, in French, turning to his captain, "that only yesterday his ship spoke a vessel, whose captain and chief-mate, with six sailors, had all died of a fever caught from a blasted whale they had brought alongside."

"He says, sir," said the Guernsey man in French, turning to his captain, "that just yesterday his ship encountered another vessel, whose captain and first mate, along with six sailors, all died from a fever they caught from a cursed whale they had brought alongside."

Upon this the captain started, and eagerly desired to know more.

Upon this, the captain jumped at the chance and was keen to learn more.

"What now?" said the Guernsey-man to Stubb.

"What now?" the Guernsey man asked Stubb.

"Why, since he takes it so easy, tell him that now I have eyed him carefully, I'm quite certain that he's no more fit to command a whale-ship than a St. Jago monkey. In fact, tell him from me he's a baboon."

"Why, since he’s so laid-back, tell him that now that I’ve looked at him closely, I’m pretty sure he’s no more fit to captain a whale ship than a St. Jago monkey. In fact, tell him for me he’s a baboon."

"He vows and declares, Monsieur, that the other whale, the dried one, is far more deadly than the blasted one; in fine, Monsieur, he conjures us, as we value our lives, to cut loose from these fish."

"He swears, sir, that the other whale, the dried one, is way more dangerous than the blasted one; in short, sir, he urges us, as we cherish our lives, to let go of these fish."

Instantly the captain ran forward, and in a loud voice commanded his crew to desist from hoisting the cutting-tackles, and at once cast loose the cables and chains confining the whales to the ship.

Instantly, the captain ran forward and loudly ordered his crew to stop hoisting the cutting-tackles, and immediately released the cables and chains holding the whales to the ship.

"What now?" said the Guernsey-man, when the Captain had returned to them.

"What now?" said the Guernsey man when the Captain came back to them.

"Why, let me see; yes, you may as well tell him now that—that—in fact, tell him I've diddled him, and (aside to himself) perhaps somebody else."

"Why, let me think; yes, you might as well tell him now that—that—in fact, tell him I've tricked him, and (to himself) maybe someone else too."

"He says, Monsieur, that he's very happy to have been of any service to us."

"He says, sir, that he’s very happy to have been of any help to us."

Hearing this, the captain vowed that they were the grateful parties (meaning himself and mate), and concluded by inviting Stubb down into his cabin to drink a bottle of Bordeaux.

Hearing this, the captain promised that they were the thankful ones (meaning himself and his mate), and ended by inviting Stubb down to his cabin to share a bottle of Bordeaux.

"He wants you to take a glass of wine with him," said the interpreter.

"He wants you to have a glass of wine with him," said the interpreter.

"Thank him heartily; but tell him it's against my principles to drink with the man I've diddled. In fact, tell him I must go."

"Thank him sincerely, but let him know it's against my principles to drink with someone I've deceived. Actually, tell him I have to go."

"He says, Monsieur, that his principles won't admit of his drinking; but that if Monsieur wants to live another day to drink, then Monsieur had best drop all four boats, and pull the ship away from these whales, for it's so calm they won't drift."

"He says, Sir, that his principles won't allow him to drink; but if Sir wants to live another day to drink, then Sir should drop all four boats and pull the ship away from these whales, because it's so calm they won't drift."

By this time Stubb was over the side, and getting into his boat, hailed the Guernsey-man to this effect,—that having a long tow-line in his boat, he would do what he could to help them, by pulling out the lighter whale of the two from the ship's side. While the Frenchman's boats, then, were engaged in towing the ship one way, Stubb benevolently towed away at his whale the other way, ostentatiously slacking out a most unusually long tow-line.

By this time, Stubb was over the side and getting into his boat. He called out to the Guernsey man, saying that since he had a long tow line in his boat, he would do what he could to help by pulling the lighter whale away from the ship's side. While the Frenchman’s boats were busy towing the ship one way, Stubb kindly towed his whale the other way, showing off an unusually long tow line.

Presently a breeze sprang up; Stubb feigned to cast off from the whale; hoisting his boats, the Frenchman soon increased his distance, while the Pequod slid in between him and Stubb's whale. Whereupon Stubb quickly pulled to the floating body, and hailing the Pequod to give notice of his intentions, at once proceeded to reap the fruit of his unrighteous cunning. Seizing his sharp boat-spade, he commenced an excavation in the body, a little behind the side fin. You would almost have thought he was digging a cellar there in the sea; and when at length his spade struck against the gaunt ribs, it was like turning up old Roman tiles and pottery buried in fat English loam. His boat's crew were all in high excitement, eagerly helping their chief, and looking as anxious as gold-hunters.

Right now, a breeze picked up; Stubb pretended to pull away from the whale. As he hoisted his boats, the Frenchman quickly increased his distance, while the Pequod slid in between him and Stubb's whale. Stubb then quickly paddled over to the floating body and called out to the Pequod to let them know what he was planning. He immediately set to work on the prize of his dishonest trick. Grabbing his sharp boat spade, he started digging into the body, a bit behind the side fin. You might have thought he was digging a cellar down in the sea; and when his spade finally hit the thin ribs, it felt like uncovering old Roman tiles and pottery buried in rich English soil. His boat's crew was all excited, eagerly assisting their leader and looking as anxious as treasure hunters.

And all the time numberless fowls were diving, and ducking, and screaming, and yelling, and fighting around them. Stubb was beginning to look disappointed, especially as the horrible nosegay increased, when suddenly from out the very heart of this plague, there stole a faint stream of perfume, which flowed through the tide of bad smells without being absorbed by it, as one river will flow into and then along with another, without at all blending with it for a time.

And all the while, countless birds were diving, ducking, screaming, yelling, and fighting around them. Stubb was starting to look disappointed, especially as the awful stench got worse, when suddenly, from right in the middle of this mess, a faint stream of perfume emerged, flowing through the sea of bad smells without being mixed in, like one river flowing into and then alongside another without blending for a while.

"I have it, I have it," cried Stubb, with delight, striking something in the subterranean regions, "a purse! a purse!"

"I've got it, I've got it," yelled Stubb, excitedly hitting something in the underground area, "a purse! a purse!"

Dropping his spade, he thrust both hands in, and drew out handfuls of something that looked like ripe Windsor soap, or rich mottled old cheese; very unctuous and savory withal. You might easily dent it with your thumb; it is of a hue between yellow and ash color. And this, good friends, is ambergris, worth a gold guinea an ounce to any druggist. Some six handfuls were obtained; but more was unavoidably lost in the sea, and still more, perhaps, might have been secured were it not for impatient Ahab's loud command to Stubb to desist, and come on board, else the ship would bid them good-bye.

Dropping his spade, he plunged both hands in and pulled out handfuls of something that looked like ripe Windsor soap or rich, mottled old cheese; very smooth and flavorful too. You could easily press it with your thumb; it had a color between yellow and gray. And this, my friends, is ambergris, worth a gold guinea an ounce to any pharmacist. He collected about six handfuls, but more was inevitably lost to the sea, and even more might have been gotten if it weren't for Ahab's impatient shout to Stubb to stop and come back on board, or else the ship would leave them behind.

CHAPTER 92

Ambergris

Ambergris

Now this ambergris is a very curious substance, and so important as an article of commerce, that in 1791 a certain Nantucket-born Captain Coffin was examined at the bar of the English House of Commons on that subject. For at that time, and indeed until a comparatively late day, the precise origin of ambergris remained, like amber itself, a problem to the learned. Though the word ambergris is but the French compound for grey amber, yet the two substances are quite distinct. For amber, though at times found on the sea-coast, is also dug up in some far inland soils, whereas ambergris is never found except upon the sea. Besides, amber is a hard, transparent, brittle, odorless substance, used for mouth-pieces to pipes, for beads and ornaments; but ambergris is soft, waxy, and so highly fragrant and spicy, that it is largely used in perfumery, in pastiles, precious candles, hair-powders, and pomatum. The Turks use it in cooking, and also carry it to Mecca, for the same purpose that frankincense is carried to St. Peter's in Rome. Some wine merchants drop a few grains into claret, to flavor it.

Now, ambergris is a very interesting substance and so important as a commercial item that in 1791, a Nantucket-born Captain Coffin was questioned about it in the English House of Commons. At that time, and really until relatively recently, the exact origin of ambergris remained a mystery to scholars, much like amber itself. Although the word ambergris is just the French term for grey amber, the two substances are quite different. Amber, while sometimes found along the coast, can also be extracted from certain inland areas, whereas ambergris is only found at sea. Additionally, amber is a hard, transparent, brittle, and odorless material used for pipe mouthpieces, beads, and ornaments; on the other hand, ambergris is soft, waxy, and highly fragrant, making it widely used in perfumes, incense, luxury candles, hair powders, and pomade. The Turks use it in cooking and also take it to Mecca, much like frankincense is taken to St. Peter's in Rome. Some wine merchants add a few grains to claret to enhance its flavor.

Who would think, then, that such fine ladies and gentlemen should regale themselves with an essence found in the inglorious bowels of a sick whale! Yet so it is. By some, ambergris is supposed to be the cause, and by others the effect, of the dyspepsia in the whale. How to cure such a dyspepsia it were hard to say, unless by administering three or four boat loads of Brandreth's pills, and then running out of harm's way, as laborers do in blasting rocks.

Who would believe that such elegant ladies and gentlemen would indulge in a scent derived from the unglamorous insides of a sick whale? Yet, that's the case. Some people think ambergris causes the whale's digestive issues, while others believe it's a result of them. It's tough to say how to remedy such digestive problems, unless you administer three or four boatloads of Brandreth's pills and then quickly get out of the way, just like workers do when blasting rocks.

I have forgotten to say that there were found in this ambergris, certain hard, round, bony plates, which at first Stubb thought might be sailors' trousers buttons; but it afterwards turned out that they were nothing, more than pieces of small squid bones embalmed in that manner.

I forgot to mention that in this ambergris, there were some hard, round, bony plates that Stubb initially thought could be buttons from sailors' trousers. But it later turned out they were just pieces of small squid bones preserved like that.

Now that the incorruption of this most fragrant ambergris should be found in the heart of such decay; is this nothing? Bethink thee of that saying of St. Paul in Corinthians, about corruption and incorruption; how that we are sown in dishonor, but raised in glory. And likewise call to mind that saying of Paracelsus about what it is that maketh the best musk. Also forget not the strange fact that of all things of ill-savor, Cologne-water, in its rudimental manufacturing stages, is the worst.

Now that we find this wonderfully fragrant ambergris in the midst of such decay; is this nothing? Think about that saying of St. Paul in Corinthians, about corruption and incorruption; how we are buried in dishonor but raised in glory. And also remember that saying of Paracelsus about what makes the best musk. Don't forget the strange fact that among all unpleasant things, Cologne water, in its early manufacturing stages, is the worst.

I should like to conclude the chapter with the above appeal, but cannot, owing to my anxiety to repel a charge often made against whalemen, and which, in the estimation of some already biased minds, might be considered as indirectly substantiated by what has been said of the Frenchman's two whales. Elsewhere in this volume the slanderous aspersion has been disproved, that the vocation of whaling is throughout a slatternly, untidy business. But there is another thing to rebut. They hint that all whales always smell bad. Now how did this odious stigma originate?

I’d like to wrap up the chapter with the appeal above, but I can’t because I’m anxious to counter a common accusation made against whalers, which some already biased people might wrongly think is supported by what’s been said about the Frenchman’s two whales. In other parts of this book, I’ve disproven the false claim that whaling is an unkempt, messy profession. But there’s another point I need to address. They suggest that all whales always smell terrible. So, where did this disgusting reputation come from?

I opine, that it is plainly traceable to the first arrival of the Greenland whaling ships in London, more than two centuries ago. Because those whalemen did not then, and do not now, try out their oil at sea as the Southern ships have always done; but cutting up the fresh blubber in small bits, thrust it through the bung holes of large casks, and carry it home in that manner; the shortness of the season in those Icy Seas, and the sudden and violent storms to which they are exposed, forbidding any other course. The consequence is, that upon breaking into the hold, and unloading one of these whale cemeteries, in the Greenland dock, a savor is given forth somewhat similar to that arising from excavating an old city graveyard, for the foundations of a Lying-in Hospital.

I believe it clearly goes back to the first arrival of the Greenland whaling ships in London over two hundred years ago. Those whalers didn’t, and still don’t, render their oil at sea like the Southern ships have always done; instead, they cut the fresh blubber into small pieces, shove it through the bung holes of large barrels, and take it home that way. The brief season in those icy waters and the sudden, violent storms they face make any other method impossible. As a result, when they open up the hold and unload one of these whale graveyards in the Greenland dock, it gives off a smell somewhat like what you’d get from digging up an old city graveyard to build a maternity hospital.

I partly surmise also, that this wicked charge against whalers may be likewise imputed to the existence on the coast of Greenland, in former times, of a Dutch village called Schmerenburgh or Smeerenberg, which latter name is the one used by the learned Fogo Von Slack, in his great work on Smells, a text-book on that subject. As its name imports (smeer, fat; berg, to put up), this village was founded in order to afford a place for the blubber of the Dutch whale fleet to be tried out, without being taken home to Holland for that purpose. It was a collection of furnaces, fat-kettles, and oil sheds; and when the works were in full operation certainly gave forth no very pleasant savor. But all this is quite different from a South Sea Sperm Whaler; which in a voyage of four years perhaps, after completely filling her hold with oil, does not, perhaps, consume fifty days in the business of boiling out; and in the state that it is casked, the oil is nearly scentless. The truth is, that living or dead, if but decently treated, whales as a species are by no means creatures of ill odor; nor can whalemen be recognised, as the people of the middle ages affected to detect a Jew in the company, by the nose. Nor indeed can the whale possibly be otherwise than fragrant, when, as a general thing, he enjoys such high health; taking abundance of exercise; always out of doors; though, it is true, seldom in the open air. I say, that the motion of a Sperm Whale's flukes above water dispenses a perfume, as when a musk-scented lady rustles her dress in a warm parlor. What then shall I liken the Sperm Whale to for fragrance, considering his magnitude? Must it not be to that famous elephant, with jewelled tusks, and redolent with myrrh, which was led out of an Indian town to do honor to Alexander the Great?

I also suspect that this unfair accusation against whalers may be linked to the former existence of a Dutch village on the coast of Greenland called Schmerenburgh or Smeerenberg. The latter name is used by the scholar Fogo Von Slack in his significant work on Smells, which is a textbook on that topic. As the name suggests (smeer, fat; berg, to put up), this village was created to provide a place for the Dutch whale fleet's blubber to be rendered without needing to transport it back to Holland. It consisted of furnaces, fat kettles, and oil sheds and, when fully operational, certainly didn’t smell very pleasant. But this is quite different from a South Sea Sperm Whaler; which, on a four-year journey, might take only about fifty days to boil out the oil after completely filling its hold. The oil in its casks is nearly odorless. The truth is, whether alive or dead, if treated well, whales as a species don’t have a foul odor; nor can whalemen be identified like the medieval people attempted to spot a Jew by their smell. Indeed, a whale is likely to smell quite nice, given that it generally enjoys great health, gets plenty of exercise, and spends most of its time outdoors, though it’s true that it’s rarely out in the open air. I’d say that the movement of a Sperm Whale's flukes above water releases a scent similar to when a musk-scented woman moves her dress in a warm room. What then can I compare the fragrance of a Sperm Whale to, given its size? Must it not be that famous elephant adorned with jeweled tusks and fragrant with myrrh, which was led out of an Indian town to honor Alexander the Great?

CHAPTER 93

The Castaway

The Castaway

It was but some few days after encountering the Frenchman, that a most significant event befell the most insignificant of the Pequod's crew; an event most lamentable; and which ended in providing the sometimes madly merry and predestinated craft with a living and ever accompanying prophecy of whatever shattered sequel might prove her own.

It was just a few days after meeting the Frenchman that a very important event happened to the least notable member of the Pequod's crew; an event that was quite unfortunate; and which resulted in giving the occasionally wildly cheerful and fated ship a living, ever-present prophecy of whatever broken aftermath might await her.

Now, in the whale ship, it is not every one that goes in the boats. Some few hands are reserved called shipkeepers, whose province it is to work the vessel while the boats are pursuing the whale. As a general thing, these shipkeepers are as hardy fellows as the men comprising the boats' crews. But if there happen to be an unduly slender, clumsy, or timorous wight in the ship, that wight is certain to be made a ship-keeper. It was so in the Pequod with the little negro Pippin by nick-name, Pip by abbreviation. Poor Pip! ye have heard of him before; ye must remember his tambourine on that dramatic midnight, so gloomy-jolly.

Now, on the whaling ship, not everyone goes out in the boats. A few crew members, called shipkeepers, are responsible for managing the vessel while the boats chase the whale. Generally, these shipkeepers are as tough as the men in the boat crews. However, if there's someone who is unusually small, clumsy, or timid on the ship, that person is sure to be made a shipkeeper. This was the case on the Pequod with the little Black boy known as Pippin, or Pip for short. Poor Pip! You've heard of him before; you must remember his tambourine from that dramatic midnight, so dark yet cheerful.

In outer aspect, Pip and Dough-Boy made a match, like a black pony and a white one, of equal developments, though of dissimilar color, driven in one eccentric span. But while hapless Dough-Boy was by nature dull and torpid in his intellects, Pip, though over tender-hearted, was at bottom very bright, with that pleasant, genial, jolly brightness peculiar to his tribe; a tribe, which ever enjoy all holidays and festivities with finer, freer relish than any other race. For blacks, the year's calendar should show naught but three hundred and sixty-five Fourth of Julys and New Year's Days. Nor smile so, while I write that this little black was brilliant, for even blackness has its brilliancy; behold yon lustrous ebony, panelled in king's cabinets. But Pip loved life, and all life's peaceable securities; so that the panic-striking business in which he had somehow unaccountably become entrapped, had most sadly blurred his brightness; though, as ere long will be seen, what was thus temporarily subdued in him, in the end was destined to be luridly illumined by strange wild fires, that fictitiously showed him off to ten times the natural lustre with which in his native Tolland County in Connecticut, he had once enlivened many a fiddler's frolic on the green; and at melodious even-tide, with his gay ha-ha! had turned the round horizon into one star-belled tambourine. So, though in the clear air of day, suspended against a blue-veined neck, the pure-watered diamond drop will healthful glow; yet, when the cunning jeweller would show you the diamond in its most impressive lustre, he lays it against a gloomy ground, and then lights it up, not by the sun, but by some unnatural gases. Then come out those fiery effulgences, infernally superb; then the evil-blazing diamond, once the divinest symbol of the crystal skies, looks like some crown-jewel stolen from the King of Hell. But let us to the story.

In appearance, Pip and Dough-Boy were a striking pair, like a black pony and a white one, evenly matched yet distinctly different, working together in a unique way. However, while the unfortunate Dough-Boy was naturally slow and dull-minded, Pip, despite being overly soft-hearted, was fundamentally very bright, with that cheerful, friendly brightness typical of his kind; a kind that fully enjoys all holidays and celebrations with more enthusiasm than any other group. For black people, the calendar should feature nothing but three hundred and sixty-five Fourth of Julys and New Year's Days. Don’t smirk while I say this little black was brilliant, for even blackness has its shine; just look at that shiny ebony wood, used in fine furniture. But Pip loved life and all its peaceful comforts; so, the panic-inducing situation he had somehow ended up in had sadly dimmed his brightness. Yet, as will soon be revealed, what was temporarily subdued in him was eventually destined to blaze brightly with strange wildfires, making him shine ten times as bright as he had in his hometown of Tolland County in Connecticut, where he had once brightened many a fiddler's party on the green; with his joyful laughter, he had turned the evening sky into a brilliant tambourine. So, while in the clear light of day, a pure diamond drop will glow healthily against a blue-veined neck; when a clever jeweler wants to display the diamond at its most impressive, he places it on a dark background and lights it not with sunlight but with some artificial gas. Then those fiery sparks emerge, incredibly stunning; the once pure diamond, a symbol of the clear skies, now looks like a stolen crown jewel from the King of Hell. But let’s get back to the story.

It came to pass, that in the ambergris affair Stubb's after-oarsman chanced so to sprain his hand, as for a time to become quite maimed; and, temporarily, Pip was put into his place.

It happened that during the ambergris incident, Stubb's after-oarsman accidentally sprained his hand, rendering him quite unable to work for a while; so, for the time being, Pip was put in his place.

The first time Stubb lowered with him, Pip evinced much nervousness; but happily, for that time, escaped close contact with the whale; and therefore came off not altogether discreditably; though Stubb observing him, took care, afterwards, to exhort him to cherish his courageousness to the utmost, for he might often find it needful.

The first time Stubb went down with him, Pip showed a lot of nervousness; but luckily, at that time, he avoided getting too close to the whale; so he didn’t come off looking too bad; although Stubb, noticing him, made sure afterward to encourage him to hold onto his courage as much as possible, since he might need it often.

Now upon the second lowering, the boat paddled upon the whale; and as the fish received the darted iron, it gave its customary rap, which happened, in this instance, to be right under poor Pip's seat. The involuntary consternation of the moment caused him to leap, paddle in hand, out of the boat; and in such a way, that part of the slack whale line coming against his chest, he breasted it overboard with him, so as to become entangled in it, when at last plumping into the water. That instant the stricken whale started on a fierce run, the line swiftly straightened; and presto! poor Pip came all foaming up to the chocks of the boat, remorselessly dragged there by the line, which had taken several turns around his chest and neck.

Now, during the second drop, the boat paddled towards the whale; and as the fish took the harpoon, it gave its usual thud, which, in this case, happened to be right under poor Pip's seat. The sudden shock of the moment made him jump, paddle in hand, out of the boat; and in such a way that a part of the slack whale line hit his chest, and he got pulled overboard with it, ending up tangled when he finally splashed into the water. At that moment, the wounded whale took off fiercely, the line tightened quickly; and just like that! poor Pip came shooting up to the side of the boat, helplessly dragged there by the line, which had wound several times around his chest and neck.

Tashtego stood in the bows. He was full of the fire of the hunt. He hated Pip for a poltroon. Snatching the boat-knife from its sheath, he suspended its sharp edge over the line, and turning towards Stubb, exclaimed interrogatively, "Cut?" Meantime Pip's blue, choked face plainly looked, Do, for God's sake! All passed in a flash. In less than half a minute, this entire thing happened.

Tashtego stood at the front of the boat, filled with the excitement of the hunt. He despised Pip for being a coward. Grabbing the boat-knife from its sheath, he held its sharp edge over the line and turned to Stubb, asking, "Cut?" Meanwhile, Pip's blue, choked face clearly showed, Please, for God's sake! It all happened in the blink of an eye. In less than thirty seconds, everything unfolded.

"Damn him, cut!" roared Stubb; and so the whale was lost and Pip was saved.

"Damn him, cut!" yelled Stubb; and so the whale was lost and Pip was saved.

So soon as he recovered himself, the poor little negro was assailed by yells and execrations from the crew. Tranquilly permitting these irregular cursings to evaporate, Stubb then in a plain, business-like, but still half humorous manner, cursed Pip officially; and that done, unofficially gave him much wholesome advice. The substance was, Never jump from a boat, Pip, except—but all the rest was indefinite, as the soundest advice ever is. Now, in general, Stick to the boat, is your true motto in whaling; but cases will sometimes happen when Leap from the boat, is still better. Moreover, as if perceiving at last that if he should give undiluted conscientious advice to Pip, he would be leaving him too wide a margin to jump in for the future; Stubb suddenly dropped all advice, and concluded with a peremptory command "Stick to the boat, Pip, or by the Lord, I won't pick you up if you jump; mind that. We can't afford to lose whales by the likes of you; a whale would sell for thirty times what you would, Pip, in Alabama. Bear that in mind, and don't jump any more." Hereby perhaps Stubb indirectly hinted, that though man loved his fellow, yet man is a money-making animal, which propensity too often interferes with his benevolence.

As soon as he got himself together, the poor little black guy was met with shouts and insults from the crew. Calmly letting these random curses fade away, Stubb then, in a straightforward, business-like but still somewhat humorous way, officially cursed Pip; and after that, unofficially gave him some good advice. The gist was, "Never jump from a boat, Pip, except—but the rest was vague, as the best advice often is. Generally speaking, "Stick to the boat" is your motto in whaling; but sometimes there are situations where "Leap from the boat" is the better choice. Moreover, seeing that if he gave Pip solid advice, it would leave him too much room to jump in the future, Stubb suddenly dropped all advice and wrapped up with a firm order: "Stick to the boat, Pip, or by God, I won't pick you up if you jump; remember that. We can't afford to lose whales because of you; a whale would sell for thirty times what you would, Pip, in Alabama. Keep that in mind, and don't jump again." This perhaps suggested that while man cares for his fellow, he is also a money-making creature, which tendency often interferes with his goodwill.

But we are all in the hands of the Gods; and Pip jumped again. It was under very similar circumstances to the first performance; but this time he did not breast out the line; and hence, when the whale started to run, Pip was left behind on the sea, like a hurried traveller's trunk. Alas! Stubb was but too true to his word. It was a beautiful, bounteous, blue day! the spangled sea calm and cool, and flatly stretching away, all round, to the horizon, like gold-beater's skin hammered out to the extremest. Bobbing up and down in that sea, Pip's ebon head showed like a head of cloves. No boat-knife was lifted when he fell so rapidly astern. Stubb's inexorable back was turned upon him; and the whale was winged. In three minutes, a whole mile of shoreless ocean was between Pip and Stubb. Out from the centre of the sea, poor Pip turned his crisp, curling, black head to the sun, another lonely castaway, though the loftiest and the brightest.

But we are all in the hands of the Gods; and Pip jumped again. It was under very similar circumstances to the first performance; but this time he didn't swim out to the line; and so, when the whale started to run, Pip was left behind in the sea, like a traveler's trunk left in a hurry. Unfortunately, Stubb kept his promise all too well. It was a beautiful, sunny, blue day! The sparkling sea was calm and cool, stretching out all around to the horizon, like the thinnest gold leaf. Bobbing up and down in that sea, Pip's dark head looked like a head of cloves. No boat-knife was drawn when he fell so quickly behind. Stubb's unyielding back was turned to him; and the whale was off. In just three minutes, a mile of endless ocean lay between Pip and Stubb. From the middle of the sea, poor Pip turned his crisp, curling, black head toward the sun, just another lonely castaway, even though he was the highest and the brightest.

Now, in calm weather, to swim in the open ocean is as easy to the practised swimmer as to ride in a spring-carriage ashore. But the awful lonesomeness is intolerable. The intense concentration of self in the middle of such a heartless immensity, my God! who can tell it? Mark, how when sailors in a dead calm bathe in the open sea— mark how closely they hug their ship and only coast along her sides.

Now, in calm weather, swimming in the open ocean is as easy for an experienced swimmer as riding in a carriage on land. But the overwhelming loneliness is unbearable. The intense focus on oneself in the midst of such a vast emptiness, my God! Who can truly express it? Notice how, when sailors take a dip in a dead calm, they stay close to their ship and only swim along its sides.

But had Stubb really abandoned the poor little negro to his fate? No; he did not mean to, at least. Because there were two boats in his wake, and he supposed, no doubt, that they would of course come up to Pip very quickly, and pick him up; though, indeed, such considerations towards oarsmen jeopardized through their own timidity, is not always manifested by the hunters in all similar instances; and such instances not unfrequently occur; almost invariably in the fishery, a coward, so called, is marked with the same ruthless detestation peculiar to military navies and armies.

But had Stubb really left the poor little Black man to his fate? No; he didn't intend to, at least. Because there were two boats behind him, and he probably thought they would quickly reach Pip and pick him up; however, such concerns for rowers risking their own safety due to fear aren't always shown by hunters in similar situations; and these situations happen quite often; almost always in fishing, a so-called coward gets the same harsh scorn typical of military navies and armies.

But it so happened, that those boats, without seeing Pip, suddenly spying whales close to them on one side, turned, and gave chase; and Stubb's boat was now so far away, and he and all his crew so intent upon his fish, that Pip's ringed horizon began to expand around him miserably. By the merest chance the ship itself at last rescued him; but from that hour the little negro went about the deck an idiot; such, at least, they said he was. The sea had jeeringly kept his finite body up, but drowned the infinite of his soul. Not drowned entirely, though. Rather carried down alive to wondrous depths, where strange shapes of the unwarped primal world glided to and fro before his passive eyes; and the miser-merman, Wisdom, revealed his hoarded heaps; and among the joyous, heartless, ever-juvenile eternities, Pip saw the multitudinous, God-omnipresent, coral insects, that out of the firmament of waters heaved the colossal orbs. He saw God's foot upon the treadle of the loom, and spoke it; and therefore his shipmates called him mad. So man's insanity is heaven's sense; and wandering from all mortal reason, man comes at last to that celestial thought, which, to reason, is absurd and frantic; and weal or woe, feels then uncompromised, indifferent as his God.

But it just so happened that those boats, without seeing Pip, suddenly spotted whales nearby on one side, turned, and gave chase; and Stubb's boat was now so far away, and he and his crew so focused on their catch, that Pip's surrounding horizon began to expand around him in misery. By sheer coincidence, the ship eventually rescued him; but from that moment on, the little black boy wandered around the deck as if he were simple-minded; at least, that’s what they said he was. The sea had mockingly kept his physical body afloat but drowned the vastness of his soul. Not completely, though. Instead, it carried him alive to wondrous depths, where strange shapes of the untainted primal world glided back and forth before his passive eyes; and the miserly merman, Wisdom, revealed his hidden treasures; and among the joyful, heartless, ever-youthful eternities, Pip saw the countless, God-present coral insects that from the depths of the waters created the gigantic orbs. He saw God's foot on the treadle of the loom, and spoke about it; and because of this, his shipmates called him mad. So, a man's insanity is heaven's sense; and wandering from all human reason, a man ultimately arrives at that celestial thought, which, to reason, seems absurd and frantic; and whether good or bad, he then feels unrestrained, indifferent like his God.

For the rest blame not Stubb too hardly. The thing is common in that fishery; and in the sequel of the narrative, it will then be seen what like abandonment befell myself.

For the rest, don't blame Stubb too harshly. This happens often in that fishery; and in the following part of the story, it will be clear what kind of abandonment I experienced myself.

CHAPTER 94

A Squeeze of the Hand

A Hand Squeeze

That whale of Stubb's, so dearly purchased, was duly brought to the Pequod's side, where all those cutting and hoisting operations previously detailed, were regularly gone through, even to the baling of the Heidelburgh Tun, or Case.

That whale Stubb bought at such a high price was finally brought alongside the Pequod, where all the cutting and lifting operations we talked about before were carefully performed, right down to emptying out the Heidelburgh Tun, or Case.

While some were occupied with this latter duty, others were employed in dragging away the larger tubs, so soon as filled with the sperm; and when the proper time arrived, this same sperm was carefully manipulated ere going to the try-works, of which anon.

While some were busy with this latter task, others were involved in hauling away the larger tubs as soon as they were filled with the sperm; and when the right time came, this same sperm was carefully processed before being sent to the try-works, which I will explain shortly.

It had cooled and crystallized to such a degree, that when, with several others, I sat down before a large Constantine's bath of it, I found it strangely concreted into lumps, here and there rolling about in the liquid part. It was our business to squeeze these lumps back into fluid. A sweet and unctuous duty! No wonder that in old times this sperm was such a favorite cosmetic. Such a clearer! such a sweetener! such a softener; such a delicious mollifier! After having my hands in it for only a few minutes, my fingers felt like eels, and began, as it were, to serpentine and spiralize.

It had cooled and formed crystals to such an extent that when I sat down with several others in front of a large Constantine's bath filled with it, I found it oddly congealed into lumps, which rolled around in the liquid part. Our job was to squeeze these lumps back into a fluid state. A sweet and smooth task! No wonder this sperm was such a popular cosmetic in the past. Such a cleanser! Such a sweetener! Such a softener; such a delightful soother! After just a few minutes of having my hands in it, my fingers felt slick and started to twist and curl like snakes.

As I sat there at my ease, cross-legged on the deck; after the bitter exertion at the windlass; under a blue tranquil sky; the ship under indolent sail, and gliding so serenely along; as I bathed my hands among those soft, gentle globules of infiltrated tissues, woven almost within the hour; as they richly broke to my fingers, and discharged all their opulence, like fully ripe grapes their wine; as. I snuffed up that uncontaminated aroma,— literally and truly, like the smell of spring violets; I declare to you, that for the time I lived as in a musky meadow; I forgot all about our horrible oath; in that inexpressible sperm, I washed my hands and my heart of it; I almost began to credit the old Paracelsan superstition that sperm is of rare virtue in allaying the heat of anger; while bathing in that bath, I felt divinely free from all ill-will, or petulance, or malice, of any sort whatsoever.

As I sat there comfortably, cross-legged on the deck; after the tough work at the windlass; under a clear blue sky; the ship lazily sailing, gliding along so smoothly; as I soaked my hands in those soft, gentle droplets of tissue, created almost within the hour; as they richly burst between my fingers and released all their richness, like ripe grapes releasing their juice; as I inhaled that pure aroma—literally and truly, like the scent of spring violets; I tell you, for that moment I felt like I was in a fragrant meadow; I forgot all about our awful oath; in that indescribable liquid, I washed my hands and my heart of it; I almost started to believe the old Paracelsan superstition that sperm has rare powers to calm anger; while soaking in that bath, I felt completely free from any bad feelings, irritability, or malice of any kind.

Squeeze! squeeze! squeeze! all the morning long; I squeezed that sperm till I myself almost melted into it; I squeezed that sperm till a strange sort of insanity came over me; and I found myself unwittingly squeezing my co-laborers' hands in it, mistaking their hands for the gentle globules. Such an abounding, affectionate, friendly, loving feeling did this avocation beget; that at last I was continually squeezing their hands, and looking up into their eyes sentimentally; as much as to say,—Oh! my dear fellow beings, why should we longer cherish any social acerbities, or know the slightest ill-humor or envy! Come; let us squeeze hands all round; nay, let us all squeeze ourselves into each other; let us squeeze ourselves universally into the very milk and sperm of kindness.

Squeeze! squeeze! squeeze! all morning long; I squeezed that sperm until I almost melted into it; I squeezed that sperm until a strange kind of madness took over me; and I found myself unknowingly squeezing my coworkers' hands in it, mistaking their hands for the soft globules. Such an overwhelming, affectionate, friendly, loving feeling did this work create; that eventually I was constantly squeezing their hands and looking up into their eyes sentimentally; as if to say,—Oh! my dear fellow beings, why should we continue to hold onto any social grudges, or feel even a bit of bad mood or jealousy! Come; let’s squeeze hands all around; no, let’s all squeeze ourselves into each other; let’s squeeze ourselves universally into the very milk and sperm of kindness.

Would that I could keep squeezing that sperm for ever! For now, since by many prolonged, repeated experiences, I have perceived that in all cases man must eventually lower, or at least shift, his conceit of attainable felicity; not placing it anywhere in the intellect or the fancy; but in the wife, the heart, the bed, the table, the saddle, the fire-side; the country; now that I have perceived all this, I am ready to squeeze case eternally. In thoughts of the visions of the night, I saw long rows of angels in paradise, each with his hands in a jar of spermaceti.

Would that I could keep squeezing that sperm forever! For now, after many prolonged and repeated experiences, I've realized that in every case, a man must eventually lower or at least shift his expectations of happiness; not placing it in the mind or imagination, but in his partner, his heart, his bed, his table, his horse, his fireplace, his home; now that I've understood all this, I am ready to squeeze this forever. In dreams of the night, I saw long rows of angels in paradise, each with his hands in a jar of spermaceti.

Now, while discoursing of sperm it behooves to speak of other things akin to it, in the business of preparing the sperm whale for the try-works.

Now, while talking about sperm, it's important to mention other related topics when it comes to preparing the sperm whale for the try-works.

First comes white-horse, so called, which is obtained from the tapering part of the fish, and also from the thicker portions of his flukes. It is tough with congealed tendons—a wad of muscle—but still contains some oil. After being severed from the whale, the white-horse is first cut into portable oblongs ere going to the mincer. They look much like blocks of Berkshire marble.

First comes white-horse, which is obtained from the tapered part of the fish and also from the thicker sections of its flukes. It's tough with congealed tendons—a chunk of muscle—but still has some oil. After being removed from the whale, the white-horse is first cut into manageable rectangles before going to the grinder. They resemble blocks of Berkshire marble.

Plum-pudding is the term bestowed upon certain fragmentary parts of the whale's flesh, here and there adhering to the blanket of blubber, and often participating to a considerable degree in its unctuousness. It is a most refreshing, convivial, beautiful object to behold. As its name imports, it is of an exceedingly rich, mottled tint, with a bestreaked snowy and golden ground, dotted with spots of the deepest crimson and purple. It is plums of rubies, in pictures of citron. Spite of reason, it is hard to keep yourself from eating it. I confess, that once I stole behind the foremast to try it. It tasted something as I should conceive a royal cutlet from the thigh of Louis le Gros might have tasted, supposing him to have been killed the first day after the venison season, and that particular venison season contemporary with an unusually fine vintage of the vineyards of Champagne.

Plum-pudding is the name given to certain bits of whale flesh that cling to the layer of blubber, often sharing its rich, oily texture. It’s a truly delightful and visually stunning thing to see. True to its name, it has a very rich, mottled color, with a beautiful mix of snowy white and gold, dotted with deep crimson and purple spots. It’s like rubies in the middle of a lemon. Despite knowing better, it’s hard to resist the temptation to eat it. I admit that I once sneaked behind the foremast to give it a try. It tasted like what I imagine a royal cutlet from the thigh of King Louis the Great might taste like, had he been killed right after the first day of the venison season, coinciding with an exceptionally good year for Champagne vineyards.

There is another substance, and a very singular one, which turns up in the course of this business, but which I feel it to be very puzzling adequately to describe. It is called slobgollion; an appellation original with the whalemen, and even so is the nature of the substance. It is an ineffably oozy, stringy affair, most frequently found in the tubs of sperm, after a prolonged squeezing, and subsequent decanting. I hold it to be the wondrously thin, ruptured membranes of the case, coalescing.

There’s another substance, quite unusual, that comes up during this process, but I find it really difficult to describe properly. It’s called slobgollion; a name created by the whalemen, and that fits the nature of the substance. It’s an incredibly gooey, stringy material, most often found in the tubs of sperm after a long squeezing and decanting. I believe it to be the incredibly thin, broken membranes of the casing coming together.

Gurry, so called, is a term properly belonging to right whalemen, but sometimes incidentally used by the sperm fishermen. It designates the dark, glutinous substance which is scraped off the back of the Greenland or right whale, and much of which covers the decks of those inferior souls who hunt that ignoble Leviathan.

Gurry is a term that right whalemen use, but sometimes sperm fishermen refer to it too. It refers to the dark, sticky substance scraped off the back of the Greenland or right whale, and a lot of it ends up covering the decks of those unfortunate souls who hunt that despicable Leviathan.

Nippers. Strictly this word is not indigenous to the whale's vocabulary. But as applied by whalemen, it becomes so. A whaleman's nipper is a short firm strip of tendinous stuff cut from the tapering part of Leviathan's tail: it averages an inch in thickness, and for the rest, is about the size of the iron part of a hoe. Edgewise moved along the oily deck, it operates like a leathern squilgee; and by nameless blandishments, as of magic, allures along with it all impurities.

Nippers. Strictly speaking, this word isn’t native to the whale's vocabulary. But when used by whalers, it fits right in. A whaler's nipper is a short, firm strip of tough tissue cut from the narrow end of a whale's tail: it’s about an inch thick and roughly the size of the iron part of a hoe. When moved edgewise across the slick deck, it works like a leather squeegee; and through some sort of magic, it draws in all the impurities along with it.

But to learn all about these recondite matters, your best way is at once to descend into the blubber-room, and have a long talk with its inmates. This place has previously been mentioned as the receptacle for the blanket-pieces, when stript and hoisted from the whale. When the proper time arrives for cutting up its contents, this apartment is a scene of terror to all tyros, especially by night. On one side, lit by a dull lantern, a space has been left clear for the workmen. They generally go in pairs,—a pike-and-gaffman and a spade-man. The whaling-pike is similar to a frigate's boarding-weapon of the same name. The gaff is something like a boat-hook. With his gaff, the gaffman hooks on to a sheet of blubber, and strives to hold it from slipping, as the ship pitches and lurches about. Meanwhile, the spade-man stands on the sheet itself, perpendicularly chopping it into the portable horse-pieces. This spade is sharp as hone can make it; the spademan's feet are shoeless; the thing he stands on will sometimes irresistibly slide away from him, like a sledge. If he cuts off one of his own toes, or one of his assistants', would you be very much astonished? Toes are scarce among veteran blubber-room men.

But to learn all about these complex matters, the best way is to go straight to the blubber room and have a long chat with the people working there. This place was mentioned earlier as the storage area for the blanket pieces when they’re taken off the whale. When it’s time to cut up what’s inside, this room becomes terrifying for all beginners, especially at night. On one side, dimly lit by a dull lantern, there's an area kept clear for the workers. They usually work in pairs—one person with a whaling pike and another with a spade. The whaling pike is similar to a frigate's boarding weapon of the same name. The gaff is somewhat like a boat hook. The gaffman uses his gaff to grab onto a large piece of blubber and tries to hold it in place as the ship sways and rocks. Meanwhile, the spade man stands on the blubber itself, chopping it into manageable pieces. This spade is as sharp as can be; the spade man's feet are bare. Sometimes, the piece he’s standing on can slip away from under him, like a sled. If he accidentally chops off one of his own toes or one of his teammate's, would you really be that surprised? Toes are hard to come by for seasoned blubber room workers.

CHAPTER 95

The Cassock

The Clergy Shirt

Had you stepped on board the Pequod at a certain juncture of this post-mortemizing of the whale; and had you strolled forward nigh the windlass, pretty sure am I that you would have scanned with no small curiosity a very strange, enigmatical object, which you would have seen there, lying along lengthwise in the lee scuppers. Not the wondrous cistern in the whale's huge head; not the prodigy of his unhinged lower jaw; not the miracle of his symmetrical tail; none of these would so surprise you, as half a glimpse of that unaccountable cone,—longer than a Kentuckian is tall, nigh a foot in diameter at the base, and jet-black as Yojo, the ebony idol of Queequeg. And an idol, indeed, it is; or rather, in old times, its likeness was. Such an idol as that found in the secret groves of Queen Maachah in Judea; and for worshipping which, King Asa, her son, did depose her, and destroyed the idol, and burnt it for an abomination at the brook Kedron, as darkly set forth in the 15th chapter of the First Book of Kings.

Had you boarded the Pequod at a certain point in this examination of the whale, and had you walked forward near the windlass, I’m pretty sure you would have looked with great curiosity at a very strange, mysterious object lying along the lee scuppers. Not the amazing cistern in the whale's massive head; not the wonder of his unhinged lower jaw; not the marvel of his symmetrical tail; none of these would surprise you as much as catching a glimpse of that unexplainable cone—longer than a Kentuckian is tall, nearly a foot in diameter at the base, and pitch-black like Yojo, the ebony idol of Queequeg. And it is indeed an idol; or rather, its likeness was. Such an idol as that found in the secret groves of Queen Maachah in Judea, for which King Asa, her son, deposed her, destroyed the idol, and burned it as an abomination at the brook Kedron, as darkly described in the 15th chapter of the First Book of Kings.

Look at the sailor, called the mincer, who now comes along, and assisted by two allies, heavily backs the grandissimus, as the mariners call it, and with bowed shoulders, staggers off with it as if he were a grenadier carrying a dead comrade from the field. Extending it upon the forecastle deck, he now proceeds cylindrically to remove its dark pelt, as an African hunter the pelt of a boa. This done he turns the pelt inside out, like a pantaloon leg; gives it a good stretching, so as almost to double its diameter; and at last hangs it, well spread, in the rigging, to dry. Ere long, it is taken down; when removing some three feet of it, towards the pointed extremity, and then cutting two slits for arm-holes at the other end, he lengthwise slips himself bodily into it. The mincer now stands before you invested in the full canonicals of his calling. Immemorial to all his order, this investiture alone will adequately protect him, while employed in the peculiar functions of his office.

Check out the sailor, known as the mincer, who now arrives, helped by two teammates, as he struggles to lift the grandissimus, as the sailors refer to it, and with hunched shoulders, stumbles off with it like a soldier carrying a fallen comrade from the battlefield. Once he lays it out on the forecastle deck, he starts to peel off its dark skin, just like an African hunter skinning a boa. When that's done, he turns the skin inside out, like flipping a pant leg; gives it a good stretch so it almost doubles in size; and finally hangs it, properly spread, in the rigging to dry. Before long, he takes it down; after removing about three feet from the pointed end and cutting two slits for armholes on the other side, he slides himself into it. The mincer now stands before you dressed in the full traditional gear of his job. This uniform, passed down through generations in his profession, is the only thing that will properly protect him while he carries out the specific duties of his role.

That office consists in mincing the horse-pieces of blubber for the pots; an operation which is conducted at a curious wooden horse, planted endwise against the bulwarks, and with a capacious tub beneath it, into which the minced pieces drop, fast as the sheets from a rapt orator's desk. Arrayed in decent black; occupying a conspicuous pulpit; intent on bible leaves; what a candidate for an archbishopric, what a lad for a Pope were this mincer!*

That office involves chopping up the chunks of blubber for the pots; a task carried out at a strange wooden horse positioned upright against the bulwarks, with a big tub underneath it where the minced pieces fall, quickly like the sheets from a passionate speaker's desk. Dressed in respectable black; standing in a prominent pulpit; focused on the bible pages; what a candidate for an archbishopric, what a person fit for a Pope this mincer would be!*

* Bible leaves! Bible leaves! This is the invariable cry from the mates to the mincer. It enjoins him to be careful, and cut his work into as thin slices as possible, inasmuch as by so doing the business of boiling out the oil is much accelerated, and its quantity considerably increased, besides perhaps improving it in quality.

* Bible leaves! Bible leaves! This is the constant shout from the crew to the mincer. It urges him to be cautious and slice his work as thinly as possible since doing so speeds up the process of boiling out the oil, increases the quantity significantly, and may even improve its quality.

CHAPTER 96

The Try-Works

The Try-Works

Besides her hoisted boats, an American whaler is outwardly distinguished by her try-works. She presents the curious anomaly of the most solid masonry joining with oak and hemp in constituting the completed ship. It is as if from the open field a brick-kiln were transported to her planks.

Besides her raised boats, an American whaler is clearly marked by her try-works. She shows the interesting contrast of strong masonry combined with oak and hemp to form the finished ship. It's like a brick kiln was moved from the open field to her planks.

The try-works are planted between the foremast and mainmast, the most roomy part of the deck. The timbers beneath are of a peculiar strength, fitted to sustain the weight of an almost solid mass of brick and mortar, some ten feet by eight square, and five in height. The foundation does not penetrate the deck, but the masonry is firmly secured to the surface by ponderous knees of iron bracing it on all sides, and screwing it down to the timbers. On the flanks it is cased with wood, and at top completely covered by a large, sloping, battened hatchway. Removing this hatch we expose the great try-pots, two in number, and each of several barrels' capacity. When not in use, they are kept remarkably clean. Sometimes they are polished with soapstone and sand, till they shine within like silver punchbowls. During the night-watches some cynical old sailors will crawl into them and coil themselves away there for a nap. While employed in polishing them—one man in each pot, side by side— many confidential communications are carried on, over the iron lips. It is a place also for profound mathematical meditation. It was in the left hand try-pot of the Pequod, with the soapstone diligently circling round me, that I was first indirectly struck by the remarkable fact, that in geometry all bodies gliding along the cycloid, my soapstone for example, will descend from any point in precisely the same time.

The try-works are positioned between the foremast and mainmast, which is the most spacious area of the deck. The timbers underneath are specially strong, designed to hold the weight of a nearly solid block of brick and mortar, measuring about ten feet by eight and five feet high. The foundation doesn’t reach through the deck, but the masonry is securely attached to the surface with heavy iron braces on all sides, anchoring it down to the timbers. On the sides, it's covered with wood, and on top, there’s a large, sloping hatch. When you remove this hatch, you reveal the big try-pots, there are two of them, each capable of holding several barrels' worth. When they’re not in use, they are kept super clean. Sometimes they’re polished with soapstone and sand until they shine like silver punch bowls inside. During the night watches, some cynical old sailors will crawl into them and curl up for a nap. While polishing them—one person in each pot, side by side—many private conversations happen over the iron edges. It’s also a spot for deep mathematical reflection. It was in the left try-pot of the Pequod, with the soapstone diligently swirling around me, that I first noticed the interesting fact that in geometry, all bodies moving along a cycloid, like my soapstone for instance, will fall from any point in exactly the same amount of time.

Removing the fire-board from the front of the try-works, the bare masonry of that side is exposed, penetrated by the two iron mouths of the furnaces, directly underneath the pots. These mouths are fitted with heavy doors of iron. The intense heat of the fire is prevented from communicating itself to the deck, by means of a shallow reservoir extending under the entire inclosed surface of the works. By a tunnel inserted at the rear, this reservoir is kept replenished with water as fast as it evaporates. There are no external chimneys; they open direct from the rear wall. And here let us go back for a moment.

Removing the fireboard from the front of the try-works reveals the bare masonry of that side, with the two iron openings of the furnaces directly beneath the pots. These openings are fitted with heavy iron doors. The intense heat from the fire is kept from transferring to the deck by a shallow reservoir that runs beneath the entire enclosed area of the works. A tunnel at the back continuously replenishes this reservoir with water as it evaporates. There are no external chimneys; they open directly from the back wall. Now, let’s take a moment to go back.

It was about nine o'clock at night that the Pequod's try-works were first started on this present voyage. It belonged to Stubb to oversee the business.

It was around nine o'clock at night when the Pequod's try-works were first set up for this voyage. Stubb was in charge of the operation.

"All ready there? Off hatch, then, and start her. You cook, fire the works." This was an easy thing, for the carpenter had been thrusting his shavings into the furnace throughout the passage. Here be it said that in a whaling voyage the first fire in the try-works has to be fed for a time with wood. After that no wood is used, except as a means of quick ignition to the staple fuel. In a word, after being tried out, the crisp, shrivelled blubber, now called scraps or fritters, still contains considerable of its unctuous properties. These fritters feed the flames. Like a plethoric burning martyr, or a self-consuming misanthrope, once ignited, the whale supplies his own fuel and burns by his own body. Would that he consumed his own smoke! for his smoke is horrible to inhale, and inhale it you must, and not only that, but you must live in it for the time. It has an unspeakable, wild, Hindoo odor about it, such as may lurk in the vicinity of funereal pyres. It smells like the left wing of the day of judgment; it is an argument for the pit.

"Are we all set? Let’s get going and fire it up. You handle the cooking, start the works." This was easy because the carpenter had been shoving his shavings into the furnace the whole time. It should be noted that on a whaling trip, the first fire in the try-works has to be fed with wood for a while. After that, no wood is used except to quickly ignite the main fuel. In short, once the blubber has been processed, the crispy, dried-out bits, now called scraps or fritters, still have a lot of their oily properties. These fritters feed the flames. Like an overly indulgent burning martyr or a self-destructive recluse, once lit, the whale provides its own fuel and burns from its own body. If only it could get rid of its own smoke! because its smoke is awful to breathe, and breathe it you must, and not only that, but you have to live in it for a while. It has a strange, wild, Indian-like odor, similar to what might linger near funeral pyres. It smells like the left wing of judgment day; it’s a case for the abyss.

By midnight the works were in full operation. We were clear from the carcass; sail had been made; the wind was freshening; the wild ocean darkness was intense. But that darkness was licked up by the fierce flames, which at intervals forked forth from the sooty flues, and illuminated every lofty rope in the rigging, as with the famed Greek fire. The burning ship drove on, as if remorselessly commissioned to some vengeful deed. So the pitch and sulphur-freighted brigs of the bold Hydriote, Canaris, issuing from their midnight harbors, with broad sheets of flame for sails, bore down upon the Turkish frigates, and folded them in conflagrations.

By midnight, the operations were in full swing. We were clear of the wreck; the sails had been set; the wind was picking up; and the darkness of the wild ocean was intense. But that darkness was consumed by the fierce flames that occasionally shot out from the sooty chimneys, lighting up every tall rope in the rigging, like the famous Greek fire. The burning ship surged forward, as if it were on a relentless mission for vengeance. Just like the pitch and sulfur-laden ships of the brave Hydriote, Canaris, coming out from their midnight harbors with wide sheets of flame for sails, charged toward the Turkish frigates and engulfed them in flames.

The hatch, removed from the top of the works, now afforded a wide hearth in front of them. Standing on this were the Tartarean shapes of the pagan harpooneers, always the whale-ship's stokers. With huge pronged poles they pitched hissing masses of blubber into the scalding pots, or stirred up the fires beneath, till the snaky flames darted, curling, out of the doors to catch them by the feet. The smoke rolled away in sullen heaps. To every pitch of the ship there was a pitch of the boiling oil, which seemed all eagerness to leap into their faces. Opposite the mouth of the works, on the further side of the wide wooden hearth, was the windlass. This served for a sea-sofa. Here lounged the watch, when not otherwise employed, looking into the red heat of the fire, till their eyes felt scorched in their heads. Their tawny features, now all begrimed with smoke and sweat, their matted beards, and the contrasting barbaric brilliancy of their teeth, all these were strangely revealed in the capricious emblazonings of the works. As they narrated to each other their unholy adventures, their tales of terror told in words of mirth; as their uncivilized laughter forked upwards out of them, like the flames from the furnace; as to and fro, in their front, the harpooneers wildly gesticulated with their huge pronged forks and dippers; as the wind howled on, and the sea leaped, and the ship groaned and dived, and yet steadfastly shot her red hell further and further into the blackness of the sea and the night, and scornfully champed the white bone in her mouth, and viciously spat round her on all sides; then the rushing Pequod, freighted with savages, and laden with fire, and burning a corpse, and plunging into that blackness of darkness, seemed the material counterpart of her monomaniac commander's soul.

The hatch, taken off the top of the factory, now created a wide area in front of them. Standing here were the grim figures of the pagan harpooneers, always the whale ship's stokers. With huge, forked poles, they tossed hissing chunks of blubber into the boiling pots or stirred the fires below, making the twisting flames leap out of the openings to catch at their feet. The smoke billowed away in heavy plumes. With every tilt of the ship, the hot oil seemed eager to splash onto their faces. Across from the mouth of the factory, on the other side of the wide wooden area, was the windlass. This served as a makeshift sofa at sea. Here lounged the watch when they weren't busy, staring into the glowing fire until their eyes felt scorched. Their tanned faces, now covered in smoke and sweat, their tangled beards, and the bright contrast of their teeth were oddly highlighted by the changing lights of the works. As they shared their outrageous stories, their tales of fear told with laughter; as their wild laughter shot up like flames from the furnace; as the harpooneers waved their huge forks and dippers back and forth; as the wind howled on, the sea crashed, and the ship groaned and dove, yet steadily propelled its fiery hell deeper into the darkness of the sea and night, and mockingly chewed the white bone in its mouth, spitting viciously all around; then the rushing Pequod, filled with savages, loaded with fire, burning a corpse, and plunging into that darkness, seemed like a physical reflection of its obsessed captain's soul.

So seemed it to me, as I stood at her helm, and for long hours silently guided the way of this fire-ship on the sea. Wrapped, for that interval, in darkness myself, I but the better saw the redness, the madness, the ghastliness of others. The continual sight of the fiend shapes before me, capering half in smoke and half in fire, these at last begat kindred visions in my soul, so soon as I began to yield to that unaccountable drowsiness which ever would come over me at a midnight helm.

So it felt to me as I stood at her helm, silently steering this fire-ship on the sea for hours. Wrapped in darkness myself, I could see more clearly the redness, the madness, and the horrors of others. The constant sight of those devilish figures dancing half in smoke and half in fire eventually inspired similar visions in my soul as I began to succumb to that strange drowsiness that always came over me at the midnight helm.

But that night, in particular, a strange (and ever since inexplicable) thing occurred to me. Starting from a brief standing sleep, I was horribly conscious of something fatally wrong. The jaw-bone tiller smote my side, which leaned against it; in my ears was the low hum of sails, just beginning to shake in the wind; I thought my eyes were open; I was half conscious of putting my fingers to the lids and mechanically stretching them still further apart. But, spite of all this, I could see no compass before me to steer by; though it seemed but a minute since I had been watching the card, by the steady binnacle lamp illuminating it. Nothing seemed before me but a jet gloom, now and then made ghastly by flashes of redness. Uppermost was the impression, that whatever swift, rushing thing I stood on was not so much bound to any haven ahead as rushing from all havens astern. A stark, bewildered feeling, as of death, came over me. Convulsively my hands grasped the tiller, but with the crazy conceit that the tiller was, somehow, in some enchanted way, inverted. My God! what is the matter with me? thought I. Lo! in my brief sleep I had turned myself about, and was fronting the ship's stern, with my back to her prow and the compass. In an instant I faced back, just in time to prevent the vessel from flying up into the wind, and very probably capsizing her. How glad and how grateful the relief from this unnatural hallucination of the night, and the fatal contingency of being brought by the lee!

But that night, I experienced something strange and, to this day, inexplicable. After a brief period of dozing while standing, I became acutely aware that something was terribly wrong. The tiller pressed against my side, which was leaning on it; I heard the low hum of the sails just starting to flutter in the wind. I thought my eyes were open and I vaguely sensed myself pushing my fingers to my eyelids, stretching them even wider. Yet, despite all that, I couldn't see a compass in front of me to steer by, even though it felt like only a moment ago I had been watching the compass’s needle under the steady light of the binnacle. All I could see was complete darkness, occasionally illuminated by flashes of red. My strongest feeling was that whatever fast-moving thing I was on wasn’t heading to any port ahead but was actually fleeing from all the ports behind. A stark, confused feeling, like a brush with death, washed over me. I gripped the tiller tightly, but with the strange thought that somehow it was flipped around. My God! What’s wrong with me? I realized that in my brief sleep, I had turned around and was facing the back of the ship, with my back to the bow and the compass. In an instant, I turned back just in time to prevent the boat from turning into the wind and probably capsizing. I felt such relief and gratitude escaping this unnatural hallucination and the dire situation of being caught by the wind!

Look not too long in the face of the fire, O man! Never dream with thy hand on the helm! Turn not thy back to the compass; accept the first hint of the hitching tiller; believe not the artificial fire, when its redness makes all things look ghastly. To-morrow, in the natural sun, the skies will be bright; those who glared like devils in the forking flames, the morn will show in far other, at least gentler, relief; the glorious, golden, glad sun, the only true lamp—all others but liars!

Look not too long at the fire, man! Never daydream with your hand on the wheel! Don’t turn your back on the compass; pay attention to the first sign of the steering getting stuck; don’t trust the fake fire when its redness makes everything look horrible. Tomorrow, in the natural sunlight, the skies will be bright; those who looked like devils in the flickering flames will be revealed in a much different, at least gentler, light; the glorious, golden, cheerful sun, the only true light—everyone else is just pretending!

Nevertheless the sun hides not Virginia's Dismal Swamp, nor Rome's accursed Campagna, nor wide Sahara, nor all the millions of miles of deserts and of griefs beneath the moon. The sun hides not the ocean, which is the dark side of this earth, and which is two thirds of this earth. So, therefore, that mortal man who hath more of joy than sorrow in him, that mortal man cannot be true—not true, or undeveloped. With books the same. The truest of all men was the Man of Sorrows, and the truest of all books is Solomon's, and Ecclesiastes is the fine hammered steel of woe. "All is vanity." ALL. This wilful world hath not got hold of unchristian Solomon's wisdom yet. But he who dodges hospitals and jails, and walks fast crossing graveyards, and would rather talk of operas than hell; calls Cowper, Young, Pascal, Rousseau, poor devils all of sick men; and throughout a care-free lifetime swears by Rabelais as passing wise, and therefore jolly;—not that man is fitted to sit down on tomb-stones, and break the green damp mould with unfathomably wondrous Solomon.

However, the sun does not cover Virginia's Dismal Swamp, nor Rome's cursed Campagna, nor the vast Sahara, nor all the millions of miles of deserts and sorrows beneath the moon. The sun does not conceal the ocean, which represents the dark side of this planet and makes up two-thirds of it. Therefore, any person who has more joy than sorrow within them cannot be genuine—not true or fully developed. The same goes for books. The most genuine of all people was the Man of Sorrows, and the most genuine of all books is Solomon's, with Ecclesiastes being the finely crafted steel of grief. "All is vanity." ALL. This stubborn world has yet to grasp unchristian Solomon's wisdom. But the person who avoids hospitals and jails, hurries through graveyards, and prefers to discuss operas rather than hell; who considers Cowper, Young, Pascal, and Rousseau to be unfortunate sick men; and who, throughout a carefree life, swears by Rabelais as supremely wise and therefore cheerful;—that person is not meant to sit on tombstones and break the damp earth with the unfathomably profound Solomon.

But even Solomon, he says, "the man that wandereth out of the way of understanding shall remain" (i.e. even while living) "in the congregation of the dead." Give not thyself up, then, to fire, lest it invert thee, deaden thee; as for the time it did me. There is a wisdom that is woe; but there is a woe that is madness. And there is a Catskill eagle in some souls that can alike dive down into the blackest gorges, and soar out of them again and become invisible in the sunny spaces. And even if he for ever flies within the gorge, that gorge is in the mountains; so that even in his lowest swoop the mountain eagle is still higher than other birds upon the plain, even though they soar.

But even Solomon says, "the person who strays from the path of understanding will remain" (meaning even while alive) "in the company of the dead." So don't give yourself up to fire, or it will consume you, just as it did to me for a time. There is a wisdom that brings sorrow, but there is also a sorrow that is pure madness. And there is a Catskill eagle in some people that can dive into the darkest gorges and soar out of them again, becoming invisible in the bright skies. And even if it always flies within the gorge, that gorge is still in the mountains; so even at its lowest point, the mountain eagle is still higher than other birds on the plain, even if they have risen high.

CHAPTER 97

The Lamp

The Lamp

Had you descended from the Pequod's try-works to the Pequod's forecastle, where the off duty watch were sleeping, for one single moment you would have almost thought you were standing in some illuminated shrine of canonized kings and counsellors. There they lay in their triangular oaken vaults, each mariner a chiselled muteness; a score of lamps flashing upon his hooded eyes.

Had you come down from the Pequod's try-works to the forecastle, where the off-duty watch were sleeping, for just a moment you might have thought you were in some glowing shrine of revered kings and advisors. There they lay in their triangular oak bunks, each sailor silently still; a bunch of lamps lighting up their hooded eyes.

In merchantmen, oil for the sailor is more scarce than the milk of queens. To dress in the dark, and eat in the dark, and stumble in darkness to his pallet, this is his usual lot. But the whaleman, as he seeks the food of light, so he lives in light. He makes his berth an Aladdin's lamp, and lays him down in it; so that in the pitchiest night the ship's black hull still houses an illumination.

In merchant ships, oil for the sailor is harder to find than queens' milk. He usually has to dress, eat, and navigate in the dark, stumbling to his sleeping area. But the whaleman, as he searches for the light's bounty, lives in the light. He transforms his bunk into an Aladdin's lamp and lies down in it; so that even on the darkest nights, the ship's black hull still holds a glow.

See with what entire freedom the whaleman takes his handful of lamps—often but old bottles and vials, though—to the copper cooler at the tryworks, and replenishes them there, as mugs of ale at a vat. He burns, too, the purest of oil, in its unmanufactured, and, therefore, unvitiated state; a fluid unknown to solar, lunar, or astral contrivances ashore. It is sweet as early grass butter in April. He goes and hunts for his oil, so as to be sure of its freshness and genuineness, even as the traveller on the prairie hunts up his own supper of game.

See how freely the whaleman grabs his handful of lamps—often just old bottles and vials—and takes them to the copper cooler at the tryworks to refill them, like pouring mugs of ale from a vat. He burns the purest oil, in its raw, unprocessed state; a liquid unknown to solar, lunar, or astral methods on land. It’s as sweet as fresh grass butter in April. He goes out to hunt for his oil to ensure it’s fresh and genuine, just like a traveler on the prairie searches for his own dinner of game.

CHAPTER 98

Stowing Down and Clearing Up

Storage and Clean-Up

Already has it been related how the great leviathan is afar off descried from the mast-head; how he is chased over the watery moors, and slaughtered in the valleys of the deep; how he is then towed alongside and beheaded; and how (on the principle which entitled the headsman of old to the garments in which the beheaded was killed) his great padded surtout becomes the property of his executioner; how, in due time, he is condemned to the pots, and, like Shadrach, Meshach, and Abednego, his spermaceti, oil, and bone pass unscathed through the fire;—but now it remains to conclude the last chapter of this part of the description by rehearsing—singing, if I may—the romantic proceeding of decanting off his oil into the casks and striking them down into the hold, where once again leviathan returns to his native profundities, sliding along beneath the surface :is before; but, alas! never more to rise and blow.

It's already been described how the great leviathan is spotted from the masthead; how he's chased across the watery expanse and killed in the depths; how he's then towed alongside and beheaded; and how, similar to the way an executioner in the past claimed the clothes of the beheaded, his massive padded coat becomes the property of his killer; how, in due time, he’s sent to be boiled, and like Shadrach, Meshach, and Abednego, his spermaceti, oil, and bones pass unharmed through the fire;—but now it’s time to wrap up the last chapter of this section by recounting—singing, if I can— the dramatic process of pouring his oil into barrels and lowering them into the hold, where the leviathan once again returns to his deep habitat, sliding beneath the surface as before; but, alas! never to rise and blow again.

While still warm, the oil, like hot punch, is received into the six-barrel casks; and while, perhaps, the ship is pitching and rolling this way and that in the midnight sea, the enormous casks are slewed round and headed over, end for end, and sometimes perilously scoot across the slippery deck, like so many land slides, till at last man-handled and stayed in their course; and all round the hoops, rap, rap, go as many hammers as can play upon them, for now, ex officio, every sailor is a cooper.

While still warm, the oil, like hot punch, is poured into the six-barrel casks; and while the ship might be pitching and rolling in the midnight sea, the huge casks are spun around and flipped end over end, sometimes dangerously sliding across the slick deck, like landslides, until they are finally handled and secured in place; and all around the hoops, rap, rap, go as many hammers as can hit them, because now, officially, every sailor is a cooper.

At length, when the last pint is casked, and all is cool, then the great hatchways are unsealed, the bowels of the ship are thrown open, and down go the casks to their final rest in the sea. This done, the hatches are replaced, and hermetically closed, like a closet walled up.

At last, when the last pint is bottled and everything is cool, the large hatches are opened, the insides of the ship are exposed, and the casks are lowered for their final resting place in the sea. Once that's done, the hatches are put back and sealed tightly, like a closet that's been closed off.

In the sperm fishery, this is perhaps one of the most remarkable incidents in all the business of whaling. One day the planks stream with freshets of blood and oil; on the sacred quarter-deck enormous masses of the whale's head are profanely piled; great rusty casks lie about, as in a brewery yard; the smoke from the try-works has besooted all the bulwarks; the mariners go about suffused with unctuousness; the entire ship seems great leviathan himself; while on all hands the din is deafening.

In the sperm whale fishery, this is probably one of the most remarkable events in all of whaling. One day, the decks are soaked with streams of blood and oil; on the sacred quarter-deck, huge chunks of the whale's head are carelessly stacked; large rusty barrels are scattered around, like in a brewery yard; the smoke from the try-works has blackened all the railings; the crew members move around covered in grease; the whole ship feels like the great leviathan itself; and all around, the noise is overwhelming.

But a day or two after, you look about you, and prick your ears in this self-same ship! and were it not for the tell-tale boats and try-works, you would all but swear you trod some silent merchant vessel, with a most scrupulously neat commander. The unmanufactured sperm oil possesses a singularly cleansing virtue. This is the reason why the decks never look so white as just after what they call an affair of oil. Besides, from the ashes of the burned scraps of the whale, a potent lye is readily made; and whenever any adhesiveness from the back of the whale remains clinging to the side, that lye quickly exterminates it. Hands go diligently along the bulwarks, and with buckets of water and rags restore them to their full tidiness. The soot is brushed from the lower rigging. All the numerous implements which have been in use are likewise faithfully cleansed and put away. The great hatch is scrubbed and placed upon the try-works, completely hiding the pots; every cask is out of sight; all tackles are coiled in unseen nooks; and when by the combined and, simultaneous industry of almost the entire ship's company, the whole of this conscientious duty is at last concluded, then the crew themselves proceed to their own ablutions; shift themselves from top to toe; and finally issue to the immaculate deck, fresh and all aglow as bridegrooms new-leaped from out the daintiest Holland.

But a day or two later, you look around, and perk up your ears on this same ship! If it weren't for the tell-tale boats and try-works, you’d almost swear you were walking on some quiet merchant vessel, commanded by an incredibly tidy captain. Unrefined sperm oil has a surprisingly cleansing power. That’s why the decks never look so clean as right after what they call an oil affair. Plus, from the ashes of the burned whale parts, a strong lye can be easily made; and whenever any residue from the whale sticks to the side, that lye quickly gets rid of it. Hands work hard along the bulwarks, using buckets of water and rags to bring them back to their full cleanliness. The soot is brushed off the lower rigging. All the various tools that have been used are also thoroughly cleaned and put away. The big hatch is scrubbed and placed on the try-works, completely hiding the pots; every barrel is out of sight; all the tackle is coiled into hidden nooks; and when, through the combined and simultaneous efforts of almost the entire ship's crew, this entire conscientious task is finally done, then the crew themselves move on to their own washing up; clean themselves from head to toe; and finally emerge onto the spotless deck, fresh and glowing like grooms just stepped out in the finest Holland.

Now, with elated step, they pace the planks in twos and threes, and humorously discourse of parlors, sofas, carpets, and fine cambrics; propose to mat the deck; think of having hangings to the top; object not to taking tea by moonlight on the piazza of the forecastle. To hint to such musked mariners of oil, and bone, and blubber, were little short of audacity. They know not the thing you distantly allude to. Away, and bring us napkins!

Now, happily, they walk along the deck in pairs and groups, joking about living rooms, couches, carpets, and fancy fabrics; suggest putting down mats on the deck; think about hanging drapes from the ceiling; and aren’t against having tea under the moonlight on the foredeck. To bring up such refined ideas with these sailors, who are accustomed to oil, bone, and blubber, would be quite bold. They have no idea what you're hinting at. Go on, and bring us napkins!

But mark: aloft there, at the three mast heads, stand three men intent on spying out more whales, which, if caught, infallibly will again soil the old oaken furniture, and drop at least one small grease-spot somewhere. Yes; and many is the time, when, after the severest uninterrupted labors, which know no night; continuing straight through for ninety-six hours; when from the boat, where they have swelled their wrists with all day rowing on the Line,—they only step to the deck to carry vast chains, and heave the heavy windlass, and cut and slash, yea, and in their very sweatings to be smoked and burned anew by the combined fires of the equatorial sun and the equatorial try-works; when, on the heel of all this, they have finally bestirred themselves to cleanse the ship, and make a spotless dairy room of it; many is the time the poor fellows, just buttoning the necks of their clean frocks, are startled by the cry of "There she blows!" and away they fly to fight another whale, and go through the whole weary thing again. Oh! my friends, but this is man-killing! Yet this is life. For hardly have we mortals by long toilings extracted from this world's vast bulk its small but valuable sperm; and then, with weary patience, cleansed ourselves from its defilements, and learned to live here in clean tabernacles of the soul; hardly is this done, when—There she blows!—the ghost is spouted up, and away we sail to fight some other world, and go through young life's old routine again.

But pay attention: up there, at the three mastheads, stand three men focused on spotting more whales, which, if caught, will definitely make a mess on the old oak furniture and leave at least one small grease stain somewhere. Yes; there have been many times when, after the toughest stretches of non-stop work that last for nights on end—pushing straight through for ninety-six hours—when from the boat, where they’ve tired themselves out rowing all day on the Line, they step onto the deck just to haul heavy chains, operate the windlass, and cut and slash, all while sweating and getting scorched again by the blazing equatorial sun and the intense heat of the try-works; when, right after all this, they finally manage to clean the ship and make it a spotless dairy room; many times, just as the poor guys are buttoning up their clean shirts, they’re startled by the shout of "There she blows!" and they rush off to battle another whale and go through the whole exhausting process again. Oh! my friends, this is brutal work! Yet this is life. For hardly have we humans, through hard toil, gotten from this vast world its small but precious sperm; and then, with tired patience, cleansed ourselves of its messiness and learned to live here in the pure spaces of the soul; hardly is this achieved when—There she blows!—the ghost is spouted up, and off we go to face another challenge, repeating the same old routine of young life.

Oh! the metempsychosis! Oh! Pythagoras, that in bright Greece, two thousand years ago, did die, so good, so wise, so mild; I sailed with thee along the Peruvian coast last voyage—and, foolish as I am, taught thee, a green simple boy, how to splice a rope.

Oh! the metempsychosis! Oh! Pythagoras, who died in bright Greece two thousand years ago, so good, so wise, so gentle; I sailed with you along the Peruvian coast on my last voyage—and, as foolish as I am, I taught you, a naive young boy, how to splice a rope.

CHAPTER 99

The Doubloon

The Doubloon

Ere now it has been related how Ahab was wont to pace his quarter-deck, taking regular turns at either limit, the binnacle and mainmast; but in the multiplicity of other things requiring narration it has not been added how that sometimes in these walks, when most plunged in his mood, he was wont to pause in turn at each spot, and stand there strangely eyeing the particular object before him. When he halted before the binnacle, with his glance fastened on the pointed needle in the compass, that glance shot like a javelin with the pointed intensity of his purpose; and when resuming his walk he again paused before the mainmast, then, as the same riveted glance fastened upon the riveted gold coin there, he still wore the same aspect of nailed firmness, only dashed with a certain wild longing, if not hopefulness.

Once, it was described how Ahab used to walk the quarter-deck, taking regular turns at either end, the binnacle and mainmast. However, in the midst of many other stories that needed telling, it hasn't been mentioned that sometimes during these walks, when he was deeply absorbed in his thoughts, he would pause at each spot and stand there, oddly staring at the specific object in front of him. When he stopped at the binnacle, fixated on the pointed needle in the compass, his gaze shot forth like a javelin, driven by the sharp intensity of his purpose. Then, as he resumed his walk and paused again at the mainmast, his same focused gaze locked onto the riveted gold coin there. He still had that same look of determined strength, but it was mixed with a certain wild longing, if not a hint of hope.

But one morning, turning to pass the doubloon, he seemed to be newly attracted by the strange figures and inscriptions stamped on it, as though now for the first time beginning to interpret for himself in some monomaniac way whatever significance might lurk in them. And some certain significance lurks in all things, else all things are little worth, and the round world itself but an empty cipher, except to sell by the cartload, as they do hills about Boston, to fill up some morass in the Milky Way.

But one morning, when he was about to hand over the doubloon, he found himself strangely drawn to the unusual designs and markings on it, as if he were just starting to decipher for himself in some obsessive way whatever meaning might be hidden in them. And there is always a certain meaning hidden in everything; otherwise, everything is of little value, and the whole world is just a meaningless symbol, except for selling it by the truckload, like they do with hills around Boston, to fill in some swamp in the Milky Way.

Now this doubloon was of purest, virgin gold, raked somewhere out of the heart of gorgeous hills, whence, east and west, over golden sands, the head-waters of many a Pactolus flows. And though now nailed amidst all the rustiness of iron bolts and the verdigris of copper spikes, yet, untouchable and immaculate to any foulness, it still preserved its Quito glow. Nor, though placed amongst a ruthless crew and every hour passed by ruthless hands, and through the livelong nights shrouded with thick darkness which might cover any pilfering approach, nevertheless every sunrise found the doubloon where the sunset last left it last. For it was set apart and sanctified to one awe-striking end; and however wanton in their sailor ways, one and all, the mariners revered it as the white whale's talisman. Sometimes they talked it over in the weary watch by night, wondering whose it was to be at last, and whether he would ever live to spend it.

Now, this doubloon was made of the purest, untouched gold, taken from deep within stunning hills, where, to the east and west, the headwaters of many streams flow over golden sands. And even though it was nailed down among rusty iron bolts and the green patina of copper spikes, it remained untouched and spotless against any dirt, still shining with its Quito glow. Even though it was surrounded by a ruthless crew and handled by rough hands every hour, and lying in the thick darkness of the night that could conceal any thief, every sunrise still found the doubloon exactly where the sunset last left it. It was set apart and special for one awe-inspiring purpose; and despite their wild sailor lifestyles, every sailor regarded it as the white whale's talisman. Sometimes they discussed it during the long night watches, wondering who would ultimately possess it and if that person would ever live to spend it.

Now those noble golden coins of South America are as medals of the sun and tropic token-pieces. Here palms, alpacas, and volcanoes; sun's disks and stars, ecliptics, horns-of-plenty, and rich banners waving, are in luxuriant profusion stamped; so that the precious gold seems almost to derive an added preciousness and enhancing glories, by passing through those fancy mints, so Spanishly poetic.

Now those noble golden coins of South America are like medals of the sun and tropical tokens. Here, you’ll find palms, alpacas, and volcanoes; suns and stars, ecliptics, horns of plenty, and rich banners waving, all stamped in lush abundance; so that the precious gold seems to gain even more value and beauty by coming from those artistically imaginative mints, so poetically Spanish.

It so chanced that the doubloon of the Pequod was a most wealthy example of these things. On its round border it bore the letters, REPUBLICA DEL ECUADOR: QUITO. So this bright coin came from a country planted in the middle of the world, and beneath the great equator, and named after it; and it had been cast midway up the Andes, in the unwaning clime that knows no autumn. Zoned by those letters you saw the likeness of three Andes' summits; from one a flame; a tower on another; on the third a crowing cock; while arching over all was a segment of the partitioned zodiac, the signs all marked with their usual cabalistics, and the keystone sun entering the equinoctial point at Libra.

It just so happened that the doubloon from the Pequod was a prime example of these coins. Its round edge had the words, REPUBLICA DEL ECUADOR: QUITO. So this shiny coin came from a country located in the middle of the world, right under the equator, and named after it; and it had been minted high up in the Andes, in the eternal climate where there’s no autumn. Around those words, you could see the images of three Andes peaks; from one, a flame; on another, a tower; and on the third, a crowing rooster; while arching over everything was a section of the divided zodiac, with the signs marked as usual, and the central sun at the equinoctial point in Libra.

Before this equatorial coin, Ahab, not unobserved by others, was now pausing.

Before this equatorial coin, Ahab, not unnoticed by others, was now stopping.

"There's something ever egotistical in mountain-tops and towers, and all other grand and lofty things; look here,— three peaks as proud as Lucifer. The firm tower, that is Ahab; the volcano, that is Ahab; the courageous, the undaunted, and victorious fowl, that, too, is Ahab; all are Ahab; and this round gold is but the image of the rounder globe, which, like a magician's glass, to each and every man in turn but mirrors back his own mysterious self. Great pains, small gains for those who ask the world to solve them; it cannot solve itself. Methinks now this coined sun wears a ruddy face; but see! aye, he enters the sign of storms, the equinox! and but six months before he wheeled out of a former equinox at Aries! From storm to storm! So be it, then. Born in throes, 't is fit that man should live in pains and die in pangs! So be it, then! Here's stout stuff for woe to work on. So be it, then."

"There's something inherently egotistical about mountaintops and towers, and all other grand and lofty things; look here—three peaks as proud as Lucifer. The sturdy tower, that’s Ahab; the volcano, that’s Ahab; the brave, fearless, and victorious bird, that too is Ahab; they’re all Ahab; and this round gold is just a reflection of the rounder globe, which, like a magician's glass, reflects back each person’s own mysterious self. It takes a lot of effort for little reward for those who expect the world to solve their problems; it can’t even solve itself. I think now this golden sun has a reddish face; but look! Yes, it’s entering the storm sign, the equinox! And just six months ago it exited from the previous equinox in Aries! From storm to storm! So be it, then. Born in struggles, it’s fitting that man should live in pain and die in agony! So be it, then! Here’s solid material for sorrow to work with. So be it, then."

"No fairy fingers can have pressed the gold, but devil's claws must have left their mouldings there since yesterday," murmured Starbuck to himself, leaning against the bulwarks. "The old man seems to read Belshazzar's awful writing. I have never marked the coin inspectingly. He goes below; let me read. A dark valley between three mighty, heaven-abiding peaks, that almost seem the Trinity, in some faint earthly symbol. So in this vale of Death, God girds us round; and over all our gloom, the sun of Righteousness still shines a beacon and a hope. If we bend down our eyes, the dark vale shows her mouldy soil; but if we lift them, the bright sun meets our glance half way, to cheer. Yet, oh, the great sun is no fixture; and if, at midnight, we would fain snatch some sweet solace from him, we gaze for him in vain! This coin speaks wisely, mildly, truly, but still sadly to me. I will quit it, lest Truth shake me falsely."

"No delicate fingers could have pressed the gold, but devilish claws must have left their marks there since yesterday," murmured Starbuck to himself, leaning against the railing. "The old man seems to understand Belshazzar's terrifying message. I've never examined the coin carefully. He goes below; let me take a look. A dark valley between three mighty, heavenly peaks that almost resemble the Trinity in some faint earthly way. So in this vale of Death, God surrounds us; and over all our despair, the sun of Righteousness still shines as a beacon and a hope. If we lower our eyes, the dark valley shows its decayed soil; but if we lift them, the bright sun meets our gaze halfway, to uplift us. Yet, oh, the great sun is not a constant presence; and if, at midnight, we seek some comfort from him, we look for him in vain! This coin speaks wisely, gently, truly, but still sadly to me. I will put it aside, lest Truth mislead me."

"There now's the old Mogul," soliloquized Stubb by the try-works, "he's been twigging it; and there goes Starbuck from the same, and both with faces which I should say might be somewhere within nine fathoms long. And all from looking at a piece of gold, which did I have it now on Negro Hill or in Corlaer's Hook, I'd not look at it very long ere spending it. Humph! in my poor, insignificant opinion, I regard this as queer. I have seen doubloons before now in my voyagings; your doubloons of old Spain, your doubloons of Peru, your doubloons of Chili, your doubloons of Bolivia, your doubloons of Popayan; with plenty of gold moidores and pistoles, and joes, and half joes, and quarter joes. What then should there be in this doubloon of the Equator that is so killing wonderful? By Golconda! let me read it once. Halloa! here's signs and wonders truly! That, now, is what old Bowditch in his Epitome calls the zodiac, and what my almanack below calls ditto. I'll get the almanack; and as I have heard devils can be raised with Daboll's arithmetic, I'll try my hand at raising a meaning out of these queer curvicues here with the Massachusetts calendar. Here's the book. Let's see now. Signs and wonders; and the sun, he's always among 'em. Hem, hem, hem; here they are— here they go—all alive: Aries, or the Ram; Taurus, or the Bull and Jimimi! here's Gemini himself, or the Twins. Well; the sun he wheels among 'em. Aye, here on the coin he's just crossing the threshold between two of twelve sitting-rooms all in a ring. Book! you lie there; the fact is, you books must know your places. You'll do to give us the bare words and facts, but we come in to supply the thoughts. That's my small experience, so far as the Massachusetts calendar, and Bowditch's navigator, and Daboll's arithmetic go. Signs and wonders, eh? Pity if there is nothing wonderful in signs, and significant in wonders! There's a clue somewhere; wait a bit; hist—hark! By Jove, I have it! Look you, Doubloon, your zodiac here is the life of man in one round chapter; and now I'll read it off, straight out of the book. Come, Almanack! To begin: there's Aries, or the Ram— lecherous dog, he begets us; then, Taurus, or the Bull— he bumps us the first thing; then Gemini, or the Twins— that is, Virtue and Vice; we try to reach Virtue, when lo! comes Cancer the Crab, and drags us back; and here, going from Virtue, Leo, a roaring Lion, lies in the path— he gives a few fierce bites and surly dabs with his paw; we escape, and hail Virgo, the Virgin! that's our first love; we marry and think to be happy for aye, when pop comes Libra, or the Scales—happiness weighed and found wanting; and while we are very sad about that, Lord! how we suddenly jump, as Scorpio, or the Scorpion, stings us in the rear; we are curing the wound, when whang comes the arrows all round; Sagittarius, or the Archer, is amusing himself. As we pluck out the shafts, stand aside! here's the battering-ram, Capricornus, or the Goat; full tilt, he comes rushing, and headlong we are tossed; when Aquarius, or the Waterbearer, pours out his whole deluge and drowns us; and to wind up with Pisces, or the Fishes, we sleep. There's a sermon now, writ in high heaven, and the sun goes through it every year, and yet comes out of it all alive and hearty. Jollily he, aloft there, wheels through toil and trouble; and so, alow here, does jolly Stubb. Oh, jolly's the word for aye! Adieu, Doubloon! But stop; here comes little King-Post; dodge round the try-works, now, and let's hear what he'll have to say. There; he's before it; he'll out with something presently. So, so; he's beginning."

"There’s the old Mogul,” Stubb muttered by the try-works, “he’s been watching; and there goes Starbuck from the same spot, both of them with faces that look like they’re about nine fathoms long. All from staring at a piece of gold! If I had it now on Negro Hill or in Corlaer's Hook, I wouldn’t gaze at it for long before spending it. Hmm! In my humble opinion, this seems strange. I’ve seen doubloons before on my travels; your doubloons from old Spain, from Peru, from Chili, from Bolivia, and from Popayan; plenty of gold moidores and pistoles, along with joes, half joes, and quarter joes. So what’s so incredibly amazing about this doubloon from the Equator? By Golconda! Let me take a look at it. Wow! Here are some signs and wonders, indeed! That right there is what old Bowditch calls the zodiac in his Epitome, and what my almanac calls the same. I’ll grab the almanac; and since I've heard that devils can be summoned with Daboll's arithmetic, I’ll see if I can figure out a meaning from these strange curves here using the Massachusetts calendar. Here’s the book. Let’s see now. Signs and wonders; and the sun, he’s always among them. Well, look at that—here they are—alive and kicking: Aries, or the Ram; Taurus, or the Bull; and look! here’s Gemini, or the Twins. The sun wheels among them. Oh, here on the coin he’s just crossing between two of the twelve rooms all in a circle. Book! You can sit there; the truth is, you books need to know your places. You’re good for just giving us the basic words and facts, but we come in to supply the ideas. That’s my small experience, so far as the Massachusetts calendar, and Bowditch's navigator, and Daboll's arithmetic go. Signs and wonders, huh? It would be a shame if there’s nothing remarkable in signs or meaningful in wonders! There’s a clue somewhere; hold on; wait—hey! By Jove, I’ve got it! Look here, Doubloon, your zodiac here represents the life of a man in one complete chapter; and now I’ll read it straight from the book. Come on, Almanac! First up: there’s Aries, or the Ram—he’s a lecherous fellow who brings us into the world; then Taurus, or the Bull—he gives us a bump right away; then Gemini, or the Twins—that is, Virtue and Vice; we strive for Virtue, when boom! here comes Cancer the Crab, pulling us back; and then, stepping away from Virtue, Leo, a roaring Lion, lies in wait—he takes a few fierce bites and rough swipes with his paw; we manage to escape and greet Virgo, the Virgin! That’s our first love; we marry and think we’ll be happy forever, when suddenly Libra, or the Scales, shows up—happiness weighed and found lacking; and while we’re feeling pretty gloomy about that, wow! how we jump, as Scorpio, or the Scorpion, stings us in the rear; we’re trying to heal the wound when suddenly all the arrows come flying; Sagittarius, or the Archer, is just having some fun. As we pull out the arrows, clear the way! Here comes Capricornus, or the Goat, like a battering-ram; he comes charging, and we’re tossed head over heels; when Aquarius, or the Waterbearer, dumps his whole flood on us and drowns us; and to finish up with Pisces, or the Fishes, we fall asleep. There’s a sermon now, written in the sky, and the sun goes through it every year, yet comes out alive and well. Cheerfully aloft there, he wheels through toil and trouble; and just like that, down here, does cheerful Stubb. Oh, cheerful is the word for sure! Goodbye, Doubloon! But hold on; here comes little King-Post; let’s sneak around the try-works and hear what he has to say. There he is; he’ll say something soon. Alright, he’s starting."

"I see nothing here, but a round thing made of gold, and whoever raises a certain whale, this round thing belongs to him. So, what's all this staring been about? It is worth sixteen dollars, that's true; and at two cents the cigar, that's nine hundred and sixty cigars. I won't smoke dirty pipes like Stubb, but I like cigars, and here's nine hundred and sixty of them; so here goes Flask aloft to spy 'em out."

"I don’t see anything here except a round object made of gold, and whoever catches a certain whale gets to keep this round object. So, what’s all this staring for? It’s worth sixteen dollars, which is true; and at two cents per cigar, that adds up to nine hundred and sixty cigars. I’m not going to smoke Stubb’s dirty pipes, but I do enjoy cigars, and here are nine hundred and sixty of them; so here goes Flask up to check them out."

"Shall I call that Wise or foolish, now; if it be really wise it has a foolish look to it; yet, if it be really foolish, then has it a sort of wiseish look to it. But, avast; here comes our old Manxman—the old hearse-driver, he must have been, that is, before he took to the sea. He luffs up before the doubloon; halloa, and goes round on the other side of the mast; why, there's a horse-shoe nailed on that side; and now he's back again; what does that mean? Hark! he's muttering— voice like an old worn-out coffee-mill. Prick ears, and listen!"

"Should I call that smart or stupid now? If it's really smart, it looks stupid; yet if it's really stupid, it has a sort of smart look. But hold on; here comes our old Manxman—the old hearse-driver he must have been before he took to the sea. He turns toward the doubloon; hey, and goes around to the other side of the mast; wait, there's a horseshoe nailed on that side; and now he's back again; what does that mean? Listen! He's mumbling—sounds like an old, worn-out coffee grinder. Perk up and listen!"

"If the White Whale be raised, it must be in a month and a day, when the sun stands in some one of these signs. I've studied signs, and know their marks; they were taught me two score years ago, by the old witch in Copenhagen. Now, in what sign will the sun then be? The horse-shoe sign; for there it is, right opposite the gold. And what's the horse-shoe sign? The lion is the horse-shoe sign— the roaring and devouring lion. Ship, old ship! my old head shakes to think of thee."

"If the White Whale is going to be raised, it has to be in a month and a day, when the sun is in one of these signs. I've studied astrology and know what they mean; I learned it twenty years ago from an old witch in Copenhagen. Now, in which sign will the sun be? The horseshoe sign; it’s right opposite the gold. And what does the horseshoe sign represent? The lion is the horseshoe sign—the roaring and devouring lion. Ship, old ship! My old head shakes just thinking about you."

"There's another rendering now; but still one text. All sorts of men in one kind of world, you see. Dodge again! here comes Queequeg— all tattooing—looks like the signs of the Zodiac himself. What says the Cannibal? As I live he's comparing notes; looking at his thigh bone; thinks the sun is in the thigh, or in the calf, or in the bowels, I suppose, as the old women talk Surgeon's Astronomy in the back country. And by Jove, he's found something there in the vicinity of his thigh— I guess it's Sagittarius, or the Archer. No: he don't know what to make of the doubloon; he takes it for an old button off some king's trowsers. But, aside again! here comes that ghost-devil, Fedallah; tail coiled out of sight as usual, oakum in the toes of his pumps as usual. What does he say, with that look of his? Ah, only makes a sign to the sign and bows himself; there is a sun on the coin— fire worshipper, depend upon it. Ho! more and more. This way comes Pip— poor boy! would he had died, or I; he's half horrible to me. He too has been watching all of these interpreters myself included— and look now, he comes to read, with that unearthly idiot face. Stand away again and hear him. Hark!"

"There's another interpretation now, but still just one text. All kinds of people in one sort of world, you see. Watch out! Here comes Queequeg—all covered in tattoos—looks like the Zodiac signs themselves. What does the Cannibal say? As I live, he's comparing notes, looking at his thigh bone; thinks the sun is in the thigh, or in the calf, or in the intestines, I suppose, like the old ladies who talk about Surgeon’s Astronomy in the countryside. And by Jove, he's discovered something near his thigh—I guess it's Sagittarius, or the Archer. No, he doesn't know what to make of the doubloon; he thinks it’s just an old button from some king's trousers. But wait! Here comes that ghost-demon, Fedallah; tail coiled out of sight as usual, bits of rope in the toes of his shoes as usual. What does he say, with that look on his face? Ah, he just makes a sign towards the sign and bows; there’s a sun on the coin— a fire worshipper, you can count on it. Oh! more and more. Here comes Pip—poor boy! I wish he had died instead of me; he's half terrifying to me. He too has been watching all these interpreters, myself included—and look now, he comes to read, with that otherworldly idiot face. Step back and listen. Hark!"

"I look, you look, he looks; we look, ye look, they look."

"I look, you look, he looks; we look, you all look, they look."

"Upon my soul, he's been studying Murray's Grammar! Improving his mind, poor fellow! But what's that he says now—hist!"

"Honestly, he's been studying Murray's Grammar! Trying to better himself, poor guy! But what's that he says now—shh!"

"I look, you look, he looks; we look, ye look, they look."

"I look, you look, he looks; we look, you all look, they look."

"Why, he's getting it by heart—hist! again."

"Why, he’s memorizing it—shh! again."

"I look, you look, he looks; we look, ye look, they look."

"I look, you look, he looks; we look, you all look, they look."

"Well, that's funny."

"Well, that's hilarious."

"And I, you, and he; and we, ye, and they, are all bats; and I'm a crow, especially when I stand a'top of this pine tree here. Caw! caw! caw! caw! caw! caw! Ain't I a crow? And where's the scare-crow? There he stands; two bones stuck into a pair of old trowsers, and two more poked into the sleeves of an old jacket."

"And you, me, and him; and us, you all, and them, are all bats; and I'm a crow, especially when I’m perched on top of this pine tree. Caw! caw! caw! caw! caw! caw! Am I not a crow? And where’s the scarecrow? There he is; two bones stuck into a pair of old pants, and two more shoved into the sleeves of an old jacket."

"Wonder if he means me?—complimentary—poor lad!—I could go hang myself. Any way, for the present, I'll quit Pip's vicinity. I can stand the rest, for they have plain wits; but he's too crazy-witty for my sanity. So, so, I leave him muttering."

"Wonder if he’s talking about me?—so flattering—poor guy!—I could just lose it. Anyway, for now, I’ll stay away from Pip. I can handle everyone else since they’re straightforward, but he’s just too smart for my own good. So, I’ll leave him mumbling."

"Here's the ship's navel, this doubloon here, and they are all one fire to unscrew it. But, unscrew your navel, and what's the consequence? Then again, if it stays here, that is ugly, too, for when aught's nailed to the mast it's a sign that things grow desperate. Ha! ha! old Ahab! the White Whale; he'll nail ye! This is a pine tree. My father, in old Tolland county, cut down a pine tree once, and found a silver ring grown over in it; some old darkey's wedding ring. How did it get there? And so they'll say in the resurrection, when they come to fish up this old mast, and find a doubloon lodged in it, with bedded oysters for the shaggy bark. Oh, the gold! the precious, precious gold!—the green miser'll hoard ye soon! Hish! hish! God goes 'mong the worlds blackberrying. Cook! ho, cook! and cook us! Jenny! hey, hey, hey, hey, hey, Jenny, Jenny! and get your hoe-cake done!"

"Here’s the ship’s navel, this doubloon right here, and they’re all eager to unscrew it. But if you unscrew your navel, what happens then? If it stays here, that’s not great either, because when something's nailed to the mast, it usually means things are getting desperate. Ha! ha! old Ahab! the White Whale; he’ll get you! This is a pine tree. My dad, back in Tolland County, once cut down a pine tree and found a silver ring embedded in it; some old guy’s wedding ring. How did it end up there? And that’s what they’ll say during the resurrection when they come to pull up this old mast and discover a doubloon stuck in it, with barnacles attached to the rough bark. Oh, the gold! the precious, precious gold!—the greedy miser will hoard you soon! Hush! hush! God wanders through the worlds, gathering berries. Cook! hey, cook! and cook for us! Jenny! hey, hey, hey, hey, hey, Jenny, Jenny! and get your hoe-cake ready!"

CHAPTER 100

Leg and Arm

Legs and Arms

The Pequod of Nantucket, Meets the Samuel Enderby, of London

The Pequod from Nantucket meets the Samuel Enderby from London.

"Ship, ahoy! Hast seen the White Whale?"

"Ship, ahoy! Have you seen the White Whale?"

So cried Ahab, once more hailing a ship showing English colors, bearing down under the stern. Trumpet to mouth, the old man was standing in his hoisted quarter-deck, his ivory leg plainly revealed to the stranger captain, who was carelessly reclining in his own boat's bow. He was a darkly-tanned, burly, goodnatured, fine-looking man, of sixty or thereabouts, dressed in a spacious roundabout, that hung round him in festoons of blue pilot-cloth; and one empty arm of this jacket streamed behind him like the broidered arm of a huzzar's surcoat.

So shouted Ahab, once again calling out to a ship displaying English colors, approaching from the stern. With a trumpet to his lips, the old man stood on his elevated quarter-deck, his ivory leg clearly visible to the captain of the other ship, who was lounging carelessly at the bow of his boat. He was a darkly tanned, burly, good-natured, good-looking man, about sixty years old, wearing a loose-fitting round jacket that draped around him in folds of blue pilot-cloth; one empty sleeve of this jacket fluttered behind him like the embroidered arm of a hussar's coat.

"Hast seen the White Whale!"

"Have you seen the White Whale!"

"See you this?" and withdrawing it from the folds that had hidden it, he held up a white arm of sperm whale bone, terminating in a wooden head like a mallet.

"Do you see this?" he said, pulling it out from the folds that had concealed it. He held up a white piece of sperm whale bone, ending in a wooden head that looked like a mallet.

"Man my boat!" cried Ahab, impetuously, and tossing about the oars near him—"Stand by to lower!"

"Man my boat!" shouted Ahab eagerly, tossing the oars around him. "Get ready to lower!"

In less than a minute, without quitting his little craft, he and his crew were dropped to the water, and were soon alongside of the stranger. But here a curious difficulty presented itself. In the excitement of the moment, Ahab had forgotten that since the loss of his leg he had never once stepped on board of any vessel at sea but his own, and then it was always by an ingenious and very handy mechanical contrivance peculiar to the Pequod, and a thing not to be rigged and shipped in any other vessel at a moment's warning. Now, it is no very easy matter for anybody— except those who are almost hourly used to it, like whalemen— to clamber up a ship's side from a boat on the open sea; for the great swells now lift the boat high up towards the bulwarks, and then instantaneously drop it half way down to the kelson. So, deprived of one leg, and the strange ship of course being altogether unsupplied with the kindly invention, Ahab now found himself abjectly reduced to a clumsy landsman again; hopelessly eyeing the uncertain changeful height he could hardly hope to attain.

In less than a minute, without leaving his small boat, he and his crew were in the water and soon next to the unknown ship. But a strange problem came up. In the excitement of the moment, Ahab had forgotten that since losing his leg, he had never stepped on any ship at sea other than his own. He always boarded his ship using a clever mechanical device unique to the Pequod, which couldn’t be set up quickly on any other vessel. Now, it's not easy for anyone—except those who do it regularly, like whalers—to climb up the side of a ship from a boat in the open sea; the big swells raise the boat high against the ship's sides and then drop it suddenly down almost to the waterline. So, with one leg gone and the unfamiliar ship lacking the helpful device, Ahab found himself awkwardly stuck back in the role of an inexperienced landlubber, helplessly staring at the unpredictable height he could barely hope to reach.

It has before been hinted, perhaps, that every little untoward circumstance that befell him, and which indirectly sprang from his luckless mishap, almost invariably irritated or exasperated Ahab. And in the present instance, all this was heightened by the sight of the two officers of the strange ship, leaning over the side, by the perpendicular ladder of nailed cleets there, and swinging towards him a pair of tastefully-ornamented man-ropes; for at first they did not seem to bethink them that a one-legged man must be too much of a cripple to use their sea bannisters. But this awkwardness only lasted a minute, because the strange captain, observing at a glance how affairs stood, cried out, "I see, I see!— avast heaving there! Jump, boys, and swing over the cutting-tackle."

It has been suggested before that every little unfortunate event that happened to him, which indirectly came from his unfortunate situation, usually irritated or frustrated Ahab. In this case, everything was made worse by seeing the two officers of the strange ship leaning over the side, next to the vertical ladder made of nailed cleats, and swinging a pair of nicely decorated ropes toward him; at first, they didn’t seem to realize that a one-legged man would struggle to use their sea railings. But this awkwardness only lasted a minute, because the strange captain, quickly understanding the situation, called out, "I get it, I get it! Stop with the heaving! Jump, guys, and swing over the tackle."

As good luck would have it, they had had a whale alongside a day or two previous, and the great tackles were still aloft, and the massive curved blubber-hook, now clean and dry, was still attached to the end. This was quickly lowered to Ahab, who at once comprehending it all, slid his solitary thigh into the curve of the hook (it was like sitting in the fluke of an anchor, or the crotch of an apple tree), and then giving the word, held himself fast, and at the same time also helped to hoist his own weight, by pulling hand-over-hand upon one of the running parts of the tackle. Soon he was carefully swung inside the high bulwarks, and gently landed upon the capstan head. With his ivory arm frankly thrust forth in welcome, the other captain advanced, and Ahab, putting out his ivory leg, and crossing the ivory arm (like two sword-fish blades) cried out in his walrus way, "Aye, aye, hearty! let us shake bones together!—an arm and a leg!— an arm that never can shrink, d'ye see; and a leg that never can run. Where did'st thou see the White Whale?—how long ago?"

As luck would have it, they had just spotted a whale a day or two earlier, and the big gear was still set up, with the large curved blubber-hook, now clean and dry, still attached to the end. This was quickly lowered to Ahab, who understood everything right away, slid his single thigh into the curve of the hook (it was like sitting in the fluke of an anchor or the fork of an apple tree), and then giving the signal, secured himself in place while also helping to lift his own weight by pulling hand-over-hand on one of the running parts of the rigging. Soon he was carefully swung inside the high railing and gently landed on the capstan. With his ivory arm extended in greeting, the other captain approached, and Ahab, putting out his ivory leg and crossing his ivory arm (like two swordfish blades) shouted in his walrus-like manner, "Aye, aye, hearty! Let’s shake bones together!—an arm and a leg!—an arm that can never shrink, you see; and a leg that can never run. Where did you see the White Whale?—how long ago?"

"The White Whale," said the Englishman, pointing his ivory arm towards the East, and taking a rueful sight along it, as if it had been a telescope; There I saw him, on the Line, last season."

"The White Whale," said the Englishman, pointing his ivory arm to the East and taking a regretful glance along it as if it were a telescope; "I saw him there, on the Line, last season."

"And he took that arm off, did he?" asked Ahab, now sliding down from the capstan, and resting on the Englishman's shoulder, as he did so.

"And he took that arm off, did he?" Ahab asked, sliding down from the capstan and resting on the Englishman's shoulder as he did.

"Aye, he was the cause of it, at least; and that leg, too?"

"Aye, he was the reason for it, at least; and that leg, too?"

"Spin me the yarn," said Ahab; "how was it?"

"Tell me the story," said Ahab; "what happened?"

"It was the first time in my life that I ever cruised on the Line," began the Englishman. "I was ignorant of the White Whale at that time. Well, one day we lowered for a pod of four or five whales, and my boat fastened to one of them; a regular circus horse he was, too, that went milling and milling round so that my boat's crew could only trim dish, by sitting all their sterns on the outer gunwale. Presently up breaches from the bottom of the sea a bouncing great whale, with a milky-white head and hump, all crows' feet and wrinkles."

"It was the first time in my life that I ever cruised on the Line," the Englishman started. "I didn’t know about the White Whale back then. One day, we set out after a pod of four or five whales, and my boat got hooked onto one of them; he was quite the performer, too, spinning around so much that my crew could only balance by sitting all the way at the back on the outer edge. Suddenly, a massive whale breached from the bottom of the sea, with a milky-white head and hump, covered in crows' feet and wrinkles."

"It was he, it was he!" cried Ahab, suddenly letting out his suspended breath.

"It was him, it was him!" shouted Ahab, suddenly letting out the breath he had been holding.

"And harpoons sticking in near his starboard fin. Aye, aye— they were mine—my irons," cried Ahab, exultingly—"but on!"

"And harpoons stuck in near his right fin. Yeah, yeah—they were mine—my irons," cried Ahab, triumphantly—"but keep going!"

"Give me a chance, then," said the Englishman, good-humoredly. "Well, this old great-grandfather, with the white head and hump, runs all afoam into the pod, and goes to snapping furiously at my fast-line!

"Give me a chance, then," said the Englishman, humorously. "Well, this old great-grandfather, with the white hair and hunchback, rushes all afoam into the pod, and starts snapping angrily at my fast-line!

"Aye, I see!—wanted to part it; free the fast-fish—an old trick—
I know him."

"Yeah, I get it!—wanted to separate it; let go of the caught fish—an old trick—
I know him."

"How it was exactly," continued the one-armed commander, "I do not know; but in biting the line, it got foul of his teeth, caught there somehow; but we didn't know it then; so that when we afterwards pulled on the line, bounce we came plump on to his hump! instead of the other whale's; that went off to windward, all fluking. Seeing how matters stood, and what a noble great whale it was— the noblest and biggest I ever saw, sir, in my life—I resolved to capture him, spite of the boiling rage he seemed to be in. And thinking the hap-hazard line would get loose, or the tooth it was tangled to might draw (for I have a devil of a boat's crew for a pull on a whale-line); seeing all this, I say, I jumped into my first mate's boat—Mr. Mounttop's here (by the way, Captain—Mounttop; Mounttop—the captain);— as I was saying, I jumped into Mounttop's boat, which, d'ye see, was gunwale and gunwale with mine, then; and snatching the first harpoon, let this old great-grandfather have it. But, Lord, look you, sir—hearts and souls alive, man—the next instant, in a jiff, I was blind as a bat—both eyes out—all befogged and bedeadened with black foam—the whale's tail looming straight up out of it, perpendicular in the air, like a marble steeple. No use sterning all, then; but as I was groping at midday, with a blinding sun, all crown-jewels; as I was groping, I say, after the second iron, to toss it overboard—down comes the tail like a Lima tower, cutting my boat in two, leaving each half in splinters; and, flukes first, the white hump backed through the wreck, as though it was all chips. We all struck out. To escape his terrible flailings, I seized hold of my harpoon-pole sticking in him, and for a moment clung to that like a sucking fish. But a combing sea dashed me off, and at the same instant, the fish, taking one good dart forwards, went down like a flash; and the barb of that cursed second iron towing along near me caught me here" (clapping his hand just below his shoulder); "yes, caught me just here, I say, and bore me down to Hell's flames, I was thinking; when, when, all of a sudden, thank the good God, the barb ript its way along the flesh— clear along the whole length of my arm—came out nigh my wrist, and up I floated;—and that gentleman there will tell you the rest (by the way, captain—Dr. Bunger, ship's surgeon: Bunger, my lad,— the captain). Now, Bunger boy, spin your part of the yarn."

"How it happened exactly," continued the one-armed commander, "I can't say; but when I bit the line, it got tangled in his teeth somehow; we didn’t realize it then. So when we pulled on the line later, we ended up right on his hump instead of the other whale’s, which had taken off to the windward, all fluking. Seeing how things were and how magnificent this whale was—the noblest and biggest I've ever seen, sir—I decided to capture him, even though he seemed pretty furious. I thought the tangled line would come loose or the tooth it was caught on might break (because I have a fantastic crew for pulling on a whale line); considering all this, I jumped into my first mate's boat—Mr. Mounttop’s here (by the way, Captain—Mounttop; Mounttop—the captain);— as I was saying, I jumped into Mounttop's boat, which was side by side with mine at the time, and grabbing the first harpoon, I aimed it at this old giant. But, good heavens, sir—alive and kicking, man—the next moment, in a flash, I was blind as a bat—both eyes closed—all fogged up and overwhelmed with black foam—the whale's tail towering straight up into the air like a marble steeple. No point in trying to steer away then; but as I was stumbling around at noon, with the blinding sun shining down, while I was searching for the second iron to throw overboard—down comes the tail like a tall tower, slicing my boat in half, leaving both pieces in splinters; then, flukes first, the white hump smashed through the wreck, as if it was all just chips. We all started swimming to get away from his terrifying flailings. I grabbed hold of my harpoon pole stuck in him, and for a moment, I clung to that like a little fish. But a big wave knocked me off, and at the same time, the whale shot forward, diving like a flash; and the barb of that dreaded second iron dragged along near me and caught me here" (clapping his hand just below his shoulder); "yes, it caught me right here, I tell you, and pulled me down to what I thought was Hell’s flames; when, just then, thank God, the barb ripped its way along my flesh—right along the whole length of my arm—came out near my wrist, and up I floated;—and that gentleman there will tell you the rest (by the way, captain—Dr. Bunger, ship's surgeon: Bunger, my lad,— the captain). Now, Bunger boy, tell your part of the story."

The professional gentleman thus familiarly pointed out, had been all the time standing near them, with nothing specific visible, to denote his gentlemanly rank on board. His face was an exceedingly round but sober one; he was dressed in a faded blue woollen frock or shirt, and patched trowsers; and had thus far been dividing his attention between a marlingspike he held in one hand, and a pill-box held in the other, occasionally casting a critical glance at the ivory limbs of the two crippled captains. But, at his superior's introduction of him to Ahab, he politely bowed, and straightway went on to do his captain's bidding.

The professional man he casually pointed out had been standing nearby the whole time, without anything obvious to show his status on board. His face was very round but serious; he wore a faded blue wool shirt and patched pants. So far, he had been splitting his attention between a marlingspike in one hand and a pillbox in the other, occasionally glancing critically at the ivory limbs of the two injured captains. However, when his superior introduced him to Ahab, he politely bowed and immediately set about following his captain's orders.

"It was a shocking bad wound," began the whale-surgeon; "and, taking my advice, Captain Boomer here, stood our old Sammy-"

"It was a seriously bad wound," started the whale-surgeon; "and, taking my advice, Captain Boomer here, stood our old Sammy-"

"Samuel Enderby is the name of my ship," interrupted the one-armed captain, addressing Ahab; "go on, boy."

"Samuel Enderby is the name of my ship," interrupted the one-armed captain, talking to Ahab; "keep going, kid."

"Stood our old Sammy off to the northward, to get out of the blazing hot weather there on the Line. But it was no use—I did all I could; sat up with him nights; was very severe with him in the matter of diet-"

"Old Sammy stood to the north to escape the sweltering heat on the Line. But it was no help—I did everything I could; I stayed up with him at night; I was really strict about his diet—"

"Oh, very severe!" chimed in the patient himself; then suddenly altering his voice, "Drinking hot rum toddies with me every night, till he couldn't see to put on the bandages; and sending me to bed, half seas over, about three o'clock in the morning. Oh, ye stars! he sat up with me indeed, and was very severe in my diet. Oh! a great watcher, and very dietetically severe, is Dr. Bunger. (Bunger, you dog, laugh out! why don't ye? You know you're a precious jolly rascal.) But, heave ahead, boy, I'd rather be killed by you than kept alive by any other man."

"Oh, very strict!" chimed in the patient himself; then suddenly changing his voice, "Drinking hot rum drinks with me every night, until he could hardly see to put on the bandages; and sending me to bed, totally out of it, around three o'clock in the morning. Oh, my stars! he really did stay up with me, and was very strict about my diet. Oh! a real watcher, and very strict about diet, is Dr. Bunger. (Bunger, you rascal, laugh out! Why don’t you? You know you're a fun-loving rogue.) But, keep going, buddy, I'd rather be killed by you than kept alive by anyone else."

"My captain, you must have ere this perceived, respected sir"— said the imperturbable godly-looking Bunger, slightly bowing to Ahab—"is apt to be facetious at times; he spins us many clever things of that sort. But I may as well say—en passant, as the French remark—that I myself—that is to say, Jack Bunger, late of the reverend clergy—am a strict total abstinence man; I never drink-"

"My captain, you must have noticed by now, respected sir," said the calm and godly-looking Bunger, giving a slight bow to Ahab, "is prone to being humorous at times; he tells us many clever stories like that. But I should mention, by the way—as the French say—that I, Jack Bunger, formerly of the clergy, am a strict total abstainer; I never drink-"

"Water!" cried the captain; "he never drinks it; it's a sort of fits to him; fresh water throws him into the hydrophobia; but go on—go on with the arm story."

"Water!" shouted the captain; "he never drinks it; it's like a seizure for him; fresh water gives him a fear of it; but keep going—keep going with the arm story."

"Yes, I may as well," said the surgeon, coolly. "I was about observing, sir, before Captain Boomer's facetious interruption, that spite of my best and severest endeavors, the wound kept getting worse and worse; the truth was, sir, it was as ugly gaping wound as surgeon ever saw; more than two feet and several inches long. I measured it with the lead line. In short, it grew black; I knew what was threatened, and off it came. But I had no hand in shipping that ivory arm there; that thing is against all rule"— pointing at it with the marlingspike—"that is the captain's work, not mine; he ordered the carpenter to make it; he had that club-hammer there put to the end, to knock some one's brains out with, I suppose, as he tried mine once. He flies into diabolical passions sometimes. Do ye see this dent, sir"—removing his hat, and brushing aside his hair, and exposing a bowl-like cavity in his skull, but which bore not the slightest scarry trace, or any token of ever having been a wound— "Well, the captain there will tell you how that came there; he knows."

"Yeah, I might as well," said the surgeon, calmly. "I was about to say, sir, before Captain Boomer's joking interruption, that despite my best and strictest efforts, the wound just kept getting worse; the truth is, sir, it was one of the ugliest gaping wounds ever seen; more than two feet and several inches long. I measured it with the lead line. In short, it turned black; I knew what was at stake, so off it came. But I had nothing to do with getting that ivory arm made; that thing goes against all the rules"—pointing at it with the marlingspike—"that's the captain's doing, not mine; he ordered the carpenter to make it; he had that club-hammer put on the end to knock someone's brains out with, I suppose, since he tried to do that with mine once. He has terrible temper tantrums sometimes. Do you see this dent, sir?"—removing his hat and brushing aside his hair, revealing a bowl-like cavity in his skull, which showed no scars or signs of ever having been a wound—"Well, the captain there can tell you how that happened; he knows."

"No, I don't," said the captain, "but his mother did; he was born with it. Oh, you solemn rogue, you—you Bunger! was there ever such another Bunger in the watery world? Bunger, when you die, you ought to die in pickle, you dog; you should be preserved to future ages, you rascal."

"No, I don't," said the captain, "but his mother did; he was born with it. Oh, you serious trickster, you—you Bunger! Has there ever been another Bunger in the watery world? Bunger, when you die, you should die in pickle, you dog; you should be preserved for future generations, you rascal."

"What became of the White Whale?" now cried Ahab, who thus far had been impatiently listening to this byeplay between the two Englishmen.

"What happened to the White Whale?" Ahab exclaimed, having been impatiently listening to the exchange between the two Englishmen.

"Oh!" cried the one-armed captain, Oh, yes! Well; after he sounded, we didn't see him again for some time; in fact, as I before hinted, I didn't then know what whale it was that had served me such a trick, till some time afterwards, when coming back to the Line, we heard about Moby Dick—as some call him—and then I knew it was he."

"Oh!" cried the one-armed captain. "Oh, yes! Well, after he dove, we didn't see him again for a while; actually, as I mentioned earlier, I didn't realize what whale had pulled that stunt on me until later, when we came back to the Line. That's when we heard about Moby Dick— as some call him— and then I knew it was him."

"Did'st thou cross his wake again?"

"Did you cross his path again?"

"Twice."

"Two times."

"But could not fasten?"

"But couldn't fasten?"

"Didn't want to try to; ain't one limb enough? What should I do without this other arm? And I'm thinking Moby Dick doesn't bite so much as he swallows."

"Didn’t want to try; isn’t one arm enough? What would I do without this other arm? And I’m thinking Moby Dick doesn’t bite as much as he swallows."

"Well, then," interrupted Bunger, "give him your left arm for bait to get the right. Do you know, gentlemen"—very gravely and mathematically bowing to each Captain in succession—"Do you know, gentlemen, that the digestive organs of the whale are so inscrutably constructed by Divine Providence, that it is quite impossible for him to completely digest even a man's arm? And he knows it too. So that what you take for the White Whale's malice is only his awkwardness. For he never means to swallow a single limb; he only thinks to terrify by feints. But sometimes he is like the old juggling fellow, formerly a patient of mine in Ceylon, that making believe swallow jack-knives, once upon a time let one drop into him in good earnest, and there it stayed for a twelvemonth or more; when I gave him an emetic, and he heaved it up in small tacks, d'ye see? No possible way for him to digest that jack-knife, and fully incorporate it into his general bodily system. Yes, Captain Boomer, if you are quick enough about it, and have a mind to pawn one arm for the sake of the privilege of giving decent burial to the other, why, in that case the arm is yours; only let the whale have another chance at you shortly, that's all."

"Well, then," Bunger interrupted, "give him your left arm as bait to get the right one. Do you know, gentlemen"—very seriously and politely bowing to each Captain in turn—"do you know, gentlemen, that the whale's digestive system is so incredibly designed by Divine Providence that it’s completely impossible for it to fully digest even a man's arm? And the whale knows this too. So what you think is the White Whale's malice is really just his clumsiness. He never actually intends to swallow a single limb; he just aims to scare with tricks. But sometimes he’s like an old magician I once treated in Ceylon, who pretended to swallow jack-knives, and once accidentally dropped one inside him for real, and it stayed there for a year or more; when I gave him an emetic, he threw it up in little pieces, you see? There’s no way for him to digest that jack-knife or really incorporate it into his body. Yes, Captain Boomer, if you act quickly and want to use one arm to ensure the decent burial of the other, then you can have the arm; just let the whale have another go at you soon, that’s all."

"No, thank you, Bunger," said the English Captain, "he's welcome to the arm he has, since I can't help it, and didn't know him then; but not to another one. No more White Whales for me; I've lowered for him once, and that has satisfied me. There would be great glory in killing him, I know that; and there is a ship-load of precious sperm in him, but, hark ye, he's best let alone; don't you think so, Captain?"—glancing at the ivory leg.

"No, thanks, Bunger," said the English Captain, "he can keep the arm he has since there's nothing I can do about it, and I didn't know him back then; but I'm not going after another one. No more White Whales for me; I went after him once, and that's enough for me. I know there would be a lot of glory in taking him down, and there's a whole ship's worth of valuable sperm in him, but you know what, it's best to leave him alone; don’t you think so, Captain?"—he said, looking at the ivory leg.

"He is. But he will still be hunted, for all that. What is best
let alone, that accursed thing is not always what least allures.
He's all a magnet! How long since thou saw'st him last?
Which way heading?"

"He is. But he'll still be hunted, despite everything. What's best
to avoid is often what attracts the most.
He's like a magnet! How long has it been since you saw him last?
Which way is he heading?"

"Bless my soul, and curse the foul fiend's," cried Bunger, stoopingly walking round Ahab, and like a dog, strangely snuffing; "this man's blood—bring the thermometer!—it's at the boiling point!— his pulse makes these planks beat!—sir!"—taking a lancet from his pocket, and drawing near to Ahab's arm.

"Bless my soul, and curse that nasty fiend," shouted Bunger, bending down as he walked around Ahab, sniffing like a dog; "this guy's blood—get the thermometer!—it’s boiling hot!—his pulse is making these floorboards thump!—sir!"—pulling a lancet from his pocket and moving closer to Ahab's arm.

"Avast!" roared Ahab, dashing him against the bulwarks—"Man the boat!
Which way heading?"

"Stop!" shouted Ahab, slamming him against the railing—"Get the boat ready!
Which direction are we going?"

"Good God!" cried the English Captain, to whom the question was put.
"What's the matter? He was heading east, I think.—Is your
Captain crazy?" whispering Fedallah.

"Good God!" exclaimed the English Captain, to whom the question was directed.
"What's going on? I think he was heading east.—Is your
Captain out of his mind?" whispered Fedallah.

But Fedallah, putting a finger on his lip, slid over the bulwarks to take the boat's steering oar, and Ahab, swinging the cutting-tackle towards him commanded the ship's sailors to stand by to lower.

But Fedallah, putting a finger to his lips, glided over the rail to grab the boat's steering oar, and Ahab, swinging the cutting tackle toward him, commanded the ship's crew to prepare to lower it.

In a moment he was standing in the boat's stern, and the Manilla men
were springing to their oars. In vain the English Captain hailed him.
With back to the stranger ship, and face set like a flint to his own,
Ahab stood upright till alongside of the Pequod.

In an instant, he was standing at the back of the boat, and the Manila crew were jumping to their oars. The English Captain called out to him, but it was no use. With his back to the strange ship and a determined expression on his face, Ahab stood tall until he was next to the Pequod.

CHAPTER 101

The Decanter

The Decanter

Ere the English ship fades from sight be it set down here, that she hailed from London, and was named after the late Samuel Enderby, merchant of that city, the original of the famous whaling house of enderby and sons; a house which in my poor whaleman's opinion, comes not far behind the united royal houses of the Tudors and Bourbons, in point of real historical interest. How long, prior to the year of our Lord 1775, this great whaling house was in existence, my numerous fish-documents do not make plain; but in that year (1775) it fitted out the first English ships that ever regularly hunted the Sperm Whale; though for some score of years previous (ever since 1726) our valiant Coffins and Maceys of Nantucket and the Vineyard had in large fleets pursued the Leviathan, but only in the North and South Atlantic: not elsewhere. Be it distinctly recorded here, that the Nantucketers were the first among mankind to harpoon with civilized steel the great Sperm Whale; and that for half a century they were the only people of the whole globe who so harpooned him.

Before the English ship disappears from view, it's worth noting that it came from London and was named after the late Samuel Enderby, a merchant from that city, who was the founder of the famous whaling company Enderby and Sons. In my humble opinion as a whaler, this company is not far behind the united royal houses of the Tudors and Bourbons when it comes to real historical significance. My many fishing documents don’t clarify how long this major whaling company had been operating before the year 1775, but that year, it dispatched the first English ships that regularly hunted the Sperm Whale. For several decades prior (since 1726), our brave Coffins and Maceys from Nantucket and the Vineyard had been pursuing the Leviathan in large fleets, but only in the North and South Atlantic, not anywhere else. It should be clearly stated that the Nantucketers were the first people to use civilized steel to harpoon the great Sperm Whale, and for half a century, they were the only ones in the world who did so.

In 1778, a fine ship, the Amelia, fitted out for the express purpose, and at the sole charge of the vigorous Enderbys, boldly rounded Cape Horn, and was the first among the nations to lower a whale-boat of any sort in the great South Sea. The voyage was a skilful and lucky one; and returning to her berth with her hold full of the precious sperm, the Amelia's example was soon followed by other ships, English and American, and thus the vast Sperm Whale grounds of the Pacific were thrown open. But not content with this good deed, the indefatigable house again bestirred itself: Samuel and all his Sons—how many, their mother only knows—and under their immediate auspices, and partly, I think, at their expense, the British government was induced to send the sloop-of-war Rattler on a whaling voyage of discovery into the South Sea. Commanded by a naval Post-Captain, the Rattler made a rattling voyage of it, and did some service; how much does not appear. But this is not all. In 1819, the same house fitted out a discovery whale ship of their own, to go on a tasting cruise to the remote waters of Japan. That ship— well called the "Syren"—made a noble experimental cruise; and it was thus that the great Japanese Whaling Ground first became generally known. The Syren in this famous voyage was commanded by a Captain Coffin, a Nantucketer.

In 1778, a fine ship, the Amelia, was equipped for this specific purpose and funded entirely by the energetic Enderbys. The ship boldly rounded Cape Horn and became the first among nations to launch a whale boat of any kind in the vast South Sea. The voyage was both skillful and fortunate; upon returning to port with her hold full of valuable sperm whale oil, the Amelia inspired other ships, both British and American, to follow suit, thus opening up the expansive Sperm Whale grounds of the Pacific. But the Enderby family wasn’t satisfied with this achievement. Samuel and all his sons—how many, only their mother knows—again took action and, with their direct involvement and, I believe, partly at their expense, persuaded the British government to send the sloop-of-war Rattler on a whaling exploration in the South Sea. Under the command of a naval Captain, the Rattler had an eventful voyage and accomplished some tasks, though the details remain unclear. But that’s not all. In 1819, the same family outfitted their own whaling discovery ship for an exploratory cruise in the distant waters of Japan. That ship—aptly named the "Syren"—conducted a significant experimental journey, which led to the first widespread awareness of the great Japanese Whaling Ground. The Syren on this notable voyage was commanded by Captain Coffin, a man from Nantucket.

All honor to the Enderbies, therefore, whose house, I think, exists to the present day; though doubtless the original Samuel must long ago have slipped his cable for the great South Sea of the other world.

All respect to the Enderbies, then, whose home, I believe, still stands today; although it’s likely that the original Samuel has long since left for the great unknown of the afterlife.

The ship named after him was worthy of the honor, being a very fast sailer and a noble craft every way. I boarded her once at midnight somewhere off the Patagonian coast, and drank good flip down in the forecastle. It was a fine gam we had, and they were all trumps—every soul on board. A short life to them, and a jolly death. And that fine gam I had— long, very long after old Ahab touched her planks with his ivory heel— it minds me of the noble, solid, Saxon hospitality of that ship; and may my parson forget me, and the devil remember me, if I ever lose sight of it. Flip? Did I say we had flip? Yes, and we flipped it at the rate of ten gallons the hour; and when the squall came (for it's squally off there by Patagonia), and all hands— visitors and all—were called to reef topsails, we were so top-heavy that we had to swing each other aloft in bowlines; and we ignorantly furled the skirts of our jackets into the sails, so that we hung there, reefed fast in the howling gale, a warning example to all drunken tars. However, the masts did not go overboard; and by and by we scrambled down, so sober, that we had to pass the flip again, though the savage salt spray bursting down the forecastle scuttle, rather too much diluted and pickled it for my taste.

The ship named after him deserved the honor, being really fast and a great vessel in every way. I boarded her once at midnight somewhere off the Patagonian coast and enjoyed some good flip down in the forecastle. We had an awesome time, and everyone on board was a great character. A short life to them and a happy death. That great time I had, long after old Ahab stepped on her deck with his ivory heel, reminds me of the warm, genuine Saxon hospitality of that ship; and may my priest forget me, and the devil remember me, if I ever forget it. Flip? Did I say we had flip? Yes, and we were drinking it at the rate of ten gallons an hour; and when the squall hit (because it gets pretty windy out there by Patagonia), everyone—visitors included—was called to reef the topsails. We were so unbalanced that we had to pull each other up in bowlines; and we carelessly tucked the ends of our jackets into the sails, so we hung there, fastened in the raging wind, a warning example to all drunken sailors. However, the masts stayed up; eventually, we managed to scramble down, so sober that we had to pass the flip around again, although the salty spray pouring into the forecastle scuttle kind of diluted and pickled it more than I liked.

The beef was fine—tough, but with body in it. They said it was bullbeef; others, that it was dromedary beef; but I do not know, for certain, how that was. They had dumplings too; small, but substantial, symmetrically globular, and indestructible dumplings. I fancied that you could feel them, and roll them about in you after they were swallowed. If you stooped over too far forward, you risked their pitching out of you like billiard-balls. The bread— but that couldn't be helped; besides, it was an anti-scorbutic, in short, the bread contained the only fresh fare they had. But the forecastle was not very light, and it was very easy to step over into a dark corner when you ate it. But all in all, taking her from truck to helm, considering the dimensions of the cook's boilers, including his own live parchment boilers; fore and aft, I say, the Samuel Enderby was a jolly ship; of good fare and plenty; fine flip and strong; crack fellows all, and capital from boot heels to hat-band.

The beef was good—tough, but satisfying. Some said it was from a bull; others claimed it was dromedary beef; but honestly, I couldn’t say for sure. They also had dumplings; small, but filling, perfectly round, and seemingly indestructible. I imagined you could feel them and roll them around inside after you swallowed. If you leaned too far forward, you risked them popping out like billiard balls. The bread—well, that was a necessity; plus, it was good for preventing scurvy since it was the only fresh food they had. But the forecastle was pretty dim, and it was easy to step into a dark corner while eating. Overall, taking her from bow to stern, considering the size of the cook's boilers, including his own living parchment boilers; fore and aft, I’d say the Samuel Enderby was a wonderful ship; with plenty of good food; great drinks; and all around, good company from head to toe.

But why was it, think ye, that the Samuel Enderby, and some other English whalers I know of—not all though—were such famous, hospitable ships; that passed round the beef, and the bread, and the can, and the joke; and were not soon weary of eating, and drinking, and laughing? I will tell you. The abounding good cheer of these English whalers is matter for historical research. Nor have I been at all sparing of historical whale research, when it has seemed needed.

But why do you think the Samuel Enderby, along with some other English whalers I know—not all of them though—were such famous, friendly ships? They would share beef, bread, canned goods, and jokes, and they never seemed to tire of eating, drinking, and laughing. Let me explain. The generous hospitality of these English whalers is worth looking into historically. And I haven’t held back on historical whale research when it seemed necessary.

The English were preceded in the whale fishery by the Hollanders, Zealanders, and Danes; from whom they derived many terms still extant in the fishery; and what is yet more, their fat old fashions, touching plenty to eat and drink. For, as a general thing, the English merchant-ship scrimps her crew; but not so the English whaler. Hence, in the English, this thing of whaling good cheer is not normal and natural, but incidental and particular; and, therefore, must have some special origin, which is here pointed out, and will be still further elucidated.

The English were preceded in the whaling industry by the Dutch, Zealanders, and Danes, from whom they borrowed many terms that are still used in the trade today. Even more importantly, they inherited their old customs regarding having plenty to eat and drink. Generally, English merchant ships tend to treat their crews poorly, but this isn't the case with English whalers. As a result, for the English, the good vibes associated with whaling aren't the norm, but rather something specific and unique; thus, it must have some special origin, which is pointed out here and will be explained further.

During my researches in the Leviathanic histories, I stumbled upon an ancient Dutch volume, which, by the musty whaling smell of it, I knew must be about whalers. The title was, "Dan Coopman," wherefore I concluded that this must be the invaluable memoirs of some Amsterdam cooper in the fishery, as every whale ship must carry its cooper. I was reinforced in this opinion by seeing that it was the production of one "Fitz Swackhammer." But my friend Dr. Snodhead, a very learned man, professor of Low Dutch and High German in the college of Santa Claus and St. Potts, to whom I handed the work for translation, giving him a box of sperm candles for his trouble—this same Dr. Snodhead, so soon as he spied the book, assured me that "Dan Coopman" did not mean "The Cooper," but "The Merchant." In short, this ancient and learned Low Dutch book treated of the commerce of Holland; and, among other subjects, contained a very interesting account of its whale fishery. And in this chapter it was, headed, "Smeer," or "Fat," that I found a long detailed list of the outfits for the larders and cellars of 180 sail of Dutch whalemen; from which list, as translated by Dr. Snodhead, I transcribe the following:

During my research on the histories of the Leviathan, I came across an old Dutch book that had a distinct whaling smell, so I guessed it was about whalers. The title was "Dan Coopman," which led me to think it must be the valuable memoirs of some cooper in Amsterdam's fishing industry, since every whaling ship needs a cooper. My assumption was backed up by the name of the author, "Fitz Swackhammer." However, my friend Dr. Snodhead, a highly educated man and a professor of Low Dutch and High German at the College of Santa Claus and St. Potts, assured me that "Dan Coopman" actually translates to "The Merchant," not "The Cooper." In the end, this ancient and scholarly Low Dutch book focused on the trade of Holland and included a fascinating section on its whale fishery. In this chapter, titled "Smeer," or "Fat," I found a lengthy list detailing the supplies for the pantries and cellars of 180 Dutch whalemen’s ships; from that list, as translated by Dr. Snodhead, I’m quoting the following:

     0084400,000 lbs. of beef.
      60,000 lbs. Friesland pork.
     150,000 lbs. of stock fish.
     550,000 lbs. of biscuit.
      72,000 lbs. of soft bread.
       2,800 firkins of butter.
      20,000 lbs. of Texel and Leyden cheese.
     144,000 lbs. cheese (probably an inferior article).
         550 ankers of Geneva.
      10,800 barrels of beer.

0084400,000 lbs. of beef.
      60,000 lbs. Friesland pork.
     150,000 lbs. of stock fish.
     550,000 lbs. of biscuits.
      72,000 lbs. of soft bread.
       2,800 tubs of butter.
      20,000 lbs. of Texel and Leyden cheese.
     144,000 lbs. of cheese (likely a lower quality product).
         550 containers of Geneva.
      10,800 barrels of beer.

Most statistical tables are parchingly dry in the reading; not so in the present case, however, where the reader is flooded with whole pipes, barrels, quarts, and gills of good gin and good cheer.

Most statistical tables are painfully boring to read; not so in this case, though, where the reader is overwhelmed with entire pipes, barrels, quarts, and gills of good gin and good cheer.

At the time, I devoted three days to the studious digesting of all this beer, beef, and bread, during which many profound thoughts were incidentally suggested to me, capable of a transcendental and Platonic application; and, furthermore, I compiled supplementary tables of my own, touching the probable quantity of stock-fish, &c., consumed by every Low Dutch harpooneer in that ancient Greenland and Spitzbergen whale fishery. In the first place, the amount of butter, and Texel and Leyden cheese consumed, seems amazing. I impute it, though, to their naturally unctuous natures, being rendered still more unctuous by the nature of their vocation, and especially by their pursuing their game in those frigid Polar Seas, on the very coasts of that Esquimaux country where the convivial natives pledge each other in bumpers of train oil.

During that time, I spent three days carefully considering all this beer, beef, and bread, during which I had many deep thoughts that could be applied in a philosophical way; I also created additional tables about the likely amount of stockfish, etc., consumed by each Dutch whaler in the old Greenland and Spitzbergen whale fishing industry. First of all, the amount of butter and Texel and Leyden cheese consumed is astonishing. I attribute this to their naturally rich natures, which are made even richer by their jobs, especially since they hunt in those icy Polar Seas, right along the shores of that Eskimo territory where the friendly locals toast each other with mugs of whale oil.

The quantity of the beer, too, is very large, 10,800 barrels. Now, as those polar fisheries could only be prosecuted in the short summer of that climate, so that the whole cruise of one of these Dutch whalemen, including the short voyage to and from the Spitzbergen sea, did not much exceed three months, say, and reckoning 30 men to each of their fleet of 180 sail, we have 5,400 Low Dutch seamen in all; therefore, I say, we have precisely two barrels of beer per man, for a twelve weeks' allowance, exclusive of his fair proportion of that 550 ankers of gin. Now, whether these gin and beer harpooneers, so fuddled as one might fancy them to have been, were the right sort of men to stand up in a boat's head, and take good aim at flying whales; this would seem somewhat improbable. Yet they did aim at them, and hit them too. But this was very far North, be it remembered, where beer agrees well with the constitution; upon the Equator, in our southern fishery, beer would be apt to make the harpooneer sleepy at the mast-head and boozy in his boat; and grievous loss might ensue to Nantucket and New Bedford.

The amount of beer is also very large, 10,800 barrels. Since those polar fisheries could only operate during the short summer in that climate, the entire journey for one of these Dutch whalers, including the brief trip to and from the Spitzbergen sea, didn't last much longer than three months, let’s say. With 30 men on each of their 180 ships, we have 5,400 Dutch sailors in total; therefore, I say we have exactly two barrels of beer per man for a twelve-week supply, not counting his fair share of the 550 casks of gin. Now, whether these gin and beer harpooners, as drunk as one might imagine them to be, were the right kind of people to stand at the front of a boat and take good aim at flying whales seems somewhat unlikely. Yet they did aim at them and hit them too. But remember, this was very far North, where beer suits the body well; at the Equator, in our southern fishery, beer might make the harpooner sleepy at the mast and tipsy in his boat, leading to serious losses for Nantucket and New Bedford.

But no more; enough has been said to show that the old Dutch whalers of two or three centuries ago were high livers; and that the English whalers have not neglected so excellent an example. For, say they, when cruising in an empty ship, if you can get nothing better out of the world, get a good dinner out of it, at least. And this empties the decanter.

But no more; enough has been said to show that the old Dutch whalers of two or three centuries ago lived it up; and that the English whalers have followed their great example. They say, when sailing on an empty ship, if you can't get anything better out of life, at least enjoy a good dinner. And this finishes off the decanter.

CHAPTER 102

A Bower in the Arsacides

A Bower in the Arsacids

Hitherto, in descriptively treating of the Sperm Whale, I have chiefly dwelt upon the marvels of his outer aspect; or separately and in detail upon some few interior structural features. But to a large and thorough sweeping comprehension of him, it behoves me now to unbutton him still further, and untagging the points of his hose, unbuckling his garters, and casting loose the hooks and the eyes of the joints of his innermost bones, set him before you in his ultimatum; that is to say, in his unconditional skeleton.

Up to now, when describing the Sperm Whale, I've mostly focused on the incredible details of its outer appearance, as well as a few specific internal structures. But to fully understand this creature, I now need to go deeper, loosening the parts of its body, unfastening its joints, and revealing its complete skeleton.

But how now, Ishmael? How is it, that you, a mere oarsman in the fishery, pretend to know aught about the subterranean parts of the whale? Did erudite Stubb, mounted upon your capstan, deliver lectures on the anatomy of the Cetacea; and by help of the windlass, hold up a specimen rib for exhibition? Explain thyself, Ishmael. Can you land a full-grown whale on your deck for examination, as a cook dishes a roast-pig? Surely not. A veritable witness have you hitherto been, Ishmael; but have a care how you seize the privilege of Jonah alone; the privilege of discoursing upon the joists and beams; the rafters, ridge-pole, sleepers, and under-pinnings, making up the frame-work of leviathan; and belike of the tallow-vats, dairy-rooms, butteries, and cheeseries in his bowels.

But seriously, Ishmael? How can you, just a simple oarsman in the fishery, act like you know anything about the inside of a whale? Did the knowledgeable Stubb, standing on your capstan, give lectures on the anatomy of whales and, with the help of the windlass, hold up a rib as a demonstration? Explain yourself, Ishmael. Can you bring a fully grown whale onto your deck for inspection, like a cook serving a roast pig? Certainly not. You have been a true witness, Ishmael; but be careful how you take on the privilege that belongs only to Jonah—the privilege of talking about the bones, beams, rafters, ridge-pole, supports, and foundations that make up the structure of the leviathan, and perhaps even the tallow vats, dairy rooms, butteries, and cheeseries inside him.

I confess, that since Jonah, few whalemen have penetrated very far beneath the skin of the adult whale; nevertheless, I have been blessed with an opportunity to dissect him in miniature. In a ship I belonged to, a small cub Sperm Whale was once bodily hoisted to the deck for his poke or bag, to make sheaths for the barbs of the harpoons, and for the heads of the lances. Think you I let that chance go, without using my boat-hatchet and jack-knife, and breaking the seal and reading all the contents of that young cub?

I admit, since Jonah, not many whalemen have explored very deep beneath the surface of the adult whale; however, I've had the chance to examine one up close. On a ship I was part of, a small Sperm Whale was once brought up onto the deck so we could take its blubber to make sheaths for the barbs of harpoons and for the heads of lances. Do you think I would pass up that opportunity without using my hatchet and jackknife to break it open and see what was inside that young whale?

And as for my exact knowledge of the bones of the leviathan in their gigantic, full grown development, for that rare knowledge I am indebted to my late royal friend Tranquo, king of Tranque, one of the Arsacides. For being at Tranque, years ago, when attached to the trading-ship Dey of Algiers, I was invited to spend part of the Arsacidean holidays with the lord of Tranque, at his retired palm villa at Pupella; a sea-side glen not very far distant from what our sailors called Bamboo-Town, his capital.

And regarding my detailed knowledge of the bones of the leviathan in their massive, fully grown form, I owe that rare insight to my late royal friend Tranquo, king of Tranque, one of the Arsacides. Years ago, while I was with the trading ship Dey of Algiers, I had the opportunity to spend part of the Arsacidean holidays with the lord of Tranque at his secluded palm villa in Pupella, a seaside glen not far from what our sailors referred to as Bamboo-Town, his capital.

Among many other fine qualities, my royal friend Tranquo, being gifted with a devout love for all matters of barbaric vertu, had brought together in Pupella whatever rare things the more ingenious of his people could invent; chiefly carved woods of wonderful devices, chiselled shells, inlaid spears, costly paddles, aromatic canoes; and all these distributed among whatever natural wonders, the wonder-freighted, tribute-rendering waves had cast upon his shores.

Among many other great qualities, my royal friend Tranquo, who had a deep love for all things unique and extraordinary, had gathered in Pupella whatever rare items the most creative people could come up with; mainly carved woods with amazing designs, carved shells, inlaid spears, expensive paddles, fragrant canoes; and all these were mixed with whatever natural wonders the awe-inspiring, gift-giving waves had brought to his shores.

Chief among these latter was a great Sperm Whale, which, after an unusually long raging gale, had been found dead and stranded, with his head against a cocoa-nut tree, whose plumage-like, tufted droopings seemed his verdant jet. When the vast body had at last been stripped of its fathomdeep enfoldings, and the bones become dust dry in the sun, then the skeleton was carefully transported up the Pupella glen, where a grand temple of lordly palms now sheltered it.

Chief among these was a huge Sperm Whale, which, after an unusually long and violent storm, was found dead and washed ashore, with its head resting against a coconut tree, whose feathery, drooping fronds looked like its vibrant jet. Once the massive body had finally been cleared of its deep layers, and the bones had dried out in the sun, the skeleton was carefully moved up the Pupella glen, where a grand temple of towering palms now protected it.

The ribs were hung with trophies; the vertebrae were carved with Arsacidean annals, in strange hieroglyphics; in the skull, the priests kept up an unextinguished aromatic flame, so that the mystic head again sent forth its vapory spout; while, suspended from a bough, the terrific lower jaw vibrated over all the devotees, like the hair-hung sword that so affrighted Damocles.

The ribs were decorated with trophies; the vertebrae were etched with Arsacidean records in strange symbols; in the skull, the priests maintained an ever-burning fragrant flame, causing the mystical head to release its vaporous spout once more; meanwhile, hanging from a branch, the frightening lower jaw trembled above all the worshippers, like the sword suspended by a hair that so terrified Damocles.

It was a wondrous sight. The wood was green as mosses of the Icy Glen; the trees stood high and haughty, feeling their living sap; the industrious earth beneath was as a weaver's loom, with a gorgeous carpet on it, whereof the ground-vine tendrils formed the warp and woof, and the living flowers the figures. All the trees, with all their laden branches; all the shrubs, and ferns, and grasses; the message-carrying air; all these unceasingly were active. Through the lacings of the leaves, the great sun seemed a flying shuttle weaving the unwearied verdure. Oh, busy weaver! unseen weaver!—pause!—one word!— whither flows the fabric? what palace may it deck? wherefore all these ceaseless toilings? Speak, weaver!—stay thy hand!— but one single word with thee! Nay—the shuttle flies— the figures float from forth the loom; the fresher-rushing carpet for ever slides away. The weaver-god, he weaves; and by that weaving is he deafened, that he hears no mortal voice; and by that humming, we, too, who look on the loom are deafened; and only when we escape it shall we hear the thousand voices that speak through it. For even so it is in all material factories. The spoken words that are inaudible among the flying spindles; those same words are plainly heard without the walls, bursting from the opened casements. Thereby have villainies been detected. Ah, mortal! then, be heedful; for so, in all this din of the great world's loom, thy subtlest thinkings may be overheard afar.

It was an amazing sight. The woods were as green as the moss in the Icy Glen; the trees stood tall and proud, feeling their living sap; the hardworking earth beneath was like a weaver's loom, with a beautiful carpet laid out, where the ground-vine tendrils made the warp and woof, and the living flowers formed the designs. All the trees, with their heavy branches; all the shrubs, ferns, and grasses; the air carrying messages; all these were constantly bustling. Through the gaps in the leaves, the bright sun looked like a flying shuttle weaving the endless greenery. Oh, busy weaver! unseen weaver!—pause!—just one word!—where does the fabric flow? what palace might it decorate? why all this endless labor? Speak, weaver!—stay your hand!—just one word with you! No—the shuttle moves on—the designs emerge from the loom; the ever-fresh carpet endlessly slips away. The weaver-god weaves; and by that weaving he is deafened, so he hears no human voice; and by that humming, we who watch the loom are deafened too; and only when we escape it will we hear the thousand voices that speak through it. For it is the same in all material factories. The spoken words that are unheard among the spinning spindles; those same words can clearly be heard outside, bursting from the opened windows. That is how wrongdoings have been exposed. Ah, mortal! be careful; for even in all this noise of the great world's loom, your most delicate thoughts may be overheard from afar.

Now, amid the green, life-restless loom of that Arsacidean wood, the great, white, worshipped skeleton lay lounging—a gigantic idler! Yet, as the ever-woven verdant warp and woof intermixed and hummed around him, the mighty idler seemed the cunning weaver; himself all woven over with the vines; every month assuming greener, fresher verdure; but himself a skeleton. Life folded Death; Death trellised Life; the grim god wived with youthful Life, and begat him curly-headed glories.

Now, in the vibrant, restless greenery of that Arsacidean forest, the massive, white, revered skeleton lay back—like a giant slacker! Yet, as the ever-intertwined green threads of nature mixed and buzzed around him, the mighty slacker appeared to be the clever weaver; he was covered in vines, each month taking on a greener, fresher look; but he was still just a skeleton. Life embraced Death; Death intertwined with Life; the grim god married youthful Life, resulting in curly-headed beauty.

Now, when with royal Tranquo I visited this wondrous whale, and saw the skull an altar, and the artificial smoke ascending from where the real jet had issued, I marvelled that the king should regard a chapel as an object of vertu. He laughed. But more I marvelled that the priests should swear that smoky jet of his was genuine. To and fro I paced before this skeleton— brushed the vines aside—broke through the ribs—and with a ball of Arsacidean twine, wandered, eddied long amid its many winding, shaded colonnades and arbors. But soon my line was out; and following it back, I emerged from the opening where I entered. I saw no living thing within; naught was there but bones.

Now, when I visited this amazing whale with King Tranquo and saw the skull acting as an altar with artificial smoke rising from where the real jet had come out, I was amazed that the king considered a chapel to be a valuable object. He laughed. But I was even more surprised that the priests claimed his smoky jet was authentic. I paced back and forth in front of this skeleton—pushed the vines aside—broke through the ribs—and with a ball of Arsacidean twine, I wandered and drifted for a long time through its many winding, shaded colonnades and gardens. But soon my line was out; and following it back, I came out from the entrance I had used. I saw no living thing inside; there was nothing but bones.

Cutting me a green measuring-rod, I once more dived within the skeleton. From their arrow-slit in the skull, the priests perceived me taking the altitude of the final rib, "How now!" they shouted; "Dar'st thou measure this our god! That's for us." "Aye, priests—well, how long do ye make him, then?" But hereupon a fierce contest rose among them, concerning feet and inches; they cracked each other's sconces with their yard-sticks— the great skull echoed—and seizing that lucky chance, I quickly concluded my own admeasurements.

Cutting a green measuring stick, I dove back inside the skeleton. From their narrow slit in the skull, the priests saw me measuring the height of the last rib. "What are you doing?" they shouted. "How dare you measure our god! That's our job." "Sure, priests—so how long do you think he is, then?" But then a fierce argument broke out among them about feet and inches; they hit each other with their yardsticks—the big skull echoed—and taking advantage of that moment, I quickly finished my own measurements.

These admeasurements I now propose to set before you. But first, be it recorded, that, in this matter, I am not free to utter any fancied measurements I please. Because there are skeleton authorities you can refer to, to test my accuracy. There is a Leviathanic Museum, they tell me, in Hull, England, one of the whaling ports of that country, where they have some fine specimens of fin-backs and other whales. Likewise, I have heard that in the museum of Manchester, in New Hampshire, they have what the proprietors call "the only perfect specimen of a Greenland or River Whale in the United States." Moreover, at a place in Yorkshire, England, Burton Constable by name, a certain Sir Clifford Constable has in his possession the skeleton of a Sperm Whale, but of moderate size, by no means of the full-grown magnitude of my friend King Tranquo's.

These measurements I’m about to present to you. But first, let it be noted that I can’t just make up any measurements I want. There are authoritative sources you can check to verify my accuracy. I’ve been told there’s a huge museum in Hull, England, one of the country’s whaling ports, where they have some great specimens of fin-back whales and others. I’ve also heard that the museum in Manchester, New Hampshire, boasts what its owners call "the only perfect specimen of a Greenland or River Whale in the United States." Additionally, in a place in Yorkshire, England, called Burton Constable, a certain Sir Clifford Constable owns the skeleton of a Sperm Whale, but it’s of a moderate size and not nearly as large as my friend King Tranquo’s.

In both cases, the stranded whales to which these two skeletons belonged, were originally claimed by their proprietors upon similar grounds. King Tranquo seizing his because he wanted it; and Sir Clifford, because he was lord of the seignories of those parts. Sir Clifford's whale has been articulated throughout; so that, like a great chest of drawers, you can open and shut him, in all his bony cavities—spread out his ribs like a gigantic fan— and swing all day upon his lower jaw. Locks are to be put upon some of his trap-doors and shutters; and a footman will show round future visitors with a bunch of keys at his side. Sir Clifford thinks of charging twopence for a peep at the whispering gallery in the spinal column; threepence to hear the echo in the hollow of his cerebellum; and sixpence for the unrivalled view from his forehead.

In both cases, the stranded whales that these two skeletons belonged to were originally claimed by their owners for similar reasons. King Tranquo took his because he wanted it, and Sir Clifford because he was the lord of the land in that area. Sir Clifford’s whale has been fully articulated, so you can open and close all its bony parts—spread its ribs like a massive fan—and swing on its lower jaw all day. Locks will be put on some of its trap doors and shutters, and a footman will guide future visitors with a bunch of keys at his side. Sir Clifford plans to charge two pence for a look at the whispering gallery in the spinal column, three pence to hear the echo in the hollow of its cerebellum, and six pence for the unmatched view from its forehead.

The skeleton dimensions I shall now proceed to set down are copied verbatim from my right arm, where I had them tattooed; as in my wild wanderings at that period, there was no other secure way of preserving such valuable statistics. But as I was crowded for space, and wished the other parts of my body to remain a blank page for a poem I was then composing— at least, what untattooed parts might remain—I did not trouble myself with the odd inches; nor, indeed, should inches at all enter into a congenial admeasurement of the whale.

The skeleton measurements I'm about to share are copied directly from my right arm, where I had them tattooed; during my adventurous travels at that time, it was the only reliable way to keep such important information. However, since I was short on space and wanted the other areas of my body to stay blank for a poem I was writing—at least the parts that weren't tattooed—I didn't bother with the extra inches; honestly, inches don't really fit into a suitable measurement for a whale anyway.

CHAPTER 103

Measurement of The Whale's Skeleton

Measuring The Whale's Skeleton

In the first place, I wish to lay before you a particular, plain statement, touching the living bulk of this leviathan, whose skeleton we are briefly to exhibit. Such a statement may prove useful here.

In the first place, I want to present to you a clear and straightforward account regarding the living mass of this giant creature, whose skeleton we are about to display. This account could be helpful here.

According to a careful calculation I have made, and which I partly base upon Captain Scoresby's estimate, of seventy tons for the largest sized Greenland whale of sixty feet in length; according to my careful calculation, I say, a Sperm Whale of the largest magnitude, between eighty-five and ninety feet in length, and something less than forty feet in its fullest circumference, such a whale will weigh at least ninety tons; so that, reckoning thirteen men to a ton, he would considerably outweigh the combined population of a whole village of one thousand one hundred inhabitants.

Based on my careful calculations, partly derived from Captain Scoresby's estimate of seventy tons for the largest Greenland whale measuring sixty feet in length, I conclude that a Sperm Whale of the largest size, between eighty-five and ninety feet long and slightly under forty feet in circumference, would weigh at least ninety tons. This means that, if we consider thirteen men per ton, this whale would significantly outweigh the total population of a village with one thousand one hundred residents.

Think you not then that brains, like yoked cattle, should be put to this leviathan, to make him at all budge to any landsman's imagination?

Don't you think that brains, like oxen, should be used to make this beast move in a way that anyone on land can imagine?

Having already in various ways put before you his skull, spout-hole, jaw, teeth, tail, forehead, fins, and divers other parts, I shall now simply point out what is most interesting in the general bulk of his unobstructed bones. But as the colossal skull embraces so very large a proportion of the entire extent of the skeleton; as it is by far the most complicated part; and as nothing is to be repeated concerning it in this chapter, you must not fail to carry it in your mind, or under your arm, as we proceed, otherwise you will not gain a complete notion of the general structure we are about to view.

Having already shown you his skull, spout-hole, jaw, teeth, tail, forehead, fins, and various other parts in different ways, I’ll now point out what’s most interesting about the overall structure of his unobstructed bones. The gigantic skull takes up a significant portion of the whole skeleton; it’s the most complex part, and since nothing more will be discussed about it in this chapter, you need to keep it in mind or under your arm as we move forward. Otherwise, you won’t get a complete understanding of the overall structure we’re about to explore.

In length, the Sperm Whale's skeleton at Tranque measured seventy-two feet: so that when fully invested and extended in life, he must have been ninety feet long; for in the whale, the skeleton loses about one fifth in length compared with the living body. Of this seventy-two feet, his skull and jaw comprised some twenty feet, leaving some fifty feet of plain backbone. Attached to this back-bone, for something less than a third of its length, was the mighty circular basket of ribs which once enclosed his vitals.

In length, the Sperm Whale's skeleton at Tranque measured seventy-two feet, so when fully grown and extended, it must have been ninety feet long; because in whales, the skeleton loses about one-fifth in length compared to the living body. Of this seventy-two feet, his skull and jaw made up around twenty feet, leaving about fifty feet of plain backbone. Attached to this backbone, for just under a third of its length, was the massive circular basket of ribs that once protected his organs.

To me this vast ivory-ribbed chest, with the long, unrelieved spine, extending far away from it in a straight line, not a little resembled the hull of a great ship new-laid upon the stocks, when only some twenty of her naked bow-ribs are inserted, and the keel is otherwise, for the time, but a long, disconnected timber.

To me, this huge chest with ivory ribs and a long, straight spine extending far away from it looked a lot like the hull of a large ship just being built, when only about twenty of its bare bow ribs are in place and the keel is just a long, disconnected piece of wood for now.

The ribs were ten on a side. The first, to begin from the neck, was nearly six feet long; the second, third, and fourth were each successively longer, till you came to the climax of the fifth, or one of the middle ribs, which measured eight feet and some inches. From that part, the remaining ribs diminished, till the tenth and last only spanned five feet and some inches. In general thickness, they all bore a seemly correspondence to their length. The middle ribs were the most arched. In some of the Arsacides they are used for beams whereon to lay footpath bridges over small streams.

The ribs were ten on each side. The first rib, starting from the neck, was almost six feet long; the second, third, and fourth were each progressively longer, reaching a peak with the fifth rib, one of the middle ribs, which measured eight feet and a few inches. From there, the remaining ribs got shorter, with the tenth and final rib only spanning five feet and a few inches. In terms of thickness, they all had a suitable proportion to their length. The middle ribs were the most curved. In some of the Arsacides, they are used as beams to support footpath bridges over small streams.

In considering these ribs, I could not but be struck anew with the circumstance, so variously repeated in this book, that the skeleton of the whale is by no means the mould of his invested form. The largest of the Tranque ribs, one of the middle ones, occupied that part of the fish which, in life, is greatest in depth. Now, the greatest depth of the invested body of this particular whale must have been at least sixteen feet; whereas, the corresponding rib measured but little more than eight feet. So that this rib only conveyed half of the true notion of the living magnitude of that part. Besides, for some way, where I now saw but a naked spine, all that had been once wrapped round with tons of added bulk in flesh, muscle, blood, and bowels. Still more, for the ample fins, I here saw but a few disordered joints; and in place of the weighty and majestic, but boneless flukes, an utter blank!

In looking at these ribs, I was once again struck by the fact, repeated throughout this book, that the skeleton of the whale is not at all the same as its outer form. The largest rib from the Tranque, one of the middle ones, was located in the part of the whale that, when alive, was the deepest. Now, the greatest depth of the outer body of this particular whale had to be at least sixteen feet, while the corresponding rib was barely over eight feet long. So, this rib only represented half of the true size of that part. Furthermore, for quite a stretch where I now saw just a bare spine, all that had once been surrounded by tons of flesh, muscle, blood, and organs. Even more, where the large fins should be, I only saw a few disordered joints; and instead of the heavy and impressive, yet boneless, flukes, there was just emptiness!

How vain and foolish, then, thought I, for timid untravelled man to try to comprehend aright this wondrous whale, by merely poring over his dead attenuated skeleton, stretched in this peaceful wood. No. Only in the heart of quickest perils; only when within the eddyings of his angry flukes; only on the profound unbounded sea, can the fully invested whale be truly and livingly found out.

How vain and foolish, I thought, for a timid, inexperienced person to try to understand this amazing whale just by staring at its long, lifeless skeleton laid out in this quiet woods. No. You can only truly know the whale when you’re facing the greatest dangers; only when you’re caught in the churn of its furious flukes; only on the vast, endless sea can the fully realized whale be truly discovered.

But the spine. For that, the best way we can consider it is, with a crane, to pile its bones high up on end. No speedy enterprise. But now it's done, it looks much like Pompey's Pillar.

But the spine. For that, the best way to think about it is to use a crane to stack its bones upright. Not a quick task. But now that it’s finished, it looks a lot like Pompey’s Pillar.

There are forty and odd vertebrae in all, which in the skeleton are not locked together. They mostly lie like the great knobbed blocks on a Gothic spire, forming solid courses of heavy masonry. The largest, a middle one, is in width something less than three feet, and in depth more than four. The smallest, where the spine tapers away into the tail, is only two inches in width, and looks something like a white billiard-ball. I was told that there were still smaller ones, but they had been lost by some little cannibal urchins, the priest's children, who had stolen them to play marbles with. Thus we see how that the spine of even the hugest of living things tapers off at last into simple child's play.

There are about forty vertebrae in total, and in the skeleton, they're not connected. They mostly resemble the large, knobby blocks on a Gothic spire, forming solid layers of heavy stone. The largest one, located in the middle, is just under three feet wide and more than four feet deep. The smallest one, where the spine narrows down into the tail, is only two inches wide and looks a bit like a white billiard ball. I heard there were even smaller ones, but they were taken by some mischievous kids, the priest's children, who snatched them for games of marbles. This shows how the spine of even the largest living creatures eventually tapers off into mere child's play.

CHAPTER 104

The Fossil Whale

The Fossil Whale

From his mighty bulk the whale affords a most congenial theme whereon to enlarge, amplify, and generally expatiate. Would you, you could not compress him. By good rights he should only be treated of in imperial folio. Not to tell over again his furlongs from spiracle to tail, and the yards he measures about the waist; only think of the gigantic involutions of his intestines, where they lie in him like great cables and hawsers coiled away in the subterranean orlop-deck of a line-of-battle-ship.

From his massive size, the whale provides a perfect topic to explore, expand on, and discuss in detail. You just can't shrink him down. Truthfully, he deserves to be covered in a grand folio. Without getting into the details of his length from blowhole to tail, or the measurements around his waist; just imagine the enormous twists of his intestines, which sit inside him like huge cables and ropes stored in the hidden hold of a battleship.

Since I have undertaken to manhandle this Leviathan, it behoves me to approve myself omnisciently exhaustive in the enterprise; not overlooking the minutest seminal germs of his blood, and spinning him out to the uttermost coil of his bowels. Having already described him in most of his present habitatory and anatomical peculiarities, it now remains to magnify him in an archaeological, fossiliferous, and antediluvian point of view. Applied to any other creature than the Leviathan—to an ant or a flea— such portly terms might justly be deemed unwarrantably grandiloquent. But when Leviathan is the text, the case is altered. Fain am I to stagger to this enterprise under the weightiest words of the dictionary. And here be it said, that whenever it has been convenient to consult one in the course of these dissertations, I have invariably used a huge quarto edition of Johnson, expressly purchased for that purpose; because that famous lexicographer's uncommon personal bulk more fitted him to compile a lexicon to be used by a whale author like me.

Since I've taken on the challenge of tackling this massive subject, I need to make sure I cover every detail thoroughly; I won’t overlook even the tiniest elements of its essence and will explore every aspect deeply. Having already described its current habits and anatomical features, I now need to discuss it from an archaeological, fossil, and ancient perspective. If I were talking about any other creature—like an ant or a flea—these grand terms would seem excessively extravagant. But when it comes to the Leviathan, that's a different story. I'm eager to approach this task armed with the most impactful words available. It’s worth noting that whenever I found it useful to consult a dictionary during these writings, I consistently used a large quarto edition of Johnson, specifically bought for this purpose; because that renowned lexicographer's impressive size made him a fitting source for a vocabulary suited to an author like me writing about a whale.

One often hears of writers that rise and swell with their subject, though it may seem but an ordinary one. How, then, with me, writing of this Leviathan? Unconsciously my chirography expands into placard capitals. Give me a condor's quill! Give me Vesuvius' crater for an inkstand! Friends, hold my arms! For in the mere act of penning my thoughts of this Leviathan, they weary me, and make me faint with their outreaching comprehensiveness of sweep, as if to include the whole circle of the sciences, and all the generations of whales, and men, and mastodons, past, present, and to come, with all the revolving panoramas of empire on earth, and throughout the whole universe, not excluding its suburbs. Such, and so magnifying, is the virtue of a large and liberal theme! We expand to its bulk. To produce a mighty book, you must choose a mighty theme. No great and enduring volume can ever be written on the flea, though many there be who have tried it.

One often hears about writers who become grand and elevated with their subjects, even if they seem quite ordinary. So how is it for me, writing about this Leviathan? Unconsciously, my writing starts to take on a larger-than-life quality. I need a condor's quill! I need Vesuvius' crater as an inkstand! Friends, hold my arms! Because just the act of writing my thoughts about this Leviathan tires me out and makes me feel faint with its overwhelming vastness, as if I'm trying to cover the entire spectrum of sciences, and all the generations of whales, humans, and mammoths—past, present, and future—along with all the changing scenes of empires on Earth and throughout the universe, including its outskirts. Such is the power of a big and generous theme! We grow to its scale. To create an epic book, you need to choose an epic topic. No significant and lasting book can ever be written about a flea, though many have tried.

Ere entering upon the subject of Fossil Whales, I present my credentials as a geologist, by stating that in my miscellaneous time I have been a stone-mason, and also a great digger of ditches, canals and wells, wine-vaults, cellars, and cisterns of all sorts. Likewise, by way of preliminary, I desire to remind the reader, that while in the earlier geological strata there are found the fossils of monsters now almost completely extinct; the subsequent relics discovered in what are called the Tertiary formations seem the connecting, or at any rate intercepted links, between the antichronical creatures, and those whose remote posterity are said to have entered the Ark; all the Fossil Whales hitherto discovered belong to the Tertiary period, which is the last preceding the superficial formations. And though none of them precisely answer to any known species of the present time, they are yet sufficiently akin to them in general respects, to justify their taking ranks as Cetacean fossils.

Before diving into the topic of Fossil Whales, I want to share my background as a geologist. In my spare time, I've worked as a stone mason and have done a lot of digging for ditches, canals, wells, wine cellars, and all kinds of cisterns. Additionally, I want to remind the reader that in the earlier geological layers, we find fossils of creatures that are almost entirely extinct. The later remains found in what we call the Tertiary formations seem to be the connecting, or at least interrupted, links between those ancient creatures and their modern-day descendants, said to have entered the Ark. All the Fossil Whales discovered so far belong to the Tertiary period, which is the last period before the surface formations. While none of them exactly match any known species from today, they are enough alike in general features to be classified as Cetacean fossils.

Detached broken fossils of pre-adamite whales, fragments of their bones and skeletons, have within thirty years past, at various intervals, been found at the base of the Alps, in Lombardy, in France, in England, in Scotland, and in the States of Louisiana, Mississippi, and Alabama. Among the more curious of such remains is part of a skull, which in the year 1779 was disinterred in the Rue Dauphine in Paris, a short street opening almost directly upon the palace of the Tuileries; and bones disinterred in excavating the great docks of Antwerp, in Napoleon's time. Cuvier pronounced these fragments to have belonged to some utterly unknown Leviathanic species.

Detached broken fossils of ancient whales, fragments of their bones and skeletons, have been discovered over the past thirty years at various times at the base of the Alps, in Lombardy, France, England, Scotland, and in the states of Louisiana, Mississippi, and Alabama. Among the most interesting of these remains is part of a skull that was excavated in 1779 on Rue Dauphine in Paris, a short street that runs almost directly to the palace of the Tuileries; and bones that were unearthed during the excavation of the large docks in Antwerp during Napoleon's era. Cuvier stated that these fragments belonged to a completely unknown Leviathan-like species.

But by far the most wonderful of all Cetacean relics was the almost complete vast skeleton of an extinct monster, found in the year 1842, on the plantation of Judge Creagh, in Alabama. The awe-stricken credulous slaves in the vicinity took it for the bones of one of the fallen angels. The Alabama doctors declared it a huge reptile, and bestowed upon it the name of Basilosaurus. But some specimen bones of it being taken across the sea to Owen, the English Anatomist, it turned out that this alleged reptile was a whale, though of a departed species. A significant illustration of the fact, again and again repeated in this book, that the skeleton of the whale furnishes but little clue to the shape of his fully invested body. So Owen rechristened the monster Zeuglodon; and in his paper read before the London Geological Society, pronounced it, in substance, one of the most extraordinary creatures which the mutations of the globe have blotted out of existence.

But by far the most amazing of all Cetacean relics was the almost complete massive skeleton of an extinct monster, discovered in 1842 on Judge Creagh's plantation in Alabama. The stunned, gullible slaves in the area believed it to be the bones of one of the fallen angels. The Alabama doctors claimed it was a huge reptile and named it Basilosaurus. However, when some specimen bones were sent across the ocean to Owen, the English anatomist, it turned out that this supposed reptile was actually a whale, albeit an extinct species. This serves as a key example of the fact, repeatedly emphasized in this book, that the skeletal structure of a whale provides little insight into the shape of its fully fleshed body. Owen then renamed the creature Zeuglodon; and in his paper presented to the London Geological Society, he stated that it was essentially one of the most remarkable animals that the changes on Earth have driven to extinction.

When I stand among these mighty Leviathan skeletons, skulls, tusks, jaws, ribs, and vertebrae, all characterized by partial resemblances to the existing breeds of sea-monsters; but at the same time bearing on the other hand similar affinities to the annihilated antichronical Leviathans, their incalculable seniors; I am, by a flood, borne back to that wondrous period, ere time itself can be said to have begun; for time began with man. Here Saturn's grey chaos rolls over me, and I obtain dim, shuddering glimpses into those Polar eternities; when wedged bastions of ice pressed hard upon what are now the Tropics; and in all the 25,000 miles of this world's circumference, not an inhabitable hand's breadth of land was visible. Then the whole world was the whale's; and, king of creation, he left his wake along the present lines of the Andes and the Himmalehs. Who can show a pedigree like Leviathan? Ahab's harpoon had shed older blood than the Pharaoh's. Methuselah seems a schoolboy. I look round to shake hands with Shem. I am horror-struck at this antemosaic, unsourced existence of the unspeakable terrors of the whale, which, having been before all time, must needs exist after all humane ages are over.

When I stand among these huge Leviathan skeletons—skulls, tusks, jaws, ribs, and vertebrae—all sharing partial similarities with today's sea monsters while also reflecting connections to the long-gone ancient Leviathans that came before them, I am suddenly taken back to that amazing time before time itself truly began, because time started with humanity. Here, the chaotic grey of Saturn surrounds me, and I catch faint, chilling glimpses of those eternal Polar regions; when massive ice structures pressed hard on what are now the Tropics; and across the 25,000 miles of the Earth's circumference, not a single habitable inch of land could be seen. Back then, the entire world belonged to the whale; and as the king of creation, he left his mark along the present paths of the Andes and the Himalayas. Who else can claim a lineage like Leviathan? Ahab's harpoon has drawn older blood than that of the Pharaohs. Methuselah seems like a schoolboy in comparison. I look around, eager to shake hands with Shem. I am horrified by this pre-Genesis, untraceable existence of the unimaginable fears related to the whale, which, having existed before all time, must continue to exist long after all human ages have passed.

But not alone has this Leviathan left his pre-adamite traces in the stereotype plates of nature, and in limestone and marl bequeathed his ancient bust; but upon Egyptian tablets, whose antiquity seems to claim for them an almost fossiliferous character, we find the unmistakable print of his fin. In an apartment of the great temple of Denderah, some fifty years ago, there was discovered upon the granite ceiling a sculptured and painted planisphere, abounding in centaurs, griffins, and dolphins, similar to the grotesque figures on the celestial globe of the moderns. Gliding among them, old Leviathan swam as of yore; was there swimming in that planisphere, centuries before Solomon was cradled.

But this Leviathan hasn't just left his ancient marks in nature’s stereotype plates, or in limestone and marl, where it has handed down its old form; it has also made its mark on Egyptian tablets, whose age seems to give them a nearly fossil-like quality. In a room of the great temple of Denderah, discovered about fifty years ago, there was found on the granite ceiling a sculpted and painted star map, filled with centaurs, griffins, and dolphins, similar to the bizarre figures on today’s celestial globes. Swimming among them, the old Leviathan glided just as in the past; it was swimming in that star map centuries before Solomon was born.

Nor must there be omitted another strange attestation of the antiquity of the whale, in his own osseous postdiluvian reality, as set down by the venerable John Leo, the old Barbary traveller.

Nor should we overlook another strange confirmation of the whale's ancient existence, in its own bony post-flood reality, as recorded by the respected John Leo, the old traveler from Barbary.

"Not far from the Sea-side, they have a Temple, the Rafters and Beams of which are made of Whale-Bones; for Whales of a monstrous size are oftentimes cast up dead upon that shore. The Common People imagine, that by a secret Power bestowed by God upon the Temple, no Whale can pass it without immediate death. But the truth of the Matter is, that on either side of the Temple, there are Rocks that shoot two Miles into the Sea, and wound the Whales when they light upon 'em. They keep a Whale's Rib of an incredible length for a Miracle, which lying upon the Ground with its convex part uppermost, makes an Arch, the Head of which cannot be reached by a Man upon a Camel's Back. This Rib (says John Leo) is said to have layn there a hundred Years before I saw it. Their Historians affirm, that a Prophet who prophesy'd of Mahomet, came from this Temple, and some do not stand to assert, that the Prophet Jonas was cast forth by the Whale at the Base of the Temple."

"Not far from the seaside, there's a temple with rafters and beams made of whale bones because huge whales sometimes wash up dead on that shore. The common folks believe that due to a secret power given to the temple by God, no whale can pass by it without dying immediately. But the truth is, on either side of the temple, there are rocks that extend two miles into the sea and injure the whales when they land on them. They keep a whale rib of incredible length as a miracle, which lies on the ground with its curved side facing up, forming an arch that can't be reached by a person on a camel's back. This rib, according to John Leo, is said to have been there for a hundred years before I saw it. Their historians claim that a prophet who prophesied about Muhammad came from this temple, and some even insist that the prophet Jonah was thrown up by the whale at the base of the temple."

In this Afric Temple of the Whale I leave you, reader, and if you be a Nantucketer, and a whaleman, you will silently worship there.

In this Afric Temple of the Whale, I leave you, reader, and if you’re from Nantucket and a whaleman, you will worship there in silence.

CHAPTER 105

Does the Whale's Magnitude Diminish? - Will He Perish?

Does the Whale's Size Decrease? - Will He Die?

Inasmuch, then, as this Leviathan comes floundering down upon us from the head-waters of the Eternities, it may be fitly inquired, whether, in the long course of his generations, he has not degenerated from the original bulk of his sires.

In that case, since this Leviathan comes crashing down on us from the origins of time, it’s reasonable to ask whether, over the many generations, he has not declined from the original size of his ancestors.

But upon investigation we find, that not only are the whales of the present day superior in magnitude to those whose fossil remains are found in the Tertiary system (embracing a distinct geological period prior to man), but of the whales found in that Tertiary system, those belonging to its latter formations exceed in size those of its earlier ones.

But upon investigation, we find that not only are today's whales larger than those whose fossil remains are found in the Tertiary period (which took place long before humans), but also that among the whales from that Tertiary period, those from the later formations are bigger than those from the earlier ones.

Of all the pre-adamite whales yet exhumed, by far the largest is the Alabama one mentioned in the last chapter, and that was less than seventy feet in length in the skeleton. Whereas, we have already seen, that the tape-measure gives seventy-two feet for the skeleton of a large sized modern whale. And I have heard, on whalemen's authority, that Sperm Whales have been captured near a hundred feet long at the time of capture.

Of all the prehistoric whales discovered so far, the largest is the Alabama whale mentioned in the last chapter, which measured less than seventy feet in length in its skeleton. In comparison, we’ve already seen that the tape measure shows seventy-two feet for the skeleton of a large modern whale. Additionally, I've heard from people in the whaling industry that Sperm Whales have been caught measuring nearly a hundred feet long at the time of capture.

But may it not be, that while the whales of the present hour are an advance in magnitude upon those of all previous geological periods; may it not be, that since Adam's time they have degenerated?

But could it be that, while the whales of today are larger than those from all previous geological periods, they might have actually declined since the time of Adam?

Assuredly, we must conclude so, if we are to credit the accounts of such gentlemen as Pliny, and the ancient naturalists generally. For Pliny tells us of Whales that embraced acres of living bulk, and Aldrovandus of others which measured eight hundred feet in length— Rope Walks and Thames Tunnels of Whales! And even in the days of Banks and Solander, Cooke's naturalists, we find a Danish member of the Academy of Sciences setting down certain Iceland Whales (reydan-siskur, or Wrinkled Bellies) at one hundred and twenty yards; that is, three hundred and sixty feet. And Lacepede, the French naturalist, in his elaborate history of whales, in the very beginning of his work (page 3), sets down the Right Whale at one hundred metres, three hundred and twenty-eight feet. And this work was published so late as A.D. 1825.

Certainly, we have to agree on this if we believe the reports from experts like Pliny and other ancient naturalists. Pliny mentions whales that had massive sizes, and Aldrovandus talks about others that were eight hundred feet long—basically the size of Rope Walks and Thames Tunnels! Even during the times of Banks and Solander, naturalists with Cook, a Danish member of the Academy of Sciences recorded certain Icelandic whales (reydan-siskur, or Wrinkled Bellies) measuring one hundred and twenty yards, which is three hundred and sixty feet. And Lacepede, the French naturalist, in his detailed history of whales, states right at the beginning of his work (page 3) that the Right Whale reaches one hundred meters, or three hundred and twenty-eight feet. This was published as recently as A.D. 1825.

But will any whaleman believe these stories? No. The whale of to-day is as big as his ancestors in Pliny's time. And if ever I go where Pliny is, I, a whaleman (more than he was), will make bold to tell him so. Because I cannot understand how it is, that while the Egyptian mummies that were buried thousands of years before even Pliny was born, do not measure so much in their coffins as a modern Kentuckian in his socks; and while the cattle and other animals sculptured on the oldest Egyptian and Nineveh tablets, by the relative proportions in which they are drawn, just as plainly prove that the high-bred, stall-fed, prize cattle of Smithfield, not only equal, but far exceed in magnitude the fattest of Pharaoh's fat kine; in the face of all this, I will not admit that of all animals the whale alone should have degenerated.

But will any whaleman believe these stories? No. The whale today is just as big as its ancestors back in Pliny's time. And if I ever meet Pliny, I, a whaleman (more than he was), will confidently tell him that. Because I can't understand how it is that while the Egyptian mummies buried thousands of years before Pliny was born don't take up as much space in their coffins as a modern Kentuckian in his socks; and while the cattle and other animals carved on the oldest Egyptian and Nineveh tablets, based on the proportions in which they're depicted, clearly show that the top-notch, stall-fed, prize cattle of Smithfield not only match but far surpass the fattest of Pharaoh's cattle; in light of all this, I refuse to believe that out of all animals, the whale should be the only one that has declined.

But still another inquiry remains; one often agitated by the more recondite Nantucketers. Whether owing to the almost omniscient look-outs at the mast-heads of the whaleships, now penetrating even through Behring's straits, and into the remotest secret drawers and lockers of the world; and the thousand harpoons and lances darted along all continental coasts; the moot point is, whether Leviathan can long endure so wide a chase, and so remorseless a havoc; whether he must not at last be exterminated from the waters, and the last whale, like the last man, smoke his last pipe, and then himself evaporate in the final puff.

But there’s still one more question to consider; one that’s often raised by the more knowledgeable Nantucketers. Whether it's due to the almost all-seeing lookout at the tops of the whaling ships, now even reaching through Bering Strait and into the deepest, hidden corners of the earth; and the thousands of harpoons and lances launched along all the continental coasts; the big question is, can the Leviathan really withstand such a massive hunt and such relentless destruction? Will it eventually be wiped out from the oceans, and will the last whale, like the last human, have its final smoke, only to then vanish in the last puff?

Comparing the humped herds of whales with the humped herds of buffalo, which, not forty years ago, overspread by tens of thousands the prairies of Illinois and Missouri, and shook their iron manes and scowled with their thunder-clotted brows upon the sites of populous river-capitals, where now the polite broker sells you land at a dollar an inch; in such a comparison an irresistible argument would seem furnished, to show that the hunted whale cannot now escape speedy extinction.

Comparing the herds of humpback whales with the herds of buffalo, which just forty years ago roamed the prairies of Illinois and Missouri in the tens of thousands, dramatically shaking their heavy manes and glaring with their thunderous brows at the locations of bustling river capitals, where now sophisticated brokers sell you land for a dollar an inch; in this comparison, it seems there's a strong argument to show that the hunted whale is on a fast track to extinction.

But you must look at this matter in every light. Though so short a period ago—not a good lifetime—the census of the buffalo in Illinois exceeded the census of men now in London, and though at the present day not one horn or hoof of them remains in all that region; and though the cause of this wondrous extermination was the spear of man; yet the far different nature of the whale-hunt peremptorily forbids so inglorious an end to the Leviathan. Forty men in one ship hunting the Sperm Whales for forty-eight months think they have done extremely well, and thank God, if at last they carry home the oil of forty fish. Whereas, in the days of the old Canadian and Indian hunters and trappers of the West, when the far west (in whose sunset suns still rise) was a wilderness and a virgin, the same number of moccasined men, for the same number of months, mounted on horse instead of sailing in ships, would have slain not forty, but forty thousand and more buffaloes; a fact that, if need were, could be statistically stated.

But you need to look at this from every angle. Just a short time ago—not even a full lifetime—the buffalo population in Illinois was larger than the number of people currently in London, and now there isn't a single horn or hoof left in that area; even though this incredible extermination was caused by human hunters, the nature of whale hunting completely prevents such an undignified end for the Leviathan. Forty men on one ship hunting Sperm Whales for forty-eight months believe they’ve done really well and thank God if they end up bringing home the oil from just forty fish. In contrast, back in the days of the old Canadian and Indian hunters and trappers of the West, when the far West (where sunset still brings new dawns) was a wilderness and untouched land, the same number of men in moccasins, for the same amount of time, riding horses instead of sailing ships, would have killed not forty, but over forty thousand buffaloes; a fact that could be backed up with statistics if needed.

Nor, considered aright, does it seem any argument in favor of the gradual extinction of the Sperm Whale, for example, that in former years (the latter part of the last century, say) these Leviathans, in small pods, were encountered much oftener than at present, and, in consequence, the voyages were not so prolonged, and were also much more remunerative. Because, as has been elsewhere noticed, those whales, influenced by some views to safety, now swim the seas in immense caravans, so that to a large degree the scattered solitaries, yokes, and pods, and schools of other days are now aggregated into vast but widely separated, unfrequent armies. That is all. And equally fallacious seems the conceit, that because the so-called whale-bone whales no longer haunt many grounds in former years abounding with them, hence that species also is declining. For they are only being driven from promontory to cape; and if one coast is no longer enlivened with their jets, then, be sure, some other and remoter strand has been very recently startled by the unfamiliar spectacle.

Nor does it seem like a valid argument for the gradual extinction of the Sperm Whale, for instance, that in past years (specifically the latter part of the last century) these giants were encountered much more frequently in small groups than they are now. As a result, voyages were shorter and more profitable. As noted elsewhere, those whales, looking for safety, now swim the seas in massive groups, meaning that the scattered solitary whales, pairs, pods, and schools of the past have now come together into large but widely separated groups. That’s all. Similarly flawed is the idea that because the so-called baleen whales are no longer found in many areas where they were once abundant, that species must also be declining. They are simply being pushed from point to point; if one coast no longer sees their spouts, then rest assured, some other distant shore has recently been surprised by the unusual sight.

Furthermore: concerning these last mentioned Leviathans, they have two firm fortresses, which, in all human probability, will for ever remain impregnable. And as upon the invasion of their valleys, the frosty Swiss have retreated to their mountains; so, hunted from the savannas and glades of the middle seas, the whale-bone whales can at last resort to their Polar citadels, and diving under the ultimate glassy barriers and walls there, come up among icy fields and floes! and in a charmed circle of everlasting December, bid defiance to all pursuit from man.

Furthermore, regarding these recently mentioned leviathans, they have two strong fortresses that will likely remain unbeatable forever. Just as the frosty Swiss retreat to their mountains when their valleys are invaded, the whale-bone whales, driven from the savannas and glades of the central seas, can eventually return to their polar strongholds. By diving under the last glassy barriers and walls there, they resurface among icy fields and floes! In an enchanted realm of eternal December, they challenge all human pursuit.

But as perhaps fifty of these whale-bone whales are harpooned for one cachalot, some philosophers of the forecastle have concluded that this positive havoc has already very seriously diminished their battalions. But though for some time past a number of these whales, not less than 13,000, have been annually slain on the nor'west coast by the Americans alone; yet there are considerations which render even this circumstance of little or no account as an opposing argument in this matter.

But since about fifty of these baleen whales are hunted for every sperm whale, some thinkers among the sailors have concluded that this significant loss has already greatly reduced their numbers. However, even though for several years now, around 13,000 of these whales have been killed each year on the northwest coast by Americans alone, there are factors that make even this fact of little or no significance as a counter-argument in this discussion.

Natural as it is to be somewhat incredulous concerning the populousness of the more enormous creatures of the globe, yet what shall we say to Harto, the historian of Goa, when he tells us that at one hunting the King of Siam took 4,000 elephants; that in those regions elephants are numerous as droves of cattle in the temperate climes. And there seems no reason to doubt that if these elephants, which have now been hunted for thousands of years, by Semiramis, by Porus, by Hannibal, and by all the successive monarchs of the East— if they still survive there in great numbers, much more may the great whale outlast all hunting, since he has a pasture to expatiate in, which is precisely twice as large as all Asia, both Americas, Europe and Africa, New Holland, and all the Isles of the sea combined.

As surprising as it may be to question the abundance of the largest creatures on Earth, what should we say to Harto, the historian of Goa, when he claims that during one hunt, the King of Siam captured 4,000 elephants? In those areas, elephants are as numerous as herds of cattle in temperate regions. There seems to be no reason to doubt that if these elephants, which have been hunted for thousands of years by Semiramis, Porus, Hannibal, and all the successive monarchs of the East— if they still exist in large numbers, then the great whale may outlive all forms of hunting, since it has a habitat that is twice the size of all of Asia, both Americas, Europe and Africa, New Holland, and all the islands of the sea combined.

Moreover: we are to consider, that from the presumed great longevity of whales, their probably attaining the age of a century and more, therefore at any one period of time, several distinct adult generations must be contemporary. And what this is, we may soon gain some idea of, by imagining all the grave-yards, cemeteries, and family vaults of creation yielding up the live bodies of all the men, women, and children who were alive seventy-five years ago; and adding this countless host to the present human population of the globe.

Moreover: we need to consider that due to the assumed long lifespan of whales, which might reach a century or more, at any given time, several distinct adult generations must coexist. We can get a sense of what this means by imagining all the graveyards, cemeteries, and family vaults of the world releasing the living bodies of everyone—men, women, and children—who were alive seventy-five years ago, and then adding this countless group to today's global population.

Wherefore, for all these things, we account the whale immortal in his species, however perishable in his individuality. He swam the seas before the continents broke water; he once swam over the site of the Tuileries, and Windsor Castle, and the Kremlin. In Noah's flood he despised Noah's Ark; and if ever the world is to be again flooded, like the Netherlands, to kill off its rats, then the eternal whale will still survive, and rearing upon the topmost crest of the equatorial flood, spout his frothed defiance to the skies.

So, for all these reasons, we consider the whale immortal as a species, even though individual whales may not last. It swam the oceans long before the continents emerged; it once glided over the area where the Tuileries, Windsor Castle, and the Kremlin now stand. During Noah's flood, it ignored Noah's Ark; and if the world is ever flooded again, like the Netherlands, to get rid of its rats, then the eternal whale will still thrive, towering on the highest wave of the equatorial flood, spouting its frothy defiance at the sky.

CHAPTER 106

Ahab's Leg

Ahab's Leg

The precipitating manner in which Captain Ahab had quitted the Samuel Enderby of London, had not been unattended with some small violence to his own person. He had lighted with such energy upon a thwart of his boat that his ivory leg had received a half-splintering shock. And when after gaining his own deck, and his own pivot-hole there, he so vehemently wheeled round with an urgent command to the steersman (it was, as ever, something about his not steering inflexibly enough); then, the already shaken ivory received such an additional twist and wrench, that though it still remained entire, and to all appearances lusty, yet Ahab did not deem it entirely trustworthy.

The forceful way Captain Ahab had left the Samuel Enderby of London hadn’t come without some injury to himself. He had landed with such force on a seat in his boat that his ivory leg took a hard hit. And when, after reaching his own deck and his own pivot-hole, he angrily turned around to issue a command to the helmsman (it was, as usual, about not steering rigidly enough); the already-jolted ivory took another twist and wrench, so although it still looked intact and strong, Ahab didn’t fully trust it anymore.

And, indeed, it seemed small matter for wonder, that for all his pervading, mad recklessness, Ahab, did at times give careful heed to the condition of that dead bone upon which he partly stood. For it had not been very long prior to the Pequod's sailing from Nantucket, that he had been found one night lying prone upon the ground, and insensible; by some unknown, and seemingly inexplicable, unimaginable casualty, his ivory limb having been so violently displaced, that it had stake-wise smitten, and all but pierced his groin; nor was it without extreme difficulty that the agonizing wound was entirely cured.

And honestly, it didn’t seem surprising that despite his reckless behavior, Ahab sometimes paid close attention to the condition of the dead bone he partially stood on. Not long before the Pequod set sail from Nantucket, he had been found one night lying face down on the ground, unconscious. Due to some unknown, seemingly inexplicable event, his ivory leg had been so violently displaced that it had struck him like a stake and almost pierced his groin. It took a lot of effort to fully heal the painful wound.

Nor, at the time, had it failed to enter his monomaniac mind, that all the anguish of that then present suffering was but the direct issue of a former woe; and he too plainly seemed to see, that as the most poisonous reptile of the marsh perpetuates his kind as inevitably as the sweetest songster of the grove; so, equally with every felicity, all miserable events do naturally beget their like. Yea, more than equally, thought Ahab; since both the ancestry and posterity of Grief go further than the ancestry and posterity of Joy. For, not to hint of this: that it is an inference from certain canonic teachings, that while some natural enjoyments here shall have no children born to them for the other world, but, on the contrary, shall be followed by the joy-childlessness of all hell's despair; whereas, some guilty mortal miseries shall still fertilely beget to themselves an eternally progressive progeny of griefs beyond the grave; not at all to hint of this, there still seems an inequality in the deeper analysis of the thing. For, thought Ahab, while even the highest earthly felicities ever have a certain unsignifying pettiness lurking in them, but, at bottom, all heartwoes, a mystic significance, and, in some men, an archangelic grandeur; so do their diligent tracings-out not belie the obvious deduction. To trail the genealogies of these high mortal miseries, carries us at last among the sourceless primogenitures of the gods; so that, in the face of all the glad, hay-making suns, and softcymballing, round harvest-moons, we must needs give in to this: that the gods themselves are not for ever glad. The ineffaceable, sad birth-mark in the brow of man, is but the stamp of sorrow in the signers.

Nor had it failed to enter his obsessive mind that all the pain of that moment was just the direct result of a past sorrow; and he seemed to clearly see that just as the most poisonous snake in the marsh reproduces as inevitably as the sweetest singer in the woods, so too, with every happiness, all sad events naturally give rise to their equivalents. Yes, more than equally, Ahab thought; since both the heritage and future of grief extend further than that of joy. Not to mention this: that it is suggested by certain teachings that while some earthly pleasures may not produce any rewards in the afterlife, but instead lead to the emptiness of hell's despair, certain guilty human miseries can still yield an ever-growing lineage of grief beyond the grave; without even hinting at this, there still appears to be an imbalance in a deeper examination of the subject. For, Ahab thought, even the greatest earthly joys always carry a certain insignificant triviality, while, at the core, all heartaches possess a mystical meaning and, in some individuals, an almost angelic grandeur; so their careful exploration does not contradict the clear conclusion. Tracing the lineages of these profound human miseries ultimately leads us to the unoriginated beginnings of the gods; thus, in the presence of all the cheerful, sunlit days and gentle, round harvest moons, we must admit this: that the gods themselves are not always joyful. The indelible, sorrowful mark on the brow of humanity is simply the stamp of sadness left by those who sign.

Unwittingly here a secret has been divulged, which perhaps might more properly, in set way, have been disclosed before. With many other particulars concerning Ahab, always had it remained a mystery to some, why it was, that for a certain period, both before and after the sailing of the Pequod, he had hidden himself away with such Grand-Lama-like exclusiveness; and, for that one interval, sought speechless refuge, as it were, among the marble senate of the dead. Captain Peleg's bruited reason for this thing appeared by no means adequate; though, indeed, as touching all Ahab's deeper part, every revelation partook more of significant darkness than of explanatory light. But, in the end, it all came out; this one matter did, at least. That direful mishap was at the bottom of his temporary recluseness. And not only this, but to that ever-contracting, dropping circle ashore, who for any reason, possessed the privilege of a less banned approach to him; to that timid circle the above hinted casualty—remaining, as it did, moodily unaccounted for by Ahab—invested itself with terrors, not entirely underived from the land of spirits and of wails. So that, through their zeal for him, they had all conspired, so far as in them lay, to muffle up the knowledge of this thing from others; and hence it was, that not till a considerable interval had elapsed, did it transpire upon the Pequod's decks.

Unknowingly, a secret has been revealed here that might have been better shared earlier. Along with many other details about Ahab, it has always puzzled some why, for a certain time before and after the Pequod set sail, he kept himself hidden away with such monk-like isolation; and during that period, he seemed to seek a silent refuge among the graves of the dead. Captain Peleg's rumored explanation for this didn't seem sufficient; indeed, every deeper insight into Ahab only delivered more significant darkness than clarifying light. But eventually, it all came to light; at least this particular issue did. That tragic event was at the core of his temporary withdrawal. Furthermore, for that ever-narrowing group on shore who had any reason to approach him with less restriction; to that cautious circle, the aforementioned incident—remaining, as it did, moodily unexplained by Ahab—gained a sense of dread, not entirely detached from the realm of spirits and mourning. So, out of their concern for him, they all worked together, as best they could, to keep this matter hidden from others; and that's why it wasn't until a significant time had passed that it became known on the Pequod's decks.

But be all this as it may; let the unseen, ambiguous synod in the air, or the vindictive princes and potentates of fire, have to do or not with earthly Ahab, yet, in this present matter of his leg, he took plain practical procedures;— he called the carpenter.

But whatever the case may be; whether the unseen, mysterious council in the air, or the vengeful rulers and powers of fire, have anything to do with earthly Ahab, in this situation regarding his leg, he took straightforward practical steps;— he called the carpenter.

And when that functionary appeared before him, he bade him without delay set about making a new leg, and directed the mates to see him supplied with all the studs and joists of jaw-ivory (Sperm Whale) which had thus far been accumulated on the voyage, in order that a careful selection of the stoutest, clearest-grained stuff might be secured. This done, the carpenter received orders to have the leg completed that night; and to provide all the fittings for it, independent of those pertaining to the distrusted one in use. Moreover, the ship's forge was ordered to be hoisted out of its temporary idleness in the hold; and, to accelerate the affair, the blacksmith was commanded to proceed at once to the forging of whatever iron contrivances might be needed.

And when that official showed up, he told him to get started on making a new leg right away, and instructed the crew to make sure he had all the jaw-ivory (from the Sperm Whale) that had been collected on the journey so that they could choose the strongest, clearest-grained materials. Once that was done, the carpenter was ordered to finish the leg by that night and to gather all the necessary fittings for it, separate from those belonging to the unreliable one in use. Additionally, the ship's forge was to be brought out of its temporary storage in the hold; and to speed things up, the blacksmith was told to immediately start forging whatever iron parts were required.

CHAPTER 107

The Carpenter

The Carpenter

Seat thyself sultanically among the moons of Saturn, and take high abstracted man alone; and he seems a wonder, a grandeur, and a woe. But from the same point, take mankind in mass, and for the most part, they seem a mob of unnecessary duplicates, both contemporary and hereditary. But most humble though he was, and far from furnishing an example of the high, humane abstraction; the Pequod's carpenter was no duplicate; hence, he now comes in person on this stage.

Sit like a sultan among the moons of Saturn, and focus solely on man; he appears as a marvel, a grandeur, and a sorrow. But from that same viewpoint, look at humanity as a whole, and mostly, they seem like a crowd of unnecessary copies, both modern and inherited. Yet, despite his humble nature and being far from embodying high, noble ideals, the Pequod's carpenter was no copy; thus, he now appears in person on this stage.

Like all sea-going ship carpenters, and more especially those belonging to whaling vessels, he was, to a certain off-hand, practical extent, alike experienced in numerous trades and callings collateral to his own; the carpenter's pursuit being the ancient and outbranching trunk of all those numerous handicrafts which more or less have to do with wood as an auxiliary material. But, besides the application to him of the generic remark above, this carpenter of the Pequod was singularly efficient in those thousand nameless mechanical emergencies continually recurring in a large ship, upon a three or four years' voyage, in uncivilized and far-distant seas. For not to speak of his readiness in ordinary duties:— repairing stove boats, sprung spars, reforming the shape of clumsy-bladed oars, inserting bull's eyes in the deck, or new tree-nails in the side planks, and other miscellaneous matters more directly pertaining to his special business; he was moreover unhesitatingly expert in all manner of conflicting aptitudes, both useful and capricious.

Like all ship carpenters who work at sea, especially those on whaling ships, he was practically skilled in various trades and jobs related to his own. The carpenter's craft is like the main trunk from which all those related skills involving wood branch out. But beyond this general observation, this carpenter of the Pequod was particularly capable in handling the countless unexpected mechanical problems that often arise during a long voyage of three or four years in remote, uncivilized waters. To say nothing of his readiness for everyday tasks—repairing stove boats, fixing bent spars, reshaping awkward oars, adding bull's eyes to the deck, or inserting new tree-nails into the side planks, among other business-related matters—he was also remarkably skilled in a wide range of other practical and whimsical abilities.

The one grand stage where he enacted all his various parts so manifold, was his vice-bench; a long rude ponderous table furnished with several vices, of different sizes, and both of iron and of wood. At all times except when whales were alongside, this bench was securely lashed athwartships against the rear of the Try-works.

The main stage where he played all his different roles was his vice-bench; a long, heavy table equipped with several vices of various sizes, made of both iron and wood. This bench was always securely fastened across the back of the Try-works, except when whales were alongside.

A belaying pin is found too large to be easily inserted into its hole: the carpenter claps it into one of his ever ready vices, and straightway files it smaller. A lost landbird of strange plumage strays on board, and is made a captive: out of clean shaved rods of right-whale bone, and cross-beams of sperm whale ivory, the carpenter makes a pagoda-looking cage for it. An oarsman sprains his wrist: the carpenter concocts a soothing lotion. Stubb longed for vermillion stars to be painted upon the blade of his every oar; screwing each oar in his big vice of wood, the carpenter symmetrically supplies the constellation. A sailor takes a fancy to wear shark-bone ear-rings: the carpenter drills his ears. Another has the toothache: the carpenter out pincers, and clapping one hand upon his bench bids him be seated there; but the poor fellow unmanageably winces under the unconcluded operation; whirling round the handle of his wooden vice, the carpenter signs him to clap his jaw in that, if he would have him draw the tooth.

A belaying pin is too big to easily fit into its hole, so the carpenter puts it in one of his handy vices and files it down to size. A lost landbird with unusual feathers wanders on board and is caught; the carpenter makes a cage that looks like a pagoda out of shaved rods of right-whale bone and cross-beams of sperm whale ivory. An oarsman hurts his wrist, and the carpenter creates a soothing lotion for him. Stubb wishes for red stars to be painted on every blade of his oars; the carpenter tightens each oar in his large wooden vice and carefully adds the constellation. A sailor wants to wear shark-bone earrings, so the carpenter drills his ears. Another one has a toothache; the carpenter pulls out his pincers and tells him to sit on his workbench. But the poor guy can’t help but wince during the unfinished procedure. The carpenter turns the handle of his wooden vice, signaling him to clamp his jaw in it if he wants the tooth pulled.

Thus, this carpenter was prepared at all points, and alike indifferent and without respect in all. Teeth he accounted bits of ivory; heads he deemed but top-blocks; men themselves he lightly held for capstans. But while now upon so wide a field thus variously accomplished and with such liveliness of expertness in him, too; all this would seem to argue some uncommon vivacity of intelligence. But not precisely so. For nothing was this man more remarkable, than for a certain impersonal stolidity as it were; impersonal, I say; for it so shaded off into the surrounding infinite of things, that it seemed one with the general stolidity discernible in the whole visible world; which while pauselessly active in uncounted modes, still eternally holds its peace, and ignores you, though you dig foundations for cathedrals. Yet was this half-horrible stolidity in him, involving, too, as it appeared, an all-ramifying heartlessness;— yet was it oddly dashed at times, with an old, crutch-like, antediluvian, wheezing humorousness, not unstreaked now and then with a certain grizzled wittiness; such as might have served to pass the time during the midnight watch on the bearded forecastle of Noah's ark. Was it that this old carpenter had been a life-long wanderer, whose much rolling, to and fro, not only had gathered no moss; but what is more, had rubbed off whatever small outward clingings might have originally pertained to him? He was a stript abstract; an unfractioned integral; uncompromised as a new-born babe; living without premeditated reference to this world or the next. You might almost say, that this strange uncompromisedness in him involved a sort of unintelligence; for in his numerous trades, he did not seem to work so much by reason or by instinct, or simply because he had been tutored to it, or by any intermixture of all these, even or uneven; but merely by a kind of deaf and dumb, spontaneous literal process. He was a pure manipulator; his brain, if he had ever had one, must have early oozed along into the muscles of his fingers. He was like one of those unreasoning but still highly useful, multum in parvo, Sheffield contrivances, assuming the exterior— though a little swelled—of a common pocket knife; but containing, not only blades of various sizes, but also screw-drivers, cork-screws, tweezers, awls, pens, rulers, nail-filers, countersinkers. So, if his superiors wanted to use the carpenter for a screw-driver, all they had to do was to open that part of him, and the screw was fast: or if for tweezers, take him up by the legs, and there they were.

Thus, this carpenter was prepared in every way, and equally indifferent and disrespectful towards everything. He saw teeth as just bits of ivory; heads were mere top-blocks; and people he regarded as nothing more than capstans. But even though he was accomplished in many areas and showed a lively expertise, this seemed to indicate a rare sharpness of intelligence. Not quite. What stood out most about him was a certain impersonal dullness; impersonal, because it blended into the surrounding infinity, making him seem one with the general dullness apparent in the entire visible world, which, while constantly active in countless ways, still remains silent and ignores you, even as you dig foundations for cathedrals. Yet this somewhat unsettling dullness in him, which also seemed to suggest an all-encompassing heartlessness, was strangely mixed at times with an old, creaky, ancient humor, occasionally interspersed with a touch of grizzled wit, reminiscent of passing the time during the midnight watch on Noah's ark. Could it be that this old carpenter had been a lifelong wanderer, whose extensive travels not only gathered no moss, but also wore away any small outward attachments he may have had? He was a stripped-down abstraction; a whole entity; uncompromised like a newborn; living without any planned reference to this world or the next. You might almost say that this odd lack of compromise suggested a sort of unintelligence; because in his many trades, he didn’t seem to work by reason or instinct, or simply because he had been taught, or by any mix of these; but rather by a kind of dumb, spontaneous, literal process. He was a pure manipulator; if he ever had a brain, it must have long since flowed into the muscles of his fingers. He resembled those unthinking but still very useful, compact Sheffield tools, which look like a slightly bloated pocket knife but hold not just blades of varying sizes, but also screwdrivers, corkscrews, tweezers, awls, pens, rulers, nail files, and countersinkers. So, if his superiors wanted to use the carpenter as a screwdriver, they simply had to open that part of him, and the screw would be tight; or if they needed tweezers, they just picked him up by the legs, and there they were.

Yet, as previously hinted, this omnitooled, open-and-shut carpenter, was, after all, no mere machine of an automaton. If he did not have a common soul in him, he had a subtle something that somehow anomalously did its duty. What that was, whether essence of quicksilver, or a few drops of hartshorn, there is no telling. But there it was; and there it had abided for now some sixty years or more. And this it was, this same unaccountable, cunning life-principle in him; this it was, that kept him a great part of the time soliloquizing; but only like an unreasoning wheel, which also hummingly soliloquizes; or rather, his body was a sentry-box and this soliloquizer on guard there, and talking all the time to keep himself awake.

Yet, as mentioned earlier, this all-purpose carpenter was, after all, not just a machine or an automaton. If he didn’t have a common soul, he possessed a subtle something that somehow performed its duty. What that was—whether it was the essence of quicksilver or a few drops of hartshorn—remains a mystery. But it was there, and it had been there for about sixty years or more. This same unexplainable, clever life-force in him kept him, for a good part of the time, talking to himself; but it was like an unthinking wheel that also hums to itself; or rather, his body was a guardhouse, and this soliloquizer was on duty there, chatting away to keep himself alert.

CHAPTER 108

Ahab and the Carpenter

Ahab and the Carpenter

The Deck - First Night Watch

The Deck - First Night Watch

(Carpenter standing before his vice-bench, and by the light of two lanterns busily filing the ivory joist for the leg, which joist is firmly fixed in the vice. Slabs of ivory, leather straps, pads, screws, and various tools of all sorts lying about the bench. Forward, the red flame of the forge is seen, where the blacksmith is at work.)

(Carpenter standing at his workbench, using the light from two lanterns to file the ivory pieces for the leg, which is securely held in the vice. There are slabs of ivory, leather straps, pads, screws, and various tools scattered around the bench. In the background, the red flame of the forge is visible, where the blacksmith is busy working.)

Drat the file, and drat the bone! That is hard which should be soft, and that is soft which should be hard. So we go, who file old jaws and shin bones. Let's try another. Aye, now, this works better (sneezes). Halloa, this bone dust is (sneezes)—why it's (sneezes)—yes it's (sneezes)—bless my soul, it won't let me speak! This is what an old fellow gets now for working in dead lumber. Saw a live tree, and you don't get this dust; amputate a live bone, and you don't get it (sneezes). Come, come, you old Smut, there, bear a hand, and let's have that ferrule and buckle-screw; I'll be ready for them presently. Lucky now (sneezes) there's no knee-joint to make; that might puzzle a little; but a mere shin-bone—why it's easy as making hop-poles; only I should like to put a good finish on. Time, time; if I but only had the time, I could turn him out as neat a leg now as ever (sneezes) scraped to a lady in a parlor. Those buckskin legs and calves of legs I've seen in shop windows wouldn't compare at all. They soak water, they do; and of course get rheumatic, and have to be doctored (sneezes) with washes and lotions, just like live legs. There; before I saw it off, now, I must call his old Mogulship, and see whether the length will be all right; too short, if anything, I guess. Ha! that's the heel; we are in luck; here he comes, or it's somebody else, that's certain. AHAB (advancing)

Drat the file, and drat the bone! That’s tough when it should be soft, and soft when it should be tough. So here we are, who file old jaws and shin bones. Let’s try another. Aye, now, this is working better (sneezes). Hey, this bone dust is (sneezes)—wait it’s (sneezes)—yes, it’s (sneezes)—bless my soul, it won't let me talk! This is what an old guy gets for working with dead wood. Cut a live tree, and you won’t get this dust; amputate a living bone, and you won’t get it (sneezes). Come on, you old Smut, help me out, and let’s get that ferrule and buckle-screw; I’ll be ready for them soon. Luckily (sneezes) there’s no knee-joint to make; that might be tricky, but a simple shin-bone—easy as making hop-poles; I just wish I could put a good finish on it. Time, time; if I only had the time, I could make him a neat leg now, just like (sneezes) what a lady would see in a parlor. Those buckskin legs and calves I’ve seen in shop windows wouldn’t even compare. They soak up water, they do; and of course, they get rheumatic and need to be treated (sneezes) with washes and lotions, just like real legs. There; before I saw it off, I need to call his old Mogulship and check if the length will be alright; too short, if anything, I suppose. Ha! That’s the heel; we’re in luck; here he comes, or it’s someone else, that’s for sure. AHAB (advancing)

(During the ensuing scene, the carpenter continues sneezing at times).

(During the following scene, the carpenter occasionally sneezes).

Well, manmaker!

Well, dude!

Just in time, sir. If the captain pleases, I will now mark the length.
Let me measure, sir.

Just in time, sir. If the captain agrees, I will now mark the length.
Let me measure, sir.

Measured for a leg! good. Well, it's not the first time.
About it! There; keep thy finger on it. This is a cogent
vice thou hast here, carpenter; let me feel its grip once.
So, so; it does pinch some.

Measured for a leg! Good. Well, it’s not the first time.
About that! There; keep your finger on it. This is a strong
tool you have here, carpenter; let me feel its grip for a moment.
So, so; it does pinch a bit.

Oh, sir, it will break bones—beware, beware!

Oh, sir, it will break bones—be careful, be careful!

No fear; I like a good grip; I like to feel something in this slippery world that can hold, man. What's Prometheus about there?— the blacksmith, I mean—what's he about?

No fear; I like a strong hold; I like to feel something in this slippery world that can grip, man. What's Prometheus all about there?— the blacksmith, I mean—what's his deal?

He must be forging the buckle-screw, sir, now.

He must be making the buckle screw right now, sir.

Right. It's a partnership; he supplies the muscle part.
He makes a fierce red flame there!

Right. It's a partnership; he provides the muscle.
He creates a powerful red flame there!

Aye, sir; he must have the white heat for this kind of fine work.

Sure, sir; he must have the intense focus for this kind of fine work.

Um-m. So he must. I do deem it now a most meaning thing, that that old Greek, Prometheus, who made men, they say, should have been a blacksmith, and animated them with fire; for what's made in fire must properly belong to fire; and so hell's probable. How the soot flies! This must be the remainder the Greek made the Africans of. Carpenter, when he's through with that buckle, tell him to forge a pair of steel shoulder-blades; there's a pedlar aboard with a crushing pack.

Um-m. So he must. I now find it quite significant that the old Greek, Prometheus, who created humans, or so they say, should have been a blacksmith and brought them to life with fire; because whatever is made in fire must rightly belong to fire, and that suggests the possibility of hell. Look how the soot flies! This must be what the Greek created the Africans from. Carpenter, when you're done with that buckle, ask him to forge a pair of steel shoulder blades; there’s a peddler on board with a heavy load.

Sir?

Excuse me?

Hold; while Prometheus is about it, I'll order a complete man after a desirable pattern. Imprimis, fifty feet high in his socks; then, chest modelled after the Thames Tunnel then, legs with roots to 'em, to stay in one place; then, arms three feet through the wrist; no heart at all, brass forehead, and about a quarter of an acre of fine brains; and let me see—shall I order eyes to see outwards? No, but put a sky-light on top of his head to illuminate inwards. There, take the order, and away.

Hold on; while Prometheus is working on that, I'll design a complete man based on a perfect model. First, make him fifty feet tall in his socks; next, shape his chest like the Thames Tunnel; give him legs with roots so he stays put; then, arms that are three feet thick at the wrist; no heart at all, a brass forehead, and about a quarter of an acre of brilliant brains; and let me think—should I get him eyes that look outward? No, just put a skylight on top of his head to shine light inward. There, take the order and go.

Now, what's he speaking about, and who's he speaking to,
I should like to know? Shall I keep standing here? (aside.)

Now, what is he talking about, and who is he talking to,
I’d like to know? Should I just keep standing here? (to himself.)

'Tis but indifferent architecture to make a blind dome; here's one.
No, no, no; I must have a lantern.

It's pretty poor design to create a blind dome; here's one.
No, no, no; I need a lantern.

Ho, ho! That's it, hey? Here are two, sir; one will serve my turn.

Ho, ho! Is that it, huh? Here are two, sir; one will do for me.

What art thou thrusting that thief-catcher into my face for, man?
Thrusted light is worse than presented pistols.

What are you shoving that cop in my face for, man?
A spotlight is worse than having a gun pointed at me.

I thought, sir, that you spoke to carpenter.

I thought, sir, that you were talking to the carpenter.

Carpenter? why that's—but no;—a very tidy, and, I may say, an extremely gentlemanlike sort of business thou art in here, carpenter;—or would'st thou rather work in clay?

Carpenter? Well, that’s—but no;—a very neat, and I might add, a very classy kind of work you’re doing here, carpenter;—or would you prefer to work with clay?

Sir?—Clay? clay, sir? That's mud; we leave clay to ditchers, sir.

Sir?—Clay? Clay, sir? That’s just mud; we leave clay to the ditch diggers, sir.

The fellow's impious! What art thou sneezing about?

The guy's wicked! What are you sneezing about?

Bone is rather dusty, sir.

Bone is pretty dusty, sir.

Take the hint, then; and when thou art dead, never bury thyself under living people's noses.

Take the hint; and when you're gone, don't bury yourself right under the noses of the living.

Sir?—oh! ah!—I guess so; so;—yes, yes—oh dear!

Sir?—oh! ah!—I think so; yeah;—yes, yes—oh no!

Look ye, carpenter, I dare say thou callest thyself a right good workmanlike workman, eh? Well, then, will it speak thoroughly well for thy work, if, when I come to mount this leg thou makest, I shall nevertheless feel another leg in the same identical place with it; that is, carpenter, my old lost leg; the flesh and blood one, I mean. Canst thou not drive that old Adam away?

Look here, carpenter, I bet you call yourself a skilled craftsman, right? Well, it will reflect well on your work if, when I put on this leg you make, I don’t still feel my old leg right there with it; you know, the real one made of flesh and blood. Can’t you get rid of that old memory?

Truly, sir, I begin to understand somewhat now. Yes, I have heard something curious on that score, sir; how that a dismasted man never entirely loses the feeling of his old spar, but it will be still pricking him at times. May I humbly ask if it be really so, sir?

Honestly, sir, I’m starting to get it now. Yes, I’ve heard something interesting about that, sir; how a man who has lost his mast never completely loses the sense of his old spar, and it can still poke at him from time to time. May I humbly ask if that’s really true, sir?

It is, man. Look, put thy live leg here in the place where mine once was; so, now, here is only one distinct leg to the eye, yet two to the soul. Where thou feelest tingling life; there, exactly there, there to a hair, do I. Is't a riddle?

It is, man. Look, place your living leg here where mine once was; so, now, there is only one leg to the eye, yet two to the soul. Where you feel tingling life; there, exactly there, down to the last hair, do I. Is it a riddle?

I should humbly call it a poser, sir.

I should modestly refer to it as a poser, sir.

Hist, then. How dost thou know that some entire, living, thinking thing may not be invisibly and uninterpenetratingly standing precisely where thou now standest; aye, and standing there in thy spite? In thy most solitary hours, then, dost thou not fear eavesdroppers? Hold, don't speak! And if I still feel the smart of my crushed leg, though it be now so long dissolved; then, why mayest not thou, carpenter, feel the fiery pains of hell for ever, and without a body? Hah!

Hist, then. How do you know that some entire, living, thinking thing might not be invisibly and impenetrably standing right where you are now; yes, and standing there against you? In your loneliest hours, then, don’t you fear eavesdroppers? Wait, don’t speak! And if I still feel the pain in my crushed leg, even though it has long healed; then, why can’t you, carpenter, feel the fiery pains of hell forever, without a body? Hah!

Good Lord! Truly, sir, if it comes to that, I must calculate over again;
I think I didn't carry a small figure, sir.

Good Lord! Seriously, sir, if it comes to that, I have to recalculate;
I don't think I carried a small number, sir.

Look ye, pudding-heads should never grant premises.—How long before this leg is done?

Look, pudding-heads should never make promises. — How long until this leg is finished?

Perhaps an hour, sir.

About an hour, sir.

Bungle away at it then, and bring it to me (turns to go). Oh, Life. Here I am, proud as Greek god, and yet standing debtor to this blockhead for a bone to stand on! Cursed be that mortal inter-indebtedness which will not do away with ledgers. I would be free as air; and I'm down in the whole world's books. I am so rich, I could have given bid for bid with the wealthiest Praetorians at the auction of the Roman empire (which was the world's); and yet I owe for the flesh in the tongue I brag with. By heavens! I'll get a crucible, and into it, and dissolve myself down to one small, compendious vertebra. So.

Bungle away at it then, and bring it to me (turns to go). Oh, Life. Here I am, proud as a Greek god, and yet I owe this idiot for a leg to stand on! Cursed be that human debt that won’t get rid of ledgers. I want to be free as air; instead, I’m listed in the whole world’s books. I’m so rich I could have outbid the wealthiest Praetorians at the auction of the Roman Empire (which was the world’s); and yet, I owe for the flesh in the tongue I brag with. By heavens! I’ll get a crucible, and dissolve myself down to one small, compact vertebra. So.

Carpenter ( resuming his work).

Carpenter (getting back to work).

Well, well, well! Stubb knows him best of all, and Stubb always says he's queer; says nothing but that one sufficient little word queer; he's queer, says Stubb; he's queer—queer, queer; and keeps dinning it into Mr. Starbuck all the time—queer—sir—queer, queer, very queer. And here's his leg. Yes, now that I think of it, here's his bed-fellow! has a stick of whale's jaw-bone for a wife! And this is his leg; he'll stand on this. What was that now about one leg standing in three places, and all three places standing in one hell— how was that? Oh! I don't wonder he looked so scornful at me! I'm a sort of strange-thoughted sometimes, they say; but that's only haphazard-like. Then, a short, little old body like me, should never undertake to wade out into deep waters with tall, heron-built captains; the water chucks you under the chin pretty quick, and there's a great cry for life-boats. And here's the heron's leg! long and slim, sure enough! Now, for most folks one pair of legs lasts a lifetime, and that must be because they use them mercifully, as a tender-hearted old lady uses her roly-poly old coach-horses. But Ahab; oh he's a hard driver. Look, driven one leg to death, and spavined the other for life, and now wears out bone legs by the cord. Halloa, there, you Smut! bear a hand there with those screws, and let's finish it before the resurrection fellow comes a-calling with his horn for all legs, true or false, as brewery men go round collecting old beer barrels, to fill 'em up again. What a leg this is! It looks like a real live leg, filed down to nothing but the core; he'll be standing on this to-morrow; he'll be taking altitudes on it. Halloa! I almost forgot the little oval slate, smoothed ivory, where he figures up the latitude. So, so; chisel, file, and sand-paper, now!

Well, well, well! Stubb knows him better than anyone, and Stubb always says he's strange; he only uses that one little word, strange; he's strange, says Stubb; he's strange—strange, strange; and keeps repeating it to Mr. Starbuck all the time—strange—sir—strange, strange, very strange. And here's his leg. Yes, now that I think of it, here's his bedfellow! He has a piece of whale's jawbone for a wife! And this is his leg; he'll stand on this. What was that about one leg standing in three places, and all three places standing in one hell—how was that? Oh! I don’t blame him for looking so scornfully at me! I’m a bit odd sometimes, they say; but that’s just by chance. Then again, a short, little person like me shouldn’t try to wade into deep water with tall, heron-like captains; the water hits you pretty quickly, and there's a big call for lifeboats. And here’s the heron’s leg! long and slim, that’s for sure! Now, for most people, one pair of legs lasts a lifetime, and that’s probably because they use them kindly, like a soft-hearted old lady uses her roly-poly coach horses. But Ahab; oh, he’s a tough driver. Look, he’s worked one leg to death and damaged the other for life, and now he wears out bone legs by the cord. Hey there, you Smut! give me a hand with those screws, and let’s finish this before the resurrection guy comes calling with his horn for all legs, true or false, like brewery workers going around collecting old beer barrels to refill. What a leg this is! It looks like a real live leg, ground down to nothing but the core; he’ll be standing on this tomorrow; he’ll be taking measurements with it. Oh! I almost forgot the little oval slate, smooth as ivory, where he figures out the latitude. So, so; chisel, file, and sandpaper, now!

CHAPTER 109

Ahab and Starbuck in the Cabin

Ahab and Starbuck in the Cabin

According to usage they were pumping the ship next morning; and lo! no inconsiderable oil came up with the water; the casks below must have sprung a bad leak. Much concern was shown; and Starbuck went down into the cabin to report this unfavorable affair.*

According to the plan, they were pumping the ship out the next morning; and surprise! A significant amount of oil came up with the water; the casks below must have developed a serious leak. There was a lot of worry; and Starbuck went down to the cabin to report this unfortunate situation.*

*In Sperm-whalemen with any considerable quantity of oil on board, it is a regular semiweekly duty to conduct a hose into the hold, and drench the casks with sea-water; which afterwards, at varying intervals, is removed by the ship's pumps. Hereby the casks are sought to be kept damply tight; while by the changed character of the withdrawn water, the mariners readily detect any serious leakage in the precious cargo.

*On sperm whale boats with a significant amount of oil onboard, it’s a regular semiweekly task to run a hose into the hold and soak the barrels with seawater, which is later pumped out at different intervals. This keeps the barrels tightly sealed, and by the changed appearance of the extracted water, the crew can quickly spot any serious leaks in the valuable cargo.*

Now, from the South and West the Pequod was drawing nigh to Formosa and the Bashee Isles, between which lies one of the tropical outlets from the China waters into the Pacific. And so Starbuck found Ahab with a general chart of the oriental archipelagoes spread before him; and another separate one representing the long eastern coasts of the Japanese islands—Niphon, Matsmai, and Sikoke. With his snow-white new ivory leg braced against the screwed leg of his table, and with a long pruning-hook of a jack-knife in his hand, the wondrous old man, with his back to the gangway door, was wrinkling his brow, and tracing his old courses again.

Now, from the South and West, the Pequod was approaching Formosa and the Bashee Islands, which are one of the tropical paths from the China waters into the Pacific. So, Starbuck found Ahab with a general map of the eastern archipelagos laid out in front of him and another separate map showing the long eastern coasts of the Japanese islands—Niphon, Matsmai, and Sikoke. With his snow-white new ivory leg propped against the screwed leg of his table and a long, pruning-hook-like jackknife in his hand, the amazing old man, facing away from the gangway door, was furrowing his brow and retracing his old routes once again.

"Who's there?" hearing the footstep at the door, but not turning round to it. "On deck! Begone!"

"Who's there?" he asked, hearing the footsteps at the door without turning around. "On deck! Get lost!"

"Captain Ahab mistakes; it is I. The oil in the hold is leaking, sir.
We must up Burtons and break out."

"Captain Ahab is mistaken; it's me. The oil in the hold is leaking, sir.
We need to get the Burtons up and break it out."

"Up Burtons and break out? Now that we are nearing Japan; heave-to here for a week to tinker a parcel of old hoops?"

"Up Burtons and break out? Now that we're getting closer to Japan, let's stop here for a week to fix up a bunch of old hoops?"

"Either do that, sir, or waste in one day more oil than we may make good in a year. What we come twenty thousand miles to get is worth saving, sir."

"Do that, sir, or waste more oil in one day than we can produce in a year. What we traveled twenty thousand miles to obtain is worth saving, sir."

"So it is, so it is; if we get it."

"So it is, so it is; if we understand it."

"I was speaking of the oil in the hold, sir."

"I was talking about the oil in the hold, sir."

"And I was not speaking or thinking of that at all. Begone! Let it leak! I'm all aleak myself. Aye! leaks in leaks! not only full of leaky casks, but those leaky casks are in a leaky ship; and that's a far worse plight than the Pequod's, man. Yet I don't stop to plug my leak; for who can find it in the deep-loaded hull; or how hope to plug it, even if found, in this life's howling gale? Starbuck! I'll not have the Burtons hoisted."

"And I wasn't talking or thinking about that at all. Get lost! Let it spill! I'm leaking too. Yeah! leaks in leaks! Not only am I surrounded by leaky casks, but those leaky casks are on a leaky ship; and that's a much worse situation than the Pequod's, my friend. Still, I don't bother trying to fix my leak; because who can even find it in the heavily loaded hull? And how can you hope to fix it, even if you do find it, in this life's raging storm? Starbuck! I won't have the Burtons raised."

"What will the owners say, sir?"

"What will the owners say, sir?"

"Let the owners stand on Nantucket beach and outyell the Typhoons. What cares Ahab? Owners, owners? Thou art always prating to me, Starbuck, about those miserly owners, as if the owners were my conscience. But look ye, the only real owner of anything is its commander; and hark ye, my conscience is in this ship's keel.—On deck!"

"Let the owners shout from Nantucket beach louder than the Typhoons. What does Ahab care? Owners, owners? You keep going on about those stingy owners, Starbuck, as if they were my conscience. But listen, the only true owner of anything is its captain; and just so you know, my conscience is in this ship's keel.—On deck!"

"Captain Ahab," said the reddening mate, moving further into the cabin, with a daring so strangely respectful and cautious that it almost seemed not only every way seeking to avoid the slightest outward manifestation of itself, but within also seemed more than half distrustful of itself; "A better man than I might well pass over in thee what he would quickly enough resent in a younger man; aye, and in a happier, Captain Ahab."

"Captain Ahab," the flushed first mate said, stepping further into the cabin with a boldness that was oddly respectful and careful, as if he was trying to avoid showing any sign of himself, but also seemed somewhat doubtful of himself; "A better man than I could easily overlook in you what he would quickly resent in a younger man; yes, and in a happier Captain Ahab."

"Devils! Dost thou then so much as dare to critically think of me?—On deck!"

"Devils! Do you really dare to think critically about me?—On deck!"

"Nay, sir, not yet; I do entreat. And I do dare, sir—to be forbearing!
Shall we not understand each other better than hitherto, Captain Ahab?"

"Not yet, sir; I really ask you. And I do dare, sir—to be patient!
Aren't we able to understand each other better than we have so far, Captain Ahab?"

Ahab seized a loaded musket from the rack (forming part of most
South-Sea-men's cabin furniture), and pointing it towards
Starbuck, exclaimed: "There is one God that is Lord over the earth,
and one Captain that is lord over the Pequod.—On deck!"

Ahab grabbed a loaded musket from the rack (which is common furniture in most South-Sea men's cabins) and aimed it at Starbuck, shouting: "There is one God who rules the earth, and one Captain who commands the Pequod.—On deck!"

For an instant in the flashing eyes of the mate, and his fiery cheeks, you would have almost thought that he had really received the blaze of the levelled tube. But, mastering his emotion, he half calmly rose, and as he quitted the cabin, paused for an instant and said: "Thou hast outraged, not insulted me, Sir; but for that I ask thee not to beware of Starbuck; thou wouldst but laugh; but let Ahab beware of Ahab; beware of thyself, old man."

For a moment, in the mate's intense gaze and flushed cheeks, you might have really believed he had taken the hit from the aimed tube. But regaining his composure, he rose almost calmly, and as he left the cabin, he paused for a moment and said: "You have wronged me, not just insulted me, Sir; but I don’t ask you to watch out for Starbuck; you would only laugh at that; instead, let Ahab be wary of Ahab; be cautious of yourself, old man."

"He waxes brave, but nevertheless obeys; most careful bravery that!" murmured Ahab, as Starbuck disappeared. "What's that he said—Ahab beware of Ahab—there's something there!" Then unconsciously using the musket for a staff, with an iron brow he paced to and fro in the little cabin; but presently the thick plaits of his forehead relaxed, and returning the gun to the rack, he went to the deck.

"He acts all brave, but still follows orders; what a careful kind of bravery!" murmured Ahab as Starbuck left. "What was it he said—Ahab, watch out for Ahab—there's something to that!" Then, without realizing it, he started using the musket as a walking stick, pacing back and forth in the small cabin. But soon, the tension in his forehead eased, and after putting the gun back on the rack, he headed out to the deck.

"Thou art but too good a fellow, Starbuck," he said lowly to the mate; then raising his voice to the crew: "Furl the t'gallant-sails, and close-reef the top-sails, fore and aft; back the main-yard; up Burtons, and break out in the main-hold."

"You're just too good of a guy, Starbuck," he said quietly to the mate; then raising his voice to the crew: "Furl the top-gallant sails, and close-reef the top sails, fore and aft; back the main yard; up Burtons, and break out in the main hold."

It were perhaps vain to surmise exactly why it was, that as respecting Starbuck, Ahab thus acted. It may have been a flash of honesty in him; or mere prudential policy which, under the circumstance, imperiously forbade the slightest symptom of open disaffection, however transient, in the important chief officer of his ship. However it was, his orders were executed; and the Burtons were hoisted.

It might have been pointless to try to figure out exactly why Ahab treated Starbuck this way. Maybe it was a moment of honesty for him, or just a strategic move that absolutely required no sign of open disagreement, no matter how brief, from the important chief officer of his ship. However it came to be, his orders were carried out, and the Burtons were raised.

CHAPTER 110

Queequeg in His Coffin

Queequeg in His Casket

Upon searching, it was found that the casks last struck into the hold were perfectly sound, and that the leak must be further off. So, it being calm weather, they broke out deeper and deeper, disturbing the slumbers of the huge ground-tier butts; and from that black midnight sending those gigantic moles into the daylight above. So deep did they go; and so ancient, and corroded, and weedy the aspect of the lowermost puncheons, that you almost looked next for some mouldy corner-stone cask containing coins of Captain Noah, with copies of the posted placards, vainly warning the infatuated old world from the flood. Tierce after tierce, too, of water, and bread, and beef, and shooks of staves, and iron bundles of hoops, were hoisted out, till at last the piled decks were hard to get about; and the hollow hull echoed under foot, as if you were treading over empty catacombs, and reeled and rolled in the sea like an air-freighted demijohn. Top-heavy was the ship as a dinnerless student with all Aristotle in his head. Well was it that the Typhoons did not visit them then.

After searching, they discovered that the casks that last went into the hold were in good condition, so the leak had to be further away. With calm weather, they continued digging deeper, waking the massive bottom-tier barrels from their sleep, and bringing those gigantic containers out into the daylight. They dove so deep; the oldest, rusted, and weed-covered casks looked so ancient that you almost expected to find some moldy cornerstone cask holding the coins of Captain Noah, alongside the faded posters warning the careless old world about the flood. They pulled out tier after tier of water, bread, beef, and stacks of staves and iron bundles of hoops, until the piled decks became hard to navigate, and the hollow hull echoed underfoot as if walking over empty catacombs, swaying in the sea like a heavily loaded demijohn. The ship was top-heavy like a hungry student with all of Aristotle's teachings in his head. It was fortunate that the Typhoons didn’t come to trouble them then.

Now, at this time it was that my poor pagan companion, and fast bosom-friend, Queequeg, was seized with a fever, which brought him nigh to his endless end.

Now, at this moment, my poor pagan buddy and close friend, Queequeg, was hit with a fever that nearly brought him to his final moments.

Be it said, that in this vocation of whaling, sinecures are unknown; dignity and danger go hand in hand; till you get to be Captain, the higher you rise the harder you toil. So with poor Queequeg, who, as harpooneer, must not only face all the rage of the living whale, but—as we have elsewhere seen—mount his dead back in a rolling sea; and finally descend into the gloom of the hold, and bitterly sweating all day in that subterraneous confinement, resolutely manhandle the clumsiest casks and see to their stowage. To be short, among whalemen, the harpooneers are the holders, so called.

It's important to note that in the whaling profession, there are no easy jobs; dignity and danger come together. Until you become Captain, the higher you climb, the harder you work. This is true for poor Queequeg, who as a harpooner must not only confront the full force of the living whale but—as we’ve seen elsewhere—climb onto its dead body in a rough sea; and finally, he has to go down into the dark hold and sweat all day in that cramped space, struggling to handle the bulky barrels and make sure they’re stored properly. In short, among whalemen, the harpooners are the top workers, known as "holders."

Poor Queequeg! when the ship was about half disembowelled, you should have stooped over the hatchway, and peered down upon him there; where, stripped to his woollen drawers, the tattooed savage was crawling about amid that dampness and slime, like a green spotted lizard at the bottom of a well. And a well, or an ice-house, it somehow proved to him, poor pagan; where, strange to say, for all the heat of his sweatings, he caught a terrible chill which lapsed into a fever; and at last, after some days' suffering, laid him in his hammock, close to the very sill of the door of death. How he wasted and wasted away in those few long-lingering days, till there seemed but little left of him but his frame and tattooing. But as all else in him thinned, and his cheek-bones grew sharper, his eyes, nevertheless, seemed growing fuller and fuller; they became of a strange softness of lustre; and mildly but deeply looked out at you there from his sickness, a wondrous testimony to that immortal health in him which could not die, or be weakened. And like circles on the water, which, as they grow fainter, expand; so his eyes seemed rounding and rounding, like the rings of Eternity. An awe that cannot be named would steal over you as you sat by the side of this waning savage, and saw as strange things in his face, as any beheld who were bystanders when Zoroaster died. For whatever is truly wondrous and fearful in man, never yet was put into words or books. And the drawing near of Death, which alike levels all, alike impresses all with a last revelation, which only an author from the dead could adequately tell. So that—let us say it again— no dying Chaldee or Greek had higher and holier thoughts than those, whose mysterious shades you saw creeping over the face of poor Queequeg, as he quietly lay in his swaying hammock, and the rolling sea seemed gently rocking him to his final rest, and the ocean's invisible flood-tide lifted him higher and higher towards his destined heaven.

Poor Queequeg! When the ship was about half stripped down, you should have leaned over the hatchway and looked down at him there; where, in just his woollen drawers, the tattooed savage was crawling around in that dampness and slime, like a green spotted lizard at the bottom of a well. And somehow, it felt like a well, or an ice-house to him, poor pagan; where, strangely enough, despite all his sweating, he caught a terrible chill that turned into a fever; and finally, after several days of suffering, he lay in his hammock, close to the very threshold of death. How he wasted away in those few lingering days, until there seemed to be little left of him but his bones and his tattoos. Yet, as everything else in him thinned and his cheekbones became sharper, his eyes, nonetheless, appeared to grow fuller and fuller; they took on a strange soft glow; and gently but deeply looked out at you from his sickness, a wondrous testimony to that immortal health within him that could not die or be diminished. And like ripples on water that grow fainter as they expand, his eyes seemed to round out, like the rings of Eternity. An indescribable awe would wash over you as you sat by the side of this fading savage and saw such strange things in his face, as those who witnessed Zoroaster's death. For whatever is truly wondrous and terrifying in humanity has never been fully captured in words or books. The approach of Death, which levels everyone, also leaves an impression on all with a last revelation, which only someone from beyond could adequately express. So, let us say it again—no dying Chaldean or Greek ever had greater and purer thoughts than those mysterious shadows you saw creeping over the face of poor Queequeg, as he quietly lay in his swaying hammock, the rolling sea gently rocking him to his final rest, while the ocean's invisible tide lifted him higher and higher toward his destined heaven.

Not a man of the crew but gave him up; and, as for Queequeg himself, what he thought of his case was forcibly shown by a curious favor he asked. He called one to him in the grey morning watch, when the day was just breaking, and taking his hand, said that while in Nantucket he had chanced to see certain little canoes of dark wood, like the rich war-wood of his native isle; and upon inquiry, he had learned that all whalemen who died in Nantucket, were laid in those same dark canoes, and that the fancy of being so laid had much pleased him; for it was not unlike the custom of his own race, who, after embalming a dead warrior, stretched him out in his canoe, and so left him to be floated away to the starry archipelagoes; for not only do they believe that the stars are isles, but that far beyond all visible horizons, their own mild, uncontinented seas, interflow with the blue heavens; and so form the white breakers of the milky way. He added, that he shuddered at the thought of being buried in his hammock, according to the usual sea-custom, tossed like something vile to the death-devouring sharks. No: he desired a canoe like those of Nantucket, all the more congenial to him, being a whaleman, that like a whale-boat these coffin-canoes were without a keel; though that involved but uncertain steering, and much lee-way adown the dim ages.

Not a single crew member gave him up; and as for Queequeg himself, he made his feelings clear through a curious request he made. He called one of the crew over in the gray morning watch, just as day was breaking, and taking his hand, said that while he was in Nantucket, he had happened to see some small canoes made of dark wood, similar to the rich wood from his home island. Upon asking about them, he learned that all whalemen who died in Nantucket were laid to rest in those same dark canoes, and the idea of being laid to rest that way really appealed to him. It reminded him of the custom of his own people, who, after embalming a dead warrior, would lay him out in his canoe and send him off to the starry archipelagos. They believed that the stars were islands, and that far beyond all visible horizons, their own gentle, unbroken seas intertwined with the blue heavens, forming the white breakers of the Milky Way. He added that he shuddered at the thought of being buried in his hammock, as was the usual sea custom, tossed like something disgusting to the hungry sharks. No, he wanted a canoe like those in Nantucket, which suited him better as a whaleman, since these coffin canoes, like whale boats, had no keel; though that meant uncertain steering and drifting down the dim ages.

Now, when this strange circumstance was made known aft, the carpenter was at once commanded to do Queequeg's bidding, whatever it might include. There was some heathenish, coffin-colored old lumber aboard, which, upon a long previous voyage, had been cut from the aboriginal groves of the Lackaday islands, and from these dark planks the coffin was recommended to be made. No sooner was the carpenter apprised of the order, than taking his rule, he forthwith with all the indifferent promptitude of his character, proceeded into the forecastle and took Queequeg's measure with great accuracy, regularly chalking Queequeg's person as he shifted the rule.

Now, when this odd situation became known later, the carpenter was immediately instructed to do whatever Queequeg wanted. There was some old, dark-colored wood on board, which had been cut from the ancient trees of the Lackaday Islands during a previous voyage, and it was suggested that the coffin be made from these dark planks. As soon as the carpenter was informed of the task, he grabbed his measuring tool and, with his usual indifference, went into the forecastle and measured Queequeg accurately, regularly marking his body as he moved the tool.

"Ah! poor fellow! he'll have to die now," ejaculated the
Long Island sailor.

"Ah! poor guy! he's going to have to die now," exclaimed the
Long Island sailor.

Going to his vice-bench, the carpenter for convenience sake and general reference, now transferringly measured on it the exact length the coffin was to be, and then made the transfer permanent by cutting two notches at its extremities. This done, he marshalled the planks and his tools, and to work.

Going to his workbench, the carpenter for convenience and general reference measured the exact length the coffin needed to be and then made it permanent by cutting two notches at each end. With that done, he organized the planks and his tools, and got to work.

When the last nail was driven, and the lid duly planed and fitted, he lightly shouldered the coffin and went forward with it, inquiring whether they were ready for it yet in that direction.

When the last nail was hammered in, and the lid was properly smoothed and fitted, he effortlessly picked up the coffin and moved forward with it, asking if they were ready for it yet in that direction.

Overhearing the indignant but half-humorous cries with which the people on deck began to drive the coffin away, Queequeg, to every one's consternation, commanded that the thing should be instantly brought to him, nor was there any denying him; seeing that, of all mortals, some dying men are the most tyrannical; and certainly, since they will shortly trouble us so little for evermore, the poor fellows ought to be indulged.

Overhearing the angry yet somewhat funny shouts from the people on deck trying to get rid of the coffin, Queequeg, much to everyone's surprise, insisted that it be brought to him immediately, and no one could refuse him; because, among all people, some dying men can be the most demanding; and certainly, since they won't bother us much longer, the poor guys should be allowed some leeway.

Leaning over in his hammock, Queequeg long regarded the coffin with an attentive eye. He then called for his harpoon, had the wooden stock drawn from it, and then had the iron part placed in the coffin along with one of the paddles of his boat. All by his own request, also, biscuits were then ranged round the sides within; a flask of fresh water was placed at the head, and a small bag of woody earth scraped up in the hold at the foot; and a piece of sail-cloth being rolled up for a pillow, Queequeg now entreated to be lifted into his final bed, that he might make trial of its comforts, if any it had. He lay without moving a few minutes, then told one to go to his bag and bring out his little god, Yojo. Then crossing his arms on his breast with Yojo between, he called for the coffin lid (hatch he called it) to be placed over him. The head part turned over with a leather hinge, and there lay Queequeg in his coffin with little but his composed countenance in view. "Rarmai" (it will do; it is easy), he murmured at last, and signed to be replaced in his hammock.

Leaning over in his hammock, Queequeg stared intently at the coffin. He then asked for his harpoon, took out the wooden stock, and had the iron part put into the coffin along with one of his boat paddles. By his own request, biscuits were arranged around the inside; a flask of fresh water was put at the head, and a small bag of earth gathered from the hold was placed at the foot. A piece of sailcloth rolled up for a pillow, and Queequeg then requested to be lifted into his final resting place, wanting to test its comfort, if any. He lay still for a few minutes, then asked someone to get his bag and bring out his little god, Yojo. After crossing his arms over his chest with Yojo between them, he asked for the coffin lid (which he called a hatch) to be placed over him. The head part hinged down, and there lay Queequeg in his coffin with little visible except his calm face. "Rarmai" (it will do; it is easy), he murmured at last and signaled to be put back in his hammock.

But ere this was done, Pip, who had been slily hovering near by all the while, drew nigh to him where he lay, and with soft sobbings, took him by the hand; in the other, holding his tambourine.

But before this was done, Pip, who had been quietly lingering nearby all the while, came close to him where he lay, and with gentle sobs, took his hand; in the other, holding his tambourine.

"Poor rover! will ye never have done with all this weary roving? Where go ye now? But if the currents carry ye to those sweet Antilles where the beaches are only beat with water-lilies, will ye do one little errand for me? Seek out one Pip, who's now been missing long: I think he's in those far Antilles. If ye find him, then comfort him; for he must be very sad; for look! he's left his tambourine behind;— I found it. Rig-a-dig, dig, dig! Now, Queequeg, die; and I'll beat ye your dying march."

"Poor rover! Will you ever stop all this tiring wandering? Where are you headed now? But if the currents take you to those lovely Antilles where the shores are only washed by water lilies, will you do me a small favor? Look for someone named Pip, who’s been missing for a long time: I believe he’s in those distant Antilles. If you find him, please comfort him; he must be really sad; just look! He left his tambourine behind; I found it. Rig-a-dig, dig, dig! Now, Queequeg, die; and I’ll play you your dying march."

"I have heard," murmured Starbuck, gazing down the scuttle, "that in violent fevers, men, all ignorance, have talked in ancient tongues; and that when the mystery is probed, it turns out always that in their wholly forgotten childhood those ancient tongues had been really spoken in their hearing by some lofty scholars. So, to my fond faith, poor Pip, in this strange sweetness of his lunacy, brings heavenly vouchers of all our heavenly homes. Where learned he that, but there?—Hark! he speaks again; but more wildly now."

"I’ve heard," murmured Starbuck, looking down the hatchway, "that during intense fevers, people, completely clueless, have spoken in ancient languages; and that when you dig deeper, it always turns out that during their completely forgotten childhood, those ancient languages were actually spoken in their presence by some great scholars. So, in my hopeful belief, poor Pip, in this odd charm of his madness, brings heavenly reminders of all our heavenly homes. Where did he learn that, if not there?—Listen! He’s speaking again; but it’s even wilder now."

"Form two and two! Let's make a General of him! Ho, where's his harpoon? Lay it across here.—Rig-a-dig, dig, dig! huzza! Oh for a game cock now to sit upon his head and crow! Queequeg dies game!—mind ye that; Queequeg dies game!— take ye good heed of that; Queequeg dies game! I say; game, game, game! but base little Pip, he died a coward; died all a'shiver;—out upon Pip! Hark ye; if ye find Pip, tell all the Antilles he's a runaway; a coward, a coward, a coward! Tell them he jumped from a whale-boat! I'd never beat my tambourine over base Pip, and hail him General, if he were once more dying here. No, no! shame upon all cowards— shame upon them! Let'em go drown like Pip, that jumped from a whale-boat. Shame! shame!"

"Form up in pairs! Let’s make a General out of him! Hey, where’s his harpoon? Lay it across here.—Rig-a-dig, dig, dig! Hooray! Oh, I wish I had a gamecock to perch on his head and crow! Queequeg goes down fighting!—remember that; Queequeg goes down fighting!—pay attention to that; Queequeg goes down fighting! I say; fighting, fighting, fighting! But that coward Pip, he went down scared; shaking all over;—shame on Pip! Listen, if you see Pip, tell everyone in the Antilles he’s a runaway; a coward, a coward, a coward! Tell them he jumped from a whaleboat! I’d never celebrate cowardly Pip or call him General, even if he was dying right here. No, no! Shame on all cowards—shame on them! Let them drown like Pip, who jumped from a whaleboat. Shame! Shame!"

During all this, Queequeg lay with closed eyes, as if in a dream.
Pip was led away, and the sick man was replaced in his hammock.

During all this, Queequeg lay with his eyes closed, as if he were dreaming.
Pip was taken away, and the sick man was put back in his hammock.

But now that he had apparently made every preparation for death; now that his coffin was proved a good fit, Queequeg suddenly rallied; soon there seemed no need of the carpenter's box; and thereupon, when some expressed their delighted surprise, he, in substance, said, that the cause of his sudden convalescence was this;— at a critical moment, he had just recalled a little duty ashore, which he was leaving undone; and therefore had changed his mind about dying: he could not die yet, he averred. They asked him, then, whether to live or die was a matter of his own sovereign will and pleasure. He answered, certainly. In a word, it was Queequeg's conceit, that if a man made up his mind to live, mere sickness could not kill him: nothing but a whale, or a gale, or some violent, ungovernable, unintelligent destroyer of that sort.

But now that he had seemingly prepared for death; now that his coffin fit perfectly, Queequeg suddenly recovered; soon it seemed like there was no need for the carpenter's box; and when some expressed their surprised delight, he essentially said that the reason for his sudden recovery was this: at a crucial moment, he remembered a little duty back home that he hadn’t taken care of; and so he changed his mind about dying: he insisted he couldn’t die yet. They then asked him if living or dying was completely up to his own choice. He replied, definitely. In short, Queequeg believed that if a person decided to live, mere sickness couldn’t kill him: only a whale, or a storm, or some violent, uncontrollable, unintelligent force could do that.

Now, there is this noteworthy difference between savage and civilized; that while a sick, civilized man may be six months convalescing, generally speaking, a sick savage is almost half-well again in a day. So, in good time my Queequeg gained strength; and at length after sitting on the windlass for a few indolent days (but eating with a vigorous appetite) he suddenly leaped to his feet, threw out his arms and legs, gave himself a good stretching, yawned a little bit, and then springing into the head of his hoisted boat, and poising a harpoon, pronounced himself fit for a fight.

Now, there’s a significant difference between the savage and the civilized; while a sick, civilized person may take six months to recover, a sick savage is usually almost better in just a day. In time, my Queequeg regained his strength; and after lounging on the windlass for a few lazy days (but eating with a hearty appetite), he suddenly jumped to his feet, stretched out his arms and legs, yawned a little, and then, springing into the bow of his raised boat and gripping a harpoon, declared himself ready for a fight.

With a wild whimsiness, he now used his coffin for a sea-chest; and emptying into it his canvas bag of clothes, set them in order there. Many spare hours he spent, in carving the lid with all manner of grotesque figures and drawings; and it seemed that hereby he was striving, in his rude way, to copy parts of the twisted tattooing on his body. And this tattooing had been the work of a departed prophet and seer of his island, who, by those hieroglyphic marks, had written out on his body a complete theory of the heavens and the earth, and a mystical treatise on the art of attaining truth; so that Queequeg in his own proper person was a riddle to unfold; a wondrous work in one volume; but whose mysteries not even himself could read, though his own live heart beat against them; and these mysteries were therefore destined in the end to moulder away with the living parchment whereon they were inscribed, and so be unsolved to the last. And this thought it must have been which suggested to Ahab that wild exclamation of his, when one morning turning away from surveying poor Queequeg—"Oh, devilish tantalization of the gods!"

With a wild sense of fun, he now used his coffin as a sea chest; emptying his canvas bag of clothes into it, he organized them inside. He spent many spare hours carving the lid with all sorts of strange figures and drawings; it seemed like he was trying, in his rough way, to replicate parts of the twisted tattoos on his body. These tattoos had been done by a long-gone prophet and seer from his island, who, through those hieroglyphic marks, had illustrated a complete theory of the heavens and the earth, along with a mystical guide to discovering truth; so that Queequeg, in his own way, was a puzzle waiting to be solved; a remarkable work in one volume, but whose mysteries even he could not decipher, even though his own living heart beat against them; and those mysteries were destined, in the end, to decay along with the living skin they were inscribed on, remaining unsolved forever. It must have been this thought that inspired Ahab's wild exclamation one morning, as he turned away from gazing at poor Queequeg—"Oh, devilish tantalization of the gods!"

CHAPTER 111

The Pacific

The Pacific Ocean

When gliding by the Bashee isles we emerged at last upon the great South Sea; were it not for other things I could have greeted my dear Pacific with uncounted thanks, for now the long supplication of my youth was answered; that serene ocean rolled eastwards from me a thousand leagues of blue.

When we glided past the Bashee islands, we finally emerged onto the vast South Sea; if it weren't for other things, I could have welcomed my dear Pacific with endless gratitude, because now the long wish from my youth was fulfilled; that calm ocean stretched out eastward from me for a thousand leagues of blue.

There is, one knows not what sweet mystery about this sea, whose gently awful stirrings seems to speak of some hidden soul beneath; like those fabled undulations of the Ephesian sod over the buried Evangelist St. John. And meet it is, that over these sea-pastures, wide-rolling watery prairies and Potters' Fields of all four continents, the waves should rise and fall, and ebb and flow unceasingly; for here, millions of mixed shades and shadows, drowned dreams, somnambulisms, reveries; all that we call lives and souls, lie dreaming, dreaming, still; tossing like slumberers in their beds; the ever-rolling waves but made so by their restlessness.

There’s an indescribable, sweet mystery about this sea, whose gently terrifying movements seem to hint at some hidden essence beneath, like the imagined ripples of the Ephesian ground over the buried Evangelist St. John. And it makes sense that over these ocean meadows, vast rolling watery plains, and the Potters' Fields of all four continents, the waves rise and fall, ebb and flow without end; because here, millions of mixed shades and shadows, drowned dreams, daydreams, and reflections—everything we refer to as lives and souls—lie dreaming, still; tossing like sleepers in their beds; the ever-rolling waves created by their restlessness.

To any meditative Magian rover, this serene Pacific, once beheld, must ever after be the sea of his adoption. It rolls the midmost waters of the world, the Indian ocean and Atlantic being but its arms. The same waves wash the moles of the new-built California towns, but yesterday planted by the recentest race of men and lave the faded but still gorgeous skirts of Asiatic lands, older than Abraham; while all between float milky-ways of coral isles, and low-lying, endless, unknown Archipelagoes, and impenetrable Japans. Thus this mysterious, divine Pacific zones the world's whole bulk about; makes all coasts one bay to it; seems the tide-beating heart of earth. Lifted by those eternal swells, you needs must own the seductive god, bowing your head to Pan.

To any meditative traveler of the Magian kind, this calm Pacific, once seen, will always be the sea they choose to embrace. It holds the central waters of the world, with the Indian Ocean and Atlantic acting as its arms. The same waves wash the wharves of the newly established towns in California, just recently settled by the latest wave of humanity, while they caress the faded but still beautiful edges of Asian lands, which are older than Abraham; and all in between float milky pathways of coral islands, and endless, unknown archipelagos, and impenetrable regions of Japan. In this way, this mysterious, divine Pacific encompasses the entire globe; it makes all shores feel like one large bay; it seems to be the heart of the earth, pulsing with the tide. Lifted by those eternal swells, you cannot help but yield to the charming deity, bowing your head to Pan.

But few thoughts of Pan stirred Ahab's brain, as standing, like an iron statue at his accustomed place beside the mizen rigging, with one nostril he unthinkingly snuffed the sugary musk from the Bashee isles (in whose sweet woods mild lovers must be walking), and with the other consciously inhaled the salt breath of the new found sea; that sea in which the hated White Whale must even then be swimming. Launched at length upon these almost final waters, and gliding towards the Japanese cruising-ground, the old man's purpose intensified itself. His firm lips met like the lips of a vice; the Delta of his forehead's veins swelled like overladen brooks; in his very sleep, his ringing cry ran through the vaulted hull, "Stern all! the White Whale spouts thick blood!"

But few thoughts of Pan crossed Ahab's mind as he stood like a steel statue at his usual spot by the mizen rigging. With one nostril, he mindlessly inhaled the sweet musk from the Bashee Isles (where gentle lovers must be walking in the fragrant woods), while with the other, he deliberately breathed in the salty air of the newly discovered sea; the sea where the despised White Whale was probably swimming even then. Finally launched into these nearly final waters and gliding toward the Japanese cruising ground, the old man's determination became even stronger. His tight lips pressed together like a vice; the veins in his forehead bulged like overflowing streams; even in his sleep, he shouted through the echoing hull, "Everyone back! The White Whale is spouting thick blood!"

CHAPTER 112

The Blacksmith

The Blacksmith

Availing himself of the mild, summer-cool weather that now reigned in these latitudes, and in preparation for the peculiarly active pursuits shortly to be anticipated, Perth, the begrimed, blistered old blacksmith, had not removed his portable forge to the hold again, after concluding his contributory work for Ahab's leg, but still retained it on deck, fast lashed to ringbolts by the foremast; being now almost incessantly invoked by the headsmen, and harpooneers, and bowsmen to do some little job for them; altering, or repairing, or new shaping their various weapons and boat furniture. Often he would be surrounded by an eager circle, all waiting to be served; holding boat-spades, pikeheads, harpoons, and lances, and jealously watching his every sooty movement, as he toiled. Nevertheless, this old man's was a patient hammer wielded by a patient arm. No murmur, no impatience, no petulance did come from him. Silent, slow, and solemn; bowing over still further his chronically broken back, he toiled away, as if toil were life itself, and the heavy beating of his hammer the heavy beating of his heart. And so it was.—Most miserable!

Taking advantage of the mild, cool summer weather in this area, and getting ready for the particularly busy activities that were about to happen, Perth, the dirty, battered old blacksmith, hadn’t moved his portable forge back down into the hold after finishing his work on Ahab's leg. Instead, he kept it on deck, securely tied to the ringbolts by the foremast; it was now almost constantly called upon by the headsmen, harpooneers, and bowsmen to handle various tasks for them—whether it was altering, repairing, or reshaping their different tools and boat equipment. He would often find himself surrounded by an eager crowd, all waiting for their turn, holding boat-spades, pikeheads, harpoons, and lances, watching every soot-covered movement he made as he worked. Yet, this old man wielded his hammer with the patience of his steady arm. There was no grumbling, no impatience, no irritation from him. Silent, slow, and solemn; bent further over his chronically aching back, he worked away, as if laboring were the essence of life and the heavy rhythm of his hammer echoed the heavy rhythm of his heart. And indeed, it was.—Most miserable!

A peculiar walk in this old man, a certain slight but painful appearing yawing in his gait, had at an early period of the voyage excited the curiosity of the mariners. And to the importunity of their persisted questionings he had finally given in; and so it came to pass that every one now knew the shameful story of his wretched fate.

A strange walk in this old man, marked by a slight but painful yawning in his gait, had early on in the voyage caught the attention of the sailors. And after their relentless questions, he finally relented; as a result, everyone now knew the shameful story of his miserable fate.

Belated, and not innocently, one bitter winter's midnight, on the road running between two country towns, the blacksmith half-stupidly felt the deadly numbness stealing over him, and sought refuge in a leaning, dilapidated barn. The issue was, the loss of the extremities of both feet. Out of this revelation, part by part, at last came out the four acts of the gladness, and the one long, and as yet uncatastrophied fifth act of the grief of his life's drama.

Belatedly, and not without reason, one bitter winter's midnight, on the road between two small towns, the blacksmith, feeling dazed, noticed the deadly numbness taking over him and sought shelter in a leaning, run-down barn. The problem was the loss of toes on both feet. From this realization, piece by piece, eventually emerged four acts of joy and one long, yet to be revealed fifth act of the sorrow in the drama of his life.

He was an old man, who, at the age of nearly sixty, had postponedly encountered that thing in sorrow's technicals called ruin. He had been an artisan of famed excellence, and with plenty to do; owned a house and garden; embraced a youthful, daughter-like, loving wife, and three blithe, ruddy children; every Sunday went to a cheerful-looking church, planted in a grove. But one night, under cover of darkness, and further concealed in a most cunning disguisement, a desperate burglar slid into his happy home, and robbed them all of everything. And darker yet to tell, the blacksmith himself did ignorantly conduct this burglar into his family's heart. It was the Bottle Conjuror! Upon the opening of that fatal cork, forth flew the fiend, and shrivelled up his home. Now, for prudent, most wise, and economic reasons, the blacksmith's shop was in the basement of his dwelling, but with a separate entrance to it; so that always had the young and loving healthy wife listened with no unhappy nervousness, but with vigorous pleasure, to the stout ringing of her young-armed old husband's hammer; whose reverberations, muffled by passing through the floors and walls, came up to her, not unsweetly, in her nursery; and so, to stout Labor's iron lullaby, the blacksmith's infants were rocked to slumber.

He was an old man who, at nearly sixty, had finally faced what is often called ruin. He had been a skilled artisan, well-respected, with plenty of work; owned a house and garden; cherished a young, wife-like partner, and three joyful, lively children; every Sunday, he attended a cheerful church nestled in a grove. But one night, under the cover of darkness and cleverly disguised, a desperate burglar slipped into his happy home and took everything from them. Even more tragically, the blacksmith had unwittingly led this burglar into his family's sanctuary. It was the Bottle Conjuror! When that fateful cork was popped, the fiend emerged and destroyed his home. For practical, wise, and financial reasons, the blacksmith's workshop was located in the basement of his house, with a separate entrance; so his young and loving wife always listened, not with anxious nerves, but with joyful pleasure, to the strong ringing of her husband’s hammer. The sounds, softened as they traveled through the floors and walls, reached her in the nursery, and to the strong rhythm of Labor’s iron lullaby, the blacksmith's children were rocked to sleep.

Oh, woe on woe! Oh, Death, why canst thou not sometimes be timely? Hadst thou taken this old blacksmith to thyself ere his full ruin came upon him, then had the young widow had a delicious grief, and her orphans a truly venerable, legendary sire to dream of in their after years; and all of them a care-killing competency. But Death plucked down some virtuous elder brother, on whose whistling daily toil solely hung the responsibilities of some other family, and left the worse than useless old man standing, till the hideous rot of life should make him easier to harvest.

Oh, what a tragedy! Oh, Death, why can't you be timely sometimes? If you had taken this old blacksmith before his complete downfall, the young widow would have had a bittersweet sorrow, and her children would have had a truly great, legendary father to remember in their later years; and all of them would have had a worry-free life. But instead, Death chose to take a virtuous older brother, whose daily hard work was the only support for another family, and left the useless old man standing, waiting for the awful decay of life to make him easier to reap.

Why tell the whole? The blows of the basement hammer every day grew more and more between; and each blow every day grew fainter than the last; the wife sat frozen at the window, with tearless eyes, glitteringly gazing into the weeping faces of her children; the bellows fell; the forge choked up with cinders; the house was sold; the mother dived down into the long church-yard grass; her children twice followed her thither; and the houseless, familyless old man staggered off a vagabond in crape; his every woe unreverenced; his grey head a scorn to flaxen curls!

Why share everything? The sound of the hammer in the basement became more distant each day; each blow felt weaker than the last. The wife sat frozen at the window, her eyes dry and staring into the sorrowful faces of her children. The bellows fell silent; the forge became clogged with ash; the house was sold; the mother sank down into the tall grass of the cemetery; her children followed her there twice; and the old man, now without a home or family, walked away like a vagabond in mourning clothes, his every sorrow ignored, his gray head a mockery to the golden curls!

Death seems the only desirable sequel for a career like this; but Death is only a launching into the region of the strange Untried; it is but the first salutation to the possibilities of the immense Remote, the Wild, the Watery, the Unshored; therefore, to the death-longing eyes of such men, who still have left in them some interior compunctions against suicide, does the all-contributed and all-receptive ocean alluringly spread forth his whole plain of unimaginable, taking terrors, and wonderful, new-life adventures; and from the hearts of infinite Pacifics, the thousand mermaids sing to them—"Come hither, broken-hearted; here is another life without the guilt of intermediate death; here are wonders supernatural, without dying for them. Come hither! bury thyself in a life which, to your now equally abhorred and abhorring, landed world, is more oblivious than death. Come hither! put up thy grave-stone, too, within the churchyard, and come hither, till we marry thee!"

Death seems like the only appealing outcome for a life like this; but Death is just a gateway into the unknown. It’s merely the initial greeting to the possibilities of the vast, the wild, the watery, and the uncharted. So, to the death-longing eyes of these men, who still feel some internal reluctance against suicide, the all-encompassing and all-accepting ocean invitingly spreads out its entire expanse of unimaginable fears and incredible new life adventures. From the depths of endless Pacifics, a thousand mermaids sing to them—"Come here, broken-hearted; here is another life free from the guilt of dying in between; here are supernatural wonders that don’t require dying for them. Come here! Bury yourself in a life that, to your now equally hated world, is more forgotten than death. Come here! Set up your gravestone in the churchyard and come here, until we wed you!"

Hearkening to these voices, East and West, by early sunrise, and by fall of eve, the blacksmith's soul responded, Aye, I come! And so Perth went a-whaling.

Listening to these voices, from East and West, at dawn and at dusk, the blacksmith's soul responded, "Yes, I'm coming!" And so Perth went whaling.

CHAPTER 113

The Forge

The Workshop

With matted beard, and swathed in a bristling shark-skin apron, about mid-day, Perth was standing between his forge and anvil, the latter placed upon an iron-wood log, with one hand holding a pike-head in the coals, and with the other at his forge's lungs, when Captain Ahab came along, carrying in his hand a small rusty-looking leathern bag. While yet a little distance from the forge, moody Ahab paused; till at last, Perth, withdrawing his iron from the fire, began hammering it upon the anvil—the red mass sending off the sparks in thick hovering flights, some of which flew close to Ahab.

With his tangled beard and wearing a rough shark-skin apron, around noon, Perth was standing between his forge and anvil, the anvil sitting on an ironwood log. He was holding a pike-head in the coals with one hand and tending to his forge with the other when Captain Ahab approached, carrying a small, rusty leather bag. Ahab paused a short distance from the forge, lost in thought, until Perth pulled the iron out of the fire and started hammering it on the anvil—the glowing metal sending sparks flying in thick, swirling clouds, some of which landed close to Ahab.

"Are these thy Mother Carey's chickens, Perth? they are always flying in thy wake; birds of good omen, too, but not to all;—look here, they burn; but thou—thou liv'st among them without a scorch."

"Are these your Mother Carey's chickens, Perth? They always follow you around; good omen birds, but not for everyone;—look here, they burn; but you—you live among them without getting hurt."

"Because I am scorched all over, Captain Ahab," answered Perth, resting for a moment on his hammer; "I am past scorching-, not easily can'st thou scorch a scar."

"Because I'm burned all over, Captain Ahab," answered Perth, pausing for a moment on his hammer; "I'm beyond being burned—it's not easy to burn a scar."

"Well, well; no more. Thy shrunk voice sounds too calmly, sanely woeful to me. In no Paradise myself, I am impatient of all misery in others that is not mad. Thou should'st go mad, blacksmith; say, why dost thou not go mad? How can'st thou endure without being mad? Do the heavens yet hate thee, that thou can'st not go mad?— What wert thou making there?"

"Well, well; not anymore. Your quiet voice sounds too calm, too sanely sad to me. Not being in Paradise myself, I can’t stand all suffering in others that isn’t insane. You should go crazy, blacksmith; tell me, why don’t you go crazy? How can you stand it without going mad? Do the heavens still hate you so much that you can’t go crazy?— What were you making there?"

"Welding an old pike-head, sir; there were seams and dents in it."

"Welding an old pike head, sir; there were cracks and dents in it."

"And can'st thou make it all smooth again, blacksmith, after such hard usage as it had?"

"And can you make it all smooth again, blacksmith, after all the rough treatment it got?"

"I think so, sir."

"I believe so, sir."

"And I suppose thou can'st smoothe almost any seams and dents; never mind how hard the metal, blacksmith?"

"And I guess you can smooth out almost any seams and dents, no matter how hard the metal, blacksmith?"

"Aye, sir, I think I can; all seams and dents but one."

"Yes, sir, I think I can; all seams and dents except for one."

"Look ye here then," cried Ahab, passionately advancing, and leaning with both hands on Perth's shoulders; "look ye here—here—can ye smoothe out a seam like this, blacksmith," sweeping one hand across his ribbed brow; "if thou could'st, blacksmith, glad enough would I lay my head upon thy anvil, and feel thy heaviest hammer between my eyes. Answer! Can'st thou smoothe this seam?"

"Look here," Ahab exclaimed, leaning forward passionately and placing both hands on Perth's shoulders. "Look here—can you smooth out a seam like this, blacksmith?" He swept one hand across his ridged forehead. "If you could, blacksmith, I would gladly lay my head on your anvil and feel your heaviest hammer against my eyes. Answer me! Can you smooth this seam?"

"Oh! that is the one, sir! Said I not all seams and dents but one?"

"Oh! That's the one, sir! Didn't I say it's all seams and dents except for one?"

"Aye, blacksmith, it is the one; aye, man, it is unsmoothable; for though thou only see'st it here in my flesh, it has worked down into the bone of my skull—that is all wrinkles! But, away with child's play; no more gaffs and pikes to-day. Look ye here!" jingling the leathern bag, as if it were full of gold coins. "I, too, want a harpoon made; one that a thousand yoke of fiends could not part, Perth; something that will stick in a whale like his own fin-bone. There's the stuff," flinging the pouch upon the anvil. "Look ye, blacksmith, these are the gathered nail-stubbs of the steel shoes of racing horses."

"Yeah, blacksmith, that’s the one; yeah, man, it can’t be smoothed out; because even though you only see it here on my skin, it’s worked its way down into the bone of my skull—that’s all wrinkles! But enough with this childish stuff; no more tricks and tools today. Look at this!" he said, jingling the leather bag as if it were full of gold coins. "I want a harpoon made too; one that a thousand evil spirits couldn't separate, Perth; something that will stick in a whale like its own fin bone. Here's the material," he said, tossing the pouch onto the anvil. "Look, blacksmith, these are the leftover nails from the steel shoes of racing horses."

"Horse-shoe stubbs, sir? Why, Captain Ahab, thou hast here, then, the best and stubbornest stuff we blacksmiths ever work."

"Horseshoe stubs, sir? Well, Captain Ahab, you have here the best and most stubborn material we blacksmiths ever work with."

"I know it, old man; these stubbs will weld together like glue from the melted bones of murderers. Quick! forge me the harpoon. And forge me first, twelve rods for its shank; then wind, and twist, and hammer these twelve together like the yarns and strands of a tow-line. Quick! I'll blow the fire."

"I know it, old man; these pieces will stick together like glue made from melted bones of murderers. Hurry! Make me the harpoon. And first, make me twelve rods for its shaft; then wind, twist, and hammer these twelve together like the fibers and strands of a towing line. Hurry! I'll stoke the fire."

When at last the twelve rods were made, Ahab tried them, one by one, by spiralling them, with his own hand, round a long, heavy iron bolt. "A flaw!" rejecting the last one. "Work that over again, Perth."

When the twelve rods were finally made, Ahab tested each one by spinning them himself around a heavy iron bolt. "There's a flaw!" he said, rejecting the last one. "Work on that again, Perth."

This done, Perth was about to begin welding the twelve into one, when Ahab stayed his hand, and said he would weld his own iron. As, then, with regular, gasping hems, he hammered on the anvil, Perth passing to him the glowing rods, one after the other, and the hard pressed forge shooting up its intense straight flame, the Parsee passed silently, and bowing over his head towards the fire, seemed invoking some curse or some blessing on the toil. But, as Ahab looked up, he slid aside.

This done, Perth was ready to start welding the twelve pieces into one when Ahab stopped him, saying he would weld his own iron. As he hammered on the anvil, breathing heavily, Perth handed him the glowing rods one by one, while the forge shot up its intense straight flame. The Parsee moved silently, bowing his head toward the fire as if he were invoking some curse or blessing on the work. But when Ahab looked up, he slid aside.

"What's that bunch of lucifers dodging about there for?" muttered Stubb, looking on from the forecastle. "That Parsee smells fire like a fusee; and smells of it himself, like a hot musket's powder-pan."

"What's that group of guys moving around over there for?" mumbled Stubb, watching from the forecastle. "That Parsee can smell smoke like a fusee; and he smells like it too, like a hot musket's powder-pan."

At last the shank, in one complete rod, received its final heat; and as Perth, to temper it, plunged it all hissing into the cask of water near by, the scalding steam shot up into Ahab's bent face.

At last, the shank, in one solid piece, got its final heat; and as Perth, to temper it, plunged it all hissing into the nearby cask of water, the scalding steam shot up into Ahab's bent face.

"Would'st thou brand me, Perth?" wincing for a moment with the pain; "have I been but forging my own branding-iron, then?"

"Would you brand me, Perth?" he winced for a moment with the pain. "Have I just been making my own branding iron, then?"

"Pray God, not that; yet I fear something, Captain Ahab. Is not this harpoon for the White Whale?"

"God, I hope not; but I worry about something, Captain Ahab. Isn’t this harpoon meant for the White Whale?"

"For the white fiend! But now for the barbs; thou must make them thyself, man. Here are my razors—the best of steel; here, and make the barbs sharp as the needle-sleet of the Icy Sea."

"For the white monster! But now for the barbs; you have to make them yourself, man. Here are my razors—the best steel; here, and make the barbs sharp as the needle-like sleet of the Icy Sea."

For a moment, the old blacksmith eyed the razors as though he would fain not use them.

For a moment, the old blacksmith looked at the razors as if he really didn't want to use them.

"Take them, man, I have no need for them; for I now neither shave, sup, nor pray till—but here—to work!"

"Take them, man, I don't need them; because I no longer shave, eat, or pray until—but here—to work!"

Fashioned at last into an arrowy shape, and welded by Perth to the shank, the steel soon pointed the end of the iron; and as the blacksmith was about giving the barbs their final heat, prior to tempering them, he cried to Ahab to place the water-cask near.

Fashioned at last into a sharp shape, and attached by Perth to the shank, the steel soon pointed the end of the iron; and as the blacksmith was about to give the barbs their final heat before tempering them, he called out to Ahab to move the water-cask closer.

"No, no—no water for that; I want it of the true death-temper. Ahoy, there! Tashtego, Queequeg, Daggoo! What say ye, pagans! Will ye give me as much blood as will cover this barb?" holding it high up. A cluster of dark nods replied, Yes. Three punctures were made in the heathen flesh, and the White Whale's barbs were then tempered.

"No, no—no water for that; I want it of the true death-temper. Hey, you there! Tashtego, Queequeg, Daggoo! What do you say, guys? Will you give me enough blood to cover this barb?" holding it up high. A group of dark nods responded, Yes. Three punctures were made in the heathen flesh, and the White Whale's barbs were then tempered.

"Ego non baptizo te in nomine patris, sed in nomine diaboli!" deliriously howled Ahab, as the malignant iron scorchingly devoured the baptismal blood.

"Ego non baptizo te in nomine patris, sed in nomine diaboli!" Ahab howled deliriously, as the evil iron hungrily consumed the baptismal blood.

Now, mustering the spare poles from below, and selecting one of hickory, with the bark still investing it, Ahab fitted the end to the socket of the iron. A coil of new tow-line was then unwound, and some fathoms of it taken to the windlass, and stretched to a great tension. Pressing his foot upon it, till the rope hummed like a harp-string, then eagerly bending over it, and seeing no strandings, Ahab exclaimed, "Good! and now for the seizings."

Now, gathering the spare poles from below and choosing one made of hickory, still covered in bark, Ahab fitted the end into the socket of the iron. A coil of new tow-line was then unwound, and some of it was taken to the windlass and stretched to a great tension. Pressing his foot on it until the rope hummed like a harp string, then eagerly leaning over it and seeing no frays, Ahab exclaimed, "Good! Now for the seizings."

At one extremity the rope was unstranded, and the separate spread yarns were all braided and woven round the socket of the harpoon; the pole was then driven hard up into the socket; from the lower end the rope was traced halfway along the pole's length, and firmly secured so, with inter-twistings of twine. This done, pole, iron, and rope—like the Three Fates— remained inseparable, and Ahab moodily stalked away with the weapon; the sound of his ivory leg, and the sound of the hickory pole, both hollowly ringing along every plank. But ere he entered his cabin, a light, unnatural, half-bantering, yet most piteous sound was heard. Oh! Pip, thy wretched laugh, thy idle but unresting eye; all thy strange mummeries not unmeaningly blended with the black tragedy of the melancholy ship, and mocked it!

At one end, the rope was unraveled, and the individual strands were all braided and wrapped around the harpoon's socket; then the pole was shoved tightly into the socket. From the bottom of the pole, the rope was traced halfway along its length and securely fastened with twists of twine. With that done, the pole, iron, and rope—like the Three Fates—became inseparable, and Ahab moodily walked away with the weapon; the sound of his ivory leg and the sound of the hickory pole both echoed hollowly along every plank. But before he entered his cabin, a light, unnatural, half-teasing, yet deeply sad sound was heard. Oh! Pip, your miserable laugh, your restless but lazy gaze; all your strange antics somehow intertwined with the grim tragedy of the sorrowful ship, and mocked it!

CHAPTER 114

The Gilder

The Gilder

Penetrating further and further into the heart of the Japanese cruising ground the Pequod was soon all astir in the fishery. Often, in mild, pleasant weather, for twelve, fifteen, eighteen, and twenty hours on the stretch, they were engaged in the boats, steadily pulling, or sailing, or paddling after the whales, or for an interlude of sixty or seventy minutes calmly awaiting their uprising; though with but small success for their pains.

Penetrating deeper and deeper into the core of the Japanese fishing grounds, the Pequod soon became active in the fishery. Often, in mild, pleasant weather, they spent twelve, fifteen, eighteen, and even twenty hours in the boats, steadily rowing, sailing, or paddling after the whales, or taking a break of sixty or seventy minutes to calmly wait for them to surface; though they had little success for their efforts.

At such times, under an abated sun; afloat all day upon smooth, slow heaving swells; seated in his boat, light as a birch canoe; and so sociably mixing with the soft waves themselves, that like hearth-stone cats they purr against the gunwale; these are the times of dreamy quietude, when beholding the tranquil beauty and brilliancy of the ocean's skin, one forgets the tiger heart that pants beneath it; and would not willingly remember, that this velvet paw but conceals a remorseless fang.

At times like these, under a dimmed sun; drifting all day on gentle, rolling waves; sitting in his boat, as light as a birch canoe; and blending so comfortably with the soft waves that they seem to purr against the sides of the boat like lazy cats by the fire; these moments bring a dreamy calm, when gazing at the peaceful beauty and shine of the ocean's surface, one forgets the fierce heart beneath it; and would prefer not to remember that this soft touch hides a merciless bite.

These are the times, when in his whale-boat the rover softly feels a certain filial, confident, land-like feeling towards the sea; that he regards it as so much flowery earth; and the distant ship revealing only the tops of her masts, seems struggling forward, not through high rolling waves, but through the tall grass of a rolling prairie: as when the western emigrants' horses only show their erected ears, while their hidden bodies widely wade through the amazing verdure.

These are the moments when, in his whale boat, the sailor gently senses a kind of comforting, familiar connection to the sea; he sees it as just a vast stretch of blooming land. The distant ship, which only shows the tops of its masts, appears to be moving forward not through massive waves but through the tall grass of a rolling prairie: like when the horses of western settlers only show their standing ears while their bodies wade through the incredible greenery.

The long-drawn virgin vales; the mild blue hill-sides; as over these there steals the hush, the hum; you almost swear that play-wearied children lie sleeping in these solitudes, in some glad May-time, when the flowers of the woods are plucked. And all this mixes with your most mystic mood; so that fact and fancy, half-way meeting, interpenetrate, and form one seamless whole.

The endless untouched valleys; the gentle blue hillsides; as a quiet calm and a soft buzz envelop them; you could almost believe that tired children are napping in these peaceful places, during a joyful May when the wildflowers have been picked. And all of this blends with your deepest feelings; so that reality and imagination, coming together, merge and create one unified experience.

Nor did such soothing scenes, however temporary, fail of at least as temporary an effect on Ahab. But if these secret golden keys did seem to open in him his own secret golden treasuries, yet did his breath upon them prove but tarnishing.

Nor did such calming scenes, no matter how brief, fail to have at least a temporary effect on Ahab. But even if these hidden golden keys appeared to unlock his own hidden golden treasures, his breath on them only proved to dull their shine.

Oh, grassy glades! oh ever vernal endless landscapes in the soul; in ye,—though long parched by the dead drought of the earthly life,— in ye, men yet may roll, like young horses in new morning clover; and for some few fleeting moments, feel the cool dew of the life immortal on them. Would to God these blessed calms would last. But the mingled, mingling threads of life are woven by warp and woof: calms crossed by storms, a storm for every calm. There is no steady unretracing progress in this life; we do not advance through fixed gradations, and at the last one pause:— through infancy's unconscious spell, boyhood's thoughtless faith, adolescence' doubt (the common doom), then scepticism, then disbelief, resting at last in manhood's pondering repose of If. But once gone through, we trace the round again; and are infants, boys, and men, and Ifs eternally. Where lies the final harbor, whence we unmoor no more? In what rapt ether sails the world, of which the weariest will never weary? Where is the foundling's father hidden? Our souls are like those orphans whose unwedded mothers die in bearing them: the secret of our paternity lies in their grave, and we must there to learn it.

Oh, grassy meadows! Oh, ever-green, endless landscapes within the soul; in you—though long dried out by the lifeless drought of earthly existence—in you, people can still roll, like young horses in fresh morning clover; and for a few fleeting moments, feel the cool dew of immortal life upon them. I wish to God these blessed calm moments would last. But the intertwined threads of life are woven with both warp and weft: calm times interrupted by storms, a storm for every calm. There is no steady, retraceable progress in this life; we don’t move through fixed stages, only to pause at the end: through the unconsciousness of infancy, the thoughtless faith of boyhood, the doubts of adolescence (the common fate), then skepticism, then disbelief, finally resting in manhood’s contemplative state of “If.” But once we go through this cycle, we trace it again; we are infants, boys, and men, and “Ifs” forever. Where is the final port from which we never set sail again? In what rapt ether does the world sail, in which even the most weary will never tire? Where is the father of the orphan hidden? Our souls are like those orphans whose unwed mothers die in childbirth: the secret of our parentage lies in their grave, and we must go there to learn it.

And that same day, too, gazing far down from his boat's side into that same golden sea, Starbuck lowly murmured:—

And that same day, while looking far down from the side of his boat into that same golden sea, Starbuck quietly murmured:—

"Loveliness unfathomable, as ever lover saw in his young bride's eyes!—
Tell me not of thy teeth-tiered sharks, and thy kidnapping cannibal ways.
Let faith oust fact; let fancy oust memory; I look deep down
and do believe."

"Loveliness beyond comprehension, just like every lover has seen in his young bride's eyes!—
Don’t tell me about your teeth-ridden sharks and your kidnapper cannibal ways.
Let faith replace reality; let imagination replace memory; I look deep within
and truly believe."

And Stubb, fish-like, with sparkling scales, leaped up in that same golden light:—

And Stubb, looking like a fish with shiny scales, jumped up in that same golden light:—

"I am Stubb, and Stubb has his history; but here Stubb takes oaths that he has always been jolly!"

"I’m Stubb, and Stubb has his own story; but here, Stubb swears that he has always been cheerful!"

CHAPTER 115

The Pequod Meets The Bachelor

The Pequod Meets The Bachelor

And jolly enough were the sights and the sounds that came bearing down before the wind, some few weeks after Ahab's harpoon had been welded.

And the sights and sounds that came rushing in with the wind a few weeks after Ahab's harpoon had been welded were pretty cheerful.

It was a Nantucket ship, the Bachelor, which had just wedged in her last cask of oil, and bolted down her bursting hatches; and now, in glad holiday apparel, was joyously, though somewhat vain-gloriously, sailing round among the widely-separated ships on the ground, previous to pointing her prow for home.

It was a Nantucket ship, the Bachelor, which had just secured her last barrel of oil and fastened down her overflowing hatches; and now, dressed in festive colors, was happily, though a bit boastfully, sailing around among the distant ships at anchor, before heading home.

The three men at her mast-head wore long streamers of narrow red bunting at their hats; from the stern, a whale-boat was suspended, bottom down; and hanging captive from the bowsprit was seen the long lower jaw of the last whale they had slain. Signals, ensigns, and jacks of all colors were flying from her rigging, on every side. Sideways lashed in each of her three basketed tops were two barrels of sperm; above which, in her top-mast cross-trees, you saw slender breakers of the same precious fluid; and nailed to her main truck was a brazen lamp.

The three men at her masthead wore long ribbons of narrow red fabric on their hats; from the back, a whale boat was hanging upside down; and from the bowsprit, the long lower jaw of the last whale they had killed was hanging. Flags, symbols, and jacks of all colors were flying from her rigging on every side. Sideways tied in each of her three basket tops were two barrels of sperm; above them, in her top-mast cross-trees, you could see slender containers of the same valuable substance; and attached to her main truck was a brass lamp.

As was afterwards learned, the Bachelor had met with the most surprising success; all the more wonderful, for that while cruising in the same seas numerous other vessels had gone entire months without securing a single fish. Not only had barrels of beef and bread been given away to make room for the far more valuable sperm, but additional supplemental casks had been bartered for, from the ships she had met; and these were stowed along the deck, and in the captain's and officers' state-rooms. Even the cabin table itself had been knocked into kindling-wood; and the cabin mess dined off the broad head of an oil-butt, lashed down to the floor for a centrepiece. In the forecastle, the sailors had actually caulked and pitched their chests, and filled them; it was humorously added, that the cook had clapped a head on his largest boiler, and filled it; that the steward had plugged his spare coffee-pot and filled it; that the harpooneers had headed the sockets of their irons and filled them; that indeed everything was filled with sperm, except the captain's pantaloons pockets, and those he reserved to thrust his hands into, in self-complacent testimony of his entire satisfaction.

As was learned later, the Bachelor had achieved remarkable success; it was even more incredible considering that while sailing in the same waters, many other ships had gone entire months without catching a single fish. Not only had barrels of beef and bread been given away to make room for the far more valuable sperm oil, but additional barrels had been traded for from the ships she encountered; these were stored along the deck and in the captain's and officers' state rooms. Even the cabin table itself had been broken down into kindling, and the crew dined off the broad top of an oil barrel, secured to the floor as a centerpiece. In the forecastle, the sailors had actually caulked and pitched their chests and filled them; it was humorously noted that the cook had put a lid on his biggest boiler and filled it; that the steward had tapped his extra coffee pot and filled it; that the harpooneers had capped the ends of their harpoons and filled them; indeed, everything was filled with sperm oil, except for the captain's pant pocket, which he reserved for his hands, as a self-satisfied reminder of his complete contentment.

As this glad ship of good luck bore down upon the moody Pequod, the barbarian sound of enormous drums came from her forecastle; and drawing still nearer, a crowd of her men were seen standing round her huge try-pots, which, covered with the parchment-like poke or stomach skin of the black fish, gave forth a loud roar to every stroke of the clenched hands of the crew. On the quarter-deck, the mates and harpooneers were dancing with the olive-hued girls who had eloped with them from the Polynesian Isles; while suspended in an ornamented boat, firmly secured aloft between the foremast and mainmast, three Long Island negroes, with glittering fiddle-bows of whale ivory, were presiding over the hilarious jig. Meanwhile, others of the ship's company were tumultuously busy at the masonry of the try-works, from which the huge pots had been removed. You would have almost thought they were pulling down the cursed Bastille, such wild cries they raised, as the now useless brick and mortar were being hurled into the sea.

As this cheerful ship of good luck approached the moody Pequod, the loud sound of massive drums echoed from her forecastle; and as she drew closer, a crowd of her crew was seen gathered around her large try-pots, which, covered with the parchment-like skin of the black fish, roared loudly with every thump of the crew's clenched hands. On the quarter-deck, the mates and harpooneers danced with the olive-skinned girls they had run away with from the Polynesian Isles; while hanging in a decorated boat, securely tied between the foremast and mainmast, three Long Island Black men, with shimmering fiddle-bows made of whale ivory, led the lively jig. Meanwhile, other crew members were energetically working at the try-works, from which the massive pots had been taken. You might have thought they were tearing down the infamous Bastille, given the wild shouts they raised as the now useless bricks and mortar were tossed into the sea.

Lord and master over all this scene, the captain stood erect on the ship's elevated quarter-deck, so that the whole rejoicing drama was full before him, and seemed merely contrived for his own individual diversion.

Lord and master over all this scene, the captain stood tall on the ship's raised quarter-deck, taking in the entire celebration as if it were crafted solely for his own entertainment.

And Ahab, he too was standing on his quarter-deck, shaggy and black, with a stubborn gloom; and as the two ships crossed each other's wakes— one all jubilations for things passed, the other all forebodings as to things to come—their two captains in themselves impersonated the whole striking contrast of the scene.

And Ahab was also standing on his quarter-deck, rugged and dark, with a stubborn gloom; and as the two ships crossed each other's wakes—one filled with excitement about the past, the other full of dread about the future—the two captains represented the entire striking contrast of the scene.

"Come aboard, come aboard!" cried the gay Bachelor's commander, lifting a glass and a bottle in the air.

"Come on board, come on board!" shouted the cheerful captain of the Bachelor's, holding up a glass and a bottle in the air.

"Hast seen the White Whale?" gritted Ahab in reply.

"Haven't you seen the White Whale?" Ahab clenched his teeth in response.

"No; only heard of him; but don't believe in him at all," said the other good-humoredly. "Come aboard!"

"No; I've only heard of him; but I don't believe in him at all," said the other with a grin. "Come on board!"

"Thou art too damned jolly. Sail on. Hast lost any men?"

"You’re way too cheerful. Keep going. Have you lost any men?"

"Not enough to speak of—two islanders, that's all;—but come aboard, old hearty, come along. I'll soon take that black from your brow. Come along, will ye (merry's the play); a full ship and homeward-bound."

"Not much to talk about—just two islanders, that's all;—but come on board, my friend, join us. I'll quickly get that frown off your face. Come on, will you (it's a fun journey); a full ship and heading home."

"How wondrous familiar is a fool!" muttered Ahab; then aloud, "Thou art a full ship and homeward bound, thou sayest; well, then, call me an empty ship, and outward-bound. So go thy ways, and I will mine. Forward there! Set all sail, and keep her to the wind!"

"How wonderfully familiar is a fool!" muttered Ahab; then loudly, "You say you're a full ship and heading home; well then, call me an empty ship and heading out. So you go your way, and I'll go mine. Move forward! Set all the sails, and keep her into the wind!"

And thus, while the one ship went cheerily before the breeze, the other stubbornly fought against it; and so the two vessels parted; the crew of the Pequod looking with grave, lingering glances towards the receding Bachelor; but the Bachelor's men never heeding their gaze for the lively revelry they were in. And as Ahab, leaning over the taffrail, eyed the homewardbound craft, he took from his pocket a small vial of sand, and then looking from the ship to the vial, seemed thereby bringing two remote associations together, for that vial was filled with Nantucket soundings.

And so, while one ship sailed happily with the wind, the other stubbornly fought against it; and the two vessels separated. The crew of the Pequod looked back with serious, lingering glances at the fading Bachelor, but the Bachelor’s crew didn’t notice, caught up in their lively celebration. As Ahab leaned over the railing, watching the ship heading home, he took out a small vial of sand from his pocket. Then, looking from the ship to the vial, he seemed to be connecting two distant memories, for that vial was filled with sand from Nantucket.

CHAPTER 116

The Dying Whale

The Dying Whale

Not seldom in this life, when, on the right side, fortune's favorites sail close by us, we, though all adroop before, catch somewhat of the rushing breeze, and joyfully feel our bagging sails fill out. So seemed it with the Pequod. For next day after encountering the gay Bachelor, whales were seen and four were slain; and one of them by Ahab.

Not infrequently in this life, when fortune's favorites sail nearby, we, even when feeling down, catch a bit of the swift breeze and joyfully feel our sails fill up. It felt that way with the Pequod. The day after meeting the cheerful Bachelor, whales were spotted and four were caught; one of them by Ahab.

It was far down the afternoon; and when all the spearings of the crimson fight were done; and floating in the lovely sunset sea and sky, sun and whale both stilly died together; then, such a sweetness and such plaintiveness, such inwreathing orisons curled up in that rosy air, that it almost seemed as if far over from the deep green convent valleys of the Manilla isles, the Spanish land-breeze, wantonly turned sailor, had gone to sea, freighted with these vesper hymns.

It was late in the afternoon; and when all the bright colors of the sunset fight were done; and as the sun and the whale slowly faded together in the beautiful sunset sky and sea; then, a sweetness and a sadness filled the rosy air, as if from the deep green valleys of the Manila islands, the Spanish land breeze, playfully turned sailor, had gone to sea, carrying these evening hymns.

Soothed again, but only soothed to deeper gloom, Ahab, who had sterned off from the whale, sat intently watching his final wanings from the now tranquil boat. For that strange spectacle observable in all sperm whales dying—the turning sunwards of the head, and so expiring— that strange spectacle, beheld of such a placid evening, somehow to Ahab conveyed a wondrousness unknown before.

Soothed once more, but only into a deeper sadness, Ahab, who had turned away from the whale, sat intently watching its final moments from the now calm boat. The unusual sight that happens when all sperm whales die—their heads turning toward the sun as they fade away—that strange sight, observed on such a peaceful evening, somehow filled Ahab with an awe he had never known before.

"He turns and turns him to it,—how slowly, but how steadfastly, his homage-rendering and invoking brow, with his last dying motions. He too worships fire; most faithful, broad, baronial vassal of the sun!— Oh that these too-favoring eyes should see these too-favoring sights. Look! here, far water-locked; beyond all hum of human weal or woe; in these most candid and impartial seas; where to traditions no rocks furnish tablets; where for long Chinese ages, the billows have still rolled on speechless and unspoken to, as stars that shine upon the Niger's unknown source; here, too, life dies sunwards full of faith, but see! no sooner dead, than death whirls round the corpse, and it heads some other way.

"He turns and turns toward it—how slowly, yet how steadily, with his brow paying homage and calling out, even in his last movements. He too worships fire; a loyal, grand vassal of the sun!— Oh, that these overly kind eyes should witness these overly kind sights. Look! Here, far away from everything; beyond any sound of human happiness or sorrow; in these most clear and unbiased seas; where no rocks provide a record for traditions; where for countless Chinese ages, the waves have rolled on silently and unspoken, like stars shining over the unknown source of the Niger; here, too, life moves toward the sun full of faith, but see! No sooner does it die than death circles the body, and it heads off in another direction."

"Oh, thou dark Hindoo half of nature, who of drowned bones hast builded thy separate throne somewhere in the heart of these unverdured seas; thou art an infidel, thou queen, and too truly speakest to me in the wide-slaughtering Typhoon, and the hushed burial of its after calm. Nor has this thy whale sunwards turned his dying head, and then gone round again, without a lesson to me.

"Oh, you dark half of nature, who have built your separate throne from drowned bones somewhere in the heart of these barren seas; you are an unbeliever, you queen, and you speak too truly to me in the wide-slaughtering typhoon and the hushed calm that follows. Nor has this whale turned its dying head towards the sun and then gone around again without teaching me a lesson."

"Oh, trebly hooped and welded hip of power! Oh, high aspiring, rainbowed jet!—that one strivest, this one jettest all in vain! In vain, oh whale, dost thou seek intercedings with yon all-quickening sun, that only calls forth life, but gives it not again. Yet dost thou darker half, rock me with a prouder, if a darker faith. All thy unnamable imminglings float beneath me here; I am buoyed by breaths of once living things, exhaled as air, but water now.

"Oh, triple-hooped and welded hip of power! Oh, high-aspiring, rainbowed jet!—that one strives, this one jets all in vain! In vain, oh whale, do you seek intercessions with that all-quickening sun, which only brings forth life, but doesn’t give it back. Yet your darker half, rocks me with a prouder, if darker, faith. All your unnameable mixings float beneath me here; I am buoyed by the breaths of once-living things, exhaled as air but now water."

"Then hail, for ever hail, O sea, in whose eternal tossings the wild fowl finds his only rest. Born of earth, yet suckled by the sea; though hill and valley mothered me, ye billows are my foster-brothers!"

"Then hail, forever hail, O sea, where the wild birds find their only rest amidst your eternal waves. Born from the earth, yet raised by the sea; though hill and valley nurtured me, you waves are my brothers!"

CHAPTER 117

The Whale Watch

Whale Watching

The four whales slain that evening had died wide apart; one, far to windward; one less distant, to leeward; one ahead; one astern. These last three were brought alongside ere nightfall; but the windward one could not be reached till morning; and the boat that had killed it lay by its side all night; and that boat was Ahab's.

The four whales hunted that evening were spread out; one, way upwind; one, a bit further downwind; one, ahead; and one, behind. The last three were brought alongside before night fell, but the one upwind couldn't be reached until morning; the boat that had killed it stayed by its side all night, and that boat was Ahab's.

The waif-pole was thrust upright into the dead whale's spout-hole; and the lantern hanging from its top, cast a troubled flickering glare upon the black, glossy back, and far out upon the midnight waves, which gently chafed the whale's broad flank, like soft surf upon a beach.

The waif-pole was pushed upright into the dead whale's spout-hole, and the lantern hanging from its top cast a restless, flickering light on the black, shiny back, and far out over the midnight waves, which gently rubbed against the whale's broad side, like soft surf on a beach.

Ahab and all his boat's crew seemed asleep but the Parsee; who crouching in the bow, sat watching the sharks, that spectrally played round the whale, and tapped the light cedar planks with their tails. A sound like the moaning in squadrons over Asphaltites of unforgiven ghosts of Gomorrah, ran shuddering through the air.

Ahab and his entire crew seemed to be asleep except for the Parsee, who was crouched in the bow, watching the sharks that eerily circled the whale, tapping the light cedar planks with their tails. A sound like the moaning of tormented ghosts from Gomorrah floated through the air, sending chills down the spine.

Started from his slumbers, Ahab, face to face, saw the Parsee; and hooped round by the gloom of the night they seemed the last men in a flooded world. "I have dreamed it again," said he.

Started from his sleep, Ahab, face to face, saw the Parsee; and surrounded by the darkness of the night they looked like the last two men in a flooded world. "I've dreamed it again," he said.

"Of the hearses? Have I not said, old man, that neither hearse nor coffin can be thine?"

"About the hearses? Didn’t I tell you, old man, that neither a hearse nor a coffin can be yours?"

"And who are hearsed that die on the sea?"

"And who are the ones that are buried at sea?"

"But I said, old man, that ere thou couldst die on this voyage, two hearses must verily be seen by thee on the sea; the first not made by mortal hands; and the visible wood of the last one must be grown in America."

"But I said, old man, that before you can die on this voyage, you must truly see two hearses on the sea; the first one not made by human hands; and the visible wood of the last one must have come from America."

"Aye, aye! a strange sight that, Parsee!—a hearse and its plumes floating over the ocean with the waves for the pall-bearers. Ha! Such a sight we shall not soon see."

"Yeah, yeah! That's a weird sight, Parsee!—a hearse with its plumes drifting over the ocean with the waves as the pall-bearers. Ha! We won't be seeing a sight like that anytime soon."

"Believe it or not, thou canst not die till it be seen, old man."

"Believe it or not, you can't die until it's seen, old man."

"And what was that saying about thyself?"

"And what was that saying about yourself?"

"Though it come to the last, I shall still go before thee thy pilot."

"Even if it comes down to the end, I will still go ahead of you as your guide."

"And when thou art so gone before—if that ever befall—then ere
I can follow, thou must still appear to me, to pilot me still?—
Was it not so? Well, then, did I believe all ye say, oh my pilot!
I have here two pledges that I shall yet slay Moby Dick and survive it."

"And when you are gone ahead—if that ever happens—before
I can follow, you must still come to me, to guide me, right?—
Was it not so? Well, then, I do believe everything you say, oh my guide!
I have here two commitments that I will still kill Moby Dick and live through it."

"Take another pledge, old man," said the Parsee, as his eyes lighted up like fire-flies in the gloom—"Hemp only can kill thee."

"Make another vow, old man," said the Parsee, as his eyes flickered like fireflies in the darkness—"Only hemp can bring you down."

"The gallows, ye mean.—I am immortal then, on land and on sea," cried Ahab, with a laugh of derision;—"Immortal on land and on sea!"

"The gallows, you mean.—I am immortal then, on land and on sea," cried Ahab, with a laugh of sarcasm;—"Immortal on land and on sea!"

Both were silent again, as one man. The grey dawn came on, and the slumbering crew arose from the boat's bottom, and ere noon the dead whale was brought to the ship.

Both were silent again, like one person. The gray dawn broke, and the sleeping crew got up from the bottom of the boat, and before noon, the dead whale was brought to the ship.

CHAPTER 118

The Quadrant

The Quadrant

The season for the Line at length drew near; and every day when Ahab, coming from his cabin cast his eyes aloft, the vigilant helmsman would ostentatiously handle his spokes, and the eager mariners quickly run to the braces, and would stand there with all their eyes centrally fixed on the nailed doubloon; impatient for the order to point the ship's prow for the equator. In good time the order came. It was hard upon high noon; and Ahab, seated in the bows of his high-hoisted boat, was about taking his wonted daily observation of the sun to determine his latitude.

The season for the Line was finally approaching; and every day when Ahab came out of his cabin and looked up, the watchful helmsman would show off as he worked the spokes, while the eager sailors quickly ran to the ropes, all eyes fixed on the nailed doubloon, waiting impatiently for the command to steer the ship toward the equator. Eventually, the command came. It was just before noon; and Ahab, sitting in the front of his raised boat, was getting ready to take his usual daily observation of the sun to figure out his latitude.

Now, in that Japanese sea, the days in summer are as freshets of effulgences. That unblinkingly vivid Japanese sun seems the blazing focus of the glassy ocean's immeasurable burning-glass. The sky looks lacquered; clouds there are none; the horizon floats; and this nakedness of unrelieved radiance is as the insufferable splendors of God's throne. Well that Ahab's quadrant was furnished with colored glasses, through which to take sight of that solar fire. So, swinging his seated form to the roll of the ship, and with his astrological-looking instrument placed to his eye, he remained in that posture for some moments to catch the precise instant when the sun should gain its precise meridian. Meantime while his whole attention was absorbed, the Parsee was kneeling beneath him on the ship's deck, and with face thrown up like Ahab's, was eyeing the same sun with him; only the lids of his eyes half hooded their orbs, and his wild face was subdued to an earthly passionlessness. At length the desired observation was taken; and with his pencil upon his ivory leg, Ahab soon calculated what his latitude must be at that precise instant. Then falling into a moment's revery, he again looked up towards the sun and murmured to himself: "Thou seamark! thou high and mighty Pilot! thou tellest me truly where I am—but canst thou cast the least hint where I shall be? Or canst thou tell where some other thing besides me is this moment living? Where is Moby Dick? This instant thou must be eyeing him. These eyes of mine look into the very eye that is even now beholding him; aye, and into the eye that is even now equally beholding the objects on the unknown, thither side of thee, thou sun!"

Now, in that Japanese sea, the summer days are like sudden bursts of light. The bright Japanese sun seems to be the blazing center of the vast, glassy ocean like a giant lens. The sky looks shiny; there are no clouds; the horizon seems to float; and this overwhelming brightness is like the unbearable glory of God's throne. It’s a good thing Ahab's quadrant came with colored lenses to view that solar fire. So, as he adjusted his position to the ship's roll, and with his astrological instrument at his eye, he stayed in that position for a while to catch the exact moment when the sun reached its highest point. Meanwhile, while he was totally focused, the Parsee knelt below him on the deck, looking up at the same sun; but his eyelids were partially closed, and his wild face had an earthly calmness. Finally, the observation he wanted was made, and using his pencil on his ivory leg, Ahab quickly calculated what his latitude was at that exact moment. Then he fell into a brief reverie, looked back at the sun, and murmured to himself: "Thou seamark! thou high and mighty Pilot! thou tellest me truly where I am—but canst thou give me the slightest hint about where I will be? Or canst thou tell where something else, besides me, is living at this moment? Where is Moby Dick? Right now, thou must be seeing him. These eyes of mine look into the very eye that is looking at him; yes, and into the eye that is equally observing the things on the unknown side of you, thou sun!"

Then gazing at his quadrant, and handling, one after the other, its numerous cabalistical contrivances, he pondered again, and muttered: "Foolish toy! babies' plaything of haughty Admirals, and Commodores, and Captains; the world brags of thee, of thy cunning and might; but what after all canst thou do, but tell the poor, pitiful point, where thou thyself happenest to be on this wide planet, and the hand that holds thee: no! not one jot more! Thou canst not tell where one drop of water or one grain of sand will be to-morrow noon; and yet with thy impotence thou insultest the sun! Science! Curse thee, thou vain toy; and cursed be all the things that cast man's eyes aloft to that heaven, whose live vividness but scorches him, as these old eyes are even now scorched with thy light, O sun! Level by nature to this earth's horizon are the glances of man's eyes; not shot from the crown of his head, as if God had meant him to gaze on his firmament. Curse thee, thou quadrant!" dashing it to the deck, "no longer will I guide my earthly way by thee; the level ship's compass, and the level deadreckoning, by log and by line; these shall conduct me, and show me my place on the sea. Aye," lighting from the boat to the deck, "thus I trample on thee, thou paltry thing that feebly pointest on high; thus I split and destroy thee!"

Then, looking at his quadrant and fiddling with its many complicated gadgets, he thought again and murmured, "What a stupid toy! A plaything for arrogant Admirals, Commodores, and Captains; the world boasts about you, your cleverness and power; but what can you really do, except tell the poor, miserable point where you happen to be on this vast planet and the hand that holds you? No! Not a single bit more! You can’t predict where a drop of water or a grain of sand will be tomorrow at noon; and yet, with your uselessness, you challenge the sun! Science! Damn you, you useless toy; and damn all the things that make man look up to that heaven, whose bright glare only burns him, just as these old eyes are currently burned by your light, O sun! Naturally aligned to this earth's horizon are the glances of man's eyes; not shot from the top of his head, as if God intended for him to look at the sky. Damn you, you quadrant!" he shouted, throwing it to the deck, "I will no longer navigate my earthly way with you; the level ship's compass and the level dead reckoning, by log and by line; they will guide me and show me my place on the sea. Yes," he said, jumping from the boat to the deck, "this is how I trample on you, you pathetic thing that weakly points up; this is how I split and destroy you!"

As the frantic old man thus spoke and thus trampled with his live and dead feet, a sneering triumph that seemed meant for Ahab, and a fatalistic despair that seemed meant for himself— these passed over the mute, motionless Parsee's face. Unobserved he rose and glided away; while, awestruck by the aspect of their commander, the seamen clustered together on the forecastle, till Ahab, troubledly pacing the deck, shouted out—"To the braces! Up helm!—square in!"

As the frantic old man spoke and stomped with his living and dead feet, a mocking triumph seemed directed at Ahab, while a sense of hopelessness seemed aimed at himself—these expressions crossed the silent, still Parsee's face. Unnoticed, he got up and slipped away; meanwhile, impressed by the sight of their captain, the sailors gathered together on the forecastle until Ahab, uneasily walking the deck, shouted out—"To the braces! Up helm!—square in!"

In an instant the yards swung round; and as the ship half-wheeled upon her heel, her three firm-seated graceful masts erectly poised upon her long, ribbed hull, seemed as the three Horatii pirouetting on one sufficient steed.

In an instant, the yards swung around; and as the ship half-turned on its side, her three strong, elegant masts stood tall on her long, ribbed hull, resembling the three Horatii dancing on one sturdy horse.

Standing between the knight-heads, Starbuck watched the Pequod's tumultuous way, and Ahab's also, as he went lurching along the deck.

Standing between the knight-heads, Starbuck watched the Pequod's turbulent path, as well as Ahab's, while he staggered across the deck.

"I have sat before the dense coal fire and watched it all aglow, full of its tormented flaming life; and I have seen it wane at last, down, down, to dumbest dust. Old man of oceans! of all this fiery life of thine, what will at length remain but one little heap of ashes!"

"I've sat in front of the thick coal fire and watched it glow, full of its tortured, burning life; and I've seen it eventually fade away, down, down, to the quietest dust. Old man of the oceans! From all this fiery life of yours, what will remain in the end but a small pile of ashes?"

"Aye," cried Stubb, "but sea-coal ashes—mind ye that, Mr. Starbuck— sea-coal, not your common charcoal. Well, well! I heard Ahab mutter, 'Here some one thrusts these cards into these old hands of mine; swears that I must play them, and no others.' And damn me, Ahab, but thou actest right; live in the game, and die in it!"

"Yeah," shouted Stubb, "but sea-coal ashes—remember that, Mr. Starbuck—sea-coal, not your regular charcoal. Well, well! I heard Ahab mumble, 'Somebody is shoving these cards into my old hands; swears that I have to play them, and no others.' And damn it, Ahab, but you’re doing the right thing; live in the game, and die in it!"

CHAPTER 119

The Candles

The Candles

Warmest climes but nurse the cruellest fangs: the tiger of Bengal crouches in spiced groves of ceaseless verdure. Skies the most effulgent but basket the deadliest thunders: gorgeous Cuba knows tornadoes that never swept tame northern lands. So, too, it is, that in these resplendent Japanese seas the mariner encounters the direst of all storms, the Typhoon. It will sometimes burst from out that cloudless sky, like an exploding bomb upon a dazed and sleepy town.

Warmest climates harbor the fiercest dangers: the Bengal tiger hides in fragrant groves of endless greenery. The brightest skies can also produce the deadliest storms: beautiful Cuba experiences tornadoes that never reach the gentle northern regions. Similarly, in these stunning Japanese seas, sailors face the most violent storms of all, the Typhoon. It can suddenly erupt from a clear sky, like a bomb going off in a stunned and sleepy town.

Towards evening of that day, the Pequod was torn of her canvas, and bare-poled was left to fight a Typhoon which had struck her directly ahead. When darkness came on, sky and sea roared and split with the thunder, and blazed with the lightning, that showed the disabled mast fluttering here and there with the rags which the first fury of the tempest had left for its after sport.

Towards evening that day, the Pequod lost its sails and was left with just the bare poles to face a typhoon that hit her head-on. When darkness fell, the sky and ocean roared and cracked with thunder, and flashed with lightning, revealing the broken mast flapping around with the remnants that the initial rage of the storm had left for its aftermath.

Holding by a shroud, Starbuck was standing on the quarter-deck; at every flash of the lightning glancing aloft, to see what additional disaster might have befallen the intricate hamper there; while Stubb and Flask were directing the men in the higher hoisting and firmer lashing of the boats. But all their pains seemed naught. Though lifted to the very top of the cranes, the windward quarter boat (Ahab's) did not escape. A great rolling sea, dashing high up against the reeling ship's high teetering side, stove in the boat's bottom at the stern, and left it again, all dripping through like a sieve.

Holding a shroud, Starbuck was on the quarter-deck, looking up with each lightning flash to see what other disasters might have hit the complicated setup above; meanwhile, Stubb and Flask were instructing the crew to hoist and secure the boats more effectively. But all their efforts seemed useless. Even though the windward quarter boat (Ahab's) was raised all the way to the top of the cranes, it couldn’t escape. A massive rolling wave crashed against the side of the swaying ship, smashed in the boat's bottom at the stern, and left it dripping like a sieve.

"Bad work, bad work! Mr. Starbuck," said Stubb, regarding the wreck, "but the sea will have its way. Stubb, for one, can't fight it. You see, Mr. Starbuck, a wave has such a great long start before it leaps, all round the world it runs, and then comes the spring! But as for me, all the start I have to meet it, is just across the deck here. But never mind; it's all in fun: so the old song says;"—(sings.)

"Poor job, poor job! Mr. Starbuck," said Stubb, looking at the wreck, "but the ocean will do what it wants. Stubb, for one, can't go against it. You see, Mr. Starbuck, a wave builds up a huge lead before it crashes down, it travels all around the world, and then it springs up! But for me, all the head start I have to face it is just over this deck here. But it’s all good; just like the old song says;"—(sings.)

                     Oh! jolly is the gale,
                     And a joker is the whale,
                     A' flourishin' his tail,—
        Such a funny, sporty, gamy, jesty, joky, hoky-poky
          lad, is the Ocean, oh!
                     The scud all a flyin',
                     That's his flip only foamin';
                     When he stirs in the spicin',—
        Such a funny, sporty, gamy, jesty, joky, hoky-poky
          lad, is the Ocean, oh!
                     Thunder splits the ships,
                     But he only smacks his lips,
                     A tastin' of this flip,—
        Such a funny, sporty, gamy, jesty, joky, hoky-poky
          lad, is the Ocean, oh!

Oh! how cheerful is the breeze,
                     And a joker is the whale,
                     With his tail all a-flourishin',—
        Such a funny, playful, adventurous, witty, jokey, silly
          guy, is the Ocean, oh!
                     The spray all flying,
                     That's just his foam rising;
                     When he stirs up the spice,—
        Such a funny, playful, adventurous, witty, jokey, silly
          guy, is the Ocean, oh!
                     Thunder cracks the ships,
                     But he just smirks and lifts his lips,
                     Tasting this foam,—
        Such a funny, playful, adventurous, witty, jokey, silly
          guy, is the Ocean, oh!

"Avast Stubb," cried Starbuck, "let the Typhoon sing, and strike his harp here in our rigging; but if thou art a brave man thou wilt hold thy peace."

"Hey Stubb," shouted Starbuck, "let the Typhoon sing, and play his harp here in our rigging; but if you're a brave man, you'll keep quiet."

"But I am not a brave man; never said I was a brave man; I am a coward; and I sing to keep up my spirits. And I tell you what it is, Mr. Starbuck, there's no way to stop my singing in this world but to cut my throat. And when that's done, ten to one I sing ye the doxology for a wind-up."

"But I’m not a brave guy; I never claimed to be. I’m a coward, and I sing to lift my spirits. And I’ll be honest with you, Mr. Starbuck, there’s no way to silence my singing in this world except to cut my throat. And once that’s done, I’ll most likely end with the doxology."

"Madman! look through my eyes if thou hast none of thine own."

"Madman! Look through my eyes if you don't have your own."

"What! how can you see better of a dark night than anybody else, never mind how foolish?"

"What! How can you see better on a dark night than anyone else, regardless of how foolish that is?"

"Here!" cried Starbuck, seizing Stubb by the shoulder, and pointing his hand towards the weather bow, "markest thou not that the gale comes from the eastward, the very course Ahab is to run for Moby Dick? the very course he swung to this day noon? now mark his boat there; where is that stove? In the stern-sheets, man; where he is wont to stand— his stand-point is stove, man! Now jump overboard, and sing away, if thou must!

"Here!" shouted Starbuck, grabbing Stubb by the shoulder and pointing toward the front of the ship. "Don’t you see that the wind is coming from the east, exactly the direction Ahab is heading to find Moby Dick? The same course he set this afternoon? Now look at his boat there; where's that stove? In the back, man; that's where he usually stands—his spot is by the stove, man! Now jump overboard and sing if you want!"

"I don't half understand ye: what's in the wind?"

"I barely understand you: what's going on?"

"Yes, yes, round the Cape of Good Hope is the shortest way to Nantucket," soliloquized Starbuck suddenly, heedless of Stubb's question. "The gale that now hammers at us to stave us, we can turn it into a fair wind that will drive us towards home. Yonder, to windward, all is blackness of doom; but to leeward, homeward—I see it lightens up there; but not with the lightning."

"Yes, yes, going around the Cape of Good Hope is the quickest route to Nantucket," Starbuck suddenly muttered to himself, ignoring Stubb's question. "The storm that's currently battering us, we can turn it into a favorable wind that will take us home. Over there, against the wind, it's all darkness and despair; but downwind, heading home—I see it clearing up over there; but not with actual lightning."

At that moment in one of the intervals of profound darkness, following the flashes, a voice was heard at his side; and almost at the same instant a volley of thunder peals rolled overhead.

At that moment, during one of the deep dark intervals after the flashes, a voice was heard next to him; and almost simultaneously, a loud rumble of thunder rolled overhead.

"Who's there?"

"Who's there?"

"Old Thunder!" said Ahab, groping his way along the bulwarks to his pivot-hole; but suddenly finding his path made plain to him by elbowed lances of fire.

"Old Thunder!" Ahab exclaimed, feeling his way along the railing to his pivot-hole; but he suddenly saw his path clearly lit by jabbing lances of fire.

Now, as the lightning rod to a spire on shore is intended to carry off the perilous fluid into the soil; so the kindred rod which at sea some ships carry to each mast, is intended to conduct it into the water. But as this conductor must descend to considerable depth, that its end may avoid all contact with the hull; and as moreover, if kept constantly towing there, it would be liable to many mishaps, besides interfering not a little with some of the rigging, and more or less impeding the vessel's way in the water; because of all this, the lower parts of a ship's lightning-rods are not always overboard; but are generally made in long slender links, so as to be the more readily hauled up into the chains outside, or thrown down into the sea, as occasion may require.

Now, just like a lightning rod on a tall building is meant to direct dangerous lightning safely into the ground, ships at sea use a similar rod on each mast to guide it into the water. However, this rod needs to reach a significant depth to avoid touching the ship's hull; and if it were constantly dragging in the water, it could encounter various problems and get in the way of the rigging, slowing the ship down. Because of all this, the lower parts of a ship's lightning rods are not always submerged; they're usually designed as long, slender links that can be easily pulled up into the ship's chains or lowered into the water as needed.

"The rods! the rods!" cried Starbuck to the crew, suddenly admonished to vigilance by the vivid lightning that had just been darting flambeaux, to light Ahab to his post. "Are they overboard? drop them over, fore and aft. Quick!"

"The rods! The rods!" shouted Starbuck to the crew, suddenly reminded to stay alert by the bright lightning that had just flashed like torches, guiding Ahab to his position. "Are they overboard? Drop them in, front and back. Hurry!"

"Avast!" cried Ahab; "let's have fair play here, though we be the weaker side. Yet I'll contribute to raise rods on the Himmalehs and Andes, that all the world may be secured; but out on privileges! Let them be, sir."

"Stop right there!" shouted Ahab; "let's make sure we're playing fair, even if we are the underdogs. Still, I’m willing to help build towers on the Himalayas and the Andes, so everyone can feel safe; but enough with the privileges! Just leave them be, sir."

"Look aloft!" cried Starbuck. "The corpusants! the corpusants!

"Look up!" shouted Starbuck. "The corpusants! The corpusants!

All the yard-arms were tipped with a pallid fire; and touched at each tri-pointed lightning-rod-end with three tapering white flames, each of the three tall masts was silently burning in that sulphurous air, like three gigantic wax tapers before an altar.

All the yard-arms were lit with a pale fire; and at each tri-pointed lightning rod end flickered three slender white flames. Each of the three tall masts was quietly burning in that sulfurous air, looking like three giant wax candles in front of an altar.

"Blast the boat! let it go!" cried Stubb at this instant, as a swashing sea heaved up under his own little craft so that its gunwale violently jammed his hand, as he was passing a lashing. "Blast it!"—but slipping backward on the deck, his uplifted eyes caught the flames; and immediately shifting his tone he cried—"The corpusants have mercy on us all!"

"Blow up the boat! Let it go!" shouted Stubb just then, as a crashing wave lifted his small vessel, slamming his hand against the side while he was tying a rope. "Damn it!"—but as he slid backward on the deck, he noticed the flames, and instantly changing his tone, he yelled—"May the sparks have mercy on us all!"

To sailors, oaths are household words; they will swear in the trance of the calm, and in the teeth of the tempest; they will imprecate curses from the topsail-yard-arms, when most they teeter over to a seething sea; but in all my voyagings, seldom have I heard a common oath when God's burning finger has been laid on the ship; when His "Mene, Mene, Tekel Upharsin" has been woven into the shrouds and the cordage.

To sailors, oaths are everyday language; they’ll curse during calm moments and in the middle of a storm; they’ll shout curses from the tops of the sails when they’re about to fall into a raging sea; but throughout all my journeys, I’ve rarely heard anyone swear when God’s fiery judgment has come upon the ship; when His “Mene, Mene, Tekel Upharsin” has become part of the sails and rigging.

While this pallidness was burning aloft, few words were heard from the enchanted crew; who in one thick cluster stood on the forecastle, all their eyes gleaming in that pale phosphorescence, like a faraway constellation of stars. Relieved against the ghostly light, the gigantic jet negro, Daggoo, loomed up to thrice his real stature, and seemed the black cloud from which the thunder had come. The parted mouth of Tashtego revealed his shark-white teeth, which strangely gleamed as if they too had been tipped by corpusants; while lit up by the preternatural light, Queequeg's tattooing burned like Satanic blue flames on his body.

While this pallor was shining above, the enchanted crew barely spoke, standing closely together on the forecastle, their eyes sparkling in that pale glow, like a distant cluster of stars. Against the eerie light, the massive black man, Daggoo, appeared to be three times his actual size, resembling the dark cloud from which the thunder had come. Tashtego's open mouth displayed his shark-white teeth, which oddly glimmered as if they too had been touched by lightning; meanwhile, illuminated by the strange light, Queequeg's tattoos glowed like hellish blue flames on his skin.

The tableau all waned at last with the pallidness aloft; and once more the Pequod and every soul on her decks were wrapped in a pall. A moment or two passed, when Starbuck, going forward, pushed against some one. It was Stubb. "What thinkest thou now, man; I heard thy cry; it was not the same in the song."

The scene finally faded with the pale light above, and once again the Pequod and everyone on board were shrouded in darkness. A minute or two went by, and then Starbuck, moving forward, bumped into someone. It was Stubb. "What do you think now, man? I heard your shout; it wasn't the same as in the song."

"No, no, it wasn't; I said the corpusants have mercy on us all; and I hope they will, still. But do they only have mercy on long faces?—have they no bowels for a laugh? And look ye, Mr. Starbuck—but it's too dark to look. Hear me, then; I take that mast-head flame we saw for a sign of good luck; for those masts are rooted in a hold that is going to be chock a' block with sperm-oil, d'ye see; and so, all that sperm will work up into the masts, like sap in a tree. Yes, our three masts will yet be as three spermaceti candles— that's the good promise we saw."

"No, no, it wasn't; I said the spirits have mercy on us all; and I hope they will, still. But do they only have mercy on sad faces?—don’t they care for a laugh? And look, Mr. Starbuck—but it’s too dark to see. Listen to me, then; I take that mast-head flame we saw as a sign of good luck; because those masts are rooted in a hold that’s going to be packed full of sperm oil, you see; and so, all that sperm will rise up into the masts, like sap in a tree. Yes, our three masts will yet be like three spermaceti candles—that’s the good promise we saw."

At that moment Starbuck caught sight of Stubb's face slowly beginning to glimmer into sight. Glancing upwards, he cried: "See! see!" and once more the high tapering flames were beheld with what seemed redoubled supernaturalness in their pallor.

At that moment, Starbuck noticed Stubb's face slowly coming into view. Looking up, he shouted, "Look! Look!" and once again, the tall, flickering flames appeared with what seemed like even greater supernatural intensity in their brightness.

"The corpusants have mercy on us all," cried Stubb, again.

"The corporate spirits have mercy on us all," shouted Stubb again.

At the base of the main-mast, full beneath the doubloon and the flame, the Parsee was kneeling in Ahab's front, but with his head bowed away from him; while near by, from the arched and overhanging rigging, where they had just been engaged securing a spar, a number of the seamen, arrested by the glare, now cohered together, and hung pendulous, like a knot of numbed wasps from a drooping, orchard twig. In various enchanted attitudes like the standing, or stepping, or running skeletons in Herculaneum, others remained rooted to the deck; but all their eyes upcast.

At the base of the main mast, right under the doubloon and the flame, the Parsee was kneeling in front of Ahab, but his head was bowed away from him. Nearby, from the arched and overhanging rigging, where they had just been securing a spar, a group of seamen, captivated by the light, came together and hung there like a bunch of stunned wasps from a drooping orchard branch. In various enchanted positions, like the standing, stepping, or running skeletons in Herculaneum, others remained fixed to the deck; but all of them were looking up.

"Aye, aye, men!" cried Ahab. "Look up at it; mark it well; the white flame but lights the way to the White Whale! Hand me those mainmast links there; I would fain feel this pulse, and let mine beat against it; blood against fire! So."

"Aye, aye, men!" shouted Ahab. "Look up at it; pay close attention; the white flame only illuminates the path to the White Whale! Hand me those mainmast links; I want to feel this pulse and let mine beat against it; blood against fire! So."

Then turning—the last link held fast in his left hand, he put his foot upon the Parsee; and with fixed upward eye, and high-flung right arm, he stood erect before the lofty tri-pointed trinity of flames.

Then turning—the last link held tightly in his left hand, he set his foot on the Parsee; and with his gaze fixed upward and his right arm raised high, he stood tall before the towering tri-pointed trinity of flames.

"Oh! thou clear spirit of clear fire, whom on these seas I as Persian once did worship, till in the sacramental act so burned by thee, that to this hour I bear the scar; I now know thee, thou clear spirit, and I now know that thy right worship is defiance. To neither love nor reverence wilt thou be kind; and e'en for hate thou canst but kill; and all are killed. No fearless fool now fronts thee. I own thy speechless, placeless power; but to the last gasp of my earthquake life will dispute its unconditional, unintegral mastery in me. In the midst of the personified impersonal, a personality stands here. Though but a point at best; whenceso'er I came; whereso'er I go; yet while I earthly live, the queenly personality lives in me, and feels her royal rights. But war is pain, and hate is woe. Come in thy lowest form of love, and I will kneel and kiss thee; but at thy highest, come as mere supernal power; and though thou launchest navies of full-freighted worlds, there's that in here that still remains indifferent. Oh, thou clear spirit, of thy fire thou madest me, and like a true child of fire, I breathe it back to thee."

"Oh! you clear spirit of clear fire, whom I once worshiped as a Persian on these seas, until in that sacred act I was so burned by you that I still bear the scar to this day; I now understand you, clear spirit, and I now realize that your true worship is defiance. You will show no kindness for either love or reverence; and even for hate, you can only kill, and everyone gets killed. No fearless fool faces you now. I acknowledge your speechless, placeless power; but until my last breath in this earthquake life, I will challenge your unconditional, unintegrated control over me. In the midst of the impersonal made personal, a personality stands here. Though just a point at best; from wherever I came; wherever I go; yet while I live on this earth, the royal personality lives in me and asserts her royal rights. But war is pain, and hate is suffering. Come in your lowest form of love, and I will kneel and kiss you; but at your highest, come as mere supreme power; and although you may launch fleets of fully-loaded worlds, there’s something in here that still remains indifferent. Oh, you clear spirit, by your fire you made me, and like a true child of fire, I breathe it back to you."

[Sudden, repeated flashes of lightning; the nine flames leap lengthwise to thrice their previous height; Ahab, with the rest, closes his eyes, his right hand pressed hard upon them.]

[Sudden, repeated flashes of lightning; the nine flames leap upward to three times their previous height; Ahab, along with the others, closes his eyes, his right hand pressed firmly against them.]

"I own thy speechless, placeless power; said I not so? Nor was it wrung from me; nor do I now drop these links. Thou canst blind; but I can then grope. Thou canst consume; but I can then be ashes. Take the homage of these poor eyes, and shutter-hands. I would not take it. The lightning flashes through my skull; mine eyeballs ache and ache; my whole beaten brain seems as beheaded, and rolling on some stunning ground. Oh, oh! Yet blindfold, yet will I talk to thee. Light though thou be, thou leapest out of darkness; but I am darkness leaping out of light, leaping out of thee! The javelins cease; open eyes; see, or not? There burn the flames! Oh, thou magnanimous! now do I do glory in my genealogy. But thou art but my fiery father; my sweet mother, I know not. Oh, cruel! what hast thou done with her? There lies my puzzle; but thine is greater. Thou knowest not how came ye, hence callest thyself unbegotten; certainly knowest not thy beginning, hence callest thyself unbegun. I know that of me, which thou knowest not of thyself, oh, thou omnipotent. There is some unsuffusing thing beyond thee, thou clear spirit, to whom all thy eternity is but time, all thy creativeness mechanical. Through thee, thy flaming self, my scorched eyes do dimly see it. Oh, thou foundling fire, thou hermit immemorial, thou too hast thy incommunicable riddle, thy unparticipated grief. Here again with haughty agony, I read my sire. Leap! leap up, and lick the sky! I leap with thee; I burn with thee; would fain be welded with thee; defyingly I worship thee!"

"I possess your silent, formless power; didn’t I say that? It wasn’t forced from me; nor am I letting go of these connections now. You can blind me; but I can still feel my way. You can destroy me; but I can turn to ash. Accept the homage of these weary eyes and hands. I wouldn’t accept it. The lightning strikes through my mind; my eyes hurt and hurt; my entire battered brain feels like it’s been severed and rolling on some shocking ground. Oh, oh! Yet, even blindfolded, I will still talk to you. Light as you are, you leap out of darkness; but I am darkness leaping out of light, leaping out of you! The javelins stop; open your eyes; see, or not? There blaze the flames! Oh, you noble one! Now I take pride in my heritage. But you are just my fiery father; my sweet mother, I do not know. Oh, cruel! What have you done with her? That’s my riddle; but yours is greater. You don’t know how you came to be, that’s why you call yourself unbegotten; you certainly don’t know your beginning, that’s why you call yourself unbegun. I know something about myself that you don’t know about yourself, oh, you all-powerful one. There is something beyond you, you clear spirit, to whom all your eternity is just time, all your creativity is mechanical. Through you, your blazing self, my scorched eyes barely see it. Oh, you foundling fire, you ancient hermit, you also have your unspeakable riddle, your unshared sorrow. Again with proud pain, I read my father. Jump! Jump up, and touch the sky! I jump with you; I burn with you; I wish to be fused with you; defiantly, I worship you!"

"The boat! the boat!" cried Starbuck, "look at thy boat, old man!"

"The boat! The boat!" shouted Starbuck, "check out your boat, old man!"

Ahab's harpoon, the one forged at Perth's fire, remained firmly lashed in its conspicuous crotch, so that it projected beyond his whale-boat's bow; but the sea that had stove its bottom had caused the loose leather sheath to drop off; and from the keen steel barb there now came a levelled flame of pale, forked fire. As the silent harpoon burned there like a serpent's tongue, Starbuck grasped Ahab by the arm—"God, God is against thee, old man; forbear! 't is an ill voyage! ill begun, ill continued; let me square the yards, while we may, old man, and make a fair wind of it homewards, to go on a better voyage than this."

Ahab's harpoon, the one made at Perth's forge, was still tightly secured in its noticeable spot, sticking out from the front of his whale boat; but the sea that had damaged its bottom had caused the loose leather sheath to fall off, and now a steady flame of pale, forked fire came off the sharp steel tip. As the silent harpoon glowed there like a snake's tongue, Starbuck grabbed Ahab by the arm—"God, God is against you, old man; stop! This is a bad voyage! It started poorly, it continued poorly; let me adjust the sails while we can, old man, and set a course for home, to go on a better journey than this."

Overhearing Starbuck, the panic-stricken crew instantly ran to the braces—though not a sail was left aloft. For the moment all the aghast mate's thoughts seemed theirs; they raised a half mutinous cry. But dashing the rattling lightning links to the deck, and snatching the burning harpoon, Ahab waved it like a torch among them; swearing to transfix with it the first sailor that but cast loose a rope's end. Petrified by his aspect, and still more shrinking from the fiery dart that he held, the men fell back in dismay, and Ahab again spoke:—

Overhearing Starbuck, the terrified crew immediately rushed to the braces—though not a sail remained up. For the moment, all the shocked mate's thoughts seemed to reflect theirs; they raised a half mutinous shout. But as Ahab slammed the rattling lightning links to the deck and grabbed the blazing harpoon, he waved it like a torch among them, vowing to impale the first sailor who dared to let go of a rope. Frozen by his appearance and even more intimidated by the fiery spear he held, the men recoiled in fear, and Ahab spoke again:—

"All your oaths to hunt the White Whale are as binding as mine; and heart, soul, and body, lungs and life, old Ahab is bound. And that ye may know to what tune this heart beats: look ye here; thus I blow out the last fear!" And with one blast of his breath he extinguished the flame.

"All your promises to hunt the White Whale are just as serious as mine; and with all my heart, soul, body, lungs, and life, old Ahab is committed. And so you know what this heart feels: look here; this is how I blow out the last fear!" And with one breath, he snuffed out the flame.

As in the hurricane that sweeps the plain, men fly the neighborhood of some lone, gigantic elm, whose very height and strength but render it so much the more unsafe, because so much the more a mark for thunderbolts; so at those last words of Ahab's many of the mariners did run from him in a terror of dismay.

As in a hurricane that sweeps across the plain, people flee the area around a tall, solitary elm tree, its height and strength making it even more vulnerable to lightning strikes. Similarly, at Ahab's last words, many of the sailors ran from him in fear and panic.

CHAPTER 120

The Deck Toward the End of the First Night Watch

The Deck at the End of the First Night Shift

Ahab standing by the helm. Starbuck approaching him.

Ahab is standing by the wheel. Starbuck is walking up to him.

We must send down the main-top-sail yard, sir. The band is working loose and the lee lift is half-stranded. Shall I strike it, sir?"

We need to lower the main top sail yard, sir. The band is coming loose and the lee lift is partially caught. Should I take it down, sir?

"Strike nothing; lash it. If I had sky-sail poles, I'd sway them up now."

"Don’t hit anything; just whip it. If I had sky-sail poles, I’d raise them now."

"Sir!—in God's name!—sir?"

"Excuse me!—in God's name!—sir?"

"Well."

"Alright."

"The anchors are working, sir. Shall I get them inboard?"

"The anchors are working, sir. Should I bring them on board?"

"Strike nothing, and stir nothing but lash everything. The wind rises, but it has not got up to my table-lands yet. Quick, and see to it.— By masts and keels! he takes me for the hunchbacked skipper of some coasting smack. Send down my main-top-sail yard! Ho, gluepots! Loftiest trucks were made for wildest winds, and this brain-truck of mine now sails amid the cloud-scud. Shall I strike that? Oh, none but cowards send down their brain-trucks in tempest time. What a hooroosh aloft there! I would e'en take it for sublime, did I not know that the colic is a noisy malady. Oh, take medicine, take medicine!"

"Don’t touch anything, and don’t stir anything, just whip everything. The wind is picking up, but it hasn’t reached my high ground yet. Hurry up and take care of it.— By the masts and keels! he thinks I’m the hunchbacked captain of some small coastal boat. Lower my main-top-sail yard! Hey, gluepots! The tallest masts are meant for the strongest winds, and my thoughts are now racing through the clouds. Should I back down? Only cowards lower their thoughts during a storm. What a racket up there! I’d almost call it impressive, if I didn’t know that bellyaches are loud illnesses. Oh, take medicine, take medicine!"

CHAPTER 121

Midnight - The Forecastle Bulwarks

Midnight - The Forecastle Rails

Stubb and Flask mounted on them, and passing additional lashings over the anchors there hanging.

Stubb and Flask got on them and added more ties over the anchors that were hanging there.

No, Stubb; you may pound that knot there as much as you please, but you will never pound into me what you were just now saying. And how long ago is it since you said the very contrary? Didn't you once say that whatever ship Ahab sails in, that ship should pay something extra on its insurance policy, just as though it were loaded with powder barrels aft and boxes of lucifers forward? Stop, now; didn't you say so?"

No, Stubb; you can hit that knot there as much as you want, but you won't convince me of what you just said. And when was it that you said the exact opposite? Didn't you once say that any ship Ahab is on should pay extra on its insurance policy, as if it were carrying powder barrels in the back and boxes of matches in the front? Wait, now; didn't you say that?

"Well, suppose I did? What then! I've part changed my flesh since that time, why not my mind? Besides, supposing we are loaded with powder barrels aft and lucifers forward; how the devil could the lucifers get afire in this drenching spray here? Why, my little man, you have pretty red hair, but you couldn't get afire now. Shake yourself; you're Aquarius, or the water-bearer, Flask; might fill pitchers at your coat collar. Don't you see, then, that for these extra risks the Marine Insurance companies have extra guarantees? Here are hydrants, Flask. But hark, again, and I'll answer ye the other thing. First take your leg off from the crown of the anchor here, though, so I can pass the rope; now listen. What's the mighty difference between holding a mast's lightning-rod in the storm, and standing close by a mast that hasn't got any lightning-rod at all in a storm? Don't you see, you timber-head, that no harm can come to the holder of the rod, unless the mast is first struck? What are you talking about, then? Not one ship in a hundred carries rods, and Ahab,—aye, man, and all of us,—were in no more danger then, in my poor opinion, than all the crews in ten thousand ships now sailing the seas. Why, you King-Post, you, I suppose you would have every man in the world go about with a small lightning-rod running up the corner of his hat, like a militia officer's skewered feather, and trailing behind like his sash. Why don't ye be sensible, Flask? it's easy to be sensible; why don't ye, then? any man with half an eye can be sensible."

"Well, what if I did? Then what! I've partly changed my body since then, so why not my mind? Besides, if we have gunpowder barrels in the back and matches in the front, how could the matches catch fire in all this pouring spray? Honestly, my friend, you have nice red hair, but you couldn’t catch fire right now. Shake it off; you're Aquarius, or the water-bearer, Flask; you might as well fill pitchers from your collar. Don’t you see that for these extra risks, the Marine Insurance companies offer extra guarantees? Here are hydrants, Flask. But wait, I’ll answer your other point. First, move your leg off the anchor so I can pass the rope; now listen. What’s the big difference between holding a lightning rod on a mast in a storm and standing next to a mast that doesn’t have any rod at all in a storm? Don’t you get it, you blockhead? The holder of the rod can’t be harmed unless the mast gets struck first. What are you on about, then? Not one ship in a hundred carries rods, and Ahab—yeah, man, and all of us—were no more in danger then, in my humble opinion, than all the crews in ten thousand ships currently sailing the seas. Honestly, you King Post, do you think every man in the world should walk around with a little lightning rod sticking out of the corner of his hat, like a militia officer's feather, trailing behind like a sash? Why don’t you be reasonable, Flask? It’s easy to be reasonable; so why not? Any man with half a brain can be sensible."

"I don't know that, Stubb. You sometimes find it rather hard."

"I don’t know about that, Stubb. You sometimes find it pretty tough."

"Yes, when a fellow's soaked through, it's hard to be sensible, that's a fact. And I am about drenched with this spray. Never mind; catch the turn there, and pass it. Seems to me we are lashing down these anchors now as if they were never going to be used again. Tying these two anchors here, Flask, seems like tying a man's hands behind him. And what big generous hands they are, to be sure. These are your iron fists, hey? What a hold they have, too! I wonder, Flask, whether the world is anchored anywhere; if she is, she swings with an uncommon long cable, though. There, hammer that knot down, and we've done. So; next to touching land, lighting on deck is the most satisfactory. I say, just wring out my jacket skirts, will ye? Thank ye. They laugh at long-togs so, Flask; but seems to me, a long-tailed coat ought always to be worn in all storms afloat. The tails tapering down that way, serve to carry off the water, d'ye see. Same with cocked hats; the cocks form gable-end eave-troughs, Flask. No more monkey-jackets and tarpaulins for me; I must mount a swallow-tail, and drive down a beaver; so. Halloa! whew! there goes my tarpaulin overboard; Lord, Lord, that the winds that come from heaven should be so unmannerly! This is a nasty night, lad."

"Yeah, when someone’s completely soaked, it’s tough to stay calm, that’s for sure. And I’m practically drenched from this spray. Anyway, let’s catch that turn and move on. It feels like we’re tying down these anchors as if we’ll never use them again. Tying these two anchors here, Flask, feels like tying a guy’s hands behind his back. And what big, strong hands they are, for sure. These are your iron fists, right? They really have a good grip! I wonder, Flask, if the world is anchored anywhere; if it is, it swings on an unusually long cable. There, hammer that knot down, and we’re done. So, next to being on land, being back on deck is the most satisfying. Can you just wring out my jacket for me? Thanks. They laugh at long coats, Flask; but to me, a long-tailed coat should always be worn in rough weather at sea. The tails hanging down like that help carry off the water, you know? Same with cocked hats; the points act like eaves, Flask. No more short jackets and tarps for me; I’m going to wear a swallow-tail and put on a beaver hat! Whoa! Oh no, there goes my tarp overboard; goodness, why do the winds from heaven have to be so rude? This is a terrible night, buddy."

CHAPTER 122

Midnight Aloft.—Thunder and Lightning

Midnight Up High.—Thunder and Lightning

The Main-top-sail yard - Tashtego passing new lashings around it.

The main topsail yard - Tashtego securing new lashings around it.

"Um, um, um. Stop that thunder! Plenty too much thunder up here. What's the use of thunder? Um, um, um. We don't want thunder; we want rum; give us a glass of rum. Um, um, um!"

"Um, um, um. Stop that thunder! There’s way too much thunder up here. What’s the point of thunder? Um, um, um. We don’t want thunder; we want rum; give us a glass of rum. Um, um, um!"

CHAPTER 123

The Musket

The Musket

During the most violent shocks of the Typhoon, the man at the Pequod's jaw-bone tiller had several times been reelingly hurled to the deck by its spasmodic motions even though preventer tackles had been attached to it— for they were slack—because some play to the tiller was indispensable.

During the strongest jolts of the Typhoon, the man at the Pequod's jawbone tiller was thrown to the deck multiple times by its erratic movements, even though safety lines had been attached to it—because they were loose—since some give in the tiller was necessary.

In a severe gale like this, while the ship is but a tossed shuttlecock to the blast, it is by no means uncommon to see the needles in the compasses, at intervals, go round and round. It was thus with the Pequod's; at almost every shock the helmsman had not failed to notice the whirling velocity with which they revolved upon the cards; it is a sight that hardly anyone can behold without some sort of unwonted emotion.

In a strong wind like this, while the ship is just a tossed shuttlecock in the storm, it’s not unusual to see the needles in the compasses spinning around every so often. This was the case with the Pequod's; at almost every jolt, the helmsman noticed how fast they whirled on the dials. It’s a sight that almost everyone feels something unusual about when they see it.

Some hours after midnight, the Typhoon abated so much, that through the strenuous exertions of Starbuck and Stubb— one engaged forward and the other aft—the shivered remnants of the jib and fore and main-top-sails were cut adrift from the spars, and went eddying away to leeward, like the feathers of an albatross, which sometimes are cast to the winds when that storm-tossed bird is on the wing.

Some hours after midnight, the Typhoon calmed down enough that, thanks to the hard work of Starbuck and Stubb—one working at the front and the other at the back—the torn pieces of the jib and fore and main-top sails were cut loose from the masts and drifted away to leeward, like the feathers of an albatross, which are sometimes blown away when that stormy bird is flying.

The three corresponding new sails were now bent and reefed, and a storm-trysail was set further aft; so that the ship soon went through the water with some precision again; and the course— for the present, East-south-east—which he was to steer, if practicable, was once more given to the helmsman. For during the violence of the gale, he had only steered according to its vicissitudes. But as he was now bringing the ship as near her course as possible, watching the compass meanwhile, lo! a good sign! the wind seemed coming round astern; aye, the foul breeze became fair!

The three new sails were now secured and reefed, and a storm trysail was set further back; soon, the ship moved through the water with some precision again. The helmsman was instructed to steer the course— for the time being, East-southeast— if it was possible. During the intense storm, he had only been steering based on its changes. But as he was now getting the ship as close to her course as he could while monitoring the compass, suddenly! A good sign! The wind seemed to be shifting around from behind; yes, the unfavorable breeze turned favorable!

Instantly the yards were squared, to the lively song of "Ho! the fair wind! oh-ye-ho cheerly, men!" the crew singing for joy, that so promising an event should so soon have falsified the evil portents preceding it.

Instantly, the yards were squared to the lively tune of "Ho! the fair wind! oh-ye-ho cheer up, men!" The crew sang with joy that such a promising event had quickly proven the bad signs before it to be wrong.

In compliance with the standing order of his commander— to report immediately, and at any one of the twenty-four hours, any decided change in the affairs of the deck,—Starbuck had no sooner trimmed the yards to the breeze—however reluctantly and gloomily,—than he mechanically went below to apprise Captain Ahab of the circumstance.

In line with his commander's standing order—to report immediately, at any hour of the day or night, any significant change on deck—Starbuck had just adjusted the sails to catch the wind, albeit with reluctance and a heavy heart, when he automatically went below to inform Captain Ahab of the situation.

Ere knocking at his state-room, he involuntarily paused before it a moment. The cabin lamp—taking long swings this way and that— was burning fitfully, and casting fitful shadows upon the old man's bolted door,—a thin one, with fixed blinds inserted, in place of upper panels. The isolated subterraneousness of the cabin made a certain humming silence to reign there, though it was hooped round by all the roar of the elements. The loaded muskets in the rack were shiningly revealed, as they stood upright against the forward bulkhead. Starbuck was an honest, upright man; but out of Starbuck's heart, at that instant when he saw the muskets, there strangely evolved an evil thought; but so blent with its neutral or good accompaniments that for the instant he hardly knew it for itself.

Before knocking on his state room, he paused for a moment. The cabin lamp—swaying back and forth—was flickering, casting unpredictable shadows on the old man's locked door, which was thin with fixed shutters instead of upper panels. The cabin's isolation created a certain humming silence, even with all the elements roaring outside. The loaded muskets in the rack gleamed as they stood upright against the forward bulkhead. Starbuck was an honest, decent man; yet, at that moment when he saw the muskets, an unsettling thought formed in his mind, so mixed with neutral or good feelings that for a moment he barely recognized it as his own.

"He would have shot me once," he murmured, "yes, there's the very musket that he pointed at me;—that one with the studded stock; let me touch it—lift it. Strange, that I, who have handled so many deadly lances, strange, that I should shake so now. Loaded? I must see. Aye, aye; and powder in the pan;— that's not good. Best spill it?—wait. I'll cure myself of this. I'll hold the musket boldly while I think.—I come to report a fair wind to him. But how fair? Fair for death and doom,— that's fair for Moby Dick. It's a fair wind that's only fair for that accursed fish.—The very tube he pointed at me!—the very one; this one—I hold it here; he would have killed me with the very thing I handle now.—Aye and he would fain kill all his crew. Does he not say he will not strike his spars to any gale? Has he not dashed his heavenly quadrant? and in these same perilous seas, gropes he not his way by mere dead reckoning of the error-abounding log? and in this very Typhoon, did he not swear that he would have no lightning-rods? But shall this crazed old man be tamely suffered to drag a whole ship's company down to doom with him?—Yes, it would make him the wilful murderer of thirty men and more, if this ship come to any deadly harm; and come to deadly harm, my soul swears this ship will, if Ahab have his way. If, then, he were this instant— put aside, that crime would not be his. Ha! is he muttering in his sleep? Yes, just there,—in there, he's sleeping. Sleeping? aye, but still alive, and soon awake again. I can't withstand thee, then, old man. Not reasoning; not remonstrance; not entreaty wilt thou hearken to; all this thou scornest. Flat obedience to thy own flat commands, this is all thou breathest. Aye, and say'st the men have vow'd thy vow; say'st all of us are Ahabs. Great God forbid!— But is there no other way? no lawful way?—Make him a prisoner to be taken home? What! hope to wrest this old man's living power from his own living hands? Only a fool would try it. Say he were pinioned even; knotted all over with ropes and hawsers; chained down to ring-bolts on this cabin floor; he would be more hideous than a caged tiger, then. I could not endure the sight; could not possibly fly his howlings; all comfort, sleep itself, inestimable reason would leave me on the long intolerable voyage. What, then, remains? The land is hundreds of leagues away, and locked Japan the nearest. I stand alone here upon an open sea, with two oceans and a whole continent between me and law.—Aye, aye, 'tis so.— Is heaven a murderer when its lightning strikes a would-be murderer in his bed, tindering sheets and skin together?— And would I be a murderer, then, if"—and slowly, stealthily, and half sideways looking, he placed the loaded musket's end against the door.

"He would have shot me once," he whispered, "yes, that's the very musket he aimed at me;—that one with the studded stock; let me touch it—lift it. It’s strange that I, who have handled so many deadly lances, would be trembling now. Is it loaded? I need to check. Yes, yes; and there's powder in the pan;— that's not good. Should I spill it?—wait. I’ll get over this. I’ll hold the musket confidently while I think.—I’m here to report a fair wind to him. But how fair? Fair for death and disaster,— that’s fair for Moby Dick. It’s a fair wind that’s only good for that cursed fish.—The very gun he aimed at me!—the exact one; this one—I’m holding it now; he would have killed me with the very thing I’m holding.—Yes, and he would likely kill all his crew. Doesn’t he say he won’t lower his sails to any storm? Hasn’t he smashed his precious quadrant? And in these same dangerous seas, doesn’t he navigate purely by the flawed log’s dead reckoning? And in this very Typhoon, didn’t he swear he wouldn’t use any lightning rods? But should this crazed old man be allowed to drag an entire crew to doom with him?—Yes, he would be the deliberate murderer of thirty men and more if this ship comes to any harm; and my soul swears this ship will come to harm if Ahab has his way. If, then, he were right this moment— aside from that, the crime wouldn’t be his. Ha! Is he mumbling in his sleep? Yes, right there,—in there, he’s sleeping. Sleeping? Yes, but still alive, and will wake again soon. I can't resist you, then, old man. You won’t listen to reason; not to protests; not to pleas; you sneer at all this. You only take flat obedience to your flat commands; this is all you breathe. Yes, and you say the men have vowed your vow; you say all of us are Ahabs. Great God forbid!— But is there no other way? No legal way?—Make him a prisoner to take him home? What! Hope to take this old man’s power from his own hands? Only a fool would try it. Even if he were bound; tied up with ropes and hawsers; chained to ring-bolts on this cabin floor; he’d be more terrifying than a caged tiger then. I could not stand to see it; couldn’t possibly escape his howling; all comfort, sleep itself, and even reason would abandon me on this long, unbearable journey. What remains then? The land is hundreds of leagues away, and locked Japan is the nearest. I stand alone here on an open sea, with two oceans and a whole continent between me and the law.—Yes, yes, it’s true.—Is heaven a murderer when its lightning strikes a would-be murderer in his bed, burning sheets and skin together?—And would I be a murderer then, if"—and slowly, stealthily, half-glancing, he placed the loaded musket's end against the door.

"On this level, Ahab's hammock swings within; his head this way. A touch, and Starbuck may survive to hug his wife and child again.— Oh Mary! Mary!—boy! boy! boy!—But if I wake thee not to death, old man, who can tell to what unsounded deeps Starbuck's body this day week may sink, with all the crew! Great God, where art Thou? Shall I? shall I?—The wind has gone down and shifted, sir; the fore and main topsails are reefed and set! she heads her course."

"On this level, Ahab's hammock swings inside; his head this way. With a touch, Starbuck might survive to embrace his wife and child again.— Oh Mary! Mary!—boy! boy! boy!—But if I don’t wake you up to death, old man, who knows what unknown depths Starbuck's body might sink to this time next week, along with the whole crew! Great God, where are You? Should I? Should I?—The wind has died down and changed direction, sir; the fore and main topsails are reefed and set! She’s on course."

"Stern all! Oh Moby Dick, I clutch thy heart at last!"

"Stern all! Oh Moby Dick, I've finally got your heart!"

Such were the sounds that now came hurtling from out the old man's tormented sleep, as if Starbuck's voice had caused the long dumb dream to speak.

Such were the sounds that now erupted from the old man's troubled sleep, as if Starbuck's voice had awakened the long-silent dream to share its thoughts.

The yet levelled musket shook like a drunkard's arm against the panel; Starbuck seemed wrestling with an angel, but turning from the door, he placed the death-tube in its rack, and left the place.

The unsteady musket rattled against the panel like a drunk person's arm; Starbuck appeared to be grappling with a strong force, but after turning away from the door, he set the weapon in its rack and exited the space.

"He's too sound asleep, Mr. Stubb; go thou down, and wake him, and tell him. I must see to the deck here. Thou know'st what to say."

"He's fast asleep, Mr. Stubb; go down and wake him up, and let him know. I need to take care of things on the deck here. You know what to say."

CHAPTER 124

The Needle

The Needle

Next morning the not-yet-subsided sea rolled in long slow billows of mighty bulk, and striving in the Pequod's gurgling track, pushed her on like giants' palms outspread. The strong unstaggering breeze abounded so, that sky and air seemed vast outbellying sails; the whole world boomed before the wind. Muffled in the full morning light, the invisible sun was only known by the spread intensity of his place; where his bayonet rays moved on in stacks. Emblazonings, as of crowned Babylonian kings and queens, reigned over everything. The sea was as a crucible of molten gold, that bubblingly leaps with light and heat.

Next morning, the still-restless sea rolled in with long, slow waves, pushing the Pequod along like giant hands reaching out. The strong, steady breeze was so powerful that the sky and air seemed like massive sails; the entire world thundered before the wind. Bathed in the full morning light, the invisible sun was only apparent by the intense glow of his spot, where his sharp rays stacked up. Decorations, like those of crowned Babylonian kings and queens, spread over everything. The sea looked like a crucible of molten gold, bubbling with light and heat.

Long maintaining an enchanted silence, Ahab stood apart; and every time the teetering ship loweringly pitched down her bowsprit, he turned to eye the bright sun's rays produced ahead; and when she profoundly settled by the stern, he turned behind, and saw the sun's rearward place, and how the same yellow rays were blending with his undeviating wake.

After a long silence, Ahab stood alone; every time the swaying ship dipped her bowsprit down, he looked at the bright sunlight ahead. When the ship tilted back by the stern, he turned around and saw the sun's position behind him, noticing how those same yellow rays mixed with his steady wake.

"Ha, ha, my ship! thou mightest well be taken now for the sea-chariot of the sun. Ho, ho! all ye nations before my prow, I bring the sun to ye! Yoke on the further billows; hallo! a tandem, I drive the sea!"

"Ha, ha, my ship! You could easily be mistaken for the sun's chariot now. Ho, ho! All you nations in front of me, I'm bringing the sun to you! Get ready on the waves ahead; hello! I'm steering the sea in tandem!"

But suddenly reined back by some counter thought, he hurried towards the helm, huskily demanding how the ship was heading.

But suddenly held back by another thought, he rushed toward the helm, gruffly asking how the ship was positioned.

"East-sou-east, sir," said the frightened steersman.

"East-southeast, sir," said the scared steersman.

"Thou liest!" smiting him with his clenched fist.
"Heading East at this hour in the morning, and the sun astern?"

"You’re lying!" he said, hitting him with his clenched fist.
"Going East at this time in the morning, with the sun behind us?"

Upon this every soul was confounded; for the phenomenon just then observed by Ahab had unaccountably escaped every one else; but its very blinding palpableness must have been the cause.

Upon this, every person was bewildered; because the phenomenon that Ahab had just noticed had mysteriously gone unnoticed by everyone else; but its glaring obviousness must have been the reason.

Thrusting his head half-way into the binnacle, Ahab caught one glimpse of the compasses; his uplifted arm slowly fell; for a moment he almost seemed to stagger. Standing behind him Starbuck looked, and lo! the two compasses pointed East, and the Pequod was as infallibly going West.

Thrusting his head halfway into the binnacle, Ahab caught a glimpse of the compasses; his raised arm slowly dropped; for a moment, he almost seemed to stumble. Standing behind him, Starbuck looked, and behold! the two compasses pointed East, while the Pequod was unmistakably heading West.

But ere the first wild alarm could get out abroad among the crew, the old
man with a rigid laugh exclaimed, "I have it! It has happened before.
Mr. Starbuck, last night's thunder turned our compasses—that's all.
Thou hast before now heard of such a thing, I take it."

But before the first wild alarm could spread among the crew, the old man let out a stiff laugh and said, "I've got it! It's happened before. Mr. Starbuck, last night's thunder messed up our compasses—that's all. You've heard of this kind of thing before, right?"

"Aye; but never before has it happened to me, sir," said the pale mate, gloomily.

"Aye; but it has never happened to me before, sir," said the pale mate, looking gloomy.

Here, it must needs be said, that accidents like this have in more than one case occurred to ships in violent storms. The magnetic energy, as developed in the mariner's needle, is, as all know, essentially one with the electricity beheld in heaven; hence it is not to be much marvelled at, that such things should be. In instances where the lightning has actually struck the vessel, so as to smite down some of the spars and rigging, the effect upon the needle has at times been still more fatal; all its loadstone virtue being annihilated, so that the before magnetic steel was of no more use than an old wife's knitting needle. But in either case, the needle never again, of itself, recovers the original virtue thus marred or lost; and if the binnacle compasses be affected, the same fate reaches all the others that may be in the ship; even were the lowermost one inserted into the kelson.

Here, it must be said that accidents like this have happened more than once to ships caught in violent storms. The magnetic energy, as seen in the sailor's compass, is essentially the same as the electricity observed in the sky; therefore, it's not surprising that such events occur. In cases where lightning has struck the ship, damaging some of the masts and rigging, the impact on the compass has sometimes been even worse; all its magnetic quality can be completely destroyed, rendering the previously useful magnetic steel as useless as an old knitting needle. In either case, the compass never regains its original function after being damaged or lost; if the binnacle compasses are affected, the same fate befalls all the others on the ship, even if the lowest one is placed deep in the hull.

Deliberately standing before the binnacle, and eyeing the transpointed compasses, the old man, with the sharp of his extended hand, now took the precise bearing of the sun, and satisfied that the needles were exactly inverted, shouted out his orders for the ship's course to be changed accordingly. The yards were hard up; and once more the Pequod thrust her undaunted bows into the opposing wind, for the supposed fair one had only been juggling her.

Deliberately standing in front of the binnacle and looking at the adjusted compasses, the old man, with the tip of his outstretched hand, took the exact direction of the sun. Satisfied that the needles were accurately positioned, he shouted out his orders to change the ship's course accordingly. The yards were tilted hard; and once again, the Pequod drove her fearless bows into the opposing wind, as the supposedly favorable one had just been playing tricks on them.

Meanwhile, whatever were his own secret thoughts, Starbuck said nothing, but quietly he issued all requisite orders; while Stubb and Flask—who in some small degree seemed then to be sharing his feelings—likewise unmurmuringly acquiesced. As for the men, though some of them lowly rumbled, their fear of Ahab was greater than their fear of Fate. But as ever before, the pagan harpooneers remained almost wholly unimpressed; or if impressed, it was only with a certain magnetism shot into their congenial hearts from inflexible Ahab's.

Meanwhile, no matter what his private thoughts were, Starbuck said nothing and calmly gave all necessary orders; while Stubb and Flask—who seemed to share some of his feelings—silently agreed. As for the crew, although a few grumbled quietly, their fear of Ahab was stronger than their fear of Fate. But as always, the pagan harpooneers remained mostly unaffected; or if they were affected, it was only by the magnetic influence that Ahab’s strong presence had on their hearts.

For a space the old man walked the deck in rolling reveries. But chancing to slip with his ivory heel, he saw the crushed copper sight-tubes of the quadrant he had the day before dashed to the deck.

For a while, the old man walked the deck lost in thought. But when he happened to slip with his ivory heel, he noticed the damaged copper sight tubes of the quadrant he had knocked to the deck the day before.

"Thou poor, proud heaven-gazer and sun's pilot! yesterday I wrecked thee, and to-day the compasses would fain have wrecked me. So, so. But Ahab is lord over the level loadstone yet. Mr. Starbuck—a lance without the pole; a top-maul, and the smallest of the sail-maker's needles. Quick!"

"Poor, proud sky-watcher and sun's navigator! Yesterday I ruined you, and today the compasses almost ruined me. Well, well. But Ahab still rules over the steady magnet. Mr. Starbuck—a spear without the tip; a heavy hammer, and the tiniest of the sail-maker's needles. Hurry!"

Accessory, perhaps, to the impulse dictating the thing he was now about to do, were certain prudential motives, whose object might have been to revive the spirits of his crew by a stroke of his subtile skill, in a matter so wondrous as that of the inverted compasses. Besides, the old man well knew that to steer by transpointed needles, though clumsily practicable, was not a thing to be passed over by superstitious sailors, without some shudderings and evil portents.

Accessory, maybe, to the desire driving him to act now, were some practical reasons aimed at lifting the spirits of his crew with a display of his clever skill, in a matter as amazing as the reversed compasses. Furthermore, the old man knew that navigating with redirected needles, even if it could be done clumsily, was not something superstitious sailors would overlook without feeling uneasy and sensing bad omens.

"Men," said he, steadily turning upon the crew, as the mate handed him the things he had demanded, "my men, the thunder turned old Ahab's needles; but out of this bit of steel Ahab can make one of his own, that will point as true as any."

"Men," he said, confidently looking at the crew as the mate passed him the items he requested, "my men, the thunder changed old Ahab's compass; but with this piece of steel, Ahab can create his own that will point as accurately as any."

Abashed glances of servile wonder were exchanged by the sailors, as this was said; and with fascinated eyes they awaited whatever magic might follow. But Starbuck looked away.

Abashed looks of servile wonder were exchanged by the sailors as this was said, and with fascinated eyes, they anticipated whatever magic might come next. But Starbuck looked away.

With a blow from the top-maul Ahab knocked off the steel head of the lance, and then handing to the mate the long iron rod remaining, bade him hold it upright, without its touching the deck. Then, with the maul, after repeatedly smiting the upper end of this iron rod, he placed the blunted needle endwise on the top of it, and less strongly hammered that, several times, the mate still holding the rod as before. Then going through some small strange motions with it—whether indispensable to the magnetizing of the steel, or merely intended to augment the awe of the crew, is uncertain— he called for linen thread; and moving to the binnacle, slipped out the two reversed needles there, and horizontally suspended the sail-needle by its middle, over one of the compass cards. At first, the steel went round and round, quivering and vibrating at either end; but at last it settled to its place, when Ahab, who had been intently watching for this result, stepped frankly back from the binnacle, and pointing his stretched arm towards it, exclaimed,—"Look ye, for yourselves, if Ahab be not the lord of the level loadstone! The sun is East, and that compass swears it!"

With a hit from the top-maul, Ahab knocked off the steel tip of the lance, then handed the long iron rod that was left to the mate and told him to hold it upright without it touching the deck. Then, using the maul, he repeatedly struck the upper end of this iron rod, and positioned the blunted needle on top of it, giving that a few solid hits while the mate continued to hold the rod as before. After going through some odd little motions with it—whether necessary for magnetizing the steel or just to impress the crew is unclear—he called for some linen thread; then moving to the binnacle, he pulled out the two reversed needles there and horizontally suspended the sail-needle by its middle over one of the compass cards. At first, the steel spun around, quivering and vibrating at both ends; but eventually, it settled into place. Ahab, who had been closely watching for this, stepped back from the binnacle and pointing his outstretched arm towards it, exclaimed, "Look for yourselves, if Ahab is not the master of the level loadstone! The sun is East, and that compass confirms it!"

One after another they peered in, for nothing but their own eyes could persuade such ignorance as theirs, and one after another they slunk away.

One by one, they looked in, since only their own eyes could convince them of their ignorance, and one by one, they slinked away.

In his fiery eyes of scorn and triumph, you then saw Ahab in all his fatal pride.

In his intense eyes filled with disdain and victory, you then saw Ahab in all his tragic pride.

CHAPTER 125

The Log and Line

The Log and Line

While now the fated Pequod had been so long afloat this voyage, the log and line had but very seldom been in use. Owing to a confident reliance upon other means of determining the vessel's place, some merchantmen, and many whalemen, especially when cruising, wholly neglect to heave the log; though at the same time, and frequently more for form's sake than anything else, regularly putting down upon the customary slate the course steered by the ship, as well as the presumed average rate of progression every hour. It had been thus with the Pequod. The wooden reel and angular log attached hung, long untouched, just beneath the railing of the after bulwarks. Rains and spray had damped it; the sun and wind had warped it; all the elements had combined to rot a thing that hung so idly. But heedless of all this, his mood seized Ahab, as he happened to glance upon the reel, not many hours after the magnet scene, and he remembered how his quadrant was no more, and recalled his frantic oath about the level log and line. The ship was sailing plungingly; astern the billows rolled in riots.

While the doomed Pequod had been out on this voyage for quite a while, the log and line had rarely been used. Due to a strong reliance on other ways to find the ship's location, some merchant ships and many whalers, especially when cruising, completely neglect to use the log. At the same time, and often more for appearances than anything else, they consistently note on the usual slate the course the ship is taking and the estimated average speed every hour. This had been the case with the Pequod. The wooden reel and angular log hung untouched just beneath the railing of the after bulwarks for a long time. Rain and spray had soaked it; the sun and wind had warped it; all the elements had worked together to rot something that hung so idly. But ignoring all of this, Ahab's mood shifted as he glanced at the reel, not long after the magnet scene, and remembered that his quadrant was gone, recalling his desperate vow about the level log and line. The ship was sailing heavily; behind her, the waves rolled with chaos.

"Forward, there! Heave the log!"

"Move forward! Lift the log!"

Two seamen came. The golden-hued Tahitian and the grizzly Manxman.
"Take the reel, one of ye, I'll heave."

Two sailors arrived. The sun-kissed Tahitian and the grizzled Manxman.
"One of you grab the reel, I'll pull."

They went towards the extreme stern, on the ship's lee side, where the deck, with the oblique energy of the wind, was now almost dipping into the creamy, sidelong-rushing sea.

They moved toward the back of the ship, on the sheltered side, where the deck, pushed by the angled wind, was nearly dipping into the frothy, rushing sea.

The Manxman took the reel, and holding it high up, by the projecting handle-ends of the spindle, round which the spool of line revolved, so stood with the angular log hanging downwards, till Ahab advanced to him.

The Manxman grabbed the reel, holding it up by the projecting handle ends of the spindle, around which the spool of line turned, and stood like that with the angular log hanging down until Ahab approached him.

Ahab stood before him, and was lightly unwinding some thirty or forty turns to form a preliminary hand-coil to toss overboard, when the old Manxman, who was intently eyeing both him and the line, made bold to speak.

Ahab stood in front of him, casually unwinding about thirty or forty turns to create a hand-coil to toss overboard, when the old Manxman, who was closely watching both him and the line, felt daring enough to speak.

"Sir, I mistrust it; this line looks far gone, long heat and wet have spoiled it."

"Sir, I don't trust it; this line looks pretty worn out; prolonged heat and moisture have ruined it."

"'Twill hold, old gentleman. Long heat and wet, have they spoiled thee?
Thou seem'st to hold. Or, truer perhaps, life holds thee; not thou it."

"It will hold, old man. Has long heat and moisture ruined you?
You seem to hold on. Or, to be more accurate, life holds you; you don't hold it."

"I hold the spool, sir. But just as my captain says. With these grey hairs of mine 'tis not worth while disputing, 'specially with a superior, who'll ne'er confess."

"I have the spool, sir. But just as my captain says. With these grey hairs of mine, it’s not worth arguing, especially with a superior who’ll never admit when they’re wrong."

"What's that? There now's a patched professor in Queen Nature's granite-founded College; but methinks he's too subservient. Where wert thou born?"

"What's that? There's a patched professor at Queen Nature's granite-founded College; but I think he's too submissive. Where were you born?"

"In the little rocky Isle of Man, sir."

"In the small rocky Isle of Man, sir."

"Excellent! Thou'st hit the world by that."

"Excellent! You've nailed it with that."

"I know not, sir, but I was born there."

"I don't know, sir, but I was born there."

"In the Isle of Man, hey? Well, the other way, it's good.
Here's a man from Man; a man born in once independent Man, and now
unmanned of Man; which is sucked in—by what? Up with the reel!
The dead, blind wall butts all inquiring heads at last.
Up with it! So."

"In the Isle of Man, right? Well, the opposite direction, it’s fine.
Here’s a guy from Man; a guy born in once independent Man, and now
stripped of its identity; which is being drawn in—by what? Bring it on!
The dead, blind wall blocks all curious minds at last.
Bring it on! So."

The log was heaved. The loose coils rapidly straightened out in a long dragging line astern, and then, instantly, the reel began to whirl. In turn, jerkingly raised and lowered by the rolling billows, the towing resistance of the log caused the old reelman to stagger strangely.

The log was lifted. The loose coils quickly straightened into a long line behind the boat, and then, suddenly, the reel started to spin. As the rolling waves jerkily lifted and lowered the log, the resistance from towing it made the old reelman stagger awkwardly.

"Hold hard!"

"Wait up!"

Snap! the overstrained line sagged down in one long festoon; the tugging log was gone.

Snap! The overstrained line sagged down in one long loop; the pulling log was gone.

"I crush the quadrant, the thunder turns the needles, and now the mad sea parts the log-line. But Ahab can mend all. Haul in here, Tahitian; reel up, Manxman. And look ye, let the carpenter make another log, and mend thou the line. See to it."

"I crush the quadrant, the thunder spins the needles, and now the raging sea parts the log-line. But Ahab can fix everything. Pull it in here, Tahitian; reel it in, Manxman. And look, let the carpenter make another log and repair the line. Make sure of it."

"There he goes now; to him nothing's happened; but to me, the skewer seems loosening out of the middle of the world. Haul in, haul in, Tahitian! These lines run whole, and whirling out: come in broken, and dragging slow. Ha, Pip? come to help; eh, Pip?"

"There he goes now; to him, nothing's happened; but for me, the skewer feels like it's pulling away from the center of the world. Pull in, pull in, Tahitian! These lines are running straight, but when they come back, they’re broken and dragging slowly. Ha, Pip? Come help me, huh, Pip?"

"Pip? whom call ye Pip? Pip jumped from the whaleboat. Pip's missing. Let's see now if ye haven't fished him up here, fisherman. It drags hard; I guess he's holding on. Jerk him, Tahiti! Jerk him off we haul in no cowards here. Ho! there's his arm just breaking water. A hatchet! a hatchet! cut it off—we haul in no cowards here. Captain Ahab! sir, sir! here's Pip, trying to get on board again."

"Pip? Who are you calling Pip? Pip jumped out of the whaleboat. Pip's missing. Let's see if you haven't pulled him up here, fisherman. It’s pulling hard; I bet he's holding on. Pull him up, Tahiti! Get him off—we don’t tolerate cowards here. Hey! There’s his arm sticking out of the water. A hatchet! A hatchet! Cut it off—we don’t tolerate cowards here. Captain Ahab! Sir, sir! Here’s Pip, trying to get back on board."

"Peace, thou crazy loon," cried the Manxman, seizing him by the arm.
"Away from the quarter-deck!"

"Calm down, you madman," shouted the Manxman, grabbing him by the arm.
"Get away from the quarter-deck!"

"The greater idiot ever scolds the lesser," muttered Ahab, advancing.
"Hands off from that holiness! Where sayest thou Pip was, boy?

"The bigger fool always criticizes the smaller one," muttered Ahab, moving forward.
"Stay away from that holiness! Where do you say Pip is, boy?

"Astern there, sir, astern! Lo! lo!"

"Back there, sir, back! Look! Look!"

"And who art thou, boy? I see not my reflection in the vacant pupils of thy eyes. Oh God! that man should be a thing for immortal souls to sieve through! Who art thou, boy?"

"And who are you, boy? I don't see my reflection in the empty pupils of your eyes. Oh God! How can a man be something for immortal souls to sift through! Who are you, boy?"

"Bell-boy, sir; ship's-crier; ding, dong, ding! Pip! Pip! Pip! One hundred pounds of clay reward for Pip; five feet high—looks cowardly— quickest known by that! Ding, dong, ding! Who's seen Pip the coward?"

"Bellboy, sir; ship's announcer; ding, dong, ding! Pip! Pip! Pip! One hundred pounds reward for Pip; five feet tall—looks cowardly—the quickest way to spot him! Ding, dong, ding! Who's seen Pip the coward?"

"There can be no hearts above the snow-line. Oh, ye frozen heavens! look down here. Ye did beget this luckless child, and have abandoned him, ye creative libertines. Here, boy; Ahab's cabin shall be Pip's home henceforth, while Ahab lives. Thou touchest my inmost centre, boy; thou art tied to me by cords woven of my heart-strings. Come, let's down."

"There can't be any hearts above the snow line. Oh, frozen skies! Look down here. You gave life to this unfortunate child and have left him behind, you artistic rebels. Here, boy; Ahab's cabin will be Pip's home from now on, as long as Ahab lives. You reach my deepest feelings, boy; you're connected to me by threads made from my heartstrings. Come on, let's go down."

"What's this? here's velvet shark-skin," intently gazing at Ahab's hand, and feeling it. "Ah, now, had poor Pip but felt so kind a thing as this, perhaps he had ne'er been lost! This seems to me, sir, as a man-rope; something that weak souls may hold by. Oh, sir, let old Perth now come and rivet these two hands together; the black one with the white, for I will not let this go."

"What's this? Here's velvet shark skin," he said, intently looking at Ahab's hand and feeling it. "Ah, if only poor Pip could have felt something as nice as this, maybe he wouldn't have gotten lost! This feels to me like a lifeline; something that weak souls can hold onto. Oh, sir, let old Perth come now and bind these two hands together; the black one with the white, because I won't let this go."

"Oh, boy, nor will I thee, unless I should thereby drag thee to worse horrors than are here. Come, then, to my cabin. Lo! ye believers in gods all goodness, and in man all ill, lo you! see the omniscient gods oblivious of suffering man; and man, though idiotic, and knowing not what he does, yet full of the sweet things of love and gratitude. Come! I feel prouder leading thee by thy black hand, than though I grasped an Emperor's!"

"Oh, man, I won't either, unless it ends up dragging you into worse nightmares than what’s happening here. Come on, let’s go to my cabin. Look! You who believe in gods as all good and man as all bad, look! See the all-knowing gods ignoring the suffering of humanity; and man, although foolish and unaware of his actions, still full of love and gratitude. Come! I feel prouder holding your black hand than if I were shaking an Emperor's!"

"There go two daft ones now," muttered the old Manxman.
"One daft with strength, the other daft with weakness.
But here's the end of the rotten line—all dripping, too.
Mend it, eh? I think we had best have a new line altogether.
I'll see Mr. Stubb about it."

"There go two fools now," muttered the old Manxman.
"One fool is strong, the other is weak.
But here's the end of the bad line—all soaked, too.
Fix it, huh? I think we better get a whole new line instead.
I'll talk to Mr. Stubb about it."

CHAPTER 126

The Life-Buoy

The Lifesaver

Steering now south-eastward by Ahab's levelled steel, and her progress solely determined by Ahab's level log and line; the Pequod held on her path towards the Equator. Making so long a passage through such unfrequented waters, descrying no ships, and ere long, sideways impelled by unvarying trade winds, over waves monotonously mild; all these seemed the strange calm things preluding some riotous and desperate scene.

Steering now southeast by Ahab's steady course, and her progress entirely guided by Ahab's precise measurements; the Pequod continued her journey toward the Equator. After spending so much time in these rarely traveled waters, seeing no ships, and soon being pushed sideways by constant trade winds, over waves that were endlessly gentle; all of this felt like an eerie calm before some chaotic and desperate event.

At last, when the ship drew near to the outskirts, as it were, of the Equatorial fishing-ground, and in the deep darkness that goes before the dawn, was sailing by a cluster of rocky islets; the watch—then headed by Flask—was startled by a cry so plaintively wild and unearthly—like half-articulated wailings of the ghosts of all Herod's murdered Innocents—that one and all, they started from their reveries, and for the space of some moments stood, or sat, or leaned all transfixed by listening, like the carved Roman slave, while that wild cry remained within hearing. The Christian or civilized part of the crew said it was mermaids, and shuddered; but the pagan harpooneers remained unappalled. Yet the grey Manxman—the oldest mariner of all—declared that the wild thrilling sounds that were heard, were the voices of newly drowned men in the sea.

At last, as the ship approached the edge of the Equatorial fishing grounds, and in the deep darkness just before dawn, it passed a group of rocky islets. The watch, led by Flask, was jolted by a cry that was hauntingly wild and otherworldly—like the half-formed wails of the ghosts of all Herod's murdered Innocents. They all snapped out of their daydreams and stood, sat, or leaned there frozen, listening, like a stone statue of a Roman slave, while that eerie cry lingered in the air. The more Christian or civilized crew claimed it was mermaids and felt a shudder, but the pagan harpooneers were unfazed. However, the old Manxman—the most experienced sailor of all—insisted that the chilling sounds were the voices of men who had just drowned at sea.

Below in his hammock, Ahab did not hear of this till grey dawn, when he came to the deck; it was then recounted to him by Flask, not unaccompanied with hinted dark meanings. He hollowly laughed, and thus explained the wonder.

Below in his hammock, Ahab didn't hear about this until early dawn when he came to the deck; it was then recounted to him by Flask, not without some hinted dark meanings. He laughed in a hollow way and explained the mystery.

Those rocky islands the ship had passed were the resort of great numbers of seals, and some young seals that had lost their dams, or some dams that had lost their cubs, must have risen nigh the ship and kept company with her, crying and sobbing with their human sort of wail. But this only the more affected some of them, because most mariners cherish a very superstitious feeling about seals, arising not only from their peculiar tones when in distress, but also from the human look of their round heads and semi-intelligent faces, seen peeringly uprising from the water alongside. In the sea, under certain circumstances, seals have more than once been mistaken for men.

Those rocky islands the ship passed by were home to many seals, and some young seals that had lost their mothers, or some mothers that had lost their pups, must have come close to the ship and kept her company, crying and sobbing with a human-like wail. This only affected some of the crew more deeply because most sailors have a superstitious feeling about seals, stemming not only from their unique sounds when they're in distress but also from the human-like appearance of their round heads and semi-intelligent faces, which can be seen rising from the water alongside the ship. In the sea, under certain circumstances, seals have often been mistaken for humans.

But the bodings of the crew were destined to receive a most plausible confirmation in the fate of one of their number that morning. At sun-rise this man went from his hammock to his mast-head at the fore; and whether it was that he was not yet half waked from his sleep (for sailors sometimes go aloft in a transition state), whether it was thus with the man, there is now no telling; but, be that as it may, he had not been long at his perch, when a cry was heard—a cry and a rushing—and looking up, they saw a falling phantom in the air; and looking down, a little tossed heap of white bubbles in the blue of the sea.

But the crew’s uneasy feelings were about to receive a strong confirmation from what happened to one of their own that morning. At sunrise, this man climbed from his hammock to the top of the mast. It’s hard to say whether he was still half-asleep (since sailors sometimes go up in a daze), but whatever the reason, it wasn’t long before he was at his post when a scream echoed—a scream followed by a rush—and when they looked up, they saw a falling figure in the air; and looking down, they spotted a small, swirling pile of white bubbles in the deep blue sea.

The life-buoy—a long slender cask—was dropped from the stern, where it always hung obedient to a cunning spring; but no hand rose to seize it, and the sun having long beat upon this cask it had shrunken, so that it slowly filled, and the parched wood also filled at its every pore; and the studded iron-bound cask followed the sailor to the bottom, as if to yield him his pillow, though in sooth but a hard one.

The life preserver—a long, thin barrel—was dropped from the back of the boat, where it always hung, ready to go, but no one reached out to grab it. The sun had been beating down on the barrel for so long that it had shrunk, slowly filling with water, and the dried-out wood absorbed moisture from every pore. The iron-bound barrel sank with the sailor, as if to offer him a pillow, though in reality, it was a hard one.

And thus the first man of the Pequod that mounted the mast to look out for the White Whale, on the White Whale's own peculiar ground; that man was swallowed up in the deep. But few, perhaps, thought of that at the time. Indeed, in some sort, they were not grieved at this event, at least as a portent; for they regarded it, not as a fore-shadowing of evil in the future, but as the fulfilment of an evil already presaged. They declared that now they knew the reason of those wild shrieks they had heard the night before. But again the old Manxman said nay.

And so, the first guy from the Pequod who climbed the mast to look for the White Whale, right in the White Whale’s territory; that guy was lost to the ocean. But probably not many thought about that at the moment. In fact, in a way, they weren’t really upset by this happening, at least not as an omen; they saw it not as a sign of future trouble, but as the fulfillment of something bad that had already been hinted at. They said that now they understood the wild screams they had heard the night before. But once again, the old Manxman disagreed.

The lost life-buoy was now to be replaced; Starbuck was directed to see to it; but as no cask of sufficient lightness could be found, and as in the feverish eagerness of what seemed the approaching crisis of the voyage, all hands were impatient of any toil but what was directly connected with its final end, whatever that might prove to be; therefore, they were going to leave the ship's stern unprovided with a buoy, when by certain strange signs and inuendoes Queequeg hinted a hint concerning his coffin.

The lost life buoy needed to be replaced, and Starbuck was told to take care of it. However, since no light enough cask could be found, and with the intense eagerness that came with what appeared to be the critical moment of the voyage, everyone was impatient with any work that wasn’t directly related to their ultimate goal, whatever that might be. Therefore, they were about to leave the ship’s stern without a buoy when Queequeg subtly hinted at something regarding his coffin.

"A life-buoy of a coffin!" cried Starbuck, starting.

"A lifebuoy of a coffin!" cried Starbuck, startled.

"Rather queer, that, I should say," said Stubb.

"That's pretty odd, I would say," Stubb remarked.

"It will make a good enough one," said Flask, "the carpenter here can arrange it easily."

"It'll work just fine," said Flask, "the carpenter can handle it easily."

"Bring it up; there's nothing else for it," said Starbuck, after a melancholy pause. "Rig it, carpenter; do not look at me so— the coffin, I mean. Dost thou hear me? Rig it."

"Bring it up; there's no other choice," said Starbuck, after a sad pause. "Get it ready, carpenter; don't look at me like that—the coffin, I mean. Do you hear me? Get it ready."

"And shall I nail down the lid, sir?" moving his hand as with a hammer.

"And should I secure the lid, sir?" he said, moving his hand as if holding a hammer.

"Aye."

"Yes."

"And shall I caulk the seams, sir?" moving his hand as with a caulking-iron.

"And should I seal the gaps, sir?" he said, moving his hand like he was using a caulking tool.

"Aye."

"Yep."

"And shall I then pay over the same with pitch, sir?" moving his hand as with a pitch-pot.

"And should I then hand it over with pitch, sir?" he said, moving his hand like he was using a pitch-pot.

Away! What possesses thee to this? Make a life-buoy of the coffin, and no more.—Mr. Stubb, Mr. Flask, come forward with me."

Away! What’s got into you? Use the coffin as a life buoy and nothing more. —Mr. Stubb, Mr. Flask, come forward with me.

"He goes off in a huff. The whole he can endure; at the parts he baulks. Now I don't like this. I make a leg for Captain Ahab, and he wears it like a gentleman; but I make a bandbox for Queequeg, and he won't put his head into it. Are all my pains to go for nothing with that coffin? And now I'm ordered to make a life-buoy of it. It's like turning an old coat; going to bring the flesh on the other side now. I don't like this cobbling sort of business— I don't like it at all; it's undignified; it's not my place. Let tinkers' brats do tinkerings; we are their betters. I like to take in hand none but clean, virgin, fair-and-square mathematical jobs, something that regularly begins at the beginning, and is at the middle when midway, and comes to an end at the conclusion; not a cobbler's job, that's at an end in the middle, and at the beginning at the end. It's the old woman's tricks to be giving cobbling jobs. Lord! what an affection all old women have for tinkers. I know an old woman of sixty-five who ran away with a bald-headed young tinker once. And that's the reason I never would work for lonely widow old women ashore when I kept my job-shop in the Vineyard; they might have taken it into their lonely old heads to run off with me. But heigh-ho! there are no caps at sea but snow-caps. Let me see. Nail down the lid; caulk the seams; pay over the same with pitch; batten them down tight, and hang it with the snap-spring over the ship's stern. Were ever such things done before with a coffin? Some superstitious old carpenters, now, would be tied up in the rigging, ere they would do the job. But I'm made of knotty Aroostook hemlock; I don't budge. Cruppered with a coffin! Sailing about with a grave-yard tray! But never mind. We workers in woods make bridal bedsteads and card-tables, as well as coffins and hearses. We work by the month, or by the job, or by the profit; not for us to ask the why and wherefore of our work, unless it be too confounded cobbling, and then we stash it if we can. Hem! I'll do the job, now, tenderly. I'll have me—let's see—how many in the ship's company, all told? But I've forgotten. Any way, I'll have me thirty separate, Turk's-headed life-lines, each three feet long hanging all round to the coffin. Then, if the hull go down, there'll be thirty lively fellows all fighting for one coffin, a sight not seen very often beneath the sun! Come hammer, caulking-iron, pitch-pot, and marling-spike! Let's to it."

"He storms off in a huff. He can handle the whole thing; it’s just the specific parts that get to him. Now I don’t like this. I make a leg for Captain Ahab, and he wears it like a gentleman; but I make a bandbox for Queequeg, and he won’t even put his head in it. Are all my efforts wasted on that coffin? And now I’m told to make a lifebuoy out of it. It's like turning an old coat; it's going to bring the fabric out on the other side now. I don’t like this patching-up kind of work—I don’t like it at all; it’s undignified; it’s not my responsibility. Let the tinkers’ kids do the tinkering; we’re better than them. I’d rather tackle only clean, fresh, straightforward math jobs, something that properly starts at the beginning, is halfway through at the middle, and wraps up at the end; not some cobbler's task that ends in the middle and starts at the end. It’s an old woman’s tricks to hand out cobbler jobs. Goodness! what fascination all old women have for tinkers. I know an old woman of sixty-five who once ran off with a bald-headed young tinker. And that’s why I never wanted to work for lonely widow old women ashore when I ran my job shop in the Vineyard; they might have gotten it into their lonely old heads to run off with me. But anyway! there are no caps at sea but snow caps. Let me see. Nail down the lid; seal the seams; coat it all with pitch; batten them down tight, and hang it with the snap-spring over the ship’s stern. Have such things ever been done before with a coffin? Some superstitious old carpenters would be tied up in the rigging before they’d take on that job. But I’m made of tough Aroostook hemlock; I won’t budge. Scrambling with a coffin! Sailing around with a graveyard tray! But whatever. We woodworkers make bridal beds and card tables, as well as coffins and hearses. We work by the month, or by the job, or by the profit; it’s not for us to question the why and how of our work, unless it’s too darned cobbling, and then we stash it if we can. Ahem! I’ll do the job now, delicately. Let’s see—how many in the ship’s crew, all together? But I’ve forgotten. Anyway, I’ll have thirty separate, Turk’s-head lifelines, each three feet long hanging all around the coffin. Then, if the hull goes down, there’ll be thirty active guys all fighting for that one coffin, a sight not often seen under the sun! Come on, hammer, caulking iron, pitch pot, and marling spike! Let’s get to it."

CHAPTER 127

The Deck

The Deck

The coffin laid upon two line-tubs, between the vice-bench and the open hatchway; the Carpenter caulking its seams; the string of twisted oakum slowly unwinding from a large roll of it placed in the bosom of his frock.—Ahab comes slowly from the cabin-gangway, and hears Pip following him.

The coffin rested on two line-tubs, between the vice-bench and the open hatchway; the Carpenter was caulking its seams, with a string of twisted oakum slowly unwinding from a large roll of it tucked in the pocket of his coat. Ahab walked slowly from the cabin entrance, hearing Pip follow behind him.

Back lad; I will be with ye again presently. He goes!
Not this hand complies with my humor more genially than that boy.—
Middle aisle of a church! What's here?"

Back off, kid; I’ll be with you again soon. He’s leaving!
This hand doesn’t match my mood better than that boy.
Middle aisle of a church! What’s going on here?"

"Life-buoy, sir. Mr. Starbuck's orders. Oh, look, sir!
Beware the hatchway!"

"Life buoy, sir. Mr. Starbuck's orders. Oh, look, sir!
Watch out for the hatchway!"

"Thank ye, man. Thy coffin lies handy to the vault."

"Thank you, man. Your coffin is nearby the vault."

"Sir? The hatchway? oh! So it does, sir, so it does."

"Sir? The hatchway? Oh! It really does, sir, it really does."

"Art not thou the leg-maker? Look, did not this stump come from thy shop?"

"Are you the leg-maker? Look, didn't this stump come from your shop?"

"I believe it did, sir; does the ferrule stand, sir?"

"I think it did, sir; is the ferrule in place, sir?"

"Well enough. But art thou not also the undertaker?"

"That's fine. But aren't you also the one handling the arrangements?"

"Aye, sir; I patched up this thing here as a coffin for Queequeg; but they've set me now to turning it into something else."

"Aye, sir; I fixed this thing up as a coffin for Queequeg, but now they have me turning it into something else."

"Then tell me; art thou not an arrant, all-grasping, intermeddling, monopolizing, heathenish old scamp, to be one day making legs, and the next day coffins to clap them in, and yet again life-buoys out of those same coffins? Thou art as unprincipled as the gods, and as much of a jack-of-all-trades."

"Then tell me; aren’t you just a greedy, meddlesome, monopolizing, godless old scam artist, one day making leg prosthetics, the next day crafting coffins to put them in, and then turning those same coffins into lifebuoys? You’re as unprincipled as the gods and just as much a jack-of-all-trades."

"But I do not mean anything, sir. I do as I do."

"But I don't mean anything, sir. I just do what I do."

"The gods again. Hark ye, dost thou not ever sing working about a coffin? The Titans, they say, hummed snatches when chipping out the craters for volcanoes; and the grave-digger in the play sings, spade in hand. Dost thou never?"

"The gods again. Listen, don’t you ever sing while working around a coffin? They say the Titans hummed tunes while carving out the craters for volcanoes; and the grave-digger in the play sings with a spade in hand. Don’t you ever?"

"Sing, sir? Do I sing? Oh, I'm indifferent enough, sir, for that; but the reason why the grave-digger made music must have been because there was none in his spade, sir. But the caulking mallet is full of it. Hark to it."

"Sing, sir? Do I sing? Oh, I don't really care about that, sir; but the reason the grave-digger made music must have been because there was none in his spade, sir. But the caulking mallet is full of it. Listen to it."

"Aye, and that's because the lid there's a sounding-board; and what in all things makes the sounding-board is this— there's naught beneath. And yet, a coffin with a body in it rings pretty much the same, Carpenter. Hast thou ever helped carry a bier, and heard the coffin knock against the churchyard gate, going in?

"Aye, and that's because the lid is a resonating soundboard; and what makes that soundboard work is this— there’s nothing beneath it. And yet, a coffin with a body in it sounds pretty much the same, Carpenter. Have you ever helped carry a coffin and heard it knock against the churchyard gate as you went in?"

"Faith, sir, I've-"

"Trust me, sir, I've-"

"Faith? What's that?"

"Faith? What's that all about?"

"Why, faith, sir, it's only a sort of exclamation-like— that's all, sir."

"Well, honestly, sir, it's just kind of an exclamation— that's all, sir."

"Um, um; go on."

"Uh, go ahead."

"I was about to say, sir, that-"

"I was just about to say, sir, that-"

"Art thou a silk-worm? Dost thou spin thy own shroud out of thyself?
Look at thy bosom! Despatch! and get these traps out of sight."

"Are you a silk-worm? Do you spin your own shroud from yourself?
Look at your chest! Hurry up! and get these traps out of sight."

"He goes aft. That was sudden, now; but squalls come sudden in hot latitudes. I've heard that the Isle of Albermarle, one of the Gallipagos, is cut by the Equator right in the middle. Seems to me some sort of Equator cuts yon old man, too, right in his middle. He's always under the Line—fiery hot, I tell ye! He's looking this way—come, oakum; quick. Here we go again. This wooden mallet is the cork, and I'm the professor of musical glasses—tap, tap!"

"He heads to the back. That was sudden, but storms can hit fast in warm climates. I’ve heard that Albermarle Island, one of the Galapagos, is sliced by the Equator right through the center. It seems like some kind of Equator runs through that old man too, right in the middle. He’s always below the Line—super hot, I tell you! He’s looking over here—come on, let’s get moving; hurry up. Here we go again. This wooden mallet is the cork, and I’m the teacher of musical glasses—tap, tap!"

(Ahab to himself)

(Ahab to himself)

"There's a sight! There's a sound! The greyheaded wood-pecker tapping the hollow tree! Blind and dumb might well be envied now. See! that thing rests on two line-tubs, full of tow-lines. A most malicious wag, that fellow. Rat-tat! So man's seconds tick! Oh! how immaterial are all materials! What things real are there, but imponderable thoughts? Here now's the very dreaded symbol of grim death, by a mere hap, made the expressive sign of the help and hope of most endangered life. A life-buoy of a coffin! Does it go further? Can it be that in some spiritual sense the coffin is, after all, but an immortality-preserver! I'll think of that. But no. So far gone am I in the dark side of earth, that its other side, the theoretic bright one, seems but uncertain twilight to me. Will ye never have done, Carpenter, with that accursed sound? I go below; let me not see that thing here when I return again. Now, then, Pip, we'll talk this over; I do suck most wondrous philosophies from thee! Some unknown conduits from the unknown worlds must empty into thee!"

"Look at that! Listen to that! The gray-headed woodpecker tapping on the hollow tree! Being blind and mute might actually be something to envy right now. Check it out! That thing is resting on two line-tubs, full of tow-lines. What a clever trickster that guy is. Rat-tat! Just like the seconds ticking away for us humans! Oh! How insignificant all materials are! What’s really real, except for those intangible thoughts? Here’s the terrifying symbol of grim death, unexpectedly turned into a sign of help and hope for those whose lives are in danger. A life buoy made from a coffin! Does it go deeper? Could it be that in some spiritual way, the coffin is actually an immortality-preserver! I’ll think about that. But no. I’m so consumed by the dark side of life that its brighter theoretical side seems like nothing more than uncertain twilight to me. Will you ever stop, Carpenter, with that damned sound? I’m going below; I do not want to see that thing here when I come back. Alright, Pip, let’s discuss this; I draw the most amazing philosophies from you! Some unknown channels from the unknown worlds must flow into you!"

CHAPTER 128

The Pequod Meets The Rachel

The Pequod Meets the Rachel

Next day, a large ship, the Rachel, was descried, bearing directly down upon the Pequod, all her spars thickly clustering with men. At the time the Pequod was making good speed through the water; but as the broad-winged windward stranger shot nigh to her, the boastful sails all fell together as blank bladders that are burst, and all life fled from the smitten hull.

Next day, a large ship, the Rachel, was spotted, heading straight toward the Pequod, with men crowding all over her rigging. At that moment, the Pequod was moving quickly through the water; but as the wide-winged, approaching ship got closer, the proud sails all collapsed like popped balloons, and all life vanished from the damaged hull.

"Bad news; she brings bad news," muttered the old Manxman. But ere her commander, who, with trumpet to mouth, stood up in his boat; ere he could hopefully hail, Ahab's voice was heard.

"Bad news; she brings bad news," muttered the old Manxman. But before her commander, who stood up in his boat with a trumpet to his mouth, could hopefully call out, Ahab's voice was heard.

"Hast seen the White Whale?"

"Have you seen the White Whale?"

"Aye, yesterday. Have ye seen a whale-boat adrift?"

"Aye, yesterday. Have you seen a whale boat drifting?"

Throttling his joy, Ahab negatively answered this unexpected question; and would then have fain boarded the stranger, when the stranger captain himself, having stopped his vessel's way, was seen descending her side. A few keen pulls, and his boat-hook soon clinched the Pequod's main-chains, and he sprang to the deck. Immediately he was recognized by Ahab for a Nantucketer he knew. But no formal salutation was exchanged.

Throttling his joy, Ahab answered the unexpected question with a no and then would have liked to board the stranger's ship. However, the captain of the stranger's vessel, having stopped its progress, was seen climbing down the side. After a few decisive pulls, his boat-hook quickly caught onto the Pequod's main chains, and he jumped onto the deck. Ahab immediately recognized him as a Nantucketer he knew, but no formal greeting was exchanged.

"Where was he?—not killed!—not killed!" cried Ahab, closely advancing.
"How was it?"

"Where is he?—not dead!—not dead!" shouted Ahab, stepping closer.
"What happened?"

It seemed that somewhat late on the afternoon of the day previous, while three of the stranger's boats were engaged with a shoal of whales, which had led them some four or five miles from the ship; and while they were yet in swift chase to windward, the white hump and head of Moby Dick had suddenly loomed up out of the blue water, not very far to leeward; whereupon, the fourth rigged boat— a reserved one—had been instantly lowered in chase. After a keen sail before the wind, this fourth boat—the swiftest keeled of all—seemed to have succeeded in fastening—at least, as well as the man at the mast-head could tell anything about it. In the distance he saw the diminished dotted boat; and then a swift gleam of bubbling white water; and after that nothing more; whence it was concluded that the stricken whale must have indefinitely run away with his pursuers, as often happens. There was some apprehension, but no positive alarm, as yet. The recall signals were placed in the rigging; darkness came on; and forced to pick up her three far to windward boats—ere going in quest of the fourth one in the precisely opposite direction— the ship had not only been necessitated to leave that boat to its fate till near midnight, but, for the time, to increase her distance from it. But the rest of her crew being at last safe aboard, she crowded all sail—stunsail on stunsail— after the missing boat; kindling a fire in her try-pots for a beacon; and every other man aloft on the look-out. But though when she had thus sailed a sufficient distance to gain the presumed place of the absent ones when last seen; though she then paused to lower her spare boats to pull all around her; and not finding anything, had again dashed on; again paused, and lowered her boats; and though she had thus continued doing till daylight; yet not the least glimpse of the missing keel had been seen.

It seemed that late in the afternoon the day before, while three of the stranger's boats were busy chasing a group of whales that had led them about four or five miles from the ship, and while they were still racing ahead against the wind, the white hump and head of Moby Dick suddenly appeared out of the blue water, not far to the side. As a result, the fourth rigged boat—a reserve one—was immediately launched in pursuit. After a fast sail with the wind, this fourth boat—the fastest of all—seemed to have succeeded in securing a line—at least, as far as the lookout at the masthead could tell. In the distance, he saw the smaller, dotted boat; then a quick flash of bubbling white water; and after that, nothing more; leading to the conclusion that the wounded whale must have escaped with its pursuers, as often happens. There was some concern, but no real alarm—yet. The recall signals were set up in the rigging; darkness fell; and having to retrieve her three boats far downwind before going in search of the fourth one in the opposite direction, the ship had no choice but to leave that boat to its fate until nearly midnight, and for the time being, to increase the distance from it. But once the rest of her crew was safe aboard, she set all sails—stunsail on stunsail—after the missing boat; lighting a fire in her try-pots as a beacon; and every other man was up in the rigging on lookout. But even after she had sailed a sufficient distance to reach the presumed location of the missing boats when they were last spotted; and even though she paused to lower her spare boats to search all around her; and not finding anything, pressed on again; paused again, and lowered her boats; and continued this until daylight; still, not a single glimpse of the missing boat had been seen.

The story told, the stranger Captain immediately went on to reveal his object in boarding the Pequod. He desired that ship to unite with his own in the search; by sailing over the sea some four or five miles apart, on parallel lines, and so sweeping a double horizon, as it were.

The story told, the stranger Captain quickly explained why he boarded the Pequod. He wanted that ship to team up with his own in the search; by sailing across the sea about four or five miles apart, on parallel paths, essentially covering a double horizon.

"I will wager something now," whispered Stubb to Flask, "that some one in that missing boat wore off that Captain's best coat; mayhap, his watch— he's so cursed anxious to get it back. Who ever heard of two pious whale-ships cruising after one missing whale-boat in the height of the whaling season? See, Flask, only see how pale he looks— pale in the very buttons of his eyes—look—it wasn't the coat— it must have been the-"

"I bet something right now," Stubb whispered to Flask, "that someone in that missing boat took the Captain's best coat; maybe even his watch—he's so desperate to get it back. Who's ever heard of two devoted whaling ships chasing after one missing whaleboat in the middle of whaling season? Look, Flask, just look at how pale he is—pale in the very buttons of his eyes—look—it wasn't the coat—it must have been the—"

"My boy, my own boy is among them. For God's sake—I beg, I conjure"— here exclaimed the stranger Captain to Ahab, who thus far had but icily received his petition. "For eight-and-forty hours let me charter your ship—I will gladly pay for it, and roundly pay for it— if there be no other way—for eight-and-forty hours only—only that— you must, oh, you must, and you shall do this thing."

"My son, my own son is among them. For God's sake—I beg you, I urge you"— here the stranger Captain exclaimed to Ahab, who until now had only coldly received his request. "For forty-eight hours let me rent your ship—I will gladly pay for it, and pay well for it—if there’s no other way—for just forty-eight hours—only that— you must, oh, you must, and you will do this."

"His son!" cried Stubb, "oh, it's his son he's lost! I take back the coat and watch—what says Ahab? We must save that boy."

"His son!" shouted Stubb, "oh, it's his son he's lost! I’ll return the coat and watch—what does Ahab say? We have to rescue that boy."

"He's drowned with the rest on 'em, last night," said the old Manx sailor standing behind them; "I heard; all of ye heard their spirits."

"He's drowned with the others last night," said the old Manx sailor standing behind them; "I heard it; all of you heard their spirits."

Now, as it shortly turned out, what made this incident of the Rachel's the more melancholy, was the circumstance, that not only was one of the Captain's sons among the number of the missing boat's crew; but among the number of the other boats' crews, at the same time, but on the other hand, separated from the ship during the dark vicissitudes of the chase, there had been still another son; as that for a time, the wretched father was plunged to the bottom of the cruellest perplexity; which was only solved for him by his chief mate's instinctively adopting the ordinary procedure of a whaleship in such emergencies, that is, when placed between jeopardized but divided boats, always to pick up the majority first. But the captain, for some unknown constitutional reason, had refrained from mentioning all this, and not till forced to it by Ahab's iciness did he allude to his one yet missing boy; a little lad, but twelve years old, whose father with the earnest but unmisgiving hardihood of a Nantucketer's paternal love, had thus early sought to initiate him in the perils and wonders of a vocation almost immemorially the destiny of all his race. Nor does it unfrequently occur, that Nantucket captains will send a son of such tender age away from them, for a protracted three or four years' voyage in some other ship than their own; so that their first knowledge of a whaleman's career shall be unenervated by any chance display of a father's natural but untimely partiality, or undue apprehensiveness and concern.

Now, as it quickly became clear, what made the incident with the Rachel even more tragic was the fact that not only was one of the Captain's sons among the missing boat's crew, but there was also another son among the crews of other boats that had separated from the ship during the chaotic chase. This left the unfortunate father in the depths of unbearable confusion, which was only resolved when his chief mate instinctively followed the standard procedure for a whaling ship in emergencies—namely, to pick up the majority of the crew first when dealing with jeopardized but separated boats. However, for reasons unknown, the captain had refrained from mentioning all of this, and it wasn't until Ahab's coldness prompted him that he finally referred to his one still missing son, a little boy just twelve years old. The father, with the earnest yet untroubled courage typical of a Nantucket dad, had sought to introduce him early to the risks and wonders of a profession that had long been the fate of his family. It's not uncommon for Nantucket captains to send a son of such a young age away for a long three or four-year voyage on another ship, so that the boy's first experience of a whaleman's life is untainted by any display of a father's natural but premature affection or undue worries and fears.

Meantime, now the stranger was still beseeching his poor boon of Ahab; and Ahab still stood like an anvil, receiving every shock, but without the least quivering of his own.

Meantime, the stranger was still pleading with Ahab for his request; and Ahab remained solid like an anvil, taking every blow without a hint of flinching.

"I will not go," said the stranger, "till you say aye to me. Do to me as you would have me do to you in the like case. For you too have a boy, Captain Ahab—though but a child, and nestling safely at home now—a child of your old age too— Yes, yes, you relent; I see it—run, run, men, now, and stand by to square in the yards."

"I won’t leave," said the stranger, "until you agree with me. Treat me the way you would want to be treated in the same situation. After all, you have a son, Captain Ahab—though he’s just a child, safe at home right now—a child born in your later years too— Yes, yes, I see you’re softening; hurry, hurry, men, now, and get ready to adjust the sails."

"Avast," cried Ahab—"touch not a rope-yarn"; then in a voice that prolongingly moulded every word—"Captain Gardiner, I will not do it. Even now I lose time, Good-bye, good-bye. God bless ye, man, and may I forgive myself, but I must go. Mr. Starbuck, look at the binnacle watch, and in three minutes from this present instant warn off all strangers; then brace forward again, and let the ship sail as before."

"Stop," shouted Ahab—"don't touch a rope"; then in a voice that stretched out each word—"Captain Gardiner, I won't do it. Even now I'm wasting time, goodbye, goodbye. God bless you, man, and may I forgive myself, but I have to go. Mr. Starbuck, check the binnacle watch, and in three minutes from now, warn off all strangers; then brace forward again, and let the ship sail as it was before."

Hurriedly turning, with averted face, he descended into his cabin, leaving the strange captain transfixed at this unconditional and utter rejection of his so earnest suit. But starting from his enchantment, Gardiner silently hurried to the side; more fell than stepped into his boat, and returned to his ship.

Hurriedly turning away, he went down into his cabin, leaving the strange captain stunned by this complete and total rejection of his earnest request. But snapping out of his daze, Gardiner quickly made his way to the side; he more fell than stepped into his boat and went back to his ship.

Soon the two ships diverged their wakes; and long as the strange vessel was in view, she was seen to yaw hither and thither at every dark spot, however small, on the sea. This way and that her yards were swung around; starboard and larboard, she continued to tack; now she beat against a head sea; and again it pushed her before it; while all the while, her masts and yards were thickly clustered with men, as three tall cherry trees, when the boys are cherrying among the boughs.

Soon the two ships separated their wakes; and for as long as the strange vessel was in sight, it was seen to sway back and forth at every dark spot on the sea, no matter how small. Her sails were swung around in every direction; she kept changing course to the right and left; now she was struggling against the waves, and then the waves were pushing her forward; all the while, her masts and sails were crowded with men, like three tall cherry trees when the boys are picking cherries among the branches.

But by her still halting course and winding, woeful way, you plainly saw that this ship that so wept with spray, still remained without comfort. She was Rachel, weeping for her children, because they were not.

But by her unsteady path and winding, sorrowful route, you could clearly see that this ship, which wept with spray, still had no solace. She was Rachel, mourning for her children, because they were lost.

CHAPTER 129

The Cabin

The Cabin

(Ahab moving to go on deck; Pip catches him by the hand to follow.)

(Ahab moving to go on deck; Pip grabs his hand to follow.)

Lad, lad, I tell thee thou must not follow Ahab now. The hour is coming when Ahab would not scare thee from him, yet would not have thee by him. There is that in thee, poor lad, which I feel too curing to my malady. Like cures like; and for this hunt, my malady becomes my most desired health. Do thou abide below here, where they shall serve thee, as if thou wert the captain. Aye, lad, thou shalt sit here in my own screwed chair; another screw to it, thou must be."

Kid, kid, I’m telling you, you shouldn’t follow Ahab right now. There’s a time coming when Ahab wouldn’t be able to scare you away from him, but he also wouldn’t want you close by. There’s something in you, poor kid, that I feel is too healing for my condition. Like cures like; and for this hunt, my sickness becomes my greatest desire for health. You should stay down here, where they will take care of you, as if you were the captain. Yeah, kid, you can sit here in my special chair; with another twist, you need to be.

"No, no, no! ye have not a whole body, sir; do ye but use poor me for your one lost leg; only tread upon me, sir; I ask no more, so I remain a part of ye."

"No, no, no! You don't have a whole body, sir; you're just using me for your one lost leg; just step on me, sir; I ask for nothing more, so I can stay a part of you."

"Oh! spite of million villains, this makes me a bigot in the fadeless fidelity of man!—and a black! and crazy!—but methinks like-cures-like applies to him too; he grows so sane again."

"Oh! Despite countless villains, this makes me a bigot in the unchanging loyalty of man!—and angry! and insane!—but I think like-cures-like applies to him too; he becomes sane again."

"They tell me, sir, that Stubb did once desert poor little Pip, whose drowned bones now show white, for all the blackness of his living skin. But I will never desert ye, sir, as Stubb did him. Sir, I must go with ye."

"They tell me, sir, that Stubb once abandoned poor little Pip, whose drowned bones now show white against the darkness of his living skin. But I will never abandon you, sir, like Stubb did him. Sir, I have to go with you."

"If thou speakest thus to me much more, Ahab's purpose keels up in him.
I tell thee no; it cannot be."

"If you keep talking to me like this, Ahab's determination will rise within him.
I’m telling you no; it can’t be."

"Oh good master, master, master!

"Oh good master, master!"

"Weep so, and I will murder thee! have a care, for Ahab too is mad. Listen, and thou wilt often hear my ivory foot upon the deck, and still know that I am there. And now I quit thee. Thy hand!—Met! True art thou, lad, as the circumference to its centre. So: God for ever bless thee; and if it come to that,— God for ever save thee, let what will befall."

"Weep like that, and I’ll kill you! Be careful, because Ahab is crazy too. Listen, and you’ll often hear my ivory foot on the deck and still know that I’m there. And now I’m leaving you. Your hand!—We’ve met! You’re true, boy, just like the circumference is to its center. So: God bless you forever; and if it comes to that—God save you forever, no matter what happens."

(Ahab goes; Pip steps one step forward.)

(Ahab goes; Pip steps one step forward.)

"Here he this instant stood, I stand in his air,—but I'm alone. Now were even poor Pip here I could endure it, but he's missing. Pip! Pip! Ding, dong, ding! Who's seen Pip? He must be up here; let's try the door. What? neither lock, nor bolt, nor bar; and yet there's no opening it. It must be the spell; he told me to stay here: Aye, and told me this screwed chair was mine. Here, then, I'll seat me, against the transom, in the ship's full middle, all her keel and her three masts before me. Here, our old sailors say, in their black seventy-fours great admirals sometimes sit at table, and lord it over rows of captains and lieutenants. Ha! what's this? epaulets! epaulets! the epaulets all come crowding. Pass round the decanters; glad to see ye; fill up, monsieurs! What an odd feeling, now, when a black boy's host to white men with gold lace upon their coats!—Monsieurs, have ye seen one Pip?— a little negro lad, five feet high, hang-dog look, and cowardly! Jumped from a whale-boat once;—seen him? No! Well then, fill up again, captains, and let's drink shame upon all cowards! I name no names. Shame upon them! Put one foot upon the table. Shame upon all cowards.—Hist! above there, I hear ivory— Oh, master! master! I am indeed down-hearted when you walk over me. But here I'll stay, though this stern strikes rocks; and they bulge through; and oysters come to join me."

"Here I am right now, standing in his space—but I’m alone. Even if poor Pip were here, I could handle it, but he’s gone. Pip! Pip! Ding, dong, ding! Who’s seen Pip? He has to be up here; let’s try the door. What? No lock, no bolt, no bar; and yet I can’t open it. It must be the spell; he told me to stay here. Yeah, and he said this screwed-up chair was mine. So, I’ll sit here, against the transom, in the middle of the ship, with all her keel and three masts in front of me. Here, our old sailors say, in their fancy seventy-fours, great admirals sometimes sit at a table, looking over rows of captains and lieutenants. Ha! What’s this? Epaulets! Epaulets! The epaulets are all crowding in. Pass around the decanters; great to see you; fill up, gentlemen! What a strange feeling, now, when a Black boy is hosting white men with gold lace on their coats! Gentlemen, have you seen a boy named Pip? A little Black kid, about five feet tall, with a hang-dog look, and cowardly! Jumped from a whale-boat once; seen him? No? Well then, let’s fill up again, captains, and let’s toast to the shame of all cowards! I won’t mention any names. Shame on them! Put one foot on the table. Shame on all cowards.—Wait! Up there, I hear ivory—Oh, master! master! I’m really down-hearted when you walk over me. But I’ll stay here, even if this ship runs aground; and if it hits rocks; and if oysters come to join me."

CHAPTER 130

The Hat

The Cap

And now that at the proper time and place, after so long and wide a preliminary cruise, Ahab,—all other whaling waters swept— seemed to have chased his foe into an oceanfold, to slay him the more securely there; now, that he found himself hard by the very latitude and longitude where his tormenting wound had been inflicted; now that a vessel had been spoken which on the very day preceding had actually encountered Moby Dick;— and now that all his successive meetings with various ships contrastingly concurred to show the demoniac indifference with which the white whale tore his hunters, whether sinning or sinned against; now it was that there lurked a something in the old man's eyes, which it was hardly sufferable for feeble souls to see. As the unsetting polar star, which through the livelong, arctic, six months' night sustains its piercing, steady, central gaze; so Ahab's purpose now fixedly gleamed down upon the constant midnight of the gloomy crew. It domineered above them so, that all their bodings, doubts, misgivings, fears, were fain to hide beneath their souls, and not sprout forth a single spear or leaf.

And now, at the right time and place, after such a long and extensive journey, Ahab—having searched all other whaling waters—seemed to have tracked his enemy into a secluded part of the ocean, ready to kill him more securely there; now that he found himself near the exact latitude and longitude where his painful injury had occurred; now that a ship had reported seeing Moby Dick just the day before;— and now that all his encounters with different ships showed the demonic indifference with which the white whale attacked his hunters, whether they were guilty or innocent; now, there was something in the old man's eyes that was almost unbearable for weaker souls to witness. Like the unsetting polar star, which maintains its piercing, steady gaze throughout the endless, arctic six-month night; Ahab's resolve now shone down upon the constantly troubled crew. It overshadowed them so much that all their forebodings, doubts, misgivings, and fears had to shrink away deep within their souls, unable to sprout even a single thought or feeling.

In this foreshadowing interval, too, all humor, forced or natural, vanished. Stubb no more strove to raise a smile; Starbuck no more strove to check one. Alike, joy and sorrow, hope and fear, seemed ground to finest dust, and powdered, for the time, in the clamped mortar of Ahab's iron soul. Like machines, they dumbly moved about the deck, ever conscious that the old man's despot eye was on them.

In this moment of anticipation, all humor, whether forced or genuine, disappeared. Stubb no longer tried to make anyone laugh; Starbuck no longer attempted to hold back a smile. Joy and sorrow, hope and fear, felt crushed into the finest dust and trapped, for now, in the heavy hold of Ahab's iron will. Like machines, they silently moved around the deck, fully aware that the old man's tyrannical gaze was on them.

But did you deeply scan him in his more secret confidential hours when he thought no glance but one was on him; then you would have seen that even as Ahab's eyes so awed the crew's, the inscrutable Parsee's glance awed his; or somehow, at least, in some wild way, at times affected it. Such an added, gliding strangeness began to invest the thin Fedallah now; such ceaseless shudderings shook him; that the men looked dubious at him; half uncertain, as it seemed, whether indeed he were a mortal substance, or else a tremulous shadow cast upon the deck by some unseen being's body. And that shadow was always hovering there. For not by night, even, had Fedallah ever certainly been known to slumber, or go below. He would stand still for hours: but never sat or leaned; his wan but wondrous eyes did plainly say— We two watchmen never rest.

But did you really observe him during his more private moments when he thought no one was watching? Then you would have noticed that just as Ahab's gaze intimidated the crew, the mysterious Parsee's eyes intimidated Ahab in a similar way; or somehow, at least, in some wild manner, would affect him at times. There was a strange, eerie aura surrounding the thin Fedallah now; he seemed to shiver constantly, which made the men look at him uncertainly, unsure whether he was truly human or just a flickering shadow cast on the deck by some unseen entity. And that shadow was always there. Even at night, Fedallah had never truly been known to sleep or go below deck. He would stand still for hours but never sat or leaned; his pale yet extraordinary eyes clearly communicated— We two watchmen never rest.

Nor, at any time, by night or day could the mariners now step upon the deck, unless Ahab was before them; either standing in his pivot-hole, or exactly pacing the planks between two undeviating limits,—the main-mast and the mizen; or else they saw him standing in the cabin-scuttle,—his living foot advanced upon the deck, as if to step; his hat slouched heavily over his eyes; so that however motionless he stood, however the days and nights were added on, that he had not swung in his hammock; yet hidden beneath that slouching hat, they could never tell unerringly whether, for all this, his eyes were really closed at times; or whether he was still intently scanning them; no matter, though he stood so in the scuttle for a whole hour on the stretch, and the unheeded night-damp gathered in beads of dew upon that stone-carved coat and hat. The clothes that the night had wet, the next day's sunshine dried upon him; and so, day after day, and night after night; he went no more beneath the planks; whatever he wanted from the cabin that thing he sent for.

Nor could the sailors step onto the deck at any time, day or night, unless Ahab was in front of them; either standing in his spot, or pacing between two fixed points—the main mast and the mizzen mast; or they might see him by the cabin stairs—his foot poised as if about to step out onto the deck, his hat pulled low over his eyes; so that, no matter how still he stood, or how many days and nights passed without him swinging in his hammock, it was hard to tell if, under that low hat, his eyes were actually closed at times or if he was still watching them intently; it didn’t matter, even if he stood in that position for an entire hour, with the unnoticed damp of the night collecting in beads of dew on his weathered coat and hat. The clothes soaked by night would dry in the next day's sunlight; and so, day after day, and night after night, he never went below deck; whatever he needed from the cabin, he just sent for it.

He ate in the same open air; that is, his two only meals,— breakfast and dinner: supper he never touched; nor reaped his beard; which darkly grew all gnarled, as unearthed roots of trees blown over, which still grow idly on at naked base, though perished in the upper verdure. But though his whole life was now become one watch on deck; and though the Parsee's mystic watch was without intermission as his own; yet these two never seemed to speak—one man to the other—unless at long intervals some passing unmomentous matter made it necessary. Though such a potent spell seemed secretly to join the twain; openly, and to the awe-struck crew, they seemed pole-like asunder. If by day they chanced to speak one word; by night, dumb men were both, so far as concerned the slightest verbal interchange. At times, for longest hours, without a single hail, they stood far parted in the starlight; Ahab in his scuttle, the Parsee by the main-mast; but still fixedly gazing upon each other; as if in the Parsee Ahab saw his forethrown shadow, in Ahab the Parsee his abandoned substance.

He ate in the same open air; that is, his only two meals—breakfast and dinner. He never touched supper and didn’t trim his beard, which grew wild and knotted, like uprooted tree roots that still grow at their bare base, even though they’re dead above the ground. Even though his whole life had become a constant watch on deck, and the Parsee's mystical watch went on without pause just like his own, these two hardly ever spoke to each other—unless something trivial made it necessary. There seemed to be a powerful bond connecting them secretly, yet to the amazed crew, they appeared as distant as two poles. If they happened to exchange a word during the day, at night, they were both silent, without the slightest verbal interaction. Sometimes, for long hours, they stood apart in the starlight; Ahab in his scuttle, the Parsee by the main mast, yet still staring intently at each other; as if in the Parsee, Ahab saw his lost shadow, and in Ahab, the Parsee saw his forsaken essence.

And yet, somehow, did Ahab—in his own proper self, as daily, hourly, and every instant, commandingly revealed to his subordinates,— Ahab seemed an independent lord; the Parsee but his slave. Still again both seemed yoked together, and an unseen tyrant driving them; the lean shade siding the solid rib. For be this Parsee what he may, all rib and keel was solid Ahab.

And yet, somehow, Ahab—in his true self, as he daily, hourly, and every moment showed to his crew—Ahab appeared like an independent ruler; the Parsee was just his servant. Yet, both seemed tied together, with an unseen force driving them; the thin figure next to the solid structure. Because no matter what this Parsee was, the solid backbone was definitely Ahab.

At the first faintest glimmering of the dawn, his iron voice was heard from aft,—"Man the mast-heads!"—and all through the day, till after sunset and after twilight, the same voice every hour, at the striking of the helmsman's bell, was heard—"What d'ye see?— sharp! sharp! sharp!"

At the first light of dawn, his gruff voice called from the back,—"Man the mast-heads!"—and all day, until after sunset and twilight, the same voice repeated every hour, at the ringing of the helmsman’s bell, was heard—"What do you see?—sharp! sharp! sharp!"

But when three or four days had slided by, after meeting the children-seeking Rachel; and no spout had yet been seen; the monomaniac old man seemed distrustful of his crew's fidelity; at least, of nearly all except the Pagan harpooneers; he seemed to doubt, even, whether Stubb and Flask might not willingly overlook the sight he sought. But if these suspicions were really his, he sagaciously refrained from verbally expressing them, however his actions might seem to hint them.

But after three or four days had passed since meeting the child-seeking Rachel, and no sign of the spout had been spotted, the obsessed old man appeared to mistrust the loyalty of his crew; at least, he seemed to doubt nearly everyone except the Pagan harpooneers. He even questioned whether Stubb and Flask might not willingly ignore the sight he was looking for. However, if these suspicions were genuine, he wisely chose not to say them out loud, even though his actions might suggest otherwise.

"I will have the first sight of the whale myself,"— he said. "Aye! Ahab must have the doubloon! and with his own hands he rigged a nest of basketed bowlines; and sending a hand aloft, with a single sheaved block, to secure to the mainmast head, he received the two ends of the downwardreeved rope; and attaching one to his basket prepared a pin for the other end, in order to fasten it at the rail. This done, with that end yet in his hand and standing beside the pin, he looked round upon his crew, sweeping from one to the other; pausing his glance long upon Daggoo, Queequeg, Tashtego; but shunning Fedallah; and then settling his firm relying eye upon the chief mate, said,—"Take the rope, sir—I give it into thy hands, Starbuck." Then arranging his person in the basket, he gave the word for them to hoist him to his perch, Starbuck being the one who secured the rope at last; and afterwards stood near it. And thus, with one hand clinging round the royal mast, Ahab gazed abroad upon the sea for miles and miles,—ahead astern, this side, and that,—within the wide expanded circle commanded at so great a height.

"I'll be the first to see the whale," he said. "Yes! Ahab deserves the doubloon! He personally rigged a nest of basketed bowlines, sending a crew member up with a single sheaved block to secure it to the top of the mainmast. He took the two ends of the rope that was threaded down and connected one to his basket while preparing a pin for the other end to fasten it at the rail. Once that was done, with that end still in his hand and standing next to the pin, he looked around at his crew, moving his gaze from one to another. He paused on Daggoo, Queequeg, and Tashtego, but avoided looking at Fedallah. Then he fixed his steady, trusting gaze on the chief mate and said, "Take the rope, sir—I’m giving it to you, Starbuck." After arranging himself in the basket, he signaled them to hoist him up to his perch, with Starbuck being the one who secured the rope in the end and then stood nearby. Thus, with one hand gripping the royal mast, Ahab scanned the sea for miles in every direction—forward, backward, to the side, and all around—within the wide expanse visible from such a great height.

When in working with his hands at some lofty almost isolated place in the rigging, which chances to afford no foothold, the sailor at sea is hoisted up to that spot, and sustained there by the rope; under these circumstances, its fastened end on deck is always given in strict charge to some one man who has the special watch of it. Because in such a wilderness of running rigging, whose various different relations aloft cannot always be infallibly discerned by what is seen of them at the deck; and when the deck-ends of these ropes are being every few minutes cast down from the fastenings, it would be but a natural fatality, if, unprovided with a constant watchman, the hoisted sailor should by some carelessness of the crew be cast adrift and fall all swooping to the sea. So Ahab's proceedings in this matter were not unusual; the only strange thing about them seemed to be, that Starbuck, almost the one only man who had ever ventured to oppose him with anything in the slightest degree approaching to decision— one of those too, whose faithfulness on the look-out he had seemed to doubt somewhat; it was strange, that this was the very man he should select for his watchman; freely giving his whole life into such an otherwise distrusted person's hands.

When a sailor is working high up in the rigging at a nearly isolated spot that doesn’t offer any foothold, he’s lifted there and held in place by a rope. In this situation, the end of the rope that’s secured on deck is always entrusted to one person who is responsible for watching it closely. This is crucial because in the chaotic mess of running rigging, it’s not always easy to see how everything connects from the deck. If the ends of these ropes are repeatedly thrown down from their fastenings, it could be a disaster if the sailor, without a constant watch, is accidentally let loose by the crew and falls straight into the ocean. So, Ahab’s approach to this was not unusual; what was strange was that Starbuck, almost the only person who had ever dared to challenge him with any kind of firmness—someone whose reliability Ahab had seemed to question—was the very person he chose to watch over this situation, putting his life in the hands of someone he otherwise didn’t fully trust.

Now, the first time Ahab was perched aloft; ere he had been there ten minutes; one of those red-billed savage sea-hawks which so often fly incommodiously close round the manned mast-heads of whalemen in these latitudes; one of these birds came wheeling and screaming round his head in a maze of untrackably swift circlings. Then it darted a thousand feet straight up into the air; then spiralized downwards, and went eddying again round his head.

Now, the first time Ahab was up high; before he had been there for ten minutes, one of those red-billed, wild sea-hawks that often fly too close around the masts of whalers in this area swooped in, screeching around his head in a fast and chaotic flight. Then it shot a thousand feet straight up into the sky; then spiraled downwards and circled around his head again.

But with his gaze fixed upon the dim and distant horizon, Ahab seemed not to mark this wild bird; nor, indeed, would any one else have marked it much, it being no uncommon circumstance; only now almost the least heedful eye seemed to see some sort of cunning meaning in almost every sight.

But with his eyes focused on the dim and distant horizon, Ahab didn’t seem to notice this wild bird; in fact, no one else would have paid much attention to it either, as it was a pretty common occurrence. Yet now, even the least observant eye appeared to see some sort of clever meaning in nearly every sight.

"Your hat, your hat, sir!" suddenly cried the Sicilian seaman, who being posted at the mizen-mast-head, stood directly behind Ahab, though somewhat lower than his level, and with a deep gulf of air dividing them.

"Your hat, your hat, sir!" suddenly shouted the Sicilian sailor, who was stationed at the mizzen mast head, standing right behind Ahab, though slightly lower than him, with a significant space of air separating them.

But already the sable wing was before the old man's eyes; the long hooked bill at his head: with a scream, the black hawk darted away with his prize.

But already the black wing was in front of the old man's eyes; the long hooked beak at his head: with a scream, the black hawk swooped away with his catch.

An eagle flew thrice round Tarquin's head, removing his cap to replace it, and thereupon Tanaquil, his wife, declared that Tarquin would be king of Rome. But only by the replacing of the cap was that omen accounted good. Ahab's hat was never restored; the wild hawk flew on and on with it; far in advance of the prow: and at last disappeared; while from the point of that disappearance, a minute black spot was dimly discerned, falling from that vast height into the sea.

An eagle circled around Tarquin's head three times, took off his cap, and then put it back on. After that, his wife Tanaquil announced that Tarquin would be king of Rome. The omen was considered good only because the cap was replaced. Ahab's hat was never returned; the wild hawk kept flying with it, far ahead of the ship’s bow, and eventually vanished. From the point where it disappeared, a tiny black dot was faintly seen falling from that great height into the sea.

CHAPTER 131

The Pequod Meets The Delight

The Pequod Meets The Delight

The intense Pequod sailed on; the rolling waves and days went by; the life-buoy-coffin still lightly swung; and another ship, most miserably misnamed the Delight, was descried. As she drew nigh, all eyes were fixed upon her broad beams, called shears, which, in some whaling-ships, cross the quarter-deck at the height of eight or nine feet; serving to carry the spare, unrigged, or disabled boats.

The intense Pequod continued its journey; the rolling waves and days passed by; the life-buoy-coffin still gently swung; and another ship, unfortunately misnamed the Delight, was spotted. As she approached, everyone’s attention was focused on her wide beams, known as shears, which, on some whaling ships, extend across the quarter-deck at a height of eight or nine feet; used to hold the spare, unrigged, or damaged boats.

Upon the stranger's shears were beheld the shattered, white ribs, and some few splintered planks, of what had once been a whale-boat; but you now saw through this wreck, as plainly as you see through the peeled, half-unhinged, and bleaching skeleton of a horse.

Upon the stranger's shears were the broken, white ribs and a few splintered planks of what had once been a whale-boat; but you could now see through this wreck as clearly as you see through the peeled, half-unhinged, and bleached skeleton of a horse.

"Hast seen the White Whale?"

"Have you seen the White Whale?"

"Look!" replied the hollow-cheeked captain from his taffrail; and with his trumpet he pointed to the wreck.

"Look!" said the hollow-cheeked captain from his rail; and with his trumpet, he pointed to the wreck.

"Hast killed him?"

"Have you killed him?"

"The harpoon is not yet forged that will ever will do that," answered the other, sadly glancing upon a rounded hammock on the deck, whose gathered sides some noiseless sailors were busy in sewing together.

"The harpoon isn't made yet that can ever do that," the other replied, glancing sadly at a rounded hammock on the deck, which some quiet sailors were busy sewing together.

"Not forged!" and snatching Perth's levelled iron from the crotch, Ahab held it out, exclaiming—"Look ye, Nantucketer; here in this hand I hold his death! Tempered in blood, and tempered by lightning are these barbs; and I swear to temper them triply in that hot place behind the fin, where the White Whale most feels his accursed life!"

"Not forged!" Ahab shouted, grabbing Perth's raised iron from between his legs. He held it out and exclaimed, "Look, Nantucketer! Here in my hand, I hold his death! These barbs are tempered in blood and charged by lightning; I swear to heat them even more in that fiery spot behind the fin, where the White Whale feels his cursed life the most!"

"Then God keep thee, old man—see'st thou that"— pointing to the hammock—"I bury but one of five stout men, who were alive only yesterday; but were dead ere night. Only that one I bury; the rest were buried before they died; you sail upon their tomb." Then turning to his crew—"Are ye ready there? place the plank then on the rail, and lift the body; so, then—Oh! God"—advancing towards the hammock with uplifted hands—"may the resurrection and the life-"

"Then God be with you, old man—do you see that?"—pointing to the hammock—"I’m only burying one of five strong men, who were alive just yesterday; but they were dead by night. Just this one I'm burying; the others were buried before they even died; you sail over their graves." Then turning to his crew—"Are you ready? Place the plank on the rail, and lift the body; alright then—Oh! God"—moving toward the hammock with raised hands—"may the resurrection and the life—"

"Brace forward! Up helm!" cried Ahab like lightning to his men.

"Brace forward! Raise the helm!" shouted Ahab like lightning to his crew.

But the suddenly started Pequod was not quick enough to escape the sound of the splash that the corpse soon made as it struck the sea; not so quick, indeed, but that some of the flying bubbles might have sprinkled her hull with their ghostly baptism.

But the suddenly launched Pequod wasn't fast enough to avoid the sound of the splash when the corpse hit the sea; it wasn't quick enough, in fact, that some of the flying bubbles might have sprinkled her hull with their ghostly baptism.

As Ahab now glided from the dejected Delight, the strange life-buoy hanging at the Pequod's stern came into conspicuous relief.

As Ahab now moved away from the downcast Delight, the unusual life buoy hanging at the back of the Pequod stood out clearly.

"Ha! yonder! look yonder, men!" cried a foreboding voice in her wake. "In vain, oh, ye strangers, ye fly our sad burial; ye but turn us your taffrail to show us your coffin!"

"Ha! over there! look over there, men!" shouted a haunting voice behind her. "In vain, oh, you strangers, you flee from our sad burial; you only turn your stern to show us your coffin!"

CHAPTER 132

The Symphony

The Concert

It was a clear steel-blue day. The firmaments of air and sea were hardly separable in that all-pervading azure; only, the pensive air was transparently pure and soft, with a woman's look, and the robust and man-like sea heaved with long, strong, lingering swells, as Samson's chest in his sleep.

It was a bright steel-blue day. The sky and the sea were barely distinguishable in that all-encompassing blue; only, the thoughtful air was clearly pure and gentle, like a woman's touch, while the strong, masculine sea rolled with long, powerful, lingering swells, like Samson’s chest as he slept.

Hither, and thither, on high, glided the snow-white wings of small, unspeckled birds; these were the gentle thoughts of the feminine air; but to and fro in the deeps, far down in the bottomless blue, rushed mighty leviathans, sword-fish, and sharks; and these were the strong, troubled, murderous thinkings of the masculine sea.

Here and there, high up, glided the snow-white wings of small, unmarked birds; these represented the gentle thoughts of the feminine air; but back and forth in the depths, far down in the endless blue, surged powerful leviathans, swordfish, and sharks; and these embodied the strong, turbulent, murderous thoughts of the masculine sea.

But though thus contrasting within, the contrast was only in shades and shadows without; those two seemed one; it was only the sex, as it were, that distinguished them.

But even with this internal contrast, the difference was only in subtle shades and shadows on the outside; those two seemed like one. It was just their gender, in a way, that set them apart.

Aloft, like a royal czar and king, the sun seemed giving this gentle air to this bold and rolling sea; even as bride to groom. And at the girdling line of the horizon, a soft and tremulous motion— most seen here at the Equator—denoted the fond, throbbing trust, the loving alarms, with which the poor bride gave her bosom away.

Aloft, like a royal czar and king, the sun seemed to cast a gentle glow over the bold and rolling sea, like a bride to her groom. And at the curving line of the horizon, a soft and quivering motion—most noticeable here at the Equator—indicated the tender, pulsating trust, the loving anxieties, with which the poor bride surrendered her heart.

Tied up and twisted; gnarled and knotted with wrinkles; haggardly firm and unyielding; his eyes glowing like coals, that still glow in the ashes of ruin; untottering Ahab stood forth in the clearness of the morn; lifting his splintered helmet of a brow to the fair girl's forehead of heaven.

Tied up and twisted; gnarled and knotted with wrinkles; worn yet tough; his eyes glowing like embers that still shine in the ashes of destruction; steady Ahab stood tall in the morning light; raising his damaged brow toward the bright sky.

Oh, immortal infancy, and innocency of the azure! Invisible winged creatures that frolic all round us! Sweet childhood of air and sky! how oblivious were ye of old Ahab's close-coiled woe! But so have I seen little Miriam and Martha, laughing-eyed elves, heedlessly gambol around their old sire; sporting with the circle of singed locks which grew on the marge of that burnt-out crater of his brain.

Oh, eternal childhood, and innocence of the blue skies! Invisible winged beings that play all around us! Sweet childhood of air and sky! How unaware you were of old Ahab's tightly wound sorrow! But I've seen little Miriam and Martha, with their laughing eyes, carefree and dancing around their old father; playing with the singed wisps of hair that grew along the edges of the burned-out crater in his mind.

Slowly crossing the deck from the scuttle, Ahab leaned over the side and watched how his shadow in the water sank and sank to his gaze, the more and the more that he strove to pierce the profundity. But the lovely aromas in that enchanted air did at last seem to dispel, for a moment, the cankerous thing in his soul. That glad, happy air, that winsome sky, did at last stroke and caress him; the step-mother world, so long cruel—forbidding—now threw affectionate arms round his stubborn neck, and did seem to joyously sob over him, as if over one, that however wilful and erring, she could yet find it in her heart to save and to bless. From beneath his slouched hat Ahab dropped a tear into the sea; nor did all the Pacific contain such wealth as that one wee drop.

Slowly crossing the deck from the hatch, Ahab leaned over the side and watched his shadow sink deeper into the water the more he tried to see into its depths. But the lovely scents in that magical air finally seemed to lift, even if just for a moment, the dark thing in his soul. That cheerful, happy air, that charming sky, finally seemed to stroke and comfort him; the once cruel and forbidding world now wrapped its warm arms around his stubborn neck, and it felt like it was joyfully weeping over him, as if it could still find a way to save and bless someone so willful and lost. From beneath his tilted hat, Ahab let a tear fall into the sea; no amount of water in the Pacific held as much value as that one tiny drop.

Starbuck saw the old man; saw him, how he heavily leaned over the side; and he seemed to hear in his own true heart the measureless sobbing that stole out of the centre of the serenity around. Careful not to touch him, or be noticed by him, he yet drew near to him, and stood there.

Starbuck saw the old man leaning heavily over the side, and he felt in his heart the deep sobbing that came from the calmness surrounding them. Trying not to touch him or attract his attention, he approached and stood there.

Ahab turned.

Ahab turned around.

"Starbuck!"

"Starbucks!"

"Sir."

"Hey."

"Oh, Starbuck! it is a mild, mild wind, and a mild looking sky. On such a day—very much such a sweetness as this—I struck my first whale—a boy-harpooneer of eighteen! Forty—forty— forty years ago!—ago! Forty years of continual whaling! forty years of privation, and peril, and storm-time! forty years on the pitiless sea! for forty years has Ahab forsaken the peaceful land, for forty years to make war on the horrors of the deep! Aye and yes, Starbuck, out of those forty years I have not spent three ashore. When I think of this life I have led; the desolation of solitude it has been; the masoned, walled-town of a Captain's exclusiveness, which admits but small entrance to any sympathy from the green country without—oh, weariness! heaviness! Guinea-coast slavery of solitary command!—when I think of all this; only half-suspected, not so keenly known to me before— and how for forty years I have fed upon dry salted fare— fit emblem of the dry nourishment of my soul!—when the poorest landsman has had fresh fruit to his daily hand, and broken the world's fresh bread to my mouldy crusts—away, whole oceans away, from that young girl-wife I wedded past fifty, and sailed for Cape Horn the next day, leaving but one dent in my marriage pillow— wife? wife?—rather a widow with her husband alive? Aye, I widowed that poor girl when I married her, Starbuck; and then, the madness, the frenzy, the boiling blood and the smoking brow, with which, for a thousand lowerings old Ahab has furiously, foamingly chased his prey—more a demon than a man!—aye, aye! what a forty years' fool—fool—old fool, has old Ahab been! Why this strife of the chase? why weary, and palsy the arm at the oar, and the iron, and the lance? how the richer or better is Ahab now? Behold. Oh, Starbuck! is it not hard, that with this weary load I bear, one poor leg should have been snatched from under me? Here, brush this old hair aside; it blinds me, that I seem to weep. Locks so grey did never grow but from out some ashes! But do I look very old, so very, very old, Starbuck? I feel deadly faint, bowed, and humped, as though I were Adam, staggering beneath the piled centuries since Paradise. God! God! God!—crack my heart!—stave my brain!— mockery! mockery! bitter, biting mockery of grey hairs, have I lived enough joy to wear ye; and seem and feel thus intolerably old? Close! stand close to me, Starbuck; let me look into a human eye; it is better than to gaze into sea or sky; better than to gaze upon God. By the green land; by the bright hearthstone! this is the magic glass, man; I see my wife and my child in thine eye. No, no; stay on board, on board!—lower not when I do; when branded Ahab gives chase to Moby Dick. That hazard shall not be thine. No, no! not with the far away home I see in that eye!"

"Oh, Starbuck! It’s a gentle, gentle wind, and a gentle looking sky. On a day like this—so sweet as this—I struck my first whale—just an eighteen-year-old boy! Forty—forty—forty years ago!—ago! Forty years of nonstop whaling! Forty years of hardship, danger, and storms! Forty years on the merciless sea! For forty years, Ahab has left the peaceful land to wage war against the terrors of the deep! Yes, Starbuck, out of those forty years, I haven’t spent three ashore. When I think about the life I’ve lived; the loneliness it has brought; the walled town of a Captain's isolation, allowing hardly any entry for sympathy from the green land outside—oh, the weariness! The heaviness! The Guinea-coast slavery of solitary command!—when I ponder all this; only half-recognized before— and how for forty years I’ve lived on dry salted food—a perfect symbol of the dryness of my soul!—while the poorest land-dweller has had fresh fruit to eat daily, and has broken the world’s fresh bread while I’ve had to munch on moldy crusts—far away, whole oceans away, from that young girl-wife I married when I was past fifty, and set sail for Cape Horn the very next day, leaving just one mark on my marriage pillow—wife? wife?—more like a widow with her husband still alive? Yes, I made that poor girl a widow when I married her, Starbuck; and then, the madness, the frenzy, the boiling blood and the smoking brow, with which, for a thousand hunts, old Ahab has madly, fiercely chased his prey—more a demon than a man!—yes, yes! What a forty years' fool—fool—old fool, old Ahab has been! Why this struggle of the chase? Why tire myself and weaken my arm at the oar, and with the iron, and the lance? How has Ahab become richer or better now? Look. Oh, Starbuck! Isn’t it hard that, with this heavy burden I carry, one poor leg should have been taken from under me? Here, brush this old hair aside; it blinds me, making me feel like I’m about to cry. Locks so grey can only come from some ashes! But do I look very old, so very, very old, Starbuck? I feel incredibly faint, hunched over, as if I were Adam, weighed down by the centuries since Paradise. God! God! God!—break my heart!—crush my brain!—mockery! Mockery! Bitter, biting mockery of grey hairs, have I lived enough joy to earn you; and seem and feel this unbearably old? Come close! Stand close to me, Starbuck; let me look into a human eye; it’s better than staring into sea or sky; better than looking at God. By the green land; by the bright hearth! This is the magic glass, man; I see my wife and my child in your eye. No, no; stay on board, on board!—don’t lower down when I do; when branded Ahab gives chase to Moby Dick. That danger shall not be yours. No, no! Not with the distant home I see in that eye!"

"Oh, my Captain! my Captain! noble soul! grand old heart, after all! why should any one give chase to that hated fish! Away with me! let us fly these deadly waters! let us home! Wife and child, too, are Starbuck's—wife and child of his brotherly, sisterly, play-fellow youth; even as thine, sir, are the wife and child of thy loving, longing, paternal old age! Away! let us away!—this instant let me alter the course! How cheerily, how hilariously, O my Captain, would we bowl on our way to see old Nantucket again! I think, sir, they have some such mild blue days, even as this, in Nantucket."

"Oh, my Captain! My Captain! Noble soul! Grand old heart, after all! Why should anyone go after that hated fish? Let's get out of here! Let's escape these dangerous waters! Let's go home! Starbuck has a wife and child—wife and child of his brotherly, sisterly childhood; just as yours are the wife and child of your loving, yearning, paternal old age! Come on! Let's go!—right now, let me change our course! How cheerfully, how joyfully, oh my Captain, would we sail on our way to see old Nantucket again! I think, sir, they have such mild blue days, just like this one, in Nantucket."

"They have, they have. I have seen them—some summer days in the morning. About this time—yes, it is his noon nap now— the boy vivaciously wakes; sits up in bed; and his mother tells him of me, of cannibal old me; how I am abroad upon the deep, but will yet come back to dance him again."

"They have, they have. I've seen them—on some summer mornings. Around this time—yeah, he’s taking his noon nap now—the boy wakes up full of energy; sits up in bed; and his mom tells him about me, about the old cannibal me; how I’m off somewhere on the ocean, but I’ll come back to dance with him again."

"'Tis my Mary, my Mary herself! She promised that my boy, every morning, should be carried to the hill to catch the first glimpse of his father's sail! Yes, yes! no more! it is done! we head for Nantucket! Come, my Captain, study out the course, and let us away! See, see! the boy's face from the window! the boy's hand on the hill!"

"'Tis my Mary, my Mary herself! She promised that my boy, every morning, would be taken to the hill to catch the first glimpse of his father's sail! Yes, yes! no more! it is done! we’re heading for Nantucket! Come, my Captain, figure out the course, and let’s go! Look, look! the boy's face at the window! the boy's hand on the hill!"

But Ahab's glance was averted; like a blighted fruit tree he shook, and cast his last, cindered apple to the soil.

But Ahab's gaze was turned away; like a withered fruit tree, he trembled and dropped his last, charred apple to the ground.

"What is it, what nameless, inscrutable, unearthly thing is it; what cozening, hidden lord and master, and cruel, remorseless emperor commands me; that against all natural lovings and longings, I so keep pushing, and crowding, and jamming myself on all the time; recklessly making me ready to do what in my own proper, natural heart, I durst not so much as dare? Is Ahab, Ahab? Is it I, God, or who, that lifts this arm? But if the great sun move not of himself; but is as an errand-boy in heaven; nor one single star can revolve, but by some invisible power; how then can this one small heart beat; this one small brain think thoughts; unless God does that beating, does that thinking, does that living, and not I. By heaven, man, we are turned round and round in this world, like yonder windlass, and Fate is the handspike. And all the time, lo! that smiling sky, and this unsounded sea! Look! see yon Albicore! who put it into him to chase and fang that flying-fish? Where do murderers go, man! Who's to doom, when the judge himself is dragged to the bar? But it is a mild, mild wind, and a mild looking sky; and the airs smells now, as if it blew from a far-away meadow; they have been making hay somewhere under the slopes of the Andes, Starbuck, and the mowers are sleeping among the new-mown hay. Sleeping? Aye, toil we how we may, we all sleep at last on the field. Sleep? Aye, and rust amid greenness; as last year's scythes flung down, and left in the half-cut swarths—Starbuck!"

"What is it, what nameless, mysterious, otherworldly thing is it; what deceptive, hidden lord and master, and cruel, relentless ruler commands me; that despite all natural loves and desires, I keep pushing, crowding, and forcing myself at all times; recklessly ready to do what deep in my own heart, I wouldn't even dare to consider? Is Ahab really Ahab? Is it I, God, or who, that lifts this arm? But if the great sun doesn’t move on its own; but is instead an errand-boy in heaven; and not a single star can move, but by some unseen force; how then can this small heart beat; this small brain think thoughts; unless God is the one doing that beating, that thinking, that living, and not me. By heaven, man, we are spun around in this world, like that windlass, and Fate is the lever. And all the while, look! that smiling sky, and this unfathomable sea! Look! See that Albacore! Who inspired it to chase and attack that flying fish? Where do murderers go, man! Who is to be judged, when the judge himself is brought to trial? But it is a gentle, gentle wind, and a calm looking sky; and the air smells now, as if it’s blowing from a distant meadow; they’ve been making hay somewhere under the slopes of the Andes, Starbuck, and the mowers are napping among the freshly cut hay. Napping? Yes, no matter how hard we toil, we all end up sleeping in the field. Sleep? Yes, and rust among the greenery; like last year’s scythes scattered and left in the half-cut grass—Starbuck!"

But blanched to a corpse's hue with despair, the Mate had stolen away.

But pale as a corpse from despair, the Mate had slipped away.

Ahab crossed the deck to gaze over on the other side; but started at two reflected, fixed eyes in the water there, Fedallah was motionlessly leaning over the same rail.

Ahab walked across the deck to look over the other side, but he was startled by two steady, staring eyes reflected in the water. Fedallah was silently leaning over the same railing.

CHAPTER 133

The Chase - First Day

The Chase - Day One

That night, in the mid-watch when the old man—as his wont at intervals—stepped forth from the scuttle in which he leaned, and went to his pivot-hole, he suddenly thrust out his face fiercely, snuffing up the sea air as a sagacious ship's dog will, in drawing nigh to some barbarous isle. He declared that a whale must be near. Soon that peculiar odor, sometimes to a great distance given forth by the living sperm whale, was palpable to all the watch; nor was any mariner surprised when, after inspecting the compass, and then the dog-vane, and then ascertaining the precise bearing of the odor as nearly as possible, Ahab rapidly ordered the ship's course to be slightly altered, and the sail to be shortened.

That night, during the middle watch, the old man—like he often did—stepped out from the small space where he had been leaning and went to his pivot-hole. Suddenly, he thrust his face out fiercely, taking in the sea air like a clever ship's dog approaching some wild island. He announced that a whale must be close by. Soon, that distinct smell, sometimes carried over a great distance by the living sperm whale, was noticeable by everyone on watch; no sailor was surprised when, after checking the compass, then the dog-vane, and then figuring out the exact direction of the smell as closely as possible, Ahab quickly ordered a slight change in the ship's course and for the sails to be trimmed.

The acute policy dictating these movements was sufficiently vindicated at daybreak, by the sight of a long sleek on the sea directly and lengthwise ahead, smooth as oil, and resembling in the pleated watery wrinkles bordering it, the polished metallic-like marks of some swift tide-rip, at the mouth of a deep, rapid stream.

The sharp policy guiding these movements was clearly justified at dawn, when a long, sleek surface appeared on the sea straight ahead, smooth as oil, and resembling the shiny, metallic-like marks created by some fast-moving tide at the mouth of a deep, swift stream.

"Man the mast-heads! Call all hands!"

"Man the masts! Call everyone!"

Thundering with the butts of three clubbed handspikes on the forecastle deck, Daggoo roused the sleepers with such judgment claps that they seemed to exhale from the scuttle, so instantaneously did they appear with their clothes in their hands.

Thundering with the ends of three handled levers on the forecastle deck, Daggoo woke the sleepers with such loud bangs that they seemed to come out of the hatchway, so quickly did they appear with their clothes in hand.

"What d'ye see?" cried Ahab, flattening his face to the sky.

"What do you see?" yelled Ahab, pressing his face against the sky.

"Nothing, nothing sir!" was the sound hailing down in reply.

"Nothing, nothing, sir!" was the response coming back.

"T'gallant sails!—stunsails! alow and aloft, and on both sides!"

"T'gallant sails!—stunsails! down low and up high, and on both sides!"

All sail being set, he now cast loose the life-line, reserved for swaying him to the main royal-mast head; and in a few moments they were hoisting him thither, when, while but two thirds of the way aloft, and while peering ahead through the horizontal vacancy between the main-top-sail and top-gallant-sail, he raised a gull-like cry in the air. "There she blows!—there she blows! A hump like a snow-hill! It is Moby Dick!"

All the sails were set, and he now untied the life-line, which was meant to hoist him up to the main royal-mast head. In a few moments, they were pulling him up there when, just two-thirds of the way up, and while looking ahead through the open space between the main topsail and the top-gallant sail, he let out a gull-like cry into the air. "There she blows!—there she blows! A hump like a snow hill! It’s Moby Dick!"

Fired by the cry which seemed simultaneously taken up by the three look-outs, the men on deck rushed to the rigging to behold the famous whale they had so long been pursuing. Ahab had now gained his final perch, some feet above the other look-outs, Tashtego standing just beneath him on the cap of the top-gallant-mast, so that the Indian's head was almost on a level with Ahab's heel. From this height the whale was now seen some mile or so ahead, at every roll of the sea revealing his high sparkling hump, and regularly jetting his silent spout into the air. To the credulous mariners it seemed the same silent spout they had so long ago beheld in the moonlit Atlantic and Indian Oceans.

Fired up by the shout that was echoed by the three lookouts, the crew on deck rushed to the rigging to see the legendary whale they had been chasing for so long. Ahab had reached his final vantage point, several feet above the other lookouts, with Tashtego standing just below him on the cap of the top-gallant mast, so that the Indian's head was nearly level with Ahab's heel. From this height, the whale was spotted about a mile ahead, with each roll of the sea revealing its high, shimmering hump, and regularly shooting its silent spout into the air. To the eager sailors, it seemed like the same silent spout they had seen long ago in the moonlit Atlantic and Indian Oceans.

"And did none of ye see it before?" cried Ahab, hailing the perched men all around him.

"And didn't any of you see it before?" shouted Ahab, calling to the men sitting around him.

"I saw him almost that same instant, sir, that Captain Ahab did, and I cried out," said Tashtego.

"I saw him almost at the same moment, sir, that Captain Ahab did, and I shouted," said Tashtego.

"Not the same instant; not the same—no, the doubloon is mine, Fate reserved the doubloon for me. I only; none of ye could have raised the White Whale first. There she blows! there she blows!— there she blows!—there she blows! There again!—there again!" he cried, in long-drawn, lingering, methodic tones, attuned to the gradual prolongings of the whale's visible jets. "He's going to sound! In stunsails! Down top-gallant-sails! Stand by three boats. Mr. Starbuck, remember, stay on board, and keep the ship. Helm there! Luff, luff a point! So; steady, man, steady! There go flukes! No, no; only black water! All ready the boats there? Stand by, stand by! Lower me, Mr. Starbuck; lower, lower,—quick, quicker!" and he slid through the air to the deck.

"Not the same moment; definitely not—the doubloon is mine, Fate set the doubloon aside for me. Only I; none of you could have spotted the White Whale first. There it blows! there it blows!—there it blows!—there it blows! There it is again!—there it is again!" he shouted, in long, drawn-out, methodical tones, matching the slow, rising spouts of the whale. "He's about to dive! Set the stunsails! Bring down the top-gallant sails! Prepare three boats. Mr. Starbuck, remember, stay on the ship and keep her steady. Helm there! Turn to luff, luff a point! Good; steady now, steady! There go the flukes! No, wait; just black water! Are all the boats ready? Stand by, stand by! Lower me, Mr. Starbuck; lower, lower—quick, faster!" and he jumped through the air to the deck.

"He is heading straight to leeward, sir," cried Stubb, "right away from us; cannot have seen the ship yet."

"He’s heading straight downwind, sir," shouted Stubb, "totally away from us; he must not have spotted the ship yet."

"Be dumb, man! Stand by the braces! Hard down the helm!—brace up!
Shiver her!—shiver her!—So; well that! Boats, boats!"

"Be quiet, man! Hold the braces! Pull the helm hard!—adjust the sails!
Shake her out!—shake her out!—Alright, that's good! Boats, boats!"

Soon all the boats but Starbuck's were dropped; all the boat-sails set— all the paddles plying; with rippling swiftness, shooting to leeward; and Ahab heading the onset. A pale, death-glimmer lit up Fedallah's sunken eyes; a hideous motion gnawed his mouth.

Soon all the boats except Starbuck's were launched; all the sails were unfurled— all the paddles were in motion; swiftly gliding to leeward; with Ahab leading the charge. A pale, deathly light shone in Fedallah's sunken eyes; a grotesque movement twisted his mouth.

Like noiseless nautilus shells, their light prows sped through the sea; but only slowly they neared the foe. As they neared him, the ocean grew still more smooth; seemed drawing a carpet over its waves; seemed a noon-meadow, so serenely it spread. At length the breathless hunter came so nigh his seemingly unsuspecting prey, that his entire dazzling hump was distinctly visible, sliding along the sea as if an isolated thing, and continually set in a revolving ring of finest, fleecy, greenish foam. He saw the vast, involved wrinkles of the slightly projecting head beyond. Before it, far out on the soft Turkish-rugged waters, went the glistening white shadow from his broad, milky forehead, a musical rippling playfully accompanying the shade; and behind, the blue waters interchangeably flowed over into the moving valley of his steady wake; and on either hand bright bubbles arose and danced by his side. But these were broken again by the light toes of hundreds of gay fowls softly feathering the sea, alternate with their fitful flight; and like to some flag-staff rising from the painted hull of an argosy, the tall but shattered pole of a recent lance projected from the white whale's back; and at intervals one of the cloud of soft-toed fowls hovering, and to and fro skimming like a canopy over the fish, silently perched and rocked on this pole, the long tail feathers streaming like pennons.

Like quiet nautilus shells, their sleek bows glided through the sea; but they approached the enemy slowly. As they got closer, the ocean became even smoother; it seemed to be laying a carpet over its waves; it looked like a peaceful meadow, so calmly it spread out. Finally, the breathless hunter got close enough to his seemingly unaware target that he could clearly see its brilliant hump sliding through the water as if it were a solitary object, constantly surrounded by a swirling ring of fine, fluffy, greenish foam. He noticed the vast, intricate wrinkles of the slightly protruding head ahead. In front of it, far out on the gentle waters that resembled a soft Turkish rug, there was the shining white shadow cast by its wide, milky forehead, accompanied by a playful, musical ripple; behind it, the blue waters flowed in and out, creating a moving valley in its steady wake; and on either side, bright bubbles rose and danced alongside. But these were interrupted by the delicate feet of hundreds of colorful birds lightly touching the sea as they flew back and forth; and like a flagpole rising from the painted hull of a large ship, the tall but broken pole of a recent harpoon jutted out from the white whale’s back; and at intervals, one of the flock of soft-footed birds, hovering and gliding like a canopy above the fish, silently perched and swayed on this pole, its long tail feathers streaming like banners.

A gentle joyousness—a mighty mildness of repose in swiftness, invested the gliding whale. Not the white bull Jupiter swimming away with ravished Europa clinging to his graceful horns; his lovely, leering eyes sideways intent upon the maid; with smooth bewitching fleetness, rippling straight for the nuptial bower in Crete; not Jove, not that great majesty Supreme! did surpass the glorified White Whale as he so divinely swam.

A gentle joy—a powerful calmness in movement—surrounded the gliding whale. Not the white bull Jupiter swimming away with the enchanted Europa clinging to his graceful horns; his beautiful, playful eyes focused sideways on the girl; with smooth, magical speed, heading straight for the wedding chamber in Crete; not Jove, not that great Supreme Majesty! could match the glorified White Whale as he swam so divinely.

On each soft side—coincident with the parted swell, that but once leaving him then flowed so wide away—on each bright side, the whale shed off enticings. No wonder there had been some among the hunters who namelessly transported and allured by all this serenity, had ventured to assail it; but had fatally found that quietude but the vesture of tornadoes. Yet calm, enticing calm, oh, whale! thou glidest on, to all who for the first time eye thee, no matter how many in that same way thou mayst have bejuggled and destroyed before.

On each soft side—just as the waves parted, flowing wide away from him—on each bright side, the whale gave off allurements. It’s no surprise that some hunters, drawn in by this peace, dared to attack it; but they were tragically reminded that this calm was just a cover for storms. Yet calm, enticing calm, oh whale! you glide on, captivating everyone who sees you for the first time, no matter how many you may have deceived and destroyed in the past.

And thus, through the serene tranquillities of the tropical sea, among waves whose hand-clappings were suspended by exceeding rapture, Moby Dick moved on, still withholding from sight the full terrors of his submerged trunk, entirely hiding the wrenched hideousness of his jaw. But soon the fore part of him slowly rose from the water; for an instant his whole marbleized body formed a high arch, like Virginia's Natural Bridge, and warningly waving his bannered flukes in the air, the grand god revealed himself, sounded and went out of sight. Hoveringly halting, and dipping on the wing, the white sea-fowls longingly lingered over the agitated pool that he left.

And so, through the calm beauty of the tropical sea, among waves that seemed to pause in joyful applause, Moby Dick moved on, still keeping hidden the full terror of his submerged body and completely concealing the twisted horror of his jaw. But soon, the front part of him slowly rose from the water; for a moment, his entire marble-like body formed a high arch, like Virginia's Natural Bridge, and, waving his massive flukes in the air as a warning, the great whale revealed himself, sounded, and disappeared from view. Hovering and dipping in the air, the white sea birds lingered longingly over the disturbed pool he left behind.

With oars apeak, and paddles down, the sheets of their sails adrift, the three boats now stilly floated, awaiting Moby Dick's reappearance.

With oars raised and paddles lowered, their sails loose, the three boats now floated quietly, waiting for Moby Dick to reappear.

"An hour," said Ahab, standing rooted in his boat's stern; and he gazed beyond the whale's place, towards the dim blue spaces and wide wooing vacancies to leeward. It was only an instant; for again his eyes seemed whirling round in his head as he swept the watery circle. The breeze now freshened; the sea began to swell.

"An hour," Ahab said, standing firmly at the back of his boat; he looked past the whale’s spot, towards the distant blue areas and open spaces to the side. It was just a moment; his eyes felt like they were spinning again as he scanned the watery horizon. The breeze picked up; the sea started to rise.

"The birds!—the birds!" cried Tashtego.

"The birds!—the birds!" yelled Tashtego.

In long Indian file, as when herons take wing, the white birds were now all flying towards Ahab's boat; and when within a few yards began fluttering over the water there, wheeling round and round, with joyous, expectant cries. Their vision was keener than man's; Ahab could discover no sign in the sea. But suddenly as he peered down and down into its depths, he profoundly saw a white living spot no bigger than a white weasel, with wonderful celerity uprising, and magnifying as it rose, till it turned, and then there were plainly revealed two long crooked rows of white, glistening teeth, floating up from the undiscoverable bottom. It was Moby Dick's open mouth and scrolled jaw; his vast, shadowed bulk still half blending with the blue of the sea. The glittering mouth yawned beneath the boat like an open-doored marble tomb; and giving one sidelong sweep with his steering oar, Ahab whirled the craft aside from this tremendous apparition. Then, calling upon Fedallah to change places with him, went forward to the bows, and seizing Perth's harpoon, commanded his crew to grasp their oars and stand by to stern.

In a long line, like herons taking flight, the white birds were now all flying toward Ahab's boat; and when they got a few yards away, they started fluttering over the water, circling around with happy, eager cries. Their eyesight was sharper than a human's; Ahab couldn’t see any signs in the ocean. But suddenly, as he leaned down to look deeper into the water, he saw a white living spot no bigger than a small weasel, rising quickly and getting bigger as it came up, until it turned, revealing two long, crooked rows of white, shiny teeth floating up from the unseen ocean floor. It was Moby Dick's open mouth and curled jaw; his enormous, shadowy body still partly blended with the blue of the sea. The glimmering mouth yawned beneath the boat like a marble tomb with its doors wide open; and with one quick sweep of his steering oar, Ahab turned the boat away from this overwhelming sight. Then, calling for Fedallah to switch places with him, he went to the front and grabbed Perth's harpoon, ordering his crew to take hold of their oars and prepare to move.

Now, by reason of this timely spinning round the boat upon its axis, its bow, by anticipation, was made to face the whale's head while yet under water. But as if perceiving this stratagem, Moby Dick, with that malicious intelligence ascribed to him, sidelingly transplanted himself, as it were, in an instant, shooting his pleated head lengthwise beneath the boat.

Now, because of this quick turn of the boat on its axis, its bow was positioned to face the whale's head even while it was still underwater. But as if sensing this plan, Moby Dick, with the cleverness he's known for, quickly shifted and slid his raised head underneath the boat.

Through and through; through every plank and each rib, it thrilled for an instant, the whale obliquely lying on his back, in the manner of a biting shark slowly and feelingly taking its bows full within his mouth, so that the long, narrow, scrolled lower jaw curled high up into the open air, and one of the teeth caught in a row-lock. The bluish pearl-white of the inside of the jaw was within six inches of Ahab's head, and reached higher than that. In this attitude the White Whale now shook the slight cedar as a mildly cruel cat her mouse. With unastonished eyes Fedallah gazed, and crossed his arms; but the tiger-yellow crew were tumbling over each other's heads to gain the uttermost stern.

Through and through; every plank and each rib buzzed for a moment as the whale lay on its back, like a shark slowly savoring its catch in its mouth. The long, narrow, curled lower jaw arched high into the air, and one of its teeth got stuck in a row-lock. The bluish pearl-white interior of the jaw was only six inches from Ahab's head and extended even higher. In this position, the White Whale shook the small cedar like a cat with its mouse. Fedallah watched with unfazed eyes, his arms crossed, while the crew, with their tiger-yellow skin, scrambled over each other to reach the farthest stern.

And now, while both elastic gunwales were springing in and out, as the whale dallied with the doomed craft in this devilish way; and from his body being submerged beneath the boat, he could not be darted at from the bows, for the bows were almost inside of him, as it were; and while the other boats involuntarily paused, as before a quick crisis impossible to withstand, then it was that monomaniac Ahab, furious with this tantalizing vicinity of his foe, which placed him all alive and helpless in the very jaws he hated; frenzied with all this, he seized the long bone with his naked hands, and wildly strove to wrench it from its gripe. As now he thus vainly strove, the jaw slipped from him; the frail gunwales bent in, collapsed, and snapped, as both jaws, like an enormous shears, sliding further aft, bit the craft completely in twain, and locked themselves fast again in the sea, midway between the two floating wrecks. These floated aside, the broken ends drooping, the crew at the stern-wreck clinging to the gunwales, and striving to hold fast to the oars to lash them across.

And now, while both flexible gunwales were flexing in and out, as the whale toyed with the doomed boat in this wicked way; and since his body was submerged beneath the vessel, he couldn't be targeted from the front, because the front was almost inside him, so to speak; and while the other boats involuntarily hesitated before a critical moment they couldn't escape, it was then that the obsessed Ahab, furious with the frustrating closeness of his enemy, which left him alive and helpless in the very jaws he despised; frenzied by all this, he grabbed the long bone with his bare hands and desperately tried to wrench it from its grip. As he struggled in vain, the jaw slipped from him; the fragile gunwales bent in, collapsed, and broke as both jaws, like giant scissors, slid further back and severed the boat completely in two, locking themselves tightly in the sea, halfway between the two floating wrecks. These drifted apart, the broken ends hanging down, with the crew at the stern wreck clinging to the gunwales and trying to hold onto the oars to lash them across.

At that preluding moment, ere the boat was yet snapped, Ahab, the first to perceive the whale's intent, by the crafty upraising of his head, a movement that loosed his hold for the time; at that moment his hand had made one final effort to push the boat out of the bite. But only slipping further into the whale's mouth, and tilting over sideways as it slipped, the boat had shaken off his hold on the jaw; spilled him out of it, as he leaned to the push; and so he fell flat-faced upon the sea.

At that crucial moment, before the boat was even caught, Ahab, the first to notice the whale's intention, raised his head in a cunning way, a movement that let go of his grip for the time being; at that moment, his hand made one last attempt to push the boat out of the whale's bite. But instead, he slid further into the whale's mouth, and as the boat tipped sideways, it shook off his hold on the jaw; spilling him out as he leaned forward to push; and so he fell face down into the sea.

Ripplingly withdrawing from his prey, Moby Dick now lay at a little distance, vertically thrusting his oblong white head up and down in the billows; and at the same time slowly revolving his whole spindled body; so that when his vast wrinkled forehead rose— some twenty or more feet out of the water—the now rising swells, with all their confluent waves, dazzlingly broke against it; vindictively tossing their shivered spray still higher into the air.* So, in a gale, the but half baffled Channel billows only recoil from the base of the Eddystone, triumphantly to overleap its summit with their scud.

Withdrawing smoothly from his prey, Moby Dick now rested a short distance away, pushing his long white head up and down in the waves; at the same time, he slowly turned his entire slender body. When his huge, wrinkled forehead rose—about twenty feet above the water—the swells broke against it with all their combined waves, dazzlingly sending their spray even higher into the air. Similarly, in a storm, the partially thwarted Channel waves only pull back from the base of the Eddystone, only to triumphantly leap over its peak with their spray.

*This motion is peculiar to the sperm whale. It receives its designation (pitchpoling) from its being likened to that preliminary up-and-down poise of the whale-lance, in the exercise called pitchpoling, previously described. By this motion the whale must best and most comprehensively view whatever objects may be encircling him.

*This movement is unique to the sperm whale. It gets its name (pitchpoling) from the way it resembles the preliminary up-and-down positioning of the whale-lance, as described earlier in the exercise called pitchpoling. Through this motion, the whale can best and most completely observe whatever objects are surrounding it.*

But soon resuming his horizontal attitude, Moby Dick swam swiftly round and round the wrecked crew; sideways churning the water in his vengeful wake, as if lashing himself up to still another and more deadly assault. The sight of the splintered boat seemed to madden him, as the blood of grapes and mulberries cast before Antiochus's elephants in the book of Maccabees. Meanwhile Ahab half smothered in the foam of the whale's insolent tail, and too much of a cripple to swim,—though he could still keep afloat, even in the heart of such a whirlpool as that; helpless Ahab's head was seen, like a tossed bubble which the least chance shock might burst. From the boat's fragmentary stern, Fedallah incuriously and mildly eyed him; the clinging crew, at the other drifting end, could not succor him; more than enough was it for them to look to themselves. For so revolvingly appalling was the White Whale's aspect, and so planetarily swift the ever-contracting circles he made, that he seemed horizontally swooping upon them. And though the other boats, unharmed, still hovered hard by; still they dared not pull into the eddy to strike, lest that should be the signal for the instant destruction of the jeopardized castaways, Ahab and all; nor in that case could they themselves hope to escape. With straining eyes, then, they remained on the outer edge of the direful zone, whose centre had now become the old man's head.

But soon, Moby Dick resumed his horizontal position and swiftly swam around the wrecked crew, churning the water in his vengeful wake as if preparing for another deadly attack. The sight of the shattered boat seemed to drive him into a rage, just like the blood of grapes and mulberries thrown before Antiochus's elephants in the book of Maccabees. Meanwhile, Ahab, half-buried in the foam of the whale's arrogant tail and too much of a cripple to swim—though he could still stay afloat even in the heart of such a whirlpool—was helpless. Ahab's head was visible, like a fragile bubble that could burst at the slightest jolt. From the fragmented stern of the boat, Fedallah gazed at him with mild curiosity; the other crew members at the drifting end couldn’t help him; it was enough for them to look out for themselves. The White Whale's appearance was so horrifying, and the ever-narrowing circles he made were so fast, it seemed he was swooping down on them. Though the other boats, unharmed, still hovered close by, they did not dare enter the eddy to strike, fearing it would mean instant destruction for the vulnerable castaways, Ahab included; nor could they hope to escape if that happened. With straining eyes, they stayed at the outer edge of the dangerous zone, where the center had now become the old man's head.

Meantime, from the beginning all this had been descried from the ship's mast heads; and squaring her yards, she had borne down upon the scene; and was now so nigh, that Ahab in the water hailed her!—"Sail on the"— but that moment a breaking sea dashed on him from Moby Dick, and whelmed him for the time. But struggling out of it again, and chancing to rise on a towering crest, he shouted,—"Sail on the whale!—Drive him off!"

Meantime, from the start, all of this had been spotted from the ship's mastheads; and adjusting her sails, she had moved toward the scene; and was now so close that Ahab in the water called out to her!—"Sail on the"— but at that moment, a breaking wave hit him from Moby Dick and submerged him for a moment. But as he fought his way back up, and happened to rise on a towering wave, he shouted,—"Sail on the whale!—Drive him off!"

The Pequod's prows were pointed-, and breaking up the charmed circle, she effectually parted the white whale from his victim. As he sullenly swam off, the boats flew to the rescue.

The Pequod's bow was sharp, and by disrupting the enchanted circle, she successfully separated the white whale from its prey. As the whale swam away gloomily, the boats raced in to help.

Dragged into Stubb's boat with blood-shot, blinded eyes, the white brine caking in his wrinkles; the long tension of Ahab's bodily strength did crack, and helplessly he yielded to his body's doom for a time, lying all crushed in the bottom of Stubb's boat, like one trodden under foot of herds of elephants. Far inland, nameless wails came from him, as desolate sounds from out ravines.

Dragged into Stubb's boat with bloodshot, dazed eyes, the white salt crusting in his creases; the long strain of Ahab's physical strength finally broke, and he helplessly surrendered to his body’s fate for a while, lying completely crushed at the bottom of Stubb's boat, like someone trampled by a herd of elephants. From deep within, nameless cries escaped him, like lonely echoes from the depths of ravines.

But this intensity of his physical prostration did but so much the more abbreviate it. In an instant's compass, great hearts sometimes condense to one deep pang, the sum total of those shallow pains kindly diffused through feebler men's whole lives. And so, such hearts, though summary in each one suffering; still, if the gods decree it, in their life-time aggregate a whole age of woe, wholly made up of instantaneous intensities; for even in their pointless centres, those noble natures contain the entire circumferences of inferior souls.

But this intensity of his physical exhaustion only made it shorter. In the blink of an eye, great hearts can sometimes compress a deep feeling into one overwhelming moment, the total of those minor struggles that weaker individuals face throughout their entire lives. And so, these strong hearts, though quick in each moment of pain, can accumulate a lifetime of suffering, made up entirely of intense feelings; for even in their seemingly aimless centers, those noble souls encompass the full range of lesser beings.

"The harpoon," said Ahab, half way rising, and draggingly leaning on one bended arm—"is it safe?"

"The harpoon," Ahab said, halfway rising and leaning heavily on one bent arm—"is it safe?"

"Aye, sir, for it was not darted; this is it," said Stubb, showing it.

"Aye, sir, it wasn't thrown; here it is," said Stubb, showing it.

"Lay it before me;—any missing men?"

"Put it in front of me;—are there any missing people?"

"One, two, three, four, five;—there were five oars, sir, and here are five men."

"One, two, three, four, five;—there were five oars, sir, and here are five men."

"That's good.—Help me, man; I wish to stand. So, so, I see him!
there! there! going to leeward still; what a leaping spout!—
Hands off from me! The eternal sap runs up in Ahab's bones again!
Set the sail; out oars; the helm!"

"That's good.—Help me, man; I want to stand. So, so, I see him!
There! There! Still going to the leeward; what a huge spout!—
Hands off me! The eternal sap is running through Ahab's bones again!
Set the sail; out with the oars; steer the ship!"

It is often the case that when a boat is stove, its crew, being picked up by another boat, help to work that second boat; and the chase is thus continued with what is called double-banked oars. It was thus now. But the added power of the boat did not equal the added power of the whale, for he seemed to have treble-banked his every fin; swimming with a velocity which plainly showed, that if now, under these circumstances, pushed on, the chase would prove an indefinitely prolonged, if not a hopeless one; nor could any crew endure for so long a period, such an unintermitted, intense straining at the oar; a thing barely tolerable only in some one brief vicissitude. The ship itself, then, as it sometimes happens, offered the most promising intermediate means of overtaking the chase. Accordingly, the boats now made for her, and were soon swayed up to their cranes—the two parts of the wrecked boat having been previously secured by her—and then hoisting everything to her side, and stacking her canvas high up, and sideways outstretching it with stunsails, like the double-jointed wings of an albatross; the Pequod bore down in the leeward wake of Moby Dick. At the well known, methodic intervals, the whale's glittering spout was regularly announced from the manned mast-heads; and when he would be reported as just gone down, Ahab would take the time, and then pacing the deck, binnacle-watch in hand, so soon as the last second of the allotted hour expired, his voice was heard.—"Whose is the doubloon now? D'ye see him?" and if the reply was No, sir! straightway he commanded them to lift him to his perch. In this way the day wore on; Ahab, now aloft and motionless; anon, unrestingly pacing the planks.

It often happens that when a boat is damaged, its crew, while being picked up by another boat, helps operate that second boat, and the chase continues with what’s called double-banked oars. That’s how it was now. But the extra power of the boat didn’t match the whale’s added strength, as he seemed to have tripled his every fin, swimming at a speed that clearly indicated that if they pushed on under these circumstances, the chase would be endlessly prolonged, if not completely hopeless; and no crew could endure such continuous, intense straining at the oars for long, only tolerable in brief moments of reprieve. The ship itself, then, as sometimes happens, offered the most promising way to catch up to the chase. So, the boats headed for her and were soon lifted up to their cranes—the two parts of the wrecked boat having been previously secured by her—and then hoisting everything to her side, stacking her canvas high up and spreading it out with stunsails, like the double-jointed wings of an albatross; the Pequod moved down in the leeward wake of Moby Dick. At well-known, methodical intervals, the whale’s glittering spout was regularly announced from the lookout on the mast; and when he was reported as just having gone down, Ahab would check the time, and then pacing the deck with the binnacle watch in hand, as soon as the last second of the allotted hour passed, his voice would be heard. “Whose is the doubloon now? Do you see him?” and if the answer was “No, sir!” he would immediately command them to lift him to his perch. This is how the day went on; Ahab, now up high and motionless; at times, restlessly pacing the deck.

As he was thus walking, uttering no sound, except to hail the men aloft, or to bid them hoist a sail still higher, or to spread one to a still greater breadth—thus to and fro pacing, beneath his slouched hat, at every turn he passed his own wrecked boat, which had been dropped upon the quarter-deck, and lay there reversed; broken bow to shattered stern. At last he paused before it; and as in an already over-clouded sky fresh troops of clouds will sometimes sail across, so over the old man's face there now stole some such added gloom as this.

As he walked in silence, only calling up to the crew or asking them to raise a sail higher, or to spread one wider—moving back and forth beneath his slouched hat, he passed his wrecked boat, which had been left on the quarter-deck, lying upside down; its broken bow facing the shattered stern. Finally, he stopped in front of it; and just as dark clouds can drift across an already gloomy sky, a new layer of sadness washed over the old man's face.

Stubb saw him pause; and perhaps intending, not vainly, though, to evince his own unabated fortitude, and thus keep up a valiant place in his Captain's mind, he advanced, and eyeing the wreck exclaimed— "The thistle the ass refused; it pricked his mouth too keenly, sir; ha! ha! ha!"

Stubb noticed him pause; and maybe wanting to show his own unshaken courage, and keep a strong position in his Captain's mind, he stepped forward, looking at the wreck and exclaimed— "The thistle the donkey turned down; it pricked his mouth too sharply, sir; ha! ha! ha!"

"What soulless thing is this that laughs before a wreck?
Man, man! did I not know thee brave as fearless fire
(and as mechanical) I could swear thou wert a poltroon.
Groan nor laugh should be heard before a wreck."

"What heartless thing is this that laughs in front of a disaster?
Man, man! Did I not know you to be as brave as fearless fire
(and as mechanical) I could swear you were a coward.
Neither groans nor laughter should be heard before a wreck."

"Aye, sir," said Starbuck drawing near, "'tis a solemn sight; an omen, and an ill one."

"Yeah, sir," said Starbuck, moving closer, "it's a serious sight; a warning, and a bad one."

"Omen? omen?—the dictionary! If the gods think to speak outright to man, they will honorably speak outright; not shake their heads, and give an old wives' darkling hint.—Begone! Ye two are the opposite poles of one thing; Starbuck is Stubb reversed, and Stubb is Starbuck; and ye two are all mankind; and Ahab stands alone among the millions of the peopled earth, nor gods nor men his neighbors! Cold, cold—I shiver!—How now? Aloft there! D'ye see him? Sing out for every spout, though he spout ten times a second!"

"Omen? Omen?—the dictionary! If the gods want to speak directly to people, they would do so openly; not just shake their heads and give some vague hint. —Get lost! You two are the opposite ends of the same thing; Starbuck is Stubb flipped, and Stubb is Starbuck; and you two represent all of humanity; and Ahab stands alone among the millions on this populated earth, with neither gods nor men as his neighbors! It's so cold—I’m shivering!—What’s that? Up there! Do you see him? Call out for every spout, even if he spouts ten times a second!"

The day was nearly done; only the hem of his golden robe was rustling.
Soon it was almost dark, but the look-out men still remained unset.

The day was almost over; only the edge of his golden robe was moving.
It was getting close to dark, but the look-out men were still not settled.

"Can't see the spout now, sir;—too dark"—cried a voice from the air.

"Can't see the spout right now, sir;—it's too dark," shouted a voice from the air.

"How heading when last seen?"

"What's the direction last seen?"

"As before, sir,—straight to leeward."

"As before, sir—straight to the left."

"Good! he will travel slower now 'tis night. Down royals and top-gallant stunsails, Mr. Starbuck. We must not run over him before morning; he's making a passage now, and may heave-to a while. Helm there! keep her full before the wind!—Aloft! come down!— Mr. Stubb, send a fresh hand to the fore-mast head, and see it manned till morning."—Then advancing towards the doubloon in the main-mast—"Men, this gold is mine, for I earned it; but I shall let it abide here till the White Whale is dead; and then, whosoever of ye first raises him, upon the day he shall be killed, this gold is that man's; and if on that day I shall again raise him, then, ten times its sum shall be divided among all of ye! Away now! the deck is thine, sir!"

"Good! He’ll travel slower now that it’s night. Lower the sails and top-gallant stunsails, Mr. Starbuck. We can’t run over him before morning; he’s making a passage now and might heave-to for a while. Helm there! Keep her headed straight into the wind!—Aloft! Come down!—Mr. Stubb, send a fresh hand to the fore-mast head and make sure it’s manned until morning."—Then moving towards the doubloon in the main-mast—"Men, this gold is mine because I earned it; but I’ll leave it here until the White Whale is dead; and then, whoever of you first raises him, on the day he’s killed, this gold is that man’s; and if on that day I raise him again, then ten times its value will be divided among all of you! Now, away! The deck is yours, sir!"

And so saying, he placed himself half way within the scuttle, and slouching his hat, stood there till dawn, except when at intervals rousing himself to see how the night wore on.

And saying that, he positioned himself halfway inside the hatch, slouched his hat, and stood there until dawn, except for when he occasionally woke up to check how the night was going.

CHAPTER 134

The Chase - Second Day

The Chase - Day 2

At day-break, the three mast-heads were punctually manned afresh.

At daybreak, the three mastheads were promptly manned again.

"D'ye see him?" cried Ahab after allowing a little space for the light to spread.

"Do you see him?" shouted Ahab after giving the light a moment to spread.

"See nothing, sir."

"See nothing, sir."

"Turn up all hands and make sail! he travels faster than I thought for;— the top-gallant sails!—aye, they should have been kept on her all night. But no matter—'tis but resting for the rush."

"Get everyone on deck and set the sails! He's moving quicker than I expected;— the top-gallant sails!—yeah, they should have stayed up all night. But it doesn't matter—it's just a break before the rush."

Here be it said, that this pertinacious pursuit of one particular whale, continued through day into night, and through night into day, is a thing by no means unprecedented in the South sea fishery. For such is the wonderful skill, prescience of experience, and invincible confidence acquired by some great natural geniuses among the Nantucket commanders; that from the simple observation of a whale when last descried, they will, under certain given circumstances, pretty accurately foretell both the direction in which he will continue to swim for a time, while out of sight, as well as his probable rate of progression during that period. And, in these cases, somewhat as a pilot, when about losing sight of a coast, whose general trending he well knows, and which he desires shortly to return to again, but at some further point; like as this pilot stands by his compass, and takes the precise bearing of the cape at present visible, in order the more certainly to hit aright the remote, unseen headland, eventually to be visited: so does the fisherman, at his compass, with the whale; for after being chased, and diligently marked, through several hours of daylight, then, when night obscures the fish, the creature's future wake through the darkness is almost as established to the sagacious mind of the hunter, as the pilot's coast is to him. So that to this hunter's wondrous skill, the proverbial evanescence of a thing writ in water, a wake, is to all desired purposes well nigh as reliable as the steadfast land. And as the mighty iron Leviathan of the modern railway is so familiarly known in its every pace, that, with watches in their hands, men time his rate as doctors that of a baby's pulse; and lightly say of it, the up train or the down train will reach such or such a spot, at such or such an hour; even so, almost, there are occasions when these Nantucketers time that other Leviathan of the deep, according to the observed humor of his speed; and say to themselves, so many hours hence this whale will have gone two hundred miles, will have about reached this or that degree of latitude or longitude. But to render this acuteness at all successful in the end, the wind and the sea must be the whaleman's allies; for of what present avail to the becalmed or wind-bound mariner is the skill that assures him he is exactly ninety-three leagues and a quarter from his port? Inferable from these statements, are many collateral subtile matters touching the chase of whales.

It's worth noting that this relentless pursuit of a single whale, continuing from day into night and back again, is not uncommon in the South Sea fishery. The remarkable skill, foresight from experience, and unshakeable confidence developed by some exceptional Nantucket captains allow them to predict, based on a whale's last sighting, the direction it will swim out of sight and its likely speed during that time. In these situations, much like a pilot who is about to lose sight of a coastline he knows well and intends to return to later, this pilot takes precise readings of the visible cape to effectively navigate the unseen headland he will eventually visit. In a similar manner, the fisherman, using his compass, keeps track of the whale; after chasing and observing it for several daylight hours, the creature's future path through the darkness becomes nearly as clear to the experienced hunter as the coastline is to the pilot. Thus, to this hunter's extraordinary skill, the usually ephemeral trace left by a whale’s wake is, for all practical purposes, as dependable as solid land. Just as the massive iron leviathan of the modern railway is so well known in its every movement that people can time its speed like doctors measure a baby's pulse, saying the up train or down train will arrive at a specific spot at a certain time, there are moments when these Nantucketers can similarly estimate the movement of that other leviathan of the deep based on its speed. They might think to themselves that in a few hours, this whale will have traveled two hundred miles or reached a certain latitude or longitude. However, for this sharpness to be effective in the end, the wind and sea must be favorable to the whaleman; what good is it to a stranded or wind-bound sailor to know he's exactly ninety-three leagues and a quarter from his port? From these observations, many subtle aspects of whale hunting can be inferred.

The ship tore on; leaving such a furrow in the sea as when a cannonball, missent, becomes a plough-share and turns up the level field.

The ship sped on, carving a path through the sea like a cannonball gone astray that turns into a plow and disrupts the smooth ground.

"By salt and hemp!" cried Stubb, "but this swift motion of the deck creeps up one's legs and tingles at the heart. This ship and I are two brave fellows!—Ha, ha! Some one take me up, and launch me, spine-wise, on the sea,—for by live-oaks! my spine's a keel. Ha, ha! we go the gait that leaves no dust behind!"

"By salt and hemp!" shouted Stubb, "but this fast motion of the deck runs up my legs and gives me butterflies in my stomach. This ship and I are a couple of bold characters!—Ha, ha! Somebody lift me up and toss me, back-first, into the sea—because by live oaks! my back is a keel. Ha, ha! we’re moving so fast that we’re not leaving any dust behind!"

"There she blows—she blows!—she blows!—right ahead!" was now the mast-head cry.

"There she blows—she blows!—she blows!—right ahead!" was now the call from the masthead.

"Aye, aye!" cried Stubb, "I knew it—ye can't escape—blow on and split your spout, O whale! the mad fiend himself is after ye! blow your trump— blister your lungs!—Ahab will dam off your blood, as a miller shuts his watergate upon the stream!"

"Aye, aye!" shouted Stubb, "I knew it—you can't get away—spout on and split your blowhole, O whale! The mad fiend himself is after you! Blow your trumpet—burst your lungs! Ahab will cut off your blood, just like a miller closes his watergate on the stream!"

And Stubb did but speak out for well nigh all that crew. The frenzies of the chase had by this time worked them bubblingly up, like old wine worked anew. Whatever pale fears and forebodings some of them might have felt before; these were not only now kept out of sight through the growing awe of Ahab, but they were broken up, and on all sides routed, as timid prairie hares that scatter before the bounding bison. The hand of Fate had snatched all their souls; and by the stirring perils of the previous day; the rack of the past night's suspense; the fixed, unfearing, blind, reckless way in which their wild craft went plunging towards its flying mark; by all these things, their hearts were bowled along. The wind that made great bellies of their sails, and rushed the vessel on by arms invisible as irresistible; this seemed the symbol of that unseen agency which so enslaved them to the race.

And Stubb basically said what nearly everyone on the crew was thinking. The excitement of the chase had pumped them up, like old wine being stirred again. Whatever fears and worries some of them might have had before were now hidden away, overshadowed by their growing respect for Ahab. Those fears were scattered, like scared prairie hares fleeing from a charging bison. Fate had taken hold of their spirits; after the intense dangers they faced the day before, the tension of the night prior, and the way their wild ship charged fearlessly toward its target—through all of this, their hearts were carried along. The wind filled their sails and propelled the ship forward with a force that felt both invisible and unstoppable; it seemed to represent the unseen force that had them all hooked on the chase.

They were one man, not thirty. For as the one ship that held them all; though it was put together of all contrasting things—oak, and maple, and pine wood; iron, and pitch, and hemp—yet all these ran into each other in the one concrete hull, which shot on its way, both balanced and directed by the long central keel; even so, all the individualities of the crew, this man's valor, that man's fear; guilt and guiltiness, all varieties were welded into oneness, and were all directed to that fatal goal which Ahab their one lord and keel did point to.

They were one man, not thirty. Just like the single ship that carried them all—made from different materials like oak, maple, pine, iron, pitch, and hemp—these elements combined into one solid hull, moving smoothly, balanced and guided by the long central keel. In the same way, all the unique traits of the crew, this man's courage, that man's fear, guilt and wrongdoing, all the differences were melded into one, all aimed at the deadly goal Ahab, their one leader and keel, pointed toward.

The rigging lived. The mast-heads, like the tops of tall palms, were outspreadingly tufted with arms and legs. Clinging to a spar with one hand, some reached forth the other with impatient wavings; others, shading their eyes from the vivid sunlight, sat far out on the rocking yards; all the spars in full bearing of mortals, ready and ripe for their fate. Ah! how they still strove through that infinite blueness to seek out the thing that might destroy them!

The rigging was alive. The mastheads, like the tops of tall palm trees, were spread out with arms and legs. Some clung to a spar with one hand, reaching out with the other and waving impatiently; others sat far out on the swaying yards, shading their eyes from the bright sunlight; all the spars fully exposed to the world, ready for whatever fate awaited them. Ah! How they continued to struggle through that endless blue, trying to find whatever could bring them to their end!

"Why sing ye not out for him, if ye see him?" cried Ahab, when, after the lapse of some minutes since the first cry, no more had been heard. "Sway me up, men; ye have been deceived; not Moby Dick casts one odd jet that way, and then disappears."

"Why aren’t you calling out for him if you see him?" shouted Ahab when, after a few minutes since the first shout, nothing more had been heard. "Lift me up, men; you’ve been tricked; Moby Dick doesn’t just spray one odd jet that way and then vanish."

It was even so; in their headlong eagerness, the men had mistaken some other thing for the whale-spout, as the event itself soon proved; for hardly had Ahab reached his perch; hardly was the rope belayed to its pin on deck, when he struck the key-note to an orchestra, that made the air vibrate as with the combined discharge of rifles. The triumphant halloo of thirty buckskin lungs was heard, as— much nearer to the ship than the place of the imaginary jet, less than a mile ahead—Moby Dick bodily burst into view! For not by any calm and indolent spoutings; not by the peaceable gush of that mystic fountain in his head, did the White Whale now reveal his vicinity; but by the far more wondrous phenomenon of breaching. Rising with his utmost velocity from the furthest depths, the Sperm Whale thus booms his entire bulk into the pure element of air, and piling up a mountain of dazzling foam, shows his place to the distance of seven miles and more. In those moments, the torn, enraged waves he shakes off, seem his mane; in some cases, this breaching is his act of defiance.

It was true; in their eager rush, the men had mistaken something else for the whale's spout, as the situation quickly revealed. Hardly had Ahab gotten to his perch; hardly had the rope been secured to its pin on deck when he struck the key-note to an orchestra that made the air vibrate like the combined sound of rifles. The excited cheers of thirty men echoed as—much closer to the ship than the imagined jet, less than a mile ahead—Moby Dick suddenly appeared! Not with calm and lazy spouts; not through the peaceful flow of the mystical fountain in his head, did the White Whale now show his presence; but through the far more incredible sight of breaching. Rising at full speed from the depths, the Sperm Whale launches his entire body into the open air, creating a mountain of dazzling foam and revealing his location for seven miles or more. In those moments, the wild, furious waves he shakes off look like his mane; in some instances, this breaching is his act of defiance.

"There she breaches! there she breaches!" was the cry, as in his immeasurable bravadoes the White Whale tossed himself salmon-like to Heaven. So suddenly seen in the blue plain of the sea, and relieved against the still bluer margin of the sky, the spray that he raised, for the moment, intolerably glittered and glared like a glacier; and stood there gradually fading and fading away from its first sparkling intensity, to the dim mistiness of an advancing shower in a vale.

"There she breaches! There she breaches!" was the shout, as in his boundless bravado, the White Whale leaped into the sky like a salmon. Suddenly appearing in the blue expanse of the sea and set against the even bluer edge of the sky, the spray he created briefly sparkled and shone like a glacier; then it gradually faded from its initial brilliance to the dim haze of an approaching shower in a valley.

"Aye, breach your last to the sun, Moby Dick!" cried Ahab, "thy hour and thy harpoon are at hand!—Down! down all of ye, but one man at the fore. The boats!—stand by!"

"Aye, reveal yourself to the sun, Moby Dick!" shouted Ahab, "your moment and your harpoon are here!—Everyone down! Everyone except one man at the front. The boats!—get ready!"

Unmindful of the tedious rope-ladders of the shrouds, the men, like shooting stars, slid to the deck, by the isolated backstays and halyards; while Ahab, less dartingly, but still rapidly was dropped from his perch.

Unaware of the tedious rope ladders of the rigging, the men, like shooting stars, slid down to the deck, using the isolated backstays and halyards; while Ahab, less swiftly but still quickly, was lowered from his perch.

"Lower away," he cried, so soon as he had reached his boat—a spare one, rigged the afternoon previous. "Mr. Starbuck, the ship is thine— keep away from the boats, but keep near them. Lower, all!"

"Lower away," he shouted as soon as he got to his boat—a backup one, set up the day before. "Mr. Starbuck, the ship is yours—stay clear of the boats, but stay close to them. Lower, everyone!"

As if to strike a quick terror into them, by this time being the first assailant himself, Moby Dick had turned, and was now coming for the three crews. Ahab's boat was central; and cheering his men, he told them he would take the whale head-and-head,— that is, pull straight up to his forehead,—a not uncommon thing; for when within a certain limit, such a course excludes the coming onset from the whale's sidelong vision. But ere that close limit was gained, and while yet all three boats were plain as the ship's three masts to his eye; the White Whale churning himself into furious speed, almost in an instant as it were, rushing among the boats with open jaws, and a lashing tail, offered appalling battle on every side; and heedless of the irons darted at him from every boat, seemed only intent on annihilating each separate plank of which those boats were made. But skilfully manoeuvred, incessantly wheeling like trained chargers in the field; the boats for a while eluded him; though, at times, but by a plank's breadth; while all the time, Ahab's unearthly slogan tore every other cry but his to shreds.

As if to instill a quick fear in them, by this point being the first attacker himself, Moby Dick had turned and was now charging at the three crews. Ahab's boat was in the center; cheering his men, he told them he would confront the whale head-on—that is, pull straight up to its forehead—a not uncommon tactic; because when within a certain range, this approach keeps the whale from seeing the oncoming attack from the side. But before reaching that close range, and while all three boats were clearly visible like the ship's three masts to him, the White Whale, thrashing itself into a furious speed, almost instantly charged among the boats with its jaws wide open and a whipping tail, ready to attack from all sides; and ignoring the harpoons thrown at him from each boat, seemed solely focused on destroying each individual plank that made up those boats. However, skillfully maneuvering and constantly turning like trained horses in battle, the boats managed to evade him for a while; though at times, only by a narrow margin, while Ahab's otherworldly shout drowned out every other cry.

But at last in his untraceable evolutions, the White Whale so crossed and recrossed, and in a thousand ways entangled the slack of the three lines now fast to him, that they foreshortened, and, of themselves, warped the devoted boats towards the planted irons in him; though now for a moment the whale drew aside a little, as if to rally for a more tremendous charge. Seizing that opportunity, Ahab first paid out more line; and then was rapidly hauling and jerking in upon it again— hoping that way to disencumber it of some snarls—when lo!— a sight more savage than the embattled teeth of sharks!

But finally, in his unpredictable movements, the White Whale tangled the looseness of the three lines attached to him in every possible way, causing them to shorten and, on their own, pull the devoted boats towards the harpoons planted in him. Just then, the whale momentarily pulled away, as if to prepare for a more powerful attack. Taking advantage of that moment, Ahab first let out more line, and then quickly started pulling and jerking on it again—hoping to free it from some tangles—when suddenly!—a sight more terrifying than the sharp teeth of sharks!

Caught and twisted—corkscrewed in the mazes of the line, loose harpoons and lances, with all their bristling barbs and points, came flashing and dripping up to the chocks in the bows of Ahab's boat. Only one thing could be done. Seizing the boat-knife, he critically reached within—through—and then, without—the rays of steel; dragged in the line beyond, passed it, inboard, to the bowsman, and then, twice sundering the rope near the chocks—dropped the intercepted fagot of steel into the sea; and was all fast again. That instant, the White Whale made a sudden rush among the remaining tangles of the other lines; by so doing, irresistibly dragged the more involved boats of Stubb and Flask towards his flukes; dashed them together like two rolling husks on a surf-beaten beach, and then, diving down into the sea, disappeared in a boiling maelstrom, in which, for a space, the odorous cedar chips of the wrecks danced round and round, like the grated nutmeg in a swiftly stirred bowl of punch.

Caught and twisted—corkscrewed in the mazes of the line, loose harpoons and lances, with all their sharp barbs and points, came flashing and dripping up to the chocks in the front of Ahab's boat. There was only one thing to do. Grabbing the boat-knife, he carefully reached in—through—and then, outside—the rays of steel; pulled the line in beyond, passed it to the bowsman, and then, after cutting the rope near the chocks twice—dropped the intercepted bundle of steel into the sea; and was all set again. In that instant, the White Whale made a sudden rush among the remaining tangles of the other lines; by doing so, it irresistibly dragged the more tangled boats of Stubb and Flask towards its flukes; smashed them together like two rolling husks on a surf-beaten beach, and then, diving down into the sea, disappeared in a boiling whirlpool, in which, for a moment, the fragrant cedar chips of the wrecks swirled around, like grated nutmeg in a quickly stirred bowl of punch.

While the two crews were yet circling in the waters, reaching out after the revolving line-tubs, oars, and other floating furniture, while aslope little Flask bobbed up and down like an empty vial, twitching his legs upwards to escape the dreaded jaws of sharks; and Stubb was lustily singing out for some one to ladle him up; and while the old man's line—now parting—admitted of his pulling into the creamy pool to rescue whom he could;— in that wild simultaneousness of a thousand concreted perils,— Ahab's yet unstricken boat seemed drawn up towards Heaven by invisible wires,—as, arrow-like, shooting perpendicularly from the sea, the White Whale dashed his broad forehead against its bottom, and sent it turning over and over, into the air; till it fell again— gunwale downwards—and Ahab and his men struggled out from under it, like seals from a sea-side cave.

While the two crews were circling in the water, reaching for the spinning line-tubs, oars, and other floating gear, little Flask bobbed up and down like an empty bottle, lifting his legs to escape the dreaded jaws of sharks; and Stubb was cheerfully calling out for someone to scoop him up; and while the old man's line—now breaking—allowed him to pull into the swirling pool to save whoever he could;— in that chaotic moment of a thousand combined dangers,— Ahab's untouched boat seemed pulled up towards Heaven by invisible strings,—when, like an arrow shooting straight up from the sea, the White Whale slammed its broad forehead against the bottom of the boat, flipping it over and over into the air; until it fell again—gunwale down—and Ahab and his men fought their way out from underneath it, like seals emerging from a seaside cave.

The first uprising momentum of the whale—modifying its direction as he struck the surface—involuntarily launched him along it, to a little distance from the centre of the destruction he had made; and with his back to it, he now lay for a moment slowly feeling with his flukes from side to side; and whenever a stray oar, bit of plank, the least chip or crumb of the boats touched his skin, his tail swiftly drew back, and came sideways smiting the sea. But soon, as if satisfied that his work for that time was done, he pushed his pleated forehead through the ocean, and trailing after him the intertangled lines, continued his leeward way at a traveller's methodic pace.

The first surge of the whale—changing direction as it hit the surface—accidentally propelled him a short distance from the center of the destruction he had caused; with his back to it, he now rested for a moment, slowly feeling around with his flukes from side to side. Whenever a stray oar, piece of plank, or any small chip or crumb from the boats touched his skin, his tail quickly recoiled and struck the sea hard. But soon, seeming satisfied that his task was complete for the moment, he pushed his ridged forehead through the ocean and, dragging the tangled lines behind him, continued on in a steady, deliberate manner.

As before, the attentive ship having descried the whole fight, again came bearing down to the rescue, and dropping a boat, picked up the floating mariners, tubs, oars, and whatever else could be caught at, and safely landed them on her decks. Some sprained shoulders, wrists, and ankles; livid contusions; wrenched harpoons and lances; inextricable intricacies of rope; shattered oars and planks; all these were there; but no fatal or even serious ill seemed to have befallen any one. As with Fedallah the day before, so Ahab was now found grimly clinging to his boat's broken half, which afforded a comparatively easy float; nor did it so exhaust him as the previous day's mishap.

As before, the attentive ship spotted the entire fight and came rushing in to help, dropping a boat to pick up the floating sailors, barrels, oars, and anything else they could grab, safely bringing them aboard. There were some sprained shoulders, wrists, and ankles; bruises; damaged harpoons and lances; tangled ropes; shattered oars and planks; all of this was there; but fortunately, no one had suffered any fatal or serious injuries. Just like with Fedallah the day before, Ahab was now found grimly hanging on to the broken piece of his boat, which offered a relatively easy float; nor was it as exhausting for him as the mishap from the previous day.

But when he was helped to the deck, all eyes were fastened upon him; as instead of standing by himself he still half-hung upon the shoulder of Starbuck, who had thus far been the foremost to assist him. His ivory leg had been snapped off, leaving but one short sharp splinter.

But when he was helped onto the deck, everyone was staring at him; instead of standing on his own, he was still half-draped over Starbuck’s shoulder, who had been the first to help him. His ivory leg had been broken off, leaving just a short, sharp splinter.

"Aye, aye, Starbuck, 'tis sweet to lean sometimes, be the leaner who he will; and would old Ahab had leaned oftener than he has."

"Yeah, Starbuck, it's nice to lean sometimes, no matter who is leaning; and I wish old Ahab had leaned more often than he has."

"The ferrule has not stood, sir," said the carpenter, now coming up;
I put good work into that leg."

"The ferrule didn't hold up, sir," the carpenter said as he approached.
"I put a lot of effort into that leg."

"But no bones broken, sir, I hope," said Stubb with true concern.

"But I hope there are no broken bones, sir," Stubb said with genuine concern.

"Aye! and all splintered to pieces, Stubb!—d'ye see it.— But even with a broken bone, old Ahab is untouched; and I account no living bone of mine one jot more me, than this dead one that's lost. Nor white whale, nor man, nor fiend, can so much as graze old Ahab in his own proper and inaccessible being. Can any lead touch yonder floor, any mast scrape yonder roof?— Aloft there! which way?"

"Aye! And all shattered to bits, Stubb!—do you see it?— But even with a broken bone, old Ahab remains unscathed; and I don’t consider any living bone of mine even a little more me than this dead one that’s lost. Neither the white whale, nor man, nor any demon can even slightly affect old Ahab in his true and unreachable self. Can any lead touch that floor, or any mast scrape that roof?— Up there! Which way?"

"Dead to leeward, sir."

"Dead downwind, sir."

"Up helm, then; pile on the sail again, ship keepers! down the rest of the spare boats and rig them—Mr. Starbuck away, and muster the boat's crews."

"Raise the sail again, ship keepers! Bring down the rest of the spare boats and get them ready—Mr. Starbuck is gone, so gather the boat crews."

"Let me first help thee towards the bulwarks, sir."

"Let me help you to the walls first, sir."

"Oh, oh, oh! how this splinter gores me now! Accursed fate! that the unconquerable captain in the soul should have such a craven mate!"

"Oh, oh, oh! how this splinter hurts me now! Cursed fate! that the unconquerable captain within should have such a cowardly companion!"

"Sir?"

"Excuse me?"

"My body, man, not thee. Give me something for a cane—there, that shivered lance will do. Muster the men. Surely I have not seen him yet. By heaven it cannot be!—missing?—quick! call them all."

"My body, man, not you. Give me something to use as a cane—there, that broken lance will work. Gather the men. I can't believe I haven't seen him yet. By heaven, it can't be! Missing?—hurry! Call them all."

The old man's hinted thought was true. Upon mustering the company, the Parsee was not there.

The old man's hinted thought was correct. When gathering the group, the Parsee was not present.

"The Parsee!" cried Stubb—"he must have been caught in-"

"The Parsee!" shouted Stubb—"he must have been caught in—"

"The black vomit wrench thee!—run all of ye above, alow, cabin, forecastle—find him—not gone—not gone!"

"The black vomit is making you sick!—everyone up, below deck, in the cabin, and in the forecastle—find him—not gone—not gone!"

But quickly they returned to him with the tidings that the Parsee was nowhere to be found.

But they quickly came back to him with the news that the Parsee was nowhere to be found.

"Aye, sir," said Stubb—"caught among the tangles of your line—
I thought I saw him dragging under."

"Aye, sir," Stubb said, "caught in the tangles of your line—
I thought I saw him being dragged underneath."

"My line! my line? Gone?—gone? What means that little word?— What death-knell rings in it, that old Ahab shakes as if he were the belfry. The harpoon, too!—toss over the litter there,— d'ye see it?—the forged iron, men, the white whale's—no, no, no,— blistered fool; this hand did dart it!—'tis in the fish!—Aloft there! Keep him nailed-Quick!—all hands to the rigging of the boats— collect the oars—harpooneers! the irons, the irons!—hoist the royals higher—a pull on all the sheets!—helm there! steady, steady for your life! I'll ten times girdle the unmeasured globe; yea and dive straight through it, but I'll slay him yet!

"My line! My line? Gone?—Gone? What does that little word mean? What death knell rings in it that old Ahab shakes like a bell? The harpoon, too! Toss over the mess there,—do you see it?—the forged iron, men, the white whale's—no, no, no,—blistered fool; this hand threw it!—it’s in the fish!—Hey up there! Keep him nailed—Quick!—all hands to the rigging of the boats—collect the oars—harpooners! The irons, the irons!—hoist the royals higher—a pull on all the sheets!—helm there! Steady, steady for your life! I’ll circle the unmeasured globe ten times; yes, and dive straight through it, but I’ll kill him yet!

"Great God! but for one single instant show thyself," cried Starbuck; "never, never wilt thou capture him, old man— In Jesus' name no more of this, that's worse than devil's madness. Two days chased; twice stove to splinters; thy very leg once more snatched from under thee; thy evil shadow gone—all good angels mobbing thee with warnings:—what more wouldst thou have?— Shall we keep chasing this murderous fish till he swamps the last man? Shall we be dragged by him to the bottom of the sea? Shall we be towed by him to the infernal world? Oh, oh,— Impiety and blasphemy to hunt him more!"

"Great God! But just for one moment, show yourself," shouted Starbuck; "you'll never catch him, old man— In Jesus' name, no more of this; it's worse than madness. Two days chasing him; twice your ship smashed to pieces; your leg almost taken from under you; your evil shadow gone—all the good angels warning you:—what more do you want?— Are we going to keep chasing this killer fish until it takes the last man down? Are we going to be dragged to the bottom of the ocean? Are we going to be pulled into the underworld? Oh, oh,—it's impious and blasphemous to keep hunting him!"

"Starbuck, of late I've felt strangely moved to thee; ever since that hour we both saw—thou know'st what, in one another's eyes. But in this matter of the whale, be the front of thy face to me as the palm of this hand—a lipless, unfeatured blank. Ahab is for ever Ahab, man. This whole act's immutably decreed. 'Twas rehearsed by thee and me a billion years before this ocean rolled. Fool! I am the Fates' lieutenant; I act under orders. Look thou, underling! that thou obeyest mine.—Stand round men, men. Ye see an old man cut down to the stump; leaning on a shivered lance; propped up on a lonely foot. 'Tis Ahab—his body's part; but Ahab's soul's a centipede, that moves upon a hundred legs. I feel strained, half-stranded, as ropes that tow dismasted frigates in a gale; and I may look so. But ere I break, yell hear me crack; and till ye hear that, know that Ahab's hawser tows his purpose yet. Believe ye, men, in the things called omens? Then laugh aloud, and cry encore! For ere they drown, drowning things will twice rise to the surface; then rise again, to sink for evermore. So with Moby Dick—two days he's floated—to-morrow will be the third. Aye, men, he'll rise once more,—but only to spout his last! D'ye feel brave men, brave?"

"Starbuck, lately I've felt oddly connected to you; ever since that moment we both saw— you know what, in each other's eyes. But in this thing about the whale, keep your expression as blank as the palm of my hand—featureless and without a smile. Ahab is always Ahab, man. This whole act is forever set in stone. It was decided by you and me a billion years before this ocean existed. Fool! I am the lieutenant of Fate; I act on orders. Listen up, underling! You better follow mine. —Gather around, men. You see an old man brought down to the stump; leaning on a broken lance; propped up on a solitary leg. That’s Ahab—his body’s part; but Ahab's soul is a centipede, moving on a hundred legs. I feel stretched, half-stranded, like ropes towing dismasted ships in a storm; and I may look that way. But before I break, you’ll hear me snap; and until you hear that, know that Ahab's strength still drives his purpose. Do you believe in something called omens, men? Then laugh loudly, and shout encore! Because before they drown, drowning things will rise to the surface twice; then rise again to sink forever. So it is with Moby Dick—he's floated for two days—tomorrow will be the third. Yes, men, he'll rise once more—but only to blow his last! Do you feel brave, men, brave?"

"As fearless fire," cried Stubb.

"As fearless as fire," cried Stubb.

"And as mechanical," muttered Ahab. Then as the men went forward, he muttered on: "The things called omens! And yesterday I talked the same to Starbuck there, concerning my broken boat. Oh! how valiantly I seek to drive out of others' hearts what's clinched so fast in mine!— The Parsee—the Parsee!—gone, gone? and he was to go before:— but still was to be seen again ere I could perish—How's that?— There's a riddle now might baffle all the lawyers backed by the ghosts of the whole line of judges:—like a hawk's beak it pecks my brain. I'll, I'll solve it, though!"

"And as mechanical," Ahab muttered. Then, as the men moved forward, he continued to mutter, "The things called omens! And yesterday I was saying the same thing to Starbuck about my broken boat. Oh! how desperately I try to drive out of others' hearts what's so firmly stuck in mine!— The Parsee—the Parsee!—gone, gone? And he was supposed to go first:—but he was still meant to be seen again before I could perish—How's that?— There's a riddle now that could confuse all the lawyers backed by the ghosts of all the judges:—like a hawk's beak, it pecks at my brain. I will, I will solve it, though!"

When dusk descended, the whale was still in sight to leeward.

When night fell, the whale was still visible to the side opposite the wind.

So once more the sail was shortened, and everything passed nearly as on the previous night; only, the sound of hammers, and the hum of the grindstone was heard till nearly daylight, as the men toiled by lanterns in the complete and careful rigging of the spare boats and sharpening their fresh weapons for the morrow. Meantime, of the broken keel of Ahab's wrecked craft the carpenter made him another leg; while still as on the night before, slouched Ahab stood fixed within his scuttle; his hid, heliotrope glance anticipatingly gone backward on its dial; sat due eastward for the earliest sun.

So once again, the sail was shortened, and everything went almost the same as the night before; the only difference was the sound of hammers and the buzzing of the grindstone that continued until nearly dawn, as the men worked by lantern light, carefully rigging the spare boats and sharpening their weapons for the next day. Meanwhile, the carpenter crafted another leg for Ahab from the broken keel of his wrecked ship; just like the night before, Ahab slouched in his scuttle, his hidden, purple gaze had eagerly turned back on its dial, facing directly east for the first light of the sun.

CHAPTER 135

The Chase - Third Day

The Chase - Third Day

The morning of the third day dawned fair and fresh, and once more the solitary night-man at the fore-mast-head was relieved by crowds of the daylight look-outs, who dotted every mast and almost every spar.

The morning of the third day broke clear and fresh, and once again the lonely night watchman at the fore-mast head was replaced by a crowd of day lookouts, who were scattered across every mast and almost every spar.

"D'ye see him?" cried Ahab; but the whale was not yet in sight.

"Do you see him?" shouted Ahab; but the whale was still not visible.

"In his infallible wake, though; but follow that wake, that's all. Helm there; steady, as thou goest, and hast been going. What a lovely day again! were it a new-made world, and made for a summer-house to the angels, and this morning the first of its throwing open to them, a fairer day could not dawn upon that world. Here's food for thought, had Ahab time to think; but Ahab never thinks; he only feels, feels, feels; that's tingling enough for mortal man! to think's audacity. God only has that right and privilege. Thinking is, or ought to be, a coolness and a calmness; and our poor hearts throb, and our poor brains beat too much for that. And yet, I've sometimes thought my brain was very calm— frozen calm, this old skull cracks so, like a glass in which the contents turned to ice, and shiver it. And still this hair is growing now; this moment growing, and heat must breed it; but no, it's like that sort of common grass that will grow anywhere, between the earthy clefts of Greenland ice or in Vesuvius lava. How the wild winds blow it; they whip it about me as the torn shreds of split sails lash the tossed ship they cling to. A vile wind that has no doubt blown ere this through prison corridors and cells, and wards of hospitals, and ventilated them, and now comes blowing hither as innocent as fleeces. Out upon it!—it's tainted. Were I the wind, I'd blow no more on such a wicked, miserable world. I'd crawl somewhere to a cave, and slink there. And yet, 'tis a noble and heroic thing, the wind! who ever conquered it? In every fight it has the last and bitterest blow. Run tilting at it, and you but run through it. Ha! a coward wind that strikes stark naked men, but will not stand to receive a single blow. Even Ahab is a braver thing—a nobler thing than that. Would now the wind but had a body; but all the things that most exasperate and outrage mortal man, all these things are bodiless, but only bodiless as objects, not as agents. There's a most special, a most cunning, oh, a most malicious difference! And yet, I say again, and swear it now, that there's something all glorious and gracious in the wind. These warm Trade Winds, at least, that in the clear heavens blow straight on, in strong and steadfast, vigorous mildness; and veer not from their mark, however the baser currents of the sea may turn and tack, and mightiest Mississippies of the land swift and swerve about, uncertain where to go at last. And by the eternal Poles! these same Trades that so directly blow my good ship on; these Trades, or something like them—something so unchangeable, and full as strong, blow my keeled soul along! To it! Aloft there! What d'ye see?"

"In his undeniable wake, just follow that path, that's all. Hold steady; as you go, and as you've been going. What a beautiful day again! If it were a brand new world, made as a summer home for the angels, this morning being the first time they can enjoy it, a more lovely day couldn’t dawn on that world. Here's something to think about, if Ahab had the time to think; but Ahab never thinks; he only feels, feels, feels; that's enough for a mortal man! Thinking is too bold. Only God has that right and privilege. To think should be a cool and calm thing; but our hearts pound, and our minds race too much for that. Yet, I've sometimes thought my mind was very calm—frozen calm, as this old skull cracks like glass when its contents freeze and shatter it. And still this hair is growing right now; it's growing, and heat must create it; but no, it's like that common grass that will grow anywhere, between the cracks of Greenland ice or in the lava of Vesuvius. How the wild winds blow it; they whip it around me like torn shreds of sails on a tossed ship. A vile wind that has surely blown through prison corridors and hospital wards before, ventilating them, and now comes blowing here as innocent as sheep's wool. Get away with it!—it’s tainted. If I were the wind, I wouldn't blow on such a wicked, miserable world anymore. I’d crawl into a cave and hide. Yet, it’s noble and heroic, the wind! Who has ever conquered it? In every battle, it delivers the last and most bitter blow. Charge at it, and you just run through it. Ha! A cowardly wind that strikes down naked men but won’t stand to take a single hit. Even Ahab is braver—a nobler being than that. Would that the wind had a body; but all the things that infuriate and anger us most, they’re all bodiless, just bodiless as objects, not as active agents. There’s a very special, cunning, oh, a very malicious difference! And yet, I say again, and swear it now, that there’s something absolutely glorious and gracious about the wind. These warm Trade Winds, at least, that blow straight in the clear skies, with strong and steadfast, vigorous gentleness; and they don’t waver from their course, no matter how the lesser currents of the sea might turn, and the mightiest Mississippi rivers on land twist and swerve, uncertain where to go in the end. And by the eternal Poles! these same Trades that blow my good ship directly forward; these Trades, or something like them—something so unchanging and just as strong, pushes my very soul along! To it! Look up there! What do you see?"

"Nothing, sir."

"Nothing, sir."

"Nothing! and noon at hand! The doubloon goes a-begging! See the sun! Aye, aye, it must be so. I've over-sailed him. How, got the start? Aye, he's chasing me now; not I, him— that's bad; I might have known it, too. Fool! the lines— the harpoons he's towing. Aye, aye, I have run him by last night. About! about! Come down, all of ye, but the regular look outs! Man the braces!"

"Nothing! It's noon! The doubloon is still up for grabs! Look at the sun! Yeah, it has to be true. I've sailed past him. How did he get the jump on me? Yeah, he's chasing me now; I’m not chasing him— that's not good; I should have realized it. Idiot! The lines— the harpoons he’s dragging. Yeah, yeah, I passed him by last night. About! About! Everyone come down, except for the regular lookouts! Man the braces!"

Steering as she had done, the wind had been somewhat on the Pequod's quarter, so that now being pointed in the reverse direction, the braced ship sailed hard upon the breeze as she rechurned the cream in her own white wake.

Steering as she had before, the wind was somewhat at the Pequod's side, so now facing the opposite direction, the steady ship sailed swiftly into the breeze as it churned up the white foam in her own wake.

"Against the wind he now steers for the open jaw," murmured Starbuck to himself, as he coiled the new-hauled main-brace upon the rail. "God keep us, but already my bones feel damp within me, and from the inside wet my flesh. I misdoubt me that I disobey my God in obeying him!"

"Into the wind, he now heads for the open sea," Starbuck muttered to himself as he coiled the newly pulled main-brace on the rail. "God help us, but I can already feel the dampness in my bones, and my flesh feels wet from the inside. I worry that by following him, I'm disobeying God!"

"Stand by to sway me up!" cried Ahab, advancing to the hempen basket.
"We should meet him soon."

"Get ready to lift me up!" shouted Ahab, moving toward the rope basket.
"We should see him shortly."

"Aye, aye, sir," and straightway Starbuck did Ahab's bidding, and once more Ahab swung on high.

"Aye, aye, sir," and immediately Starbuck did Ahab's bidding, and once again Ahab was raised up high.

A whole hour now passed; gold-beaten out to ages. Time itself now held long breaths with keen suspense. But at last, some three points off the weather bow, Ahab descried the spout again, and instantly from the three mast-heads three shrieks went up as if the tongues of fire had voiced it.

A whole hour had gone by; it felt stretched thin over eternity. Time itself seemed to hold its breath in anticipation. But finally, about three points off the weather bow, Ahab spotted the spout again, and immediately from the three mastheads, three screams erupted as if the flames themselves had spoken.

"Forehead to forehead I meet thee, this third time, Moby Dick! On deck there!—brace sharper up; crowd her into the wind's eye. He's too far off to lower yet, Mr. Starbuck. The sails shake! Stand over that helmsman with a top-maul! So, so; he travels fast, and I must down. But let me have one more good round look aloft here at the sea; there's time for that. An old, old sight, and yet somehow so young; aye, and not changed a wink since I first saw it, a boy, from the sand-hills of Nantucket! The same—the same!— the same to Noah as to me. There's a soft shower to leeward. Such lovely leewardings! They must lead somewhere— to something else than common land, more palmy than the palms. Leeward! the white whale goes that way; look to windward, then; the better if the bitterer quarter. But good bye, good bye, old mast-head! What's this?—green? aye, tiny mosses in these warped cracks. No such green weather stains on Ahab's head! There's the difference now between man's old age and matter's. But aye, old mast, we both grow old together; sound in our hulls, though are we not, my ship? Aye, minus a leg, that's all. By heaven this dead wood has the better of my live flesh every way. I can't compare with it; and I've known some ships made of dead trees outlast the lives of men made of the most vital stuff of vital fathers. What's that he said? he should still go before me, my pilot; and yet to be seen again? But where? Will I have eyes at the bottom of the sea, supposing I descend those endless stairs? and all night I've been sailing from him, wherever he did sink to. Aye, aye, like many more thou told'st direful truth as touching thyself, O Parsee; but, Ahab, there thy shot fell short. Good bye, mast-head—keep a good eye upon the whale, the while I'm gone. We'll talk to-morrow, nay, to-night, when the white whale lies down there, tied by head and tail."

"Forehead to forehead I face you, Moby Dick, for the third time! On deck there!—tighten up the sails; steer into the wind. He’s still too far away to lower the sails, Mr. Starbuck. The sails are shaking! Stand by that helmsman with a top-maul! Alright, he’s moving fast, and I need to come down. But let me take one last good look at the sea; there’s time for that. An old, old sight, yet somehow so youthful; yes, and it hasn’t changed a bit since I first saw it as a boy from the sand hills of Nantucket! The same—the same!—the same to Noah as to me. There’s a light rain to leeward. Such beautiful winds coming from that direction! They must lead somewhere—somewhere different than ordinary land, more lush than the palms. Leeward! The white whale is going that way; look to windward, then; better if it’s from the more difficult side. But goodbye, goodbye, old mast! What’s this?—green? yes, tiny mosses in these warped cracks. No such green weather stains on Ahab’s head! There’s the difference between a man’s old age and that of nature. But yes, old mast, we both grow old together; we’re still sound in our hulls, aren’t we, my ship? Yes, minus a leg, that’s all. By heaven, this dead wood surpasses my living flesh in every way. I can’t compete with it; and I’ve seen ships made of dead trees outlast the lives of men made of the most vital stuff from their vital fathers. What was that he said? he should still guide me, my pilot; and yet will I see him again? But where? Will I have eyes at the bottom of the sea if I descend those endless stairs? and all night I’ve been sailing away from him, wherever he sank. Yes, yes, like many others you told the grim truth about yourself, O Parsee; but, Ahab, that’s where your shot missed. Goodbye, mast-head—keep a good watch on the whale while I’m gone. We’ll talk tomorrow, no, tonight, when the white whale is down there, tied by head and tail."

He gave the word; and still gazing round him, was steadily lowered through the cloven blue air to the deck.

He gave the signal; and while continuing to look around, he was gently lowered through the split blue sky to the deck.

In due time the boats were lowered; but as standing in his shallop's stern, Ahab just hovered upon the point of the descent, he waved to the mate,—who held one of the tackle—ropes on deck— and bade him pause.

In due time, the boats were lowered; but as Ahab stood at the back of his small boat, he hesitated just before descending. He waved to the mate, who was holding one of the ropes on deck, and told him to wait.

"Starbuck!"

"Starbucks!"

"Sir?"

"Excuse me?"

"For the third time my soul's ship starts upon this voyage, Starbuck."

"For the third time, my soul's ship sets sail on this journey, Starbuck."

"Aye, sir, thou wilt have it so."

"Yeah, sir, you want it that way."

"Some ships sail from their ports, and ever afterwards are missing, Starbuck!"

"Some ships leave their ports and are never seen again, Starbuck!"

"Truth, sir: saddest truth."

"Honestly, sir: the saddest truth."

"Some men die at ebb tide; some at low water; some at the full of the flood;—and I feel now like a billow that's all one crested comb, Starbuck. I am old;—shake hands with me, man."

"Some men die at low tide; some at low water; some at high tide;—and I feel like a wave that's just one big crest, Starbuck. I'm old;—shake hands with me, man."

Their hands met; their eyes fastened; Starbuck's tears the glue.

Their hands touched; their eyes locked; Starbuck's tears were the bonding agent.

"Oh, my captain, my captain!—noble heart—go not—go not!—see, it's a brave man that weeps; how great the agony of the persuasion then!"

"Oh, my captain, my captain!—noble heart—don’t go—don’t go!—look, it's a brave man who cries; how immense the pain of the persuasion then!"

"Lower away!"-cried Ahab, tossing the mate's arm from him.
"Stand by for the crew!"

"Lower away!" Ahab shouted, pushing the mate's arm away from him.
"Get ready for the crew!"

In an instant the boat was pulling round close under the stern.

In a moment, the boat was cruising right up under the back.

"The sharks! the sharks!" cried a voice from the low cabin-window there;
"O master, my master, come back!"

"The sharks! The sharks!" shouted a voice from the small cabin window;
"Oh master, my master, come back!"

But Ahab heard nothing; for his own voice was high-lifted then; and the boat leaped on.

But Ahab heard nothing because his own voice was raised loudly; and the boat soared on.

Yet the voice spake true; for scarce had he pushed from the ship, when numbers of sharks, seemingly rising from out the dark waters beneath the hull, maliciously snapped at the blades of the oars, every time they dipped in the water; and in this way accompanied the boat with their bites. It is a thing not uncommonly happening to the whale-boats in those swarming seas; the sharks at times apparently following them in the same prescient way that vultures hover over the banners of marching regiments in the east. But these were the first sharks that had been observed by the Pequod since the White Whale had been first descried; and whether it was that Ahab's crew were all such tiger-yellow barbarians, and therefore their flesh more musky to the senses of the sharks— a matter sometimes well known to affect them,—however it was, they seemed to follow that one boat without molesting the others.

Yet the voice spoke the truth; hardly had he pushed away from the ship when swarms of sharks, seemingly rising from the dark waters beneath the hull, maliciously snapped at the blades of the oars every time they dipped into the water, and in this way accompanied the boat with their bites. This is something that often happens to whaleboats in those crowded seas; the sharks sometimes seem to follow them in the same way that vultures hover over the banners of marching regiments in the east. But these were the first sharks that had been seen by the Pequod since the White Whale had first been spotted; and whether it was because Ahab's crew were all such tiger-yellow barbarians, making their flesh more appealing to the sharks — a fact that is sometimes well known to affect them — whatever the reason, they seemed to follow that one boat without disturbing the others.

"Heart of wrought steel!" murmured Starbuck gazing over the side, and following with his eyes the receding boat—"canst thou yet ring boldly to that sight?—lowering thy keel among ravening sharks, and followed by them, open-mouthed to the chase; and this the critical third day?—For when three days flow together in one continuous intense pursuit; be sure the first is the morning, the second the noon, and the third the evening and the end of that thing—be that end what it may. Oh! my God! what is this that shoots through me, and leaves me so deadly calm, yet expectant,—fixed at the top of a shudder! Future things swim before me, as in empty outlines and skeletons; all the past is somehow grown dim. Mary, girl; thou fadest in pale glories behind me; boy! I seem to see but thy eyes grown wondrous blue. Strangest problems of life seem clearing; but clouds sweep between—Is my journey's end coming? My legs feel faint; like his who has footed it all day. Feel thy heart,—beats it yet? Stir thyself, Starbuck!— stave it off—move, move! speak aloud!—Mast-head there! See ye my boy's hand on the hill?—Crazed; aloft there!— keep thy keenest eye upon the boats:—mark well the whale!— Ho! again!—drive off that hawk! see! he pecks—he tears the vane"— pointing to the red flag flying at the main-truck—"Ha, he soars away with it!—Where's the old man now? see'st thou that sight, oh Ahab!—shudder, shudder!"

"Heart of steel!" murmured Starbuck, staring over the side and watching the boat disappear. "Can you still boldly ring out at that sight?—lowering your keel among hungry sharks, followed by them, mouths wide open for the chase; and this is the critical third day?—When three days flow together in one intense pursuit, you can bet the first is the morning, the second the noon, and the third the evening, marking the end of that thing—whatever that end may be. Oh my God! What is this feeling shooting through me, leaving me so eerily calm yet expectant, perched at the edge of a shudder! Future events swim before me like empty outlines and skeletons; everything from the past has somehow faded. Mary, girl; you blur into pale glories behind me; boy! I can only see your eyes, which have turned breathtakingly blue. The strangest issues of life seem to be clarifying, but clouds keep rolling in—Is the end of my journey approaching? My legs feel weak, like someone who's walked all day. Feel your heart—does it still beat? Get up, Starbuck!—stave it off—move, move! Speak out loud!—Look-out up there! Do you see my boy's hand on the hill?—Crazed up there!—keep your sharpest eye on the boats:—watch the whale closely!—Hey! again!—drive off that hawk! Look! he’s pecking—he’s tearing the vane"—pointing to the red flag flying at the main-truck—"Ha, he’s soaring away with it!—Where’s the old man now? Do you see that sight, oh Ahab!—shudder, shudder!"

The boats had not gone very far, when by a signal from the mast-heads— a downward pointed arm, Ahab knew that the whale had sounded; but intending to be near him at the next rising, he held on his way a little sideways from the vessel; the becharmed crew maintaining the profoundest silence, as the head-bent waves hammered and hammered against the opposing bow.

The boats hadn’t gone very far when Ahab saw a signal from the mastheads—a downward-pointing arm—indicating that the whale had dived. Wanting to be close to it when it surfaced again, he steered slightly away from the ship, while the enchanted crew remained completely quiet, as the waves pounded relentlessly against the bow.

"Drive, drive in your nails, oh ye waves! to their uttermost heads drive them in! ye but strike a thing without a lid; and no coffin and no hearse can be mine:—and hemp only can kill me! Ha! ha!"

"Drive, drive your nails in, oh you waves! Drive them in all the way! You just hit something that's not covered; and I can't have a coffin or a hearse:—only hemp can take me out! Ha! ha!"

Suddenly the waters around them slowly swelled in broad circles; then quickly upheaved, as if sideways sliding from a submerged berg of ice, swiftly rising to the surface. A low rumbling sound was heard; a subterraneous hum; and then all held their breaths; as bedraggled with trailing ropes, and harpoons, and lances, a vast form shot lengthwise, but obliquely from the sea. Shrouded in a thin drooping veil of mist, it hovered for a moment in the rainbowed air; and then fell swamping back into the deep. Crushed thirty feet upwards, the waters flashed for an instant like heaps of fountains, then brokenly sank in a shower of flakes, leaving the circling surface creamed like new milk round the marble trunk of the whale.

Suddenly, the water around them began to swell in wide circles; then it quickly surged upward, as if sliding sideways from a submerged iceberg, rapidly rising to the surface. A low rumbling sound echoed; a deep hum from beneath; and then everyone held their breath as, tangled with trailing ropes, harpoons, and lances, a massive shape shot out of the sea at an angle. Veiled in a thin hanging mist, it lingered for a moment in the rainbow-colored air; and then it plunged back into the depths. The water erupted thirty feet high, flashing for an instant like a burst of fountains, then sank down in a shower of droplets, leaving the swirling surface creamy like fresh milk around the whale's marble body.

"Give way!" cried Ahab to the oarsmen, and the boats darted forward to the attack; but maddened by yesterday's fresh irons that corroded in him, Moby Dick seemed combinedly possessed by all the angels that fell from heaven. The wide tiers of welded tendons overspreading his broad white forehead, beneath the transparent skin, looked knitted together; as head on, he came churning his tail among the boats; and once more flailed them apart; spilling out the irons and lances from the two mates' boats, and dashing in one side of the upper part of their bows, but leaving Ahab's almost without a scar.

"Make way!" shouted Ahab to the oarsmen, and the boats surged forward to attack; but driven mad by the fresh wounds from the previous day that tortured him, Moby Dick seemed to be possessed by all the fallen angels from heaven. The thick layers of tangled muscles covering his wide white forehead, beneath the translucent skin, appeared twisted together; as he charged straight towards them, thrashing his tail among the boats; once again scattering them apart; throwing out the harpoons and lances from the two mates' boats and smashing into one side of the upper part of their bows, but leaving Ahab's boat nearly unscathed.

While Daggoo and Queequeg were stopping the strained planks; and as the whale swimming out from them, turned, and showed one entire flank as he shot by them again; at that moment a quick cry went up. Lashed round and round to the fish's back; pinioned in the turns upon turns in which, during the past night, the whale had reeled the involutions of the lines around him, the half torn body of the Parsee was seen; his sable raiment frayed to shreds; his distended eyes turned full upon old Ahab.

While Daggoo and Queequeg were securing the strained planks, the whale swam away from them, turning to reveal its entire flank as it swam by again. At that moment, a sharp cry erupted. Tied up around the fish’s back, caught in the twists and turns from the previous night, the half-torn body of the Parsee was visible; his dark clothing was shredded, and his wide eyes were fixed directly on old Ahab.

The harpoon dropped from his hand.

The harpoon fell from his hand.

"Befooled, befooled!"—drawing in a long lean breath—"Aye, Parsee! I see thee again.—Aye, and thou goest before; and this, this then is the hearse that thou didst promise. But I hold thee to the last letter of thy word. Where is the second hearse? Away, mates, to the ship! those boats are useless now; repair them if ye can in time, and return to me; if not, Ahab is enough to die—Down, men! the first thing that but offers to jump from this boat I stand in, that thing I harpoon. Ye are not other men, but my arms and my legs; and so obey me.— Where's the whale? gone down again?"

"Fooled, fooled!"—taking a long, deep breath—"Yeah, Parsee! I see you again.—Yeah, and you're ahead of us; and this, this is the coffin you promised. But I'm holding you to every word you said. Where's the second coffin? Alright, guys, to the ship! Those boats are useless now; fix them if you can in time, and come back to me; if not, Ahab is enough to die—Down, men! The first thing that tries to jump from this boat I'm in, that thing I'm going to harpoon. You're not just my crew, you're my arms and legs; so just do what I say.—Where's the whale? Gone down again?"

But he looked too nigh the boat; for as if bent upon escaping with the corpse he bore, and as if the particular place of the last encounter had been but a stage in his leeward voyage, Moby Dick was now again steadily swimming forward; and had almost passed the ship,—which thus far had been sailing in the contrary direction to him, though for the present her headway had been stopped. He seemed swimming with his utmost velocity, and now only intent upon pursuing his own straight path in the sea.

But he was too close to the boat; it was as if he was determined to escape with the body he was carrying, as if the specific spot of their last encounter was just a stop on his downwind journey. Moby Dick was now steadily swimming ahead and had almost passed the ship, which had been sailing in the opposite direction, though for the moment it had come to a halt. He seemed to be swimming as fast as he could, focused solely on following his own direct path in the ocean.

"Oh! Ahab," cried Starbuck, "not too late is it, even now, the third day, to desist. See! Moby Dick seeks thee not. It is thou, thou, that madly seekest him!"

"Oh! Ahab," Starbuck shouted, "it's not too late, even now, on the third day, to stop. Look! Moby Dick isn't looking for you. It's you, you who are crazily looking for him!"

Setting sail to the rising wind, the lonely boat was swiftly impelled to leeward, by both oars and canvas. And at last when Ahab was sliding by the vessel, so near as plainly to distinguish Starbuck's face as he leaned over the rail, he hailed him to turn the vessel about, and follow him, not too swiftly, at a judicious interval. Glancing upwards he saw Tashtego, Queequeg, and Daggoo, eagerly mounting to the three mast-heads; while the oarsmen were rocking in the two staved boats which had but just been hoisted to the side, and were busily at work in repairing them. One after the other, through the port-holes, as he sped, he also caught flying glimpses of Stubb and Flask, busying themselves on deck among bundles of new irons and lances. As he saw all this; as he heard the hammers in the broken boats; far other hammers seemed driving a nail into his heart. But he rallied. And now marking that the vane or flag was gone from the main-mast-head, he shouted to Tashtego, who had just gained that perch, to descend again for another flag, and a hammer and nails, and so nail it to the mast.

Setting sail with the rising wind, the lonely boat was quickly pushed to leeward by both the oars and the sails. Finally, as Ahab passed by the vessel close enough to clearly see Starbuck’s face leaning over the rail, he called out to him to turn the vessel around and follow him, but not too quickly, keeping a safe distance. Looking up, he saw Tashtego, Queequeg, and Daggoo eagerly climbing to the three mastheads, while the rowers were swaying in the two damaged boats that had just been brought up to the side, hard at work repairing them. One by one, through the portholes, as he sped by, he also caught quick glimpses of Stubb and Flask busy on deck among piles of new irons and lances. As he saw all this and heard the hammers in the broken boats, it felt like other hammers were driving nails into his heart. But he pulled himself together. Noticing that the vane or flag was missing from the main masthead, he shouted to Tashtego, who had just reached that place, to come back down for another flag, along with a hammer and nails, and to nail it to the mast.

Whether fagged by the three days' running chase, and the resistance to his swimming in the knotted hamper he bore; or whether it was some latent deceitfulness and malice in him: whichever was true, the White Whale's way now began to abate, as it seemed, from the boat so rapidly nearing him once more; though indeed the whale's last start had not been so long a one as before. And still as Ahab glided over the waves the unpitying sharks accompanied him; and so pertinaciously stuck to the boat; and so continually bit at the plying oars, that the blades became jagged and crunched, and left small splinters in the sea, at almost every dip.

Whether he was worn out from the three days of relentless pursuit, and from battling against the tangled ropes he carried; or whether it was some hidden treachery and malice within him: whatever the case, the White Whale seemed to slow down as the boat drew closer; although the whale's last dash had not been as lengthy as before. And still, as Ahab moved across the waves, the relentless sharks followed him; they stuck to the boat with determination and continually bit at the oars, causing the blades to become jagged and splintered, scattering small pieces in the sea with almost every stroke.

"Heed them not! those teeth but give new rowlocks to your oars.
Pull on! 'tis the better rest, the sharks' jaw than the yielding water."

"Don't pay attention to them! Those teeth just provide new grips for your oars.
Keep pulling! It’s better to rest against the shark's jaw than in the forgiving water."

"But at every bite, sir, the thin blades grow smaller and smaller!"

"But with every bite, sir, the thin blades keep getting smaller and smaller!"

"They will last long enough! pull on!—But who can tell"— he muttered—"whether these sharks swim to feast on the whale or on Ahab?—But pull on! Aye, all alive, now—we near him. The helm! take the helm! let me pass,"—and so saying two of the oarsmen helped him forward to the bows of the still flying boat.

"They'll last long enough! Keep pulling!—But who knows"—he muttered—"if these sharks are here to feast on the whale or Ahab?—But keep pulling! Yeah, everyone’s awake now—we're getting close. The helm! Give me the helm! Let me through,"—and saying this, two of the oarsmen helped him move to the front of the still racing boat.

At length as the craft was cast to one side, and ran ranging along with the White Whale's flank, he seemed strangely oblivious of its advance—as the whale sometimes will—and Ahab was fairly within the smoky mountain mist, which, thrown off from the whale's spout, curled round his great Monadnock hump; he was even thus close to him; when, with body arched back, and both arms lengthwise high-lifted to the poise, he darted his fierce iron, and his far fiercer curse into the hated whale. As both steel and curse sank to the socket, as if sucked into a morass, Moby Dick sideways writhed; spasmodically rolled his nigh flank against the bow, and, without staving a hole in it, so suddenly canted the boat over, that had it not been for the elevated part of the gunwale to which he then clung, Ahab would once more have been tossed into the sea. As it was, three of the oarsmen—who foreknew not the precise instant of the dart, and were therefore unprepared for its effects— these were flung out; but so fell, that, in an instant two of them clutched the gunwale again, and rising to its level on a combing wave, hurled themselves bodily inboard again; the third man helplessly dropping astern, but still afloat and swimming.

At last, as the boat was pushed to one side and moved along beside the White Whale, it seemed oddly unaware of their approach—like whales sometimes do—and Ahab was right in the smoky mist, which, blown off from the whale's spout, curled around his large Monadnock-like hump; he was so close to it. With his body arched back and both arms raised high in preparation, he hurled his fierce harpoon and an even fiercer curse at the hated whale. As both the harpoon and the curse sank into the depths, as if pulled into a swamp, Moby Dick twisted to the side; he suddenly rolled his near side against the bow, and without breaking a hole in it, tipped the boat over so abruptly that if it hadn't been for the raised part of the gunwale he was holding onto, Ahab would have been thrown back into the sea. Instead, three of the rowers—who didn't know the exact moment of the throw and were therefore unprepared for what would happen—were thrown out; but they fell in such a way that, in an instant, two of them grabbed the gunwale again and, rising to its level on a wave, launched themselves back into the boat; the third man fell behind, but was still able to swim.

Almost simultaneously, with a mighty volition of ungraduated, instantaneous swiftness, the White Whale darted through the weltering sea. But when Ahab cried out to the steersman to take new turns with the line, and hold it so; and commanded the crew to turn round on their seats, and tow the boat up to the mark; the moment the treacherous line felt that double strain and tug, it snapped in the empty air!

Almost at the same time, with a powerful and sudden speed, the White Whale shot through the churning sea. But when Ahab shouted to the steersman to adjust the line and hold it tight, and ordered the crew to turn around in their seats and pull the boat to the mark, the moment the deceptive line felt that double strain and tug, it snapped in the empty air!

"What breaks in me? Some sinew cracks!—'tis whole again; oars! oars!
Burst in upon him!"

"What breaks inside me? Some muscle tears!—it's fine now; oars! oars!
Rush in on him!"

Hearing the tremendous rush of the sea-crashing boat, the whale wheeled round to present his blank forehead at bay; but in that evolution, catching sight of the nearing black hull of the ship; seemingly seeing in it the source of all his persecutions; bethinking it—it may be—a larger and nobler foe; of a sudden, he bore down upon its advancing prow, smiting his jaws amid fiery showers of foam.

Hearing the incredible roar of the boat crashing against the sea, the whale turned to show its blank forehead in defiance; but during that movement, it spotted the approaching black hull of the ship, seemingly recognizing it as the source of all its troubles; thinking that it might be a bigger and more worthy opponent; suddenly, it charged at the ship's advancing front, slamming its jaws amidst explosive sprays of foam.

Ahab staggered; his hand smote his forehead. "I grow blind; hands! stretch out before me that I may yet grope my way. Is't night?"

Ahab stumbled; his hand hit his forehead. "I'm going blind; hands! reach out in front of me so I can find my way. Is it night?"

"The whale! The ship!" cried the cringing oarsmen.

"The whale! The ship!" shouted the terrified rowers.

"Oars! oars! Slope downwards to thy depths, O sea that ere it be for ever too late, Ahab may slide this last, last time upon his mark! I see: the ship! the ship! Dash on, my men! Will ye not save my ship?"

"Oars! Oars! Head down into your depths, O sea, before it’s forever too late, Ahab may finally slide down this last, last time onto his mark! I see it: the ship! The ship! Go on, my men! Will you not save my ship?"

But as the oarsmen violently forced their boat through the sledge-hammering seas, the before whale-smitten bow-ends of two planks burst through, and in an instant almost, the temporarily disabled boat lay nearly level with the waves; its half-wading, splashing crew, trying hard to stop the gap and bale out the pouring water.

But as the oarsmen violently pushed their boat through the pounding seas, the previously damaged bow ends of two planks broke apart, and in almost an instant, the temporarily disabled boat was nearly level with the waves; its half-submerged, splashing crew desperately trying to plug the gap and bail out the flooding water.

Meantime, for that one beholding instant, Tashtego's mast-head hammer remained suspended in his hand; and the red flag, half-wrapping him as with a plaid, then streamed itself straight out from him, as his own forward-flowing heart; while Starbuck and Stubb, standing upon the bowsprit beneath, caught sight of the down-coming monster just as soon as he.

Meantime, for that brief moment, Tashtego's hammer at the top of the mast stayed frozen in his hand; and the red flag, wrapping around him like a blanket, then flew straight out from him, like his own racing heart; while Starbuck and Stubb, standing on the bowsprit below, saw the approaching monster just as quickly as he did.

"The whale, the whale! Up helm, up helm! Oh, all ye sweet powers of air, now hug me close! Let not Starbuck die, if die he must, in a woman's fainting fit. Up helm, I say—ye fools, the jaw! the jaw! Is this the end of all my bursting prayers? all my life-long fidelities? Oh, Ahab, Ahab, lo, thy work. Steady! helmsman, steady. Nay, nay! Up helm again! He turns to meet us! Oh, his unappeasable brow drives on towards one, whose duty tells him he cannot depart. My God, stand by me now!"

"The whale, the whale! Raise the helm, raise the helm! Oh, all you sweet powers of the air, hold me tight! Don’t let Starbuck die, if he has to, from a woman’s faint. Raise the helm, I say—you fools, the jaw! the jaw! Is this the end of all my desperate prayers? all my lifelong loyalties? Oh, Ahab, Ahab, look at what you've done. Steady! helmsman, steady. No, no! Raise the helm again! He’s turning to face us! Oh, his relentless brow pushes on toward someone whose duty tells him he cannot leave. My God, stand by me now!"

"Stand not by me, but stand under me, whoever you are that will now help Stubb; for Stubb, too, sticks here. I grin at thee, thou grinning whale! Who ever helped Stubb, or kept Stubb awake, but Stubb's own unwinking eye? And now poor Stubb goes to bed upon a mattrass that is all too soft; would it were stuffed with brushwood! I grin at thee, thou grinning whale! Look ye, sun, moon, and stars! I call ye assassins of as good a fellow as ever spouted up his ghost. For all that, I would yet ring glasses with ye, would ye but hand the cup! Oh, oh! oh, oh! thou grinning whale, but there'll be plenty of gulping soon! Why fly ye not, O Ahab! For me, off shoes and jacket to it; let Stubb die in his drawers! A most mouldy and over salted death, though;—cherries! cherries! cherries! Oh, Flask, for one red cherry ere we die!"

"Don't just stand by me, stand under me, whoever you are that's helping Stubb; because Stubb is stuck here too. I’m grinning at you, you grinning whale! Who has ever helped Stubb, or kept him awake, other than Stubb's own unblinking eye? And now poor Stubb has to sleep on a mattress that’s way too soft; I wish it was stuffed with brushwood! I’m grinning at you, you grinning whale! Hey, sun, moon, and stars! I call you killers of as good a guy as ever spat out his soul. Even so, I’d still toast with you, if you’d just pass me the cup! Oh, oh! oh, oh! you grinning whale, but there will be plenty of gulping soon! Why aren’t you flying, O Ahab! As for me, off with my shoes and jacket; let Stubb die in his underwear! A pretty rotten and over-salted death, though;—cherries! cherries! cherries! Oh, Flask, for just one red cherry before we die!"

"Cherries? I only wish that we were where they grow. Oh, Stubb, I hope my poor mother's drawn my part-pay ere this; if not, few coppers will now come to her, for the voyage is up."

"Cherries? I only wish we were where they grow. Oh, Stubb, I really hope my poor mother has sent my partial payment by now; if not, she won't be getting much money from me, because the voyage is almost over."

From the ship's bows, nearly all the seamen now hung inactive; hammers, bits of plank, lances, and harpoons, mechanically retained in their hands, just as they had darted from their various employments; all their enchanted eyes intent upon the whale, which from side to side strangely vibrating his predestinating head, sent a broad band of overspreading semicircular foam before him as he rushed. Retribution, swift vengeance, eternal malice were in his whole aspect, and spite of all that mortal man could do, the solid white buttress of his forehead smote the ship's starboard bow, till men and timbers reeled. Some fell flat upon their faces. Like dislodged trucks, the heads of the harpooneers aloft shook on their bull-like necks. Through the breach, they heard the waters pour, as mountain torrents down a flume.

From the ship's front, almost all the crew now hung around, doing nothing; hammers, pieces of wood, lances, and harpoons, held limply in their hands, frozen in position from their last tasks; all their captivated eyes fixed on the whale, which moved its massive head side to side, sending out a wide arc of foam in front of it as it sped forward. Retribution, swift vengeance, and eternal malice defined its entire presence, and despite everything humans could do, the solid white wall of its forehead slammed into the ship's right side, causing men and wood to stagger. Some fell flat on their faces. Like dislodged freight cars, the heads of the harpooneers up high shook on their powerful necks. Through the breach, they heard the water rushing in, like mountain streams pouring down a chute.

"The ship! The hearse!—the second hearse!" cried Ahab from the boat; "its wood could only be American!"

"The ship! The hearse!—the second hearse!" shouted Ahab from the boat; "its wood could only be American!"

Diving beneath the settling ship, the whale ran quivering along its keel; but turning under water, swiftly shot to the surface again, far off the other bow, but within a few yards of Ahab's boat, where, for a time, he lay quiescent.

Diving under the sinking ship, the whale trembled as it moved along its keel; but then it turned underwater and quickly shot up to the surface again, far from the other bow, but just a few yards from Ahab's boat, where it lay still for a moment.

"I turn my body from the sun. What ho, Tashtego! Let me hear thy hammer. Oh! ye three unsurrendered spires of mine; thou uncracked keel; and only god-bullied hull; thou firm deck, and haughty helm, and Pole-pointed prow,—death—glorious ship! must ye then perish, and without me? Am I cut off from the last fond pride of meanest shipwrecked captains? Oh, lonely death on lonely life! Oh, now I feel my topmost greatness lies in my topmost grief. Ho, ho! from all your furthest bounds, pour ye now in, ye bold billows of my whole foregone life, and top this one piled comber of my death! Towards thee I roll, thou all-destroying but unconquering whale; to the last I grapple with thee; from hell's heart I stab at thee; for hate's sake I spit my last breath at thee. Sink all coffins and all hearses to one common pool! and since neither can be mine, let me then tow to pieces, while still chasing thee, though tied to thee, thou damned whale! Thus, I give up the spear!"

"I turn my body away from the sun. Hey, Tashtego! Let me hear your hammer. Oh! you three unyielding masts of mine; you unbroken keel; and only god-bullied hull; you sturdy deck, and proud helm, and pointed prow—death—glorious ship! Must you then perish, and without me? Am I cut off from the last cherished pride of the most humble shipwrecked captains? Oh, lonely death in a lonely life! Oh, now I realize my greatest strength lies in my greatest sorrow. Ho, ho! From all your farthest reaches, pour in now, you bold waves of my entire past life, and top this one great wave of my death! Toward you I roll, you all-destroying but unconquerable whale; to the end I struggle with you; from hell's heart I stab at you; for hate's sake I spit my last breath at you. Sink all coffins and all hearses into one common pool! And since neither can be mine, let me then be torn to pieces while still pursuing you, though bound to you, you damned whale! Thus, I give up the spear!"

The harpoon was darted; the stricken whale flew forward; with igniting velocity the line ran through the grooves;—ran foul. Ahab stooped to clear it; he did clear it; but the flying turn caught him round the neck, and voicelessly as Turkish mutes bowstring their victim, he was shot out of the boat, ere the crew knew he was gone. Next instant, the heavy eye-splice in the rope's final end flew out of the stark-empty tub, knocked down an oarsman, and smiting the sea, disappeared in its depths.

The harpoon was thrown; the injured whale surged ahead; the line raced through the grooves with lightning speed—then got tangled. Ahab bent down to fix it; he did manage to clear it, but the fast-moving turn caught him around the neck, and silently, like Turkish mutes executing their victim, he was yanked out of the boat before the crew even realized he was gone. In the next moment, the heavy eye-splice at the end of the rope shot out of the completely empty tub, knocked down an oarsman, and struck the water, vanishing into its depths.

For an instant, the tranced boat's crew stood still; then turned. "The ship? Great God, where is the ship?" Soon they through dim, bewildering mediums saw her sidelong fading phantom, as in the gaseous Fata Morgana; only the uppermost masts out of water; while fixed by infatuation, or fidelity, or fate, to their once lofty perches, the pagan harpooneers still maintained their sinking look-outs on the sea. And now, concentric circles seized the lone boat itself, and all its crew, and each floating oar, and every lancepole, and spinning, animate and inanimate, all round and round in one vortex, carried the smallest chip of the Pequod out of sight.

For a moment, the enchanted crew of the boat just stood there, then turned. "The ship? Oh my God, where is the ship?" Soon, through dim and confusing haze, they saw her fading silhouette, like a mirage; only the top masts were above water. Meanwhile, the pagan harpooneers, either mesmerized, loyal, or fated, remained fixed to their once high perches, still watching the sea as their ship sank. Now, circular waves surrounded the lone boat, and all its crew, every floating oar, each lancepole, and everything else, both alive and dead, spun round and round in a whirlpool, pulling the smallest piece of the Pequod out of sight.

But as the last whelmings intermixingly poured themselves over the sunken head of the Indian at the mainmast, leaving a few inches of the erect spar yet visible, together with long streaming yards of the flag, which calmly undulated, with ironical coincidings, over the destroying billows they almost touched;—at that instant, a red arm and a hammer hovered backwardly uplifted in the open air, in the act of nailing the flag faster and yet faster to the subsiding spar. A sky-hawk that tauntingly had followed the main-truck downwards from its natural home among the stars, pecking at the flag, and incommoding Tashtego there; this bird now chanced to intercept its broad fluttering wing between the hammer and the wood; and simultaneously feeling that etherial thrill, the submerged savage beneath, in his death-gasp, kept his hammer frozen there; and so the bird of heaven, with archangelic shrieks, and his imperial beak thrust upwards, and his whole captive form folded in the flag of Ahab, went down with his ship, which, like Satan, would not sink to hell till she had dragged a living part of heaven along with her, and helmeted herself with it.

But as the last waves crashed together over the Indian's submerged head at the mainmast, leaving a few inches of the upright spar still visible, along with long streaming yards of the flag that calmly waved, ironically synchronizing with the destructive waves that nearly touched;—at that moment, a red arm and a hammer hovered backward, raised in the air, in the act of nailing the flag more and more securely to the sinking spar. A sky-hawk, which mockingly had followed the main-truck down from its natural home among the stars, pecking at the flag and bothering Tashtego; this bird now happened to get its broad, fluttering wing caught between the hammer and the wood; and at the same moment, sensing that ethereal thrill, the submerged savage below, in his death gasp, kept his hammer frozen there; and so the heavenly bird, with angelic shrieks and its majestic beak thrust skyward, and its entire captured form wrapped in Ahab's flag, went down with his ship, which, like Satan, wouldn’t sink to hell until it had dragged a living piece of heaven along with it, effectively crowning itself with it.

Now small fowls flew screaming over the yet yawning gulf; a sullen white surf beat against its steep sides; then all collapsed, and the great shroud of the sea rolled on as it rolled five thousand years ago.

Now small birds flew screeching over the still gaping chasm; a dull white surf crashed against its steep sides; then everything fell apart, and the great covering of the sea rolled on just as it did five thousand years ago.

Epilogue

Epilogue

       "AND I ONLY AM ESCAPED ALONE TO TELL THEE"
                                            Job.

"AND I ONLY AM ESCAPED ALONE TO TELL YOU"
                                            Job.

The drama's done. Why then here does any one step forth?—
Because one did survive the wreck.

The drama's over. So why does anyone come forward here?—
Because someone did survive the disaster.

It so chanced, that after the Parsee's disappearance, I was he whom the Fates ordained to take the place of Ahab's bowsman, when that bowsman assumed the vacant post; the same, who, when on the last day the three men were tossed from out of the rocking boat, was dropped astern. So, floating on the margin of the ensuing scene, and in full sight of it, when the halfspent suction of the sunk ship reached me, I was then, but slowly, drawn towards the closing vortex. When I reached it, it had subsided to a creamy pool. Round and round, then, and ever contracting towards the button-like black bubble at the axis of that slowly wheeling circle, like another Ixion I did revolve. Till, gaining that vital centre, the black bubble upward burst; and now, liberated by reason of its cunning spring, and, owing to its great buoyancy, rising with great force, the coffin life-buoy shot lengthwise from the sea, fell over, and floated by my side. Buoyed up by that coffin, for almost one whole day and night, I floated on a soft and dirgelike main. The unharming sharks, they glided by as if with padlocks on their mouths; the savage sea-hawks sailed with sheathed beaks. On the second day, a sail drew near, nearer, and picked me up at last. It was the devious-cruising Rachel, that in her retracing search after her missing children, only found another orphan.

It just so happened that after the Parsee disappeared, I was the one chosen by fate to take the place of Ahab's bowman when that bowman took the empty spot; I was the same one who, on the last day, was thrown from the rocking boat along with the other two men and ended up behind. So, floating on the edge of what happened next, clear in view, when the lingering pull of the sunken ship reached me, I was slowly drawn toward the closing whirlpool. When I got there, it had turned into a creamy pool. Round and round I went, gradually moving closer to the button-like black bubble at the center of that slowly rotating circle, revolving like another Ixion. Finally, reaching that crucial center, the black bubble burst upwards; and now, freed thanks to its clever spring and buoyancy, the coffin life-buoy shot up from the sea, tipped over, and floated beside me. Supported by that coffin, I drifted for almost an entire day and night on a soft and mournful sea. The harmless sharks glided past as if their mouths were locked shut; the fierce sea-hawks flew by with their beaks covered. On the second day, a sail approached, got closer, and finally rescued me. It was the wandering Rachel, which, in its search for its missing crew, only found another lost soul.

ETYMOLOGY

(Supplied by a Late Consumptive Usher to a Grammar School)

(Supplied by a Late Consumptive Usher to a Grammar School)

The pale Usher—threadbare in coat, heart, body, and brain; I see him now. He was ever dusting his old lexicons and grammars, with a queer handkerchief, mockingly embellished with all the gay flags of all the known nations of the world. He loved to dust his old grammars; it somehow mildly reminded him of his mortality.

The pale Usher—worn out in his coat, heart, body, and mind; I can picture him now. He was always dusting his old dictionaries and grammar books with a strange handkerchief, humorously decorated with all the colorful flags of the world's nations. He enjoyed dusting his old grammars; it somehow gently reminded him of his own mortality.

"While you take in hand to school others, and to teach them by what name a whale-fish is to be called in our tongue leaving out, through ignorance, the letter H, which almost alone maketh the signification of the word, you deliver that which is not true." —HACKLUYT

"While you set out to educate others and to tell them what we should call a whale in our language, ignoring the letter H due to ignorance, which almost single-handedly gives the word its meaning, you are presenting something that is not true." —HACKLUYT

  "WHALE. … Sw. and Dan. hval. This animal is named from roundness
or rolling; for in Dan. hvalt is arched or vaulted."
    —WEBSTER'S DICTIONARY

"WHALE. … Sw. and Dan. hval. This animal is named for its round shape
or rolling; because in Dan. hvalt means arched or vaulted."
    —WEBSTER'S DICTIONARY

  "WHALE. … It is more immediately from the Dut. and Ger.
Wallen; A.S. Walw-ian, to roll, to wallow."
    —RICHARDSON'S DICTIONARY

"WHALE. … It comes directly from the Dutch and German.
Wallen; A.S. Walw-ian, to roll, to wallow."
    —RICHARDSON'S DICTIONARY

          KETOS, Greek.
          CETUS, Latin.
          WHOEL, Anglo-Saxon.
          HVALT, Danish.
          WAL, Dutch.
          HWAL, Swedish.
          WHALE, Icelandic.
          WHALE, English.
          BALEINE, French.
          BALLENA, Spanish.
          PEKEE-NUEE-NUEE, Fegee.
          PEKEE-NUEE-NUEE, Erromangoan.

KETOS, Greek.
          CETUS, Latin.
          WHOEL, Anglo-Saxon.
          HVALT, Danish.
          WAL, Dutch.
          HWAL, Swedish.
          WHALE, Icelandic.
          WHALE, English.
          BALEINE, French.
          BALLENA, Spanish.
          PEKEE-NUEE-NUEE, Fijian.
          PEKEE-NUEE-NUEE, Erromangoan.

  EXTRACTS
  (Supplied by a Sub-Sub-Librarian)

EXTRACTS
  (Supplied by a Sub-Librarian)

It will be seen that this mere painstaking burrower and grub-worm of a poor devil of a Sub-Sub appears to have gone through the long Vaticans and street-stalls of the earth, picking up whatever random allusions to whales he could anyways find in any book whatsoever, sacred or profane. therefore you must not, in every case at least, take the higgledy-piggledy whale statements, however authentic, in these extracts, for veritable gospel cetology. Far from it. As touching the ancient authors generally, as well as the poets here appearing, these extracts are solely valuable or entertaining, as affording a glancing bird's eye view of what has been promiscuously said, thought, fancied, and sung of Leviathan, by many nations and generations, including our own.

It’s clear that this diligent researcher and underdog has sifted through the vast libraries and marketplaces of the world, gathering whatever random references to whales he could find in any book, whether it’s holy or not. So, don’t take every chaotic statement about whales in these extracts as absolute truth in cetology. Not at all. When it comes to the ancient authors and the poets mentioned here, these extracts are mainly useful or entertaining as they provide a brief overview of what has been casually said, thought, imagined, and sung about Leviathan by various nations and generations, including our own.

So fare thee well, poor devil of a Sub-Sub, whose commentator I am. Thou belongest to that hopeless, sallow tribe which no wine of this world will ever warm; and for whom even Pale Sherry would be too rosy-strong; but with whom one sometimes loves to sit, and feel poor-devilish, too; and grow convivial upon tears; and say to them bluntly, with full eyes and empty glasses, and in not altogether unpleasant sadness— Give it up, Sub-Subs! For by how much more pains ye take to please the world, by so much the more shall ye for ever go thankless! Would that I could clear out Hampton Court and the Tuileries for ye! But gulp down your tears and hie aloft to the royal-mast with your hearts; for your friends who have gone before are clearing out the seven-storied heavens, and making refugees of long pampered Gabriel, Michael, and Raphael, against your coming. Here ye strike but splintered hearts together—there, ye shall strike unsplinterable glasses!

So goodbye, dear Sub-Sub, whose commentator I am. You belong to that hopeless, pale group that no wine in this world will ever warm; for whom even Pale Sherry would be too strong; but with whom one sometimes enjoys sitting, feeling a bit down too; and bonding over tears; and saying to them straightforwardly, with teary eyes and empty glasses, and in a not entirely unpleasant sadness— Give it up, Sub-Subs! The more effort you make to please the world, the more you'll remain unappreciated! I wish I could clear out Hampton Court and the Tuileries for you! But swallow your tears and rise to the royal mast with your hearts; for your friends who've gone ahead are clearing out the heavens above, making room for pampered angels like Gabriel, Michael, and Raphael, in anticipation of your arrival. Here you just clash splintered hearts together—there, you'll clink unbreakable glasses!

  "And God created great whales."
  —GENESIS.

"And God made big whales."
  —GENESIS.

  "Leviathan maketh a path to shine after him;
  One would think the deep to be hoary."
  —JOB.

"Leviathan creates a trail that sparkles behind him;
  One would think the deep is gray-haired."
  —JOB.

  "Now the Lord had prepared a great fish to swallow up Jonah."
  —JONAH.

"Now the Lord had arranged for a huge fish to swallow Jonah."
  —JONAH.

  "There go the ships; there is that Leviathan whom thou hast made
to play therein."
  —PSALMS.

"There go the ships; there's that Leviathan you created
to play in it."
  —PSALMS.

  "In that day, the Lord with his sore, and great, and strong sword,
shall punish Leviathan the piercing serpent, even Leviathan that
crooked serpent; and he shall slay the dragon that is in the sea."
  —ISAIAH

"In that day, the Lord will use His powerful and mighty sword to punish Leviathan, the piercing serpent, even Leviathan, the crooked serpent; and He will kill the dragon that is in the sea."   —ISAIAH

"And what thing soever besides cometh within the chaos of this monster's mouth, be it beast, boat, or stone, down it goes all incontinently that foul great swallow of his, and perisheth in the bottomless gulf of his paunch." —HOLLAND'S PLUTARCH'S MORALS.

"And whatever else comes into the chaos of this monster's mouth, whether it be a beast, a boat, or a stone, down it goes immediately into that foul, enormous swallowing hole of his, and it perishes in the bottomless pit of his belly." —HOLLAND'S PLUTARCH'S MORALS.

  "The Indian Sea breedeth the most and the biggest fishes that are:
among which the Whales and Whirlpooles called Balaene, take up as much
in length as four acres or arpens of land."
  —HOLLAND'S PLINY.

"The Indian Ocean breeds the largest and most numerous fish:
among them, the whales and whirlpools known as Balaene, can reach
lengths of up to four acres."
—HOLLAND'S PLINY.

"Scarcely had we proceeded two days on the sea, when about sunrise a great many Whales and other monsters of the sea, appeared. Among the former, one was of a most monstrous size. … This came towards us, open-mouthed, raising the waves on all sides, and beating the sea before him into a foam." —TOOKE'S LUCIAN. "THE TRUE HISTORY."

"Hardly had we been at sea for two days when, around sunrise, a large number of whales and other sea creatures showed up. Among them, one was enormous. … It moved towards us with its mouth wide open, creating waves all around and churning the sea into foam." —TOOKE'S LUCIAN. "THE TRUE HISTORY."

"He visited this country also with a view of catching horse-whales, which had bones of very great value for their teeth, of which he brought some to the king. … The best whales were catched in his own country, of which some were forty-eight, some fifty yards long. He said that he was one of six who had killed sixty in two days." —OTHER OR OCTHER'S VERBAL NARRATIVE TAKEN DOWN FROM HIS MOUTH BY KING ALFRED, A.D. 890.

"He came to this country hoping to catch horse-whales, which had very valuable bones for their teeth, and he brought some to the king. … The best whales were caught in his own country, some measuring forty-eight to fifty yards long. He claimed that he was one of six people who had killed sixty in just two days." —OTHER OR OCTHER'S VERBAL NARRATIVE TAKEN DOWN FROM HIS MOUTH BY KING ALFRED, A.D. 890.

"And whereas all the other things, whether beast or vessel, that enter into the dreadful gulf of this monster's (whale's) mouth, are immediately lost and swallowed up, the sea-gudgeon retires into it in great security, and there sleeps." —MONTAIGNE. - APOLOGY FOR RAIMOND SEBOND.

"And while everything else, whether animal or ship, that falls into this monster's (whale's) mouth is instantly lost and devoured, the sea-gudgeon comfortably retreats into it and sleeps there." —MONTAIGNE. - APOLOGY FOR RAIMOND SEBOND.

  "Let us fly, let us fly! Old Nick take me if is not Leviathan
described by the noble prophet Moses in the life of patient Job."
  —RABELAIS.

"Let's fly, let's fly! May Old Nick take me if it's not Leviathan
mentioned by the great prophet Moses in the story of patient Job."
  —RABELAIS.

  "This whale's liver was two cartloads."
  —STOWE'S ANNALS.

"This whale's liver was two cartloads."
  —STOWE'S ANNALS.

  "The great Leviathan that maketh the seas to seethe like boiling
pan."
  —LORD BACON'S VERSION OF THE PSALMS.

"The huge Leviathan that makes the seas bubble like a boiling
pan."
  —LORD BACON'S VERSION OF THE PSALMS.

  "Touching that monstrous bulk of the whale or ork we have received
nothing certain. They grow exceeding fat, insomuch that an
incredible quantity of oil will be extracted out of one whale."
  —IBID. "HISTORY OF LIFE AND DEATH."

"About that massive body of the whale or orca, we haven't gotten any confirmed information. They become extremely fat, so much so that an unbelievable amount of oil can be extracted from one whale."
  —IBID. "HISTORY OF LIFE AND DEATH."

  "The sovereignest thing on earth is parmacetti for an inward
bruise."
  —KING HENRY.

"The most powerful thing on earth is parmacetti for an internal bruise."   —KING HENRY.

  "Very like a whale."
  —HAMLET.

"Very much like a whale."   —HAMLET.

    "Which to secure, no skill of leach's art
    Mote him availle, but to returne againe
    To his wound's worker, that with lowly dart,
    Dinting his breast, had bred his restless paine,
    Like as the wounded whale to shore flies thro' the maine."
  —THE FAERIE QUEEN.

"To heal him, no skill of a doctor could help, but to go back again to the one who caused his wound, who with a simple arrow has pierced his heart and caused his endless suffering, just like the injured whale that swims to shore across the sea." —THE FAERIE QUEEN.

  "Immense as whales, the motion of whose vast bodies can in a
peaceful calm trouble the ocean til it boil."
  —SIR WILLIAM DAVENANT. PREFACE TO GONDIBERT.

"Massive like whales, the movement of their enormous bodies can, in a
stillness, stir the ocean until it boils."
  —SIR WILLIAM DAVENANT. PREFACE TO GONDIBERT.

  "What spermacetti is, men might justly doubt, since the learned
Hosmannus in his work of thirty years, saith plainly, Nescio quid
sit."
  —SIR T. BROWNE. OF SPERMA CETI AND THE SPERMA CETI WHALE. VIDE HIS V. E.

"What spermaceti is, people might reasonably question, since the learned
Hosmannus in his thirty-year work, says plainly, I don't know what
it is."
  —SIR T. BROWNE. OF SPERMA CETI AND THE SPERMA CETI WHALE. VIDE HIS V. E.

    "Like Spencer's Talus with his modern flail
    He threatens ruin with his ponderous tail.
      …
    Their fixed jav'lins in his side he wears,
    And on his back a grove of pikes appears."
  —WALLER'S BATTLE OF THE SUMMER ISLANDS.

"Like Spencer's Talus with his modern flail
    He threatens destruction with his heavy tail.
      …
    He bears their fixed javelins in his side,
    And on his back, a forest of pikes shows up."
  —WALLER'S BATTLE OF THE SUMMER ISLANDS.

  "By art is created that great Leviathan, called a Commonwealth or
State—(in Latin, Civitas) which is but an artificial man."
  —OPENING SENTENCE OF HOBBES'S LEVIATHAN.

"Through art, a great Leviathan is created, known as a Commonwealth or
State—(in Latin, Civitas) which is merely an artificial person."
  —OPENING SENTENCE OF HOBBES'S LEVIATHAN.

  "Silly Mansoul swallowed it without chewing, as if it had been a
sprat in the mouth of a whale."
  —PILGRIM'S PROGRESS.

"Silly Mansoul gulped it down without chewing, like a sprat in the mouth of a whale."
  —PILGRIM'S PROGRESS.

            "That sea beast
    Leviathan, which God of all his works
    Created hugest that swim the ocean stream."
  —PARADISE LOST.

"That sea creature
    Leviathan, which God of all his creations
    Made the largest that swims in the ocean waves."
  —PARADISE LOST.

            "There Leviathan,
    Hugest of living creatures, in the deep
    Stretched like a promontory sleeps or swims,
    And seems a moving land; and at his gills
    Draws in, and at his breath spouts out a sea."
  —IBID.

"There Leviathan,
    The largest living creature, in the deep
    Lies like a cape, either sleeping or swimming,
    And looks like a shifting piece of land; and at his gills
    He takes in water, and at his breath shoots out a sea."
  —IBID.

  "The mighty whales which swim in a sea of water, and have a sea of
oil swimming in them."
  —FULLLER'S PROFANE AND HOLY STATE.

"The massive whales that swim in a sea of water, and have a sea of
oil flowing within them."
  —FULLLER'S PROFANE AND HOLY STATE.

    "So close behind some promontory lie
      The huge Leviathan to attend their prey,
    And give no chance, but swallow in the fry,
      Which through their gaping jaws mistake the way."
  —DRYDEN'S ANNUS MIRABILIS.

"So close behind some cliff lie
      The huge Leviathan waiting for their prey,
    And leave no opportunity, just swallow the young,
      Which through their gaping jaws go the wrong way."
  —DRYDEN'S ANNUS MIRABILIS.

  "While the whale is floating at the stern of the ship, they cut
off his head, and tow it with a boat as near the shore as it will
come; but it will be aground in twelve or thirteen feet water."
  —THOMAS EDGE'S TEN VOYAGES TO SPITZBERGEN, IN PURCHAS.

"While the whale is drifting at the back of the ship, they cut off its head and tow it with a boat as close to the shore as possible; but it will be stuck in twelve or thirteen feet of water."   —THOMAS EDGE'S TEN VOYAGES TO SPITZBERGEN, IN PURCHAS.

  "In their way they saw many whales sporting in the ocean, and in
wantonness fuzzing up the water through their pipes and vents, which
nature has placed on their shoulders."
  —SIR T. HERBERT'S VOYAGES INTO ASIA AND AFRICA. HARRIS COLL.

"In their own way, they saw many whales playing in the ocean, and out of playfulness, they disturbed the water through their blowholes, which nature has positioned on their backs."   —SIR T. HERBERT'S VOYAGES INTO ASIA AND AFRICA. HARRIS COLL.

  "Here they saw such huge troops of whales, that they were forced
to proceed with a great deal of caution for fear they should run their
ship upon them."
  —SCHOUTEN'S SIXTH CIRCUMNAVIGATION.

"Here they saw such large groups of whales that they had to move very carefully to avoid running their ship into them." —SCHOUTEN'S SIXTH CIRCUMNAVIGATION.

  "We set sail from the Elbe, wind N. E. in the ship called The
Jonas-in-the-Whale. …
  Some say the whale can't open his mouth, but that is a fable. …
  They frequently climb up the masts to see whether they can see a
whale, for the first discoverer has a ducat for his pains. …
  I was told of a whale taken near Shetland, that had above a barrel
of herrings in his belly. …
  One of our harpooneers told me that he caught once a whale in
Spitzbergen that was white all over."
  —A VOYAGE TO GREENLAND, A.D. 1671 HARRIS COLL.

"We set sail from the Elbe, with the wind coming from the northeast, on the ship called The
Jonas-in-the-Whale. …
  Some say the whale can't open its mouth, but that's just a myth. …
  They often climb up the masts to see if they can spot a
whale, because the first person to see it gets a ducat as a reward. …
  I heard about a whale caught near Shetland that had more than a barrel
of herrings in its belly. …
  One of our harpooneers told me he once caught a whale in
Spitzbergen that was completely white."
  —A VOYAGE TO GREENLAND, A.D. 1671 HARRIS COLL.

"Several whales have come in upon this coast (Fife) Anno 1652, one eighty feet in length of the whale-bone kind came in, which (as I was informed), besides a vast quantity of oil, did afford 500 weight of baleen. The jaws of it stand for a gate in the garden of Pitferren." —SIBBALD'S FIFE AND KINROSS.

"Several whales have arrived on this coast (Fife) in 1652. One, measuring eighty feet long and belonging to the baleen type, came ashore, which, as I was told, not only provided a large amount of oil but also yielded 500 pounds of baleen. Its jaws now serve as a gate in the garden of Pitferren." —SIBBALD'S FIFE AND KINROSS.

  "Myself have agreed to try whether I can master and kill this
Sperma-ceti whale, for I could never hear of any of that sort that was
killed by any man, such is his fierceness and swiftness."
  —RICHARD STRAFFORD'S LETTER FROM THE BERMUDAS. PHIL. TRANS. A.D. 1668.

"I've decided to see if I can catch and kill this
spermaceti whale, because I've never heard of anyone successfully doing it, given its ferocity and speed."
—RICHARD STRAFFORD'S LETTER FROM THE BERMUDAS. PHIL. TRANS. A.D. 1668.

     "Whales in the sea
     God's voice obey."
  —N. E. PRIMER.

"Whales in the sea
     God's voice obeys."
  —N. E. PRIMER.

  "We saw also abundance of large whales, there being more in those
southern seas, as I may say, by a hundred to one; than we have to
the northward of us."
  —CAPTAIN COWLEY'S VOYAGE ROUND THE GLOBE, A.D. 1729.

"We also saw a lot of large whales; there are many more in those
southern seas, I’d say, by about a hundred to one, compared to what we have
to the north of us."
  —CAPTAIN COWLEY'S VOYAGE ROUND THE GLOBE, A.D. 1729.

  "… and the breath of the whale is frequendy attended with
such an insupportable smell, as to bring on a disorder of the brain."
  —ULLOA'S SOUTH AMERICA.

“… and the breath of the whale often comes with
such an unbearable smell that it can cause a brain disorder.”
  —ULLOA'S SOUTH AMERICA.

    "To fifty chosen sylphs of special note,
    We trust the important charge, the petticoat.
    Oft have we known that seven-fold fence to fail,
    Tho' stuffed with hoops and armed with ribs of whale."
  —RAPE OF THE LOCK.

"To fifty selected spirits of great importance,
    We entrust the significant task, the petticoat.
    We often saw that seven-fold barrier fall,
    Though filled with hoops and reinforced with whale bones."
  —RAPE OF THE LOCK.

"If we compare land animals in respect to magnitude, with those that take up their abode in the deep, we shall find they will appear contemptible in the comparison. The whale is doubtless the largest animal in creation." —GOLDSMITH, NAT. HIST.

"If we compare land animals to those that live in the ocean, we’ll see they seem insignificant in comparison. The whale is definitely the largest animal on Earth." —GOLDSMITH, NAT. HIST.

  "If you should write a fable for little fishes, you would make
them speak like great wales."
  —GOLDSMITH TO JOHNSON.

"If you were to write a fable for little fish, you would make
them speak like great whales."
  —GOLDSMITH TO JOHNSON.

"In the afternoon we saw what was supposed to be a rock, but it was found to be a dead whale, which some Asiatics had killed, and were then towing ashore. They seemed to endeavor to conceal themselves behind the whale, in order to avoid being seen by us." —COOK'S VOYAGES.

"In the afternoon, we spotted what we thought was a rock, but it turned out to be a dead whale that some Asians had killed and were towing to shore. They seemed to be trying to hide behind the whale to avoid being seen by us." —COOK'S VOYAGES.

"The larger whales, they seldom venture to attack. They stand in so great dread of some of them, that when out at sea they are afraid to mention even their names, and carry dung, lime-stone, juniper-wood, and some other articles of the same nature in their boats, in order to terrify and prevent their too near approach." —UNO VON TROIL'S LETTERS ON BANKS'S AND SOLANDER'S VOYAGE TO ICELAND IN 1772.

"The larger whales rarely attack. They are so afraid of some of them that when they're at sea, they won't even say their names and carry dung, limestone, juniper wood, and other similar things in their boats to scare them away and stop them from getting too close." —UNO VON TROIL'S LETTERS ON BANKS'S AND SOLANDER'S VOYAGE TO ICELAND IN 1772.

  "The Spermacetti Whale found by the Nantuckois, is an active, fierce
animal, and requires vast address and boldness in the fishermen."
  —THOMAS JEFFERSON'S WHALE MEMORIAL TO THE FRENCH MINISTER IN 1778.

"The Spermaceti Whale discovered by the Nantucketers is an aggressive, intense
creature that demands great skill and bravery from the fishermen."
  —THOMAS JEFFERSON'S WHALE MEMORIAL TO THE FRENCH MINISTER IN 1778.

  "And pray, sir, what in the world is equal to it?"
  —EDMUND BURKE'S REFERENCE IN PARLIAMENT TO THE NANTUCKET WHALE-FISHERY.

"And seriously, sir, what in the world compares to it?"
  —EDMUND BURKE'S REFERENCE IN PARLIAMENT TO THE NANTUCKET WHALE-FISHERY.

  "Spain—a great whale stranded on the shores of Europe."
  —EDMUND BURKE. (SOMEWHERE.)

"Spain—a huge whale washed up on the shores of Europe."
  —EDMUND BURKE. (SOMEWHERE.)

"A tenth branch of the king's ordinary revenue, said to be grounded on the consideration of his guarding and protecting the seas from pirates and robbers, is the right to royal fish, which are whale and sturgeon. And these, when either thrown ashore or caught near the coast, are the property of the king." —BLACKSTONE.

"A tenth branch of the king's regular income, believed to come from his duty to guard and protect the seas from pirates and thieves, is the right to royal fish, which includes whale and sturgeon. These fish, whether washed ashore or caught close to the coast, belong to the king." —BLACKSTONE.

    "Soon to the sport of death the crews repair:
    Rodmond unerring o'er his head suspends
    The barbed steel, and every turn attends."
  —FALCONER'S SHIPWRECK.

"Soon to the deadly sport, the teams gather:
    Rodmond skillfully holds the barbed steel above his head,
    attending to every move."
  —FALCONER'S SHIPWRECK.

    "Bright shone the roofs, the domes, the spires,
      And rockets blew self driven,
    To hang their momentary fire
      Around the vault of heaven.

"Bright shone the roofs, the domes, the spires,
      And rockets blew self driven,
    To hang their momentary fire
      Around the vault of heaven."

    "So fire with water to compare,
      The ocean serves on high,
    Up-spouted by a whale in air,
      To express unwieldy joy."
  —COWPER, ON THE QUEEN'S VISIT TO LONDON.

"Just like fire and water when compared,
      The ocean rises in the sky,
    Shot up by a whale into the air,
      To show unwieldy joy."
  —COWPER, ON THE QUEEN'S VISIT TO LONDON.

  "Ten or fifteen gallons of blood are thrown out of the heart at a
stroke, with immense velocity."
  —JOHN HUNTER'S ACCOUNT OF THE DISSECTION OF A WHALE. (A SMALL SIZED ONE.)

"Ten or fifteen gallons of blood are pumped out of the heart at a
time, with incredible speed."
  —JOHN HUNTER'S ACCOUNT OF THE DISSECTION OF A WHALE. (A SMALL SIZED ONE.)

"The aorta of a whale is larger in the bore than the main pipe of the water-works at London Bridge, and the water roaring in its passage through that pipe is inferior in impetus and velocity to the blood gushing from the whale's heart." —PALEY'S THEOLOGY.

"The aorta of a whale is bigger in diameter than the main pipe of the waterworks at London Bridge, and the water rushing through that pipe flows with less force and speed than the blood pumping from the whale's heart." —PALEY'S THEOLOGY.

  "The whale is a mammiferous animal without hind feet."
  —BARON CUVIER.

"The whale is a mammal that doesn't have back legs."
  —BARON CUVIER.

  "In 40 degrees south, we saw Spermacetti Whales, but did not take
any till the first of May, the sea being then covered with them."
  —COLNETT'S VOYAGE FOR THE PURPOSE OF EXTENDING THE SPERMACETI
WHALE FISHERY.

"In 40 degrees south, we saw Sperm Whales, but didn’t catch any until the first of May, when the sea was full of them."
—COLNETT'S VOYAGE FOR THE PURPOSE OF EXTENDING THE SPERMACETI
WHALE FISHERY.

    "In the free element beneath me swam,
    Floundered and dived, in play, in chace, in battle,
    Fishes of every color, form, and kind;
    Which language cannot paint, and mariner
    Had never seen; from dread Leviathan
    To insect millions peopling every wave:
    Gather'd in shoals immense, like floating islands,
    Led by mysterious instincts through that waste
    And trackless region, though on every side
    Assaulted by voracious enemies,
    Whales, sharks, and monsters, arm'd in front or jaw,
    With swords, saws, spiral horns, or hooked fangs."
  —MONTGOMERY'S WORLD BEFORE THE FLOOD.

"In the open water below me swam,
    Floundered and dived, in play, in chase, in battle,
    Fish of every color, shape, and type;
    Which words can't describe, and sailors
    Had never encountered; from the terrifying Leviathan
    To the countless tiny creatures filling every wave:
    Gathered in massive schools, like floating islands,
    Guided by mysterious instincts through that empty
    And uncharted region, though on every side
    Attacked by greedy enemies,
    Whales, sharks, and monsters, armed with hooks or jaws,
    With swords, saws, spiral horns, or sharp fangs."
  —MONTGOMERY'S WORLD BEFORE THE FLOOD.

    "Io! Paean! Io! sing.
    To the finny people's king.
    Not a mightier whale than this
    In the vast Atlantic is;
    Not a fatter fish than he,
    Flounders round the Polar Sea."
  —CHARLES LAMB'S TRIUMPH OF THE WHALE.

"Io! Hooray! Io! sing.
    To the king of the fish.
    There’s no bigger whale than this
    In the vast Atlantic;
    No fatter fish than he,
    Swimming around the Polar Sea."
  —CHARLES LAMB'S TRIUMPH OF THE WHALE.

"In the year 1690 some persons were on a high hill observing the whales spouting and sporting with each other, when one observed: there—pointing to the sea—is a green pasture where our children's grand-children will go for bread." —OBED MACY'S HISTORY OF NANTUCKET.

"In 1690, some people were on a high hill watching the whales spouting and playing with each other, when one pointed toward the sea and said: there—look at that green pasture where our grandchildren will go for food." —OBED MACY'S HISTORY OF NANTUCKET.

  "I built a cottage for Susan and myself and made a gateway in the
form of a Gothic Arch, by setting up a whale's jaw bones."
  —HAWTHORNE'S TWICE TOLD TALES.

"I built a cottage for Susan and me and created a gateway in the
shape of a Gothic Arch by using a whale's jawbones."
  —HAWTHORNE'S TWICE TOLD TALES.

  "She came to bespeak a monument for her first love, who had been
killed by a whale in the Pacific ocean, no less than forty years ago."
  —IBID.

"She came to order a memorial for her first love, who had been
killed by a whale in the Pacific Ocean, no less than forty years ago."
  —IBID.

  "No, Sir, 'tis a Right Whale," answered Tom; "I saw his sprout; he
threw up a pair of as pretty rainbows as a Christian would wish to
look at. He's a raal oil-butt, that fellow!"
  —COOPER'S PILOT.

"No, sir, it's a Right Whale," replied Tom; "I saw him spout; he
created a couple of beautiful rainbows that anyone would love to
see. He's a real oil factory, that guy!"
  —COOPER'S PILOT.

  "The papers were brought in, and we saw in the Berlin Gazette that
whales had been introduced on the stage there."
  —ECKERMANN'S CONVERSATIONS WITH GOETHE.

"The papers were brought in, and we saw in the Berlin Gazette that
whales had been featured on stage there."
  —ECKERMANN'S CONVERSATIONS WITH GOETHE.

  "My God! Mr. Chace, what is the matter?" I answered, "we have been
stove by a whale."
  —"NARRATIVE OF THE SHIPWRECK OF THE WHALE SHIP ESSEX OF
NANTUCKET, WHICH WAS ATTACKED AND FINALLY DESTROYED BY
A LARGE SPERM WHALE IN THE PACIFIC OCEAN." BY OWEN
CHACE OF NANTUCKET, FIRST MATE OF SAID VESSEL. NEW
YORK, 1821.

"My God! Mr. Chace, what’s wrong?" I replied, "we’ve been hit by a whale."   —"NARRATIVE OF THE SHIPWRECK OF THE WHALE SHIP ESSEX OF NANTUCKET, WHICH WAS ATTACKED AND FINALLY DESTROYED BY A LARGE SPERM WHALE IN THE PACIFIC OCEAN." BY OWEN CHACE OF NANTUCKET, FIRST MATE OF SAID VESSEL. NEW YORK, 1821.

    "A mariner sat in the shrouds one night,
      The wind was piping free;
    Now bright, now dimmed, was the moonlight pale,
    And the phospher gleamed in the wake of the whale,
      As it floundered in the sea."
  —ELIZABETH OAKES SMITH.

"A sailor was up in the rigging one night,
      The wind was blowing strong;
    Sometimes bright, sometimes faint, was the pale moonlight,
    And the phosphorescence shone in the whale's wake,
      As it thrashed in the sea."
  —ELIZABETH OAKES SMITH.

"The quantity of line withdrawn from the boats engaged in the capture of this one whale, amounted altogether to 10,440 yards or nearly six English miles. …

"The amount of line taken from the boats involved in the capture of this one whale was a total of 10,440 yards, or nearly six English miles. …"

  "Sometimes the whale shakes its tremendous tail in the air, which,
cracking like a whip, resounds to the distance of three or four
miles."
  —SCORESBY.

"Sometimes the whale lifts its massive tail into the air, which,
cracking like a whip, echoes for three or four
miles."
  —SCORESBY.

"Mad with the agonies he endures from these fresh attacks, the infuriated Sperm Whale rolls over and over; he rears his enormous head, and with wide expanded jaws snaps at everything around him; he rushes at the boats with his head; they are propelled before him with vast swiftness, and sometimes utterly destroyed. … It is a matter of great astonishment that the consideration of the habits of so interesting, and, in a commercial point of view, so important an animal (as the Sperm Whale) should have been so entirely neglected, or should have excited so little curiosity among the numerous, and many of them competent observers, that of late years, must have possessed the most abundant and the most convenient opportunities of witnessing their habitudes." —THOMAS BEALE'S HISTORY OF THE SPERM WHALE, 1839.

"Frustrated by the pain from these new attacks, the enraged Sperm Whale rolls around violently; he lifts his massive head and with wide-open jaws snaps at everything nearby. He charges at the boats with his head, sending them flying with incredible speed, and sometimes completely destroying them. It’s truly surprising that the behavior of such a fascinating and commercially significant animal (the Sperm Whale) has been so completely overlooked, or that it hasn't sparked more curiosity among the many skilled observers who, in recent years, must have had plenty of opportunities to observe their habits." —THOMAS BEALE'S HISTORY OF THE SPERM WHALE, 1839.

"The Cachalot" (Sperm Whale) "is not only better armed than the True Whale" (Greenland or Right Whale) "in possessing a formidable weapon at either extremity of its body, but also more frequently displays a disposition to employ these weapons offensively and in manner at once so artful, bold, and mischievous, as to lead to its being regarded as the most dangerous to attack of all the known species of the whale tribe." —FREDERICK DEBELL BENNETT'S WHALING VOYAGE ROUND THE GLOBE, 1840.

"The Cachalot" (Sperm Whale) "not only has better defenses than the True Whale" (Greenland or Right Whale) "by having a powerful weapon at both ends of its body, but it also often shows a tendency to use these weapons aggressively, and in ways that are both clever, daring, and troublesome, making it seen as the most dangerous to confront of all known whale species." —FREDERICK DEBELL BENNETT'S WHALING VOYAGE ROUND THE GLOBE, 1840.

  October 13. "There she blows," was sung out from the mast-head.
  "Where away?" demanded the captain.
  "Three points off the lee bow, sir."
  "Raise up your wheel. Steady!"
  "Steady, sir."
  "Mast-head ahoy! Do you see that whale now?"
  "Ay ay, sir! A shoal of Sperm Whales! There she blows! There she
breaches!"
  "Sing out! sing out every time!"
  "Ay Ay, sir! There she blows! there—there—thar she blows -bowes
-bo-o-os!"
  "How far off?"
  "Two miles and a half."
  "Thunder and lightning! so near! Call all hands."
  —J. ROSS BROWNE'S ETCHINGS OF A WHALING CRUIZE. 1846.

October 13. "There she blows!" was shouted from the masthead.
  "Where is it?" asked the captain.
  "Three points off the lee bow, sir."
  "Turn the wheel. Steady!"
  "Steady, sir."
  "Masthead, do you see that whale now?"
  "Yes, sir! A group of Sperm Whales! There she blows! There she
breaches!"
  "Shout it out! Shout out every time!"
  "Yes, sir! There she blows! there—there—there she blows—bo-o-os!"
  "How far away?"
  "Two and a half miles."
  "Good grief! So close! Call all hands."
  —J. ROSS BROWNE'S ETCHINGS OF A WHALING CRUIZE. 1846.

  "The Whale-ship Globe, on board of which vessel occurred the
horrid transactions we are about to relate, belonged to the island
of Nantucket."
  —"NARRATIVE OF THE GLOBE," BY LAY AND HUSSEY SURVIVORS. A.D. 1828.

"The whale ship Globe, where the terrible events we’re about to describe took place, was from the island of Nantucket."   —"NARRATIVE OF THE GLOBE," BY LAY AND HUSSEY SURVIVORS. A.D. 1828.

Being once pursued by a whale which he had wounded, he parried the assault for some time with a lance; but the furious monster at length rushed on the boat; himself and comrades only being preserved by leaping into the water when they saw the onset was inevitable." —MISSIONARY JOURNAL OF TYERMAN AND BENNETT.

Being chased by a whale he had injured, he fended off the attack for a while with a harpoon; but the angry creature eventually charged at the boat, and he and his companions were only saved by jumping into the water when they realized the attack was unavoidable." —MISSIONARY JOURNAL OF TYERMAN AND BENNETT.

"Nantucket itself," said Mr. Webster, "is a very striking and peculiar portion of the National interest. There is a population of eight or nine thousand persons living here in the sea, adding largely every year to the National wealth by the boldest and most persevering industry." —REPORT OF DANIEL WEBSTER'S SPEECH IN THE U. S. SENATE, ON THE APPLICATION FOR THE ERECTION OF A BREAKWATER AT NANTUCKET. 1828.

"Nantucket itself," said Mr. Webster, "is a very unique and notable part of our national interest. There are about eight or nine thousand people living here by the sea, contributing significantly to the national wealth each year through their daring and determined hard work." —REPORT OF DANIEL WEBSTER'S SPEECH IN THE U. S. SENATE, ON THE APPLICATION FOR THE ERECTION OF A BREAKWATER AT NANTUCKET. 1828.

  "The whale fell directly over him, and probably killed him in a
moment."
  —"THE WHALE AND HIS CAPTORS, OR THE WHALEMAN'S
ADVENTURES AND THE WHALE'S BIOGRAPHY, GATHERED ON THE
HOMEWARD CRUISE OF THE COMMODORE PREBLE."
BY REV. HENRY T. CHEEVER.

"The whale fell right on top of him, and likely killed him in an instant."
  —"THE WHALE AND HIS CAPTORS, OR THE WHALEMAN'S
ADVENTURES AND THE WHALE'S BIOGRAPHY, GATHERED ON THE
HOMEWARD CRUISE OF THE COMMODORE PREBLE."
BY REV. HENRY T. CHEEVER.

  "If you make the least damn bit of noise," replied Samuel, "I will
send you to hell."
  —LIFE OF SAMUEL COMSTOCK (THE MUTINEER), BY HIS
BROTHER, WILLIAM COMSTOCK. ANOTHER VERSION OF THE
WHALE-SHIP GLOBE NARRATIVE.

"If you make even the slightest noise," Samuel replied, "I'll send you straight to hell."
  —LIFE OF SAMUEL COMSTOCK (THE MUTINEER), BY HIS
BROTHER, WILLIAM COMSTOCK. ANOTHER VERSION OF THE
WHALE-SHIP GLOBE NARRATIVE.

"The voyages of the Dutch and English to the Northern Ocean, in order, if possible, to discover a passage through it to India, though they failed of their main object, laid-open the haunts of the whale." —MCCULLOCH'S COMMERCIAL DICTIONARY.

"The journeys of the Dutch and English to the Northern Ocean, aiming to find a route through it to India, although they didn't achieve their main goal, revealed the habitats of the whales." —MCCULLOCH'S COMMERCIAL DICTIONARY.

"These things are reciprocal; the ball rebounds, only to bound forward again; for now in laying open the haunts of the whale, the whalemen seem to have indirectly hit upon new clews to that same mystic North-West Passage." —FROM "SOMETHING" UNPUBLISHED.

"These things go both ways; the ball bounces back, only to move forward again; because now, by revealing the whale's hiding spots, the whalers appear to have indirectly found new clues to the same mysterious North-West Passage." —FROM "SOMETHING" UNPUBLISHED.

"It is impossible to meet a whale-ship on the ocean without being struck by her near appearance. The vessel under short sail, with look-outs at the mast-heads, eagerly scanning the wide expanse around them, has a totally different air from those engaged in regular voyage." —CURRENTS AND WHALING. U. S. EX. EX.

"It’s impossible to encounter a whaling ship on the ocean without being impressed by its striking appearance. The ship, with its sails furled and crew members at the lookout, eagerly scanning the vast sea around them, gives off a completely different vibe compared to those on standard voyages." —CURRENTS AND WHALING. U. S. EX. EX.

"Pedestrians in the vicinity of London and elsewhere may recollect having seen large curved bones set upright in the earth, either to form arches over gateways, or entrances to alcoves, and they may perhaps have been told that these were the ribs of whales." —TALES OF A WHALE VOYAGER TO THE ARCTIC OCEAN.

"People walking around London and other places might remember seeing large curved bones standing upright in the ground, either forming arches over gateways or leading to alcoves, and they may have been told that these were whale ribs." —TALES OF A WHALE VOYAGER TO THE ARCTIC OCEAN.

  "It was not till the boats returned from the pursuit of these
whales, that the whites saw their ship in bloody possession of the
savages enrolled among the crew."
  —NEWSPAPER ACCOUNT OF THE TAKING AND RETAKING OF THE WHALE-SHIP HOBOMACK.

"It wasn’t until the boats came back from chasing these
whales that the white sailors saw their ship in bloody hands of the
natives who were part of the crew."
  —NEWSPAPER ACCOUNT OF THE TAKING AND RETAKING OF THE WHALE-SHIP HOBOMACK.

  "It is generally well known that out of the crews of Whaling vessels
(American) few ever return in the ships on board of which they
departed."
  —CRUISE IN A WHALE BOAT.

"It is generally known that few crews from whaling vessels (American) ever come back on the same ships they left on."
  —CRUISE IN A WHALE BOAT.

  "Suddenly a mighty mass emerged from the water, and shot up
perpendicularly into the air. It was the while."
  —MIRIAM COFFIN OR THE WHALE FISHERMAN.

"Suddenly, a huge creature rose up from the water and shot straight up into the air. It was the whale." —MIRIAM COFFIN OR THE WHALE FISHERMAN.

  "The Whale is harpooned to be sure; but bethink you, how you would
manage a powerful unbroken colt, with the mere appliance of a rope
tied to the root of his tail."
  —A CHAPTER ON WHALING IN RIBS AND TRUCKS.

"The whale is harpooned for sure; but think about how you would
handle a strong, untamed colt with just a rope tied to the base of its tail."
  —A CHAPTER ON WHALING IN RIBS AND TRUCKS.

"On one occasion I saw two of these monsters (whales) probably male and female, slowly swimming, one after the other, within less than a stone's throw of the shore" (Terra Del Fuego), "over which the beech tree extended its branches." —DARWIN'S VOYAGE OF A NATURALIST.

"One time, I saw two of these creatures (whales), likely a male and a female, slowly swimming in a line, less than a stone's throw from the shore" (Terra Del Fuego), "where the beech tree spread its branches." —DARWIN'S VOYAGE OF A NATURALIST.

"'Stern all!' exclaimed the mate, as upon turning his head, he saw the distended jaws of a large Sperm Whale close to the head of the boat, threatening it with instant destruction;—'Stern all, for your lives!'" —WHARTON THE WHALE KILLER.

"'Back up!' shouted the mate, as he turned his head and saw the huge jaws of a massive Sperm Whale right next to the front of the boat, ready to destroy it instantly;—'Back up, for your lives!'" —WHARTON THE WHALE KILLER.

    "So be cheery, my lads, let your hearts never fail,
    While the bold harpooneer is striking the whale!"
  —NANTUCKET SONG.

"So be cheerful, my friends, keep your spirits up,
    While the brave harpooneer is hunting the whale!"
  —NANTUCKET SONG.

    "Oh, the rare old Whale, mid storm and gale
      In his ocean home will be
    A giant in might, where might is right,
      And King of the boundless sea."
  —WHALE SONG.

"Oh, the rare old Whale, amidst the storm and gale
      In his ocean home will be
    A giant in strength, where strength is right,
      And King of the endless sea."
  —WHALE SONG.


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!